summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/52391-0.txt17279
-rw-r--r--old/52391-0.zipbin331784 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52391-h.zipbin401574 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52391-h/52391-h.htm17333
-rw-r--r--old/52391-h/images/cover.jpgbin50653 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 34612 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..fa5a3f0
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #52391 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/52391)
diff --git a/old/52391-0.txt b/old/52391-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index bf51f78..0000000
--- a/old/52391-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,17279 +0,0 @@
-Project Gutenberg's Outlines of Ecclesiastical History, by B. H. Roberts
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Outlines of Ecclesiastical History
-
-Author: B. H. Roberts
-
-Release Date: June 22, 2016 [EBook #52391]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK OUTLINES OF ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by the Mormon Texts Project
-(http://mormontextsproject.org), with thanks to Renah
-Holmes for proofreading.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- OUTLINES
-
- OF
-
- ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
-
-
- BY
-
- ELDER B. H. ROBERTS
-
-
- AUTHOR OF
-
- "The Life of John Taylor" "The Gospel"
- "New Witness for God" "Missouri Persecutions"
- "Rise and Fall of Nauvoo," etc.
-
-
- THIRD EDITION
-
-
- SALT LAKE CITY, UTAH.
- 1902.
-
-
- DEDICATION
-
- TO THE SEVENTIES:
- THAT BODY OF MEN
- UPON WHOM--UNDER THE
- DIRECTION OF THE TWELVE APOSTLES--
- DEVOLVES THE RESPONSIBILITY OF PREACHING
- THE GOSPEL, AND DEFENDING THE TRUTH
- IN ALL THE WORLD, THIS WORK
- IS AFFECTIONATELY
- DEDICATED.
-
-
-
-A WORD WITH STUDENTS AND TEACHERS.
-
-Before you take up the study of OUTLINES OF ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY, I
-beg leave to call your attention to the structure of the work, and the
-purpose for which it was written. First, then, as to its structure.
-
-The work is divided into four parts, each with a distinct idea
-running through it. Part I deals with THE ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CHURCH
-through the ministry of Messiah and his apostles; Part II with THE
-APOSTASY, brought about through the severe persecution to which the
-early saints were subjected, the rise of false teachers, changing
-the ordinances of the gospel, intermingling pagan philosophy with
-Christian doctrine, and a transgression of the laws of God; Part III
-deals with "THE REFORMATION," treating it, however as a revolution
-instead of a reformation since the so-called reformation by no means
-re-established primitive Christianity, either in its form or essence,
-but it did overthrow the power of the Catholic Church in the greater
-part of Western Europe, gave larger liberty to the people, and thus
-prepared the way for the great work which followed it--the introduction
-of the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times; Part IV treats of THE
-RESTORATION OF THE GOSPEL, in the aforesaid dispensation, through the
-revelations which God gave to the Prophet Joseph Smith.
-
-The parts above enumerated are separated into sections, these
-subdivisions being determined by the several subjects into which the
-main idea of the respective parts naturally divides. The sections are
-again separated into topics, the {iv} titles of which are printed in
-bold-face type, and the paragraphs are numbered. These divisions, it
-is believed, will better enable the student to discern the relation
-of the respective parts to the main subject, and at the same time
-afford a convenient division for the assignment of lessons to classes.
-Ordinarily it will be found that a section will be sufficient for a
-lesson for either a class or quorum; but in some instances two of the
-shorter sections may be taken for a lesson; but some of the longer
-sections should be divided into two or more.
-
-At the end of each section will be found a collection of notes bearing
-upon the important points treated in the text of the work, at which
-place reference will be found to the note at the end of the section.
-The author cannot, in his opinion, too emphatically urge upon the
-student the importance of turning to the notes to which he is directed
-in the text and reading them. They will be found to throw additional
-light upon the subject treated in the text, either by giving the
-statement of a recognized authority, supplying pointed argument--with
-which it has been thought best not to burden the body of the work--or
-giving illustrations to the statement made in the text. Another purpose
-for placing these notes at the end of the sections has been to arouse
-an interest in the works of the authors quoted; that the students
-of this text book may be induced to delve deeper into the study of
-Ecclesiastical History than a perusal of these pages will enable
-them to do. And here let the author confess, while he believes he is
-presenting a very valuable collection of facts to those who will take
-up the study of his work--yet if the study of these pages shall result
-in merely awakening in the minds of the elders and the youth of Israel
-an interest in the subject, he will account the objects of his efforts
-successfully attained.
-
-At the end of each section also will be found Review Questions,
-covering the main points treated in the text and in the notes. It
-is hoped that they will be found useful in conducting {v} class
-exercises, and to the private student who wishes to ascertain if he has
-mastered the subject matter of each section. Let him put to himself
-the questions found in the review at the end of the section, when
-completing it, and if he can give a satisfactory answer to each one,
-the author feels assured that the student has mastered the salient
-points.
-
-The purpose of the work is two-fold: First, it is to sustain the
-position taken by the church of Christ in the last days. What that
-position is may be readily discerned by the very first revelation
-the Lord gave to Joseph Smith. In answering the young prophet's
-question--which of all the sects of religion was acknowledged of him
-as his church and kingdom--the Lord said they were all wrong; that all
-their creeds were an abomination in his sight; that those professors
-were all corrupt; that they drew near to him with their lips, but
-their hearts were far from him; that they taught for doctrine the
-commandments of men--having a form of godliness, but denying the power
-thereof.[1]
-
-It has been to bring together the historical evidences of the truth of
-this divine announcement that, in part, this work has been written;
-and therefore prominence has been given to those facts of history
-which support that announcement. But no fact has been suppressed that
-has a tendency to support the opposite view. No such fact either of
-history or prophecy exists. The whole stream of evidence proves that
-there has been a universal apostasy from the religion taught by Jesus
-Christ and his apostles; and the existing differences between the
-present teachings of "Christendom" and the doctrines of the scriptures
-is a proof so palpable that it admits of no contradiction. As this
-position of the church is one which the seventies and elders will have
-to maintain against all the world, it is of first importance that they
-become familiar with those facts of history and of prophecy that will
-enable them to maintain that position intelligently and successfully.
-
-The second purpose of the work is to teach the principles of the
-gospel. This, the author is convinced, can best be done in connection
-with their history. Relate the historical events which resulted in
-the introduction and establishment of the gospel and the church of
-Christ; then in all the centuries from the second to the tenth show how
-the doctrines of Messiah were departed from, how the ordinances were
-changed and the laws of God transgressed; relate the principal events
-of the sixteenth century revolution--miscalled the "Reformation"--and
-point out how that revolution, however salutary in bringing to pass an
-enlargement of popular liberty, failed to re-establish the gospel of
-the Lord Jesus Christ, or re-organize the church as at first founded
-by Messiah; then relate the events connected with the restoration of
-the gospel through the revelations given to the great prophet of the
-Dispensation of the Fullness of Times, Joseph Smith--and in so doing
-you are not only teaching the interesting facts of Ecclesiastical
-History to your students, but at the same time you are making them
-acquainted with the principles of the gospel. Under such a presentation
-the students, without being conscious of it, perhaps, will examine
-those principles under a variety of circumstances. They will see them
-stated in connection with the leading events of the Messiah's life;
-they will see them corrupted by an apostate church; they will hear
-them discussed by men during the attempt at Reformation; and after
-witnessing the unavailing efforts of the "Reformers" to re-establish
-the gospel and the church of Christ, they will see how the heavens
-were opened and every principle, doctrine, ordinance, law, officer
-and institution known to the church of Christ, restored. Such a
-presentation of the principles of the gospel, we repeat, must lead to
-a very comprehensive understanding of them, and such is one of the
-purposes of this work, and one which the author hopes will give it
-a claim upon the attention of all those desiring information on the
-subject of the gospel, as well as to the quorums of seventies and
-elders to whom we believe it will be of special service.
-
-Before the work went to press the manuscript was submitted to a
-committee of brethren appointed by the First Presidency. Elders John
-Nicholson, George Reynolds and James E. Talmage constituted that
-committee. The author is very much indebted to them for their patient
-consideration of his manuscript, and for the very valuable suggestions
-and corrections made by them. They reported favorably to the First
-Presidency on the work, and it is now presented to the students of
-Ecclesiastical History--in which the church of Christ should abound--in
-the hope that it will be of service to them in their researches in this
-most interesting department of knowledge.
-
-This, the fifth edition, is uniform with the previous edition, in every
-respect.
-
-_The Publishers_
-
-Footnotes
-
-1. Pearl of Price, page 85.
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-DEDICATION INTRODUCTION
-
-PART I.
-
-ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CHURCH
-
-PART II.
-
-THE APOSTASY
-
-PART III.
-
-THE REFORMATION
-
-PART IV.
-
-THE RESTORATION OF THE GOSPEL
-
-INDEX
-
-
-
-PART I.
-
-THE ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CHURCH.
-
-{11}
-
-
-
-SECTION I.
-
-1. Birth of Messiah.--Jesus Christ, the Son of God and Savior
-of the world, was born, most probably, in the year of Rome 753; at a
-period of the year corresponding to our month of April (see notes 1, 2,
-end of section). The place of his birth was Bethlehem [Beth-le-hem],[1]
-a small town about four miles south of Jerusalem. The birth-place of
-Messiah was foretold by Micah [Mi-kah], the prophet, more than seven
-hundred years before the event, in the following prophecy:
-
- But thou, Bethlehem Ephratah [Ef-ra-tah], though thou be little
- among the thousands of Judah, yet out of thee shall he come forth
- unto me that is to be ruler in Israel; whose goings forth have been
- from of old, from everlasting.[2]
-
-2. Parentage of Christ.--Messiah was born of the virgin Mary, a
-descendant of David, and the espoused wife of Joseph, a carpenter in
-the little village of Nazareth [Naz-a-reth], who, notwithstanding his
-humble station in life, was also a descendant of the royal house of
-David. An angel appeared unto Mary previous to her conception, and thus
-addressed her:
-
- Hail thou that art highly favored, the Lord is with thee: blessed
- art thou among women. And when she saw him, she was troubled at his
- saying, and cast in her mind what manner of salutation this should be.
- And the angel said unto her, Fear not, Mary: for thou hast found favor
- with God. And, behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring
- forth a son, and shall call his name JESUS. He shall be great, and
- shalt be called the Son of the Highest: and the Lord God shall give
- unto him the throne of his father David: and he shall {12} reign over
- the house of Jacob forever; and of his kingdom there shall be no end.
- Then said Mary unto the angel, How shall this be, seeing I know not a
- man? And the angel answered and said unto her, The Holy Ghost shall
- come upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee:
- therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee, shall be
- called the Son of God. * * * And Mary said: Behold the handmaid of the
- Lord; be it unto me according to thy word.[3]
-
-3. These two, the mother of Jesus and her betrothed husband,
-had left their home in Nazareth to enroll their names as members of
-the house of David, in a census which had been ordered by the Emperor
-Augustus, and while at Bethlehem Mary was delivered of her son. The
-enrollment ordered by the emperor had called so many strangers into the
-little town of Bethlehem that on the arrival of Joseph and Mary there
-was no room at the inn for them, and they had to take up quarters in
-the stable adjacent. There, among the hay and straw spread for the food
-and rest of the cattle, Christ was born. (Note 2, end of section.)
-
-4. The Angelic Announcement.--The birth of Christ was announced
-to a few shepherds watching their flock by night--about a mile distant
-from the village of Bethlehem--by an angel, surrounded about by the
-glory of God, who said:
-
- Fear not: for, behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy,
- which shall be to all people. For unto you is born this day in the
- city of David a Savior, which is Christ the Lord. And this shall
- be a sign unto you; ye shall find the babe wrapped in swaddling
- clothes, lying in a manger. And suddenly there was with the angel a
- multitude of the heavenly host, praising God, and saying, Glory to
- God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men.[4]
-
-{13} A visit to the village confirmed the strange proclamation of the
-angel--they found the mother and child.
-
-5. The Inquiry of the Magi.--Not alone by voice of angels was
-the birth of Messiah announced, but "wise men from the east" who had
-seen his star in the firmament came to Jerusalem about the time of his
-birth, inquiring--"Where is he that is born King of the Jews? for we
-have seen his star in the east, and are come to worship him." [5]
-
-6. Nor were signs of Messiah's birth seen alone on the eastern
-hemisphere; to the people of the western hemisphere signs were also
-given; "a new star did appear," according to the words of the Nephite
-prophets, at Zarahemla; the Nephites saw it and to them, as well as to
-the wise men of the east, a star announced the birth of him who was to
-be King of the Jews[6] and the Savior of the world. Another sign was
-given to the Nephites, which had also been predicted by their prophets;
-the night before[7] Jesus was born remained beautifully light on the
-western hemisphere. This event is thus recorded in the Book of Mormon:
-
- And it came to pass that the words which came unto Nephi were
- fulfilled, according as they had been spoken; for behold at the
- going down of the sun, there was no darkness; and the people began
- to be astonished, because there was no darkness when the time of
- night came. * * * There was no darkness in all that night, but it
- was light as though it was midday. And it came to pass that the sun
- did rise in the morning again, according to its proper order; and
- they [the Nephites] knew that it was the day that the Lord should
- be born, because of the sign which had been given.[8]
-
-7. The Alarm of King Herod.--The inquiry made by the "wise men"
-from the east concerning the one who was "born King of the Jews,"
-alarmed the jealousy of Herod, and learning from the chief priests and
-scribes that Bethlehem was the place {14} where the deliverer of Israel
-was to be born, he sent the wise men there, strictly charging them to
-search diligently, and when they had found the child to bring him word
-that he too might worship him. On the way to Bethlehem the star they
-had seen in the east went before them until it stood over where the
-child was. They found the babe with Mary his mother and they worshipped
-him, giving him presents of gold and frankincense and myrrh. They were
-commanded of God in a dream, however, not to return to Herod, so they
-departed into their own country another way.
-
-8. Joseph, too, after the departure of the wise men, was warned
-in a dream to flee out of the land, for Herod would seek the young
-child to destroy him. He was commanded to go into Egypt and remain
-there until the Lord should call him to return. In obedience to these
-divine commandments, Joseph took the mother and child and fled in the
-night into Egypt.
-
-9. Herod's wrath knew no bounds when he found that the wise men
-had not obeyed him; and in order that he might not be baffled in his
-determination to destroy the one he feared would supplant himself or
-his posterity in the throne of Israel, he sent out an edict commanding
-that all the children in Bethlehem two years old and under should be
-slain. Then was fulfilled the prophecy of Jeremiah:
-
- In Rama [Ra-ma] was there a voice heard, lamentation, and weeping
- and great mourning, Rachel weeping for her children, and would not
- be comforted because they were not.[9] (See note 3, end of section.)
-
-10. Death of Herod.--(note 4 end of section). After Herod's death,
-Joseph was again visited, in a dream, by an angel, who commanded him to
-return with the child and his mother into the land of Israel; for they
-who had sought the young child's life were dead. Then was fulfilled
-that which was {15}spoken by the prophet of the Lord, (Hosea), "Out of
-Egypt have I called my son." Joseph obeyed the commandment, but as he
-approached Judea and learned that Archelaus [Ar-ke-la-us] the son of
-Herod reigned in his father's stead, he was fearful and instead of
-remaining in Judea, he went into Galilee [Gal-i-lee] and dwelt in the
-little town of Nazareth--his former home--"that it might be fulfilled
-which was spoken by the prophets, He shall be called a Nazarene" [10]
-[Naz-a-reen].
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Year of Messiah's Birth.--"The Birth of Christ was
-first made an era, from which to reckon dates," says the learned
-translator of Dr. Mosheim's _Institutes_,--Murdock--"by Dionysius
-Exiguus, [Di-o-nish-i-us Exs-ig-u-us] about A. D. 532. He supposed
-Christ to have been born on the 25th of December, in the year of Rome
-753, and this computation has been followed in practice to this day;
-notwithstanding the learned are well agreed that it must be incorrect."
-It will be seen, however, from what follows, from the same author, that
-all is uncertainty with the learned in respect to this subject:
-
-"To ascertain the true time of Christ's birth, there are two principal
-data afforded by the Evangelists: I. It is clear, from Matt. ii: 1,
-etc., that Christ was born before the death of Herod the Great, who
-died about Easter, in the year of Rome 749 or 750. Now, if Christ was
-born in the December next before Herod's death, it must have been in
-the year of Rome 748 or 749; and, of course, four, if not five years
-anterior to the Dionysian or Vulgar era: II. It is probable, from
-Luke iii: 1, 2, 23, that Jesus was 'about' thirty years of age in the
-fifteenth year of the reign of Tiberius Caesar. Now, the reign of
-Tiberius may be considered as commencing at the time he became sole
-emperor, in August of the year of Rome 767; or (as there is some reason
-to suppose that Augustus made him partner in the government two years
-before he died), we may begin his reign in the year of Rome 765. The
-fifteenth year of Tiberius will therefore be either the year of Rome
-781 or 779. From which deduct 30, and we have the year of Rome 751 or
-749 for the year of Christ's birth; the former two and the latter four
-years earlier than the Dionysian computation. Comparing these results
-with those obtained from the death of Herod, it is generally supposed
-the true time of Christ's birth was the year of Rome 749, or four years
-before the Vulgar era. {16} _But the conclusion is not certain, because
-there is uncertainty in the data_. (1.) It is not certain that we ought
-to reckon Tiberius' reign as beginning two years before the death
-of Augustus. (2.) Luke says '_about_ thirty years of age.' This is
-indefinite and may be understood of twenty-nine, thirty, or thirty-one
-years. (3.) It is not certain in which of the two years mentioned Herod
-died; nor how long before that event the Savior was born. Respecting
-the month and day of Christ's birth, we are left almost wholly to
-conjecture."
-
-It will be demanded on what authority I have gone counter to the
-conclusions of the learned on this subject by keeping to the Dionysian
-date,--so far, at least, as the year is concerned. My answer is that
-in the revelation on Church government in the Doctrine and Covenants
-(sec. xx), the following in respect to the rise of the Church is given:
-"The rise of the Church of Christ in these last days, _being one
-thousand eight hundred and thirty years since the coming of our Lord
-and Savior Jesus Christ in the flesh_, it being regularly organized
-and established agreeable to the laws of our country, by the will and
-commandments of God, in the fourth month, and on the sixth day of the
-month, which is called April."
-
-I believe that this--better than any other authority, fixes the time
-of the birth, or the "coming of our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ
-in the flesh;" and that, as to the year at least, agrees with the
-Dionysian computation. It must be remembered that this revelation in
-section twenty of the Doctrine and Covenants was given before the
-Church was organized--at sundry times between the first and the sixth
-of April--and that the prophet was instructed to organize the Church
-on the sixth day of April, 1830, hence it was not mere chance that
-determined the day on which that organization took place, (History
-Joseph Smith, "Millennial Star Supplement" to vol. xiv, p. 22) a fact
-that is significant in view of the above considerations and those which
-follow in note 2.--Roberts.
-
-2. The Day of Messiah's Birth.--Strictly speaking, if this Church
-was organized "one thousand eight hundred and thirty years since
-the coming of our Lord and Savior in the flesh," then the sixth of
-April must have been the anniversary of the Savior's birthday. If the
-organization of the Church had been before or subsequent to that date,
-if only by one or any number of days, the great event would have been
-more or less than one thousand eight hundred and thirty years by just
-so many days. [This argument also holds good as to the year of Christ's
-birth.] Options formed by the study of chronological events may or may
-not be accurate. But we would scarcely think the Lord would make any
-mistake about dates. Least of all he who was born on that day, and on
-that day thirty-three years later was crucified.--Joseph F. Smith.
-
-Let us inquire if the day observed by the Christian world as the {17}
-day of His [Christ's] birth--the 25th of December--is or is not the
-real Christmas day. A great many authors have found out from their
-researches, that it is not. I think that there is scarcely an author
-at the present day that believes that the twenty-fifth of December was
-the day that Christ was born on * * * It is generally believed and
-conceded by the learned who have investigated the matter, that Christ
-was born in April. * * * It is stated that according to the best of
-their [the learned] judgment from the researches they have made, Christ
-was crucified on the sixth of April. That is the day on which this
-Church was organized. But when these learned men go back from the day
-of his crucifixion to the day of his birth, they are at a loss, having
-no certain evidence or testimony by which they can determine it.--Orson
-Pratt.
-
-In support of Elder Pratt's contention relative to the uncertainty of
-Christian scholars as to the day on which Jesus was born, I quote the
-statement of Rev. Charles F. Deem, author of "The Light of the Nation,"
-and president of the American Institute of Christian Philosophy. "It is
-annoying to see learned men use the same apparatus of calculation and
-reach the most diverse results." In a foot note at page 32, in "Light
-of the Nation," he refers to fifteen different authors all of whom
-are writers of note, who give different years for the birth of Christ
-varying from B. C. 1 to B. C. 7
-
-3. Humble Nativity of Messiah.--In the rude limestone grotto
-attached to the inn as a stable, among the hay and straw spread for
-the food and rest of the cattle, weary with their day's journey, far
-from home, in the midst of strangers, in circumstances so devoid of
-all earthly comfort or splendor that it is impossible to imagine a
-humbler nativity, Christ was born. Distant but a few miles, on the
-plateau of the abrupt and singular hill now called _Jebel Fureidis_
-or "Little Paradise Mountain," towered the palace--fortress of the
-great Herod. The magnificent houses of his friends and courtiers
-crowded around its base. The humble wayfarers, as they passed near
-it, might have heard the hired and voluptuous minstrelsy with which
-its feasts were celebrated, or the shouting of the rough mercenaries
-whose arms enforced obedience to its despotic lord. But the true King
-of the Jews--the rightful Lord of the universe--was not to be found in
-palace or fortress. They who wear soft clothing are in kings' houses.
-The cattle stables of the lowly caravan-serai were a more fitting
-birthplace for him who came to reveal that the soul of the greatest
-monarch was no dearer or greater in God's sight than the soul of his
-meanest slave; for him who had not where to lay his head; for him who,
-from his cross of shame, was to rule the world!--Canon Farrar.
-
-4. Character of Herod.--Now some there are who stand amazed
-at the diversity of Herod's nature and purposes; for when we have
-respect {18} to his magnificence, and the benefits which he bestowed
-on all mankind, there is no possibility for even those who had the
-least respect for him, to deny, or not openly confess, that he had a
-nature vastly beneficent; but when anyone looks upon the punishment he
-inflicted and the injuries he did, not only to his subjects, but to
-his nearest relatives, and takes notice of his severe and unrelenting
-disposition there, he will be forced to allow that he was brutish, and
-a stranger to all humanity. * * * If anyone was not very obsequious to
-him in his language, and would not confess himself to be his slave, or
-but seemed to think of any innovation in his government, he was not
-able to contain himself, but prosecuted his very kindred and friends
-and punished them as if they were enemies; and this wickedness he
-undertook out of a desire that he might be himself alone honored. * * *
-A man he was of great barbarity towards all men equally, and a slave to
-his passion; but above the consideration of what was right.--Josephus.
-
-5. Last Illness of Herod.--But now Herod's distemper greatly
-increased upon him after a severe manner, and this by God's judgment
-upon him for his sins; for a fire glowed in him slowly, which did
-not so much appear to the touch outwardly, as it augmented his pains
-inwardly; for it brought upon him a vehement appetite to eating, which
-he could not avoid to supply with one sort of food or other. His
-entrails were exulcerated, and the chief violence of his pain lay on
-his colon; an aqueous and transparent liquor also had settled itself
-upon his feet; * * * and when he sat upright, he had a difficulty of
-breathing which was very loathsome, on account of the stench of his
-breath, and the quickness of his returns. He had also convulsions in
-all parts of his body, which increased his strength to an unsufferable
-degree. It was said by those who pretended to divine, and who were
-endowed with wisdom to foretell such things, that God inflicted this
-punishment on the king on account of his great impurity; yet was he
-still in hopes of recovering, though his afflictions seemed greater
-than anyone could bear.--Josephus.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. In what year of Rome was Messiah born?
-
-2. State the reasons for placing the date of Messiah's birth in the
-year of Rome 753. (See notes 1 and 2.)
-
-3. Give the name of Messiah's birthplace.
-
-4. For what is Ephratah noted? (Note.)
-
-5. Who was the mother of Jesus?
-
-6. Relate what you can of Mary, and the announcement that she should be
-the mother of the Son of God.
-
-7. Relate the circumstances under which Christ was born.
-
-{19} 8. Give an account of the visitation of the angels to the
-shepherds.
-
-9. What is Canon Farrar's translation of the title of the angelic song?
-
-10. Give an account of the magi's visit to Jerusalem in search of the
-Christ.
-
-11. What signs were given of Messiah's birth to the people on the
-Western Hemisphere?
-
-12. By what divine providence was Messiah's life preserved in infancy?
-
-13. What was the character of Herod the Great? (Note 4.)
-
-14. Describe Herod's last illness and death. (Note 5.)
-
-15. Where did Joseph settle on his return from Egypt?
-
-16. What prophecies were fulfilled by Messiah being taken into Egypt
-and Nazareth?
-
-{20}
-
-
-
-SECTION II.[11]
-
-1. State of the Religious World at Messiah's Birth.--At the time
-of the birth of the Son of God, the enfeebled world was tottering
-on its foundations. The national religions which had satisfied the
-parents, no longer proved sufficient for the children. The new
-generations could not repose contented within the ancient forms. The
-gods of every nation, when transported to Rome--then the dominant
-political power in the world--there lost their oracles, as the nations
-themselves had there lost their liberty. Brought face to face in the
-capital they had destroyed each other, and their divinity had vanished.
-A great void was thus occasioned in the religion of the world.
-
-2. A kind of deism, destitute alike of spirit and of life,
-floated for a time above the abyss in which the vigorous superstitions
-of antiquity had been engulfed. But like all negative creeds it had
-no power to reconstruct. All nations were plunged in the grossest
-superstition. Most of them, indeed all except the Jews, supposed that
-each country and province was subjected to a set of very powerful
-beings whom they called gods, and whom the people, in order to live
-happily, must propitiate with various rites and ceremonies. These
-deities were supposed to differ materially from each other in sex,
-power, nature and offices. Some nations went beyond others in impiety
-of worship, but all stood chargeable with absurdity, if not gross
-stupidity in matters of religion. (See note 1, end of section.)
-
-{21} 3. Thus every nation had a class of deities peculiar to
-itself, among which one was supposed to be pre-eminent over the rest,
-and was their king, though subject himself to the laws of fate, or to
-an eternal destiny. The oriental nations had not the same gods as the
-Gauls, the Germans, and the other northern nations; and the Grecian
-deities were essentially different from those of the Egyptians, who
-worshipped brute animals, plants, and various productions of nature
-and art. Each nation, likewise, had its own method of worshiping its
-gods; differing widely from the rites of other nations. But, from their
-ignorance or from other causes the Greeks and Romans maintained that
-their gods were universally worshipped; and they therefore gave the
-names of their own gods to the foreign deities which has caused great
-confusion and errors in the history of ancient religions even in the
-works of the learned.
-
-4. Heathen Toleration--Its Cause.--The variety of gods and
-religions in the pagan nations produced no wars or feuds among them.
-Each nation without concern allowed its neighbors to enjoy their own
-views of religion, and to worship their own gods in their own way. Nor
-need this tolerance greatly surprise us. For they who regard the world
-as divided like a great country into numerous provinces each subject to
-a distinct order of deities, cannot despise the gods of other nations
-nor think of compelling all others to pay worship to their national
-gods. The Romans in particular, though they would not allow the public
-religions to be changed or multiplied, yet gave the citizens full
-liberty to observe foreign religions in private, and to hold meetings
-and feasts and to erect temples and groves to these foreign deities, in
-whose worship there was nothing inconsistent with the public safety and
-existing laws. (See note 2, end of section.)
-
-5. Character of Heathen Gods.--The greater part of the gods of
-all nations were ancient heroes, famous for their achievements and
-their worthy deeds; such as kings, generals {22} and the founders of
-cities; and likewise females who were highly distinguished for their
-deeds and discoveries, whom a grateful posterity had deified. To these
-some added the more splendid and useful objects in the natural world,
-among which the sun, moon, and stars being pre-eminent, received
-worship from nearly all, and some were not ashamed to pay divine honors
-to mountains, rivers, trees, the earth, the ocean, the winds, and even
-to diseases, to virtues and vices, and to almost every conceivable
-object, or, at least, to the deities supposed to preside over these
-objects.
-
-6. The worship of these deities consisted in numerous ceremonies
-with sacrifices, offerings, and prayers. The ceremonies, for the most
-part, were absurd and ridiculous; and what was worse yet, debasing,
-obscene and cruel. The whole pagan system had not the least efficacy
-to excite and cherish virtuous emotions in the soul. For in the first
-place, the gods and goddesses to whom the public homage was paid,
-instead of being patterns of virtue, were patterns rather of enormous
-vices and crimes. They were considered as superior to mortals in power
-and as exempt from death, but in all things else as on a level with
-man. In the next place, the ministers of this religion, neither by
-precept nor by example, exhorted the people to lead honest and virtuous
-lives, but gave them to understand that all the homage required of
-them by the gods was comprised in the observance of the traditional
-rites and ceremonies. And lastly, the doctrines inculcated respecting
-the rewards of the righteous and the punishments of the wicked in the
-future world were some of them dubious and uncertain, and others more
-adapted to promote vice than virtue. Hence the wiser pagans themselves,
-about the time of the Savior's birth, contemned and ridiculed the whole
-system.
-
-7. Mysteries of Paganism.--It is contended by those who would
-dignify paganism, that back of its common worship, among the orientals
-and Greeks at least, certain recondite {23} and concealed rites called
-mysteries--containing in them the essence of true religion--existed:
-and that back of its idolatry stood and was recognized the true God,
-of which the images worshiped were but the material representatives.
-To these mysteries, however, very few were admitted. Candidates for
-initiation had first to give satisfactory proof of their good faith and
-patience, by various most troublesome ceremonies. When initiated they
-could not divulge anything they had seen without exposing their lives
-to imminent danger. Hence the interior of these hidden rites is at this
-day but little known, and therefore but an imperfect judgment may be
-formed as to their virtue. But what glimpses are obtained of the rites
-of these mysteries do not prepossess one in their favor; for in many of
-them many things were done which are repugnant to modesty and decency,
-and in all of them that are known the discerning may see that the
-deities there worshipped were more distinguished for their vices than
-for their virtues. (See note 3, end of section.)
-
-8. Paul's Arraignment of the Pagan World.--Paul, the great
-apostle of the Gentiles, brings a terrible indictment against the pagan
-world of his day, and also against the more ancient pagans, and avers
-that there was no excuse for their idolatry or wickedness:
-
- For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven against all
- ungodliness and unrighteousness of men, who hold the truth in
- unrighteousness; because that which may be known of God is manifest
- in them; for God hath showed it unto them. For the invisible things
- of him from the creation of the world are clearly seen, being
- understood by the things that are made, even his eternal power and
- Godhead; so that they are without excuse: because that, when they
- knew God, they glorified him not as God, neither were thankful;
- but became vain in their imaginations, and their foolish heart was
- darkened. Professing themselves to be wise, they became fools,
- and changed the glory of the incorruptible God into an image like
- to corruptible man, and to birds, and four-footed beasts and {24}
- creeping things. Wherefore God also gave them up to uncleanness
- through the lusts of their own hearts, to dishonor their own bodies
- between themselves; who changed the truth of God into a lie and
- worshiped and served the creature more than the Creator. * * * For
- this cause God gave them up unto vile affections; * * * and even
- as they did not like to retain God in their knowledge, God gave
- them over to a reprobate mind, to do those things which are not
- convenient; being filled with all unrighteousness, fornication,
- wickedness, covetousness, maliciousness; full of envy, murder,
- debate, deceit, malignity; whisperers, backbiters, haters of God,
- despiteful, proud, boasters, inventors of evil things, disobedient
- to parents, without understanding, covenant-breakers, without
- natural affection, implacable, unmerciful: who knowing the judgment
- of God, that they which commit such things are worthy of death, not
- only do the same, but have pleasure in them that do them.[12] (See
- note 4, end of section.)
-
-9. Political State of the World at Messiah's Birth.--At the birth
-of Jesus Christ the greater part of the civilized world on the eastern
-hemisphere was subject to the Romans. Their remoter provinces they
-either ruled by means of temporary governors and presidents sent from
-Rome, or suffered them to live under their own kings and laws, subject
-to the control of the Roman emperors.
-
-10. The senate and people of Rome, though they had not lost all
-the appearance of liberty, were really under the authority of one
-man, Augustus; who was clothed with the titles of emperor, sovereign
-pontiff, censor, tribune of the people, pro-consul; in a word, with
-every office which conferred general power and pre-eminence in the
-commonwealth.
-
-11. The Roman government, if we regard only its form and laws,
-was sufficiently mild and equitable. But the injustice and avarice of
-the nobles and provincial governors, the Roman lust of conquest and
-dominion, and the rapacity of the publicans who farmed the revenues
-of the state, brought many and {25} grievous evils upon the people.
-The magistrates and publicans fleeced them of their property on the
-one hand, while, on the other, the Roman lust of dominion required
-armies to be raised in the provinces--a thing which was very oppressive
-to them, and the occasion of almost perpetual insurrection. This,
-however, is true more especially of the days which preceded the reign
-of Augustus [Au-gus-tus]. The principal conquests of the Romans were
-achieved under the republic. It was left for Augustus to adopt that
-policy which aimed merely to preserve those dominions which had been
-acquired by the policy of the senate, the active emulation of the
-consuls and the martial enthusiasm of the people. Under his reign the
-Roman people themselves seem to have relinquished the ambitious design
-of subduing the whole earth. (See note 5, end of section.)
-
-12. This widely extended dominion of one people, or rather, of
-one man, was attended with several advantages: (1), it brought into
-union a multitude of nations differing in customs and languages;
-(2,) it gave freer access to the remotest nations; (3,) it gradually
-civilized the barbarous nations, by introducing among them the Roman
-laws and customs; (4), it spread literature, the arts and philosophy
-in countries where they were not before cultivated, and guaranteed the
-protection of its laws to the people even in the remotest provinces.
-(See note 6, end of section.)
-
-13. Moreover, at the birth of Messiah, the Roman empire was freer
-from commotion that it had been for many years. Though it cannot be
-said that the whole world was in profound peace, yet there can be no
-doubt that the period when the Savior was born, if compared with the
-preceding times, was peculiarly peaceful--a condition quite essential
-to the introduction of the gospel and the extensive preaching of it.
-Nor is it too much to say that the Lord raised up the great Roman
-empire that under its beneficent yet powerful sway, the glad tidings of
-great joy, the gospel of Jesus Christ, might be widely preached among
-men.
-
-{26} 14. Of the state of those nations which lay beyond the
-boundaries of the Roman empire we may not learn so much as of Rome. It
-is sufficient to know, however, that the Oriental nations were pressed
-down by a stern despotism, which their effeminacy of mind and body, and
-even their religion, led them to bear with patience; while the northern
-nations enjoyed much greater liberty, which was protected by the rigor
-of their climate and the consequent energy of their constitutions,
-aided by their mode of life.
-
-15. Political and Religious State of the Jews.--The condition
-of the Jewish people among whom the Savior was born was scarcely any
-better than that of other nations. Herod, called the Great, then
-governed, or rather, oppressed the Jewish nation, though only a
-tributary king under the Romans. He drew upon himself universal hatred
-by his cruelties, jealousies and wars; and he exhausted the wealth of
-the unhappy nation by his mad luxury, his excessive magnificence, and
-his immoderate largesses. Under his administration Roman luxury and
-licentiousness spread over Palestine. In religion he was professedly a
-Jew, but he copied the manners of those who despise all religion.
-
-16. The Romans did not wholly prohibit the Jews from retaining
-their national laws, and the religion established by Moses.
-
-They had their high priests, council or senate (Sanhedrim)[13], and
-inflicted lesser punishments. They could apprehend men and bring them
-before the council; and if a guard of soldiers was needful, could be
-assisted by them upon asking the governor for them; they could bind
-men and keep them in custody; the council could summon witnesses,
-take examinations, and when they had any capital offenders, carry
-them before the governor. This governor usually paid a regard to what
-they offered, and if they brought evidence of the fact, pronounced
-{27} sentence according to their laws. He was the proper judge in all
-capital causes.[14]
-
-17. The measure of liberty and comfort allowed to the Jews by
-the Romans was well nigh wholly dissipated, first by the cruelty
-and avarice of the governors, and by the frauds and rapacity of the
-publicans; and second, by the profligacy and crimes of those who
-pretended to be patriots and guardians of the nation. Their principal
-men, their high priests, were abandoned wretches, who had purchased
-their places by bribes or by deeds of iniquity, and who maintained
-their ill-acquired authority by every species of dishonest acts. The
-other priests and all who held any considerable office, were not much
-better. The multitude, excited by such examples, ran headlong into
-every sort of iniquity, and by their unceasing robberies and seditions
-they excited against themselves both the justice of God and the
-vengeance of man.
-
-18. Religious Divisions.--Two religions may be said to have
-flourished in Palestine at the times of which we write; viz., the
-Jewish and the Samaritan; between the followers of which there was
-a deadly hatred. The nature of the former is set forth in the Old
-Testament. But in the age of the Savior it had been corrupted by
-the traditions of the people, who were divided into sects filled
-with bitterness against each other. Chief among these sects were the
-Pharisees [Fa-ri-sees,] and Sadducees [Sad-du-seez.]
-
-19. Pharisees and Sadducees.--While these two sects agreed as
-to a number of fundamental principles of the Jewish religion, they
-differed on questions of the highest importance, and such as related
-to the salvation of the soul. First, they disagreed respecting the
-law which God had given them. The Pharisees superadded to the written
-law an oral or unwritten law, handed down by tradition, which the
-Sadducees rejected, adhering alone to the written law. They differed,
-too, as to {28} the import of the law. The Pharisees held to a double
-sense of the scripture, the one literal, the other figurative; while
-the Sadducees held only to the literal sense of the Bible. To these
-contests concerning the laws were added others on subjects of the
-highest moment; particularly in respect to the rewards and punishments
-announced in the sacred writings. The Pharisees supposed them to affect
-both body and spirit--in whose pre-existence and eternal existence
-they believed--and that punishments and rewards extended beyond the
-present life. The Sadducees believed in no future retributions. They
-were sceptical of the miraculous; and denied the existence of spiritual
-beings, the immortality of the soul, the resurrection of the body.
-They were deists, in fact; viewing the Supreme Being as a quiescent
-Providence calmly surveying and ruling the regular working of natural
-laws. They gave themselves up to ease, luxury, self-indulgence, and
-were not indisposed to view with indifferent liberality the laxity of
-heathen morals and the profanity of idol worship. They included in
-their numbers the leading men of the nation, were the aristocracy in
-fact, while the Pharisees, on the other hand, were the common people;
-proud of their unblemished descent from Abraham, exclusive, formal,
-self-righteous, strict observers of external rites and ceremonies, even
-beyond the requirements of the law.
-
-20. Such were the chief sects among the Jews. There were others
-but they were of minor importance. Both Sadducees and Pharisees looked
-for a deliverer; not, however, such a one as God had promised; but a
-powerful warrior and a vindicator of their national liberties, a king,
-a ruler. All placed the sum of religion in an observance of the Mosaic
-ritual, and in certain duties toward their countrymen. All excluded the
-rest of mankind from the hope of salvation, and, of course whenever
-they dared, treated them with hatred and inhumanity. To these fruitful
-sources of vice, must be added the various absurd and superstitious
-opinions concerning the Divine Nature, {29} genii, magic, etc., which
-they had imbibed from surrounding nations.
-
-21. Samaritans.--The Samaritans [Sa-mar-i-tans] were colonists
-sent by the king of Assyria [As-syr-rya], Shalmaneser [Shal-ma-ne-zer,]
-to people the land after he had carried captive the Israelites, in
-the latter part of the eighth century, B. C. They were a mixed people
-from various eastern nations, conquered by this same king--and they
-brought with them their various forms of national idolatry. A plague
-breaking out among them, however, led them to petition for a priest of
-the god of the country, to teach them the old form of worship. He was
-stationed at Bethel [Beth-el,] and the Samaritans endeavored to combine
-a formal reverence of God with the practice of their own idolatrous
-rites. After the captivity of Judah, they sought an alliance with
-the returned Jews (536 B. C.,) with whom they intermarried. On Ezra
-enforcing the Mosaic law against mixed marriages--three-quarters of a
-century later--Manasses [Ma-nas-ses,] a Jewish priest, who had married
-the daughter of Sanballat [San-bal-lat,] chief of the Samaritans,
-headed a secession at Shechem [Shek-em.] The Samaritans taught the
-Mosaic ritual and erected a rival temple to that at Jerusalem, on Mount
-Gerizim [Ger-i-zim]. This mixed community before the time of the Savior
-began to claim descent from the patriarchs and a share in the promises.
-Their religion was less pure than that of the Jews, as they adulterated
-the doctrines of the Old Testament with the profane rites of the pagan
-religion.
-
-22. Such was the state of the world--such the condition of
-the Jews at the time of Messiah's birth; and surely that condition
-justified the pity and also the stern reproofs--nay, the severe rebukes
-administered, as we shall see, by the Son of God in the course of his
-ministry.
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. State of the World at Messiah's Birth.--The world had grown
-{30} old, and the dotage of its paganism was marked by hideous
-excesses. Atheism in belief was followed, as among all nations it has
-always been, by degradation of morals, iniquity seemed to have run its
-course to the very farthest goal. Philosophy had abrogated its boasted
-functions except for the favored few. Crime was universal, and there
-was no known remedy for the horror and ruin which it was causing in a
-thousand hearts. Remorse itself seemed to be exhausted, so that men
-were past feeling. There was a callosity of heart, a petrifying of the
-moral sense, which even those who suffered from it felt to be abnormal
-and portentous. Even the heathen world felt that "the fullness of the
-time" had come.--Canon Farrar.
-
-2. Policy of Rome in Respect to Religion.--The policy of the
-emperors and the senate, so far as it concerned religion, was happily
-seconded by the reflections of the enlightened, and by the habits
-of the superstitious part of their subjects. The various modes of
-worship, which prevailed in the Roman world, were all considered by
-the people as equally true; by the philosopher as equally false; and
-by the magistrate as equally useful. And this toleration produced not
-only mutual indulgence, but even religious concord. * * * Avarice and
-taste very frequently despoiled the vanquished nations of the elegant
-statues of their gods and the rich ornaments of their temples; but in
-the exercise of the religion which they derived from their ancestors,
-they uniformly experienced the indulgence, and even protection of
-the Roman conquerors. The province of Gaul seems, and indeed only
-seems, an exception to this universal toleration. Under the specious
-pretext of abolishing human sacrifices, the emperors Tiberius and
-Claudius suppressed the dangerous power of the Druids; but the priests
-themselves, their gods and their altars, subsisted in peaceful
-obscurity till the final fall of paganism. * * * Rome gradually became
-the common temple of her subjects; and the freedom of the city was
-bestowed on all the gods of mankind.--Gibbon.
-
-3. Mysteries of the Pagan Religion.--It has been maintained that
-the design of at least some of these mysteries was to inculcate the
-grand principles of natural religion, such as the unity of God, the
-immortality of the soul, the importance of virtue, etc., and to explain
-the vulgar polytheism as symbolical of these great truths. But this
-certainly needs better proof. It is more probable that the later pagan
-philosophers, who lived after the light of Christianity had exposed the
-abominations of polytheism, were the principal authors of this moral
-interpretation of the vulgar religion, which they falsely pretended
-was taught in the mysteries, while in reality, those mysteries were
-probably mere supplements to the vulgar mythology and worship, and of
-the same general character and spirit.--Murdock.
-
-{31} 4. State of Religion in Rome.--A modern writer describing
-the religious state of Rome at the time of Julius Caesar--it could
-not have been much changed at the birth of Messiah, sixty years
-later--says: "Religion, once the foundation of the laws and rule of
-personal conduct, had subsided into opinion. The educated in their
-hearts disbelieved it. Temples were still built with increasing
-splendor; the established forms were scrupulously observed. Public men
-spoke conventionally of Providence, that they might throw on their
-opponents the odium of impiety; but of genuine belief that life had
-any serious meaning, there was none remaining beyond the circle of the
-silent, patient, ignorant multitude. The whole spiritual atmosphere was
-saturated with cant--cant moral, cant political, cant religious; an
-affectation of high principle which had ceased to touch the conduct,
-and flowed on in an increasing volume of insincere and unreal speech.
-The truest thinkers were those who, like Lucretius, spoke frankly out
-their real convictions, declared Providence was a dream, and that
-man and the world he lived in were material phenomena, generated
-by natural forces out of cosmic atoms, and into atoms to be again
-resolved."--Froude.
-
-5. Policy of Augustus as to Conquests.--Inclined to peace by
-his temper and situation, it was easy for him to discover that Rome,
-in her present exalted situation, had much less to hope than to fear
-from the chance of arms; and that, in the prosecution of remote wars,
-the undertaking every day became more difficult, the event more
-doubtful and the possession more precarious and less beneficial. The
-experience of Augustus added weight to these salutary reflections,
-and eventually convinced him that by prudent vigor of his counsels,
-it would be easy to secure every concession which the safety or the
-dignity of Rome might require from the most formidable barbarians * *
-* On the death of the emperor, his testament was publicly read in the
-senate. He bequeathed, as a valuable legacy to his successors, the
-advice of confining the empire within those limits which nature seemed
-to have placed as its permanent bulwarks and foundations; on the west
-the Atlantic ocean; the Rhine and Danube on the north; the Euphrates
-on the east; and towards the south the sandy deserts of Arabia and
-Africa.--Gibbon, "Decline and Fall", vol. i, chap. 1.
-
-6. Mission and Character of the Roman Empire.--As the soil must
-be prepared before the wheat can be sown, so before the kingdom of
-heaven could throw up its shoots there was needed a kingdom of this
-world, where the nations were neither torn to pieces by violence nor
-were rushing after false ideals [as to governments] and spurious
-ambitions. Such a kingdom was the empire of the Caesars--a kingdom
-where peaceful men could work, think and speak as they pleased, and
-travel freely among provinces ruled for the most part by Gallios who
-{32} protected life and property, and forbade fanatics to tear each
-other to pieces for their religious opinions. "It is not lawful for
-us to put a man to death," was the complaint of the Jewish priests to
-the Roman governor. Had Europe and Asia been covered with independent
-nations, each with a local religion represented in its ruling powers,
-Christianity must have been stifled in its cradle. If St. Paul had
-escaped the Sanhedrim of Jerusalem, he would have been torn to pieces
-by the silversmiths at Ephesus. The appeal to Caesar's judgment
-seat was the shield of his mission, and alone made possible his
-success.--Froude.
-
-7. The Sanhedrin of the Jews.--"The council" of the Jewish
-church and people was a theocratic oligarchy, which after the return
-from the captivity (536 B. C.,) ruled the new settlement, being in
-all causes and over all persons, ecclesiastical and civil, supreme.
-It is supposed to be suggested by the old institution of seventy-two
-Elders (six from each tribe,) appointed by Moses, at Jethro's [Jeth-ro]
-suggestion, to relieve him in the administration of justice (Ex.
-xviii:14; Num. xi:16.) Having died out in the age succeeding Joshua, and
-being superceded under the monarchy, it was revived either by Ezra,
-or after the Macedonian ascendancy. It consisted of an equal number
-of priests, scribes and elders all of whom must be married, above
-thirty years of age, well instructed in the law, and of good report
-among the people. This constituted the Supreme Court of judicature
-and administrative council, taking cognizance of false doctrine and
-teaching, as well as breaches of the Mosaic Law, and regulating both
-civil and religious observances peculiar to the Jewish nation. The
-power of life and death had been taken from it by the Roman government
-which otherwise covenanted to respect its decrees. The council usually
-met in the hall Gazith, within the Temple precincts, though special
-meetings were sometimes held in the house of the high priest, who was
-generally (though not necessarily) the president. There were also two
-vice-presidents, and two scribes--clerks--or "heralds," one registering
-the votes of acquittal (or nos), and the other those of convictions
-(or ayes), and a body of lictors or attendants. The assembly set in
-the form of a semi-circle, the president occupying the center of the
-arc, the prisoner that of the center of the chord, while the two
-"heralds" sat a little in advance of the president, on his right and
-his left.--"Oxford Teacher's Bible"--Addenda.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. State the religious condition of the world at Messiah's birth.
-
-2. What was the cause of heathen religious toleration?
-
-3. What was the policy of Rome in respect to religion? (Note 2.)
-
-{33} 4. What was the nature of the heathen gods?
-
-5. Describe the character of heathen worship.
-
-6. What can you say of pagan mysteries? (Note 3.)
-
-7. Give the substance of Paul's arraignment of the pagan world.
-
-8. What was the political state of the world at Messiah's birth?
-
-9. Describe the general character of the Roman government.
-
-10. Enumerate the advantages the Roman government gave to the world.
-
-11. How did these advantages affect the work of the Christ?
-
-12. What was the state of the nations outside of the Roman empire?
-
-13. Who was the king of the Jews at Messiah's birth?
-
-14. What was the political state of the Jews at that time?
-
-15. What can you say of religion among the Jews at this period?
-
-16. What were the religious divisions in Palestine?
-
-17. State the doctrines of the Pharisees. The Sadducees.
-
-18. What was the character of the Deliverer expected by both Pharisees
-and Sadducees?
-
-19. Did Jesus Christ answer their expectations?
-
-20. Tell what you can of the Samaritans.
-
-21. Describe the Sanhedrim of the Jews. (Note 7.)
-
-{34}
-
-
-
-SECTION III.
-
-1. Childhood and Youth of Messiah.--Returning from Egypt in
-obedience to the commandment of God, Joseph, the husband of Mary, with
-the infant Savior, went into Galilee, and lived at Nazareth--the most
-despised village of the most despised province in all Palestine. (Note
-1, end of section.) Of his childhood but little information can be
-obtained from any authentic source. All that may be learned from the
-biographies in the Gospels is that after the settlement in Nazareth,
-the child grew and waxed strong in spirit, filled with wisdom; and the
-grace of God was upon him.
-
-2. Luke tells us that when twelve years of age, Jesus accompanied
-his mother and Joseph to Jerusalem, to attend the feast of the
-Passover. (See note 2, end of section.) When they started on the
-return to Nazareth, Jesus remained behind at Jerusalem without their
-knowledge. They supposed him to be in the company, but when after a
-whole day's journey he did not appear, they made inquiry for him among
-their kindred, and not finding him, returned to Jerusalem in search of
-him. After three days' anxious inquiry they found him in the temple,
-sitting in the midst of the doctors, both hearing them and asking
-questions. Answering his mother's gentle reproof for remaining behind,
-he said:
-
- How is it that ye sought me? Wist ye not that I must be about my
- Father's business?
-
-Thus early in life, just emerging from childhood, it seems that the
-Son of God had the inspiration of his mission resting upon him. Yet in
-loving obedience he went with them down into Nazareth, "and was subject
-unto them." With the {35} return to Nazareth the authentic history of
-the childhood and youth of the Son of God ends; further than we learn
-from the remark of Luke that "Jesus increased in wisdom and stature,
-and in favor with God and man." But what the details of his life and
-development were for the next eighteen years, we do not know. (See note
-3, end of section.)
-
-3. In the New Testament apocrypha there are wonderful and
-miraculous stories of his carrying spilt water in his robe; of his
-pulling a short board to its requisite length; of moulding sparrows
-out of clay and then clapping his hands at which they are made alive
-and fly away; how he vexes and shames and silences those who wish to
-teach him; how he rebukes Joseph or turns his playmates into kids; how
-he strikes dead with a curse the boys who offend or run against him,
-until at last there is a storm of popular indignation, and his mother
-fears to have him leave the house[15]--and a hundred other things
-equally absurd which mar rather than embellish the childhood and youth
-of Jesus, which the silence of his reliable biographers dignifies and
-exalts.
-
-4. John the Baptist.--In the fifteenth year of the reign of
-Tiberius Caesar, there came preaching throughout the wilderness of
-Judea [Ju-de-a] a strange character, called John the Baptist. He was
-the son of Elizabeth, who was a descendant of Aaron, and a cousin to
-Mary, the mother to Jesus. His father was a priest of the temple, named
-Zacharias. Zacharias and Elizabeth were both well stricken in years,
-when there appeared unto the former, in the temple, as he was burning
-incense upon the altar, the angel Gabriel [Ga-bri-el], who announced
-to him that his wife should bear him a son, and that he must call his
-name John. The angel also said that John should be great in the eyes of
-the Lord; that he should be filled with the Holy Ghost, even from his
-mother's womb. He was {36} to have power also to turn unto their God
-many of the children of Israel, and to go before the Lord in the spirit
-and power of Elias to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children,
-and the disobedient to the wisdom of the just; to make ready a people
-prepared for the Lord.[16]
-
-5. In due time all that the angel promised came to pass. The
-child was born, and when eight days old he was circumcised and named
-John. On that occasion his father who had been dumb from the time of
-the visitation of the angel prophesied that the child should be called
-the prophet of the Highest; that he should go before the face of the
-Lord to prepare his ways; give knowledge of salvation unto his people
-by the remission of their sins, through the tender mercy of God; and
-give light to them that sit in darkness, and in the shadow of death.[17]
-
-6. That the child grew and waxed strong in spirit, and was in the
-deserts till the day of his showing unto Israel;[18] that he had his
-raiment of camel's hair; a leathern girdle about his loins; that his
-food was locusts and wild honey[19] is all we know of him until the
-word of the Lord came to him in the wilderness[20] commanding him to
-cry repentance, and proclaim the coming of the kingdom of heaven.
-
-7. The Voice from the Wilderness.--The burden of John's message
-consisted of three great declarations: Repent, for the kingdom of
-heaven is at hand; prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths
-straight; there cometh one after me mightier than I am, whose shoe
-latchet I am unworthy to loose, he will baptize you with fire and with
-the Holy Ghost.
-
-8. When the multitude flocked to hear the teaching of John the
-Pharisees and Sadducees came also--with guile in their hearts and
-deceit on their lips, he rebuked them, called them a generation of
-vipers and told them to bring forth fruits meet for repentance, and not
-to pride themselves on being the children of Abraham, for God was able
-of the very stones about {37} them to raise up children unto Abraham.
-He warned them that the ax was laid at the root of every tree, and that
-tree which brought not forth good fruit was to be destroyed.
-
-9. That was a strange voice to the people of that generation,
-accustomed as they were to hear only the accents of flattery or
-subserviency. Without a tremor of hesitation he rebuked the tax
-gatherers for their extortion; the soldiers for their violence; the
-Sadducees and Pharisees for their pride and formalism; and warned the
-whole people that their cherished privileges were worse than valueless
-if without repentance they regarded them as a protection against the
-wrath to come.
-
-10. So unusual a teacher as John the Baptist could not fail
-to attract attention in Judea where all men were anticipating the
-coming of a deliverer. Hence, as the Jews listened to his teachings
-so inspired with the power of God, they wondered if he were not the
-Messiah. This he denied. They asked him then if he were not Elias. This
-too he denied (see note 5, end of section); and claimed only to be the
-voice of one crying in the wilderness: "Make straight the way of the
-Lord." [21]
-
-11. The Baptism of Jesus.--When John came into the region about
-Bethabara [Beth-ab-a-rah], on the Jordan,[22] among others who came to
-be baptized was Jesus. When John saw him he hesitated, and knowing by
-the inspiration within him what he was soon to know by a more splendid
-manifestation of God's power, _viz._, that this was the Son of God,
-he said: "I have need to be baptized of thee, and comest thou to me?"
-"Suffer it to be so now," replied Jesus, "for thus it becometh us to
-fulfill all righteousness." [23]
-
-12. Then John baptized him, and as Jesus came up out of the water
-the heavens were opened unto him (that is, unto John; see note 6, end
-of section), and he saw the Spirit of God descending like a dove and
-lighting upon him; and he heard a voice from heaven saying: "This is
-my beloved Son, in whom I {38} am well pleased." [24] This splendid
-spiritual manifestation was a sign to John that this was the Son of
-God, the One who was to baptize with fire and the Holy Ghost, the
-Messiah, who was to take away the sins of the world. For he who had
-sent him to baptize with water, had said to him: "Upon whom thou shalt
-see the Spirit descending, and remaining on him, the same is he which
-baptizeth with the Holy Ghost." [25]
-
-13. The Martyrdom of John.--Having borne witness that Jesus was
-the Son of God, John seems to have completed the mission given to him
-at that time, and soon after fell a victim to the malice of a wicked
-woman and a weak prince. Herod Antipas [Anti-pas], the son of Herod the
-Great, who was made Tetrarch of Galilee on the death of his father,
-married the daughter of Aretas [Ar'-e-ta], king of Arabia. But forming
-also an unholy attachment for Herodias [He-ro'-di-as], his brother
-Philip's wife, he soon became involved in a course of guilt with her.
-For this he was reproved by John, who told him it was not lawful for
-him to have her. Herod at the instance of Herodias cast John into
-prison for his temerity in reproving their wicked course, and would
-have put him to death, but he feared the multitude, who esteemed John a
-prophet.
-
-14. The revengeful spirit of Herodias, however, was not satisfied
-with the bonds and imprisonment of John; she determined to have his
-life. On Herod's birthday, in the midst of the feast, she sent her
-daughter to dance for the amusement of the company, which greatly
-pleased Herod, and he promised her with an oath that he would give
-her whatsoever she should ask; and the damsel being instructed of her
-mother demanded the head of John the Baptist. It was with sorrow that
-Herod, bad as he was, heard this demand, yet for his oath's sake, and
-ashamed to manifest weakness in the presence of those who sat at meat
-with him, he sent and beheaded John in the prison, and had the head
-brought in and given to the damsel in a charger. {39} Thus fell the
-first martyr in that dispensation. (See note 7, end of section.)
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Nazareth.--Nazareth was in Galilee, a part of Palestine, which
-was held in disesteem for several reasons: it had a provincial dialect;
-lying remote from the capital, its inhabitants spoke a strange tongue,
-which was rough, harsh, and uncouth, having a peculiar combination
-of words, and words also peculiar to themselves. Its population was
-impure, being made up not only of provincial Jews but also of heathens
-of several sorts, Egyptians, Arabians, Phoenicians. As Galilee was a
-despised part of Palestine, so was Nazareth a despised part of Galilee,
-being a small, obscure, if not mean place. Accordingly its inhabitants
-were held in little consideration by other Galileans, and, of course,
-by those Jews who dwelt in Judea. Hence the name of Nazarene came to
-bear with it a bad odor and was nearly synonymous with a low, ignorant
-and uncultivated, if not un-Jewish person.--"Biblical Literature",
-Kitto.
-
-2. The Passover.--The Passover, like the Sabbath and other
-institutions had a two-fold reference--historical and typical. As a
-commemorative institution, it was designed to preserve among the Jews
-a grateful sense of their redemption from Egyptian bondage, and with
-the protection granted to their first born, on the night when all
-the first born of the Egyptians were destroyed (Exodus xii: 27,) as
-a typical institute its object was to shadow forth the great facts
-and consequences of the Christian sacrifices (I. Cor. v: 7). That the
-ancient Jews understood this institution to prefigure the sufferings
-of the Christ is evident, not only from the New Testament, but from
-the Mishna, where, among the five things said to be contained in the
-_Great Hallel_ (a hymn composed of several songs and sung after the
-Paschal supper,) one is, the suffering of Messiah, for which they refer
-to Psalm cxvi. * * * * * The Passover also denotes the whole solemnity,
-commencing on the fourteenth and ending on the twenty-first day of
-Nisan.--Kitto.
-
-3. The Youth of Christ.--It is written that there was once a
-pious, godly bishop who had often earnestly prayed that God would
-manifest unto him what Jesus had done in his youth. Once the bishop
-had a dream to this effect. He seemed in his sleep to see a carpenter
-working at his trade, and beside him a little boy who was gathering up
-chips. Then came in a maiden clothed in green, who called them both
-to come to the meal, and set porridge before them. All {40} this the
-bishop seemed to see in his dream, himself standing behind the door
-that he might not be perceived. Then the little boy began and said:
-Why does that man stand there? Shall he not also eat with us? And this
-so frightened the bishop that he awoke. Let this be what it may, a
-true history or a fable, I none the less believe that Christ in his
-childhood and youth looked and acted like other children, yet without
-sin; in fashion like a man.--Martin Luther.
-
-4. Messiah's Life for Thirty Years.--What was his manner of
-life during those thirty years? It is a question which the Christians
-cannot help asking in deep reverence, and with yearning love; but the
-words in which the Gospels answer it are very calm and very few. * * *
-* * His development was a strictly human development. He did not come
-to the world endowed with infinite knowledge, but, as St. Luke tells
-us, he gradually advanced in wisdom. He was not clothed with infinite
-power, but experienced the weakness and imperfections of human infancy.
-He grew as other children grow, only in a childhood of stainless and
-sinless beauty--as the "flower of roses in the spring of the year and
-as lilies by the waters." * * * * * It was in utter stillness, in
-prayerfulness, in the quiet round of daily duties--like Moses in the
-wilderness, like David among the sheep folds, like Elijah among the
-tents of the Bedouin, like Jeremiah in his quiet home at Anathoth,
-like Amos in the sycamore groves of Tekoa--that the boy Jesus prepared
-himself, amid a hallowed obscurity, for his mighty work on earth. His
-outward life was the life of all those of his age, and station and
-place of birth. He lived as lived other children of peasant parents in
-that quiet town, and in great measure as they live now.--Canon Farrar.
-
-5. Was John the Elias?--"Art thou Elias?" said the messengers
-from Jesus to John. "And he saith, I am not" (John i). Afterwards,
-as Jesus, Peter, James and John were descending the mountain on
-whose summit they had seen in vision Moses and Elias, the following
-conversation occurred:
-
-JESUS: Tell the vision to no man, until the Son of man be risen again
-from the dead.
-
-DISCIPLES: Why then say the scribes that Elias must first come?
-
-JESUS: Elias truly shall first come, _and restore all things_; but I
-say unto you that Elias is come already, and they knew him not, but
-have done unto him whatsoever they listed. * * * * Then the disciples
-knew that he spake unto them of John the Baptist. (Matt. xvii.) From
-this it appears that John denied being Elias, while Jesus declared
-that he was, and in consequence much controversy has arisen on this
-subject. The matter may be easily understood, however, when it is known
-that Elias is the name of a person, the name of a prophet who lived,
-doubtless, in the days of Abraham {41} (Doc. and Cov. sec cx: 12), and
-who also appeared to Jesus on the occasion above named; Elias is also
-the name of an office--the office of Restorer. "The spirit of Elias,"
-said the Prophet Joseph (March 10, 1844) "is to prepare the way for a
-greater revelation of God, which is the priesthood of Elias. * * * *
-And when God sends a man into the world to prepare for a greater work
-holding the keys of the power of Elias, it was called the doctrine of
-Elias, even from the early ages of the world." Hence any man who came
-to prepare the way for a greater revelation was an Elias, and in this
-sense John the Baptist was pre-eminently Elias; but it is equally true
-that he was _not_ Elias, the prophet who lived in the days of Abraham,
-who appeared unto Jesus in the mountain and who also appeared to the
-Prophet Joseph and Oliver Cowdery in the Kirtland Temple.
-
-In the revision of the New Testament, by the Prophet Joseph Smith,
-often improperly called the new translation, the difficulty in respect
-to the denial of John that he was Elias is easily understood. We
-quote the passage: "This is the record of John, when the Jews sent
-priests and seventies from Jerusalem, to ask him: Who art thou? And he
-confessed and denied not that he was Elias; but he confessed, saying, I
-am not the Christ. And they asked him, saying: How art thou then Elias?
-And he said, _I am not that Elias who was to restore all things_. And
-they asked him, saying, Art thou that Prophet? And he answered, No."
-(St. John i: 20-22.) From the above it may be plainly seen that while
-John was not the particular Elias who is to restore _all_ things, yet
-he is an Elias because he restored some things in respect to the
-gospel.--Roberts.
-
-6. John the Only Witness of the Descent of the Holy Ghost.--I
-suppose that John the Baptist was the only one who was a witness
-of the Holy Ghost resting upon Jesus in the form of a dove. In all
-the accounts given of this event, except by Luke, the pronoun "he,"
-referring to John, is used. While in Luke it is not said that anyone
-else saw it, but it is merely stated that "the Holy Ghost descended
-in a bodily shape like a dove upon him." John's own testimony is as
-follows: "I saw the Spirit descending from heaven like a dove, and it
-abode upon him. And I knew him not: but he that sent me to baptize
-with water, the same said unto me, Upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit
-descending and remaining on him, the same is he which baptizeth with
-the Holy Ghost."--"The Gospel" (note), Roberts.
-
-7. The Fate of Herod Antipas.--He was not allowed to enjoy his
-prosperity long. His nephew Agrippa having obtained the title of king,
-Herodias urged him to make a journey to Italy and demand the same
-honor. He weakly assented to his wife's ambitious representations;
-but the project proved fatal to them both. Agrippa anticipated their
-design; and when they appeared before Caligula, they {42} were met
-by accusations of hostility to Rome, the truth of which they in
-vain attempted to disprove. Sentence of deposition was accordingly
-passed upon Herod, and both he and his wife [Herodias] were sent into
-banishment and died at Lyons in Gaul.--Kitto.
-
-8. The Sign of the Dove.--The Holy Ghost descended in the
-form of a dove, or rather in the sign of a dove, in witness of that
-administration [Messiah's baptism]. The sign of the dove was instituted
-before the creation of the world, a witness for the Holy Ghost, and the
-devil cannot come in the sign of a dove. The Holy Ghost is a personage,
-and is in the form of a personage. It (he) does not confine itself to
-the form of a dove, but in the sign of a dove. The Holy Ghost cannot
-be transformed into a dove; but the sign of a dove was given to John
-to signify the truth of the deed, as the dove is an emblem or token of
-truth and innocence.--Joseph Smith.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. State what you can of the childhood of Christ.
-
-2. What can you say of Nazareth?
-
-3. What happened when Jesus was twelve years old?
-
-4. Describe the Passover. (Note 2.)
-
-5. What can you say of the fabulous stories related of the childhood
-and youth of Christ?
-
-6. At what time did John the Baptist appear as a preacher?
-
-7. Who were the parents of John? What their descent?
-
-8. Relate all you can concerning John's birth and childhood.
-
-9. What was the burden of John's message?
-
-10. How did he treat the deceitful Pharisees and Sadducees?
-
-11. As whom did some of the Jews regard John?
-
-12. What was the extent of his pretensions?
-
-13. What can you say of Elias? (Note 5.)
-
-14. Relate the baptism of Jesus.
-
-15. Tell the story of John's martyrdom.
-
-16. What was the fate of Herod Antipas? (Note 7.)
-
-{43}
-
-
-
-SECTION IV.
-
-1. The Temptations of Jesus.--After his baptism Jesus was led
-by the Spirit into the wilderness, where he fasted for forty days
-and forty nights. Then at the moment of his great physical weakness
-Lucifer came tempting him, but all the allurements of the wily foe were
-thwarted, from the challenge to turn the stones into bread to the offer
-of the kingdoms of this world and the glory of them. After his failure
-to seduce Jesus to sin, Lucifer left him--"for a season," and angels
-came and administered unto him. (See notes 1 and 2, end of section.)
-
-2. Commencement of Christ's Ministry.--Having in all things
-resisted the temptations of Lucifer, Jesus returned from the wilderness
-into Galilee, the Spirit of God resting upon him in mighty power. It
-was then that he began his great ministry among the people, teaching
-in their synagogues, astonishing all with the graciousness of his
-doctrines, and his power in healing the sick, until his fame extended
-throughout the land and great multitudes of people from Galilee, and
-also from Decapolis (De-kap-o-lis), Jerusalem and other parts of Judea
-followed him.
-
-3. The Doctrines Christ Taught.--The burden of his teaching
-at this period of his ministry seems to have been: "Repent for the
-kingdom of heaven is at hand." [26] In addition to this, he also taught
-beautiful truths and moral precepts in brief, emphatic sentences (see
-note 3, end of section), that were especially comforting to the poor;
-such as, "Blessed are the poor in spirit: for theirs is the kingdom
-of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn: for they shall be comforted:
-Blessed are {44} the meek: for they shall inherit the earth. Blessed
-are they which do hunger and thirst after righteousness: for they shall
-be filled. * * * Blessed are the pure in heart: for they shall see God."
-
-4. In some things His teachings seemed to come in conflict with
-the traditions of the people; and, indeed with the law of Moses itself,
-as witness the following: "Ye have heard that it was said by them of
-old time, Thou shalt not kill; and whosoever shall kill shall be in
-danger of the judgment: but I say unto you, That whosoever is angry
-with his brother without a cause shall be in danger of the judgment;
-and whosoever shall say to his brother, Raca,[27] shall be in danger
-of the council; but whosoever shall say Thou fool, shall be in danger
-of hell fire." Again: "Ye have heard that it hath been said by them of
-old time, Thou shalt not forswear thyself, but shall perform unto the
-Lord thine oaths: but I say unto you, Swear not at all; * * * but let
-your communications be Yea, yea; Nay, nay. * * * Ye have heard that it
-hath been said, An eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth: but I say
-unto you, That ye resist not evil. * * * Ye have heard that it hath
-been said, Thou shalt love thy neighbor, and hate thine enemy. But I
-say unto you, Love your enemies, bless them that curse you, do good to
-them that hate you, and pray for them that despitefully use you, and
-persecute you."
-
-5. Yet Jesus claimed that He came not to destroy the law nor the
-prophets, but to fulfill them, and declared that though heaven and
-earth should pass away not one jot nor tittle of the law should pass
-away but all should be fulfilled. Still it cannot be denied that some
-of his teachings set aside many parts of the law of Moses, and seemed
-to be in conflict with its spirit.
-
-6. The Gospel Supplants the Law.--The seeming conflict, referred
-to in the last paragraph, between the law of Moses and the teachings
-of Messiah disappears when it is understood {45} that the gospel of
-Jesus Christ was about to supplant the law. The gospel, under Moses
-was offered to ancient Israel before they received the law of carnal
-commandments; but they would not live in accordance with its divine
-precepts, but hardened their hearts against it until the gospel, as
-also the higher priesthood, was taken from among them. The lesser
-priesthood, which holds the keys of the ministering of angels and the
-preparatory gospel, repentance and baptism, and the law of carnal
-commandments (the spirit of which is an eye for an eye, a tooth for a
-tooth) remained with them,[28] to educate and instruct them, that they
-might be prepared eventually for the fullness of the gospel. When Jesus
-began his ministry by proclaiming his gospel, the law of Moses was
-about fulfilled, and many of the carnal commandments and precepts were
-being pushed aside by the more excellent precepts of the gospel, even
-as many of the sacrifices and burnt offerings were to be discontinued
-after Messiah should be offered up as a sacrifice, of which the
-sacrifices before mentioned were but types and symbols. (See note 4,
-end of section.)
-
-7. Twelve Apostles Called.--From among the disciples which
-followed him Jesus selected twelve men whom he called apostles. Their
-names were: Simon, commonly called Peter; Andrew, brother to Peter;
-James, the son of Zebedee, sometimes called James the Elder; John,
-brother to James above named; Philip; Bartholomew; Thomas; Matthew, the
-publican, author of the book of Matthew in the New Testament; James,
-the son of Alphaeus, also called James the less, perhaps to distinguish
-him from James the elder, or because of his small stature;[29] Lebbaeus
-usually called by his surname Thaddaeus; Simon, the Canaanite; Judas
-Iscariot, who betrayed him.
-
-8. These twelve men Jesus sent out on a mission to the cities
-of Israel, forbidding them to go into the way of the Gentiles, or
-into the cities of the Samaritans. Their mission was to the {46} lost
-sheep of the house of Israel.[30] They were sent without purse and
-without scrip, nor were they to provide themselves with two coats nor
-take thought as to what they should eat, or wherewithal they would be
-clothed; but they were to trust to the Lord, being assured that the
-laborer is worthy of his hire.
-
-9. The burden of their message was to be: "The kingdom of heaven
-is at hand." They also received power from their Master to heal the
-sick, cleanse the lepers, raise the dead, cast out devils: and were
-admonished, since they had received freely, to give as freely to
-others. Jesus told them they were going as sheep among wolves; that
-they would be brought before governors and kings for his sake; that
-they would be delivered up to councils, and scourged in the synagogues;
-that they would be hated of all men for his sake; but they were also
-given the comforting assurance that they who would endure to the end
-should be saved.[31] These apostles went forth through the towns of
-Judea preaching the gospel and healing the sick.
-
-10. Seventies Called.--The harvest being great and the laborers
-few, Jesus called seventies into the ministry to aid the twelve
-apostles. He sent them two and two before him into every city and
-place where he himself expected to go. The commission, powers and
-instructions which the seventies received were nearly the same as those
-given to the twelve apostles.[32] These seventies went forth as the
-apostles had done and returning from their labor bore record that the
-power of God was with them in their ministry and that the very devils
-were subject to them in the name of Jesus.[33]
-
-11. The Order of Events.--It would be difficult if not impossible
-to relate even the chief events in the life of Messiah in the order in
-which they occurred, since no little confusion exists in respect to
-the succession of events in the narratives of the New Testament. (See
-note 5, end of section.) Nor is it necessary to our purpose to dwell in
-detail or in sequence {47} upon those matters. It is sufficient for us
-to know that after the events we have already noted Messiah's mission
-was more boldly declared. He proclaimed himself to be the Son of God;
-the Messiah of which the scriptures had borne record;[34] he taught
-men that God so loved the world that he gave his only begotten Son to
-redeem it, that whosoever would believe in him might have everlasting
-life.[35] In addition to this great doctrine we have seen that he
-taught repentance; he likewise taught that men must be born (baptized)
-of the water and of the Spirit before they could enter into the kingdom
-of God;[36] he made and baptized more disciples than John;[37] he also
-taught the doctrine of the resurrection of the dead, and announced
-himself as possessing the keys and powers thereof.[38]
-
-12. The Divinity of Messiah's Mission.--Jesus sustained the
-divinity of his mission by pointing to the conformity of the facts
-connected with his career with the predictions of the scriptures;[39]
-by the testimony which John the Baptist bore;[40] by the works which
-he did--his wonderful miracles wherein the power of God was made
-manifest;[41] and lastly, and best of all, the testimony of the Father
-himself which was promised unto all those who would do his (the
-Father's) will.[42]
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Order of the Temptations.--The order of the temptations is
-given differently by St. Matthew and St. Luke. St. Matthew placing
-second the scene on the pinnacle of the temple, and St. Luke the vision
-of the kingdoms of the world. Both orders cannot be right, and possibly
-St. Luke may have been influenced in his arrangement by the thought
-that a temptation to spiritual pride and the arbitrary exercise of
-miraculous power was a subtler and less transparent, and therefore
-more powerful one than the temptation to fall down and recognize the
-power of evil. * * * The consideration that St. {48} Matthew, as one of
-the Apostles, is more likely to have heard the narrative immediately
-from the lips of Christ--gives greater weight to the order which he
-adopts.--Canon Farrar.
-
-2. More than Three Temptations.--The positive temptations of
-Jesus were not confined to that particular point of time when they
-assailed him with concentrated force. [In the wilderness.] * * * But
-still more frequently in after life was he called to endure temptation
-of another kind--the temptation of suffering, and this culminated on
-two occasions, viz., in the conflict of Gethsemane, and in that moment
-of agony on the cross when he cried, "_My God, my God! why hast thou
-forsaken me?"_--Ullman.
-
-3. Manner of Christ's Teaching.--Next to what our Savior taught,
-may be considered the manner of his teaching, which was extremely
-peculiar; yet, I think, precisely adapted to the peculiarity of his
-character and situation. His lessons did not consist of disquisitions;
-of anything like moral essays, or like sermons, or like set treatises
-upon several points which he mentioned. When he delivered a precept,
-it was seldom that he added any proof or argument, still more seldom
-that he accompanied it with, what all precepts require, limitations
-and distinctions. His instructions were conceived in short, emphatic,
-sententious rules, in occasional reflections or in sound maxims. I do
-not think this is a natural, or would it have been a proper method
-for a philosopher or a moralist or that it is a method which can be
-successfully imitated by us. But I contend that it was suitable to the
-character which Christ assumed, and to the situation in which, as a
-teacher, he was placed. He produced himself as a messenger from God.
-He put the truth of what he taught upon authority. [I say unto you,
-swear not at all; I say unto you, resist not evil; I say unto you, love
-your enemies.] In the choice, therefore, of his mode of teaching, the
-purpose by him to be consulted was _impression_; because conviction,
-which forms the principal end of our discourse, was to arise in the
-minds of his followers from a different source, from their respect to
-his person and authority. Now, for the purpose of impression singly and
-exclusively, I know nothing which would have so great force, as strong,
-ponderous maxims, frequently urged and frequently brought back to the
-thoughts of the hearers. I know nothing that could in this view be said
-better than, Do unto others as ye would that others should do unto
-you; The first and great commandment is, Thou shalt love the Lord thy
-God; and the second is like unto it, Thou shalt love thy neighbor as
-thyself.--Christian Evidences--Paley.
-
-4. The Law Added to the Gospel.--The Mosaic Law never was
-considered, by those who understood it, "an everlasting covenant." It
-was given for a special purpose, and when it had accomplished that
-purpose, it was laid aside. We read in Galatians iii:8, that "the
-scripture, {49} foreseeing that God would justify the heathen through
-faith, preached before the gospel unto Abraham, saying, In thee shall
-all the nations of the earth be blessed." From this it appears that
-the gospel was preached unto Abraham. In Hebrews (iv:2), Paul speaking
-of ancient Israel says: "For unto us was the gospel preached, as well
-as unto them [ancient Israel]: but the word preached did not profit
-them, not being mixed with faith in them that heard it." Not only then
-was the gospel preached unto Abraham, but also unto the children of
-Israel. Now let us go back to the third chapter of Galatians; for Paul
-having stated that the gospel was preached unto Abraham, asks this
-question (verse 19): "Wherefore then serveth the law?" (if the gospel
-was preached unto Abraham). "It was added because of transgression,
-till the seed" (Christ) "should come to whom the promise was made."
-Added? Added to what? Added to the gospel, which before that time
-had been preached unto Abraham, and also to ancient Israel. But the
-Israelites under Moses were unable to live the perfect law of the
-gospel. They were not strong enough to overcome evil with good, as
-the gospel requires, so a law of carnal commandments was "added" to
-the gospel--a law which breathed of the spirit of an eye for an eye,
-a tooth for a tooth--a law which was suited to their capacity. Paul,
-speaking of this subject in the same chapter of Galatians (verses
-23-25), says: "Before faith came we were kept under the law, shut up
-unto the faith which should afterwards be revealed. Wherefore the law
-[the law of Moses] was our school-master to bring us unto Christ, that
-we might be justified by faith. But after that faith has come we are
-no longer under a school-master." From these passages of scripture we
-learn this: The gospel was preached unto Abraham, and also unto ancient
-Israel. The Israelites were unable to live the law of the gospel,
-hence a law of carnal commandments, known as the law of Moses was
-given as a school-master to bring them up to a higher law; Christ came
-and introduced that higher law--the gospel; explained its principles
-and pointed out the difference between it and the law of Moses. The
-gospel took the place of the law of Moses, which was laid aside, having
-fulfilled the object for which it was added to the gospel.--Lecture on
-Mission of Joseph Smith--Roberts.
-
-5. Neglect of Chronological Order in New Testament
-Narratives.--The four gospels narrate the principal events connected
-with our Lord's abode on earth, from his birth to his ascension. There
-must, therefore, be a general resemblance between them, though that
-of John contains little in common with the others, being apparently
-supplementary to them. Yet there are considerable diversities both in
-the order in which facts are narrated, and in the facts themselves.
-Hence the difficulty of weaving the accounts of the four into a
-continuous and chronological history. It is our decided conviction
-that {50} all the evangelists have not adhered to chronological
-arrangement. The question then arises, have all neglected the order of
-time? Newcome and many others espouse this view. "Chronological order,"
-says the writer, "is not precisely observed by any of the evangelists;
-St. John and St. Mark observe it most; and St. Matthew neglects it
-most."--Davidson--Biblical Literature.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What followed the baptism of Jesus?
-
-2. What can you say of the order of the temptations? (Note 1).
-
-3. What was the commencement of Christ's ministry?
-
-4. What was the character of Christ's doctrine at this period?
-
-5. State how the gospel supplanted the law of Moses.
-
-6. Name the Apostles whom Jesus called.
-
-7. What was the first mission of the Twelve?
-
-8. What was the nature of the commission given to the Apostles?
-
-9. State the calling and commission of the Seventies.
-
-10. What can you say of the order of chronological events in the New
-Testament? (Note 5.)
-
-11. To what several circumstances did Messiah point as giving evidence
-of the divinity of his mission?
-
-12. Quote the passages of scripture cited in the text.
-
-{51}
-
-
-
-SECTION V.
-
-1. The Common People Hear Jesus Gladly.--The mission of Jesus
-was full of comfort to the poor. As one of the signs that he was the
-promised Messiah, he said to a delegation of John's disciples--"The
-poor have the gospel preached to them." [43] He claimed to be anointed
-of the Lord to that work; and in doing it was fulfilling that which
-had been predicted by the prophets.[44] He often reproved the rich,
-not merely because they were rich, however, but because of their pride
-and hypocrisy which led them to oppress the poor. In like manner he
-reproved the chief elders and scribes and Pharisees who loved fine
-clothing, and loved to receive salutations in the market places; who
-coveted the chief seats in the synagogues and the uppermost rooms at
-the feasts; who devoured widows' houses, and for a pretense made long
-prayers.[45] This with a free reproof of their other vices and crimes
-brought upon him the enmity of the wealthy, and of the rulers of the
-people; but the common people heard him gladly.[46] (See note 1, end of
-section.)
-
-2. Religious Jealousy--Political Fear.--Another thing which
-embittered the minds of the chief priests and elders against Jesus was
-religious jealousy. The numerous evidences of his divine authority,
-to be seen in his character and works, led many of the Jews to revere
-him as the Son of God. Especially was this the case after he raised
-Lazarus from the dead.[47] They said: "If we let this man alone all
-men will believe in him; and the Romans will come and take away both
-our place and nation." It was religious jealousy that dictated the
-first half of the sentence; and political fear the rest. The Jews had
-but a precarious hold upon their political rights; already it had {52}
-been intimated that Jesus was king of the Jews; [48] and if the people
-should under a sudden impulse accept him as king, the result in their
-judgment, must be a loss of those political rights which the Romans
-permitted them to exercise. To allow Jesus, therefore, to continue
-preaching was dangerous to their supposed honors and privileges; and
-this consideration was sufficient to induce the leading men among all
-parties to plot against his life.
-
-3. The Charges Against Jesus.--The principal charges which the
-Jews brought against Jesus were: (1) violation of the Sabbath; he had
-healed a man on the Sabbath day, and had commanded him to take up
-his bed and walk:[49] (2) blasphemy; he had said God was his Father,
-"making himself equal with God" (see note 2, end of section):[50] (3)
-It was said that he was king of the Jews; and, on one occasion, the
-people hearing of his coming to Jerusalem took palm branches and went
-out to meet him, shouting Hosannah: blessed is the king of Israel that
-cometh in the name of the Lord.[51] For this he was said to be an enemy
-to Caesar's government and a seditious person.
-
-4. Treason of Judas.--For some time the efforts of the chief
-priests to arrest Jesus were baffled. They feared to proceed openly
-against him lest the people should stand in his favor and overthrow
-them. At last, however, Judas Iscariot, one of the twelve, met with
-some of the chief rulers and promised to betray him to them in the
-absence of the multitude. This offer they gladly accepted and agreed to
-pay him thirty pieces of silver for his treachery.
-
-5. Institution of the Sacrament.--The time chosen by Judas for
-the betrayal of his Master was the night of the passover feast. Jesus
-with the twelve ate the feast in an upper room in Jerusalem. It was on
-this occasion that he instituted the Sacrament of the Lord's supper.
-He took bread and gave thanks, broke it and gave it to his disciples,
-saying: This is my {53} body which is given for you; this do in
-remembrance of me. He also took wine, gave thanks, saying as he gave it
-to them: This cup is the New Testament in my blood, which is shed for
-many for the remission of sins.[52]
-
-6. After the supper was over, having sung a hymn, Jesus with the
-twelve, excepting Judas Iscariot, went out to the garden of Gethsemane
-[Geth-sem-e-na] where Jesus prayed in great agony of spirit so that he
-sweat great drops of blood. He prayed that the bitter cup of suffering
-now about to be held to his lips might be removed from him. Thrice he
-so prayed, but closed each petition to his Father with--"not my will,
-but thine, will be done."
-
-7. The Betrayal.--Meantime, Judas Iscariot having stolen out
-in the midst of the feast, went to the chief priests and directed a
-multitude with a company of Roman soldiers to the garden, and running
-to Jesus cried, "Hail, Master!" and kissed him. That was the sign
-agreed upon by the traitor and those who came to make the arrest, that
-they might know which one to take. And when they had secured him, they
-took him first to the house of Annas [An-nas], who, after questioning
-him, sent him bound to Caiaphas [Kai-ya-fas], the high priest, where he
-was arraigned before the Sanhedrim [San-he-drim].
-
-8. The Trial.--The court before which Jesus was arraigned was
-not one before which his case was to be investigated, they had come
-together with the fixed determination to adjudge him guilty; hence
-they sought for witnesses who would testify something against him
-that would furnish a pretext for putting him to death. Many false
-witnesses testified against him; but their testimony was unsatisfactory
-and failed of its purpose. At last the high priest, evidently losing
-patience at the silence of the prisoner--for he made no defense against
-the charges of the false witnesses--adjured him by the living God to
-say if he were the Christ, the Son of God. Jesus acknowledged that he
-was, {54} and told them that hereafter they should see him at the right
-hand of Power, coming in the clouds of heaven. At this the high priest
-rent his clothes, saying, "he hath spoken blasphemy," and claimed that
-they had no need of further witnesses, since they themselves had heard
-his "blasphemy" (see note 3, end of section). The council at once
-decided him worthy of death.
-
-9. Christ Before Pilate and Herod.--The Romans had taken from the
-Sanhedrim of the Jews the power of executing those whom it adjudged
-guilty of death, unless the sentence was confirmed by the Roman
-governor; hence after sentence of death was passed upon Jesus by the
-Sanhedrim they took him to Pilate's judgment hall to have that sentence
-confirmed.
-
-10. Learning incidentally that Jesus was a Galilean, and belonged
-to Herod's jurisdiction, Pilate sent him to Herod who, at the time, was
-in Jerusalem. Before Herod Jesus was silent; neither the contempt of
-the murderer of his forerunner, nor the mockery of the common soldiers
-could provoke him into breaking his dignified silence. So in ridicule
-of his claims to kingship--although, as Jesus himself said, his kingdom
-was not of this world[53]--Herod clothed him in gorgeous apparel and
-sent him back to Pilate.
-
-11. Satisfied that there was nothing in Messiah's conduct worthy
-of death, Pilate sought to let him go; but the Jews insisted upon his
-execution. It was the custom among the Jews to have released to them a
-prisoner at the feast of the Passover, and on that ground Pilate sought
-to release Jesus; but the Jews would not listen to it, and preferred
-that the robber, Barabbas, a murderer, should be released. They told
-Pilate that whosoever made himself a king was an enemy to Caesar; and
-if he let Jesus go he was not Caesar's friend. By such arguments on
-the part of the chief priests, and the persistent cry of the people to
-crucify him, Pilate was over-awed, and at last confirmed the sentence
-of death. (See note 4, end of section.)
-
-{55} 12. The Crucifixion.--From the hall of judgment Jesus was
-led into the common hall, where the soldiers stripped him of his own
-raiment, and put upon him a scarlet robe in mockery of his claims to
-kingship. They also platted a crown of thorns and placed it on his
-brow, and for a scepter gave him a reed in his right hand. They bowed
-the knee before him, and mockingly cried: "Hail, king of the Jews!"
-They spit upon him, beat him with their hands and with the reed they
-had given him for a scepter.
-
-13. From the common hall he was led away under a guard of
-soldiers to a place called Golgotha [Gol-go-tha], which, as well as
-its Latin equivalent--_Calvaria_-_Calvary_[54]--means, the place of
-a skull. Here Jesus was stripped, and nailed to the cross, which was
-erected between two other crosses, on each of which was a thief. Above
-the his head in Latin, Greek and Hebrew was fixed the superscription
-written by Pilate--"_This is the King of the Jews."_ As he hung there
-between the two thieves, the soldiers mocked him as did also the chief
-scribes and the Pharisees, saying: He saved others, let him save
-himself; if he is Christ, the chosen of God; let him come down from
-the cross and we will believe him; he trusted in God, let him deliver
-him now, if he will have him; for he said, I am the Son of God. In the
-midst of his great suffering, in which his mental agony was greater
-than his physical pain; the Son of God cried, "Father, forgive them,
-they know not what they do."
-
-14. At the sixth hour--mid-day--there was a darkness that spread
-over the whole land, and continued until the ninth hour (see note 5,
-end of section). About the ninth hour Jesus said: "Father, into thy
-hands I commend my spirit," then he bowed his head and expired. At
-the same moment the veil of the Temple was rent from top to bottom,
-an earthquake shook {56} the solid earth and rent the rocks, all the
-elements of nature seemed agitated as if anxious to bear witness that a
-God had died!
-
-15. The Convulsions of Nature on the Western Hemisphere.--On the
-western hemisphere during the crucifixion of our Lord, the elements
-of nature were more disturbed than on the eastern hemisphere. During
-the time that Jesus was upon the cross, great and terrible tempests
-accompanied with terrific lightning raged throughout the land.
-Earthquakes shattered cities into confused piles of ruins; level
-plains were broken up and left in confused mountainous heaps; solid
-rocks were rent in twain; many cities were swept out of existence
-by fierce whirl-winds; others were sunk into the depths of the sea,
-others covered with mountain chains thrown up by the convulsions of the
-trembling earth; and others still were burned with fire. For the space
-of about three hours this awful disturbance of the elements continued,
-during which the whole face of the land both in North and South America
-was greatly changed, and most of the inhabitants destroyed. After the
-storm and tempest and the quakings of the earth had ceased, there
-followed intense darkness which lasted for three days, the time that
-Jesus was lying in the tomb.[55]
-
-16. The Burial.--Towards evening of the day of the crucifixion,
-Joseph of Arimathaea [Ar-ra-ma-thee-ya], a rich man and a disciple of
-Jesus, went to Pilate, and begged that the body of the Lord be given
-him that he might bury it. Pilate granted the request; and Joseph took
-the body, wrapt in clean linen and put it in his own new tomb. The
-Pharisees also went to Pilate and reminded him how Jesus had said when
-living that after three days in the tomb he would rise again, and asked
-that the sepulchre wherein he was buried should be placed under guard
-until the third day should pass, lest his disciples should come and
-steal his body by night, and then spread abroad the rumor {57} that he
-had arisen from the dead. Pilate granted them permission to seal up the
-sepulchre and set a watch to guard it. (See note 6, end of section.)
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Common People Begin Reforms.--The case of the common
-people hearing Jesus gladly is not singular; it may be said to be true
-in nearly all great movements. It is a truth so generally accepted that
-a modern writer (Lew Wallace) has said: "To begin a reform, go not into
-the palaces of the great and rich; go rather to those whose cups of
-happiness are empty--to the poor and humble."
-
-2. Jesus' Defense Against the Charge of Blasphemy.--The following
-scene occurred in Solomon's porch, at the temple, where Jesus was
-walking. A number of Jews gathered about him and said: How long dost
-thou make us to doubt? If thou be the Christ tell us so plainly.
-
-JESUS.--I told you and ye believed not; the works that I do in my
-Father's name, they bear witness of me * * * I and my Father are one.
-[Then the Jews took up stones to stone him.]
-
-JESUS.--Many good works have I showed you from my Father; for which of
-those works do you stone me?
-
-JEWS.--For a good work we stone thee not; but for blasphemy; and
-because that thou, being a man, makest thyself God.
-
-JESUS.--Is it not written in your law; I said ye are Gods? If he called
-them Gods unto whom the word of God come, and the scripture cannot be
-broken, say ye of him whom the Father hath sanctified, and sent unto
-the world, thou blasphemest; because I said, I am the Son of God? If I
-do not the works of my Father, believe me not.
-
-Then they sought again to take him, but he escaped out of their hands.
-(John x.)
-
-3. The Law Against Blasphemy.--The law against blasphemy is to be
-found in Leviticus (xxiv:15, 16) and is as follows: "Whosoever curseth
-his God shall bear his sin; and he that blasphemeth the name of the
-Lord, he shall surely be put to death, and all the congregation shall
-certainly stone him; as well the stranger as he that is born in the
-land, when he blasphemeth the name of the Lord, shall be put to death."
-The Jews claimed that Jesus was guilty of blasphemy, because he claimed
-to be the Son of God, thus making himself equal with God; when to their
-eyes he was merely a man. Therein consisted his alleged blasphemy.
-Christ's own defense against the charge (see note above) is the best
-answer to the sophistry of the Jews by {58} which they tried to make it
-appear that he had broken this law.--Roberts.
-
-4. Character of Pilate.--If we now wish to form a judgment of
-Pilate's character, we easily see that he was one of that large class
-of men who aspire to public offices, not from a pure and lofty desire
-of benefitting the public and advancing the good of the world, but from
-selfish and personal considerations, from a love of distinction, from a
-love of power, from a love of self indulgence; being destitute of any
-fixed principles, and having no aim but office and influence, they act
-right only by chance and when convenient, and are wholly incapable of
-pursuing a consistent course, or of acting with firmness or self-denial
-in cases in which the preservation of integrity require the exercise
-of these qualities. Pilate was obviously a man of weak, and therefore,
-with his temptations, of corrupt character.--J. R. Beard, D. D., Member
-of the Historical Theological Society, Leipzig.
-
-5. The Three Hours' Darkness.--In the gospel of Matthew and Luke,
-we read that while Jesus hung upon the cross, "from the sixth hour
-there was darkness over all the land to the ninth hour." Most of the
-ancient commentators believed that this darkness extended to the whole
-world. But their arguments are now seldom regarded as satisfactory, and
-their proofs even less so. Of the latter the strongest is the mention
-of an eclipse of the sun, which is referred to this time by Phlegon
-Trallianus, and, after him by Thallus. But even an eclipse of the sun
-could not be visible to the whole world; and neither of these writers
-names the places of the eclipse. Some think it was Rome; but it is
-impossible that an eclipse could have happened from the sixth to the
-ninth hour both at Rome and Jerusalem. * * * That the darkness could
-not have proceeded from an eclipse of the sun is further placed beyond
-all doubt by the fact that, it being then the time of the Passover, the
-moon was at the full. This darkness may, therefore, be ascribed to an
-extraordinary and preternatural obscuration of the solar light, which
-might precede and accompany the earthquake which took place on the same
-occasion. For it has been noticed that often before an earthquake such
-a mist arises from sulphurous vapors as to occasion a darkness almost
-nocturnal.--Biblical Literature--Kitto.
-
-6. Fate of the Chief Actors in Christ's Crucifixion.--Before
-the dread sacrifice was consummated, Judas died in the horrors of a
-loathsome suicide. Caiaphas (the high priest and president of the
-Sanhedrim) was deposed the year following. Herod died in infamy and
-exile. Stripped of his procuratorship very shortly afterwards, on the
-very charges he had tried by a wicked concession to avoid. Pilate,
-wearied out with misfortunes, died in suicide and banishment, leaving
-behind him an execrated name. The house of Annas was destroyed a
-generation later by an infuriated mob, and his son was dragged through
-{59} the streets and scourged and beaten to his place of murder. Some
-of those who shared in and witnessed the scenes of that day--and
-thousands of their children--also shared in and witnessed the long
-horrors of that siege of Jerusalem, which stands unparalleled in
-history for its unutterable fearfulness.--Canon Farrar.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What class of people heard Jesus gladly?
-
-2. What classes of people did Jesus reprove? Why?
-
-3. What was it that embittered the minds of the chief priests and
-rulers against Jesus?
-
-4. Enumerate the charges against Jesus.
-
-5. In what manner did Jesus defend himself against the charge of
-blasphemy? (Note 2.)
-
-6. Who betrayed Jesus?
-
-7. What time was chosen by Judas to betray Jesus?
-
-8. Give an account of the institution of the sacrament.
-
-9. Tell the story of the betrayal.
-
-10. State the circumstances of the trial of Jesus before the Sanhedrim.
-
-11. Why did the Jews take Jesus before Pilate?
-
-12. Why did Pilate send him to Herod?
-
-13. What was Messiah's treatment at the hands of Herod?
-
-14. What the deportment of Jesus?
-
-15. How did Pilate look upon Jesus?
-
-16. In what manner did the Roman governor try to save Jesus?
-
-17. What was the character of Pilate? (Note 4).
-
-18. Tell the story of the crucifixion.
-
-19. What occurred on the Western hemisphere at the crucifixion, and
-during the time Jesus was in the tomb?
-
-20. Tell about the burial of Jesus.
-
-21. What was the fate of those who judged and condemned Jesus? (Note 6).
-
-{60}
-
-
-
-SECTION VI.
-
-1. The Resurrection.--Notwithstanding the sealed sepulchre, the
-armed watch, on the third day after his burial, the Son of God arose
-from the dead, as he himself predicted he would.[56] A number of women
-coming to the sepulchre early in the morning, for the purpose of
-finishing the work of embalming his body, found the grave untenanted
-and the angel present who announced the resurrection of the Lord; and
-commanded them to go and inform his disciples that he was risen from
-the dead and would go before them into Galilee, where he would appear
-unto them.
-
-2. According to Matthew's account of the resurrection an angel
-from heaven came to the sepulchre wherein Jesus was laid, and rolled
-back the stone from its mouth; at his presence the soldiers who had
-been stationed as a guard to prevent the disciples from coming and
-stealing the body, became as dead men. Recovering from their stupor,
-some of the watch made their way to the chief priests and related what
-had happened. The chief priests and elders immediately assembled in
-council, and bribed the soldiers to say that they had fallen asleep,
-and during that time the followers of Christ had come and stolen his
-body. They agreed also that if the rumor of their falling asleep while
-on watch--a capital offense for a Roman soldier--should come to the
-ears of the governor, they would persuade him and secure them from
-punishment. It was in this way that the disappearance of the body of
-Jesus was commonly explained by the Jews who crucified him.[57]
-
-{61} 3. The Appearances of Jesus After His Resurrection.--There
-are some slight discrepancies in the writings of Matthew, Mark, Luke
-and John in respect to the order of the appearances of Messiah after
-his resurrection, as indeed there is in respect to the order of the
-events connected with his trial, condemnation and death; but the
-following because of the fragmentary character of the four gospels may
-be regarded as being as nearly correct as may be ascertained. (See
-notes 1, 2, and 3, end of section.)
-
-4. First, he appeared to Mary Magdalene, in the garden where
-the tomb in which he was laid was located;[58] second, to the women
-returning from the sepulchre on their way to deliver the angel's
-message to the disciples;[59] third, to two disciples going to
-Emmaus;[60] fourth, to Peter;[61] fifth, to ten apostles in an upper
-room;[62] sixth, to the eleven apostles, also in the upper room;[63]
-seventh, to seven apostles at the sea of Tiberias;[64] eighth, to
-eleven apostles in a mountain in Galilee;[65] ninth, to above five
-hundred brethren at once;[66] tenth, to James;[67] and finally to Paul
-while on his way to Damascus[68]
-
-5. In all, Jesus was with his disciples on the eastern hemisphere
-for forty days after his resurrection,[69] during which time he taught
-them all things pertaining to the kingdom of heaven, and authorized
-them to go into all the world and preach the gospel to every creature,
-baptizing them in the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy
-Ghost, teaching them to observe all things whatsoever he had commanded
-them; and promised that he would be with them even unto the end of the
-world.[70]
-
-6. Moreover, he told them that these signs should follow them
-that believed: In his name they should cast out devils; they should
-speak with new tongues, take up serpents, and {62} even if they drank
-any deadly thing he promised that it should not harm them; they should
-lay hands on the sick, and they should recover.[71]
-
-7. The Ascension.--Having thus taught the gospel to the people
-of the eastern hemisphere, organized his church and commissioned his
-apostles to teach the gospel to all nations, he prepared to depart from
-them. It was most probably at Bethany [Beth-a-ny] that this solemn
-parting occurred. His forerunner, John the Baptist, had promised that
-he who should come after him, Jesus Christ, would baptize them with
-the Holy Ghost, and just previous to leaving the apostles he told them
-that the promise was about to be fulfilled. He therefore commanded them
-to tarry in Jerusalem until they were endowed with that power from on
-high. Then he lifted up his hands and blessed them, after which he was
-parted from them, and a cloud received him out of their sight.[72]
-
-8. As they were still looking steadfastly toward heaven, two
-men--angels--in white apparel stood by them, and declared that this
-same Jesus whom they had seen go into heaven, should come in like
-manner, that is, in the clouds of heaven and in great glory.[73]
-
-9. The Appearing of Messiah to the Nephites.--Jesus, before his
-crucifixion, told his disciples at Jerusalem that he was the good
-shepherd that would lay down his life for the sheep. He told them
-plainly, also, that he had other sheep which were not of that fold.
-"Them also I must bring," said he, "and they must hear my voice; and
-there shall be one fold, and one shepherd." [74]
-
-10. This saying, like many others which he delivered to them, the
-apostles did not understand, because of their unbelief. And because
-of their unbelief and their stiffneckedness Jesus was commanded by
-his Father to say no more to them {63} about it.[75] But it was the
-Nephites on the continent of America whom Jesus had in mind when he
-uttered the saying recorded in John's gospel,[76] "Other sheep I have,
-which are not of this fold," etc.
-
-11. What length of time intervened between Messiah's departure
-from his disciples at Jerusalem and his appearance among the Nephites
-is not known. It was not, however, until after he had ascended into
-heaven.[77] His appearing to them was in this manner:
-
-12. The few people upon the western hemisphere--and they were
-the more righteous part both of the Nephites and the Lamanites--who
-survived that terrible period of destruction which lasted during the
-time that Jesus hung upon the cross,[78] and the three succeeding
-days of darkness, were gathered together about the temple in the land
-Bountiful.[79] And as they were pointing out to each other the changes
-that had occurred because of the earthquakes and other convulsions of
-the elements, while the Messiah suffered upon the cross, they heard
-a voice speaking unto them as if from heaven. They at first did not
-understand the voice they heard; but the third time it spoke they
-understood it, and it made their hearts burn within them and their
-whole frame to quake, and these are the words which the voice spake:
-"Behold my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased, in whom I have
-glorified my name; hear ye him." And looking up into heaven from whence
-the voice came, they saw a man descending clothed in a white robe.
-The multitude were breathlessly silent, for they supposed an angel
-had appeared unto them; but as soon as Jesus was in their midst he
-stretched out his arm and said: "Behold I am Jesus Christ, whom the
-prophets testified should come into the world. * * * I am the light and
-life of the world; and I have drunk out of that bitter cup which the
-Father hath {64} given me, and have glorified the Father in taking upon
-me the sins of the world."
-
-13. At this announcement the people fell prostrate and worshiped
-him. But he commanded them to arise and come unto him that they might
-thrust their hands into his side, and feel the prints of the nails in
-his hands and in his feet, that they might know that he was the God
-of Israel, and the God of the whole earth who had been slain for the
-sins of the world.[80] (See notes 5, 6, and 7, end of section). This
-the people did, and then again they worshiped him, and shouted aloud:
-"Hosanna! blessed be the name of the Most High God!"
-
-14. The Church Established in America.--After these things, Jesus
-proceeded to teach them his gospel and establish his church among them.
-It will be sufficient to say here that the Messiah taught the people
-on the western continent the same great moral truths that he taught
-the Jews; that he established the same ordinances for the salvation of
-the people; that he chose Twelve Apostles to whom he committed power
-to preach his gospel, and administer in its ordinances; that a church
-was organized which was called the Church of Christ; that Jesus bore
-record of the great truth of the resurrection of the dead; that the
-Saints enjoyed the same spiritual graces and powers that the church in
-Palestine did, only more abundantly because of their greater faith;
-that two years after the appearance of Messiah all the people on the
-continent accepted the gospel and were baptized; that they had all
-things common and were a blessed and prosperous people among whom were
-no strifes or jealousies or contentions, and every man did deal justly
-one with another.
-
-15. They increased rapidly in numbers and went forth and built
-up the waste places, and rebuilded many of the cities which had been
-ruined by the earthquakes and by fires. They walked no more after the
-ordinances of the law of Moses, but {65} they practiced the principles
-of the doctrines of the gospel of Christ, and thus the first century of
-the Christian era passed away.
-
-16. All the members of the first quorum of the twelve whom Jesus
-called on the western hemisphere died within the first century of the
-Christian era, except the three to whom he had granted the privilege,
-as he did unto John the beloved disciple,[81] of remaining on the
-earth until he should come in his glory. The places of those who died
-were filled by ordaining others, and thus the quorum of apostles was
-perpetuated.[82]
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Gospels but Fragmentary Histories.--Although skeptics
-have dwelt with disproportioned persistency upon a multitude
-of discrepancies in the four-fold narrative of Christ's trial,
-condemnation, death, and resurrection, yet these are not of a nature
-to cause the slightest anxiety to a Christian scholar; nor need they
-awaken the most momentary distrust in anyone who--even if he have
-no deeper feelings in the matter--approaches the gospels with no
-preconceived theory, whether of infallibility or of dishonesty, to
-support and merely accept them for that which, at the lowest, they
-claim to be--histories, honest and faithful, up to the full knowledge
-of the writers, _but each, if taken alone, confessedly fragmentary
-and obviously incomplete._ After repeated study, I declare, quite
-fearlessly, that though the slight variations are numerous--though the
-lesser particulars cannot in every instance be rigidly and minutely
-accurate--though no one of the narratives taken singly would give us
-an adequate impression--yet, so far from there being, in this part of
-the gospel story, any irreconcilable contradiction, it is perfectly
-possible to discover how one evangelist supplements the details
-furnished by another, and perfectly possible to understand the true
-sequence of the incidents by combining into one whole the separate
-indications which they furnish.--_Canon Farrar_.
-
-2. The Bible Corrupted by the Gentiles.--And it came to pass that
-I, Nephi, beheld that they [the Gentiles] did prosper in the land {66}
-[America] and I beheld a book [the Bible], and it was carried forth
-among them. And the angel said unto me, Knowest thou the meaning of
-the book? And I said unto him, I know not. * * * And he said unto me,
-The book which thou beholdest, is a record of the Jews, which contains
-the covenants of the Lord which he hath made unto the house of Israel.
-* * * Thou hast beheld that the book proceeded forth from the mouth
-of a Jew; and when it proceeded forth from the mouth of the Jew, it
-contained the plainness of the gospel of the Lord, of whom the twelve
-apostles bear record; and they bear record according to the truth
-which is in the Lamb of God; wherefore these things go forth from the
-Jews in purity, unto the Gentiles, according to the truth which is in
-God; and after they go forth by the hand of the twelve apostles of the
-Lamb, from the Jews unto the Gentiles, thou seest the foundation of a
-great and abominable church, which is most abominable above all other
-churches; for behold, they have taken away from the gospel of the Lamb,
-many parts which are plain and most precious; and also many covenants
-of the Lord have they taken away; and all this have they done, that
-they might pervert the right ways of the Lord; that they might blind
-the eyes and harden the hearts of the children of men. * * * Because
-of these things which are taken away out of the gospel of the Lamb, an
-exceeding great many do stumble, yea, insomuch that Satan hath great
-power over them.--Vision of Nephi--I Nephi xiii.
-
-3. Missing Parts of the Scripture.--No better evidence can be
-given that the Jewish scriptures are fragmentary and corrupted than
-the fact that reference is made in them to books and scriptures which
-are not now extant--that have been destroyed. The following are a such
-references taken from the New Testament:
-
-_Scriptures of Abraham's Time_.--"And the scripture, foreseeing that
-God would justify the heathen through faith, preached before the gospel
-unto Abraham" (Gal. iii:8). The Christian world says, "Moses was God's
-first pen," but it appears from the above quotation that some one wrote
-scriptures even before Abraham's days, and he read them, learned the
-gospel from them and also learned that God would justify the heathen
-through faith.
-
-_Prophecy of Enoch_.--Speaking of characters who were like "raging
-waves of the sea foaming out their own shame," Jude says: "And Enoch
-also, the seventh from Adam prophesied of these, saying, Behold the
-Lord cometh with ten thousand of his saints, to execute judgment
-upon all," etc. (Jude 14, 15). From this it appears that Enoch had
-a revelation concerning the glorious coming of the Son of God to
-judgment. May not the prophecy of Enoch have been among the scripture
-with which Abraham was acquainted?
-
-_Another Epistle of Jude_.--"When I gave all diligence to write unto
-you of the common salvation, it was needful for me to write unto {67}
-you, and exhort you that ye should contend earnestly for the faith
-which was once delivered unto the Saints." (Jude 3). We have but one
-epistle of Jude. Would not the epistle on the "common salvation" be as
-important as the one and the only one we have from Jude's pen?
-
-_Another Epistle to the Ephesians_.--In Ephesians iii and 3rd, Paul
-alludes to another epistle which he had written to that people, but of
-which the world has no knowledge except this reference which is made by
-its author. This epistle contained a revelation from God.
-
-_An Epistle to the Laodiceans_.--"When this epistle [Colossians]
-is read among you, cause that it be read also in the church of the
-Laodiceans, and that ye likewise read the epistle from Laodicea." (Col.
-iv: 16.) The epistle to the Laodiceans is among the scripture that is
-lost.
-
-_Another Epistle to the Corinthians_.--In the first letter to the
-Corinthians is this statement: "I wrote unto you in an epistle not
-to company with fornicators" (I Cor. v:9). From this it would appear
-that our so-called first epistle to the Corinthians, is really not
-the first, since Paul in it speaks of a former letter he had written,
-and which was doubtless as good scripture as the two which have been
-preserved.
-
-The books mentioned in the Old Testament, but which are missing,
-are more numerous than those in the New Testament. In the following
-passages some few of the many lost books are referred to: I Chronicles
-xxix:29; II Chronicles ix:29; II Chronicles xii:15; I Samuel x:25; I
-Kings iv:32, 33.--Roberts.
-
-4. Traditions of Aborigines Respecting Messiah.--It is beyond
-all question that the descendants of the Nephites and Lamanites--the
-American Indians--have kept in their traditions a recollection--though
-perhaps a distorted one--of the memorable visit of Messiah to their
-forefathers. "The chief divinity of the Nahua nations," says Bancroft
-in his "Native Races," "was Quetzalcoatl, the gentle God, ruler of the
-air, controller of the sun and rain, and source of all prosperity. * *
-* From toward the rising sun Quetzalcoatl, had come; and he was white,
-with large eyes and long, black hair and copious beard. He finally set
-out for some other country [83] and as he departed from them his last
-words were that "one day bearded white men, brethren of his, perhaps
-he himself, would come by way of the sea in which the sun rises, and
-would enter in and rule the land;" and from that day, with a fidelity
-befitting Hebrews waiting for the coming of Messiah, the Mexican people
-watched for the fulfillment of this prophecy, which promised them a
-gentle rule, free from bloody sacrifices and oppression."--Roberts.
-
-{68} 5. The Incarnation Believed by the Mexicans.--How truly
-surprisingg is it to find that the Mexicans who seemed to have been
-unacquainted with the doctrine of the migration of the soul, should
-have believed in the incarnation of the only Son of the supreme
-God!--Humboldt.
-
-6. Crucifixion and Atonement Believed in by
-Mexicans.--Quetzalcoatl is there (in a certain plate where that God
-is represented) painted in the attitude of a person crucified, with the
-impression of nails in his hands and feet, but not actually upon the
-cross. * * * The seventy-third plate of the Borgian Ms. is the most
-remarkable of all, for there Quetzalcoatl is not only represented as
-crucified upon a cross of Greek form, but his burial and descent into
-hell are also depicted in a very curious manner. * * * The Mexicans
-believe that Quetzalcoatl took human nature upon him, partaking of
-all the infirmities of man, and was not exempt from sorrow, pain
-or death, which he suffered voluntarily to atone for the sins of
-man.--"Antiquities of Mexico"--Kingsborough.
-
-7. Christ and Quetzalcoatl.--The story of the life of the
-Mexican divinity, Quetzalcoatl, closely resembles that of the Savior;
-so closely indeed that we can come to no other conclusion than that
-Quetzalcoatl and Christ are the same being. But the history of the
-former has been handed down to us through an impure Lamanitish source,
-which has sadly disfigured and perverted the original incidents
-and teachings of the Savior's life and ministry.--"Mediation and
-Atonement"--President John Taylor.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What occurred on the third day of Christ's burial?
-
-2. State the several prophecies made by Jesus which were fulfilled in
-his resurrection? (note).
-
-3. Relate the account of the resurrection as given by Matthew.
-
-4. In respect to what are there slight discrepancies in the writings of
-Matthew, Mark, Luke and John?
-
-5. What can you say of the fragmentary character of the New Testament
-"Gospels?" (Notes 1 and 2).
-
-6. State the most probable order in which Jesus made his several
-appearances after the resurrection.
-
-7. How long was Jesus with his disciples on the eastern hemisphere
-after his resurrection?
-
-8. What notable commission did Jesus give to the apostles before
-leaving them?
-
-9. What signs did Messiah say should follow believers?
-
-10. Describe the last parting of Jesus from his disciples.
-
-{69} 11. What prophecy did Jesus make to his disciples at Jerusalem
-that they did not understand?
-
-12. Give an account of Messiah's visit to the Nephites.
-
-13. What did Jesus do among the Nephites?
-
-14. What was the effect that followed the preaching of the gospel and
-the organization of the church?
-
-15. What course was pursued as to the quorum of the apostles?
-
-16. Relate the several traditions of the Mexicans respecting the visit
-of Messiah to this land.
-
-{70}
-
-
-
-SECTION VII.
-
-1. Vacancy in the Quorum of the Twelve Filled.--The first
-official business which occupied the attention of the authorities of
-the church after the ascension of the Lord--according to our Christian
-annals--was filling up the quorum of the twelve. Judas by his treason
-had forfeited his apostleship and was dead, and hence it became
-necessary to ordain another to fill his place. Peter when presenting
-this matter before the church, appeared to lay some stress upon the
-necessity of choosing some one of the brethren who had been with them
-from the beginning--"from the baptism of John unto that same day that
-he (Christ) was taken up," that he might be a witness with the rest of
-the apostles of the things which Jesus did and also a witness of his
-resurrection.
-
-2. "And they appointed [nominated] two. Joseph called Barsabas,
-who was surnamed Justus, and Matthias. And they prayed. * * * Thou,
-Lord, which knowest the hearts of all men, show whether of these two
-thou hast chosen. * * * And they gave forth their lots [or, gave their
-votes];[84] and the lot fell upon Matthias." From that time he was
-numbered with the apostles. (See note 1, end of section).
-
-3. The filling of this vacancy in the quorum of the twelve--the
-only instance of the kind mentioned in the New Testament--may {71}
-be taken as a proof that it was clearly the understanding of the
-apostles that the quorum of the twelve was to be perpetuated. It was
-so understood in the church on the western hemisphere, for the fourth
-Nephi informs us that as the apostles whom Jesus had chosen passed
-away, others were ordained in their stead;[85] and thus the quorum was
-kept full, but for how long cannot be ascertained.
-
-4. The Holy Ghost Given.--The first time the gospel was preached
-publicly after the ascension of Messiah was on the day of Pentecost,
-most probably seven days after the ascension.[86] The church had
-assembled and suddenly the promised baptism of the Holy Ghost--promised
-both by John the Baptist and Messiah[87]--took place, for the Spirit
-came like the rushing of a mighty wind and filled the house where the
-saints were assembled; and they were all filled with the Holy Ghost. It
-rested upon them visibly like cloven tongues of fire; and they began
-speaking in other tongues, that is, in languages before unknown to
-them, as the spirit gave them utterance.
-
-5. The occurrence was soon noised about the city and the
-multitude came together, to witness this strange event. In that great
-concourse of people thus hastily assembled were devout men out of
-every nation under heaven (see note 2, end of section), and they were
-confounded with astonishment since every man heard the gospel in his
-own language.[88] "Are not all these which speak Galileans," said they,
-"and how hear we every man in his own tongue, wherein we were born?"
-All were amazed, and some inquired one of another, "What meaneth this?"
-Others mockingly said, "These men are full of new wine."
-
-{72} 6. To this latter remark the apostle Peter replied that
-the brethren were not drunken as had been supposed, and reminded the
-accusers that it was but the third hour of the day. Men were not likely
-to be drunk so early. The apostle further informed them that his power
-which they witnessed was the same as that of which Joel[89] spoke when
-he said that in the last days the Spirit of God should be poured out
-upon all flesh, and make the sons and daughters of men to prophesy,
-young men to see visions and old men to dream dreams, etc. (See notes 3
-and 4, end of section).
-
-7. Having corrected the slander uttered by those inclined to mock
-at the power of God, Peter continued his discourse, and proved from the
-scriptures and from the marvelous works of the Lord Jesus while among
-them, that he was both Lord and Christ. Then a great multitude was
-converted, and cried as with one voice, "Men and brethren, what shall
-we do?" To which Peter answered, "Repent and be baptized every one of
-you in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins, and ye shall
-receive the gift of the Holy Ghost." [90] He informed them that this
-promise of the Holy Ghost--and, of course, of salvation--was both to
-them and to their children, in fact to all whom God should call.[91]
-There were added to the church that day, three thousand souls.
-
-8. The Rise of Opposition.--Being now endowed with power from on
-high, the apostles continued to preach in and {73} about Jerusalem with
-great success, the Lord working with them and confirming their ministry
-by signs and wonders following the believers.
-
-9. The chief priests and rulers among the Jews became alarmed
-at the boldness of the disciples of Jesus and the rapidity with which
-faith in the gospel spread among the people. They were in imminent
-danger of being adjudged by the people, guilty of executing an innocent
-man; nay, more, of putting to death Messiah!
-
-10. They therefore had some of the apostles brought before them
-and sought to intimidate them with threats not to preach any more in
-the name of Jesus. To these threats the apostles made answer: "Whether
-it be right in the sight of God to hearken unto you more than unto
-God, judge ye." [92] Leaving the presence of the council the apostles
-preached even more boldly in the name of Jesus. A second time they
-were brought before the chief rulers, to answer for a disregard of the
-orders of the council which charged them with threats not to teach in
-the name of Jesus; "and behold," said they, "ye have filled Jerusalem
-with your doctrine, and mean to bring this man's blood upon us."
-
-11. The answer of Peter, who spoke also for the rest of the
-apostles, was even bolder than before. "We ought to obey God rather
-than men," said he. "The God of our fathers raised up Jesus, whom ye
-slew and hanged on a tree. Him hath God exalted with his right hand
-to be a Prince and a Savior, for to give repentance to Israel and
-forgiveness of sins. And we are witnesses of these things; and so is
-also the Holy Ghost, whom God hath given to them that obey him." [93]
-
-12. The boldness of his answer gave deep offense and led the
-chief rulers to take counsel how they might slay them. But Gamaliel
-[Ga-ma-li-el], a learned doctor of the law, advised them against such
-proceedings. His advice was to let the men alone, {74} for if the work
-they had in hand was of men it would come to naught. If it was of God,
-nothing which they could do would overthrow it; and they might be found
-fighting against God.[94]
-
-13. The counsel of Gamaliel prevailed in part at least. The
-apostles were not killed at that time; but they were once more
-forbidden to speak in the name of Jesus, beaten and then set free. The
-apostles rejoiced at being found worthy to suffer shame for the name of
-Jesus, and not heeding the orders of the council continued preaching in
-the temple and in private houses.
-
-14. Temporal Concerns.--So completely did the apostles and the
-other disciples give themselves to the work of the ministry, that
-complaint was made by the Grecians because the widows and poor were
-neglected. Whereupon the twelve called the church together and proposed
-that seven men of good report be chosen and set apart to see to these
-affairs, that they themselves might give their attention wholly to the
-ministry, as it was not profitable for them to neglect that in order to
-"wait on tables." The plan pleased the church and the seven men were
-appointed.[95]
-
-{75} 15. All Things in Common.--The effect of the gospel upon
-the saints of Jerusalem was very marked. They were of one heart and
-of one mind; they had all things in common, and those who possessed
-houses or lands sold them and brought the price of the things and laid
-it at the apostles' feet. Distribution was made unto every man as he
-had need; and there was none among them that lacked for that which was
-necessary.[96]
-
-16. Persecution.--A great persecution arose against the church
-at Jerusalem, within the first year after Messiah's ascension, so
-that most of the brethren, except the apostles, were scattered abroad
-throughout Judea and Samaria. Everywhere they went they preached the
-gospel, so that great good came out of what was intended to be an evil,
-as the gospel was more widely preached. Philip, one of the seven who
-had been appointed to look after the temporal affairs of the church,
-was among the number driven from Jerusalem by the persecution. He went
-to the city of Samaria, where the people listened to his teachings,
-accepted his testimony and were baptized both men and women. The
-apostles hearing of his success, sent to Samaria Peter and John; and
-when they came they laid their hands upon those who had been baptized
-and they received the Holy Ghost;[97] and thus the work was established
-there.
-
-17. Paul.--It was during this persecution that Saul, of Tarsus,
-afterwards better known as Paul, the apostle of the Gentiles,
-manifested his bitterness toward the saints. He witnessed the stoning
-to death of Stephen, one of the seven men appointed to look after
-the temporal affairs of the church at Jerusalem. He held the clothes
-of those who killed him; and {76} being exceedingly vexed at what he
-regarded as a superstition, he followed the saints into distant cities,
-breathing out threatenings and slaughter against them. He went to the
-high priest and obtained letters of authority from him to the rulers of
-the synagogue at Damascus, that if he found any of the saints there he
-might bring them bound to Jerusalem. On his way to Damascus, however,
-the Lord Jesus appeared to him, and Paul, blinded by the glory of the
-vision, and humbled because he found he had been fighting against God,
-was led by his companions into the city where a disciple of the name of
-Ananias was sent by the Lord to restore to Paul his sight and baptize
-him. He was afterwards made an apostle and became zealous for the
-truth.[98] (See note 4, end of section).
-
-18. The Gospel Taken to the Gentiles.--The apostles, being Jews
-themselves, appear to have shared the common prejudices of their race
-against the Gentiles; and treated them as if they had no lot nor part
-in the gospel of Christ. It was not the design of the Lord, however,
-to thus restrict the application of the gospel. Jesus, himself, while
-he had said that he was sent but to the lost sheep of the house of
-Israel,[99] had also said: "And I, if I be lifted up from the earth,
-_will draw all men unto me_." [100] Hence when Cornelius, of Caesarea,
-a devout man, one that feared God, though a Gentile, sought the Lord
-by prayer and good works, he found him; for an angel was sent to him
-who told him his prayers and alms were accepted of God, and that he had
-come to direct him to send men to Joppa for Simon Peter, who would be
-able to tell him what he ought to do. The devout Gentile immediately
-started the messengers to find the apostle.
-
-19. Meantime Peter himself was prepared by a vision to go with
-the gospel unto one whom both he and all his race regarded as unclean.
-In vision he thought he beheld a great net let down from heaven, filled
-with all manner of four-footed {77} beasts, fowls of the air and
-creeping things. And a voice said to him, "Rise, Peter, kill, and eat."
-"Not so, Lord," was his reply: "for I have never eaten anything that is
-common or unclean." "What God hath cleansed," said the voice that spoke
-to him, "that call not thou common or unclean." This was done thrice,
-and as he was yet pondering what the vision could mean, the messengers
-of Cornelius were at the gates enquiring for him; and he was commanded
-by the Spirit to go with them, doubting nothing, for God had sent them.
-
-20. Peter was obedient to the inspired commandment, and went to
-the house of Cornelius, where he found many of the devout Gentile's
-friends and kinsmen gathered together in anticipation of his coming.
-Cornelius having informed the apostle how he came to send for him,
-Peter exclaimed: "Of a truth I perceive that God is no respecter
-of persons: but in every nation he that feareth him, and worketh
-righteousness, is accepted with him." He then proceeded to preach the
-gospel to Cornelius and all present. As he did so the Holy Ghost fell
-upon them to the astonishment of all the Jews who had accompanied
-Peter; for they heard them speak in new tongues and magnify God.
-Cornelius and his friends were baptized and thus the door of the gospel
-was opened to the Gentiles. [101]
-
-21. Rapid Growth of the Work.--The knowledge once established in
-the minds of the apostles that God granted to the Gentiles repentance
-unto life, seemed to unshackle those who were to preach the gospel,
-and gave a broader meaning in their {78} minds to their commission to
-go unto "all the world, and preach the gospel unto every creature."
-Evidently before this they did not comprehend it in its fullest sense.
-
-22. The apostles appear to have remained in Jerusalem a number
-of years--twelve years, tradition says--presiding over the church and
-directing the labors of those preaching the gospel. Churches, or, more
-correctly speaking, branches of the church were built up in Antioch
-[An-ti-ok], Damascus [Da-mas-kus] and other cities of Syria [Sir-ia].
-The work also spread into Asia Minor, Greece and Rome; and everywhere
-great success attended the preaching of the elders, until the gospel
-was firmly established in various parts of the Gentile world. So
-extensive was the preaching of the ambassadors of Christ in those early
-days of the church, that we have Paul saying (about thirty years after
-the ascension of Messiah) that it had been preached to every creature
-under heaven.[102] (See note 5, end of section).
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Was Matthias Called of God?--In consequence of Matthias having
-been chosen by "lot," it may be a question in the minds of some as to
-his being called of God. A careful consideration of all that was done
-in connection with that circumstance will dispel all doubt in relation
-to it. It must be observed that after Joseph Barsabas and Matthias
-were nominated for the place in the quorum of the Twelve, the Apostles
-prayed, saying: "Thou Lord, which knowest the hearts of all men, show
-whether of these two thou hast chosen." Before his ascension Jesus had
-said to these men, "If ye abide in me, and my words abide in you, ye
-shall ask what ye will, and it shall be done unto you. * * * Ye have
-not chosen me, but I have chosen you, and ordained you; * * * that
-whatsoever ye shall ask of the Father in my name, he may give it you."
-Therefore when these Apostles asked which of the two men nominated
-God had chosen, and they gave their votes and Matthias was the one
-selected, God in that way answered their prayer, and Matthias was
-thus called of God. Again, to be {79} called by a divinely appointed
-authority is to be called of God. No one can deny that the Apostles
-were a divinely appointed authority, hence to be called by them was to
-be called of God.--Roberts.
-
-2. Pentecost.--Pentecost is the name given in the New Testament
-to the Feast of Weeks, or of Ingathering, celebrated on the fiftieth
-day from the Passover. It was a festival of thanks for the harvest.
-It was also one of the three great yearly festivals, in which all the
-males were required to appear before the Lord at the place of his
-sanctuary. Josephus in three places in his writings, viz., in the
-fourteenth book of "Antiquities," ch. xiii,4; Ibid. xvii, ch. x,2; and
-in his second book of the "Wars of the Jews," ch. iii,2,--speaks of
-this festival as bringing together great numbers of the Jews from all
-parts of the world, and sustains the statement in Acts ii, that there
-were in Jerusalem at Pentecost "Jews, devout men, out of every nation
-under heaven," who came running together on hearing that the disciples
-of Jesus were speaking in unknown tongues. We cannot refrain from
-remarking that it was a most opportune time for such a demonstration,
-since these men would carry the rumor of these things and the substance
-of the remarkable sermon they heard to the distant lands from which
-they had come, and thus the news of the gospel would be spread
-abroad.--Roberts.
-
-3. Joel's Prophecy.--It is very generally supposed among
-Christians, that this outpouring of the Holy Ghost on the day of
-Pentecost was the fulfillment of Joel's prophecy, that is, its complete
-fulfillment. A careful examination of the prophecy, however, will
-clearly demonstrate that this is not the case. The prophecy will be
-found in Joel ii,28-32, and the particulars enumerated in it are as
-follows: The spirit of the Lord is to be poured out upon all flesh.
-At Pentecost it was poured out upon a few of the disciples of Jesus
-only; the sons and daughters of the people were to prophesy; we have no
-account of their doing so at Pentecost; old men were to dream dreams
-and young men see visions; there is no account of this taking place
-on the occasion in question; wonders were to be shown in the heavens
-and in the earth, blood and fire and pillars of smoke, the sun is to
-be turned into darkness, the moon into blood, before the great and
-terrible day of the Lord come, yet on Mount Zion and in Jerusalem
-deliverance was to be found. These things unquestionably point to
-the glorious coming of the Son of God to judgment (see Matt. xxiv);
-and certainly they were not fulfilled on the day of Pentecost by the
-outpouring of the Holy Ghost on a few of the disciples of Jesus. Still
-Peter said, referring to the Spirit poured out upon the disciples:
-"This is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel," and then quoted
-the passage. He doubtless meant: This Spirit which you now see poured
-out upon these few men, is that Spirit which Joel spoke of, and which
-will eventually be poured out upon all flesh, not only upon {80} men
-and women, but upon the brute creation as well, so that the lion and
-lamb shall lie down together and a little child shall lead them, and
-they shall not hurt nor destroy in all God's holy mountain. I have
-deemed it necessary to make this note, first, because of the very
-general belief among Christians that the prophecy of Joel was fulfilled
-on the day of Pentecost; and second, because the prophecy is one that
-was quoted by the angel Moroni on the occasion of his first visit
-to Joseph Smith, concerning which he said, it was not yet fulfilled
-but soon would be (Pearl of Great Price, page 90), hence, since this
-heavenly messenger puts its fulfillment in the future, it could
-not have been fulfilled on the day of Pentecost two thousand years
-ago.--Roberts.
-
-4. Description of Paul.--He is about five feet high; very dark
-hair, dark complexion; dark skin; large Roman nose; sharp face; small,
-black eyes, penetrating as eternity; round shoulders; a whining voice;
-except when elevated, and then it almost resembled the roaring of a
-lion. He was a good orator, active and diligent, always employing
-himself in doing good to his fellow-man.--Joseph Smith, at the
-organization of a school for instruction, Jan. 5th, 1841.
-
-Paul was small in size, and his personal appearance did not correspond
-with the greatness of his soul. He was ugly, stout, short, and
-stooping, and his broad shoulders awkwardly sustained a little bald
-head. His sallow countenance was half hidden in a thick beard; his nose
-was aquiline, his eyes piercing, and his eye-brows heavy and joined
-across his forehead. Nor was there anything imposing in his speech, for
-his timid and embarrassed air gave but a poor idea of his eloquence.
-He shrewdly, however, admitted his exterior defects, and even drew
-advantage therefrom. The Jewish race possesses the peculiarity of at
-the same time presenting types of the greatest beauty, and the most
-thorough ugliness; but this Jewish ugliness is something quite apart
-by itself. Some of the strange visages which at first excite a smile,
-assume, when lighted up by emotion, a sort of deep brilliancy and
-grandeur.--Renan--"Life of the Apostles," p. 165.
-
-5. Travels of the Apostles Uncertain.--The ambassadors of Christ
-on leaving Jerusalem traveled over a great part of the world, and in a
-short time collected numerous religious societies in various countries.
-Of the churches they founded, not a small number is mentioned in the
-sacred books, especially in the Acts of the Apostles. Besides these,
-there can be no doubt they collected many others, both by their own
-efforts and by the efforts of their followers. But how far they
-traveled, what nations they visited, or when and where they died, is
-exceedingly dubious and uncertain.--Mosheim.
-
-6. Divine Aid in Propagation of the Gospel.--The causes must
-have been divine which could enable men destitute of all human aid,
-poor {81} and friendless, neither eloquent nor learned, fishermen and
-publicans, and they too Jews, that is, persons odious to all other
-nations, in so short a time to persuade a great part of mankind to
-abandon the religion of their fathers, and to embrace a new religion
-which is opposed to the natural dispositions of men. In the words they
-uttered there must have been an amazing and a divine power controlling
-the minds of men. To which may be added miracles, prophecies, the
-detection of men's secret designs, magnanimity in the midst of perils,
-contempt for all the objects of ordinary ambition, a patient and
-cheerful endurance of sufferings worse than death, as well as of
-death itself, and finally, lives of the purest and most unblemished
-character. That the ambassadors of Jesus Christ were in fact thus
-furnished for their work, is a truth perfectly clear and obvious. And
-if we suppose them not to have been so furnished, no probable reason
-can be assigned for so rapid a propagation of Christianity by this
-small and feeble band.--Mosheim.
-
-7. The Rapid Spread of the Gospel.--Thus, then, under a celestial
-influence and co-operation, the doctrine of the Savior, like the
-rays of the sun, quickly irradiated the whole world. Presently, in
-accordance with divine prophecy, the sound of his inspired evangelists
-and apostles had gone throughout all the earth, and their words to
-the ends of the world. Throughout every city and village, like a
-replenished barn floor, churches were rapidly abounding and filled with
-members from every people. Those who, in consequence of the delusions
-that had descended to them from their ancestors, had been fettered by
-the ancient disease of idolatrous superstition, were now liberated
-by the power of Christ, through the teachings and miracles of his
-messengers.--Eusebius, writing of the period between 37-41 A. D.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What was the first official business of the authorities of the
-church after the resurrection?
-
-2. State the manner of filling the vacancy in the quorum of the twelve.
-
-3. What of Mosheim's translation of the phrase: "They gave forth their
-lots?" (Note).
-
-4. Was Matthias called of God? (Note 1).
-
-5. What evidence can you refer to in proof that the quorum of Twelve
-Apostles was to be perpetuated?
-
-6. When was the gospel first publicly preached after the resurrection?
-
-7. How long between the ascension and Pentecost? (Note 2).
-
-8. Describe the events in the church on the day of Pentecost.
-
-{82} 9. What circumstance is an evidence that the statement of
-scripture is true that there were devout men from many nations in
-Jerusalem at that time? (Note 2).
-
-10. Was the outpouring of the Holy Ghost on the day of Pentecost a
-complete fulfillment of Joel's prophecy quoted by Peter? (Note 3).
-
-11. How does the order of principles taught by Peter on the day of
-Pentecost compare with the order of principles taught by John the
-Baptist and Messiah? (Note).
-
-12. Describe the rise of opposition to the church.
-
-13. What answer did Peter make to the mandates of the rulers not to
-teach in the name of Jesus?
-
-14. What was the counsel of Gamaliel to the Jews?
-
-15. To what extent did his counsel prevail?
-
-16. What arrangements were made in the church in respect to looking
-after the poor?
-
-17. What priesthood did the seven most likely hold? (Note).
-
-18. Give an account of the introduction of the gospel among the
-Samaritans.
-
-19. What was Paul's course at the first towards the church?
-
-20. Relate the circumstances of his conversion.
-
-21. Give a description of Paul. (Note 4).
-
-22. What were the views entertained by the Jews toward the Gentiles?
-
-23. Relate how the gospel was introduced to the Gentiles.
-
-24. State the exception to the order of the gospel in the case of
-Cornelius.
-
-25. What was the object of the exception?
-
-26. What effect on the church did carrying the gospel to the Gentiles
-have?
-
-27. How long is it supposed that the Twelve remained at Jerusalem?
-
-28. What can you say of the spread of the work during the first
-century? (Notes 5, 6, 7).
-
-{83}
-
-
-
-SECTION VIII.
-
-1. Review.--We have now related the chief events connected with
-the introduction of the gospel and the establishment of the Church by
-the personal labors of Messiah and those immediately connected with
-him. We may now review the doctrines that he taught, which, taken in
-the aggregate, constitute the gospel; and examine the character of the
-organization he founded--the Church.
-
-2. The Mission of Messiah.--Jesus Christ came into the earth
-to accomplish three great purposes; first, to redeem mankind from
-the consequences of Adam's transgression; second, to save them from
-the consequences of their own sins. The first is a general salvation,
-which, without any conditions whatever, will be applied to all
-mankind, irrespective of their obedience or disobedience to God, their
-righteousness or wickedness, their belief or unbelief. The redemption
-will be as universal as the fall. The second may be regarded as a
-particular salvation, dependent upon faith in, and obedience to the
-gospel of Christ by the individual.
-
-3. The Fall.--When Adam and Eve were placed in the garden of
-Eden, there were certain laws given them by their Creator, the penalty
-of violating which was death and banishment from the presence of God.
-They transgressed the laws and became subject to the penalty. Nor
-was that all; but by their transgression, having become mortal, they
-bequeathed that mortality to their offspring; and thus death passed
-upon all mankind, and that too, through no act or fault of theirs.
-Their agency was not exercised in the matter, and therefore justice
-would require that they should receive a full and complete {84}
-redemption from the evil which overtakes them through the actions of
-others over which they had no control.
-
-4. General Salvation.--Such a redemption was wrought out through
-the atonement of Jesus Christ, and that its benefits are to be
-universal, so far as redeeming mankind for the consequences of Adam's
-transgression is concerned, is evident from the fact,
-
-_First_, That the resurrection from the dead is universal, as the
-scriptures witness:
-
- And many of them that sleep in the dust of the earth shall awake,
- some to everlasting life, and some to shame and everlasting
- contempt.[103]
-
- For as the Father hath life in himself; so hath he given to the
- Son to have life in himself. * * * Marvel not at this: for the
- hour is coming, in which all that are in their graves shall hear
- his voice, and shall come forth; they that have done good unto
- the resurrection of life, and they that have done evil, unto the
- resurrection of damnation.[104]
-
-Or, as the last two clauses were given to the Prophet Joseph Smith by
-inspiration:
-
- They who have done good in the resurrection of the just, and they
- who have done evil in the resurrection of the unjust.[105]
-
-After giving a full account of the resurrection of the righteous and
-their reign upon the earth for a thousand years, the writer of the
-Apocalypse [A-poc-a-lypse] says:
-
- And I saw the dead, small and great, stand before God. * * * And
- the sea gave up the dead which were in it; and death and hell
- delivered up the dead which were in them: and they were judged
- every man according to his works.[106]
-
-_Second_, The scriptures plainly declare that the redemption {85} of
-men from the consequences of Adam's transgression shall be universal:
-
- Therefore as by the offense of one [Adam] judgment came upon _all
- men_ to condemnation; even so by the righteousness of one the free
- gift came _upon all men_ to the justification of life.[107]
-
- Since by man came death, by man came also the resurrection of
- the dead. For as in Adam _all die_, even so in Christ shall _all
- be made alive_. But every man in his own order: Christ the first
- fruits; afterward they that are Christ's at his coming. Then cometh
- the end, when he shall have delivered the kingdom to God, even the
- Father; when he shall have put down all rule and all authority and
- power. For he must reign, till he hath put all enemies under his
- feet. The last enemy that shall be destroyed is death.[108]
-
- Behold, he created Adam, and by Adam came the fall of man. And
- because of the fall of man, came Jesus Christ even the Father and
- the Son; and because of Jesus Christ came the redemption of man.
- And because of the redemption of man, which came by Jesus Christ,
- they are brought back into the presence of the Lord; yea, this is
- wherein all men are redeemed, because the death of Christ bringeth
- to pass the resurrection, which bringeth to pass a redemption from
- an endless sleep, from which sleep all men shall be awakened by the
- power of God when the trump shall sound; and they shall come forth,
- both small and great, and all shall stand before his bar, being
- redeemed and loosed from this eternal band of death, which death is
- a temporal death.[109]
-
-5. Through the atonement made by Messiah, therefore, a full and
-complete redemption from the consequences of Adam's transgression is
-brought about; that is, a victory over the grave is secured, and that,
-too, through the merits of Jesus Christ. And while the law transgressed
-by Adam has been vindicated, the posterity of Adam who became subject
-to death through his disobedience, are redeemed from the grave without
-anything {86} being required of them. For as their agency was not
-concerned in bringing about the mischief, nothing is required of them
-in order to obtain redemption from it. So far salvation is free and
-universal. (See notes 1, 2 and 3, end of section.)
-
-6. The Atonement a Fact Proven by Evidence.--It is often asked:
-"How is it that through the sacrifice of one who is innocent salvation
-may be purchased for those under the dominion of death?" We observe,
-in passing, that what should most concern man is, not so much _how_ it
-is that such is the case; but is it a _fact_? Is it true that God has
-established such a scheme of redemption? is what should concern him.
-To that question the blood sprinkled upon a thousand Jewish altars,
-and the smoke that darkened the heavens for ages from burnt offerings,
-answer yes. For those sacrifices, and that sprinkled blood were but
-typical of the great sacrifice to be made by the Messiah.
-
-Even the mythology of heathen nations retains the idea of an atonement
-that either has been, or is to be made for mankind. Fantastic,
-distorted, confused, buried under the rubbish of savage superstition
-it may be, but it nevertheless exists. So easily traced, so distinct
-is this feature of heathen mythology, that some writers[110] have
-endeavored to prove that the gospel plan of redemption was derived from
-heathen mythology. Whereas the fact is that the gospel was understood
-and extensively preached in the earliest ages; men retained in their
-tradition a knowledge of those principles, or parts of them, and
-however much they may have been distorted, traces of them may still be
-found in nearly all the mythologies of the world.
-
-The prophets of the Jewish scriptures answer the question in the
-affirmative. The writers of the New Testament make Christ's atonement
-the principal theme of their discourses and {87} epistles. The Book
-of Mormon, speaking as the voice of entire nations of people whose
-prophets and righteous men sought and found God, testify to the same
-great fact. The revelations of God as given through the Prophet Joseph
-Smith are replete with passages confirming this doctrine. The evidence
-is more than sufficient, to establish the _fact_ of the atonement
-beyond the possibility of a doubt; and if there are some things in it
-not within the scope of our comprehension, still there is sufficient
-foundation for the glorious hope of eternal life through its power.
-
-7. Claims of Mercy and Justice Balance.--In the atonement there
-is a nice balancing of the relative claims of justice and mercy. The
-law given to man having been transgressed, justice demanded the payment
-of the penalty, which was death. And as Adam had no power to liberate
-himself from the captivity thereof, his sleep in the grave must have
-been eternal; so also with all his posterity to whom his mortality
-was bequeathed as an evil legacy, had not Mercy put in her claims and
-prevented Justice from being cruel. The Son of God having it given
-to him to have life in himself,[111] and being capable of making an
-infinite atonement, he stood forth as the great friend of man and
-offered himself as a sacrifice to satisfy the claims of Justice. That
-offering was accepted by the great Law Giver, and upon the demands of
-Justice being satisfied--the law having no further claim upon him--the
-captive is set free from the dominion of death. Mercy is not permitted
-to rob Justice, but she claims her own. Justice is not permitted to be
-cruel, but he retains his dignity--his demands are satisfied. As the
-late President Taylor very beautifully says:
-
- Is justice dishonored? No; it is satisfied; the debt is paid. Is
- righteousness departed from? No; there is a righteous act. All
- requirements are met. Is judgment violated? No; its demands are
- {88} fulfilled. Is mercy triumphant? No; she simply claims her own.
- Justice, judgment, mercy and truth all harmonize as the attributes
- of Deity. "Justice and truth have met together, righteousness and
- peace have kissed each other." Justice and judgment triumph as well
- as mercy and peace; all the attributes of Deity harmonize in this
- great momentous, just, equitable, merciful and meritorious act.[112]
-
-8. The Sacrifice of Messiah Voluntary.--Unbelievers delight to
-represent God, the great Law Giver, as unspeakably cruel in demanding
-such an atonement as Christ made for the salvation of the children of
-men. But let it be borne in mind that he who made the atonement did so
-voluntarily. Testifying to his disciples respecting the matter, he says:
-
- Therefore doth my father love me, be cause I lay down my life that
- I may take it up again. No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down
- of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it
- again. This commandment have I received of my Father.[113]
-
-When his enemies gathered about him--a former friend betraying him with
-a kiss,--and Peter prepared to defend him with the sword, he chided him
-for his rashness, commanding him to put up his sword, and added:
-
- Thinkest thou that I cannot now pray to my Father, and he shall
- presently give me more than twelve legions of angels? But how then
- shall the scriptures be fulfilled, that thus it must be?[114]
-
-Thus down to the very last moment, it appears that Jesus could have
-been delivered from the sacrifice had he so willed it. But the
-principle which was the guiding star of his life--"Father, not my will,
-but thy will be done"--influenced him in this instance, and he drank of
-the cup given him of his Father, and wrung out the dregs in agony; but
-he did it voluntarily, and that, too, out of his great love for mankind.
-
-{89} 9. The Love of God Made Manifest in the Atonement.--By this
-atonement of Messiah's there is especially one fact thrown out in bold
-relief, that is, the great love of God and Christ for mankind. When one
-thinks of the unspeakable agony, of the anguish of heart, of the pains
-that racked the body and distressed the mind of the Savior at the time
-of his betrayal, and during his trial and crucifixion, he may see how
-great the love of the Father for mankind must be, when he would consent
-for his only begotten Son to pass through this great humiliation and
-affliction, in order to redeem mankind from the bonds of death. On such
-contemplation increased emphasis will be given to the passage--
-
- In this was manifested the love of God towards us, because that
- God sent his only begotten Son into the world that we might live
- through him.[115]
-
-And also to this:
-
- For God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten
- Son, that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but
- have everlasting life. For God sent not his Son into the world
- to condemn the world, but that the world through him might be
- saved.[116]
-
-Equally great appears the love of the Son of God, who of his own free
-will volunteered to take upon himself the task of man's redemption.
-
- 10. Individual Salvation.--As before stated, Messiah came
-not only to redeem man from the consequences of the fall, but to
-save him also from the consequences of his own personal sins. The
-redemption from the fall is universal and unconditional, because the
-penalties following it were entailed upon the race through no action
-of theirs, but through the transgressions of Adam. The redemption from
-the consequences of man's personal sins, however, is bottomed upon
-conditions, because his agency is more completely a factor in the
-violations of the law. He {90} sins knowingly, willfully, and sometimes
-wantonly. He transgresses the laws of God and of nature in spite of
-the protests of his conscience, the convictions of his reason, and
-the promptings of his judgment. He becomes desperately wicked and so
-depraved that in some cases he actually seeks evil and loves it. He
-hugs it to his bosom and cries: Evil, be thou my good; sin, be thou my
-refuge!
-
-11. In cases of such violation of the laws of God, justice
-demands that the outraged laws should be vindicated by the punishment
-of the transgressor. But here again the principle of mercy is active.
-By the sacrifice which he made, Messiah purchased mankind as an
-inheritance for himself, and they came of right under his dominion;
-for he not only ransomed them from an endless sleep in the grave, but
-"he hath borne our griefs and carried our sorrows. * * * * He was
-wounded for our transgressions, he was bruised for our iniquities,
-the chastisement of our peace was upon him; and by his stripes we are
-healed. The Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all." [117] (See
-note 4, end of section.) It was these considerations, doubtless, which
-led the Apostle to say to the saints--"Ye are not your own; for ye are
-bought with a price." [118]
-
-Still more plain in relation to the effect that Messiah's atonement
-has upon the personal sins of men, is the word of the Lord through the
-Prophet Joseph Smith to Martin Harris, warning him to repent lest his
-sufferings be sore--how sore, how exquisite, how hard to bear, he knew
-not:
-
- For behold, I God, have suffered these things for all, that they
- might not suffer if they would repent, but if they would not
- repent, they must suffer even as I, which suffering caused myself,
- even God, the greatest of all, to tremble because of pain, and to
- bleed at every pore, and to suffer both body and spirit; and would
- that I might not drink the bitter cup, and shrink--nevertheless,
- glory be to the {91} Father, I partook and finished my preparations
- unto the children of men. [119]
-
-12. Conditions of Salvation.--Messiah having thus ransomed
-mankind by his own suffering and death, he becomes the law-giver to
-our race and of right prescribes the conditions upon which the full
-benefits of his great atonement shall be applied to individuals. Those
-conditions he has prescribed, and they constitute the gospel. It was
-these conditions which he authorized his Apostles to proclaim to the
-world, saying:
-
- All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye therefore,
- and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father,
- and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; teaching them to observe
- _all things_ whatsoever I have commanded you. [120]
-
-13. Following the apostles in their fulfillment of this
-commission, we have them persuading people to believe on the Lord
-Jesus Christ as the Savior of the world, as the only one to whom
-they may look for salvation[121]--the resurrection and the life. Men
-in whose minds this faith was created they commanded to repent and
-be baptized in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins;
-and promised them on the condition of their obedience the gift of
-the Holy Ghost.[122] By repentance they meant a deep and heart-felt
-sorrow for sin, accompanied by a reformation of life; [123] by baptism
-they meant immersion in water in the likeness of Christ's burial and
-resurrection;[124] and the Holy Ghost was imparted by the laying on of
-hands and prayer.[125]
-
-14. These things connected with a Godly walk and conversation
-after obeying them[126]--constitute the laws of adoption {92} into the
-Church of Christ. These are the conditions on which man receives the
-full benefit of the atonement of Jesus Christ--a forgiveness of sins
-and power through the Holy Ghost to overcome all evil propensities
-within himself, until he becomes pure in heart and every way made
-ready and worthy of the kingdom of heaven. This is the gospel of Jesus
-Christ, as taught by Jesus and his apostles. (See note 6, end of
-section.)
-
-15. The Church.--In order to propagate the gospel, and teach,
-encourage, instruct, preserve and finally perfect those who accepted
-it, Messiah organized his church. He bestowed upon its members certain
-great and precious spiritual gifts and graces, such as the power to
-speak in new tongues and interpret them; to receive revelation, to
-prophesy, to see visions, receive the visitation of angels, to possess
-the gift of wisdom, knowledge, faith, discernment of spirits, and
-healing the sick.[127]
-
-16. The description of the Church organization in the New
-Testament is extremely imperfect, owing, no doubt, to the fragmentary
-character of the Christian annals. While the distinctions between the
-respective offices in the Priesthood, and the definition of the duties
-of each officer are even less satisfactory; still there is enough
-written to enable us to get an outline of the organization.
-
-17. Messiah, during his personal ministry, organized a quorum of
-twelve apostles, to whom he gave very great powers and authority, even
-to be witnesses of him among the people, to build up his church by the
-proclamation of the gospel, to heal the sick, open the eyes of the
-blind, raise the dead and cast out devils.[128] He likewise organized
-quorums of seventies, unto whom he gave similar powers to those
-bestowed upon the apostles.[129]
-
-{93} 18. After his resurrection Messiah was with his apostles and
-disciples forty days, during which time he was teaching them all things
-concerning the kingdom of God. [130] Hence we have these men after his
-ascension organizing branches of the church wherever they found people
-who received their testimony. In some instances they ordained elders to
-preside over these branches;[131] and in other instances bishops were
-appointed.[132]
-
-19. Paul, in giving a description of the organization of the
-church says:
-
- And God hath set some in the church, first apostles, secondarily
- prophets, thirdly teachers, after that miracles, then gifts of
- healing, helps, governments, diversities of tongues. Are all
- apostles? are all prophets? are all teachers? are all workers of
- miracles? have all the gifts of healing? do all speak with tongues?
- do all interpret?[133]
-
-The implied answer is that all are not apostles, nor prophets, nor
-teachers, etc., in the church of Christ, but that the whole body, is
-fitly joined together and compacted by that which every part and every
-joint supplieth.[134]
-
-20. Preceding the first quotation we made from Paul,[135] he
-compares the church of Christ to the body of a man, which, though it be
-composed of many members, yet it is but one body, and all the members
-thereof are needful to it. "The eye cannot say unto the hand, I have no
-need of thee; nor again the head to the feet, I have no need of thee.
-Nay, much more, those members of the body which seem to be more feeble
-are necessary." This is equivalent to saying that the apostle cannot
-say to the elder, I have no need of thee; nor the deacon to the bishop,
-I have no need of thee; nor the seventy to the priest, I have no need
-of thee. The argument is that all the offices, even those which seem
-the least necessary, are all needful to the existence of the church of
-Christ, and everyone is forbidden to hold as unnecessary his brother
-officer.
-
-{94} 21. Moreover, the apostle insists that there should be the
-same bond of sympathy between the members of the church of Christ that
-there is in the members of the human body; that there should be no
-schism in it, and that the members should have a care one for another;
-that when one member suffers all the members suffer with it; or if one
-member be honored all rejoice with it.
-
-22. In another description of the church the same writer after
-saying again that God had given to men "some apostles, and some
-prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers"--he also
-enumerates the objects for which this peculiar organization was given:
-1. For the perfecting of the Saints. 2. The work of the ministry. 3.
-Edifying the body of Christ. 4. To prevent the saints being carried
-about by every wind of doctrine, by the sleight of men, and cunning
-craftiness whereby they lie in wait to deceive.
-
-23. He very plainly intimates, too, that this organization was
-designed to be perpetuated until the saints all come to the "unity of
-the faith and the knowledge of the Son of God--unto a perfect man,
-unto the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ." [136]
-Furthermore, we suggest that it must be obvious, since the church
-organization was given to perfect the saints, to the work of the
-ministry, to edify the body of Christ, to prevent the saints being
-carried about by every wind of doctrine or being deceived by cunning
-men--that so long as there are saints who need perfecting, so long
-as there is a necessity for work in the ministry, so long as the
-church of Christ needs edifying, or the saints need to be guarded from
-heresy, or the deceitfulness of false teachers--just so long will this
-organization of the church with apostles and prophets, seventies, and
-elders, bishops and teachers and deacons be needed; and since the kinds
-of work enumerated in the foregoing will always be necessary, we reach
-the conclusion that the Church organization as established {95} by the
-apostles was designed to be perpetual. (See note 5, end of section).
-
-24. Officers of the Church to be Divinely Appointed.--Moreover
-it is apparent that these officers of the church were called of God.
-Concerning the apostles Jesus said: "Ye have not chosen me but I have
-chosen you, and ordained you that ye may bring forth fruit." [137] When
-seven men were chosen to look after the poor and minister to them they
-set them before the apostles, who, when they had prayed, laid their
-hands upon them and ordained them to their calling.[138]
-
-25. So in the case of Paul. It was not enough that he saw and
-spoke with Messiah, for afterwards when the Lord would have him engage
-in the work of preaching the gospel and administering in the ordinances
-thereof, the Holy Ghost said unto certain prophets at Antioch,
-
- Separate me Barnabas and Saul for the work whereunto I have called
- them. And when they had fasted and prayed, and laid their hands on
- them, they sent them away. [139]
-
-26. Furthermore, as Paul went about confirming the souls of
-saints, he ordained elders in every church.[140] He did not suffer
-men to take the authority on themselves to minister in the things of
-God; but warned the saints against such characters. "Take heed unto
-yourselves," said he to the elders of Ephesus, "and to all the flock
-over which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the flock
-of God * * * For I know this, that after my departing, shall grievous
-wolves enter in, not sparing the flock. And of your own selves shall
-men arise, speaking perverse things, to draw away disciples after
-them." [141]
-
-27. The general law of the church is expressed in the following:
-
- Every high priest taken from among men is ordained for men in
- {96} things pertaining to God that he may offer both gifts and
- sacrifices for sins. * * * And no man taketh this honor unto
- himself, but he that is called of God as was Aaron. [142]
-
-The manner in which Aaron was called to the priest's office is recorded
-in the writings of Moses as follows: The word of the Lord came to that
-prophet saying:
-
- Take thou unto thee Aaron thy brother, and his sons with him from
- among the children of Israel that he may minister unto me in the
- priest's office, even Aaron, Nadab and Abihu, Eleazer and Ithamar,
- Aaron's sons. [143]
-
-28. It may be objected that this was the law relating to the
-calling of high priests alone, but if high priests were to be called in
-this manner, is it not reasonable to conclude that all who administer
-in things "pertaining to God" must be called in the same manner--that
-is, of God? So far as the scriptures are concerned, and on subjects
-of this character their authority is conclusive, wherever we have an
-account of men administering in the things pertaining to God, and their
-administrations are accepted of him, they have either been called
-directly by revelation from him, or through inspiration in those who
-already had authority from God to act in his name; and to be called by
-a legitimate, divinely established authority is to be called of God.
-(See note 6, end of section).
-
-29. The Church on the Western Hemisphere.--The Book of Mormon is
-no more explicit in its description of the church organization than the
-New Testament. This is owing to the fact that the Book of Mormon is but
-an abridgement of the Nephite annals, and we are informed by Mormon,
-who made the abridgement, that not an hundredth part of the things
-which Jesus taught to the Nephites could be recorded in his abridged
-record--hence the meagre description of the church organization.[144]
-From Mormon's abridged account of Messiah's visit and {97} labors among
-the Nephites, however, it appears that Jesus chose from among the
-faithful men who believed on him, twelve apostles,[145] unto whom he
-gave power to preach repentance, baptize for remission of sins,[146]
-lay on hands for the Holy Ghost,[147] and organize the Church.[148]
-But the details of this work are not given. It is evident, however,
-that the twelve disciples ordained subordinate officers, since Moroni
-informs us of the manner in which they ordained priests and teachers;
-[149] and he also refers to the office of elders.[150]
-
-30. Thus in the Book of Mormon, as in the New Testament, may be
-seen only the faint outlines of the organization, the church of Christ.
-A full description of it, together with the callings and authority of
-the respective officers and persons of which it is composed, will be
-reserved for Part IV of this work.
-
-31. The acceptance of the gospel by the Nephites was followed
-by the same results as when accepted by the Jews and Gentiles of the
-eastern hemisphere. The sick were healed, the dead were raised, the
-lame walked, the deaf heard, and the blind received their sight. Peace,
-love, sobriety, justice and an absence of greed and pride characterized
-the conduct of the saints of the western hemisphere; and here, too,
-they had "all things common among them, therefore they were not rich
-and poor, bond and free, but they were all made free, and partakers of
-the heavenly gifts." [151]
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Redemption Unconditional.--We believe that through the
-sufferings, death and atonement of Jesus Christ, all mankind without
-one exception, are to be completely and fully redeemed, both body
-and spirit, from the endless banishment and curse to which they were
-consigned by Adam's transgression; and that this universal salvation
-and redemption of the whole human family from the {98} endless penalty
-of the original sin, is effected without any conditions whatsoever on
-their part; that is, that they are not required to believe or repent,
-or be baptized, or do anything else, in order to be redeemed from
-that penalty; for whether they believe or disbelieve, whether they
-repent or remain impenitent, whether they are baptized or unbaptized,
-whether they keep the commandments or break them, whether they are
-righteous or unrighteous, it will make no difference in relation to
-their redemption, both soul and body, from the penalty of Adam's
-transgression. The most righteous man that ever lived on the earth,
-and the most wicked wretch of the whole human family, were both placed
-under the same curse without any transgression or agency of their
-own, and they both alike will be redeemed from that curse, without any
-agency or conditions on their part.--"Remarkable Visions"--Orson Pratt.
-
-2. The Atonement Universal in its Application.--Transgression of
-the law brought death upon all the posterity of Adam, the restoration
-through the atonement restored all the human family to life. "For since
-by man came death, by man came also the resurrection of the dead. For
-as in Adam all die, even so in Christ shall all be made alive." So that
-whatever was lost by Adam was restored by Jesus Christ. The penalty of
-the transgression of the law was the death of the body. The atonement
-made by Jesus Christ resulted in the resurrection of the human body.
-Its scope embraced all peoples, nations and tongues.
-
- For all my Lord was crucified,
- For all, for all my Savior died.
-
- --"Mediation and Atonement"--John Taylor.
-
-3. The Atonement a Mystery.--As stated elsewhere, in some
-mysterious, incomprehensible way, Jesus assumed the responsibility
-which naturally would have devolved upon Adam; but which could only
-be accomplished through the mediation of himself, and by taking upon
-himself their sorrows, assuming their responsibilities and bearing
-their transgressions or sins. In a manner incomprehensible and
-inexplicable, he bore the weight of the sins of the whole world; not
-only of Adam, but of his posterity; and in doing that, opened the
-kingdom of heaven, not only to all believers and all who obeyed the
-law of God, but to more than one-half of the human family who died
-before they came to years of maturity, as well as to the heathen, who
-having died without law, will through his mediation be resurrected
-without law, and be judged without law, and thus participate
-according to their capacity, works and worth, in the blessings of his
-atonement.--"Mediation and Atonement"--John Taylor.
-
-{99} 4. The Means of Escape from Penalties of Personal
-Sins.--After this full, complete and universal redemption,
-restoration, and salvation of the whole of Adam's race through the
-atonement of Jesus Christ, * * * all and every one of them will enjoy
-eternal life and happiness, never more to be banished from the presence
-of God if they themselves have committed no sin. * * * We believe that
-all mankind, in consequence of the fall, after they grow up from their
-infant state and come to the years of understanding, know good and evil
-and are capable of obeying or disobeying law, and that a law is given
-against doing evil and that the penalty affixed is a second banishment
-from the presence of God, both body and spirit, after they have been
-redeemed from the first banishment and restored into his presence. *
-* * We believe that all who have done evil, having a knowledge of the
-law, or afterwards in this life coming to the knowledge thereof, are
-under its penalty, which is not inflicted in this world but in the
-world to come. * * * "But," inquires the sinner, "is there no way of
-escape? Is my case hopeless?" * * * The answer is, if thou canst hide
-thyself from the all-searching eye of an omnipresent God, that he shall
-not find thee, or if thou canst prevail with him to deny justice its
-claim, or if thou canst clothe thyself with power, and contend with the
-Almighty and prevent him from executing the sentence of the law, then
-thou canst escape. * * * But be assured, O sinner, that thou canst not
-devise any way of thine own to escape, nor do anything which will atone
-for thy sins. Therefore thy case is hopeless, unless God hath devised
-some way for thy deliverance; but do not let despair seize upon thee;
-* * * for he who gave the law has devised a way for thy deliverance.
-That same Jesus, who hath atoned for the original sin (Adam's
-transgression), and will redeem all mankind from the penalty thereof,
-hath also atoned for thy sins, and offereth salvation and deliverance
-to thee, on certain conditions to be complied with on thy part. * *
-* The first condition to be complied with on the part of sinners is
-to believe in God, and in the sufferings and death of his son Jesus
-Christ * * * and in the Holy Ghost. * * * That the second condition is
-to repent. * * * That the third condition is to be baptized for the
-remission of sins. * * * And that the fourth condition is to receive
-the laying on of hands for the gift of the Holy Ghost. * * * They are
-then required to be humble, to be meek and lowly in heart, to watch
-and pray and deal justly. * * * And, in short, to continue faithful to
-the end in all the duties enjoined upon them by the word and Spirit of
-Christ.--"Remarkable Visions"--Orson Pratt.
-
-5. Four Opinions on Church Government.--How far even wise men and
-Christian scholars have gone astray in relation to church government
-may be judged from the following opinions on the subject:
-
-{100} Those who imagine that Christ himself or the apostles by his
-direction or authority appointed a certain fixed form of church
-government are not agreed what that form was. The principal opinions
-that have been adopted upon this head may be reduced to the four
-following:
-
-_First_, is that of the Roman Catholics maintain that Christ's
-intention and appointment was that his followers should be collected
-into one sacred empire, subject to the government of St. Peter and
-his successors, and divided like the kingdoms of this world into
-several provinces; that in consequence thereof Peter fixed the seat of
-ecclesiastical dominion at Rome, but afterwards to alleviate the burden
-of his office divided the church into three greater provinces according
-to the division of the world at that time, and appointed a person to
-preside in each who was dignified with the title of Patriarch; that the
-European Patriarch resided at Rome, the Asiatic at Antioch, and the
-African at Alexandria; that the bishops of each province among whom
-there were various ranks, were to reverence the authority of their
-respective patriarchs, and that both bishops and patriarchs were to be
-passively subject to the supreme dominion of the Roman Pontiff. This
-romantic account scarcely deserves a serious refutation.
-
-The _second_ opinion concerning the government of the church makes no
-mention of a supreme head or of patriarchs constituted by a divine
-authority; but it supposes that the apostles divided the Roman empire
-into as many ecclesiastical provinces as there were secular or civil
-ones; that the metropolitan bishops, that is, the prelate who resides
-in the capital city of each province, presides over the clergy of that
-province, and that the other bishops were subject to his authority.
-This opinion has been adopted by some of the most learned of the Romish
-church; and has also been favored by some of the most eminent British
-divines. Some Protestant writers of note have endeavored to prove that
-it is not supported by sufficient evidence.
-
-The _third_ opinion is that of those who acknowledge that when the
-Christians began to multiply exceedingly, metropolitans, patriarchs
-and archbishops were indeed created but only by human appointment and
-authority; though they confess at the same time that it is consonant to
-the orders and intentions of Christ and his apostles that there should
-be in every Christian church one person invested with the highest
-authority and clothed with certain rights and privileges above the
-other doctors of that assembly. This opinion has been embraced by many
-English divines of the first rank in the learned world; and also by
-many in other countries and communions.
-
-The _fourth_, and last opinion is that of the Presbyterians who affirm
-that Christ's intention was that the Christian doctors and {101}
-ministers should all enjoy the same rank and authority without any
-sort of pre-eminence or subordination or distinction of rights and
-privileges.--Mosheim, vol. 1, pages 67, 68. Note--Murdock.
-
-"The truth of the matter is," remarks Dr. Maclaine, "that Christ by
-leaving this matter undetermined, has of consequence, left Christian
-societies a discretionary power of modeling the government of the
-church in such a manner as the circumstantial reasons of times, places,
-etc., may require; and therefore the wisest government of the church is
-the best and the most divine; and every Christian society has a right
-to make laws for itself; provided that these laws are consistent with
-charity and peace and with the fundamental doctrines and principles of
-Christianity." Of this it is only necessary to say that Christ did not
-leave this matter undetermined but established his church government
-as explained in the text of this work. The wisest form of church
-government is that which God gave; it is at the same time the best and
-not only the most divine but the only one that can lay any claim to
-being so; and for the church or any branch thereof to establish any
-other government for itself is an unjustifiable departure from the
-order of God.--Roberts.
-
-6. Authority from God Needful.--We are informed in the
-scriptures, that the Lord wrought special miracles by the hands of
-Paul, whom he had called to be his servant. The sick were healed, and
-evil spirits were cast out of those who were possessed. "Then certain
-of the vagabond Jews, exorcists, took upon them to call over them which
-had evil spirits, the name of the Lord Jesus, saying, We adjure you,
-by Jesus whom Paul preacheth. And there were seven sons, of one Sceva,
-a Jew, and chief of the priests, which did so. And the evil spirit
-answered and said, Jesus I know, and Paul I know, but who are ye? And
-the man in whom the evil spirit was, leaped on them, and overcame them,
-and prevailed against them, so that they fled out of the house, naked
-and wounded."--(Acts xix: 13-16). These men presumptuously took it upon
-themselves to act as those who had authority, and the result was that
-not even the devils would respect their administrations, much less
-the Lord. There is a principle of great moment associated with this
-incident. The question is, if these men, when acting without authority
-from God could not drive out an evil spirit, would their administration
-be of force, or have any virtue in it, had they administered in some
-other ordinance of the gospel, say baptism for the remission of
-sins, or the laying on of hands for the reception of the Holy Ghost?
-Manifestly it would not. Hence we come to the conclusion, so well
-expressed in one of our articles of faith: "A man must be called of God
-by prophecy and by the laying on of hands by those who are in authority
-to preach the gospel and administer in the ordinances thereof."--"The
-Gospel"--Roberts.
-
-{102} REVIEW.
-
-1. What two great purposes were contemplated in Messiah's mission?
-
-2. Relate the fall of man and its consequences.
-
-3. What is general salvation?
-
-4. How do you prove that there will be a general salvation?
-
-5. Why is redemption from Adam's transgression unconditional? (Notes 1
-to 4).
-
-6. How are the claims of justice and mercy balanced in the atonement?
-
-7. Was Messiah's atonement voluntary?
-
-8. What can you say of the love of God as it appears in the atonement?
-
-9. What is meant by individual salvation?
-
-10. In what does it differ from general salvation?
-
-11. By what consideration does mercy mitigate the claims of justice in
-the plan of redemption?
-
-12. What are the conditions of salvation? (Note 6).
-
-13. For what several purposes did Messiah institute his church?
-
-14. Why is it that the description of the Church of Christ is so
-imperfect in the New Testament?
-
-15. Enumerate the powers granted to the Twelve.
-
-16. What other officers did Jesus call to the ministry upon whom he
-bestowed similar powers?
-
-17. What other officers were appointed in the church?
-
-18. Give Paul's description of the church.
-
-19. State the particular objects to be accomplished by the church
-organization.
-
-20. What reasons can you give for believing that the church as
-organized by Messiah is to be perpetuated?
-
-21. What are the four leading opinions in respect to church government?
-(Note 5).
-
-22. What is the truth in respect of church government? (Note 5).
-
-23. Is the Book of Mormon description of church organization more
-complete than that of the New Testament? Why?
-
-24. Give an account of the organization of the church on the western
-hemisphere.
-
-25. What followed the preaching of the gospel and the organization of
-the church on the western hemisphere?
-
-Footnotes
-
-1. It is also called Ephrath [Ef-rath] and Ephratah [Ef-ra-tah.] It was
-the scene of Rachel's death and burial, the native place of Samuel's
-father, the residence of Boaz and Ruth, and the birthplace of David;
-it was also the last rallying point of the remnant of Judah after the
-invasion of Nebuchadnezzar.
-
-2. Micah v: 2.
-
-3. Luke 1:28-38.
-
-4. Canon Farrar translates this splendid passage: "Glory to God in the
-highest, and on earth peace among men of good will," maintaining that
-such is the reading of the best Mss. Dear to us as the reading in King
-James' translation of the Bible is, if looked upon as announcing the
-effect of Christianity in this world--"On earth peace among men of good
-will," comes more nearly to the truth than "on earth peace, good will
-toward men."
-
-5. Matt. ii: 2.
-
-6. III Nephi i: 21.
-
-7. III Nephi i: 13.
-
-8. III Nephi i: 15-19.
-
-9. Matt. ii: 18.
-
-10. Matt. ii: 23.
-
-11. I have condensed much of the matter in the first part of this
-section from the learned works of D'Aubigne, Dr. Mosheim, Gibbon and
-Josephus, sometimes using even their phraseology without further
-acknowledgement than this note.--The Author.
-
-12. Epistle to Romans i: 18-32.
-
-13. See note 7, end of section.
-
-14. Dr. Lardner.
-
-15. See "The First Gospel of the Infancy," Apocryphal New Testament
-(Colley & Rich, publishers, Boston, 1891.)
-
-16. Luke i.
-
-17. Matt. iii.
-
-18. Luke iii.
-
-19. Matt. iii.
-
-20. Luke iii.
-
-21. John i:19-23.
-
-22. The location of Bethabara is uncertain.
-
-23. Matt. iii.
-
-24. Matt. iii.
-
-25. John i:33.
-
-26. Matt. iv.
-
-27. That is, vain fellow.
-
-28. Doc. and Cov. lxxxiv:17-27.
-
-29. Biblical Literature.--Kitto.
-
-30. Matt. x.
-
-31. Matt. x.
-
-32. Compare Luke x with Matt. x.
-
-33. Luke x.
-
-34. John v.
-
-35. John iii.
-
-36. John iii.
-
-37. John iv.
-
-38. John v:24-30.
-
-39. John v:39-47, vii:14-18.
-
-40. John v:32-35.
-
-41. John v:36; x:25.
-
-42. John v:37, 39.
-
-43. Mark xi:5.
-
-44. Matt. iv:16-24.
-
-45. Matt. iv:16-24.
-
-46. Mark xii.
-
-47. John xi.
-
-48. Matt. ii.
-
-49. John v:1-18.
-
-50. John v:17, 18.
-
-51. John xii.
-
-52. Luke xxii. Matt. xxvi.
-
-53. John xviii:36.
-
-54. Luke alone calls it _Calvary_; Matthew, Mark and John call it
-Golgotha. They each have reference to the same place, which was known
-by the two different names.
-
-55. III Nephi viii.
-
-56. Those predictions are found in the following passages: John
-ii:18-22; x:17, 18; xiii:31-33. Matt. xii:38=42; xvi:21-23; xvii:1-9;
-Mark ix:30-32; x:32-34.
-
-57. Matt. xxviii.
-
-58. John xx:14-17.
-
-59. Matt. xxviii:9.
-
-60. Luke xxiv:13-31.
-
-61. Luke xxiv:34 and I Cor. xv:5.
-
-62. John xx:19.
-
-63. John xx:26; Mark xvi:14.
-
-64. John xxi:1-24.
-
-65. Matt. xxviii:16.
-
-66. I Cor. xv:6.
-
-67. I Cor. xv:7.
-
-68. I Cor. xv:8.
-
-69. Acts i.
-
-70. Matt. xviii.
-
-71. Mark xvi:16.
-
-72. Luke xxiv:49, 53; Acts i.
-
-73. Acts i; Matt. xvi.
-
-74. John x:16.
-
-75. III Nephi xv:18.
-
-76. III Nephi xv:21.
-
-77. III Nephi xi:12.
-
-78. Section V, paragraph 14.
-
-79. The land Bountiful was in the northern part of South America.
-
-80. III Nephi xi:14.
-
-81. See John xxi:21-25; III Nephi xxviii.
-
-82. Let those who would be more minutely informed upon the ministry
-of Messiah on the western hemisphere, study carefully the book of III
-Nephi, where the history of that important event is recorded, and which
-book has been called--a "Fifth Gospel."
-
-83. It must be remembered, that Jesus told the Nephites that he was
-going to visit the lost tribes whom the Father had led away. They, too,
-were to have the gospel preached to them (III Nephi xv and xvi.)
-
-84. In his "Comment de Rebus Christ," p. 78-80, the learned Dr.
-Mosheim has a note on this passage in which his aim is to prove that
-the correct translation from the Greek of the phrase usually rendered
-"they gave forth their lots," should be "they gave their votes."
-While it is but proper to say that the Doctor's translation is very
-generally rejected by the learned, still there will be no question with
-those who understand the order of the priesthood and the manner of
-filling vacancies in its quorums, that Dr. Mosheim is correct in his
-interpretation as to the meaning of the passage.
-
-85. IV Nephi i:14.
-
-86. Pentecost came fifty days after the Passover, on which day the
-Lord Jesus was crucified. Allowing that he lay three days in the tomb
-and was with his disciples forty days after his resurrection (Acts
-i:3), forty-three days of the fifty between Passover and Pentecost
-are accounted for, leaving but seven days between ascension and the
-day of Pentecost, when the promise of the baptism of the spirit was
-fulfilled.--"The Gospel," note p. 177.
-
-87. Luke iii:16. Matt. iii:2. Acts i:4, 5.
-
-88. The languages spoken are enumerated by the writer of The Acts
-ii:9-11.
-
-89. Joel ii:28.
-
-90. I think it proper here to call the attention of the student to the
-fact that the principles of the gospel in this discourse of Peter's
-are stated in the same order that they were unfolded in the ministry
-of John the Baptist and Messiah. First, John came bearing witness of
-one who should come after him--Christ, the Lord. Hence, he taught faith
-in God (John i:15, 16, also verses 19-36). After that, the burden of
-his message was, "Repent, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand;" then
-followed his baptism in water with a promise that they should receive
-the Holy Ghost. So Peter first taught the people faith in the Lord,
-proving from the scripture that Jesus was both Lord and Christ; and
-when they believed that, then he taught them repentance and baptism for
-the remission of sins, and promised them the Holy Ghost.
-
-91. Acts ii:38, 39.
-
-92. Acts iv:9.
-
-93. Acts v:26-32.
-
-94. Acts v:34-42.
-
-95. It is generally supposed by Biblical scholars, Mosheim, Neander,
-Kitto, Murdock and many others, that these men were deacons only.
-There is nothing, however, in the Acts of the Apostles or other parts
-of the New Testament which would lead one to believe that such was
-the case. We have evidence on the other hand that one of them at
-least held a higher priesthood than the office of deacon. In modern
-revelation we have it stated that neither teachers nor deacons have
-authority to baptize, administer the sacrament or lay on hands for the
-Holy Ghost (Doc. and Cov., sec. xx:58); yet we have Philip, one of the
-seven, going down into Samaria, teaching the gospel "and baptizing the
-people" (Acts viii), hence we may know that he held a higher priesthood
-than that of deacon. Yet when it became necessary to confer the Holy
-Ghost upon these same converts by the laying on of hands, Philip, it
-would seem, had not the authority to do it; but the Apostles hearing
-that Samaria had received the word, sent Peter and John down and
-they conferred upon the Samaritans the Holy Ghost. And though Philip
-was present he appears to have taken no part in it. It is therefore
-reasonable to conclude that since Philip had authority to baptize, he
-therefore must have held an office higher than that of deacon, or even
-of teacher; but since he evidently had not authority to lay on hands
-for the gift of the Holy Ghost, his office was something less than that
-of an Elder. Hence it is most likely that he was a priest--priests
-have the right to baptize but not to lay on hands for the reception
-of the Holy Ghost (Doc. and Cov. sec. xx)--as perhaps also were his
-six associates, appointed to preside over the temporal affairs of the
-Church, especially to see after the poor.
-
-96. Acts iv:32-37.
-
-97. Acts viii. The student will observe that the same order of
-presenting and accepting the gospel is observed in the account given of
-its introduction into Samaria as was observed in the teaching of John
-the Baptist and Jesus, and also of Peter, on the day of Pentecost.
-
-98. Acts ix.
-
-99. Matt. xv:24.
-
-100. John xii:32.
-
-101. This case of Cornelius marks an exception--the only one recorded
-in the New Testament--to that order in the gospel to which attention
-has been drawn several times in this section; that is, these Gentiles
-received the Holy Ghost before baptism in water. The object of the
-deviation from the rule is obvious. It was that the Jews might have a
-witness from God that the gospel was for the Gentiles as well as for
-the house of Israel. But according to the Scriptures, and I may say
-according to the nature and relationship of these several principles
-and ordinances of the gospel to each other, the reception of the Holy
-Ghost comes after repentance and baptism, the one leading up logically
-to the other, which follows in beautiful and harmonious sequence.
-
-102. Col. i:23.
-
-103. Dan. xii:2.
-
-104. John v:26, 28, 29.
-
-105. Doc. and Cov. lxxvi:17.
-
-106. Rev. xx:12, 13.
-
-107. Rom. v:18. See whole chapter.
-
-108. Cor. xv:21-26.
-
-109. Mormon ix:12, 13. Other evidences from the Nephite scriptures will
-be found in Alma xi:40-44. III Nephi xxvii:13-15. II Nephi ii. Mosiah
-xv:18-27. Alma xxxiv:7-17. Alma xiii:1-26.
-
-110. See "The World's Sixteen Crucified Saviors," by Kersey Graves.
-
-111. John v:26.
-
-112. Mediation and Atonement, xxiv.
-
-113. John x:17, 18.
-
-114. Matt. xxvi:53, 54.
-
-115. I John iv:9.
-
-116. John iii:16, 17.
-
-117. Isaiah liii:5, 6.
-
-118. I Cor. vi:19, 20.
-
-119. Doc. and Cov., sec. xix:16-18. See also Mosiah iii:20, 21. "The
-Gospel," Roberts, page 29.
-
-120. Matt. xxviii:18-20.
-
-121. Acts iv:12.
-
-122. Acts ii:22-47. Acts viii:5-25.
-
-123. II Cor. vii:8-10.
-
-124. Rom. vi:3-5.
-
-125. Acts viii:14-18.
-
-126. The injunction placed upon those who accept the faith of the
-gospel is that they add to their faith virtue; and to virtue,
-knowledge; and to knowledge, temperance; and to temperance, patience;
-and to patience, godliness; and to godliness, brotherly kindness; and
-to brotherly kindness, charity. For if these things be in you, and
-abound they make you that ye shall neither be barren nor unfruitful
-in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ. (II Peter i:5-8.)--"The
-Gospel," page 37.
-
-127. Mark xvi. I Cor. xii.
-
-128. Matt. x. Acts i:4-8.
-
-129. Compare Luke x with Matt. x.
-
-130. Acts i:3.
-
-131. Acts xiv:23. Acts xx:17, 28.
-
-132. Phil. i:1. Titus i:5-7.
-
-133. I Cor. xii:28-30.
-
-134. Eph. iv:10.
-
-135. I Cor. xii.
-
-136. Eph. iv.
-
-137. John xv:16.
-
-138. Acts v:1-6.
-
-139. Acts xiii:1-3.
-
-140. Acts xiv:2, 3.
-
-141. Acts xx:28, 29.
-
-142. Heb. v:1, 5.
-
-143. Ex. xxviii:1.
-
-144. III Nephi xxvi:6, 7.
-
-145. III Nephi xii.
-
-146. III Nephi xi.
-
-147. III Nephi xxvii:37; also Moroni ii.
-
-148. III Nephi xxvii and IV Nephi i:1.
-
-149. Moroni iii.
-
-150. Moroni vi.
-
-151. IV Nephi i:1-7.
-
-{103}
-
-
-
-PART II.
-
-THE APOSTASY.
-
-{105}
-
-
-
-SECTION I.
-
-In Part I, our narrative was confined mainly to those propitious
-circumstances which made for the successful introduction of the gospel
-and the founding of the church of Christ. In Part II, we are to deal
-with those adverse events which led finally to the subversion of the
-Christian religion. We commence with the
-
-1. Persecution of the Christians by the Jews.--The Messiah
-forewarned his disciples that they would be persecuted by the world,
-pointed out the reasons for it, and comforted them by reminding them
-that the world had hated him before it hated them; that the servant
-was not greater than his lord; and for that matter all the prophets
-which were before them had been persecuted by the generations in which
-they lived, and that, for the reason that they were not of the world,
-therefore the world hated and destroyed them.[1]
-
-2. Two special reasons may be assigned for the persecution
-of the saints by the Jews. 1. They looked upon Christianity as a
-rival religion to Judaism, a thing of itself sufficient to engender
-bitterness, jealousy, persecution. 2. If Christianity should live and
-obtain a respectable standing, the Jews of that generation must ever
-be looked upon as not only putting an innocent man to death, but as
-rejecting and slaying the Son of God. To crush this rival religion
-and escape the odium which the successful establishment of it would
-inevitably fix upon them, were the incentives which prompted that first
-general persecution which arose against the church in Jerusalem, and
-that commenced in the very first year after Messiah's ascension.
-
-{106} 3. The extent of the persecution or the time of its
-continuance may not be determined; but that it was murderous may be
-learned from the fact that Stephen was slain,[2] as was also James, the
-son of Zebedee,[3] and James, the Just, brother of the Lord.[4] The
-Apostle Peter was imprisoned and would doubtless have shared the fate
-of the other martyrs, but that he was delivered by an angel.[5]
-
-4. Nor was this persecution confined alone to Jerusalem; on
-the contrary the hate-blinded high priests and elders of the Jews in
-Palestine conferred with the Jews throughout the Roman provinces,
-and everywhere incited them to hatred of the Christians, exhorting
-them to have no connection with, and to do all in their power to
-destroy the "superstition," as the Christian religion was then
-called. Nor were they content with what they themselves could do,
-but they exhausted their ingenuity in efforts to incite the Romans
-against them. To accomplish this they charged that the Christians had
-treasonable designs against the Roman government, as "appeared by their
-acknowledging as their king one Jesus, a malefactor whom Pilate had
-most justly put to death." [6]
-
-5. The Jews themselves, however, were in no great favor with
-the Romans since their impatience of Roman restraint led them to be
-constantly on the eve of rebellion and sedition, and frequently to
-break out into deeds of violence against the Roman authority. This lack
-of favor rendered the power of the Jews unequal to their malice against
-the church of Christ.
-
-6. The imperious nation, too, whose forefathers had rejected
-the prophets and at the last had crucified the Son of God with every
-circumstance of cruelty, crying out in the streets of their holy city,
-"crucify him, and let his blood be upon us and on our children," [7]
-were about to meet the calamities which their wickedness called down
-upon them. The Roman emperor Vespasian {107} [Ves-pa-zhe-an], tired
-of their repeated seditions, at last sent an army under Titus to
-subjugate them. The Jews made a stubborn resistance and a terrible
-war followed. Jerusalem, crowded with people who had come into the
-city from the surrounding country to attend the Passover, was besieged
-for six months, during which time more than a million of her wretched
-inhabitants perished of famine. The city was finally taken, the walls
-thereof thrown down and the temple so completely destroyed that not
-one stone was left upon another. Thousands of Jews were cut to pieces
-and nearly a hundred thousand of those taken captive were sent into
-slavery.[8] All the calamities predicted by the Messiah[9] befell the
-city and people. Jerusalem from that time until now has been trodden
-down of the Gentiles; and will be until the times of the Gentiles are
-fulfilled.
-
-7. According to Eusebius, the Christians escaped these calamities
-which befell the Jews; for the whole body of the church at Jerusalem,
-having been commanded by divine revelation, given to men of approved
-piety, removed from Jerusalem before the war and dwelt at Pella, beyond
-Jordan, where they were secure from the calamities of those times.[10]
-
-8. Persecution by the Romans.--It is more difficult to
-understand why the Romans should persecute the Christians than it is
-to see why the Jews did it. The Romans were polytheists, and affected
-the fullest religious liberty. The author of the "Decline and Fall of
-the Roman Empire" claims that this period of Roman history was the
-golden age of religious liberty. And such was the multitude of deities
-collected in Rome from various nations, and such the variety of worship
-to be seen in the great capital of the empire, that Gibbon has said:
-
- Rome gradually became the common temple of her subjects; and {108}
- the freedom of the city was bestowed on all the gods of mankind.[11]
-
-Furthermore, the same high authority says:
-
- The various modes of worship which prevailed in the Roman world,
- were all considered by the people as being equally true; by the
- philosophers as all equally false; and by the magistrates as
- equally useful. And thus toleration produced not only mutual
- indulgences, but even religious concord.
-
-9. The student who would learn why the mild and beautiful
-Christian religion was alone selected to bear the wrath and feel the
-vengeful power of Rome, must look deeper than the reasons usually
-assigned for the strange circumstance. It is superficial to say that
-the persecution was caused by the charges of immorality. The Roman
-authorities had the best of evidence that the charges were false. (See
-note 1, end of section). Equally absurd is it to assign as a cause
-the supposed atheism of the Christians, for that was the condition
-of nearly all Rome; while the charge that they were traitors to the
-emperor, and expected to see the empire supplanted by the kingdom of
-Christ--which some assign as the chief cause of Roman persecution--was
-treated with contempt by the emperors. (See note 2, end of section).
-
-10. The true cause of the persecution was this: Satan knew there
-was no power of salvation in the idolatrous worship of the heathen,
-and hence let them live on in peace, but when Jesus of Nazareth and
-his followers came, in the authority of God, preaching the gospel,
-he recognized in that the principles and power against which he had
-rebelled in heaven, and stirred up the hearts of men to rebellion
-against the truth to overthrow it. This was the real cause of
-persecution, though it lurked under a variety of pretexts, the most of
-which are named in the above supposed causes.
-
-11. The First Roman Persecution.--The first emperor {109} to
-enact laws for the extermination of Christians was Nero. (See note
-3, end of section). His decrees against them originated rather in an
-effort to shield himself from popular fury than any desire that he
-had to protect the religion of the State against the advancement of
-Christianity. Nero, wishing to witness a great conflagration, had
-set fire to the city of Rome. The flames utterly consumed three of
-the fourteen wards into which the city was divided, and spread ruin
-in seven others. It was in vain that the emperor tried to soothe the
-indignant and miserable citizens whose all had been consumed by the
-flames, and neither the magnificence of the prince, nor his attempted
-expiation of the gods could remove from him the infamy of having
-ordered the conflagration.
-
-12. Therefore, [writes Tacitus, one of the most trustworthy of
-all historians], to stop the clamor Nero falsely accused and subjugated
-to the most exquisite punishments a people hated for their crimes,
-called Christians. The founder of the sect, Christ, was executed in the
-reign of Tiberius, by the Procurator Pontius Pilate. The pernicious
-superstition, repressed for a time, burst forth again; not only
-through Judea, the birth-place of the evil, but at Rome also, where
-everything atrocious and base centers and is in repute. Those first
-seized, confessed; then a vast multitude, detected by their means, were
-convicted, not so much of the crime of burning the city as of hatred
-of mankind. And insult was added to their torments; for being clad in
-skins of wild beasts they were torn to pieces by dogs; or affixed to
-crosses to be burned, were used as lights to dispel the darkness of
-night, when the day was gone. Nero devoted his garden to the show,
-and held circensian [sir-sen-shan] games, mixing with the rabble, or
-mounting a chariot, clad like a coachman. Hence, though the guilty and
-those meriting the severest punishment, suffered, yet compassion was
-excited, because they were destroyed, not for the public good, but to
-satisfy the cruelty of an individual.[12]
-
-13. Time of the Persecution.--The time of this persecution {110}
-is fixed by the date of the great conflagration, which Tacitus set down
-as commencing on the 18th of July, A. D. 65. It lasted six days; and
-soon after that the persecution broke out.
-
-14. Continuance and Extent of the Persecution.--How long this
-persecution lasted, and whether it was confined to the city of Rome
-or extended throughout the empire is difficult to determine. From
-some remarks made by Tertullian [Ter-tul-li-an], writing in the next
-century, it would seem that the decrees of Nero against the Christians
-of Rome were general laws, such as those afterwards passed by Domitian.
-But the inferences of his language are generally discredited or
-accounted the result of Tertullian's fervid rhetoric; and Gibbon's
-conclusion that the persecution was confined within the walls of Rome
-generally accepted. [13] It was in this persecution, according to the
-tradition of the early Christian fathers, that Peter and Paul suffered
-martyrdom.
-
-15. The Second Persecution.--The second persecution against the
-Christian church broke out in the year A. D. 93 or 94, under the reign
-of Domitian. It was during this persecution that the Apostle John
-was banished to Patmos. Eusebius states that at the same time, for
-professing Christ, Flavi Domitilla, the niece of Flavius Clemens, one
-of the consuls of Rome at the time, "was transported with many others,
-by way of punishment, to the island of Pontia." The pretext for this
-persecution is ascribed to the fears of Domitian that he would lose
-his empire. A rumor reached him that a person would arise from the
-relatives of Messiah who would attempt a revolution; whereupon the
-jealous nature of the emperor prompted him to begin this persecution.
-In it both Jews and Christians suffered, the emperor ordering that
-the descendants of David, especially, should be put to death. An
-investigation of the prospects of a revolution arising from such a
-quarter caused Domitian to dismiss {111} the matter with contempt and
-order the persecution to cease.[14] (See note 2, end of section).
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Pliny's Testimony to the Morality of the Christians.--The
-character which this writer gives of the Christians of that age (his
-celebrated letter was written to Trajan early in the second century),
-and which was drawn from a pretty accurate inquiry, because he
-considered their moral principles as the point in which the magistrate
-was interested, is as follows: He tells the emperor that some of
-those who had relinquished the society, or who, to save themselves
-pretended that they had relinquished it, affirmed "that they were
-wont to meet together on a stated day, before it was light, and sang
-among themselves alternately a hymn to Christ as a God; and to bind
-themselves by an oath, not to the commission of any wickedness, but
-that they would not be guilty of theft, or robbery, or adultery; that
-they would never falsify their word, or deny a pledge committed to
-them when called upon to return it." This proves that a morality more
-pure and strict than was ordinary, prevailed at that time in Christian
-societies.--Paley's "Evidences."
-
-2. Interview of Domitian and the Relatives of the Lord.--There
-were yet living of the family of our Lord the grandchildren of
-Judas, called the brother of our Lord according to the flesh. These
-were reported as being of the family of David, and were brought to
-Domitian by the evocaties. For this emperor was as much alarmed at
-the appearance of Christ as Herod. He put the question whether they
-were of David's race and they confessed that they were. He then asked
-them what property they had, or how much money they owned. And both of
-them answered, that they had between them only nine thousand denarii,
-and this they had not in silver, but in the value of a piece of land,
-containing only thirty-nine acres; from which they raised their taxes
-and supported themselves by their own labor. Then they also began to
-show their hands, exhibiting the hardness of their bodies, and the
-callosity formed by incessant labor on their hands, as evidence of
-their own labor. When asked also, respecting Christ and his kingdom,
-what was its nature, and when and where it was to appear, they replied
-that it was not a temporal nor an earthly kingdom, but celestial
-and angelic; that it would appear at the end of the world, {112}
-when coming in glory he would judge the quick and the dead, and give
-to every one according to his works. Upon which Domitian despising
-them, made no reply; but treating them with contempt, as simpletons,
-commanded them to be dismissed, and by a decree ordered the persecution
-to cease.--Hegesippus, quoted by Eusebius.
-
-3. Character of Nero.--Nero was the incarnation of depravity--the
-very name by which men are accustomed to express the fury of
-unrestrained malignity. Bad as he was, he was not worse than Rome. She
-had but her due. Nay, when he died the rabble and the slaves crowned
-his statue with garlands and scattered flowers over his grave. And
-why not? Nero never injured the rabble, never oppressed the slave. He
-murdered his mother, his brother, his wife, and was the tyrant of the
-wealthy, the terror of the successful. He rendered poverty sweet, for
-poverty alone was secure; he rendered slavery tolerable, for slaves
-alone or slavish men were promoted to power. The reign of Nero was the
-golden reign of the populace, and the holiday of the bondman.--Bancroft.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. Of what did Messiah warn his followers?
-
-2. What reason may be assigned for the hatred of the world towards the
-people of God?
-
-3. What special reason can you assign for the persecution of the
-Christians by the Jews?
-
-4. What can you say of the bitterness and extent of the first great
-persecution?
-
-5. What circumstance rendered the Jewish power to injure the Christians
-unequal to the malice?
-
-6. Describe the great conflict between the Jews and the Romans.
-
-7. By what means did the Christians living at Jerusalem escape the
-calamities of those times?
-
-8. What makes it difficult to understand why the Romans persecuted the
-Christians?
-
-9. What can you say of the charges of immorality as justifying Roman
-persecution? (Note 1).
-
-10. What of the charge of treason? (Note 2).
-
-11. What was the true cause of the persecution?
-
-12. Who was the first emperor to enact laws against the Christians?
-
-13. What was the character of Nero? (Note 3).
-
-14. What was the incentive which prompted Nero to persecute the
-Christians?
-
-{113} 15. What was the duration and extent of the first Roman
-persecution?
-
-16. Under whose reign did the second Roman persecution begin?
-
-17. On what was the persecution based?
-
-{114}
-
-
-
-SECTION II.
-
-1. Condition of the Church in the Second Century.--During
-the second century the church had many seasons of immunity from
-persecution. The Roman emperors for the most part were of a mild and
-equitable character, and at the beginning of the century there were
-no laws against the Christians, as those enacted both by Nero and
-Domitian had been repealed. The first by the senate, the second by his
-successor, Nerva.[15] Still it must not be supposed that the saints
-were free from persecution. Their troubles arose, however, rather from
-the tumults of the rabble at the instigation of the pagan priests than
-from any desire of the emperors to oppress them.
-
-2. As the Christians had no temples, no altars, no clouds of
-incense, no smoking victims--in short, as they had none of the pomp and
-circumstance in their simple religion which attended pagan worship,
-they were open to the charge of atheism by the great body of the people
-of the Roman empire; and, in their judgment, deserved the severest
-tortures and death.
-
- If the empire had been afflicted by any recent calamity, [remarks
- Gibbon], by a plague, a famine, or an unsuccessful war; if the
- Tiber had, or if the Nile had not, risen above its banks; if the
- earth had shaken, or if the temperate order of the seasons had
- been interrupted, the superstitious pagans were convinced that the
- crimes and impurities of the Christians, who were spared by the
- excessive lenity of the government, had at length, provoked the
- divine justice.[16]
-
-And however virtuous the emperors were, however mild or equitable in
-character the governors of the provinces, it is certain {115} they did
-not hesitate to appease the rage of the people by sacrificing a few
-obnoxious victims.
-
-3. The Persecution Under Marcus Aurelius.--The strangest fact
-of all connected with the persecutions of this century is that the
-saints suffered most under the most virtuous of the emperors--Marcus
-Aurelius [Mar-cus Au-re-li-us], who allowed the judges to put many of
-the saints accused of crime to torture. Among those of note who fell in
-this persecution were Polycarp, the bishop of Smyrna (see note 1, end
-of section.) and Justin Martyr, the philosopher. The persecution was
-most severe in Gaul (France), the churches of Lyons and Vienne being
-well nigh utterly destroyed. The unparalleled cruelties practiced upon
-the saints in those cities are related at length by Eusebius[17] in
-letters written by those who survived the persecution. (See note 2, end
-of section.)
-
-4. Edicts of Severus.--Early in the third century a law was
-enacted by the Emperor, Severus [Se-ver-us,] making it criminal
-for any reason to abandon the religion of his fathers for that of
-the Christians or the Jews. The object of the law was to stay the
-propagation of Christianity which was spreading abroad on every hand;
-and while it was not intended to increase the hardships of those
-already Christians, it nevertheless encouraged the governors and judges
-of some of the provinces--especially those of Egypt and other parts of
-Africa and Asia--to sorely afflict the saints. Many of the poor were
-put to death--thousands of them if we may credit Eusebius--and many
-of the rich intimidated into paying large sums of money to the judges
-to secure them from torture and death. Still this persecution was not
-long continued, nor was it general throughout the empire, and after
-it subsided there was a long period of peace--pity it is that we have
-to say that it was more hurtful to the church than the periods of the
-cruelest persecution.
-
-{116} 5. Persecution Under Decius Trajan.--In the middle of
-this century under Decius Trajan [De-ci-us Tra-jan] the severest and
-most disastrous persecution of all befell the Christians. The emperor
-must have been impelled both by his fear of the Christians and his
-attachment to the ancient religion of the Romans to publish his
-terrible edicts by which he hoped to destroy the Christian church. The
-governors of the provinces were ordered, on pain of forfeiting their
-own lives, either to exterminate all Christians utterly, or bring them
-back by pains and tortures to the religion of their fathers. Even
-Gibbon, whose constant effort is to belittle the sufferings of the
-early Christians, says of this persecution:
-
- The bishops of the most considerable cities were removed by exile
- or death; the vigilance of the magistrates prevented the clergy of
- Rome during sixteen months from proceeding to a new election and
- it was the opinion of the Christians that the emperor would more
- patiently endure a competitor for the purple than a bishop in the
- capital.[18]
-
-6. For more than two years the persecution raged with unmitigated
-fury; and great multitudes of Christians, in all the Roman provinces,
-were butchered in the most inhuman manner.
-
- This persecution, [writes Dr. Mosheim], was more cruel and
- terrific than any which preceded it; and immense numbers,
- dismayed, not so much by the fear of death as by the dread of
- the long continued tortures by which the magistrates endeavored
- to overcome the constancy of the Christians, professed to
- renounce Christ, and procured for themselves safety, either by
- sacrificing--i. e., offering incense before the idols--or by
- certificates purchased with money.[19] (See note 3, end of section.)
-
-7. The immediate successors of Decius continued this persecution,
-which with a pestilential disease which prevailed in many of the Roman
-provinces, greatly increased the hardships {117} of the saints; but the
-latter part of the century passed away in peace.
-
-8. The Diocletian Persecution.--In the commencement of the fourth
-century a peculiar state of affairs existed in the Roman empire. In 284
-A. D., Diocletian [Di-o-kle-shan], a native of Dalmatia [Dal-ma-shi-a],
-whose parents were slaves, was proclaimed emperor. The year following,
-feeling that the extent of the empire was too vast to be managed by
-a single mind, he chose a colleague, one Maximian [Max-im-i-an], an
-unlettered soldier, with whom he shared the authority of emperor and
-the title of "Augustus." Soon afterwards they each chose a colleague
-with whom they shared their authority. These were Constantinus
-[Con-stan-ti-nus] Chlorus [Klo-rus] and Galerius [Ga-le-ri-us]. On
-their ascension to this honor they each took the title of "Caesar," and
-so matters stood at the opening of the fourth century.
-
-9. The church had peace at the opening of this century, and
-at first there were no indications that it would be broken. But
-early within that period Diocletian was persuaded to undertake the
-suppression of the Christian religion. This he attempted by demanding
-that the Christians give up their sacred books; if they refused they
-were put to death. The constancy of all the Christians, no, not even
-that of all their bishops and clergy, was equal to this trial, and many
-voluntarily surrendered the sacred writings in their possession, to
-save themselves from punishment and death.
-
-10. The royal palace at Nicomedia being twice set on fire,
-soon after the first edict of Diocletian was published, the crime
-was charged to the Christians, and led to the issuance of a second
-edict which caused many Christians to suffer the penalties inflicted
-on incendiaries--torture and death. Following this came rebellion
-against Roman authority in Nicomedia and Syria. This too was charged
-to the intrigue of Christians (see notes 4 and 5, end of section), and
-was made a pretext for {118} throwing all bishops and ministers into
-prison. A third edict authorized the employment of torture to compel
-them to offer sacrifices to the gods of the heathen. It was hoped by
-Diocletian that if these leaders of the church could be forced into
-acts of apostasy the people would follow. A great multitude, therefore,
-of excellent men in all parts of Christendom--excepting Gaul--were put
-to death, and others condemned to labor in the mines.
-
-11. But Diocletian was disappointed in the effects of these
-assaults on the leaders of the church. The members thereof remained
-obdurate in their adherence to the Christian faith; whereupon he issued
-a fourth edict, directing the magistrates to compel all Christians to
-offer sacrifice to the gods and to use tortures for that purpose. As
-the governors yielded strict obedience to these orders, the Christian
-church was reduced to the last extremity.[20]
-
- 12. With the exception of Gaul, [says Schlegel], streams
- of Christian blood flowed in the provinces of the Roman empire.
- Everywhere the Christian temples lay in ruins, and assemblies
- for worship were all suspended. The major part had forsaken the
- provinces and taken refuge among the barbarians. Such as were
- unable or unwilling to do this, kept themselves concealed, and were
- afraid for their lives if they appeared in public. The ministers
- of Christ were either slain, or mutilated and sent to the mines,
- or banished from the country. The avaricious magistrates had
- seized upon nearly all their church property and their private
- possessions. Many, through dread of undergoing torture, had made
- away with their own lives and many apostatized from the faith; and
- what remained of the Christian community consisted of weak, poor,
- and timorous persons. [21]
-
-Truly it would appear from this that the beast unto whom was given
-power "to make war with the saints and overcome them" [22] had at last
-triumphed.
-
-{119} 13. End of Pagan Persecution.--This, however, was to be
-the last great persecution of the Christians by the heathens. In
-305 Diocletian, to the surprise of his own and all succeeding ages,
-resigned the empire and compelled his associate, Maximian, to do the
-same. This left the empire in the hands of the two Caesars, who became
-the emperors. Like their predecessors they chose colleagues; but
-Constantius Chlorus, dying at York, in Britain, his son, Constantine
-[Kon-stan-tin], afterwards called the Great, was proclaimed emperor by
-the army. The associate of his father, Galerius, and the two Caesars
-refused to ratify the election, and civil war ensued which lasted for
-eighteen years. Finally, however, Constantine prevailed over all his
-rivals and became sole emperor, A. D., 323. Being, like his father,
-favorably disposed towards Christianity, his accession to the throne
-brought universal peace to the church.
-
-14. The Luminous Cross Seen by Constantine.--It was during
-the above-mentioned civil war, while marching against the forces
-of Maxentius [Max-en-ti-us], one of the rebellious Caesars, that
-Constantine and his army are said to have seen near midday, in the
-heavens, a luminous cross bearing this inscription in Greek: "By This
-Conquer." The same night Christ appeared to him in a dream accompanied
-with the same sign and instructed him to make a standard bearing the
-cross as a protection against his enemies. The circumstance is related
-at great length in the life of Constantine by Eusebius, on whose
-sole authority the story rests. It is regarded as suspicious that he
-makes no reference to the matter in Ecclesiastical History, written
-only twelve years after the event. (See note 7, end of section.)
-The story is altogether rejected by some writers as the cunning
-invention of interested priests seeking to make the cross an object of
-veneration; and even Christian writers of high standing--among them
-Mosheim--consider the story to be doubtful.
-
-15. Constantine and his Friendliness to Christianity.--With
-{120} the accession of Constantine to the imperial throne, as before
-remarked, the peace of the church was assured. His father had favored
-the Christians, and in the cruel persecution under Diocletian, he kept
-the provinces of Gaul free from the effusion of Christian blood; and
-his son seems to have fallen heir to his father's friendliness for the
-Christian faith.
-
-16. It is difficult to determine the motives of Constantine for
-favoring the Christian cause and resolving upon the destruction of the
-pagan religion. Whether it was the appearance of the miraculous cross
-in the heavens, as some aver, the influence of Helena, his mother,[23]
-as Theodoret claims, or through the arguments of an Egyptian priest
-who promised him absolution for the crime of murder if he would accept
-Christianity.[24] But let the motive be what it may, benevolence,
-policy, conviction or remorse, coupled with a hope of forgiveness,
-Constantine from the time of his accession to the throne became
-the avowed protector of the Christian church; and at length by his
-powerful influence made Christianity the reigning religion of the Roman
-empire.[25] The exiles were recalled; those condemned to labor in the
-mines were released; those who had been robbed of their property were
-reinstated in their possessions, and the demolished Christian temples
-were ordered to be rebuilt and enlarged. The church militant after
-the emperor's edicts of toleration became the church tranquil, so far
-as external opposition was concerned. Her ministers were welcomed to
-the court of the emperor, admitted to the imperial table, and even
-accompanied the monarch in his expeditions. Wealth, honor and imperial
-patronage were bestowed almost without measure on the Christian church.
-From the position of a despised, persecuted religion, Christianity
-was suddenly exalted to {121} the very throne of the Roman world. Yet
-these things which are usually accounted among the good fortunes of
-the church, were, as we shall yet see, disastrous to the purity of the
-Christian religion.
-
-17. Progress of the Church Under the Patronage of
-Constantine.--The court of Constantine was converted, of course;
-but it is to be feared that it was the hope of wealth and honor, the
-example of the emperor, his exhortations, his irresistible smile,
-rather than the truths of Christianity which wrought a change in the
-hearts of the obsequious crowd that filled the palace. A number of
-cities manifested a forward zeal in a voluntary destruction of their
-temples and idols, but it is more than likely that the municipal
-distinctions and popular donations which were held out as a reward
-for such conduct, rather than belief in the Christian faith are what
-inspired the iconoclasts. Twelve thousand men and a proportionate
-number of women and children were baptized in a single year in Rome;
-but how far did the twenty pieces of gold and a white garment promised
-to each convert by the emperor influence the conversion of this
-great number? Nor was the influence of Constantine in respect to the
-Christian religion confined within the provinces of the empire. It
-extended to the barbarous peoples outside; who, while they had held
-in disdain a despised and proscribed sect, soon learned to esteem a
-religion which had been so lately embraced by the greatest monarch, and
-the most civilized nation of the globe.[26]
-
-18. The Character of Constantine.--It is as difficult to come to
-a right conclusion as to the real character of Constantine as it is to
-decide the motives which led him to accept the Christian religion; for
-in the former as in the latter case the authorities are conflicting.
-The Christians who were favored by his actions extol him for his
-virtues; while the pagans who were despoiled by him, execrate him for
-his crimes. It is {122} certain, however, that he put to death his own
-son Crispus, and his wife Fausta, on a suspicion that was at least
-precarious. He cut off his brother-in-law Licinius, and his offending
-son, contrary to his plighted word; and, according to Schlegel and
-Gibbon, he was much addicted to pride and voluptuousness:
-
- He pursued the great objects of his ambition through the dark and
- bloody paths of war and policy, and after the victory, abandoned
- himself without moderation to the abuse of his good fortune. As
- he advanced in years he seems to have declined in the practice of
- virtue, blighting in his old age, when a convert to the Christian
- faith, and famed as the protector of the Christian church, the fair
- promises he gave in his youth, and while a pagan, of being a truly
- virtuous prince. It is not likely that the patronage of such an
- emperor would contribute to the real progress of religion or assist
- in the establishment of the church of Christ.
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Martyrdom of Polycarp.--Presently the instruments prepared
-for the funeral pile were applied to him. As they were on the point of
-securing him with spikes, he said: "Let me be thus, for he that gives
-me strength to bear the fire, will also give me power, without being
-secured by you with these spikes, to remain unmoved on the pile." They
-therefore did not nail him, but merely bound him to the stake. But he,
-closing his hands behind him, and bound to the stake as a noble victim
-selected from the great flock an acceptable sacrifice to Almighty
-God, said: "Father of thy well-beloved and blessed Son, Jesus Christ,
-through whom we have received the knowledge of thee, the God of angels
-and power and all creation, and of all the family of the righteous,
-that live before thee, I bless thee that thou hast thought me worthy of
-the present day and hour to have a share in the number of the martyrs
-and in the cup of Christ, unto the resurrection of eternal life, both
-of the soul and body, in the incorruptible felicity of the Holy Spirit.
-Among whom may I be received in thy sight this day as a rich and
-acceptable sacrifice, as thou the faithful and true God hast prepared,
-hast revealed and fulfilled. Wherefore on this account, and for all
-things I praise thee, I bless thee; I glorify thee through the eternal
-High Priest, Jesus Christ, thy well beloved Son. {123} Through whom
-be glory to thee with Him in the Holy Ghost, both now and forever.
-Amen." After he had repeated Amen, and had finished his prayer, the
-executioners kindled the fire.--Eusebius.
-
-2. A Second Century Persecution.--Would the reader know what a
-persecution in those days was, I would refer him to a circular letter
-written by the church at Smyrna soon after the death of Polycarp, who
-it will be remembered had lived with St. John; and which letter is
-entitled a relation of that Bishop's martyrdom. "The sufferings," say
-they, "of all the other martyrs were blessed and generous which they
-underwent according to the will of God. For so it becomes us, who are
-more religious than others, to ascribe the power and ordering of all
-things unto him. And indeed who can choose but admire the greatness
-of their minds, and that admirable patience and love of their Master,
-which then appeared in them? Who when they were so flayed with
-whipping, that the frame and structure of their bodies were laid open
-to their very inward veins and arteries, nevertheless endured it. In
-like manner, those who were condemned to the beasts and kept a long
-time in prison, underwent many cruel torments, being forced to lie
-upon sharp spikes laid under their bodies, and tormented with divers
-other sorts of punishments; that so, if it were possible, the tyrants
-by the length of their sufferings might have brought them to deny
-Christ."--Paley.
-
-3. The Persecution Under Decius Trajan.--This persecution was
-more terrible than any preceding one, because it extended over the
-whole empire, and because its object was to worry the Christians into
-apostasy by extreme and persevering torture.--The certificated or
-libellatici, are supposed to be such as purchased certificates from the
-corrupt magistrates, in which it was declared that they were pagans and
-had complied with the demands of the law, when neither of these was
-fact. To purchase such a certificate was not only to be partaker in the
-fraudulent transaction, but it was to prevaricate before the public in
-regard to Christianity, and was inconsistent with that open confession
-of Christ before men, which He Himself requires.--Murdock. (Note in
-Mosheim, vol. I., cent. iii., p. 1, ch. ii.)
-
-4. The Insurrection of Syria and Nicomedia.--Some degree of
-probability could be attached to the charge against the Christians of
-causing the insurrection from the fact that their inconsiderate zeal
-sometimes led them to deeds which had an aspect of rebellion. At the
-commencement of this persecution, for example, a very respectable
-Christian tore down the imperial edict against the Christians which was
-set up in a public place.--Schlegel.
-
-5. Unwise Zeal of the Christians.--Several examples have been
-preserved of a zeal impatient of those restraints which the emperors
-had provided for the security of the church. The Christians sometimes
-supplied by their voluntary declaration the want of an accuser, rudely
-{124} disturbed the public service of paganism, and rushing in crowds
-round the tribunal of the magistrates, called upon them to pronounce
-and to inflict the sentence of the law. The behavior of the Christians
-was too remarkable to escape the notice of the ancient philosophers;
-but they seemed to have considered it with much less admiration than
-astonishment. Incapable of conceiving the motives which sometimes
-transported the fortitude of believers beyond the bounds of prudence
-or reason, they treated such an eagerness to die as the strange
-result of obstinate despair, of stupid insensibility or of suspicious
-frenzy.--Gibbon.
-
-6. Spirit of the Christian Martyrs.--The spirit of the Christian
-martyrs, at least of the first three centuries, may be learned from
-the epistle of Ignatius of Antioch, who, early in the second century
-was taken from Syria to Rome, where he suffered martyrdom by being
-thrown to the wild beasts. On his journey to Rome, under sentence of
-death, he wrote an epistle to the Roman saints from which the following
-passage is taken: "I write to the churches and I declare to all, that
-willingly I die for God, if it be that you hinder me not. I beg of you,
-do not become to me an unseasonable love. Let me be of the beasts, by
-whose means I am enabled to obtain God. I am God's wheat, and by the
-teeth of the beasts am I ground, that I may be found God's pure bread.
-Rather entreat kindly the beasts that they may be a grave for me and
-may leave nothing of my body; that not even when I am fallen asleep, I
-may be a burden upon any man. Then I shall be in truth a disciple of
-Jesus Christ, when the world seeth not even my body. Supplicate our
-Lord for me, that by these instruments I may be found a sacrifice to
-God. I am not commanding you like Peter and Paul; they were apostles,
-I am a condemned convict; they were free, I am hitherto a slave. But
-if I suffer I am a free man of Jesus Christ, and I shall rise from
-the dead, in him a free man. And now since I am in bonds, I learn to
-desire nothing. From Syria to Rome I am cast among beasts by sea and
-by land, by night and by day; since I am bound between ten leopards,
-who get worse when I do good to them. But by their ill-treatment I am
-furthered in my apprenticeship; still by that I am not justified. May
-I have to rejoice of the beasts prepared for me! and I pray that they
-may be found ready for me, and I will kindly entreat them quickly to
-devour me, and not as they have done to some, being afraid of them, to
-keep from touching me. And should they not be willing, I will force
-them."--Ignatius' Epistle to the Romans.
-
-7. Constantine's Luminous Cross.--Now if this narrative [by
-Eusebius] is all true, and if two connected miracles were actually
-wrought as here stated, how happens it that no writer of that age,
-except Eusebius, says one word about the luminous cross in the
-heavens? How came it that Eusebius himself said nothing about it in
-his Ecclesiastical {125} History, which was written twelve years
-after the event, and about the same length of time before his life of
-Constantine? Why does he rely solely on the testimony of the emperor
-and not even intimate that he even heard of it from others; whereas,
-if true, many thousands must have been eye-witnesses of the fact. What
-mean his suggestions, that some may question the truth of the story;
-and his caution not to state anything as a matter of public notoriety,
-but to confine himself simply to the emperor's private representation
-to himself. * * * But how came the whole story of the luminous cross to
-be unknown to the Christian world, for more than twenty-five years, and
-then to transpire only through a private conversation between Eusebius
-and Constantine?--Murdock.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. From what source did the persecution of the church come during the
-2nd century?
-
-2. What charge did pagan priests bring against the Christians?
-
-3. What in the estimation of the ignorant pagans gave the color of
-truth to their charge?
-
-4. To what circumstance were the calamities which befell the empire
-usually attributed?
-
-5. What strange fact meets us in connection with the persecution of the
-2nd century?
-
-6. What two noted martyrs were put to death in the reign of Marcus
-Aurelius?
-
-7. Describe the martyrdom of Polycarp.
-
-8. What was the nature of some of the tortures inflicted on the
-Christians? (Note 2).
-
-9. What was the nature and purpose of the edicts of Severus?
-
-10. What was the effect of this persecution and the period of peace
-which followed it?
-
-11. What can you say of the persecution under Trajan?
-
-12. What does Gibbon say of it?
-
-13. How long did it continue?
-
-14. What means of avoiding the severe tortures were offered the
-Christians?
-
-15. What was the effect of this persecution?
-
-16. What other circumstance added to the afflictions of the Christians?
-
-17. What changes in respect to the Roman government took place early in
-the 4th century?
-
-18. What method did Diocletian adopt for the suppression of the
-Christian religion?
-
-{126} 19. What special crimes were charged to the Christians in the
-reign of Diocletian?
-
-20. What can you say of the zeal of the Christians? (Note 4 and 5).
-
-21. What effect did these persecutions have on the church?
-
-22. What event put a stop to the pagan persecutions?
-
-23. Relate the circumstances which led to Constantine becoming emperor
-of Rome.
-
-24. What effect did his accession to the throne have upon the Christian
-church?
-
-25. By what circumstance is Constantine said to have been converted to
-the Christian religion?
-
-26. What evidences exist against the probability of this story?
-
-27. What good service did the father of Constantine do the Christians
-in the Diocletian persecution?
-
-28. What are the several motives assigned for Constantine's
-friendliness to the Christian church?
-
-29. What can you say of the emperor's treatment of the Christians?
-
-30. What considerations very likely influenced converts when
-Constantine extended his patronage to the church?
-
-31. What was the character of Constantine?
-
-{127}
-
-
-
-SECTION III.
-
-1. The Accusations of the Pagans.--The simplicity of the
-Christian religion was made a reproach to the church of Christ by
-the pagan priests. The saints were accused of atheism, an accusation
-which found support in the fact that the primitive church had no
-temples, no incense, no sacrifice, no incantations, pomp or ceremony
-in its worship. "The Christians have no temples, therefore they have
-no gods," was an argument sufficiently convincing to the heathen. It
-was but natural, perhaps, that the Christians should seek to cast off
-this reproach; but the desire to do so led to the introduction of many
-ceremonies quite at variance with the religion of Jesus Christ, and
-eventually subverted it altogether.
-
-2. Outward Ordinances of the Christian Religion.--The outward
-ordinances of the gospel consisted of baptism, the laying on of hands
-for the imparting of the Holy Ghost, and the Lord's Supper. The laying
-on of hands was also employed in ordaining men to the Priesthood and
-in administering to the sick. In the latter case it was accompanied by
-anointing with oil.
-
-3. While it does not appear that there was any specific law
-commanding or regulating fasts, the ancient saints occasionally joined
-abstinence from their food with their prayers, and especially when
-engaged in great undertakings. But the frequency of his fasts and the
-time of their continuance were left to each man's judgment.
-
-4. They met on the first day of the week--Sunday--for worship
-(see note 1, end of section) the meetings, during the first century,
-being held in most instances in private houses. The {128} ceremonies
-were of the simplest character. They consisted of reading the
-scriptures, the exhortation of the president of the assembly--"neither
-eloquent nor long, but full of warmth and love;" the testimony of such
-as felt moved upon by the Holy Ghost to bear testimony, exhort or
-prophesy; the singing of hymns; the administration of the Sacrament and
-prayers.[27] (See note 2, end of section.)
-
-5. Baptism.--Baptism was administered by immersing the candidate
-in water. The only pre-requisites were faith in Jesus Christ and
-repentance. As soon as the candidate professed these he was admitted
-into the church by baptism.[28] In a short time, however, the
-simplicity of this ordinance was corrupted and burdened with useless
-ceremonies. In the second century the newly baptized converts, since
-by baptism they had been born again, were taught to exhibit in their
-conduct the innocence of little infants. Milk and honey, the common
-food of infants, were administered to them, after their baptism, to
-remind them of their infancy in the church. Moreover, since by baptism
-they were released from being servants of the devil, and became God's
-free men, certain forms borrowed from the Roman ceremony of manumission
-of slaves were employed in baptism. As by baptism also they were
-supposed to be made God's soldiers, like newly enlisted soldiers in the
-Roman army, they were sworn to obey their commander, etc.
-
-6. Further Additions of Ceremonies to Baptism.--A century later
-(the third) further ceremonies were added. It was supposed that some
-evil spirit was resident in all vicious persons and impelled them
-to sin. Therefore, before entering the sacred font for baptism, an
-exorcist by a solemn, menacing formula declared them free from the
-bondage of Satan, and hailed them servants of Christ.[29] After baptism
-the new converts {129} returned home, "decorated with a crown and a
-white robe, the first being indicative of their victory over the world
-and their lusts, the latter of their acquired innocence." [30]
-
-7. We have already noted the fact that baptism was administered
-in the days of the apostles as soon as profession of faith and
-repentance were declared, but in the second and third century baptism
-was only administered twice a year, and then only to such candidates as
-had gone through a long preparation and trial.[31] The times chosen for
-the administration of the ordinance were on the vigils of Easter and
-Whitsuntide;[32] and in the fourth century it had become the custom to
-accompany the ceremony with lighted wax candles, to put salt--an emblem
-of purity and wisdom--in the mouth of the baptized, and everywhere a
-double anointing was administered to the candidates, the one before,
-the other after, baptism.[33]
-
-8. The Form of Baptism Changed.--It must have been early in the
-third century that the form of baptism began to be changed. Up to this
-time it had been performed only by immersion of the whole body. But
-in the first half of the third century, Cyprian, bishop of Carthage,
-during a controversy respecting the re-baptism of those who in times
-of persecution had denied the faith, decided that those whose weak
-state of health did not permit them to be immersed, were sufficiently
-baptized by being sprinkled.[34] The first case of this kind of
-{130} baptism is related by Eusebius. The person to whom it was so
-administered was Novatus [No-va-tus], a desperate heretic, who created
-a schism in the church and became the founder of a sect. He was among
-the number of so-called Christians who put off baptism as long as he
-dared; in order to enjoy a life of sin and then through baptism, just
-before death, obtain forgiveness for them--a custom very prevalent in
-those times. Novatus being attacked with an obstinate disease, and
-supposed to be at the point of death, was baptized by having water
-sprinkled upon him as he lay in bed; "if indeed," says Eusebius, "it be
-proper to say one like him did receive baptism." [35]
-
-9. This innovation continued to spread until now the general rule
-among so-called Christian sects is to baptize by sprinkling or pouring.
-For this change there is no warrant of revelation. It destroys the
-symbol there is in baptism as taught by Messiah and his apostles--that
-of a burial and resurrection--of a death and a birth--a death unto sin,
-a birth unto sin, a birth unto righteousness. (See notes 3 and 4, end
-of section.) It is one of those innovations which changed an ordinance
-of the everlasting covenant.
-
-10. Baptism Misapplied.--About the time that the form of
-administering baptism was changed it began to be misapplied, that
-is, it was administered to infants. Just when this custom came into
-vogue may not be determined, but clearly it has no warrant for its
-existence either in the doctrines or practice of the apostles or any
-New Testament writer. (See note 5, end of section.) No truth is more
-plainly taught by the apostles than that baptism is for the remission
-of sins, and must be preceded by faith and repentance; and as infants
-are incapable of sin, or of exercising faith, or of repenting,
-evidently they are not fit subjects for baptism.
-
-11. Still it became the custom in the latter part of the second
-century or early in the third to baptize infants. In the year 253 A.
-D., a council of sixty bishops, in Africa--at which {131} Cyprian,
-bishop of Carthage, presided, took under consideration the question
-whether infants should be baptized within two or three days after
-birth, or whether it should be deferred until the eighth day, as was
-the custom of the Jews in respect to circumcision. The council decided
-that they should be baptized at once, that is within a day or two after
-birth.[36] It will be observed that the question was not as to whether
-infants should be baptized or not, but when they should be baptized,
-within a day or two after birth or not until they were eight days old.
-The matter was treated in the council as if infant baptism was a custom
-of long standing. This proves, not that infant baptism is a correct
-doctrine, or that it was derived from the teachings and examples of
-the apostles--as some aver[37]--but that in a century or so after the
-introduction of the gospel, men began to pervert it by changing and
-misapplying its ordinances. The false doctrine of infant baptism is
-now practiced by nearly all so-called Christian churches, Catholic and
-Protestant.
-
-12. The Sacrament.--Much as the simple rite of baptism was
-burdened with useless ceremonies, changed in its form and misapplied,
-it was not more distorted than was the sacrament of the Lord's supper.
-The nature of the sacrament--usually called the eucharist--and the
-purposes for which it was instituted are so plain that he who runs may
-read.
-
-13. From Paul's description of the ordinance, it is clear that
-the broken bread was an emblem of Messiah's broken body; the wine an
-emblem of his blood, shed for sinful man; and his disciples were to
-eat the one and drink the other in remembrance of him until he should
-return; and by this ceremony show forth the Lord's death.[38]
-
-{132} 14. It was designed as a memorial of Messiah's great
-atonement for mankind, a token and witness unto the Father that the Son
-was always remembered. It was to be a sign that those partaking of it
-were willing to take upon them the name of Christ, to always remember
-him, and keep his commandments. In consideration of these things being
-observed, the saints were always to have the Spirit of the Lord to be
-with them.[39] In this spirit and without great ceremony (see note 7,
-end of section) the sacrament was administered for some time.
-
-15. Administration of the Sacrament Corrupted.--In the third
-century there were longer prayers and more ceremony connected with
-the administration of the sacrament than in the century preceding.
-Disputations arose as to the proper time to administer it. Some
-considered the morning, others the afternoon, and some the evening
-the most suitable time. All were not agreed either as to how often
-the ordinance should be celebrated. Gold and silver vessels were
-used, and neither those doing penance, nor those unbaptized, though
-believers, were {133} permitted to be present at the celebration of
-the ordinance; "which practice, it is well known, was derived from the
-pagan mysteries." [40] Very much of mystery began to be associated with
-it even at an early date. The bread and the wine through the prayer
-of consecration were considered to undergo a mystic change by which
-they were converted into and became the very body and the very blood
-of Jesus Christ; so that they were no longer regarded as emblems of
-Messiah's body and blood, but the body and blood itself.[41] This is
-the doctrine of transubstantiation.
-
-16. The dogma established, it was but a short step to the
-"elevation of the host;" that is, the elevation of the bread and
-wine before they were distributed, so that they might be viewed with
-reverence by the people. Thus came the adoration of the symbols.
-
-17. Institution of the Mass.--Hence came also the mass, or the
-idea of a sacrifice being connected with the celebration {134} of the
-eucharist. It was held that as Jesus was truly present in the bread and
-wine he could be offered up, and was truly offered up as an oblation to
-his Eternal Father. The death of the victim was not supposed to occur
-in reality but mystically, in such a way, however, as to constitute a
-true sacrifice, commemorative of that of the cross, and not different
-from it in essence. The same victim was present, and offered up by
-Christ through his minister, the priest. The sacrifice at the cross was
-offered with real suffering; true shedding of blood, and real death of
-the victim; in the mass it was taught there was a mystical shedding of
-blood and a mystical death of the same victim.
-
-18. Into such absurdities was the simple sacrament of the Lord's
-supper distorted! When attended with all the pomp and ceremony of
-splendid altars, lighted tapers, processions, elevations and chantings:
-offered up by priests and bishops clad in splendid vestments and in
-the midst of clouds of incense, accompanied by mystic movements and
-genuflections of bishops and priests, the church could congratulate
-itself on having removed the reproach at the first fastened upon the
-Christians for not having altars and sacrifice. The mass took away the
-reproach; and the new converts to Christianity were accustomed to see
-the same rites and ceremonies employed in this mystical sacrifice of
-the Son of God as they had seen employed in offering up of sacrifice to
-their pagan deities. (See notes 8 and 9, end of section.)
-
-19. Suppression of Half the Sacrament.--In time the idea became
-prevalent that as the body and blood of Messiah were equally and
-entirely present under each "species"--that is, equally and entirely
-present in the bread and in the wine--it was equally and entirely
-given to the faithful whichever they received. This idea, of course,
-rendered it unnecessary to partake of both bread and wine--hence
-the practice of communion in one kind. That is, the sacrament was
-administered by giving {135} bread alone to the communicant. To remark
-that this was changing the ordinance of the sacrament as instituted
-by Messiah--suppressing half of it in fact--can scarcely be necessary
-since it is so well known that Jesus administered both bread and wine
-when instituting the sacred ordinance.[42]
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Reasons Why the Ancient Saints Worshiped on Sunday.--But
-Sunday is the day on which we all hold our common assembly, because it
-is the first day on which God, when he changed the darkness and matter,
-made the world; and Jesus Christ our Savior on the same day rose from
-the dead; for the day before that of Saturn he was crucified, and on
-the day after it, which is Sunday, he appeared to his apostles and
-disciples and taught them these things which we have given to you also
-for your consideration.--Justin Martyr.
-
-2. Description of Christian Public Worship in the Second
-Century.--On the day which is called Sunday there is an assembly in
-the same of all who live in cities or in country districts; and the
-records of the apostles, or the writings of the prophets, are read as
-long as we have time. Then the reader concludes, and the president
-verbally instructs and exhorts us to the imitation of these excellent
-things. Then we all rise together and offer up our prayers. And, as I
-said before, when we have concluded our prayer, bread is brought, and
-wine and water, and the president in like manner offers up prayers and
-thanksgivings with all his strength, and the people give their assent
-by saying Amen; and there is a distribution and a partaking by every
-one of the eucharistic elements [the sacrament,] and to those who are
-not present they are sent by the hands of the deacons. And such as are
-in prosperous circumstances, and wish to do so, give what they will,
-each according to his choice; and what is collected is placed in the
-hands of the president, who assists the orphans and widows, and such as
-through sickness or any other cause are in want; and to those who are
-in bonds, and to strangers from afar, and, in a word, to all who are in
-need, he is a protector.--Justin Martyr.
-
-3. Baptism a Symbol of Burial and Resurrection.--In writing
-to the saints of Rome, Paul says: "Know ye not, that so many of us
-as were baptized into Jesus Christ were baptized into his death?
-Therefore {136} we are _buried_ with him by baptism into death; that
-like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the Father,
-even so we also should walk in newness of life. For if we have been
-_planted_ together in the likeness of his death, we shall be also in
-the likeness of his resurrection." (Rom. vi:3-5.) In writing to the
-saints of Colosse, the same apostle reminds them that they had been
-"_Buried_ with him [Christ] in baptism, wherein also ye are risen with
-him through the faith of the operation of God who hath raised him from
-the dead." (Col. ii: 12.)
-
-In these passages the terms "buried" and "planted" are in plain
-allusion to the manner in which the saints had received the ordinance
-of baptism, which could not have been by sprinkling or pouring, as
-there is no burial or planting in the likeness of Christ's death, or
-being raised in likeness of his resurrection in that; but in immersion
-there is.--"The Gospel--Roberts," page 173.
-
-4. The Manner of Baptism Instituted Among the Nephites.--"Verily
-I say unto you, that whoso repenteth of his sins through your words,
-and desireth to be baptized in my name, on this wise shall ye baptize
-them: Behold, ye shall go down and stand in the water, and in my name
-shall ye baptize them. And now behold, these are the words which ye
-shall say, calling them by name, saying, Having authority given me
-of Jesus Christ, I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the
-Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen. And then shall ye immerse them in
-the water and come forth again out of the water. And after this manner
-shall ye baptize in my name."--Jesus to the Nephites.
-
-5. Infant Baptism not Ordained of Christ or the Apostles.--As
-faith and baptism are constantly so closely connected together in the
-New Testament, an opinion was likely to arise that where there could
-be no faith there could be no baptism. It is certain that Christ did
-not ordain infant baptism. * * We cannot prove that the apostles
-ordained infant baptism; from those places where the baptism of a whole
-family is mentioned (Acts xvi:33; I Cor. i: 16), we can draw no such
-conclusions, because the inquiry is still to be made whether there
-were any children in those families of such an age that they were not
-capable of any intelligent reception of Christianity; for this is the
-only point on which the case turns.--Neander "Church History," vol. I.,
-page 360.
-
-6. Infant Baptism Forbidden Among the Nephites.--The word of
-the Lord came to me by the power of the Holy Ghost, saying: * * *
-Behold, I came into the world not to call the righteous, but sinners
-unto repentance; the whole need no physician, but they that are
-sick; wherefore little children are whole for they are incapable of
-committing sin; wherefore the curse of Adam is taken from them in me,
-that {137} it hath no power over them; and the law of circumcision is
-done away in me. * * * Wherefore, my beloved son, I know that it is
-solemn mockery before God that ye should baptize little children. * *
-* Awful is the wickedness to suppose that God saveth one child because
-of baptism, and the other must perish because he hath no baptism. Wo
-be unto him that shall pervert the ways of the Lord after this manner,
-for they shall perish, except they repent.--Mormon to Moroni (Book of
-Moroni, chapter viii.)
-
-7. Manner of Administering the Sacrament--Second Century.--When
-the Christians celebrated the Lord's supper which they were accustomed
-to do chiefly on Sundays, they consecrated a part of the bread and
-wine of the oblations, by certain prayers pronounced by the president,
-the bishop of the congregation. The wine was mixed with water, and the
-bread was divided into small pieces. Portions of the consecrated bread
-and wine were commonly sent to the absent and the sick, in testimony
-of fraternal affection towards them. There is much evidence that this
-most holy rite was regarded as very necessary to the attainment of
-salvation.--Mosheim.
-
-8. Pagan Rites Introduced into the Christian Worship--Fourth
-Century.--The Christian bishops introduced, with but slight
-alterations, into the Christian worship, those rites and institutions
-by which formerly the Greeks and Romans, and other nations had
-manifested their piety and reverence towards their imaginary deities;
-supposing that the people would more readily embrace Christianity, if
-they saw that the rites handed down to them from their fathers still
-existed unchanged among the Christians, and perceived that Christ and
-the martyrs were worshiped in the same manner as formerly their gods
-were. There was, of course, little difference in these times, between
-the public worship of the Christians and that of the Greeks and Romans.
-In both alike there were splendid robes, mitres, tiaras, wax tapers,
-crosiers, processions, illustrations, images, golden and silver vases,
-and numberless other things.--Mosheim.
-
-9. Superstitious Observances Connected with the Eucharist--Eighth
-Century.--As evidence of the superstition which was associated with
-the eucharist, note the following: "If any one through negligence,
-shall destroy the eucharist, i. e. the sacrifice, let him do penance
-one year. * * * If he lets it fall on the ground, carelessly, he must
-sing fifty Psalms. Whoever neglects to take care of the sacrifice, so
-that worms get into it, or it lose its color or taste, must do penance
-thirty or twenty days; and the sacrifice must be burned in the fire.
-Whoever turns up the cup at the close of the solemnity of the mass must
-do penance forty days. If a drop from the cup should fall on the altar,
-the minister must suck up the drop and do penance three days; and the
-linen cloth which the drop touched, must be washed three times, {138}
-over the cup, and the water in which it was washed be cast into the
-fire."--Decisions of Pope Gregory III. (Harduin's Concilia.)
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What reproach did the simplicity of the Christian religion lead to?
-
-2. What effect did the endeavor to get rid of that reproach have on the
-Christian religion?
-
-3. Enumerate the outward ordinances of the gospel.
-
-4. What can you say of Christian fasts?
-
-5. On what day did the Christians meet for worship?
-
-6. What reasons do the early church fathers give for holding public
-worship on that day? (Note 1).
-
-7. Describe the meetings of the early Christians. (Note 2.)
-
-8. How was baptism administered in the early church?
-
-9. What does baptism represent? (Note 3).
-
-10. Tell how the simplicity of this ordinance was changed.
-
-11. What additions were made to the ceremony of baptism in the third
-century?
-
-12. When was the form of baptism changed?
-
-13. Relate the first known case of baptism by sprinkling.
-
-14. In what way was the ordinance of baptism misapplied?
-
-15. Was infant baptism ordained of the apostles? (Note 5).
-
-16. About when was infant baptism introduced into the church?
-
-17. Does the antiquity of infant baptism prove it to be a correct
-doctrine?
-
-18. What does it prove?
-
-19. What was said to the Nephites about infant baptism? (Note 6).
-
-20. For what was the sacrament of the Lord's supper instituted?
-
-21. Give Paul's description of the introduction of the sacrament.
-(Note).
-
-22. About what time was the manner of administering the sacrament
-changed?
-
-23. What was the nature of those changes?
-
-24. What custom crept into the practice of the Christian church that
-was forbidden by Jesus among the Nephites? (Note).
-
-25. What can you say of the antiquity of the doctrine of
-transubstantiation?
-
-26. What is the mass?
-
-27. What reproach did the institution of the mass remove from the
-Christians?
-
-28. At what cost was the reproach removed?
-
-29. Who introduced pagan rites into Christian worship?
-
-30. Why was it done? (Note 8.)
-
-31. What reason is given for suppressing half the sacrament?
-
-{139}
-
-
-
-SECTION IV.
-
-1. Early Church Organization Not Perpetuated.--We have
-already stated in Part I of this work that the church organization
-established by Messiah--consisting of apostles, prophets, seventies,
-bishops, etc.--was designed to be perpetual. It is a singular fact,
-however, that aside from filling up the vacancy in the quorum of
-the twelve--occasioned by the fall of Judas Iscariot--there is no
-account in any of the writings of the apostles or fathers of the first
-centuries--on the eastern hemisphere[43]--of any attempt to perpetuate
-the quorum of the twelve by filling up the vacancies occasioned by the
-death of the original apostles. The same may also be said of the quorum
-of the seventies.
-
-2. The reason for this will doubtless be found in the fact that
-in the very days of the apostles the great apostasy which was to end
-eventually in the subversion of the Christian religion, had begun.
-(See note 2, end of section.) And since "the mystery of iniquity"
-had already begun its work in the days of the apostles, and men were
-rapidly proving themselves unworthy of the church of Christ, the Lord
-did not permit his servants to perpetuate these quorums of the higher
-Priesthood.
-
-3. Establishment of the Church by the Apostles.--Whenever in
-their travels the apostles converted any considerable number of
-persons, in a city or district, they organized them into a church, or,
-speaking more precisely, into a branch of {140} the great universal
-church of Christ, and appointed either a bishop or an elder to preside
-over them. As long as the apostles lived they were regarded as the
-presiding authority of the universal church, and were looked to for
-counsel and instruction in all difficult matters that arose concerning
-doctrine or discipline. Their decisions were accepted as final, and
-well might it be so, since these men were guided in their counsels by
-revelation[44] as well as by the wisdom which their large experience in
-company with Jesus Christ had given them.
-
-4. But when the apostles died, and no one succeeded to their
-authority, the branches of the church were left separate and
-independent organizations, united, it is true, in faith and charity,
-but the visible, general presidency recognized in the apostles and
-cheerfully submitted to by all sections of the church, ceased when
-the apostles passed away, and each branch was left an independent
-organization of itself.[45] There is no evidence that there was such a
-thing as subordination among the churches when so left, or rank among
-the bishops. Each church was a sort of independent commonwealth, of
-which the bishop was president and a vassal to no other bishop.[46]
-
-5. Manner of Electing Bishops.--The manner in which bishops
-were first elected was for the apostles to nominate them, and then
-for the whole church over which they were to preside to sustain them
-by their vote. After the apostles had passed away then "other men of
-repute" made the nominations {141} and the people sustained them as at
-first.[47] The duties and powers of the bishops in the first and in
-the greater part of the second century were limited to conducting the
-public worship, administering the ordinances of the gospel, settling
-difficulties which arose between brethren, attending in person the
-sick and the poor. They also were made the custodians and managers of
-the public fund. In all these duties they were assisted by the elders
-[presbyters] and the deacons of the church. Yet neither the bishops
-nor the elders, nor both of them together, seem to have had power to
-ordain or determine anything without the approbation and consent of
-the members of the church. The principle of common consent was closely
-adhered to in the primitive church. (See note 3, end of section.)
-
-6. Equality Among Bishops Changed.--This equality of rank among
-the bishops, together with the simple form of church government,
-described above, was soon changed. The bishops who lived in cities
-either by their own labors or those of the elders associated with
-them, raised up new churches in the adjacent villages and hamlets. The
-bishops of these rural districts being nominated and ordained by the
-bishops presiding in the city, very naturally, perhaps, felt themselves
-under the protection and dependent upon the city bishops. This idea
-continued to grow until these "bishops of the suburbs and the fields,"
-were looked upon as a distinct order of officers, possessing a dignity
-and authority above the elders, and yet subordinate {142} to the
-bishops of the cities, who soon came to be designated as archbishops.
-
-7. The Origin of Metropolitans.--Gradually and almost
-imperceptibly the church in its government began to follow the civil
-divisions of the Roman empire. The bishops of the metropolis of a civil
-province, in time, came to be regarded as having a general supervision
-of all the churches in that province, over the archbishops and
-indirectly over the suburban bishops or suffragans, as they began to
-be called, and finally, bishops merely. The bishops of these provinces
-were soon designated as metropolitans.
-
-8. The Rise and Influence of Councils.--Concurrent with these
-changes arose the custom, first derived from the Greeks, of holding
-provincial councils. The bishops living in a single province met in
-council to confer upon matters of common interest to the churches of
-the province. These provincial councils met at stated times of the
-year, usually in the spring and autumn. At the first the attending
-bishops looked upon themselves as merely the representatives of their
-respective churches, without jurisdiction further than to discuss
-and come to agreement on matters of common concern. But gradually
-they usurped the power to order by decree where at first they were
-accustomed to advise or entreat--so easy is it to change the language
-of exhortation to that of command! Nor was it long ere the decrees of
-these provincial councils were forced upon the respective churches as
-laws to be implicitly obeyed. There was some resistance to this at
-first from the lower orders of the clergy; but that resistance was
-quickly overcome by the activity and ambition of the bishops, who were
-only too glad to escape from the restraints which the doctrine of
-"common consent"--a doctrine which made it necessary for the bishops
-to submit any matter of importance to their respective churches for
-the approbation of the people--imposed upon them. (See note 4, end of
-section.)
-
-{143} 9. Conduct of Lower Clergy.--As many changes occurred
-among the lower orders of the clergy as among the bishops. The elders
-and deacons became too proud to attend to the humble duties of their
-offices and hence a number of other officers were added to the church,
-while the elders and deacons spent much of their time in indolence and
-pleasure.
-
-10. Corruption of Church Officials.--To the evils of
-contention for power and place, which had its origin in arrogance
-and ambition--unbecoming those who profess to be followers and
-servants of Jesus Christ--must be added the vices of dissipation and
-voluptuousness. Many bishops, in the third century, affected the state
-of princes, especially those who had charge of the more populous and
-wealthy congregations; for they sat on thrones, surrounded by their
-ministers and other signs of their power, and dazzled the eyes and the
-minds of the populace with their splendid attire.[48]
-
-11. Church Government Modeled on the Plan of the Civil
-Government.--It was reserved for the fourth century to see the
-church government more completely modeled on the plan of the civil
-government of the Roman empire, to witness more pride and arrogance
-in its rulers, and an increase of vices both in clergy and people.
-Early in this century, it will be remembered, Constantine, the emperor
-of Rome, avowed his conversion to Christianity, and as might have
-been expected that fact produced great changes in the fortunes of the
-church. It not only put an end to its persecutions but loaded its
-bishops with new honors and enlarged powers.
-
-12. In saying that the church government was modeled upon the
-plan of the civil government we would not be understood as saying that
-the first was a _fac simile_ of the second; there were some differences
-between them, but the civil divisions of the empire suggested the
-ecclesiastical divisions.
-
-{144} 13. Under Constantine the Roman empire was divided into
-four prefectures, containing thirteen dioceses, embracing one hundred
-and sixteen provinces. Officers called praetorian prefects presided
-over the four prefectures--exarchs over the dioceses and governors
-over the provinces. The Bishops of Rome, Constantinople, Antioch and
-Alexandria having gained a pre-eminence over all other metropolitans
-were made to correspond with the four prefectures by Constantine, and
-assumed, before the close of the century, the title of patriarchs.
-Next to the patriarchs stood the bishops, whose jurisdiction extended
-over several provinces, corresponding to the civil exarchs,[49] though
-the bishops of this dignity did not equal in number the civil exarchs.
-Next came the metropolitan bishops, whose jurisdiction was limited
-to a single province. They corresponded to the civil governors of
-the provinces, whose authority was limited in like manner. After the
-metropolitans came the arch-bishops,[50] and then the bishops. Some of
-the latter were exempt from the jurisdiction of both metropolitans and
-arch-bishops, and hence were called independent bishops.
-
-14. Pre-Eminence of the Bishops of Rome.--The distinctions of
-rank among the bishops of the Christian church first arose largely
-through the opulence and civil importance of the respective cities
-and provinces over which they presided--the membership of the church
-and its wealth usually bearing a just proportion to the size and
-civil importance of the city in {145} which it was located. It is not
-surprisingg, therefore, that the metropolitans and patriarchs also
-struggled for pre-eminence upon the same basis. That basis gave the
-bishop of Rome great advantage; for, as stated by Gibbon, "the Roman
-church was the greatest, the most numerous, and, in regard to the west,
-the most ancient of all the Christian establishments, many of which had
-received their religion from the pious labors of here missionaries."
-The fact, too, that for so many ages Rome had been the capital of the
-great empire led men naturally to give pre-eminence to the church
-established there.
-
-15. Another thing which went far to establish the supremacy of
-the bishop of Rome was the tradition that Peter, the chief or "prince"
-of the apostles, had founded that church; that he became its first
-bishop; that the bishops succeeding him succeeded to his apostleship
-and to whatever of pre-eminence he held over his fellow apostles; and
-that pre-eminence, it is claimed, amounted to the right of presidency
-over the universal church.
-
-16. Objections to the Claims of the Bishop of Rome.--That Peter,
-aided by Paul, did found the church at Rome there is little cause
-to doubt. It is also true that Peter was the chief or president of
-the apostles; that to him had been given the keys of the kingdom of
-heaven.[51] But that he became the bishop of Rome, or that the bishops
-of Rome succeeded to the apostleship and to that power which made him
-the president of the universal church of Christ, we cannot allow.
-
-17. Our first reason for saying that Peter was not bishop of
-Rome is that the office of apostle and bishop are not identical. If
-Peter presided at all over the church at Rome he did so by virtue of
-his apostleship, not by becoming its bishop; but as his apostleship
-would give him the right to act in minor offices of the church--on the
-principle that the greater authority includes {146} the lesser--he may
-have presided for a time over the church at Rome.
-
-18. Our second reason is that according to the very best
-authority on the subject, one Linus and not Peter was the first bishop
-of Rome. Irenaeus writing in the second century, says:
-
- The blessed apostles [Peter and Paul] then, upon founding
- and erecting the church [at Rome], committed the office of
- administering the church to Linus. Of this Linus, Paul speaks in
- the epistle to Timothy. To him succeeded Anacletus [An-a-cle-tus],
- and after him in the third place from the apostles, Clement
- received the bishopric. [52]
-
-From this it plainly appears that Peter and Paul organized a church at
-Rome, and as in other cities they appointed a bishop to preside over
-it. Peter no more became the bishop of Rome than he did of the church
-at Jerusalem, or Paul of Antioch, Ephesus, or Corinth.
-
-19. The bishop of Rome did not succeed to the apostleship of
-Peter, much less to the pre-eminence which he held among the apostles;
-and that for the very good reason that the office of bishop and that
-of apostle, as remarked above, are not identical. It would require an
-apostle to succeed an apostle, and as there is no account of an apostle
-being ordained to succeed to Peter's office, we conclude he had no
-successor. Here we might let the matter rest, but it will be proper
-to notice the arguments which are made by those who contend that the
-bishops of Rome are the true successors to the office and mission of
-the Apostle Peter.
-
-20. Scripture Basis of the Claims of the Bishop of Rome to
-Pre-Eminence.--On one occasion Jesus said to his disciples, "Whom
-say ye that I am? And Simon Peter answered, * * * Thou art the Christ,
-the Son of the living God." To this Jesus said: "Blessed art thou,
-Simon Barjona; for flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but
-my Father which {147} is in heaven. And I say unto thee, That thou art
-Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church; and the gates of hell
-shall not prevail against it." [53] He then gave to Peter the keys of
-the kingdom of heaven--power to bind and loose on earth and in heaven.
-The argument is that since Peter, some time before this, had been given
-the name Cephas, which means a stone,[54] therefore when Jesus said,
-"Thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church," it is
-claimed that he meant than on Peter he would build his church.[55]
-
-21. That this is a clear misconception of the scripture is apparent. If
-Messiah had meant to found the church on Peter, how unfortunate that he
-did not say, Thou art Cephas, a stone, and upon _thee_ will I build my
-church! etc. But he did not. He first assured Peter that the knowledge
-he had received that Jesus was the Christ, the Son of the living God,
-was received by revelation from God--"And I say unto thee, That thou
-art Peter, and upon this rock [principle] will I build my church,"
-etc.; i.e., upon the principle of God revealing to men that Jesus was
-the Christ[56]--on the principle of revelation.
-
-22. Another passage quoted in support of the theory that the
-apostles had successors in the bishops of Rome is found in the
-following: Jesus after his resurrection said to his apostles:
-
- All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye therefore
- and teach all nations; * * * and lo I am with you always even unto
- the end of the world. [57]
-
-This is the argument--
-
- The apostles themselves were only to live the ordinary term of
- {148} man's life: therefore the commission of preaching and
- ministering, together with the promise of divine assistance,
- regards the successors of the apostles, no less than the apostles
- themselves. This proves that there must have been an uninterrupted
- series of successors of the apostles, in every age since their
- time; that is to say, successors to their doctrine, to their
- jurisdiction, to their orders, and to their mission. [58]
-
-Against this argument we put that of the late Apostle Orson Pratt:
-
- We do not admit that the promise--"Lo, I am with you always, even
- unto the end of the world," had any reference to any persons
- whatever only the eleven disciples mentioned. * * * * They were the
- only persons whom he [Jesus] addressed and to whom he made this
- great promise. "But," says Dr. Milner, "they were only to live
- the ordinary term of man's life," and consequently he draws the
- conclusion that the promise could not be fulfilled to them without
- successors. According to this curious inference of the learned
- bishop, the Lord must have forsaken the eleven disciples as soon
- as they died; for if he admit that Jesus continued with them after
- the period of the death of their mortal bodies, and that he will
- continue with them even unto the end of the world, then what need
- would there be for successors in order that the promise might be
- fulfilled? Prove that Jesus has not been with the eleven apostles
- from the time of their death until the present time, and that he
- will not be with them even unto the end of the world, and after you
- have proved this, you will prove that Jesus has falsified his word;
- for to be with the successors of the apostles is not to be with
- them. But whether the apostles have successors or not, Jesus will
- always be with them, and will bring them with him when he shall
- appear in his glory, and they shall sit upon thrones and judge the
- house of Israel during the great Millennium, while Jesus will not
- only be with them, but will reign with them even unto the end of
- the world.[59]
-
-23. Those who believe that the church was founded on Peter;
-{149}that he became the bishop of Rome; that those who succeeded
-to that bishopric became the heir to his apostleship and right of
-presidency over the universal church, are as weak in their arguments as
-they are wrong in their conceptions of the foundation of the church and
-the right of succession in the priesthood.
-
-24. Primacy of the Bishops of Rome Allowed by the Fathers.--It
-cannot be denied that the early fathers of the Christian church
-conceded to the bishops of Rome a certain "primacy of order and
-association;" but they did not concede to them any such authority
-as the popes wielded from the fifth and sixth centuries onward. The
-assumption of autocratic powers was resisted in the third century
-by Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, who contended for the equality and
-independence of all bishops. (See note 5, end of section.)
-
-25. Opposition of the Bishops of Constantinople.--After Cyprian
-the Roman pontiffs found their chief opponents in the bishops of
-Constantinople. That city was made the capital of the empire early in
-the fourth century; and became a "New Rome." The importance given to
-the city by this act, and the lavish embellishments and increase of
-population which followed it, conferred great dignity on the patriarch
-appointed to preside there; and the council of Constantinople held A.
-D. 381, conferred upon him the second place among the great bishops of
-the world--the bishop of Rome being first. The council of Chalcedon,
-held in the next century [A. D. 451], decreed that the bishop of "New
-Rome" ought to be equal in power and authority with the bishop of Rome,
-assigning as a reason that the cities where they resided were equal in
-rank and dignity.
-
-26. It would appear that second place ill-suited the ambitious
-prelates of "New Rome," and in this century began that struggle for
-supremacy between the bishops of the ancient and the new capital of the
-empire which ended finally in the division of the church. The strife
-raged with varying fortunes; but in the main {150} the Roman pontiffs
-were most successful. Still in the last half of the sixth century
-the bishop of Constantinople, John, called the Faster--on account of
-the austerity of his life--assumed the title of universal bishop and
-continued to hold it in spite of all the efforts and threats of the
-Roman prelates. Early in the seventh century the emperor, Phocas, being
-displeased with Cyriacus, the bishop of Constantinople, he divested
-him of the title of universal bishop and conferred it upon the Roman
-pontiff, Boniface III. "After Phocas' death the prelate of the east
-re-assumed the title. The two bishops each preserved it, and with
-equal ambition strove for the pre-eminence." [60] Instead of dwelling
-together as brethren and working for the spread of truth, they spent
-their time in vain disputes about the extent of their respective
-jurisdictions and wasted their revenues and strength in conquests and
-reprisals of each other's ecclesiastical provinces.
-
-27. The Ascendency of the Roman Pontiffs.--Gradually, however,
-the Roman pontiffs surpassed their eastern competitors in the struggle
-for power. The first reason for this will be found in the superior
-activity and that restless energy of the western people. While the east
-was at a standstill in its missionary enterprises, at this period,
-the west was using its best endeavors to extend the faith among the
-barbarous peoples of Germany and Briton; and everywhere they went they
-taught submission to the decrees of the Roman pontiff. Not only did
-Rome send missionaries to the barbarians, but the barbarians came to
-Rome. They came with arms in their hands, and as conquerors, it is
-true, and in the closing years of the fifth century obtained an easy
-victory over the western division of imperial Rome. But if imperial
-Rome was vanquished, there rose above its ruins and above the kingdoms
-founded upon them by the all-conquering barbarians, papal Rome, in
-majesty no {151} less splendid than imperial Rome in her palmiest days;
-and in the course of time, the victorious barbarians bowed in as humble
-submission to the wand of the popes as their ancestors had to the
-eagle-mounted standards of the emperors.
-
-28. Another reason why the Roman pontiff outstripped his
-eastern rival in the struggle for supremacy will be found in the
-superstitious reverence in which the barbarous nations that fell
-under the influence of Roman missionaries were accustomed to hold
-their priests. In the days of paganism in Gaul (France) and Germany
-the priests reigned over both people and magistrates, controlling
-absolutely the jurisdiction of the latter. The proselytes to the
-Christian faith among them, readily transferred that devout obedience
-which they had given to pagan priests, to the Christian bishops. The
-latter were not slow in appropriating to themselves all the honors
-the rude barbarians had before paid to their pagan priests, while
-the extraordinary reverence--which amounted to worship, according to
-some authorities--they bestowed upon their chief priest, was readily
-transferred to the pope. (See note 6, end of section.)
-
-29. The Great Division of the Church in the Ninth Century.--The
-jealousy of the bishops of Rome and Constantinople finally ended in
-a division of the church, which remains to this day. It occurred
-in this manner: About the middle of the ninth century the emperor
-of the east--Michael--removed Ignatius [Ig-na-shi-us], bishop of
-Constantinople--whom he accused of treason--and set up one Photius
-[Fo-shi-us] in his place. Ignatius appealed to the bishop of Rome,
-Nicolaus I. Nicolaus [Nik-o-lus] called a council, which decided that
-the election of Photius was irregular and unlawful, and pronounced
-that he, with all his adherents, was unworthy of Christian communion.
-Instead of being humbled by this decree, and much less frightened at
-it, Photius convened a council, and in turn excommunicated the bishop
-of Rome.
-
-30. To follow the controversies in respect to religion which
-{152} followed this action, and the contests which arose about the
-jurisdiction over certain ecclesiastical provinces, to note the
-criminations and recriminations, the excommunications and counter
-excommunications would be not only a dreary task but one which the
-limits of this work preclude. Let it be sufficient to say that the
-breach made in the church in the middle of the ninth century, and which
-had its origin in the mutual jealousies of the bishops of Rome and
-Constantinople, rather than in the wrong done to the deposed Ignatius,
-or doctrinal difference which afterwards arose--continued to widen and
-has proven to be a chasm which up to the present it has been impossible
-to bridge.
-
-31. Means by Which Roman Pontiffs Gained Ascendency.--The popes
-of Rome, however, easily outstripped the prelates of Constantinople in
-wealth, in pride, in power, in the magnificence of their courts, in
-the veneration paid them by their subjects, in the extent of territory
-they brought under their jurisdiction, in the influence wielded in the
-affairs of the world. For by encouraging appeals to themselves; by
-assuming the care of all the churches, as if it were a part of their
-official duty; by appointing vicars in churches, over which they had no
-claims to jurisdiction; by assuming to be judges where they should have
-only been mediators; by requiring accounts to be sent to them of the
-affairs of foreign churches; by imposing the rites and usages of their
-own church upon all others, as being of apostolic origin; by insisting
-that their elevation was due to the pre-eminence of the Apostle
-Peter--whose successor they claimed to be; by maintaining that their
-fancied prerogatives belonged to them by divine right; by threatening
-with excommunication all who would not submit to their decrees; [61] by
-accepting the homage which the barbarians anciently bestowed upon their
-pagan priests; [62] by assuming {153} the temporal power of princes,
-and obtaining large grants of lands from kings and emperors [63] (see
-note 7, end of section)--by these means was that splendid though
-corrupt power established, before which monarchs trembled, and which
-for ages ruled the destinies of Europe.
-
-32. Rise of the Temporal Power of the Pope.--The Roman pontiffs,
-not satisfied with claiming to hold the keys of heaven, determined
-through the prestige which this claim gave them to rule the earth.
-
-33. The popes were at first dependent for their election upon the
-suffrages of the clergy and people of Rome. The election after the
-days of Constantine had also to receive the approval of the emperor.
-But in course of time all this was changed. The popes succeeded at
-last in conferring the privilege of electing a successor to the chair
-of St. Peter upon the clergy alone; and finally lodged that power in
-the college of cardinals.[64] The next step was to render the election
-independent of the sanction of the emperors. This, too, was finally
-accomplished. But no sooner was the church thus made independent of
-kings and emperors than the former began to dominate the latter, whose
-power was weakness in comparison with that of the popes.
-
-34. They assumed the right not only to excommunicate and
-anathematize kings, but to free their subjects from their allegiance,
-and thus encourage rebellions and regicides. They assumed the power to
-inflict temporal punishments for violations of God's laws; and then
-claimed the power to remit those punishments {154} for a consideration
-paid into the sacred treasury.[65] Claiming to be the true successors
-of the humble fisherman of Galilee--St. Peter--and the vicars of the
-still more humble Nazarene, their crowns, and thrones and courts as
-far outshone in splendid worldly grandeur those of kings and emperors,
-as their pride and arrogance surpassed the pomp and vain glory of the
-princes of this world; until, at last, the pope exalted himself "above
-all that is called God, or that is worshiped; so that he as God sitteth
-in the temple of God, showing himself that he is God." [66] (See notes
-9 and 10, end of section.)
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Apostasy in the Days of the Apostles.--The great apostasy of
-the Christian church commenced in the first century, while there were
-yet inspired apostles and prophets in their midst; hence Paul, just
-previous to his martyrdom, enumerates a great number who had "made
-shipwreck of their faith," and "turned aside unto vain jangling;"
-teaching "that the resurrection was already past;" giving "heed to
-fables and endless genealogies," "doubting about questions and strifes
-of words whereof came envyings, railings, evil surmisings, perverse
-disputings of men of corrupt minds, and destitute of the truth,
-supposing the gain is godliness." This apostasy had become so general
-that Paul declares to Timothy, "that all they which are in Asia be
-turned away from me;" and again he says "at my first answer, no man
-stood with me, but all men forsook me;" he further says {155} that
-"there are many unruly, and vain talkers, deceivers, teaching things
-which they ought not, for filthy lucre's sake." These apostates,
-no doubt, pretended to be very righteous; "for," says the apostle,
-"they profess that they know God; but in works they deny him, being
-abominable and disobedient and unto every good work reprobate."--Orson
-Pratt.
-
-2. Early Decline of the Church.--About the year of our Lord
-sixty, he [James] wrote his Catholic epistle. * * * By the practical
-turn of his doctrine, by his discanting on the vices of the tongue,
-of partiality to the rich, and of contemptuous treatment of the poor
-in Christian assemblies, and by his direction against vain swearing,
-it is but too evident that the church had considerably declined from
-its original purity and simplicity; and that the craft of Satan, aided
-ever by human depravity, was wearing out apace the precious fruits of
-that effusion of the Spirit, which has been described [alluding to the
-effusion on the day of Pentecost.]--Milner, Vol. I, page 34.
-
-3. Powers and Duties of Bishops--First and Second Century.--We
-may define in a few words the narrow limits of their [the bishops]
-original jurisdiction, which was chiefly of a spiritual, though in some
-instances of a temporal nature. It consisted in the administration
-of the sacraments and discipline of the church, the superintendency
-of religious ceremonies which imperceptibly increase in number and
-variety, the consecration of ecclesiastical ministers to whom the
-bishops assigned their respective functions, the management of the
-public fund, and the determination of all such differences as the
-faithful were unwilling to expose before the tribunal of an idolatrous
-judge. These powers, during a short period, were exercised according
-to the advice of the presbyteral college [the Elders of the church],
-and with the consent and approbation of the assembly of Christians. The
-primitive bishops were considered only as the first of their equals,
-and the honorable servants of a free people. Whenever the Episcopal
-chair became vacant by death, a new president was chosen among the
-presbyters [elders] by the suffrage of the whole congregation, every
-member of which supposed himself invested with a sacred and sacerdotal
-character.--Gibbon (Decline and Fall, ch. xv).
-
-4. Usurpation of Provincial Councils.--As the legislative
-authority of the particular churches was insensibly superseded by the
-use of councils, the bishops obtained by their alliance a much larger
-share of executive and arbitrary power; and as soon as they were
-connected by a sense of their common interest, they were enabled to
-attack, with united vigor, the original rights of their clergy [the
-elders and deacons] and people. The prelates of the third century
-imperceptibly changed the language of exhortation into that of command,
-scattered the seeds of future usurpations, and supplied, by scripture
-allegories {156} and declamatory rhetoric, their deficiency of force
-and reason. They exalted the unity and power of the church as it was
-represented in the episcopal office, of which every bishop enjoyed an
-equal and undivided portion.--Gibbon (Decline and Fall, ch. xv).
-
-5. Cyprian's Opposition to the Bishop of Rome.--Rome experienced
-from the nations of Asia and Africa a more vigorous resistance to her
-spiritual than she had formerly done to her temporal dominion. The
-patriotic Cyprian, who ruled with the most absolute sway the church of
-Carthage and the provincial synods, opposed with resolution and success
-the ambition of the Roman pontiff, artfully connected his own cause
-with that of the eastern bishops, and, like Hannibal, sought out new
-allies in the heart of Asia. If this punic war was carried on without
-any effusion of blood, it was owing much less to the moderation than to
-the weakness of the contending prelates. Invectives and excommunication
-were then the only weapons; and these, during the progress of the
-whole controversy, they hurled against each other with equal fury and
-devotion.--Gibbon (Decline and Fall, Vol. I, ch. xv).
-
-6. Reverence of the Barbarians for the Popes.--That these
-pagan nations had been accustomed to treat their idolatrous priests
-with extraordinary reverence is a fact well known. When they became
-Christians they supposed they must show the same reverence to the
-Christian priests. Of course they honored their bishops and clergy,
-as they had before honored their druids; and this reverence disposed
-them to bear patiently their vices. Every druid was accounted a very
-great character, and was feared by every one; but the chief druid
-was actually worshiped. When these people became Christians, they
-supposed that the bishop of Rome was such a chief druid; and that the
-must be honored accordingly. And this was one cause why the Roman
-pontiff obtained in process of time such an ascendency in the western
-countries. The patriarch of Constantinople rose indeed to a great
-elevation; but he never attained the high rank and authority of the
-Roman patriarch. The reason was that the people of the east had not the
-same ideas of the dignity of a chief priest as the people of the west
-had.--Schlegel.
-
-7. Grant of the Roman Dukedom to the Popes.--Charles
-[Charlemagne], being made emperor and sovereign of Rome and its
-territory, reserved indeed to himself, the supreme power, and the
-prerogatives of sovereignty; but the beneficial dominion, as it is
-called, and subordinate authority over the city and its territory, he
-seems to have conferred on the Romish church. This plan was undoubtedly
-suggested to him by the Roman pontiff; who persuaded the emperor,
-perhaps by showing him some ancient though forged papers and documents,
-that Constantine the Great (to whose place and authority {157} Charles
-now succeeded) when he removed the seat of empire to Constantinople,
-committed the old seat of empire, Rome and the adjacent territories
-or Roman dukedom, to the possession and government of the church,
-reserving, however, his imperial prerogatives over it; and that, from
-this arrangement and ordinance of Constantine, Charles could not
-depart, without incurring the wrath of God and St. Peter.--Mosheim.
-
-8. Copy of an Indulgence.--May our Lord Jesus Christ have mercy
-on thee, N. N., and absolve thee by the merits of his passion! And I
-in virtue of the apostolic power that has been confided in me, absolve
-thee from all ecclesiastical censures, judgments, and penalties which
-thou mayst have incurred; moreover, from all excesses, sins and crimes
-that thou mayst have committed, however great and enormous they may be,
-and from whatsoever cause, were they even reserved for our most holy
-father the pope and for the apostolic see. I blot out all the stains
-of inability and all marks of infamy that thou mayst have drawn upon
-thyself on this occasion. I remit the penalties that thou shouldst
-have endured in purgatory. I restore thee anew to participation in the
-sacraments of the church. I incorporate thee afresh in the communion of
-saints, and re-establish thee in the purity and innocence which thou
-hadst at thy baptism. So that in the hour of death, the gate by which
-sinners enter the place of torments and punishments will be closed
-against thee, and, on the contrary, the gate leading to the paradise of
-joy shall be open. And if thou shouldst not die for long years, this
-grace shall remain unalterable until thy last hour shall arrive. In
-the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. Amen. (Friar John Tetzel,
-Commissary, has signed this with his own hand)--D'Aubugne's Hist.
-Ref., book III, ch. i.
-
-9. The Absolute Power of the Popes (13th century).--All who had
-any share in the government of the church, were alike sovereign lords;
-at least in their feelings and dispositions they stiffly maintained
-with violence and threats, with both wiles and weapons, those
-fundamental principles of the popish canon law, that the Roman pontiff
-is the sovereign lord of the whole world, and that all other rulers in
-church and state have so much power and authority as he sees fit to
-allow them to have. Resting on this eternal principle as they conceive
-it to be, the pontiffs arrogate to themselves the absolute power, not
-only of conferring sacred offices or benefices as they are called, but
-also of giving away empires, and of divesting kings and princes of
-their crowns and authority. The more intelligent indeed, for the most
-part considered [general] councils as superior to the pontiffs; and
-such of the kings as were not blinded by superstition, restrained the
-pontiffs from intermeddling with worldly or civil affairs, bid them be
-contented with the regulation of things sacred, maintained {158} their
-power to the utmost of their ability and even claimed for themselves
-supremacy over the church in their respective territories. But they had
-to do these things cautiously, if they would not learn by experience
-that the pontiffs had very long arms.--Mosheim.
-
-10. Character of Language Employed by the Popes Against Kings
-(8th century).--[As a sample of the arrogant language employed by the
-popes toward kings and emperors, we present the following taken from
-an epistle of Pope Gregory III, addressed to the eastern emperor Leo
-III. Leo at the time was opposing with commendable zeal the use of
-images in divine worship]: "Because you are unlearned and ignorant,
-we are obliged to write to you rude discourses, but full of sense and
-the word of God. We conjure you to quit your pride, and hear us with
-humility. You say that we adore stones, walls and boards. It is not so,
-my lord; but those symbols make us recollect the persons whose names
-they bear, and exalt our grovelling minds. We do not look upon them as
-gods; but if it be the image of Jesus, we say, 'Lord help us.' If it be
-his mother, we say, 'pray to your Son to save us.' If it be a martyr,
-we say, 'St. Stephen, pray for us.' We might as having the power of St.
-Peter, pronounce punishments against you, but as you have pronounced
-the curse upon yourself, let it stick to you. You write to us to
-assemble a general council; of which there is no need. Do you cease to
-persecute images, and all will be quiet. We fear not your threats; for
-if we go a league from Rome toward Campania, we are secure."--Certainly
-this is the language of anti-Christ supporting idolatry by pretenses to
-infallibility, and despising both civil magistrates and ecclesiastical
-councils.--Milner (Church History, Vol. III, Page 159).
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. Was the early church organization perpetuated?
-
-2. What reasons can you assign for the failure to do so?
-
-3. What can you say of the early apostasy in the church? (Notes 1, 2).
-
-4. What course was pursued by the apostles in respect to organizing
-churches?
-
-5. In what light were the apostles regarded by the saints?
-
-6. In what condition were the churches left at the death of the
-apostles?
-
-7. Was there such a thing as subordination among the churches, or rank
-among the bishops?
-
-8. What was the manner of electing bishops?
-
-{159} 9. What was the nature of the bishop's duties in the early
-churches? (Note 3).
-
-10. Describe the growth of iniquity among the bishops.
-
-11. Give an account of the origin of metropolitan bishops.
-
-12. Describe the rise and influence of councils. (Note 4).
-
-13. What was the conduct of the lower officials in the church?
-
-14. What was the moral status of the church officials in the 2nd and
-3rd centuries?
-
-15. Tell what important change was made in the form of church
-government in the 4th century?
-
-16. Describe the outlines of Roman government under Constantine.
-
-17. Tell how the church government was made somewhat to correspond with
-it.
-
-18. What circumstances led to the pre-eminence of the bishop of Rome?
-
-19. What reasons can be urged against the idea that the bishop of
-Rome succeeded to the apostleship of Peter and the presidency of the
-universal church?
-
-20. What is the scriptural basis of the claims of the bishops of Rome
-to pre-eminence?
-
-21. Refute the idea that Jesus built his church upon Peter.
-
-22. Refute the argument that the bishops of Rome must have succeeded
-to the apostleship of Peter, because Jesus promised to be with the
-apostles unto the end of the world.
-
-23. To what extent did the early Christian fathers admit a primacy to
-the bishops of Rome?
-
-24. State the controversy which arose between the bishop of Rome and
-the bishop of Constantinople.
-
-25. Through what cause did the Roman pontiffs finally force an
-acknowledgment of their independency? (Note 6).
-
-26. What led to the great division of the church in the 9th century?
-
-27. By what means did the Roman pontiffs outstrip their eastern rivals?
-(Note 7).
-
-28. What of the sale of indulgences? (Note).
-
-29. What was the climax of papal power?
-
-{160}
-
-
-
-SECTION V.
-
-1. Simplicity of Public Worship Changed.--The public worship of
-the primitive Christians, as we have seen,[67] was very simple, but its
-simplicity was soon corrupted. The bishops and other public teachers in
-the third century, framed their discourses and exhortations according
-to the rules of Grecian eloquence; "and were better adapted," says a
-learned writer,[68] "to call forth the admiration of the rude multitude
-who love display, than to amend the heart. And that no folly and no
-senseless custom might be omitted in their public assemblies, the
-people were allowed to applaud their orators, as had been practiced
-in the forums and theaters; nay, they were instructed to applaud the
-preachers."
-
-2. This was a wide departure from that spirit of meekness
-and humility enjoined by Messiah upon his ministers. And when to
-these customs was added the splendid vestments of the clergy, the
-magnificence of the temples, with all the pageantry of altars,
-surrounded with burning tapers, clouds of incense, beautiful images,
-the chanting of choirs, processions and other mummeries without
-number--one sees but little left of that simple worship instituted by
-the Messiah and his apostles. (See note 1, end of section).
-
-3. About the third century incense began to be used. The
-Christians of the first and second centuries abhorred the use
-of incense in public worship, as being a part of the worship of
-idols.[69] It first became a custom to use it at funerals, against
-offensive smells; then in public worship, to disguise the bad air
-{161} of crowded assemblies; then at the consecration of bishops
-and magistrates, and by these steps at last degenerated into a
-superstitious rite.
-
-4. In the fourth century matters became still worse. "The public
-supplications by which the pagans were accustomed to appease their
-gods, were borrowed from them, and were celebrated in many places with
-great pomp. To the temples, to water consecrated in due form, and
-the images of holy men, the same efficacy was ascribed to the pagan
-temples, statues and lustrations before the advent of Christ." [70]
-
-5. The Worship of Martyrs.--In the third century also arose the
-worship of martyrs. It is true that worship or adoration was relative,
-and a distinction was made between the worship of martyrs and the
-worship paid to God; but by degrees the worship of the martyrs was
-made to conform with that which the pagans had in former times paid to
-their gods.[71] This was done out of indiscreet eagerness to allure the
-pagans to embrace Christianity.[72] (See note 2, end of section).
-
-6. Decline of Spiritual Gifts.--While pagan ceremonies and rites
-were increasing in the church, the gifts and graces characteristic of
-apostolic times, seemed to have gradually departed from it. Protestant
-writers insist that the age of miracles closed with the fourth or fifth
-century, and that after that the extraordinary gifts of the Holy Ghost
-must not be looked for. Catholic writers, on the other hand, insist
-that the power to perform miracles has always continued in the church;
-yet those spiritual manifestations which they describe after the fourth
-and fifth centuries savor of invention on the part of the priests and
-childish credulity on the part of the people; or else what is claimed
-to be miraculous falls far short of the power and dignity of those
-spiritual manifestations which the primitive church was wont to witness.
-
-{162} 7. The virtues and prodigies ascribed to the bones and
-other relics of the martyrs and saints are puerile in comparison with
-the healings, by the anointing with oil and the laying on of hands,
-speaking in tongues, interpretations, prophecies, revelations, casting
-out devils in the name of Jesus Christ; to say nothing of the gifts of
-faith, wisdom, knowledge, discernment of spirits, etc.,--common in the
-church in the days of the days of the apostles.[73]
-
-8. Nor is there anything in the scriptures or in reason that
-would lead one to believe that they were to be discontinued. Still this
-plea is made by modern Christians--explaining the absence of these
-spiritual powers among them--that the extraordinary gifts of the Holy
-Ghost were only intended to accompany the proclamation of the gospel
-during the first few centuries until the church was able to make its
-way without them, and then they were to be done away. It is sufficient
-to remark upon this that it is assumption pure and simple, and stands
-without warrant either of scripture or right reason; and proves that
-men had so far changed the religion of Jesus Christ that it became a
-form of godliness without the power thereof. (See notes 3 and 4, end of
-section).
-
-9. Causes and Manner of Excommunications.--It appears to have
-been the custom of the apostles in the case of members of the church
-grievously transgressing the moral law of the gospel to require
-repentance and confession before the church; and in the event of a
-stubborn adherence to sin the offender was excommunicated, that is, he
-was excluded from the communion of the church and the fellowship of the
-saints. For the crimes of murder, idolatry and adultery, some of the
-churches excommunicated those guilty of them forever; in other churches
-they were received back, but only after long and painful probation.
-
-10. The manner in which excommunication was performed {163} in
-apostolic times is not clear, but there is every reason to believe the
-process was very simple. In the course of time, however, this simple
-order of excommunication was changed, by being burdened with many rites
-and ceremonies borrowed from pagan sources.[74] It was not enough
-that the fellowship of the saints be withdrawn from the offender and
-he left to the mercy of God, or the buffetings of Satan, according
-as he was worthy of the one or the other; but the church must load
-him down with anathemas too terrible to contemplate. The power of
-excommunication, too, eventually, passed from the body of the church
-into the hands of the bishops, and finally into those of the pope. At
-first excommunication meant the loss of the fellowship of the saints,
-and such other punishments as God himself might see fit to inflict; the
-church leaving the Lord to be the minister of his own vengeance. But
-gradually it came to mean in some instances banishment from home and
-country, the confiscation of property, the loss not only of religious
-fellowship with the saints, but the loss of civil rights; and the
-rights of Christian burial. In the case of a monarch excommunication
-absolved his subjects from their allegiance; and in the case of a
-subject, it robbed him of the protection of his sovereign. No anathema
-was so terrible but it was pronounced against the excommunicated, until
-the sweet mercies of God were overshadowed by the black pall of man's
-inhumanity.
-
-11. Admixture of Pagan Philosophy with the Christian
-Religion.--The thing which contributed most to the subversion of
-the Christian religion was the employment of pagan philosophy to
-explain Christian doctrine. This brought about an admixture of these
-two discordant elements that {164} while it failed to purge pagan
-philosophy of its errors, corrupted the doctrines of Christ and laid
-the foundations for those false notions in respect of God which obtain
-in the so-called Christian world unto this day.
-
-12. Christian Doctrine Respecting God.--The scriptural
-doctrine in regard to God--and of course, that is the true Christian
-doctrine--is this: There is a being of infinite goodness and power, in
-form like man--for man was created in his image[75]--who, with his Son,
-Jesus Christ, and the Holy Ghost, constitute the great creative, and
-governing power or grand Presidency of the heavens and the earth. As
-persons, the Father, Son and Holy Ghost are separate and distinct, yet
-one in attributes, one in purpose; the mind of one being the mind of
-the others.
-
-13. That they are distinct and separate as persons was plainly
-manifested at the baptism of Jesus. On that occasion, as Jesus came
-up out of the water, John saw the Holy Ghost descend upon him, and at
-the same time the voice of the Father was heard speaking from heaven,
-saying: "This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased." [76]
-Here we have the persons of the Godhead present but distinct from
-each other. Stephen, the martyr, in the presence of the angry crowd
-which took his life, saw the heavens open and "Jesus standing on
-the right hand of God." [77] Here, too, the Father and Son are seen
-and, according to the testimony of the holy man, they are distinct
-personalities.
-
-14. Yet Jesus said to the Jews: "I and my Father are one. * * *
-Believe that the Father is in me and I in him." [78] But this oneness
-cannot have reference to the persons of the Father and of the Son,
-which we have seen are distinct. Their oneness, therefore, must consist
-in a unity of attributes, {165} purposes, glory, power. Jesus in his
-great prayer just previous to his betrayal, said, in praying for his
-disciples: "Holy Father, keep through thine own name those whom thou
-hast given me, that they may be one. * * * That they all may be one; as
-thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee, that they also may be one in
-us." [79] Clearly it is not the uniting of the persons of his disciples
-into one person or body that Jesus prayed for; but he would have them
-of one mind and one spirit, as he and the Father are one. So also he
-had no wish that the person of one of his disciples should be crowded
-into that of another, and so on until they all became one person or
-body--but "as thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee." That is, while
-remaining distinct as persons, Messiah would have the mind or Spirit of
-God in his disciples as it was in him, and as his was in the Father,
-that God might be all in all--the Father to be honored as the head and
-worshiped in the name of the Son; and the Holy Ghost to be revered as
-the witness and messenger of both the Father and the Son[80]--the bond
-of union between God and men, as it is between the Father and the Son;
-in one word to be God in man.
-
-15. Each of these persons in scripture is called God; and taken
-together they are God, or constitute the grand Presidency of heaven and
-earth, and as such are one, as well as in attributes. (See note 5, end
-of section).
-
-16. The spirit of the Son had an existence with the Father before
-he was born in the flesh; [81] and indeed it was by him, and through
-him--under the direction of the Father--that the worlds were made; [82]
-"and without him was not anything made that was made." [83]
-
-17. Such is the simple doctrine of the Godhead taught to the
-primitive Saints by the apostles. It was implicitly believed as God's
-revelation to them upon the subject, and they were {166} content to
-allow the revelation to excite their reverence without arousing their
-curiosity to the point where men of finite minds attempt to grasp the
-infinite, or circumscribe God in their understandings. In a short time,
-however, a change came, and men sought to explain the revelation that
-God had given of himself by the vain babblings of pagan science; and
-that led not only to much contention within the church, but to the
-adoption in the Christian creed of erroneous ideas in respect of Deity.
-
-18. Gnostic and "New Platonic" Philosophy.--In order to give
-a clear explanation of this matter, it will be necessary to invite
-the attention of the student to Gnosticism and the Eclectic or "New
-Platonic" philosophy which arose in the early Christian centuries.
-First, then, as to Gnosticism. The Gnostics taught there existed from
-eternity a Being that embodied within himself all the virtues; a Being
-who is the purest light and is diffused throughout boundless space,
-which they called Pleroma. This Being, after dwelling alone and in
-absolute repose for an infinite period, by an operation purely mental,
-or by acting upon himself, produced two spirits[84] of different
-sexes. By the marriage of these two spirits others of similar nature
-were produced, who, in their turn, produced others. Thus a celestial
-family was formed in the pleroma. These emanations from Deity, whether
-directly or from those spirits first begotten by Deity acting upon
-himself, were called Aeons, a term which was doubtless employed
-to signify their eternal duration, and perhaps the mode of their
-production.
-
-19. Beyond this pleroma where God and his family dwelt, existed
-a rude and unformed mass of matter, heaving itself continually in wild
-commotion.[85] This mass of the Aeons, wandering beyond the pleroma,
-discovered and reduced to order {167} and beauty and then peopled it
-with human beings and with animals of different species. This builder
-of the world the Gnostics called the Demiurge [Dem-i-urge].[86] Though
-possessed of many shining qualities, the Demiurge was by nature
-arrogant and domineering, hence he claims absolute authority over the
-new world to the exclusion altogether of the authority of the supreme
-God, and requires mankind to pay divine honors exclusively to him.
-
-20. Man, according to the Gnostic philosophy, is composed of a
-terrestial, and therefore a vicious body; and of a celestial spirit,
-which in some sense is a particle of the Deity himself. The spirit is
-oppressed by the body, which is supposed to be the seat of all the
-lusts and other evils that flesh is heir to, and by the spirit of man
-is drawn away from the knowledge and worship of the true God, and led
-to pay reverence to the Demiurge and his associates. From this wretched
-bondage of evil God labors to rescue his offspring. But the Demiurge
-and his associates, eager to retain their power, resist the divine
-purpose and labor to efface all knowledge of the supreme Deity. The
-philosophy maintained, however, that God would ultimately prevail;
-and having restored to liberty most of the spirits now imprisoned in
-bodies, he will dissolve the fabric of the world. Then the primitive
-tranquility will return, and God will reign with the redeemed spirits
-in perfect happiness to all eternity.[87]
-
-21. When the followers of this philosophy became converted to
-Christianity, they looked upon Jesus Christ and the Holy Ghost as the
-latest Aeons or emanations from the Deity, sent forth to emancipate men
-from the tyranny of matter by {168} revealing to them the true God;
-to fit them, though perfect knowledge to enter the sacred pleroma. In
-connection with this, however, some of these Christian Gnostics held
-that Jesus had no body at all, but was an unsubstantial phantom that
-constantly deceived the senses of those who thought they associated
-with him. Others of them said there doubtless was a man called Jesus
-born of human parents, upon whom one of the Aeons, called Christ,
-descended at his baptism, having quitted the pleroma for that purpose;
-but who, previous to the crucifixion of the man Jesus, withdrew from
-him and returned to the Deity. [See note 7, end of section.]
-
-22. The Two Modes of Life to which Gnosticism led.--The Gnostic
-philosophy led to two widely different methods of life; one extremely
-ascetic and the other as extremely profligate. Gnostics believed matter
-to be utterly malignant, the source of all evil, therefore it was
-recommended by one party that the body should be weakened by fastings
-and the practice of other austerities, that the spirit might enjoy the
-greater liberty and be better able to contemplate heavenly things. The
-other party, on the contrary, maintained that men could safely indulge
-all their appetites and lustful desires, and that there was no moral
-difference in human actions. One leader of this persuasion--Carpocrates
-of Alexandria, who flourished in the second century--not only gave his
-disciples license to sin, but imposed on them the necessity of sinning,
-by teaching them the way to eternal salvation was open to those souls
-only which committed all kinds of enormity and wickedness. Such were
-the errors that grew out of Gnosticism, and which contributed to the
-corruption of the gospel soon after it was founded by the preaching of
-the apostles.
-
-23. The New Platonic Philosophy.--The Eclectic or "New Platonic"
-philosophy which came into existence in the early Christian centuries,
-was compounded from all the systems which had preceded it, though
-following Plato more closely than {169} any other teacher, for which
-reason its disciples assumed the name of New Platonics. The founders
-of this philosophy professed simply to follow truth, gathering up
-whatever was accordant with it, regardless of its source, or in what
-school it was taught--hence the name eclectic. Still the teachings
-of Plato formed the basis of their doctrines, and they embraced most
-of his dogmas concerning God, the human soul and the universe. We
-shall therefore learn the fundamental principles of the Eclectics by
-considering what the Athenian sage taught on these subjects.
-
-24. Plato held that God and matter existed from all
-eternity--that they were co-eternal. Before the creation of the
-world matter had in itself a principle of motion, but without end
-or laws. This principle of motion Plato called the immortal soul
-of the universe. God wished to give form to this mass of eternal
-matter, regulate its motion, subject it to some end and to certain
-laws. Everything which exists in heaven or in earth, except Deity
-and unorganized matter, according to Plato's philosophy, had a
-beginning--there was a time when it did not exist; but there never
-was a time when the idea, that is, the form or plan of the thing, did
-not exist in the mind of Deity. This idea or intelligence existing
-with God from all eternity, is what Plato called the Logos--the word
-or intelligence of Deity. Many in the age of which we write saw in
-these doctrines a threefold expression of the divine nature--viz.,
-the First Cause, the Reason or Logos, and the Spirit of the Universe;
-while others saw in these three principles three Gods, united with each
-other by a mysterious and ineffable generation; in which the Logos is
-regarded in the character of the Son of an Eternal Father, and the
-creator and governor of the work.[88]
-
-25. Plato's Logos, John's Word Considered Identical.--In the
-introduction of St. John's gospel, commencing--"In {170} the beginning
-was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God"--in
-this Word, which the Apostle in another verse of his opening chapter
-declares was "made flesh and dwelt among men,"--plainly alluding to
-the pre-existence and birth of Messiah--the New Platonics saw the
-incarnation of the Logos of Plato, and according to the fashion of the
-times attempted to harmonize the revelations of God with the philosophy
-of men. (See note 8, end of section).
-
-26. The Rank of the Logos in the Trinity.--It was trying to
-harmonize the revelations of God with these systems of philosophy which
-created the agitation in respect to the rank of the Logos, or Son of
-God, in the divine trinity; and the nature of the Trinity itself--that
-is, whether the three persons, the Father, Son and Holy Ghost are
-distinct and separate though of the same substance, or merely the same
-substance under different aspects.
-
-27. The Orthodox View.--The view held to be orthodox was that in
-God there are three persons, Father, Son and Holy Spirit; each really
-distinct yet so united as to constitute but one personal God--of the
-same substance, and equal as to their eternity, power, and glory and
-all other perfections.
-
-28. Sabellian Theory.--On one side of this orthodox theory stood
-the doctrine of Sabellius [Sa-bel-i-us], who held that there was but
-one divine person in the Godhead, and that the Father, Son and Holy
-Spirit were but different aspects of the same God, and that the Trinity
-was one of names, merely, not of distinct persons.[89] The Logos, in hi
-theory, is an attribute {171} of Deity rather than a person; and its
-incarnation is reduced to an energy or inspiration of the Divine wisdom
-which filled the soul and directed all the actions of the man Jesus.
-
-29. The Arian Theory.--On the other side of the orthodox line
-stood the theory of Arius [A-ri-us], who while he maintained a real
-distinction in the persons of the Divine Trinity, taught that the
-Son was created out of nothing by the will of the Father; and though
-the longest astronomical periods would not measure the time of his
-duration, yet there had been a time when he was not. Upon the Son
-thus created the Father bestowed great glory, yet he shone only by a
-reflected light, and governed the universe only in obedience to the
-will of the Father; in other words, the Son was subordinate to the
-Father, unequal as to eternity, power and glory.
-
-30. The Nicene Council.--It was to still the rising commotion
-which arose in the church through the violent discussion of these
-several theories that the Emperor Constantine assembled the Council
-of Nice [Nes]. A. D. 325. In that council the theories of Arius were
-condemned and the orthodox creed stated thus:
-
- We believe in one God, the Father, Almighty, the maker of all
- things visible and invisible; and in one Lord, Jesus Christ, the
- Son of God, begotten of the Father, only begotten, (that is) of
- the substance of the Father; God of God, Light of Light; Very God
- of Very God; begotten not made; of the same substance with the
- Father, by whom all things were made, that are in heaven and that
- are in earth: who for us men, and for our salvation, descended and
- was incarnate, and became man; suffered and rose again the third
- day, ascended into the heavens and will come to judge the living
- and the dead, and in the Holy Spirit. But those who say there was a
- time when he [the {172} Son] was not, and that he was not before he
- was begotten, and that he was made out of nothing, or affirm that
- he is of any other substance or essence, of that the Son of God
- was created, and mutable, or changeable, the Catholic Church doth
- pronounce accursed.[90]
-
-31. Athanasius [Ath-a-na-shi-us], who was the most active
-opponent of Arius, thus explains the Nicene doctrine, in what is
-commonly known as the creed of Athanasius.[91]
-
- We worship one God in Trinity, and Trinity and Unity, neither
- confounding the persons, nor dividing the substance. For there
- is one person of the Father, another of the Son, and another of
- the Holy Ghost. But the Godhead of the Father, Son and Holy Ghost
- is all one: the glory equal, the majesty co-eternal. Such as the
- Father is, such is the Son; and such is the Holy Ghost. The Father
- uncreate, the Son uncreate; and the Holy Ghost uncreate. The Father
- incomprehensible, the Son incomprehensible, and the Holy Ghost
- incomprehensible. The Father eternal the Son eternal, and the
- Holy Ghost eternal. And yet these are not three eternals; but one
- eternal. As also there are not three incomprehensibles, nor three
- uncreated; but one uncreated and one incomprehensible. So likewise
- the Father is Almighty, the Son Almighty, and the Holy Ghost
- Almighty; and yet they are not three Almighties, but one Almighty.
- So the Father is God, the Son is God, and the Holy Ghost is God,
- and yet they are not three Gods but one God. [92] (See note 7, end
- of section.)
-
-{173} 32. Immateriality of God.--The evil which grew out of these
-contentions in respect to Deity is found in the conclusion arrived
-at that God is an incorporeal, that is to say, an immaterial being;
-without body, without parts, without passions. The following is the
-Roman Catholic belief in respect to God:
-
- There is but one God, the creator of heaven and earth, the supreme,
- incorporeal, uncreated being, who exists of himself, and is
- infinite in all his attributes, etc.[93]
-
-The Church of England teaches in her articles of faith:
-
- There is but one living and true God, everlasting, without body,
- parts or passions; of infinite power, wisdom and goodness,[94] etc.
-
-This plainly teaches the great error of the immateriality of God;
-and, indeed, that is the orthodox notion in respect to Deity,
-notwithstanding it finds so many express contradictions in the
-scriptures.
-
-33. In the work of creation, God proposed to make man in his own
-image and likeness, and the proposition was executed.[95] Moreover,
-Jesus is said to be the brightness of God's glory, "and the express
-image of his person." [96] Again it is said, that Jesus "being in the
-form of God, thought it not robbery to be equal with God." [97] All
-this teaches that God has a form similar to that of man's; that he
-has organs, dimensions, proportions; that he occupies space and has
-relation to other objects in space; that he moves from place to place;
-and that so far as his actual person is concerned he cannot be in two
-places at one and the same instant. The question here arises as to
-those passages of scripture which declare the omnipresence of God, a
-thing which is impossible--speaking of his person--if what is {174}
-here contended for be true. But God may be and is omnipresent by his
-influence, by his power, if not in his person. While his person is
-confined to one place at a time, as other substances are, his influence
-extends throughout the universe, as does also his power, and through
-this means he is omnipotent and omnipresent.
-
-34. To assert the immateriality of God is not only to deny his
-personality, but his very existence; for an immaterial substance cannot
-exist. It can have no relation to time or space, no form, no extension,
-no parts. An immaterial substance is simply no substance at all; it
-is a contradiction of terms to say a substance is immaterial--it is
-the description of an infinite vacuum; and the difference between the
-atheist and the orthodox Christian is one of terms, not of fact; the
-former says, "There is no God;" the latter in his creed says, "God is
-nothing." [98] (See note 10, end of section.)
-
-35. Such were the absurdities into which the vain philosophies
-of the pagan led the Christian even in the early centuries of the
-Christian era; so that through these errors they even denied the Lord
-who bought them.[99]
-
-{175}
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Christian Worship in the Fifth Century.--Public worship
-everywhere assumed a form more calculated for show and for the
-gratification of the eye. Various ornaments were added to the
-sacerdotal garments in order to increase the veneration of the
-people for the clerical order. The new forms of hymns, prayers and
-public fasts, are not easily enumerated. * * * In some places it was
-appointed, that the praises of God should be sung perpetually, day
-and night, the singers succeeding each other without interruption; as
-if the Supreme Being took pleasure in clamor and noise, and in the
-flatteries of men. The magnificence of the temples had no bounds.
-Splendid images were placed in them; and among these * * * the image
-of the Virgin Mary, holding her infant in her arms, occupied the most
-conspicuous place. Altars and repositories for relics, made of solid
-silver if possible, were procured in various places; from which may
-easily be conjectured, what must have been the splendor and the expense
-of the other sacred utensils.--_Mosheim_.
-
-2. Martyr Worship (3rd century).--When Gregory [surnamed
-Thaumaturgus on account of the numerous miracles he is said to have
-wrought--born in Pontus, in the second decade of the third century]
-perceived that the ignorant and simple multitude persisted in their
-idolatry, on account of the sensitive pleasures and delights it
-afforded, he allowed them in celebrating the memory of the holy
-martyrs, to indulge themselves, and give a loose to pleasure, (i.e., as
-the thing itself, and both what precedes and what follows, place beyond
-all controversy, he allowed them at the sepulchres of the martyrs on
-their fast days, to dance, to use sports, to indulge in conviviality,
-and do all things that the worshipers of idols were accustomed to do in
-their temples, on their festival days), hoping that in process of time,
-they would spontaneously come over to a more becoming and more correct
-manner of life.--Nyssen's Life of Gregory Thaumaturgus.
-
-3. On the Continuance of Spiritual Gifts.--The affliction of
-devils, the confusion of tongues, deadly poisons and sickness [all of
-which were to be overcome by the extraordinary gifts of the Spirit] are
-all curses which have been introduced into the world by the wickedness
-of man. The blessings of the gospel are bestowed to counteract these
-curses. Therefore, as long as these curses exist, the promised signs
-[Mark xvi: 17, 18] are needed to counteract their evil consequences.
-If Jesus had not intended that the blessings should be as extensive
-and unlimited in point of time as the curses, he would have intimated
-something to that effect in his word. But when he makes a universal
-promise of certain powers, to enable every believer in the gospel
-throughout the world to overcome certain curses, entailed {176} upon
-man, because of wickedness, it would be the rankest kind of infidelity
-not to believe the promised blessing necessary, as long as the curses
-abound among men.--Orson Pratt.
-
-4. When and Why the Spiritual Gifts Ceased in the Church.--It
-does not appear that these extraordinary gifts of the Holy Spirit
-[speaking of I Cor. xii] were common in the church for more than two or
-three centuries. We seldom hear of them after that fatal period when
-the Emperor Constantine called himself a Christian; and from a vain
-imagination of promoting the Christian cause thereby heaped riches,
-and power, and honor upon Christians in general, but in particular
-upon the Christian clergy. From this time they [the spiritual gifts]
-almost totally ceased; very few instances of the kind were found. The
-cause of this was not (as has been supposed) because there was no more
-occasion for them, because all the world was become Christians. This
-is a miserable mistake; not a twentieth part of it was then nominally
-Christian. The real cause of it was the love of many, almost all
-Christians, so-called, was waxed cold. The Christians had no more of
-the Spirit of Christ than the other heathens. The Son of Man when he
-came to examine his church, could hardly find faith upon the earth.
-This was the real cause why the extraordinary gifts of the Holy
-Ghost were no longer to be found in the Christian Church--because
-the Christians were turned heathens again and only had a dead form
-left.--John Wesley (Wesley's Works, Vol. vii. Sermon 89, Pages 26, 27.)
-
-5. Illustration of the Oneness of the Godhead.--The Godhead
-may be further illustrated by a council, composed of three men--all
-possessing equal wisdom, knowledge and truth, together with equal
-qualifications in every respect. Each person would be a separate,
-distinct person or substance from the other two, and yet the three
-would form but one council. Each alone possesses, by supposition,
-the same wisdom and truth that the three united or the one council
-possesses. The union of the three men in one council would not increase
-the knowledge of wisdom of either. Each man would be one part of the
-council when reference is made to his person; but the wisdom and truth
-of each man would be the whole wisdom and truth of the council, and not
-a part. If it were possible to divide truth, and other qualities of a
-similar nature into fractions, so that the Father should have the third
-part of truth, the third part of wisdom, the third part of knowledge,
-the third part of love, while the Son and the Holy Spirit possessed
-the other two-thirds of these qualities or affections, then neither of
-these persons could make "one God," "but only a part of a God." But
-because the divisibility of wisdom, truth or love is impossible, the
-whole of these qualities dwell in the Father--the whole dwells in the
-Son--the whole is possessed by the {177} Holy Spirit. The Holy Spirit
-is one part of the Godhead in essence; but the whole of God in wisdom,
-truth, and other similar qualities. If a truth could become three
-truths, distinct from each other, by dwelling in three substances, then
-there would be three Gods instead of one. But as it is, the trinity
-is three in essence, but one in truth and other similar principles.
-The oneness of the Godhead, as described in the scriptures, never was
-intended to apply to the essence, but only to the perfections and other
-attributes.--Orson Pratt.
-
-6. Messiah the Author of the Gospel and Creator of the
-World.--Christ is the author of this gospel, of this earth, of men
-and women, of all the posterity of Adam and Eve, and of every living
-creature that lives upon the face of the earth, that flies in the
-heavens, that swims in the waters, or dwells in the field. Christ is
-the author of salvation to all this creation, to all things pertaining
-to this terrestial globe we occupy.--Brigham Young (Discourse, August
-8, 1852).
-
-7. The Phantom Theory of the Gnostics.--While the blood of Christ
-yet smoked on Mount Calvary, the Docetus [the name given to the Gnostic
-Christians] invented the impious and extravagant hypothesis, that,
-instead of issuing from the womb of the virgin, he had descended on the
-banks of the Jordan in the form of perfect manhood; that he had imposed
-on the senses of his enemies, and of his disciples; and that the
-ministers of Pilate had wasted their impotent rage on an airy phantom,
-who seemed to expire on the cross, and, after three days, to rise from
-the dead.--Gibbon.
-
-8. The Fashion of Uniting Discordant Elements in Philosophy and
-Religion.--When we come to consider the state of philosophy at that
-time [the early Christian centuries], and the fashion which prevailed
-of catching at anything new, and of uniting discordant elements into
-fanciful systems, we shall not be surprised to find the doctrines of
-the gospel disguised and altered, and that, according to the language
-of that age, many new heresies were formed.--Burton's Brampton Lectures.
-
-9. The Mysteries of Religion Deepened Through Attempted
-Explanation.--That devout and reverential simplicity of the first
-ages of the church, which taught men to believe when God speaks, and
-obey when God commands, appeared to most of the doctors of this age
-[the fifth century] to be unphilosophical and becoming only in the
-vulgar. Many of those, however, who attempted to explain and illustrate
-these doctrines, opened the way rather to disputation than for a
-rational faith and a holy life; for they did not so much explain, as
-involve in greater obscurity, and darken with ambiguous terms and
-incomprehensible distinctions the deep mysteries of revealed religion.
-And hence arose abundant matter for difficulties, contentions and
-animosities which flowed down to succeeding ages, and which {178} can
-scarcely be removed by the efforts of human power. It hardly need be
-remarked, that some, while pressing their adversaries, incautiously
-fell into errors of an opposite character which were no less
-dangerous.--Mosheim.
-
-10. Immaterialists are Atheists.--There are two classes of
-atheists in the world. One class denies the existence of God in the
-most positive language; the other denies his existence in duration or
-space. One says, "There is no God;" the other says "God is not here or
-there, any more than he exists now and then." The infidel says, "There
-is no such a substance as God." The immaterialist says, "There is
-such a substance as God, but it is 'without parts.'" The atheist says,
-"There is no such substance as spirit." The immaterialist says, "A
-spirit, though he lives and acts, occupies no room and fills no space,
-in the same way and after the same manner as matter not even so much
-as does the minutest grain of sand." The atheist does not seek to hide
-his infidelity; but the immaterialist, whose declared belief amounts
-to the same thing as the atheist's endeavors to hide his infidelity
-under the shallow covering of a few words.--Orson Pratt (Absurdities of
-Immaterialism, page 11).
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. Describe the simplicity of public worship in early Christian times.
-(Note 2, end of section III.)
-
-2. What changes in the public worship were gradually introduced? (Note
-1).
-
-3. What was the object in introducing these changes?
-
-4. In what manner was incense introduced into public worship?
-
-5. What especially obnoxious practice became prevalent in the 4th
-century?
-
-6. What can you say of the worship of martyrs? (Note 2).
-
-7. Give an account of the decline of spiritual gifts in the church.
-
-8. On this point what difference exists between Catholics and
-Protestants?
-
-9. What can you say of Protestant excuses for the absence of the
-spiritual gifts of the gospel? (Notes 3 and 4).
-
-10. What does the absence of spiritual gifts prove?
-
-11. In what way were grievous offenses punished by the church?
-
-12. What ceremonies finally became associated with excommunication?
-
-13. What temporal punishments were sometimes associated with
-excommunication?
-
-{179} 14. What can you say of the mingling of pagan philosophy with the
-Christian religion?
-
-15. Give the scriptural doctrine respecting God.
-
-16. Give an instance from scripture where the personages of the Godhead
-are seen to be distinct.
-
-17. In what does the oneness of the Father, Son and Holy Ghost consist?
-(Note 5.)
-
-18. How did the early Christians regard the scriptural doctrine of the
-Godhead?
-
-19. By what means did men at last try to explain the revelation?
-
-20. Give the Gnostic idea respecting God.
-
-21. How did the Gnostics account for the creation of the world?
-
-22. In what way did the Gnostics avoid making God the author of evil?
-
-23. What is the nature of man according to the Gnostic philosophy?
-
-24. What did the Gnostic philosophy look to as the culmination between
-the struggle of man with evil?
-
-25. In what light did the Gnostics look upon Jesus Christ?
-
-26. What fanciful theory did some of them hold respecting him? (Note 7).
-
-27. To what two modes of life did the Gnostic philosophy lead?
-
-28. What was the new Platonic philosophy?
-
-29. What was Plato's idea of God?
-
-30. In what way was there an attempt to harmonize the philosophy of
-Plato with the writings of St John?
-
-31. State the "orthodox" doctrine respecting Deity in those times.
-
-32. State the Sabellian theory.
-
-33. Give an illustration of it.
-
-34. State the Arian theory.
-
-35. In what way did the Nicene Council decide the trinity controversy?
-
-36. What confession did Athanasius make as to his inability to
-comprehend the Nicene creed?
-
-37. What great error resulted from the controversy on the nature of
-Deity?
-
-38. What passages of scripture refute the "orthodox" Christian notion
-that God is immaterial?
-
-39. How from reason would you refute the notion that God is an
-immaterial Being?
-
-{180}
-
-
-
-SECTION VI.
-
-1. Departure from Moral Precepts of the Gospel.--There was as
-wide a departure from the moral precepts of the gospel among the
-Christians as there was from the doctrines, ordinances and government
-of the church. From the nature of the reproofs, the admonitions and
-warnings to be found in the epistles of the apostles to the churches,
-one may see that while they yet lived the saints were prone to
-wickedness, and great errors in regard to moral conduct crept into the
-churches. The writings of the early fathers of the church who succeeded
-the apostles also bear witness to the continuance and increase of these
-errors.
-
-2. Double Rule of Life.--As early as the second century the idea
-became prevalent that messiah had prescribed a twofold rule of moral
-conduct; the one ordinary, the other extraordinary; one for those
-engaged in ordinary affairs of life, the other for persons of leisure
-and such as desired a higher glory in the future life. This led the
-early Christian doctors to divide whatsoever had been taught by the
-apostles in respect to Christian life and morals, into precepts and
-counsels. The precepts were those laws which were equally binding on
-all men the counsels were binding only on those who aspired to a closer
-union with God.
-
-3. Of course there soon appeared a class of persons who sought
-to attain to this closer union; and they adopted the method of life
-practiced among the pagan philosophers who wished to excel in virtue.
-They considered many things forbidden to them which were proper for
-ordinary Christians to {181} indulge in; such as wine, flesh, matrimony,
-and secular business. They thought the holiness of life they aspired to
-could sooner be attained by emaciating the body by fastings, watchings,
-excessive toil, hunger, insufficient and coarse raiment. In short, they
-"thought to merit heaven by making earth a hell." Those who engaged
-in this kind of life soom came to distinguish themselves by their
-dress as well as by the austerity of their lives. They soon began to
-withdraw themselves from association with their fellow Christians and
-the world and retire to the deserts and the wilderness, where by severe
-meditation they sought to abstract their minds from external objects
-and those things which minister to sensual delights. They sometimes
-lived alone but oftener in association with those devoted to the same
-manner of life.
-
-4. When peace was assured to the Christian church, early in the
-fourth century, the number of those who became ambitious for this
-austere righteousness greatly increased, until vast multitudes of
-monk and sacred virgins spread with remarkable rapidity throughout
-Christendom. About the year 305, A. D., the practice of collecting
-these people into associated communities and regulating their mode of
-living by fixed rules was introduced. St Anthony of Egypt was the prime
-mover in this work. Thus monasteries and nunneries were established;
-and in a short time the east, especially, swarmed with persons who
-abandoned the conveniences, associations and business of ordinary
-life, to pine away in these institutions and hardships and sufferings,
-in order to attain a closer communion with God and a more excellent
-salvation.
-
-5. Origin of the False Idea of Moral Life.--"The Christian church
-would have remained free from these numerous tortures of the mond
-and body," remarks Dr. Mosheim, "had not that great and fascinating
-doctrine of the ancient philosophy gained credence among Christians
-that to attain to happiness and communion with God, the soul must be
-freed from the influence {182} of the body, and for this purpose the
-body must be subdued." [100]
-
-6. As a further evidence that these false notions of life and
-virtue came from the pagan philosophy rather than from the Christian
-religion, we quote again from Mosheim:
-
- The causes of this institution [austere method of life] are at
- hand. First, the Christians did not like to appear inferior to the
- Greeks, the Romans, and the other people; among whom were many
- philosophers and sages, who were distinguished from the vulgar by
- their dress and their whole mode of life, and who were held in
- high honor. Now among these philosopher (as is well known), none
- better pleased the Christians than the Platonists and Pythagoreans
- [Pyth-a-go-re-ans]; who are known to have recommended two modes of
- living, the one for philosophers who wished to excel in virtue, and
- the other for the people engaged in the common affairs of life.[101]
-
-The Platonists prescribed the following rules for philosophers:
-
- The mind of a wise man must be withdrawn, as far as possible, from
- the contagious influence of the body, and as the oppressive load of
- the body and social intercourse are most adverse to this design,
- therefore all sensual gratifications are to be avoided; the body is
- to be sustained or rather mortified, with coarse and slender fare;
- solitude is to be sought for; and the mind is to be self-collected,
- and absorbed in contemplation, so as to be detached as much as
- possible from the body. Whoever lives in this manner, shall in the
- present life have converse with God; and when freed from the load
- of the body, shall ascend without delay to the celestial mansions
- and shall not need, like the souls of other men, to undergo
- purgation.[102]
-
-7. It will be remembered that the Christians adopted the pagan
-philosophy--of which the teachings of Plato were the basis--and
-employed it to explain the Christian religion. It is {183} not
-surprising, therefore, that they adopted its moral precepts, and by so
-doing corrupted that reasonable and healthy moral life enjoined upon
-all alike in the gospel of Jesus Christ.
-
-8. Celibacy of the Clergy.--From the same source came the
-celibacy of the clergy. It was considered that those who lived in
-wedlock were more subject to the assaults of evil spirits than those
-who lived in celibacy; hence those who were appointed to teach and
-govern others were supposed to be all the better qualified for their
-work if they had nothing to do with conjugal life. It was a matter,
-however, which during the first centuries was not strictly enjoined
-by any formal regulations of the church; it was left for Pope Gregory
-VII in the eleventh century to bind such a wicked regulation upon the
-clergy by express law. In the third century the most shameful abuses
-arose out of this doctrine; for men sought to fulfill its requirements
-with the least violence to their inclinations, and many of those who
-had taken upon themselves vows of chastity, took to their houses and
-even to their beds some one of those holy females under like vows of
-chastity, yet maintained that there was no improper relations between
-them. It is but just to say that many bishops condemned this shameful
-practice but it was some time before the church was rid of it, and the
-scandal it created, and even when such practices did cease openly it
-may well be doubted if it really ceased among those forced into such
-unnatural conditions.
-
-9. Deceiving and Lying Accounted Virtues.--Another evil which
-went far toward corrupting the church was the idea that to deceive and
-lie are virtues when religion can be promoted by them. This pernicious
-doctrine was accepted early in the first centuries and it accounts
-for the existence and circulation of that great mass of childish
-fable and falsehood respecting the infancy and youth of Messiah and
-the miraculous, wonder-working power of the relics of the saints and
-martyrs, from which the cause of the Christian religion has suffered so
-{184} much. "If some inquisitive person were to examine the conduct and
-the writings of the greatest and most pious teachers of this century"
-[the fourth], writes Dr. Mosheim, "I fear he would find about all of
-them infected with this leprosy. I cannot except Ambrose, nor Hilary,
-nor Augustine, nor Gregory Nazianzen nor Jerome." [103]
-
-10. Immoral Condition of the Church in General.--The wickedness
-of the clergy in the last centuries, the ambition of the bishops and
-their imitating in their lives the voluptuousness of princes, we have
-already noted in section four of part II, and therefore little need
-be said here further than to remark that those vices very rapidly
-increased. As time rolled on worldly prosperity seemed to relax the
-nerves of discipline. "Fraud, envy and malice prevailed in every
-congregation. The presbyters aspired to the episcopal office, which
-every day became an object more worthy their ambition. The bishops who
-contended with each other for ecclesiastical pre-eminence, appeared by
-their conduct to claim a secular and tyrannical power in the church;
-and the lively faith which still distinguished the Christians from the
-Gentiles was shown much less in their lives than in their controversial
-writings." [104]
-
-11. Sometimes these struggles for place and power resulted in
-war and bloodshed. Such was the case in the fourth century when a new
-pope was to be elected to succeed Liberius [Li-be-ri-us]. One party in
-Rome was for one Damasus [Dam-a-sus], and another party for Ursicinus
-[Ur-si-ci-nus]. The contest resulted in a bloody conflict, houses were
-burned and many lost their lives. In one church alone one morning after
-the conflict there were found one hundred and thirty-seven corpses to
-bear witness to the violence of the struggle for what was claimed to be
-the office of viceregent of God on earth.
-
-12. Moral Condition of the Church in the Fourth {185}
-Century.--In the fourth century--"If we look at the lives and
-morals of the Christians--we shal find, as heretofore, that good men
-were commingled with bad, yet the number of the bad began gradually
-to increase, so that the truly pious and godly appeared more rare.
-when there was no more to fear from enemies from without; when the
-character of most bishops was tarnished with arrogance, luxury,
-effeminacy, animosity, resentments, and other defects; when the lower
-clergy neglected their proper duties, and were more attentive to
-controversies, than to the promotion of piety and the instruction
-of the people; when vast numbers were induced not by a rational
-conviction, but by the fear of punishment and the hope of worldly
-advantage to enroll themselves as Christians, how can it surprise us,
-that on all sides the vicious appeared a host, and the pious a little
-band almost overpowered by them. Against the flagitious and those
-guilty of heinous offenses, the same rules for penance were prescribed,
-as before the reign of Constantine. But as the times continually
-waxed worse and worse, the more honorable and powerful could sin with
-impunity, and only the poor and the unfortunate felt the severity of
-the laws." [105]
-
-13. Moral Condition of the Church in the Fifth Century.--About
-the middle of the fifth century we have Salvian [Sal-vi-an] saying:
-
- The very church which should be the body to appease the anger of
- God, alas! what reigns there but disorders calculated to incense
- the Most High? It is more common to meet with Christians who are
- guilty of the greatest abominations than with those who are wholly
- exempt from crime. So that today it is a sort of sanctity among us
- to be less vicious than the generality of Christians. We insult the
- majesty of the Most High at the foot of his altars. Men, the most
- steeped in crime enter the holy places without respect for them.
- True all men ought to pay their vows to God, but why should they
- seek his temples to propitiate him, only to go forth to provoke
- him? {186} Why enter the church to deplore their former sins,
- and upon going forth--what do I say?--in those very courts the
- commit fresh sins, their mouths and their hearts contradict one
- another. Their prayers are criminal meditations rather than vows of
- expiation. Scarcely is the service ended before each returns to his
- old practices. Some go to their wine, others to their impurities,
- still others to robbing and brigandage, so that we cannot doubt
- that these things had been occupying them while they were in the
- church. Nor is it the lowest of the people who are thus guilty.
- There is no rank whatever in the church which does not commit all
- sorts of crimes.
-
- 14. It may be urged that we are at heart better than the
- barbarians who oppose us. Suppose this to be granted; we ought
- to be better than they. But as a matter of fact, they are more
- virtuous than we. The mass of Christians are below the barbarians
- in probity. True, all kinds of sins are found among them but what
- one is not found among us? The several nations have their peculiar
- sin; the Saxons are cruel; the Franks perfidious; the Gepidae
- inhuman; the Huns lewd. But we, having the law of God to restrain
- us, are given over to all these offenses. Then to confine ourselves
- to the single sin of swearing, can many be found among the faithful
- who have not the name of Jesus Christ constantly upon their lips
- in support of their perjuries? This practice coming down from the
- higher to the lower classes, has so prevailed that Christians might
- be deemed pagans. This, although the law of God expressly forbids
- to take his name in vain. We read this law but we do not practice
- it; as a consequence the pagans taunt us that we boast ourselves
- the sole possessors of God's law, and of the rules of truth and of
- what that law enjoins. Christians, indeed, to the shame of Jesus
- Christ! say they.[106]
-
-15. In book VI on _The Providence of God_, Salvian continues his
-arraignment:
-
- We rush from the churches to the theatres, even in the midst of
- our perils. In Carthage the theatres were thronged while the enemy
- {187} were before the walls, and the cries of those perishing
- outside under the sword mingled with the shouts of the spectators
- in the circus. Nor are we better here in Gaul (France). Treves
- [Trevz] has been taken four times, and has only increased in
- wickedness under her misfortunes. The same state of things exists
- in Cologne [Ko-lon]--deplorable wickedness among young and old, low
- and high. The smaller cities have been blind and insensible to the
- dangers threatening, until they have overwhelmed them. It seems to
- be the destiny of the Roman empire to perish rather than reform;
- they must cease to be, in order to cease to be vicious. A part of
- the inhabitants of Treves, having escaped from the ruins, petitions
- the emperor for--what? A theatre, spectacles, public shows! A city
- which thrice overthrown could not correct itself, well deserved
- to suffer a fourth destruction. * * * Would that my voice might
- be heard by all Romans! I would cry: Let us all blush that today
- the only cities where impurity does not reign are those which have
- submitted to the barbarians. Think not, then, that they conquer and
- we yield by the simple force of nature. Rather let us admit that
- we succumb through the dissoluteness of our morals of which our
- calamities are the just punishment.[107]
-
-16. State of Morals in Centuries Subsequent to the Fifth.--Such
-was the condition of the Christian church as to morals in the fifth
-century. It was no better in the sixth or the seventh or the eighth.
-Indeed the concurrent testimony of all authorities is to the effect
-that matters moral and spiritual grew gradually worse in these
-centuries until darkness covered the earth and gross darkness the
-people. Of the ninth century Mosheim says:
-
- The ungodly lives of most of those intrusted with the care and
- government of the church are a subject of complaint with all
- the ingenuous and honest writers of this age. In the east,
- sinister designs, rancor, contentions and strife were everywhere
- predominant. * * *
-
- In the west, the bishops hung round the courts of princes and
- indulged {188} themselves in every species of voluptuousness; while
- the inferior clergy and the monks were sensual, and by the grossest
- vices corrupted the people whom they were set to reform.[108]
-
-17. State of Morals in Tenth Century.--Of the tenth century Dr.
-Milner, who wrote his great history for the purpose of maintaining that
-there had been a succession of pious men since the founding of the
-church by Messiah, and to "trace the goodness of God taking care of his
-church in every age by his providence," [109] says:
-
- The famous annalist of the Roman Church,[110] whose partiality
- to the see of Rome is notorious, has, however, the candor to own
- that this [the tenth century] was an iron age, barren of all
- goodness; a leaden age, abounding in all wickedness; and a dark
- age, remarkable above all other things for the scarcity of writers
- and men of learning. Christ was then, as it appears, in a very
- deep sleep, when the ship was covered with waves; and what seemed
- worse, when the Lord was thus asleep there were no disciples,
- who by their cries, might wake him, being themselves all fast
- asleep. * * * Under an allusion by no means incongruous with the
- oriental abd scriptural taste, this writer [Baronius] represents
- the divine head of the church as having given up the church for its
- wickedness, to a judicial impenitency, which continued the longer,
- because there was scarcely any zealous spirits who had the charity
- to pray for the cause of God upon earth. * * * Infidel Malice has
- with pleasure recorded the vices and the crimes of the popes of
- this century. Nor is it my intention to attempt to palliate the
- account of their wickedness. It was as deep {189} and atrocious as
- language can paint; nor can a reasonable man desire more authentic
- evidence of history than that which the records both of civil and
- ecclesiastical history afford concerning the corruption of the
- whole church.[111]
-
-18. The Church Destroyed.--Beyond this century it is not
-necessary to go. The church of Christ no longer existed in the earth.
-The persecution of the Jews and the Romans, coupled with the internal
-dissensions in the church; the rise of false teachers, who brought
-in damnable heresies; the changing of the character and spirit of
-the church government; the addition of pagan rites and ceremonies to
-the doctrines and ordinances of the gospel; the admixture of pagan
-philosophy with Christian theology; and, finally, the universal
-departure of the church from that moral life enjoined upon mankind by
-the precepts of the Christian religion--utterly subverted the religion
-of Jesus Christ, and destroyed the church which he founded. The
-apostasy of men from that religion and church was complete; and since
-they did not like to retain God in their hearts, God also gave them up
-to uncleanness through the lusts of their own hearts. [See notes 1 to
-6, end of section].
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Admission of the Great Apostasy by Christian Writers.--The
-church of England in its Homily on the Perils of Idolatry, says: "Laity
-and clergy, learned and unlearned, all ages, sects and degrees have
-been drowned in abominable idolatry most detested by God and damnable
-to man for eight hundred years and more."
-
-2. In Smith's Dictionary of the Bible (page 163)--the work
-is endorsed by sixty-three learned divines and Bible scholars--the
-following {190} occurs: "We must not expect to see the church of Christ
-existing in its perfection on the earth. It is not to be found thus
-perfect, either in the collected fragments of Christendom, or still
-less in any one of those fragments."
-
-3. John Wesley said that the reason why the extraordinary gifts
-of the Holy Ghost were no longer to be found in the church [in the dark
-ages] was "because the love of many waxed cold, the Christians had
-turned heathens again and only had a dead form left."--(Wesley's Works,
-Vol. vii, sermon 89, pages 26, 27).
-
-4. Dr. Adam Clark commenting on the fourth chapter of
-Ephsians--treating church officers and the gifts bestowed upon
-them--says: "All these officers and the and graces conferred upon
-them were adjudged necessary by the great head of the church for its
-full instruction in the important doctrines of Christianity. The same
-officers and gifts are still necessary, and God gives them, but they do
-not know their places."
-
-5. Roger Williams (Picturesque America, page 502) refused to
-continue as pastor over the oldest Baptist church in America on the
-ground that there was "no regularly constituted church on earth, nor
-any person qualified to administer any church ordinance; nor can there
-be until new apostles are sent by the great head of the church, for
-whose coming I am seeking."
-
-5. Alexander Campbell, founder of the sect of the "Disciples,"
-says: "The meaning of this institution [the kingdom of heaven] has been
-buried under the rubbish of human tradition for hundreds of years.
-It was lost in the dark ages and has never, until recently, been
-disinterred."--(Christianity Restored, page 184).
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What may be learned from the reproofs and admonitions in the
-writings of the apostles and early Christian fathers?
-
-2. About what time did the notion arise in respect to a double rule of
-life?
-
-3. What great evil grew out of this erroneous idea?
-
-4. From whence did Christians derive their ideas which demanded the
-austerities they practiced?
-
-5. Give an account of the origin of monasteries and nunneries.
-
-6. How did the celibacy of the clergy originate?
-
-7. When did it become an express law of the church?
-
-8. What shameful scandal arose from this doctrine in the 3rd century?
-
-9. Under what circumstances were lying and deceiving accounted virtues?
-
-{191} 10. What evil grew out of this wicked notion?
-
-11. What can you say of the general moral condition of the church in
-the early Christian centuries?
-
-12. State the moral condition of the church in the 4th century. In the
-5th.
-
-13. What of the moral state of the church subsequent to the 5th?
-
-14. Give the substance of Dr. Milner's admission concerning the moral
-state of the church in the 10th century.
-
-15. State what several circumstances led to the destruction of the
-church of Christ.
-
-16. Recount the admissions which noted Christian writers make
-concerning the apostasy from the Christian religion. (Notes end of
-section).
-
-{192}
-
-
-
-SECTION VII.
-
-We have considered those events that occurred in the church by
-which its form and spirit of government were altered, its doctrines
-corrupted, its ordinances changed, and its truths and powers subverted.
-We now turn to the scriptures to show that all these things were
-predicted by the apostles and prophets of God, being foreseen by the
-spirit of revelation.
-
-1. False Teachers to Arise in the Church.--On the occasion of
-Paul's last visit to Ephesus, he had the elders assembled, and in the
-course of his address to them said:
-
- I have not shunned to declare unto you all the counsel of God.
- Taken heed, therefore, unto yourselves, and to all the flock, over
- which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the church of
- God which he hath purchased with his own blood. For I know this,
- that after my departing shall grievous wolves enter in among you,
- not sparing the flock. Also of your own selves shall men arise,
- speaking perverse things to lead away disciples after them.[112]
-
-2. In his second letter to Timothy the same apostle again
-prophesies of the coming of these false teachers:
-
- I charge thee, therfore, [said he], before God, and the Lord Jesus
- Christ, who shall judge the quick and the dead at his appearing and
- his kingdom; preach the word; be instant in season, out of season;
- reprove, rebuke with all long suffering and doctrine. For the time
- will come when they will not endure sound doctrine; but after their
- own lusts shall they heap to themselves teachers having itching
- ears; and they [the false teachers] shall turn their ears from the
- truth, and shall be turned unto fables.[113]
-
-3. Peter also prophesied the rise of false teachers in the {193}
-church. In his second epistle, addressed, "to them that have obtained
-like precious faith," with himself--that is, to the saints; after
-saying that prophecy in olden time came by men speaking as they were
-moved upon by the Holy Ghost;[114] he then remarks:
-
- But there were false prophets also among the people [that is, among
- the ancient saints], even as there shall be false teachers among
- you, who privily shall bring in damnable heresies, even denying the
- Lord that bought them, and bring upon themselves swift destruction.
- And many shall follow their pernicious ways; by reason of whom the
- way of truth shall be evil spoken of. And through covetousness with
- feigned words make merchandise of you; whose judgment now of a long
- time lingereth not, and their damnation slumbereth not.[115]
-
-4. Hypocrisy and Austerity Predicted.--Paul also appears to have
-foreseen the hypocrisy that would creep into the church, together with
-that useless austerity of life with which men and women would become
-infatuated, and which, became the fountain of so much corruption. He
-thus speaks of it:
-
- Now the Spirit speaketh expressly, that in the latter times some
- shall depart from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits and
- doctrines of devils; speaking lies in hypocrisy, having their
- conscience seared with a hot iron; forbidding to marry, and
- commanding to abstain from meats.[116]
-
-5. The Rise of Anti-Christ Foretold.--Moreover, the Prophet Paul
-foretold the rise of anti-Christ before the glorious coming of Messiah
-to judgment. He plainly foresaw the "falling away"--the long night of
-spiritual darkness and apostasy that would brood over the world before
-the coming of the Son of God in the glory of his Father, to reward the
-righteous, to condemn the wicked. He said of this apostasy:
-
- Now we beseech you, brethren, by the coming of our Lord Jesus {194}
- Christ and by our gathering together unto him; that ye be not soon
- shaken in mind, or be troubled, neither by spirit nor by word, nor
- by letter as from us, as that the day of Christ is at hand.[117]
- Let no man deceive you by any means, for that day shall not come
- except there come a falling away first, and that man of sin be
- revealed, the son of perdition; who opposeth and exalteth himself
- above all that is called God, or that is worshiped; so that he
- as God sitteth in the temple of God, showing himself that he is
- God. Remember ye not that when I was yet with you I told you these
- things? And now ye know what withholdeth that he might be revealed
- in his own time. For the mystery of iniquity doth already work:
- only he who now letteth [hindereth] will let [will hinder][118]
- until he be taken out of the way. And then shall that Wicked be
- revealed, whom the Lord shall consume with the spirit of his mouth,
- and shall destroy with the brightness of his coming; even him whose
- coming is after the working of Satan, with all power and signs and
- lying wonders, and with all deceivableness of unrighteousness in
- them that perish; because they received not the love of the truth,
- that they might be saved. And for this cause God shall send them
- strong delusions, that they should believe a lie; that they all
- might be damned who believe not the truth, but had pleasure in
- unrighteousness. [119]
-
-6. Isaiah's Great Prophecy of the Apostasy.--Isaiah also
-prophesied of the universal apostasy from the gospel of Christ. After
-describing the earth as mourning and fading away, together with its
-haughty people, he said:
-
- The earth also is defiled under the inhabitants thereof; because
- they have transgressed the laws, changed the ordinance, broken the
- everlasting covenant. Therefore hath the curse devoured the earth,
- and they that dwell therein are desolate: therefore the inhabitants
- of the earth are burned, and few men left. [120]
-
-7. It is sometimes claimed that this prophecy refers to the
-Mosaic law, and the Mosaic covenant, instead of the gospel of Christ.
-The answer to such claim is that the prophecy has reference to an
-everlasting covenant that is to be broken; and the Mosaic law or
-covenant, never was intended to be an everlasting covenant, while the
-gospel of Christ is such a covenant. Paul said:
-
- The scripture, foreseeing that God would justify the heathen
- through faith, preached before the gospel to Abraham. * * *
- Wherefore then serveth the law [that is, if the gospel was
- preached unto Abraham, of what use is the law of Moses--the law
- of carnal commandments--how came it into existence]? It was added
- because of transgression, till the seed [Christ] should come,
- to whom the promise was made. * * * Wherefore the law was our
- schoolmaster to bring us unto Christ, that we might be justified
- by faith. But after that faith is come, we are no longer under a
- schoolmaster. [121]
-
-8. From this it appears that the gospel was preached in very
-ancient times; that afterwards, because of transgression--doubtless
-apostasy--the law of Moses was added, or given in the place of the
-gospel, that it might act as a schoolmaster to bring the people to
-Christ, that is, prepare them for the gospel. Therefore, when the
-gospel was introduced by the personal ministry of Messiah, the law of
-Moses--the carnal law--having served its purpose, was set aside, and
-the gospel was reinstated. It will be seen, therefore, that the Mosaic
-law was not an everlasting covenant, but a temporary law, given for a
-specific purpose, having accomplished which it is supplanted by a more
-excellent law and covenant. It is clear that Isaiah's great prophecy
-had no reference to the law of Moses, but to an everlasting covenant
-which was to be broken, its ordinance changed, its laws transgressed.
-That covenant is the gospel of {196} Jesus Christ, whose blood is
-spoken of as the "blood of the everlasting covenant." [122]
-
-9. Moreover the prophecy ends by saying that in consequence
-of the transgression of the law, the changing of the ordinance, the
-breaking of the covenant, "the inhabitants of the earth are burned, and
-few men left." This predicted calamity did not overtake the people for
-breaking the Mosaic law. It has not yet taken place. It is a judgment
-still hanging over mankind for their great apostasy from the gospel of
-Jesus Christ.
-
-10. John's Vision Foreshadowing the Apostasy.--Among the many
-revelations given to the Apostle John while a prisoner on the Isle of
-Patmos was one in which he saw an angel "fly in the midst of heaven,
-having the everlasting gospel to preach unto them that dwell on the
-earth, and to every nation, and kindred, and tongue, and people, saying
-with a loud voice, "Fear God, and give glory to him; for the hour of
-his judgment is come: and worship him that made heaven, and earth, and
-the sea, and the fountains of waters." [123] From this it is learned
-that in the hour of God's judgment the gospel will be brought to the
-earth by an angel, and thence proclaimed to every nation, and kindred,
-and tongue, and people, a very good evidence that in the "hour of
-God's judgment" all the world would be without the gospel, or why this
-restoration at that time and its universal proclamation if the nations
-at the time indicated already possessed it?
-
-11. Thus through revelation the ancient prophets foresaw the
-great apostasy from the gospel of Jesus Christ. We who live now after
-the great event has occurred, in the light of historical facts, see it
-no more plainly than did these ancient servants of God through the gift
-of prophecy. They read the history of it by the light of revelation, we
-by the light of history, and the former is a light no less certain than
-the latter.
-
-{197}
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. By what means were the apostles and still more ancient prophets made
-acquainted with the great apostasy from the Christian religion?
-
-2. Repeat the several prophecies concerning the rise of false teachers
-in the church.
-
-3. Give the passage which predicts the rise of hypocrisy and austerity
-of life.
-
-4. In what passage of Paul's writings is the rise of anti-Christ
-predicted?
-
-5. What does letteth and let in this passage mean? Give proof.
-
-6. State in what way Paul's great prophecy has been fulfilled.
-
-7. State Isaiah's great prophecy respecting the apostasy.
-
-8. What objection may be urged to our application of this prophecy?
-
-9. How would you meet the objection?
-
-10. What great judgment is still pending over the world because of
-their wicked apostasy?
-
-11. What vision given to St. John on Patmos foreshadowed a universal
-apostasy?
-
-12. If the gospel from the time it was established on the earth by
-Messiah's personal ministry had continued with men until now, would
-there be any necessity for restoring it to the earth in the hour of
-God's judgment?
-
-13. Was the fact of the apostasy read by the light of the spirit of
-prophecy less clear than when by the light of historical facts?
-
-{198}
-
-
-
-SECTION VIII.
-
-1. The Nephite Christian Church.--For nearly two centuries the
-Nephite Christian church flourished in great prosperity. For that
-length of time the truth seems to have been preserved in its fullness,
-and the church in its unity. With the third century, however, began
-that apostasy which eventually terminated by a complete subversion of
-the church of Christ on the Western hemisphere.
-
-2. Pride of Wealth and Class Distinctions.--The peace and
-righteousness of two centuries brought great prosperity and wealth
-to the Nephite Christians--to the entire western hemisphere; but the
-commencement of the third century began to develop the fact that
-pride was pressing fast upon the heels of that prosperity. Up to the
-commencement of the third century the Nephite Christians had all
-things common; but early in the third century that order of things was
-broken up. Class distinctions arose, men began to pride themselves on
-their fine apparel and jewels. They began to build churches to get
-gain, and to deny the true church of Christ. Others, professing to be
-Christians, denied much of that which Messiah taught, and administered
-that which was sacred to those to whom it had been forbidden, because
-of unworthiness.
-
-3. The Anti-Christian Church Persecutions.--There also arose an
-anti-Christian church, which persecuted the true church, despising the
-members thereof because of their humility, and hating them because
-of the power of God which was with them. Among the twelve apostles
-whom Jesus selected from the Nephites three desired that they might
-remain upon the earth until Messiah should come in his glory. {199}
-This request was granted them, and their bodies were changed that they
-were not subject to death. They had remained with the church up to the
-time of which we write, and against them the anti-Christian church was
-especially embittered. The apostates sought to kill them as the Jews
-at Jerusalem tried to kill Jesus; they cast them into prison and into
-dens of wild beasts; but the Lord delivered them from prisons, murders
-and the wild beasts, and that by the manifestations of his power. Yet
-the miracles did not convert their ungodly persecutors, and the wicked
-increased rapidly in numbers.
-
-4. Revival of Old Distinctions.--Soon the ancient distinctions
-between Nephites and Lamanites which for two centuries had been buried
-in oblivion, began to be employed to designate the two peoples which
-gradually began to be formed. The true Christians were called Nephites,
-and their enemies Lamanite. All the old bitterness which attached to
-the names in former times was revived.
-
-5. It was but a few years after the apostasy began before the
-wicked outnumbered the righteous. For a while the name "Nephites"
-designated the true followers of Messiah, but soon they became as proud
-and as wicked as the Lamanites, and righteousness was subverted.
-
-6. Revival of Secret Organizations.--The old secret societies
-were revived for robbery and plunder. Early in the fourth century (320
-A. D.) Ammoran, who had charge of the Nephite records, hid them up,
-revealing the place of their concealment only to Mormon, a lad then ten
-years of age, giving him a charge to go, when he was twenty-four years
-old, and take the plates of Nephi and record on them the things he
-had witnessed among the people. About the same time the three Nephite
-apostles disappeared from among the people; the church no longer
-being worthy of their administrations, the Lord took them away. All
-miracles, healings, and other spiritual manifestations ceased. Mormon,
-a historian and a {200} righteous man, remained with them, but he was
-forbidden to preach to them. A black pall of spiritual darkness settled
-over the land and the minds of the people.
-
-7. An Attempt to Reorganize the Church.--Forty years later, after
-a series of disastrous wars, by which one might reasonably expect the
-Nephites would be humbled and brought to seek the Lord, an attempt to
-re-establish the church was made. Mormon received a commandment to
-preach repentance and baptism to the people, a commandment which he
-willingly obeyed; but all to no purpose. The people would not repent.
-They hardened their hearts against God and made themselves fit only for
-destruction.
-
-8. Utter Destruction of the Nephites.--That destruction was not
-very remote. Towards the close of that century which witnessed the
-climax of their wickedness saw their destruction. By permission of the
-Lamanites the Nephites assembled about the hill called by them Cumorah
-and prepared for the last great struggle. It took place in the year 385
-A. D., and resulted in the entire destruction of the Nephite people,
-except, perhaps, a few who fled southward. Mormon was slain, and his
-son, the last of the Nephites, was preserved to record the destruction
-and the desolation which followed it, and hid up the records of the
-great race which had founded kingdoms and republics upon the western
-hemisphere that would vie with those of Persia, Macedonia or Greece;
-and cities that in extent and grandeur must have equalled those of
-Antioch, Alexandria, Tyre or Sidon.
-
-9. The Reign of Anarchy.--That civilization was destroyed, the
-empires and republics were overthrown, government was destroyed,
-anarchy reigned. The people, chiefly Lamanites, who survived the
-terrible conflict about Cumorah, broke up into tribes, each fiercely
-contending with the other. Cities were laid waste to crumble into
-shapeless heaps of ruin, with here and there a monument that defied
-the ravages of time and {201} proudly stood a silent witness of the
-greatness of the departed race which reared it. Such was the apostasy
-on the western hemisphere, and such the result which followed it.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. For how long did the Nephite Christian church keep the faith?
-
-2. In the third century what occurred?
-
-3. On what were their class distinctions based?
-
-4. State what you can of the rise and course of the anti-Christian
-church.
-
-5. What of the rise of old distinctions?
-
-6. What old organizations were revived in the fourth century?
-
-7. What attempt was made to reorganize the church?
-
-8. Where were the Nephites destroyed?
-
-9. What followed the destruction of the Nephites?
-
-Footnotes
-
-1. These statements are sustained in the following scriptures. Matt.
-x:16-40; Luke vi:22-26; John xv:18-22.
-
-2. Acts vii: 55-60.
-
-3. Acts xii: 1, 2.
-
-4. Eusebius Bk. II, ch. xxiii.
-
-5. Acts xii.
-
-6. Mosheim Part I, ch. v.
-
-7. Matt. xxvii: 22-25.
-
-8. Josephus' Wars of the Jews, Bk. vi, ch. ix.
-
-9. Luke xxi: 5-9, 20-24.
-
-10. Eusebius Bk. III, ch. v. The Saints were also warned to flee from
-Jerusalem by Messiah himself when they should see armies begin to
-encompass it.--See Luke xxi: 20-24.
-
-11. Decline and Fall Vol. I, ch. 1.
-
-12. Annals lib. xv, ch. 44.
-
-13. Decline and Fall I, ch. xvi. See also Guizot's note on same page.
-
-14. This is according to the testimony of Eusebius, quoting Hagesippus
-and Tertullian. (Eusebius Book III, ch. xx). But other authorities
-claim that Domitian's edicts against the Christians were not revoked
-until after his death.
-
-15. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. I. Second Cent. ch. ii.
-
-16. Decline and Fall, vol. I, ch. xvi.
-
-17. Eusebius Eccle. Hist. Bk. v, ch. i and ii.
-
-18. Decline and Fall, vol. I, ch. xvi.
-
-19. Mosheim's Eccl. His. vol. I, cent. iii, ch. ii.
-
-20. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. vol. I, cent. iv, ch. i.
-
-21. Quoted by Murdock in Mosheim.--See note--Mosheim Eccl. Hist. vol.
-I, p. 210.
-
-22. Revelation ch. xiii: 1-7.
-
-23. According to Eusebius, however, Helena was converted to
-Christianity by her son.--De Veta Constantine I, iii, ch: 47.
-
-24. Constantine had caused to be put to death, through jealousy and on
-what, to say the least, was very slight and very suspicious testimony,
-his son Crispus, his wife Fausta, and his brother-in-law Licinius.
-
-25. Decline and Fall, vol. I, ch. xvi.
-
-26. Decline and Fall vol. I, ch. xvi.
-
-27. Mosheim vol. I, Book i, part ii, ch. iv.
-
-28. Acts ii: 41. Acts viii: 12, 35-40.
-
-29. That exorcism was not annexed to baptism till some time in the
-third century, and after the admission of the Platonic philosophy into
-the church, may almost be demonstrated. The ceremonies used at baptism
-in the second century are described by Justin Martyr in his second
-apology, and by Tertullian in his book de Corono Militas. But neither
-makes mention of exorcism. This is a cogent argument to prove that it
-was admitted by Christians after the times of these fathers, and of
-course in the third century. Egypt perhaps first received it. Murdock's
-Mosheim vol. I, p. 190.--(Note.)
-
-30. Mosheim vol. I, book i, part ii, ch. iv.
-
-31. According to Schlegel, the so-called apostolic constitution (b.
-viii, ch. 32) enjoined a three years' course of preparation; yet with
-allowance of some exceptions.
-
-32. That is, the evening preceding the day on which Messiah is supposed
-to have arisen from the dead, and the evening preceding the seventh
-Sunday after Easter, the anniversary of Pentecost when the Holy Ghost
-was poured out upon the Apostles in a remarkable manner (Acts ii.)
-
-33. Mosheim vol. I, book ii, part ii. ch. iv.
-
-34. Cyprian's Epistles, letter 76.
-
-35. Eusebius Eccl. Hist. b. vi, ch. 43.
-
-36. Milner's Church Hist. vol. I pp. 429, 430.
-
-37. Such is the opinion of Milner--Church Hist. vol. I. p. 430.
-
-38. The Lord Jesus the same night in which he was betrayed took bread:
-and when he had given thanks, he brake it, and said, Take, eat; this is
-my body which is broken for you; this do in remembrance of me. After
-the same manner also he took the cup, when he had supped, saying:
-This cup is the new testament in my blood; this do ye, as oft as ye
-drink it, in remembrance of me. For as often as ye eat this bread, and
-drink this cup, ye do show the Lord's death till he come.--Paul to the
-Corinthians. (I Cor. xi: 23-26.)
-
-39. These facts are clearly taught by Messiah when he established the
-sacrament among the Nephites; and of course it was established among
-the Jews for the same purpose that it was among the Nephites. After
-having broken the bread and blessed it, and passed it to the multitude,
-Messiah said: "This shall ye do in remembrance of my body, which I have
-shown unto you. And it shall be a testimony unto the Father that ye do
-always remember me. And if you do always remember me, ye shall have my
-Spirit to be with you." So when he had administered the wine: "Blessed
-are ye for this thing which ye have done; * * * this doth witness unto
-the Father that ye are willing to do that which I have commanded you;
-and this shall ye always do to those who repent and are baptized in my
-name; and ye shall do it in remembrance of my blood which I have shed
-for you, that ye may witness unto the Father that ye do always remember
-me. And if ye do always remember me, ye shall have my Spirit to be with
-you."--III Nephi, xviii. See also Moroni, iv and v, where the prayer of
-consecration is given.
-
-40. Mosheim's Ecclesiastical History, vol. I, book i, cent. iii, part
-2, chapter iv. The banishment of unbaptized people from sacrament
-meetings was forbidden among the Nephites by Messiah. III Nephi xviii:
-22-23.
-
-41. Protestants combating the Catholic idea of the real presence of the
-flesh and blood in the eucharist--transubstantiation--have endeavored
-to prove that this doctrine was not of earlier origin than the eighth
-century. In this, however, the evidence is against them. Ignatius,
-bishop of Antioch, writing early in the second century says of certain
-supposed heretics: "They do not admit of eucharists and oblations,
-because they do not believe the eucharist to be the flesh of our Savior
-Jesus Christ, who suffered for our sins." (Epistles of Ignatius to
-the Smyrneans.) So Justin Martyr, also writing in the first half of
-the second century:--"We do not receive them [the bread and the win]
-as ordinary food or ordinary drink; but as by the word of God Jesus
-Christ, our Savior, was made flesh and took upon him both flesh and
-blood for our salvation, so also the food which was blessed by the
-prayer of the word which proceeded from him, and from which our flesh
-and blood, by transmutation, receive nourishment, is, we are taught,
-both the flesh and blood of that Jesus who was made flesh." (Justin's
-Apology to Emperor Antonius.) After Justin's time the testimony of
-the fathers is abundant. There can be no doubt as to the antiquity of
-the idea of the real presence of the body and blood of Jesus in the
-eucharist; but that proves--as we said of infant baptism--not that the
-doctrine is true, but that soon after the apostles had passed away, the
-simplicity of the gospel was corrupted or else entirely departed from.
-
-42. Luke xxii. Matt. xxvi. III Nephi xviii.
-
-43. It will be remembered that the quorum of the twelve was perpetuated
-on the western hemisphere by filling up vacancies as fast as they
-occurred (IV Nephi: 14), but for how long a period is uncertain.
-
-44. Acts xv: 1-30. Rev. i-iv.
-
-45. During a greater part of this century (the second) all the churches
-continued to be, as at the first, independent of each other. * * * Each
-church was a kind of small republic, governing itself by its own laws,
-enacted or at least sanctioned by the people.--Ecclesiastical History,
-Mosheim Vol. I, book ii, cent. ii, part ii, ch. ii.
-
-46. As might be expected, however, there was a peculiar respect paid
-to the churches founded by the apostles--the church at Jerusalem,
-Antioch, Ephesus, Corinth, Rome. Those churches were appealed to in
-controversies on points of doctrine, "as most likely to know what the
-apostles taught," but the appeal had no other significance than that.
-
-47. Clement, the third bishop of Rome, is my authority for the above
-statement. It appears that the Corinthians had deposed some of their
-bishops, and Clement in an epistle which he wrote to them said: "Our
-apostles knew through our Lord Jesus Christ that there would be strife
-over the name of the bishop's office. For this cause therefore, having
-received complete foreknowledge, they appointed the aforesaid persons
-[the bishops], and afterward they provided a continuance [i.e.,
-gave instructions] that if these should fall asleep, other approved
-men should succeed to their ministration. Those therefore who were
-appointed by other men of repute with the consent of the whole church,
-and have ministered unblamably * * * these men we consider to be
-unjustly thrust out of their ministration."--See also Gibbon's "Decline
-and Fall," vol. I, ch. xv.
-
-48. Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) vol. I, bk. i, cent. iii, part ii, ch. ii.
-
-49. Dr. Mosheim in his Institutes of Ecclesiastical History states
-that next to the patriarchs were bishops called exarchs; but this his
-translator (Murdock) denies. Certain it is, however, that there were
-bishops who presided over several provinces, just as the civil exarchs
-did. These Mosheim may have considered as corresponding to the civil
-exarchs; while his translator insists that they were merely the "first
-metropolitans of the civil dioceses." The difference seems to be one
-of terms rather than of facts; but there is this to say in favor of
-the translator, that the bishops exercising jurisdiction over several
-provinces did not correspond to the number of civil exarchs. There was
-not an exarch bishop over each civil diocese, and perhaps this is the
-reason the learned translator objects to the term of ecclesiastical
-exarch.
-
-50. In course of time the terms arch-bishop and metropolitan came to be
-used interchangeably.
-
-51. Matt. xvi:19.
-
-52. Irenaeus against Heresy, bk. III, ch. iii: 2, 3.
-
-53. Matt. xvi:15-18.
-
-54. St. John i:42.
-
-55. The words of Christ to Peter, spoken in the vulgar language of the
-Jews, which our Lord made use of, were the same as if he had said in
-English: Thou art a rock, and upon this rock I will build my church. So
-that by the plain course of the words Peter is here declared to be the
-rock upon which the church was to be built.--Footnote in Douay Bible on
-these passages.
-
-56. As if it read: "Flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but
-my Father which is in heaven; and I say unto thee, Peter, upon this
-principle I will build my church."
-
-57. Matt. xxviii:18-20.
-
-58. Milner's End of Religious Controversy--Letter xxviii.
-
-59. Orson Pratt's Works, Divine Authenticity, No.3.
-
-60. Milner's Church Hist. Vol. III, pp. 53, 69--note.
-
-61. See Bossuet's Universal History, Vol. I, p. 558. J. Andrew Cramer,
-German translation.
-
-62. See Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) bk. III, part ii, ch. ii:6.
-
-63. Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) bk. III, part ii, ch. ii:11.
-
-64. The cardinals are senators of the church and counselors of the
-successors of St. Peter. There are now three orders of cardinals,
-viz., bishops, priests and deacons; six of these are bishops, fifty
-are priests and fourteen deacons. Sixtus V. [between A. D. 1585 and
-1590] fixed the number of cardinals at seventy in order to imitate the
-ancient Sanhedrin of the Jews which was composed of seventy elders, and
-it is this assembly which is now called the Sacred College.--History of
-all religions (Burder) p. 336.
-
-65. Apologists of the popes may say what they will about purchased
-indulgences not being intended to remit sins, or a grant of permission
-to commit sin; and claim that they are only a remission of the whole or
-part of the temporal punishment due to sin. But if indulgences remit
-the temporal penalties of sins, what is that but the remission of sin
-or at least of its effects, which, for all practical purposes, would
-be the same as remission of sin? And if penalties attached to sins are
-set aside in advance of the commission of the sins, what is that but a
-license to commit sin? "Come," said Tetzel, in selling indulgences in
-Germany early in the 16th century, "come and I will give you letters
-all properly sealed, by which even the sins that you intend to commit
-may be pardoned. * * * There is no sin so great but that an indulgence
-cannot remit."--Hist. Reformation, D'Aubigne's, bk. III, ch. i. Tetzel
-defends this doctrine in his Antithesis 99, 100, 101. [See note 8, end
-of section.]
-
-66. II Thess. ii:4.
-
-67. Page 127.
-
-68. Mosheim.
-
-69. Tertullian's Apology, ch. xlii.
-
-70. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. vol. I, bk, ii, part ii, ch. 4.
-
-71. Historie de Manicheism, tom ii, page 642.
-
-72. Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) vol. I, bk. ii, part ii.
-
-73. I Cor. xii: 8-10.
-
-74. That it was proper for the Christian bishops to increase the
-restraints upon the licentiousness of transgression, will be readily
-granted by all who consider the circumstances of those times. But
-whether it was for the advantage of Christianity, to borrow rules
-for this salutary ordinance from the enemies of truth, and thus to
-consecrate, as it were, a part of the pagan superstition, many persons
-very justly call in question.--Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) book I, cent. 2,
-part ii, ch. iii.
-
-75. Gen. i:26, 27. Jesus Christ was in the form of man, yet he is said
-to be the express image of God's person--Heb. i: 1-2.
-
-76. Matt. iii: 16, 17.
-
-77. Acts vii: 55, 56.
-
-78. John x: 30, and John xiv: 8-11.
-
-79. John xvii: 11, 21.
-
-80. John xiv: 26. John xv: 26. John xvi: 13-15.
-
-81. John xvii: 4, 5.
-
-82. Heb. iv: 2.
-
-83. John i:3. [See note 6, end of section].
-
-84. Some authorities say seven pairs were introduced in this manner.
-
-85. The statement is condensed from Mosheim; Dr. Benton, for years
-professor of divinity at Oxford, in his Brampton lectures states that
-the matter was "inert and powerless though co-eternal with the supreme
-God, and, like Him, without beginning."
-
-86. The Gnostics desired to avoid making God the author of evil, hence
-it is a leading principle in their philosophy that all evil has its
-origin in matter, and as matter was created by one of the Aeons, not by
-God, the Lord in the Gnostic system is relieved from the responsibility
-of being the author of evil.
-
-87. The statement of the Gnostic philosophy I have condensed from
-Mosheim and Dr. Benton, than whom there can be no higher authority on
-this subject.
-
-88. Gibbon's Decline and Fall, vol. ii, ch. xxii.
-
-89. The subject is difficult of illustration; but the following will
-perhaps aid the student to grasp the Sabellian doctrine. We see the
-ocean is a liquid; let us next imagine it frozen into solid ice; next
-as entirely dissolved into vapor. Here we have the same substance in
-three different aspects, but whether we speak of it as the liquid
-ocean, the frozen ocean or the ocean dissolved into vapor, it is always
-the same ocean, the same substance, but under different aspects.
-Whether he appeared as the Father, the Son or the Holy Ghost, he was
-always the same God. Such was the Sabellian theory in respect to Deity.
-Mosheim represents Sabellius as teaching that the divine nature was
-divided into portions, that one portion became separate, was called
-the Son, and was joined to the man Jesus. The Holy Ghost was a similar
-portion or part of the Eternal Father. The weight of authority is
-against the learned Doctor in this matter, however, and in favor of the
-statement of Sabellius' views in the text of this work.
-
-90. This is the Nicene Creed as it was formulated by that celebrated
-council. The so-called Nicene Creed used in the Catholic, Lutheran
-and English Churches is this creed as modified by the Council of
-Constantinople, A. D., 381. There is no material difference in them.
-
-91. Mosheim, Gibbon, Montfaucon and others insist that Athanasius is
-not the author of this creed, and this may be true, but I have not yet
-heard of its being rejected as an explanation of the Nicene Creed.
-Indeed, notwithstanding its authenticity has long been suspected, it
-still stands in the English prayer book and is recited in the church of
-England service upon the most notable feasts, Christmas, Epiphany etc.
-
-92. Church of England Book of Common Prayer, p. 49 Athanasius
-is credited with having confessed that whenever he forced his
-understanding to meditate on the divinity of the Logos, his toilsome
-and unavailing efforts recoiled on themselves; that the more he
-thought, the less he comprehended; and the more he wrote, the less
-capable was he of expressing his thoughts. (Decline and Fall, vol.
-II, ch. xxi.) We would naturally think that whoever the author of the
-Athanasian Creed may be, that such would be his mental condition.
-Nor are we very much surprised when we hear Gennadius, patriarch of
-Constantinople, frankly pronouncing it the work of a drunken man.
-
-93. Catholic Belief (Bruno) p. 1. This work is endorsed by His eminence
-Cardinal Manning.
-
-94. Church of England Book of Common Prayer, p. 311.
-
-95. Gen. i: 26, 27.
-
-96. Heb. i: 3.
-
-97. Phil. ii: 5, 6.
-
-98. It is remarkable how clearly men will reason upon the absurdity of
-immaterialism in everything except in respect to God. As an example,
-take the reasoning of Rev. John Wesley in regard to the supposed
-immateriality of the fire in hell: "But it has been questioned by some
-whether there be any fire in hell; that is, any material fire. Nay, if
-there be any fire it is unquestionably material. For what is immaterial
-fire? The same as immaterial water or earth! Both the one and the other
-is absolute nonsense, a contradiction in terms. Either, therefore, we
-must affirm it to be material, or we deny its existence." Now apply
-that correct reasoning to the immaterial God of the orthodox Christian
-and what is the result? Let us try the experiment by substituting the
-word God, for the word fire in the quotation:--But it is questioned by
-some whether there be any God, that is, any material God. Nay, if there
-be any God, he is unquestionably material. For what is an immaterial
-God? The same as immaterial water or earth! both the one and the
-other [that is, both immaterial God and immaterial earth] is absolute
-nonsense, a contradiction in terms. Either, therefore, we must affirm
-him to be material, or we deny his existence.
-
-99. II Peter ii: I.
-
-100. Mosheim, book II, cent. iv, part ii, ch. iii.
-
-101. The phraseology of the philosophers was, "living according to
-nature, and living above nature." The former was the rule for all men,
-the latter for the philosophers who aimed at perfect virtue.
-
-102. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist., book I, cent. i, part ii, ch. iii.
-
-103. Mosheim, book II, cent. iv, part ii, ch. ii.
-
-104. Decline and Fall (Gibbon) vol. 1, ch. xvi.
-
-105. Mosheim, book II, cent. iv, part ii, ch. iii.
-
-106. The above quotation is taken from the third and fourth books on
-"The Providence of God" by Salvian, who flourished in the 5th century,
-a priest of Marseilles, and one who knew whereof he wrote, as he was
-dealing with affairs of which he was a witness.
-
-107. Book VI and VII of The Providence of God.--Salvian.
-
-108. Mosheim, book III, cent. ix, part ii, chap. ii.
-
-109. See Milner's introduction to the first volume of his Church
-History. It will also be seen in that introduction that Milner wrote
-his history to counteract the influence that he feared the great work
-of the too candid Mosheim might exert, viz., to create the impression
-"That real religion appears scarcely to have had any existence." Hence
-the admissions of Dr. Milner to the sad condition of the church in the
-tenth century have a peculiar significance since he would not admit its
-corruption unless compelled to by the facts.
-
-110. This is Caesar Baronius, a Catholic historian of the 16th century.
-His "Annales Ecclesiastical" comprise twelve volumes and were published
-in Rome, 1588-1607. He was a candidate for the papacy in 1605, but
-failed to secure the election.
-
-111. Milner's Ch. Hist., vol. iii, cent. x, ch. i. The only thing
-which seems to console the learned doctor in respect to this terrible
-condition of the church is that the scripture predicted this awful
-state, and the truth of scripture was "vindicated by events of all
-others the most disagreeable to a pious mind."--Ibid.
-
-112. Acts xx: 27-30.
-
-113. II Tim. iv: 1-4.
-
-114. II Peter i: 21.
-
-115. II Peter ii: 1-3.
-
-116. Tim. iv: 1, 2.
-
-117. That is, that the day of Messiah's glorious coming is at hand.
-
-118. Letteth and let are the old English equivalents of hindereth and
-hinder. The student will remember that Shakespeare makes Hamlet say
-to those who seek to prevent him following the ghost of his father
-when beckoned to private interview--"Still am I called. Unhand me,
-gentlemen. By heaven I'll make a ghost of him that lets me"--i.e. that
-hinders me.
-
-119. II Thes. ii: 1-12.
-
-120. Isaiah xxiv: 4-6.
-
-121. Gal. iii. 8, 19, 24, 25.
-
-122. Heb. xiii: 20.
-
-123. Rev. xiv: 6, 7.
-
-{203}
-
-
-
-PART III.
-
-THE REFORMATION
-
-{205}
-
-
-
-SECTION 1.
-
-The Age of Darkness.--We have not found it necessary to our
-purpose to dwell upon the particular events of ecclesiastical history
-from the tenth to the sixteenth centuries. Those were the days of
-spiritual darkness of this earth. The papal power was supreme, and with
-an iron hand it ruled the nations. Some idea of its arrogance and power
-may be conjectured from the fact that in the eleventh century[1] Henry
-IV, of Germany, the greatest temporal monarch in the world, in that
-age, stood for three days together in mid-winter, bare headed, and bare
-footed, and meanly clad, at Canossa (a town in Italy where the pope
-was temporarily residing), professing himself a penitent in order to
-obtain absolution from the Roman pontiff, Gregory VII. His offense was
-persisting to sell ecclesiastical offices in his empire contrary to the
-edicts of the pope. [See note 1, end of section.] [2]
-
-2. The Revival of Learning.--In the latter part of the fifteenth
-century occurred that event called by historians the "Revival of
-Learning." The intellectual stupor of Europe had been as profound as
-spiritual darkness had been dense. But with the close of the fifteenth
-century, literature, science and art seemed to spring into active
-life. The invention of gun-powder[3] had completely revolutionized the
-modes of warfare; the employment of the mariner's compass made ocean
-navigation {206} less dangerous; the discovery of a new passage to
-India by the Cape of Good Hope, by Vasco de Gama [Vas-ko-da-ga-ma], and
-the discovery of America by Columbus, greatly enlarged the commerce
-of Europe and increased the comforts of life. Painting in oil came
-into vogue about this time and filled Europe with masterpieces of art;
-engraving on copper, invented early in the century, multiplied and
-diffused them. Paper made of linen also came into common use; and,
-finally, between 1436 and 1452 A. D. printing was invented, which gave
-to the modern world the intellectual riches of the ancients.
-
-3. In the middle of this century--the fifteenth--Constantinople
-was taken by the Turks, and with that event the eastern division of
-the Roman empire fell. The fall of the great capital drove many of
-the Greeks into Italy. They took with them a greater knowledge of
-antiquity than that possessed by the western nations, together with
-numerous manuscripts; and literature from that time may be said to
-have commenced its splendid career. [See note 2, end of section.]
-Intellectual pursuits became not only a pleasure, but a passion;
-"and it may be regarded as a maxim, that wherever the progress of
-intelligence is a true pleasure, a desire for liberty is soon felt, nor
-is it long in passing from the public mind to the state." [4] It was so
-in Europe; for the "Revival of Learning" preceded, and there can be no
-doubt that it did much to produce, that struggle for enlarged liberty
-which convulsed Europe in the following century.
-
-4. Release of the Masses from Serfdom.--The masses, moreover,
-began to be released, to some extent, from the serfdom of former
-times, and to be given some share of civil and political freedom. This
-change was largely due to the breaking up of the old feudal system of
-land tenure and service. {207} According to feudal principles, all
-the land of a country belonged to the king, not as representing the
-community, but as sovereign feudal lord. Out of this land the king
-granted portions to his subjects, on condition of their paying him
-homage and fealty, and rendering him active military service a certain
-number of days in every year. The estates the king granted to his more
-immediate and distinguished followers, whom he called his barons, were
-styled baronies, and were of large extent; the barons in their turn
-made undergrants to their own retainers, on similar conditions to those
-imposed upon themselves by the king. The relation between landlord and
-tenant, though at first merely lifelong, soon came to be regarded as
-hereditary, the heir becoming entitled on the death of the tenant to
-occupy his land upon the same terms. [5]
-
-5. This order of things established a powerful landed aristocracy
-on the one hand, and a peasant tenantry on the other, whose vassalage
-was but little removed from absolute slavery. The crusades and the
-development of a commercial class, living chiefly in the cities, in
-time wrought the destruction of feudalism.
-
-6. The Crusades, their Influence on Feudalism and Liberty--The
-crusades were religious wars carried on in the eleventh, twelfth and
-thirteenth centuries, between the Christian nations of the West and
-the Mohammedans of the East. It had for ages been looked upon as an
-act of piety to make a pilgrimage to Palestine and visit the various
-places hallowed by the presence of Messiah during his earthly career,
-especially his sepulchre at Jerusalem. These Christian pilgrims had
-been respected by the Saracens for centuries; but when the Seljuk
-Turks captured Jerusalem, towards the close of the eleventh century,
-the Christians met with insult and cruelty. The western nations, under
-the fervent preaching of Peter the {208} Hermit, a native of France,
-who had witnessed the atrocities practiced upon Christians in the Holy
-Land, were lashed into a fury of resentment against the Turks. Pope
-Urban II took up the cause, and advocated wresting the Holy Land from
-the dominion of the infidels. Europe responded, "God wills it," and
-preparations were made for the holy war.
-
-7. To raise the money necessary to equip and transport their
-soldiers to the distant East, the barons had to sell their lands, which
-had the effect of breaking down to a very great extent the feudal
-system of land tenure, and with it the obligations that it imposed. The
-direct result of this was to enlarge the liberties of the people. For
-the same purpose--to raise money for carrying on the holy wars in the
-East--kings granted to the towns political privileges, a circumstance
-which also contributed vastly to the progress of popular liberty. Thus
-the way was prepared for that religious revolution of the sixteenth
-century known in history as the Reformation.
-
-8. Martin Luther.--The Reformation is usually considered to have
-begun with the fearless preaching of Martin Luther against the sale
-of indulgences, A. D., 1517. Luther was born at Eisleben [Is-la-ben],
-Germany, A. D., 1483. His father was a miner of Mansfield in the same
-country. After attending the school of Magdeburg [Mag-de-boorg] and
-Eisenach [Is-sen-ak] he was sent to study philosophy and jurisprudence
-at Erfurt [Er-foort]. Much against the will of his father, he abandoned
-the pursuit of these studies, and joined himself to the Augustine
-Eremites, a rigid order of mendicant monks. His good temper, industry
-and abilities won for him the good opinions of his superiors. In 1508
-he was sent by his vicar-general to be professor of philosophy at
-Wittemburg. While here he applied himself to Biblical theology and soon
-discovered a wide discrepancy between the religion of the scriptures
-and that of the church. Two years after becoming a professor at
-Wittemburg, he made a journey to Rome on some business connected {209}
-with the Augustine order of monks; and was not a little shocked at the
-corruption and depravity of the Italian clergy. That visit to Rome did
-much to dispel the veneration in which he had held the "Holy See," and
-armed him for his subsequent conflict with it.
-
-9. Indulgences and their Origin.--The thing which provoked
-Luther's opposition to the church of Rome was the reckless sale of
-indulgences by the agents of the pope in Germany. The origin of
-indulgences, according to the learned Schlegel, must be sought in
-the earliest history of the church. In the first centuries of the
-Christian era, such Christians as were excluded from the communion of
-the church on account of their apostasy in the times of persecutions,
-or on account of other heinous sins, had to seek a restoration to
-fellowship by a public penance, in which they entreated the brethren
-to forgive them, frequently standing before the door of the church
-clothed in the garb of mourning. This punishment was regarded as a sort
-of "satisfaction" made to the community of saints, and was called by
-that name. In the case of aged or infirm Christians this "satisfaction"
-was sometimes omitted, and this omission was called "indulgence."
-Originally, therefore, indulgences were merely the remission of
-ecclesiastical punishments imposed on grave offenders against church
-laws.[6]
-
-10. It is maintained, however, in the decretal of Pope Clement
-VI, that "one drop of Christ's blood being sufficient to redeem the
-whole human race, the remaining quantity that was shed in the garden
-and upon the cross, was left as a legacy to the church, to be a
-treasure from whence indulgences were to be drawn and administered
-by the Roman pontiffs." [7] The doctrine was held that Messiah had
-atoned for the eternal punishment of sins, but not for its temporary
-punishment. The temporary {210} punishment the Catholic Church divided
-into that of the present life and that of the future life, or of
-purgatory. It was held that every man who attained salvation, must
-suffer the temporary punishment of his sins, either in the present
-world or in the flames of purgatory. It was also held that the priest
-to whom a man confessed his sins, had the power to adjudge and impose
-the necessary punishment.
-
-11. The punishment usually consisted of fastings, pilgrimages,
-whippings, etc.; but people of distinction and wealth were permitted
-to employ substitutes to receive this punishment; and there were
-monks ever ready to endure the punishment of the transgressor for
-a consideration paid in money. This penance was finally changed to
-paying to the church the money instead of employing monks to endure
-the punishment. Whoever, for instance, was bound to whip himself with
-so many stripes each day for several weeks might pay to the church or
-to the monastery a certain sum of money, or give it a piece of land
-and then be released from the penance. As the popes perceived that
-something might be gained in this way, they assumed to themselves the
-right of commuting penances for pecuniary satisfactions, which every
-bishop had before exercised in his own diocese. At first they released
-only from the punishments of sin in the present world; but in the
-fourteenth century they extended this release also to the punishment in
-purgatory.
-
-12. The Traffic in Indulgences.--When such indulgences were to
-be published, the disposal of them was commonly farmed out. The papal
-court could not always wait to have the money conveyed from every
-country of Europe; and there were rich merchants at Genoa, Milan,
-Venice, and Augsburg, who purchased the indulgences for a particular
-province and paid to the papal treasury handsome sums for them. Thus
-both parties were benefited. The pope came at once into possession
-of large sums of money; and the farmers did not fail of {211} a
-good bargain. They were careful to employ skillful hawkers of the
-indulgences, persons whose boldness and impudence bore due proportion
-to the eloquence with which they imposed upon the simple people. Yet
-that this traffic might have a religious aspect, the pope appointed
-the archbishops of the several provinces to be his commissioners, who
-in his name published that indulgences were to be sold, and usually
-selected the persons to hawk them, and for this service shared the
-profits with the merchants who farmed them.[8] [See notes 3 and 4, end
-of section.]
-
-13. In the beginning of the sixteenth century the sale of
-indulgences was pushed vigorously and became most offensive. The reason
-for resorting to this mode of raising revenue was justified by the pope
-on the plea of completing the church of St. Peter, at Rome, which had
-been commenced by Julius II.
-
-14. John Tetzel.--The hawker of indulgences who traveled through
-Germany, where Luther was living, was John Tetzel, a Dominical monk, at
-once one of the boldest, most eloquent and the most profligate of men.
-[See note 6, end of section.] His reckless preaching of these papal
-wares aroused the indignation of Luther, who published ninety-five
-propositions against the sale of indulgences, in which he even gently
-censured the pope for permitting the people to be diverted from Christ.
-
-15. The Indifference of Leo X to the Agitation in Germany.--The
-dispute which arose between Luther and Tetzel was looked upon at Rome
-as the wrangle between two monks--Luther was an Augustine monk, Tetzel
-a Dominican; and it was supposed that the former was jealous because
-the Dominicans had been preferred for this work of selling indulgences.
-In addition to assailing Tetzel, Luther wrote a protest to {212}
-Albert, Archbishop of Mentz and Magdeburg, and was as surprised as he
-was indignant to learn that the archbishop received of the profits
-arising from this wretched traffic. His assault upon Tetzel provoked
-a protracted controversy, a war of pamphlets between himself and
-Tetzel and his friends, among whom was John Eckius, a theologian of
-Ingolstadt. The dispute on both sides was more noted for its warmth
-than for its Christian character.
-
-16. At last Leo X was aroused from his indifference to the
-controversy that had arisen in Germany, by the emperor, Maximilian
-I informing him that the agitation was serious, and that Germany
-was taking sides in respect to it. He therefore appointed Cardinal
-Thomas Cajetan, then at the diet of Augsburg, to hear the cause of
-Luther. The cardinal summoned the monk before him at Augsburg, in
-October, 1518. They had three interviews, but nothing was accomplished
-towards reconciliation, as the cardinal treated Luther imperiously,
-and peremptorily ordered him to submit his judgment to the authority
-of the pope. This the reformer refused to do until he was convinced
-of his error, and appealed from the pope ill-informed to the pope
-better-informed. This took the matter out of the hands of the cardinal.
-
-17. An Appeal to a General Council.--There was a difference
-between the Reformer and the cardinal in their views in respect to
-authorities appealed to. The latter sought to convince the former of
-his errors by appealing to the canon law,[9] and the authority of
-Lombard; [10] but Luther refused to admit of any proof except that of
-the holy scripture, and as the cardinal seems not to have been able
-to make good his censure of the Reformer's doctrines by proofs from
-the scriptures, {213} Luther appealed to the pope better informed.
-But Leo X, the month following (Nov. 9th), issued an edict requiring
-the church to believe in his power to forgive sins. Learning of this,
-Luther promptly appealed from the pope to a future council of the whole
-church.[11]
-
-18. Discussion on Free Will.--Meantime the points of disagreement
-between the Reformer and the church of Rome increased. In 1519 John
-Eckius [Eck-ius] challenged Andrew Carlstadt [Karl-stat], a friend and
-colleague of Luther's, to a discussion on the subject of Free Will,
-about which there was a disagreement between the Reformer and those who
-thought with him--among whom was Carlstadt--and the adherents of the
-church of Rome. In this dispute Carlstadt maintained--and of course his
-were Luther's views--that since the fall, the natural freedom of man is
-not strong enough to move him to that which is morally good, or to do
-the will of God. Eckius on the contrary insisted that the free will of
-man produces good works, and not merely the grace of God; that our free
-will co-operates with divine grace in the production of good works, and
-that it depends on man's free power, whether he will give place to the
-operations of grace or will resist them.
-
-19. Luther and Eckius.--After this dispute with Carlstadt, Eckius
-drew Luther--who had been present at the discussion on Free Will--into
-a public debate on the foundation of the authority of the pope. Eckius
-maintained the orthodox {214} view that the supremacy of the pope was
-founded on divine right, that he was the successor of St. Peter and the
-vicar of Christ. Luther allowed the superiority of the pope over other
-bishops, but based that superiority on other grounds. He could not deny
-that the pontiffs had possessed a decided pre-eminence from age to age,
-and therefore he conceived it as his duty not to resist the powers that
-be. "Unless it had been the will of God," he went on to say, "the pope
-could never have attained so great and durable a dominion. The whole
-body of the Christians own themselves to be under the Roman pontiff.
-This universal consent is a consideration of the greatest weight; the
-unity of the church should be preserved in everything that is not
-directly contrary to the word of God." [12]
-
-20. In all these admissions, however, it will be observed that
-the Reformer placed the supremacy of the pontiffs on human, not divine
-right. It was based upon tradition, upon human arrangement. To the
-contention of Eckius that the expressions--"Thou art Peter, and upon
-this rock I will build my church," "And I will give unto thee the keys
-of the kingdom"--evinced the supremacy of Peter and his successors;
-that this was the explanation given by the holy fathers, etc.,
-Luther replied: That even if all the fathers, without exception, had
-understood the passages in that sense, he would confute them by the
-authority of St. Paul, and by St. Peter himself, who said that Jesus
-Christ is the only foundation and corner-stone of the church. And
-further, if the words "Thou art Peter," etc., be construed strictly
-then they must be confined to the person of Peter and therefore the
-authority conveyed by them ceased when that apostle died.[13]
-
-21. The dispute amounted to nothing except that it widened the
-breach between the See of Rome and the Reformer. The latter, while
-preparing for his discussion with Eckius, had his {215} suspicions
-aroused that the pope was the very anti-Christ of the New Testament.
-At the conclusion of the debate, George, Duke of Saxony, said to the
-disputants, privately, "Whether the pope exists by divine or by human
-right, he is, however, the pope;" and that remark doubtless expressed
-the sentiments of the papist party.
-
-22. Luther Condemned and Excommunicated.--Eckius hastened to Rome
-after the discussion at Leipsic [Lip-sik], where, with the assistance
-of other enemies of Luther, among them Cardinal Cajetan, he urged Leo
-X to condemn him and his works. This Leo did by issuing a bull, in
-which forty-one of his tenets were pronounced heretical; his writings
-condemned to the flames, and he himself commanded to confess his faults
-within sixty days, beg the forgiveness of the pope or be excommunicated
-from the church.
-
-23. This bull of condemnation Luther burned; together with a copy
-of the pontifical canon law, in the presence of a vast multitude. (See
-note 6, end of section.) By this act he meant to withdraw from the
-church of Rome, that the excommunication which was expected to follow
-might be robbed of its force. About a month later--4th of January,
-1521--the second bull of Leo was issued in which the Reformer was
-expelled from the Catholic church for his heresies and for violating
-the majesty of the pontiff. (See note 7, end of section.)
-
-24. Luther Before the Diet at Worms.--After issuing his bull of
-excommunication, Leo X called upon the emperor of Germany, Charles V,
-to vindicate his title to "Advocate and Defender of the Church," by
-inflicting due punishment on that "rebellious member, Martin Luther."
-Charles, however, was under deep obligations to Frederic, the Wise,
-Elector of Saxony, for his election by the states of Germany to the
-imperial dignity; and Frederic, being a warm friend of Luther's and
-favorable in the main to his doctrines, advised the emperor {216} to take
-no action against the Reformer until he had given him a hearing. This
-course Charles resolved to follow, and therefore summoned Luther to
-appear before the diet which assembled at Worms in 1521.[14]
-
-25. Before this august body the Reformer appeared to make answer
-to the two questions: First, if the books which he had written, the
-titles of which were read to him, were his; second, if he was prepared
-to retract those books and their contents, or if he persisted in the
-opinions he had advanced in them. He acknowledged the books to be his,
-and in a speech of some length he explained his motives in writing his
-books, and refused to retract them. He thus concluded his speech:
-
- 26. I cannot submit my faith either to the pope or to
- the council, because it is as clear as the day that they have
- frequently erred and contradicted each other. Unless, therefore,
- I am convinced by the testimony of scripture, or by the clearest
- reasoning--unless I am persuaded by means of the passages I have
- quoted,--and unless they thus render my conscience bound, by the
- word of God, I can not and will not retract, for it is unsafe for a
- Christian to speak against his conscience. HERE I STAND, I CAN DO
- NO OTHER, MAY GOD HELP ME! AMEN!
-
-27. Luther was protected by a safe conduct from the emperor--a
-written guarantee pledging the faith and honor of the empire for his
-safety for a limited length of time--or doubtless he would have been
-burned at the stake for his adherence to his doctrines and his defiance
-of the pope. Indeed, some members of the diet advised the violation of
-the safe conduct, as the word of honor given to an heretic, according
-to the morals of the age, was not binding. Charles V, however, {217}
-would not listen to such perfidy. He dismissed Luther to return to
-Wittenberg in accordance with the terms of his safe conduct; at the
-same time condemning him as an heretic misled by his own folly. He
-forbade him on his return to Wittenberg to cause the least disorder
-among the people, and then promised the representatives of the pope
-that he would proceed against him and his adherents as contumacious
-heretics, by excommunication, by interdict and by every means
-calculated to destroy them.
-
-28. Luther's Confinement at Wartburg.--Prince Frederic, the
-Wise, fearing that Luther would fall a prey to his enemies, in the
-storm which he saw gathering about him, had him intercepted on his way
-back to Wittenberg, by persons in disguise, who carried him to the
-castle of Wartburg [Wart-berg], where he was concealed ten months. The
-extremes into which some of his followers went, both in doctrine and
-in opposition to the Catholics, at last called him from his place of
-retirement, in order to restrain them and correct the abuses to which
-some of his doctrines gave birth.
-
-29. Death of Leo X--Demands for a General Council.--The year
-following the diet at Worms, Leo X died and was succeeded by Hadrian
-VI. This pontiff, while renewing the demand that the edict of the
-diet of Worms against Luther and his adherents should be executed,
-acknowledged the church to be in a lamentable condition, and promised
-a general reformation. The assembled princes at the diet of Nuremberg,
-before which the demands of Hadrian were presented, thought the time
-propitious--the emperor Charles was absent in Spain--to insist upon a
-free council to be held in Germany, to deliberate in the ancient manner
-on a general reformation of the church. This Hadrian promised to grant,
-but before it could be assembled he died, having occupied the papal
-chair but two years and eight months. He was succeeded by Clement VII,
-who reproved the German princes for {218} neglecting to proceed against
-Luther and his adherents. The emperor seconded the demands of the pope,
-and a number of the princes, awed by the united demands of the pope and
-the emperor, promised to enforce the edict to the extent of their power.
-
-30. Death of Frederic--Distinct Church Founded.--In 1525, Prince
-Frederic, the Wise, Elector of Saxony, and friend of Luther, died. He
-was succeeded by his brother John. Frederic had ever been an ardent
-admirer of Luther, but was extremely cautions in giving him any
-direct assistance. John was of a different temperament. He believed
-the principles which the Reformer taught, but saw quite clearly that
-they must either be abandoned or the authority of the pope discarded.
-He resolved upon the latter; and taking matters in his own hands,
-determined to organize a church altogether distinct from that of
-Rome. To accomplish this he called upon Luther and Philip Melancthon
-[Me-lanc-thon] to draw up a formula for public worship, and draft a
-form of church government in harmony with their principles, fixing the
-salaries of the clergy, defining their official duties, etc. This the
-Reformers gladly undertook, and shortly afterwards had the pleasure of
-seeing other German princes pursue the same course that John had taken,
-and adopt the system of worship they had formulated.
-
-31. The Rupture Between the Pope and the Emperor.--This bold step
-threatened for a time to disrupt the German empire; for the princes who
-remained true to the old religion openly consulted together upon the
-advisability of taking up arms against the Lutherans; and the princes
-favoring the Reformers met to consider the necessity of forming an
-alliance to resist their enemies. In the midst of these threatening
-prospects an event happened which was of great advantage to the
-Lutheran cause, and prevented for the moment any action against them.
-The Emperor Charles V and Pope {219} Clement VII became open enemies.
-The pontiff, fearing the increasing power of Charles, had formed an
-alliance with Francis I, king of France, against him. This so incensed
-Charles that he abolished the authority of the pope in Spain, made war
-upon him in Italy, captured the cities of Rome, besieged the pontiff in
-his castle of St. Angelo, and subjected him to great indignities.
-
-32. The Diet at Spire--1529.--The difficulties between Charles
-and the pope were finally settled, however, and a diet was called
-at Spire in 1529, in which a majority voted to deprive the princes
-of Germany of the right to regulate religious matters within their
-respective territories--a right which a diet held three years before
-at Spire had granted. That is, such power was granted pending the
-settlement of religious difficulties by a free general council.[15] The
-diet also declared all changes made in the public religion unlawful.
-This action was considered a hardship by those princes who had made
-such changes, and they protested against the action of the diet and
-appealed to the emperor.[16] It was this protest which gave to the
-dissenting princes, and the followers of Luther generally, the name
-Protestants.
-
-33. The envoys of the dissenting princes sent to inform Charles
-of the stand they had taken in relation to the religious controversy
-in Germany were imprisoned by him, a circumstance which threatened
-hostility, and the Protestant princes at once took counsel for their
-safety and sought to form closer alliances with each other for mutual
-defense. Unfortunately, however, the would-be reformers of religion
-were not united in {220} doctrine, and the efforts of the princes at
-union were rendered vain by the disputes of the theologians.
-
-34. Diet at Augsburg--Protestant Confession of Faith.--The
-emperor finally determined to settle this religious controversy within
-his empire, and appointed a diet to be assembled at Augsburg for that
-purpose. In order that the faith of the Protestants might be clearly
-set forth, together with their reasons for separation from the Roman
-church, Luther and Melancthon, at the instance of the princes who
-favored their doctrines, drew up a confession of faith, known as the
-Augsburg Confession. It consisted of twenty-eight articles, twenty-one
-of which stated the doctrines of the Reformers, and the other seven
-stated their reason for withdrawing from the Roman church. These in
-brief were--communion in one kind; by which the sacramental cup was
-denied the laity; imposing celibacy on the clergy; private masses;
-auricular confession; legendary traditions; monastic vows; and lastly,
-the excessive power of the church. In respect to this last "abuse," as
-these several above things are called, they discriminate between civil
-and ecclesiastical power, and insist that neither should infringe upon
-the domain of the other.
-
-35. The diet of Augsburg assembled on the 20th of June, 1530;
-and after the Confession of Faith was read to the emperor, it was
-signed by John, Elector of Saxony, four princes of the empire, and the
-representatives of two imperial cities, Nuremberg [Nu-rem-berg] and
-Reutlingen [Roit-ling-en].[17]
-
-36. The friends of the pope at the diet presented a confutation
-of the Protestant confession, and thereupon the emperor commanded the
-Protestants to abandon their whole cause of controversy. In reply they
-protested they were not satisfied {221} with the "confutation," and
-asked that a copy of it might be given them that they might make answer
-to it. This the emperor would not grant, nor would he permit an answer
-to be read before the diet which Philip Melanchthon had written out
-from memory. A number of conferences were held between the leaders of
-the contending parties with a view to reach an honorable compromise,
-but they had drifted too far apart, and all hope of reconciliation
-was lost. At last the emperor issued a decree commanding back to
-their allegiance to the pontiff the princes and cities that had
-become alienated from the holy See of Rome, on pain of incurring the
-vengeance of the emperor. The religious changes made in some of the
-principalities were censured and the edict of Worms against Luther and
-his adherents received new force.
-
-37. The League of Smalcald.--Nothing daunted by the unfavorable
-decree of the emperor, the Protestant princes assembled at Smalcald,
-and entered into a league among themselves, and made every effort to
-induce the kings of England, France, Denmark and other princes to join
-their confederacy. This movement seriously embarrassed Charles, for
-he was just on the eve of a war with the Turks, and needed the entire
-strength of his empire. He therefore entered into negotiations with the
-Protestant princes, and finally agreed to annual the edict of Worms and
-of Augsburg, allow the Protestants to regulate religious matters to
-please themselves until either a council of the church or a diet of the
-empire should determine what religious principles should be approved
-and obeyed--the council to be called within six months. Such were the
-concessions of the emperor. On their part, the Protestant princes were
-to contribute money for the Turkish war, and acknowledge Ferdinand,
-brother of the emperor, king of the Romans.[18]
-
-38. The Truce of Nuremberg.--This treaty of peace {222} being
-drawn up and accepted in the city of Nuremberg [Nu-rem-berg], was
-known as the Truce of Nuremberg, and under it the Protestant cause was
-materially strengthened; for every day men and cities threw off their
-allegiance to the pope and rejoiced in their new-found freedom.
-
-39. Difficulty in Locating the Council.--The emperor urged the
-pontiff to call the long-talked-of council which was to settle these
-unhappy difficulties. But this Clement VII seemed not anxious to do.
-When he did propose a council it was at places in Italy, and to this
-the Germans would not consent, as a council held there would be under
-the influence of the pope; besides, the controversy had arisen in
-Germany, and there it should be settled. The Protestants also insisted
-that the decision should be founded solely on the scriptures, a point
-which required the church of Rome to set aside all the former decisions
-of her great councils--a thing her pontiffs were in no temper to do, as
-they considered themselves in the position of a parent having absolute
-jurisdiction, dealing with a refractory child. Finally, the successor
-of Clement VII--Paul III--with the approval of the emperor, called a
-council to meet at Trent, in Austria (in the Austrian Tyrol). But this
-was not satisfactory to the Protestants, and Charles X despairing of
-settling the difficulties by peaceful methods and being urged to it
-by Pope Paul III prepared to settle them by resorting to force. While
-the Catholics and Protestants were preparing for this conflict Luther,
-whose preaching had begun this agitation, died at Eisleben, his native
-town. [See note 8, end of section.]
-
-40. Reverses of the Protestants.--In the war which followed the
-Protestants met with severe reverses and were forced by the emperor to
-consent to refer the religious controversy to the council of Trent,
-but it being reported that the plague had broken out in that city,
-the council was broken up, nor could Charles induce the pope to call
-another immediately {223} (see note 9, end of section); hence it
-became necessary to formulate a treaty which should bind both parties
-in respect to religion, pending the convening of a council. This
-treaty was called The Interim, and was of course most favorable to the
-victorious party--the Catholics--and went far towards establishing the
-old methods of worship.
-
-41. Victory of Protestants--Religious Liberty Secured.--At last
-the emperor persuaded the pope to re-assemble the Council of Trent, and
-gave notice to the Protestants to attend, promising to use his best
-endeavor to have everything done in a Christian manner and without
-passion. But before this council could assemble the Protestant princes
-revolted, took the emperor by surprise, and forced him into signing a
-treaty at Paussau, in 1552, which guaranteed religious liberty to the
-Protestants. This treaty was re-confirmed by the emperor in the diet at
-Augsburg, 1555. By that treaty all who had accepted the Confession of
-Augsburg were declared free from all jurisdiction of the Roman pontiff,
-and his bishops. They were to be permitted to live in peace and the
-quiet enjoyment of religious liberty. Men were to be left free to join
-either the Reformed or the Catholic Church, and any person making war
-upon others, or molesting them because of their religion was to be
-accounted the public enemy of Germany.
-
-42. Such was the fruit of the great revolution of the sixteenth
-century in Germany--religious liberty. To that end all the struggles
-tended, and its result was indeed glorious, worth all the tears and
-blood it had cost to gain it. But it was not a reformation, if by
-that is meant the bringing back of primitive Christianity. That the
-Reformers did not do. Indeed they left more truth in the Catholic
-church than they brought out with them, or found in their speculations
-after leaving that church, as will be seen by a careful consideration
-of Protestant doctrines treated in subsequent sections.
-
-{224}
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Humiliation of Henry IV.--It was the fourth day on which
-he had borne the humiliating garb of an affected penitent, and in
-that sordid raiment he drew near on his bare feet to the more than
-imperial majesty of the church, and prostrated himself in more than
-servile deference before the diminutive and emaciated old man, from
-the terrible glance of whose countenance, we are told, "the eyes of
-every beholder recoiled as from the lightning." Hunger, cold and
-nakedness, and shame, had for the moment crushed the gallant spirit of
-the sufferer. He wept and cried for mercy, again and again renewing his
-entreaties until he had reached the lowest level of abasement to which
-his own enfeebled heart or the haughtiness of his great antagonist
-could depress him. Then, and not till then did the pope condescend
-to revoke the anathema of the vatican.--Sir J. Stephen's Essays On
-Ecclesiastical Biography.
-
-2. Influence of Greek Literature on the Fifteenth Century.--The
-classical school of that period (15th century) inspired its disciples
-with admiration, not only for the writings of Virgil and Homer, but
-for the entire frame of ancient society; for its institutions, its
-opinions, its philosophy, as well as its literature. Antiquity, it must
-be allowed, whether as regards politics, philosophy, or literature,
-was greatly superior to the Europe of the fourteenth and fifteenth
-centuries. It is not surprisingg, therefore, that it should have
-exercised so great an influence; that lofty, vigorous, elegant and
-fastidious minds should have been disgusted with the coarse manners,
-the confused ideas, the barbarous modes of their own time, and should
-have devoted themselves with enthusiasm, and almost with veneration, to
-the study of a state of society at once more regular and more perfect
-than their own. Thus was formed that school of bold thinkers, which
-appeared at the commencement of the fifteenth century, and in which
-prelates, priests and men of learning were united by common sentiment
-and common pursuits.--Guizot's Hist. Civilization.
-
-3. Luther on Indulgences.--I was compelled in my conscience to
-expose the scandalous sale of indulgences. I saw some seduced by them
-into mischievous errors, others tempted into an audacious profaneness.
-In a word, the proclaiming and selling of pardons proceeded to such
-an unbounded licentiousness that the holy church and its authorities
-became subjects of open derision in the public taverns. There was no
-occasion to excite the hatred of mankind against priests to a greater
-degree. The avarice and profligacy of the clergy had for many years
-past kindled the indignation of the laity. Alas! they have not a
-particle of respect or honor for the priesthood, except what solely
-arises from fear of punishment.--Luther.
-
-{225} 4. Duke George of Saxony on the Corruption in the
-Church.--[Duke George is regarded as a bigoted papist, esteemed
-by the Roman Catholics as a most sincere and active defender of the
-faith of his day. His testimony, therefore, to the sale and evils of
-indulgences, and the corruption of the clergy, is the more valuable.
-He entirely approved of Luther's condemnation.] "Indulgences which
-ought to be obtained by prayer, fastings, benevolence towards our
-neighbor, and other good works," said the duke, "are sold for money.
-Their value is extolled beyond all decency. The sole object is to gain
-a deal of money. Hence the preachers who are bound to set forth truth,
-teach men nothing but lies and frauds. They are not only suffered to
-go on thus, but they are well paid for their fraudulent harangues. The
-reason is the more conviction they can produce among their hearers,
-the more money flows into the chest. Rivers of scandalous proceedings
-arise from this corrupt fountain. The officials of the bishops are
-equally attentive to scrape money together. They vex the poor with
-their censures for great crimes, as whoredom, adultery, blasphemy;
-but they spare the rich. The clergy commit the very same crimes, and
-nobody censures them. Faults which ought to be expiated by prayers and
-fastings are atoned for by money, in order that the officials may pay
-large sums to their respective bishops, and retain a portion of the
-gain for themselves. Neither when a fine is inflicted is it done in a
-way to stop the commission of the same fault in the future, but rather
-so that the delinquent understands he may soon do that very thing
-again, provided he be but ready to pay. Hence all the sacraments are
-sold for money; and where that is not to be had, they are absolutely
-neglected."--Duke George, quoted by Milner, Church Hist. vol. iv, p.
-568.
-
-5. Character of Tetzel.--He was a profligate wretch, who had
-once fallen into the hands of the Inquisition in consequence of his
-adulteries, and whom the elector of Saxony rescued by his intercession.
-He now cried up his merchandise in a manner so offensive, so contrary
-to all Christian principles, and so acceptably to the inconsiderate,
-that all upright men were disgusted with him. * * * He claimed to have
-power to absolve, not only from all church censure, but likewise from
-all sins, transgressions, and enormities, however horrid they might
-be, and even from those of which only the pope can take cognizance.
-He released from all the punishments of purgatory, gave permission
-to come to the sacraments, and promised to those who purchased their
-indulgences, that the gates of hell should be closed, and the gates of
-paradise and of bliss open to them.--Schlegel.
-
-6. Luther Burning the Pope's Bull.--On the 10th of December, a
-{226} placard was posted on the walls of the university of Wittemberg,
-inviting the professors and students to be present at nine o'clock in
-the morning, at the eastern gate near the Holy Cross. A great number
-of doctors and students assembled, and Luther walking at their head,
-conducted the procession to the appointed place. How many burning
-piles has Rome erected during the course of ages! Luther resolves to
-make a better application of the great Roman principle. It is only
-a few old papers that are to be destroyed; and fire, thinks he, is
-intended for that purpose. A scaffold had been prepared. One of the
-oldest masters of arts set fire to it. As the flames rose high into
-the air, the formidable Augustine, wearing his frock, approached the
-pile, carrying the Canon Law, the Decretals, the Clementines, the papal
-Extravagants, some writings by Eckius and Emser, and the pope's bull.
-Luther held up the bull and said: "Since thou hast vexed the Holy One
-of the Lord, may everlasting fire vex and consume thee." He then flung
-it into the flames. Never had war been declared with greater energy
-and resolution. After this Luther calmly returned to the city, and the
-crowd of doctors, professors and students testifying their approval by
-loud cheers, re-entered Wittemberg with him.--D'Aubigne's Hist. of the
-Reformation.
-
-7. Excommunication of Luther.--The excommunication bull was an
-attack upon the rights of the German churches. For Luther had appealed
-to an ecclesiastical council; and in consequence of this appeal the
-pope could no longer have jurisdiction of the case. Hence the number
-of Luther's friends increased the more after the publication of this
-bull.--Schlegel.
-
-8. The Character of Luther.--Seckendorf * * * defies all the
-adversaries of Luther to fix any just censure on his character except
-what may be ranked under two heads, viz., a disposition to anger, and
-an indulgence in jesting. Beyond all doubt the Saxon reformer was of a
-choleric temper, and he too often gave way to this constitutional evil,
-as he himself laments. Neither is it to be denied that he also too much
-encouraged his natural propensity to facetiousness. The monks of his
-time were in general guilty of the like fault, and often to so great
-a degree as very improperly to mix scurrilities with sacred subjects.
-Moreover, the vices and follies of those whom Luther opposed, afforded
-a strong temptation both to the spirit of anger and of ridicule. For
-however severe he may be thought in many of his invectives, we are
-compelled by unquestionable evidence to confess that his keenest
-satirical pieces never reached the demerits of those who ruled the
-church in that age. But after all that can be said in mitigation, it
-must be owned that a reformer ought to have considered not so much what
-they deserved {227} as what became the character he had to support;
-viz., that of a serious Christian, zealous for the honor of his God,
-displeased with the vices of his clerical brethren, and grieved on
-account of the pitiable ignorance of the people, yet more desirous of
-curing the prevailing evils than of exposing them.--Milner.
-
-9. The Pestilence and the Council of Trent.--The report of a
-pestilence was a mere pretense. The Pope Paul III was equally zealous
-of the council which had not been disposed in all respects to govern
-itself by his prescription, and of the governing power of the emperor,
-which he did not wish to see farther increased by the council. He
-indeed hated the Protestants, but he did not wish to see the emperor,
-under color of enforcing the decrees of the council, acquire a
-more absolute authority over Germany. He had already withdrawn his
-troops from the imperial army; and he now wished to see the council
-dispersed. The Spanish members opposed him; but he found means to
-prevail.--Schlegel.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What centuries may be considered as the age of moral and spiritual
-darkness?
-
-2. What power was supreme in those ages?
-
-3. Give an instance illustrating the pride and insolence of the popes.
-(Note 1.)
-
-4. What was Henry IV's offense?
-
-5. From what period do historians date the "revival of learning?"
-
-6. What several inventions and circumstances contributed to the
-intellectual awakening of Europe?
-
-7. What effect did the fall of the eastern division of the Roman empire
-have on the west?
-
-8. What was the influence of ancient literature on the west? (Note 2.)
-
-9. What circumstances led to the enlargement of the liberty of the
-masses?
-
-10. Describe land tenure under the feudal system.
-
-11. What were the Crusades?
-
-12. Who aroused the nations of western Europe to undertake the Crusades?
-
-13. What effect did the Crusades have on the feudal system of land
-tenure and liberty?
-
-{228} 14. What did this enlarged liberty prepare the people for?
-
-15. What event is usually considered the beginning of the Reformation?
-
-16. Give an account of the birth and parentage of Martin Luther.
-
-17. What schools did he attend and with what result?
-
-18. What effect was produced by his visit to Rome?
-
-19. State the origin of indulgences.
-
-20. What doctrine respecting the efficacy of Christ's blood was
-advanced by Pope Clement VI?
-
-21. What doctrine is held by the Roman Catholic church about the
-atonement of Christ for sin?
-
-22. Of what did the temporary punishments for sin usually consist--that
-is, in early times?
-
-23. What changes were made later?
-
-24. Describe the traffic in indulgences.
-
-25. What excuse was made by the pope for the vigorous sale of
-indulgences in the 16th century?
-
-26. Who hawked indulgences in the part of Germany where Luther lived?
-
-27. What was the character of Tetzel? (Note 5.)
-
-28. In what spirit was Luther's controversy with Tetzel regarded at
-Rome?
-
-29. What aroused the pope from his indifference?
-
-30. In what way did meet the difficulty?
-
-31. What course was pursued by Cardinal Cajetan and what was the result?
-
-32. What difference in respect to authority to be appealed to in the
-settlement of controversy existed between Luther and the cardinal?
-
-33. What act of Leo X led Luther to appeal to a general council?
-
-34. State what two parties existed in the Roman Catholic church and
-what their difference.
-
-35. Describe how the controversy on free will arose.
-
-36. State the respective positions of Eckius and Carolstadt in the
-controversy.
-
-37. What discussion arose between Luther and Eckius after the debate on
-free will?
-
-38. What position did Eckius take in relation to the supremacy of the
-pope?
-
-39. What was Luther's position?
-
-40. What was the effect of the discussion?
-
-41. Relate the circumstance of Luther's excommunication.
-
-42. How did Luther treat the bull of excommunication? (Notes 6 and 7.)
-
-43. State how Luther came to be summoned before the diet at Worms.
-
-{229} 44. What two questions confronted Luther at the diet?
-
-45. How did he answer them?
-
-46. By what means was Luther protected from the vengeance of the pope?
-
-47. What at last called him from his retirement?
-
-48. Who succeeded Leo X?
-
-49. What demand was made upon Pope Hadrian by the German princes?
-
-50. What event prevented the assembling of the council?
-
-51. What course did Pope Clement VII follow?
-
-52. How did the death of Frederic, the Wise, and the succession of
-John, his brother, affect the Reformation?
-
-53. What did John's course threaten to produce?
-
-54. What circumstance prevented it?
-
-55. Relate what transpired at the diet at Spire.
-
-56. By what means did the German emperor decide to settle the religious
-controversy in his realm?
-
-57. State what you can of the Augsburg confession of faith.
-
-58. What unreasonable demand did the emperor make of the Protestants?
-
-59. What compromise was effected?
-
-60. What difficulty arose concerning convening the council?
-
-61. What reverses did the Protestants sustain in the conflict of arms?
-
-62. What finally resulted from all this agitation?
-
-63. Give the character of Luther? (Note 8.)
-
-{230}
-
-
-
-SECTION II.
-
-1. Controversy on the Question of Grace.--It is now for us to
-consider the principles at issue in the Reformation. Luther at the
-first began his opposition to the pope by denouncing indulgences, and
-there can be no question but he and every other honest Christian had
-just cause of complaint and indignation against this infamous traffic,
-and against the church for permitting it. Yet it cannot be denied that
-there was a wide difference between the doctrine of the Catholic church
-respecting indulgences [see note 1, end of section] and the things
-taught by the infamous John Tetzel. This is evident from the fact that
-Tetzel with other agents of the pope were censured for their over zeal
-and excesses in dealing in indulgences.[19] Miltitz, whom the pope had
-appointed to treat with Luther to bring about his reconciliation with
-the church, meeting with Tetzel at Leipsic, twice rebuked him with the
-greatest severity before the bishops of his province, on account of his
-iniquitous proceedings in the sale of indulgences, and he finally died
-neglected and alone--"deserted by all the world." [See note 2, end of
-section.]
-
-2. These abuses in the sale of indulgences and the other
-corruptions which had crept into the church formed a just cause
-of complaint; but they were not the true point at issue in the
-controversy. Some time before he opposed indulgences, Luther--if we
-may believe D'Aubigne [Do-benya]--had imbibed {231} ideas in respect
-to the part which the grace of God takes in the salvation of man that
-would have led him to oppose the church of Rome, if the abuses in the
-matter of indulgences had never existed. In order that the student may
-grasp this subject in its fullness, and the better understand this
-controversy between Luther and the Catholic church, we shall make a
-careful statement of the facts which enter into the question of God's
-grace and the free will of man.
-
-1. _Power of Deliberation_--The mind is conscious of a power of
-deliberation, before the intellect passes the different motives of
-action, interests, passions, opinions, etc. The intellect considers,
-compares, estimates, and finally judges them. This is a preparatory
-work which precedes the act of will.
-
-2. _Liberty, Free Agency or Will_.--When deliberation has taken
-place--when man has taken full cognizance of the motives which present
-themselves to him, he takes a resolution, of which he looks upon
-himself as the author, which arises because he wishes it, and which
-would not arise unless he did wish it--here the fact of agency is
-shown; it resides complete in the resolution which man makes after
-deliberation; it is the resolution which is the proper act of man,
-which subsists by him alone; a simple fact independent of all the facts
-which precede it or surround it.
-
-3. _Free Will, or Agency Modified_--At the same time that man feels
-himself free, he recognizes the fact that his freedom is not arbitrary,
-that it is placed under the dominion of a law which will preside over
-it and influence it. What that law is will depend upon the education
-of each individual, upon his surroundings, etc. To act in harmony with
-that law is what man recognizes as his duty; it will be the task of
-his liberty. He will soon see, however, that he never fully acquits
-himself of his task, never acts in full harmony with his moral law.
-Morally capable of conforming himself to his law, he falls short of
-doing it. He does not accomplish all that he ought, nor all {232} that
-he can. This fact is evident, one of which all may give witness; and it
-often happens that the best men, that is, those who have best conformed
-their will to reason, have often been the most struck with their
-insufficience.
-
-4. _Necessity of External Assistance_--This weakness in man leads him
-to feel the necessity of an external support to operate as a fulcrum
-for the human will, a power that may be added to its present power and
-sustain it at need. Man seeks this fulcrum on all sides; he demands
-it in the encouragement of friends, in the councils of the wise; but
-as the visible world, the human society, do not always answer to his
-desires, the soul goes beyond the visible world, above human relations,
-to seek this fulcrum of which it has need. Hence the religious
-sentiment develops itself: man addresses himself to God, and invokes
-his aid through prayer.
-
-5. _Man Finds the Help he Seeks_--Such is the nature of man that when
-he sincerely asks this support he obtains it; that is, seeking it is
-almost sufficient to secure it. Whosoever feeling his will weak invokes
-the encouragement of a friend, the influence of wise councils, the
-support of public opinion, or who addresses himself to God by prayer,
-soon feels his will fortified in a certain measure and for a certain
-time.
-
-6. _Influence of Spiritual World on Liberty_--There are spiritual
-influences at work on man--the empire of the spiritual world upon
-liberty. There are certain changes, certain moral events which manifest
-themselves in man without his being able to refer their origin to
-an act of his will, or being able to recognize the author. Certain
-facts occur in the interior of the human soul which it does not refer
-to itself, which it does not recognize as the work of its own will.
-There are certain days, certain moments in which it finds itself in a
-different moral state from that which it was last conscious of under
-the operations of its own will. In other words, the moral man does not
-wholly create himself; he is conscious that causes, that powers {233}
-external to himself act upon and modify him imperceptibly[20]--this
-fact has been called the grace of God which helps the will of man,
-while others see in it the evidences of predestination.
-
-3. The Pelagian View.--From these facts men arrive at different
-conclusions. Some regarding only the power of man to deliberate on any
-proposed course of conduct, and his ability to decide for himself what
-course he will pursue, ignoring the spiritual influences which operate
-on him, and taking no account of the aid which comes to man through
-prayer--believe that man's conduct depends entirely upon his will.
-"Tis in ourselves that we are thus or thus," say they; and hence reject
-the fact of the grace of God and the influence it exerts on human
-conduct.
-
-Such was the conclusion arrived at by Pelagius who flourished early in
-the fifth century. He asserted that human nature is not fallen--that
-there is no hereditary corruption, and that man having the power to
-do good has only to will in order to perform. His doctrine has been
-revised several times, and has drawn to it not a few believers.
-
-4. Catholic View.--Others regarding all the facts elsewhere
-enumerated--man's power to deliberate, his ability to decide upon his
-course, his failure to do all that his reason teaches him it is his
-duty to do, his need of help from a source external to himself, the
-assistance he can and does obtain through prayer and, lastly, the
-influence of spiritual forces upon man--leads them to the conclusion
-that it is through a union of the grace of God and the free will of man
-that men arrive at last at righteousness. Such was the teaching of the
-Roman Catholic church.
-
-5. Protestant View.--Others still, looking only upon the
-influence of the spiritual world on man, and noting how very far short
-he comes of doing all his reason teaches him it is his {234} duty to
-do, conclude that man has no power whatsoever to do good of himself,
-that he can exercise no will to work righteousness until after the
-grace of God makes him righteous, and that it is that grace altogether
-which causes him both to will and to do good works.
-
-6. Luther's Fundamental Doctrine.--Luther belonged to this
-last-named class. Long before he came to an open rupture with the pope,
-he taught the doctrine of predestination, and of salvation through
-faith alone:--"The excellent, infallible, and sole preparation for
-grace is the eternal election and predestination of God." "On the side
-of man there is nothing that goes before grace, unless it be impotency
-and even rebellion." "We do not become righteous by doing what is
-righteous; but having become righteous we do what is righteous." [21]
-"Since the fall of man, free will is but an idle word; and if man does
-all he can he still sins mortally." "A man who imagines to arrive at
-grace by doing all that he is able to do adds sin to sin and is doubly
-guilty." "That man is not justified who performs many works; but he
-who, without works, has much faith in Christ." [22] "What gives peace
-to our consciences is this--by faith our sins are no longer ours, but
-Christ's on whom God has laid them all; and, on the other hand, all
-Christ's righteousness belongs to us, to whom God has given it." [23]
-Thus taught Luther, and this became the first, the main theological
-question of the reformation. "The point which the Reformer had most
-at heart in all his labors, contests and dangers," says a respectable
-authority, "was the doctrine of justification by faith alone." [24]
-[Note 3, end of section.]
-
-7. It is but just to the Reformer however, that it should be
-known that he did not himself reject good works, but on the contrary
-exhorted men to practice them; but he condemns {235} those who did them
-with an idea that by them they would be justified, or that they were
-necessary to salvation. He held also that in order to do good works men
-must first be justified, and that good works done before justification
-were even sinful.[25]
-
-8. The Mischief of Luther's Doctrine.--Though Luther did not
-reject good works, and though he held that justifying faith would
-produce them, yet his doctrine has been the source of much mischief in
-the world. When it was charged by his vicar general, Staupitius, that
-his doctrines were the delight of debauches, and that many scandalous
-practices were the consequences of some of his publications, he could
-not deny the charge, but contented himself by saying, "I am neither
-afraid of such censorious representations, nor surprised to hear
-them." [26] Luther's doctrine of salvation by faith alone, as stated
-by Melanchthon, with his approval, stands thus: "Man's justification
-before God proceeds from faith alone. This faith enters man's heart
-by the grace of God alone." [27] This leaves man a passive creature in
-relation to his salvation. He is helpless to procure it; he can do
-nothing to hasten it; he is helpless; he must wait the divine workings
-of the grace of God. "As all things which happen," says Melanchthon,
-"happen necessarily, according to the divine predestination, there is
-no such thing as liberty in our wills." [28] [Note 4, end of section.]
-Other followers of Luther, among them one Nicholas Amsdorf, went so far
-as to maintain that good works were a hindrance to salvation.[29]
-
-9. By denying the existence of human liberty, and maintaining
-{236} that all things happen necessarily, the reformers, with Luther at
-their head, laid themselves open to the charges made by the partisans
-of the church of Rome, viz.: Their doctrine threw open a door to the
-most unbounded licentiousness since it furnished men with this defense
-for the crimes they committed--"We could do no other, our fate did
-not permit us to do otherwise." By saying that good works were not
-necessary to salvation, and assisted in no way to procure it, the
-Reformers took away the chief incentive to good works, and removed the
-principal restraint to the doing of evil.
-
-10. Moreover, their doctrine rendered void the ordinances and
-works required by the gospel; neither repentance nor baptism, nor any
-other act of obedience to God is essential if salvation is by faith
-alone. To say that it is a doctrine adverse to the whole tenor of
-scripture, notwithstanding a few isolated passages depended upon by the
-Reformers and their successors to support it, is not necessary here.
-It is sufficient to remark that it is a doctrine which would render
-the commandments of God incompatible with the powers and capacity of
-his creatures; a doctrine which destroys at once the consistency of
-God and the moral responsibility of man; and therefore a doctrine most
-pernicious and dangerous to entertain. [See note 5, end of section.]
-
-11. Luther on the Danger of his Doctrine.--It proved to be so
-even during the lifetime of Luther; for it led some of his followers to
-believe that Christ had abolished the moral law; and that Christians,
-therefore, were not obliged to observe it.[30] Luther himself saw the
-danger of his doctrine and thus spoke of it:
-
- If faith be preached, as of necessity it must be, the greater
- part of mankind will interpret the doctrine in a carnal way, and
- so understand spiritual liberty as to allow indulgences of the
- flesh. This we {237} may see in all the ranks of life. All profess
- themselves to be evangelical; all boast of their Christian liberty;
- and yet give way to their lusts and passions, for example to
- covetousness, pride, envy, pleasures, and such like. Who discharges
- his duty faithfully? Who serves his brother in a true spirit of
- charity? The disgrace which such conduct brings on the profession
- of the gospel puts me sometimes so out of temper that I could wish
- these swine, that tread precious pearls under their feet were
- still under the tyranny of the pope; for it is impossible that a
- people so much resembling those of Gomorrah, should be kept in due
- subjection by the mild maxims of the gospel of peace.[31]
-
-12. It counts for nothing that Luther denounced this corrupt
-state of morals among his followers; it was the legitimate outgrowth of
-his fundamental doctrine--the doctrine of nearly all Protestants--of
-justification by faith alone, a faith which man had no part in
-generating, but which came through the grace of God alone. The tree of
-his planting produced bitter fruit; it was vain for him to proclaim
-against the fruit so long as he insisted that it was a good tree on
-which it grew.
-
-13. Teaching of the Church of Rome on Justification.--The
-Catholic Church at the time, whatever errors in respect to other
-doctrines it entertained, held that salvation, justification before
-God, resulted through the exertion of man's free will, aided by the
-grace of God. It came through a union of faith and works on the part of
-man, and the rich outpouring of grace on the part of Deity; a doctrine
-which man is conscious of as operating upon and influencing human
-conduct, and at once in harmony with the whole tenor of revelation, and
-consonant with the great facts underlying the free will of man which
-have been already stated in this section.
-
-14. Unfortunately for the Catholic Church, she did not stop
-here, but attached too great importance to external marks of {238}
-repentance, to works of penance--to tears, fastings, mortifications
-of the flesh, and pilgrimages. Men were required to go barefooted, to
-wear coarse raiment next their bodies, to become exiles from their
-homes or to renounce the world and embrace a monastic life. Finally
-in the eleventh century voluntary whippings were added to these other
-punishments [see note 6, end of section]; and men learned to look
-upon these works of penance as purchasing a forgiveness of sins, and
-paid little attention to the inward regeneration of the heart. "As
-confession and penance are easier than the extirpation of sin and
-the abandonment of vice, many ceased contending against the lusts
-of the flesh, and preferred gratifying them at the expense of a few
-mortifications." [32] Especially did this become the case when the
-doctrine was promulgated that substitutes could be hired to receive
-the punishment originally inflicted upon the offender, and monks and
-priests could be found willing to undergo it for a consideration.
-
-15. The church trusted too much in the works of penance, and
-did not insist stoutly enough upon repentance--a godly sorrow which
-worketh a reformation of life. If the reformers went to one extreme
-in attributing man's justification wholly to the act of faith and the
-grace of God, the Catholic church went to the other in assigning too
-much value to works of penance and performances of human invention for
-the forgiveness of sins.
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Indulgences to be Accompanied by Amendment of Life.--The
-doctrine and the sale of indulgences were powerful incentives to evil
-among an ignorant people. True, according to the church, indulgences
-{239} could benefit those only who promised to amend their lives,
-and who kept their word. But what could be expected from a tenet
-invented solely with a view to the profit that might be derived from
-it? The vendors of indulgences were naturally tempted for the better
-sale of their merchandise to present their wares to the people in the
-most attractive and seducing aspect. The learned themselves did not
-fully understand the doctrine. All the multitude saw in them was that
-they permitted men to sin; and the merchants were not over eager to
-dissipate an error so favorable to their sale.--D'Aubigne.
-
-2. Death of Tetzel.--While the proper nuncio (Miltitz) was
-negotiating a reconciliation in Germany, Tetzel, the wretched
-subaltern, whose scandalous conduct had so disgraced his employers,
-met with the reward which frequently awaits the ministers of iniquity.
-He found himself deserted by all the world. Miltitz in particular had
-treated him so roughly that this daring and boisterous instrument of
-papal avarice and extortion actually fell sick, wasted away, and at
-last died of a broken heart. A dreadful lesson! This unhappy man left
-the world, as far as appears, destitute of comfort in his own soul,
-after he had ministered a false peace to thousands.--Milner.
-
-3. Luther on Justification by Faith.--I observe that the devil is
-continually attacking this fundamental article by means of his doctors,
-and that in this respect he can never cease or take any repose. Well,
-then, I, Doctor Martin Luther, unworthy herald of the gospel of our
-Lord Jesus Christ, confess this article, that faith alone without
-works justifies before Gods; and I declare that it shall stand and
-remain forever in spite of the emperor of the Romans, the emperor of
-the Turks, the emperor of the Tartars, the emperor of the Persians--in
-spite of the pope and all the cardinals, with the bishops, priests,
-monks and nuns--in spite of kings, princes and nobles, and in spite of
-all the world and of the devils themselves; and that if they endeavor
-to fight against this truth they will draw the fires of hell upon their
-heads. This is the true and holy gospel, and the declaration of me,
-Doctor Luther, according to the teaching of the Holy Ghost.--D'Aubigne
-(Hist. Ref., vol I, p. 70.)
-
-4. Effects of Predestination on the Mind.--To what purpose shall
-I labor in the service of God? If I am predestinated to death [that is,
-spiritual death] I shall never escape from it; and if I am predestined
-to life [that is, to salvation] even though I do wickedly, I shall, no
-doubt, arrive at eternal rest.--Raban, Quoted by Guizot.
-
-5. Evil Results of the Doctrine of Justification by Faith
-Alone.--The serious evil involved in Luther's doctrine of
-justification by faith without works is perhaps best seen in a
-quotation from Fletcher, of Madeley, the most able disciple of John
-Wesley and his successor {240} Fletcher accuses one Richard Hill,
-Esq.--who accepted in its widest sense the doctrine of justification
-by faith alone--with saying: "Even adultery and murder do not hurt the
-pleasant children, but rather work for their good. God sees no sin in
-believers, whatever sin they may commit. My sins might displease God:
-my person is always acceptable to him * * * It is a most pernicious
-error of the schoolmen to distinguish sins according to the fact, and
-not according to the persons. Though I blame those who say, let us sin
-that grace may abound, yet adultery, incest and murder shall, upon
-the whole, make me holier on earth and merrier in heaven."--End of
-Religious Controversy, p. 90.
-
-6. The Works in which Catholics Trusted.--In the eleventh century
-voluntary flagellations were superadded to these practices [fastings,
-pilgrimages, etc.]; somewhat later they became quite a mania in Italy,
-which was then in a very disturbed state. Nobles and peasants, old and
-young, even children of five years of age, whose only covering was
-a cloth tied round the middle, went in pairs by hundreds, thousands
-and tens of thousands, through the towns and villages, visiting the
-churches in the depth of winter. Armed with scourges, they flogged each
-other without pity, and the streets resounded with cries and groans
-that drew tears from all who heard them.--D'Aubigne.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What difference existed between the teachings of the Catholic church
-and the conduct of its agents in the matter of indulgences? (Note 1.)
-
-2. Was the sale of indulgences the chief cause of Luther's revolt from
-Rome?
-
-3. What doctrines did Luther entertain which would at last have led him
-to oppose the Catholic church?
-
-4. What is the power of deliberation?
-
-5. Explain what liberty or free agency is.
-
-6. In what way is man's will or free agency modified?
-
-7. What is it that convinces man of the necessity of external help to
-aid his will?
-
-8. What does man's experience teach him when he seeks external help?
-
-9. What influence is man conscious of as operating upon him in moral
-and spiritual affairs?
-
-{241} 10. State the Pelagian view on the subject of grace and free will.
-
-11. State the Roman Catholic view.
-
-12. State the Protestant view.
-
-13. What was Luther's fundamental doctrine?
-
-14. In what light did Luther hold good works?
-
-15. What mischief arose out of Luther's doctrine?
-
-16. What did Luther himself say respecting the danger of his doctrine?
-
-17. What were the teachings of the Roman church on justification?
-
-18. To what extreme did the church of Rome go in the matter of good
-works?
-
-19. What was the nature of the works in which Roman Catholics trusted
-too much? (Note 6.)
-
-20. What influence on morals did the doctrine have that substitutes
-could be employed to receive punishment for sins?
-
-{242}
-
-
-
-SECTION III.
-
-1. The Growth of Luther's Rebellion.--The thing most important,
-the one which drew with it the gravest consequences, and which led
-to the greatest good produced by the Reformation, was the rebellion
-of Luther against the authority of the pope. He did not come out in
-open rebellion at the first, but arrived at that state by gradual and
-imperceptible steps. When his opposition to the sale of indulgences met
-with reproof from the pontiff, he appealed from the pope ill-informed
-to the pope better-informed. When that pope better-informed still
-held him to be in error and refractory, he appealed to a general,
-free council of the whole church; but when no heed was taken of this
-appeal, and Leo, pressed by Eckius, Cajetan and others, excommunicated
-him, he then answered by burning the pope's bull of excommunication,
-and stood in open rebellion to the authority of the pontiff. When the
-pope appealed to Emperor Charles to make the excommunication of some
-force by the power of the secular authority vested in him, the emperor,
-contrary to the protests of the pope's legates, resolved to give the
-Reformer a hearing before proceeding against him. Accordingly Luther
-was summoned before the diet at Worms, where he not only insisted upon
-having a hearing before a free, general council of the church, but a
-council that would accept the Bible as the final authority upon the
-questions at issue between himself and the pontiff.
-
-2. The Catholic Rule of Faith.--This was demanding more than
-the pope could grant; for the Catholics have never exalted the Bible
-above the church, but have always held that {243} the scriptures must
-be accepted as construed by the church, and in the days of Luther the
-pope was the church. The Catholic rule of faith in respect to the
-laws by which the church is to be governed is: "The word of God, at
-large, whether written in the Bible or handed down from the apostles
-by tradition, and as it is understood and explained by the Catholic
-church." [33] Besides their rule of faith, which is scripture and
-tradition, "Catholics acknowledge an unerring judge of controversy, or
-sure guide in all matters relating to salvation--viz., the church." [34]
-
-3. This rule employed to interpret the Bible and to settle
-controversies that might arise, Luther rejected. Writing in defense
-of his conduct in burning the papal bull of excommunication and the
-decretals of the popes, he said:
-
- Let no man's good sense be so far seduced as to reverence the
- volumes I have burnt, on account of their great antiquity or their
- high titles. Let every one first hear and see what the pope teaches
- in his own books, and what abominable, poisonous doctrines are to
- be found among the sacred, spiritual laws; and then let him freely
- judge, whether I have done right or not in burning such writings.
-
-4. Among the teachings in the decretals which Luther held up for
-special condemnation were the following:
-
- (1) The pope has the power to interpret scripture, and to teach as
- he pleases; and no person is allowed to interpret in a different
- way. (2) The pope does not derive from the scripture but the
- scripture derives from the pope, authority, power and dignity.
-
-He then affirms that comparing together the different parts of the
-canon law, its language amounts to this:
-
- That the pope is God on earth; above all that is earthly or
- heavenly, temporal or spiritual; that all things belong to the
- pope; and that no one must venture to say, what doest thou?[35]
-
-{244}It was against this arbitrary authority that Luther rebelled.
-
-5. Attempted Settlement by a General Council.--At last when
-through the influence of the emperor the pope consented to appoint a
-council, a difficulty arose as to where it should be held. The pope on
-his part seemed determined to have it assemble in Italy, or in some
-country where his influence would predominate; the Reformers were
-equally determined to submit their cause to no council outside of
-Germany. The difficulty had arisen in Germany; they insisted it should
-be settled by a council in Germany, or by a diet of the empire. The
-cause was never fairly tried by a council of the whole church; the
-revolt against the authority of the pope was sustained by an appeal to
-arms, as related in section I, Part III, of this work.
-
-6. Revolution, not Rebellion.--Had that revolt against the
-Catholic church been a revolt against legitimate authority it would
-have been rebellion: but as it was against a usurped and hence an
-illegitimate authority, it was a justifiable revolution. For in
-ecclesiastical government, no less than in civil government, if a
-long train of abuses renders it odious, and those who execute it are
-tyrannical and usurp authority which the law of God does not sanction,
-by which unrighteous dominion is exercised over the minds of men, it is
-the right of the people to resist such authority: and refuse to sustain
-those who exercise that unrighteous dominion to please their vanity or
-gratify their ambition.
-
-7. True Position, but a Corrupt Church.--The position that
-the church, officered by inspired prophets and apostles--men having
-by virtue of their priesthood and official position a right to the
-inspiration and revelations of God--the position that the church of
-Christ so officered, has the right to decide upon all controversies and
-to determine the meaning of scripture, is, beyond all questioning, a
-true position. But the difficulty with the Roman Catholic church was
-that it was no {245} longer the church of Christ, as already proven in
-Part II of this work. It had no prophets or apostles, no men who had a
-right to the revelations of God. The popes and bishops of the church
-taught that revelation had ceased, and they depended on scripture and
-tradition alone, interpreted by themselves, for their guide. The power
-the church possessed was usurped power merely, the growth of ages. It
-had become both arrogant and insolent, and at last intolerable, and
-when a man was found possessing the courage to resent its presumption
-and defy it, he found plenty to applaud and sanction his act.
-
-8. True Cause of the Reformation.--We cannot ascribe the
-Reformation to accidents and mischances, such for instance as the
-jealousy of Luther because the sale of indulgences was entrusted to
-the Dominican monks instead of to the order of Augustine monks, to
-which he belonged[36]--we cannot assign the cause of the Reformation
-to this, neither can we go to the other extreme and say that the great
-revolution of the sixteenth century resulted solely from a pure desire
-to reform the abuses that had arisen in the church or bring back
-Christianity to its primitive purity. Not a few of the princes that
-favored Luther in his revolt against the pope did so from other motives
-than those prompted by a desire to reform the church.
-
-9. Many of the temporal monarchs and princes were jealous of the
-power exercised within their dominions by the Roman pontiffs, as it
-lowered the dignity of their own position. They were tired, moreover,
-of the assumed right of the pope to enter their dominions, and, under
-one pretext or another, tax their subjects and thus not only impoverish
-the people, but reduce the revenue of the temporal ruler. It will be
-found, {246} therefore, that the jealousy, ambition and interest of
-these princes, and not a desire to establish pure religion, made them
-factors in the great revolution. (See note 1, end of section.)
-
-10. The people also were tired of the dominion asserted over
-their minds by the papal authority, and were only too glad to escape
-from that thraldom under any pretext whatsoever. The preceding century
-had brought a great intellectual awakening to Europe, and men were no
-longer content to have questions of fact and belief decided by the
-authority of the church. (See note 2, end of section.) They insisted
-that human reason and individual judgment had a right to investigate
-and to be satisfied on these questions; and the securing of that
-freedom was not only the leading principle of the sixteenth century
-revolution, but its greatest achievement. (See note 3, end of section.)
-
-11. Revolution, not Reformation.--It is absurd to say that
-the revolution of the sixteenth century was a reformation, if by
-that it is meant that it re-established the primitive doctrines of
-Christianity, purified the morals of the people, or gave birth to a
-better ecclesiastical government. It did no such thing. The Reformers
-declaimed against some of the abuses of the Catholic church, such
-as denying the sacramental cup to the laity, the celibacy of the
-clergy, the absurdities of the mass, fasts and ceremonies of human
-invention, the whole system of monkery, and the great usurpation of
-authority by the church; and consequently did not include any of
-these abuses--except perhaps the last--in the system of religion they
-founded. Still their doctrines led them into serious errors and great
-disorders.
-
-12. Private Interpretation of the Bible and its Effects.--The
-evils that arose from the doctrine of justification by faith alone, we
-have already noticed.[37] The disorders that grew out of the doctrine
-of private interpretation of scripture is yet to be considered. When
-Luther refused to longer recognize the authority of the church in
-matters of doctrine, he still was aware that men would need some
-authority to decide controversies that would arise, consequently he
-held up the Bible as the final arbiter of all questions touching
-faith and morals. But the Bible had to be construed, its meaning made
-plain, and as each one was left to explain it in his own way, the
-utmost confusion prevailed. On the great fundamental principle of the
-Protestants--justification by faith alone--Osiander, a Lutheran, says:
-
- There are twenty several opinions, all drawn from scriptures,
- and held by different members of the Augsburg, or Lutheran
- Confession.[38]
-
-When the Reformers from the several parts of Germany consulted
-together, and with them the Reformers from other states met with a
-view to come to some understanding in respect to religion and modes of
-worship, it was soon apparent that they were hopelessly divided, not
-only upon matters unimportant, but also upon fundamental principles.
-Luther had rejected the authority of the church and set up the tribunal
-of private interpretation of scripture in its stead. A number of his
-disciples proceeding on the same principle, rejected some of his
-doctrines and undertook to prove from the scripture that he was in
-error and that the Reformation needed reforming.
-
- 13. Carolstadt, [says the author of the "End of Religious
- Controversy] Zuinglius, Okolampadius, Muncer and a hundred more
- of his followers, wrote and preached against him and against
- each other with the utmost virulence, whilst each of them still
- professed to ground his doctrine and conduct on the written word
- of God alone. In vain did Luther denounce hell fire against them;
- in vain did he threaten to return back to the Catholic religion;
- he had put the {248} Bible into each man's hand to explain it for
- himself, and this his followers continued to do in open defiance
- of him, till their mutual contradictions and discords became so
- numerous and scandalous as to overwhelm the thinking part of them
- with grief and confusion." [39] (See note 4, end of section.)
-
-14. The Multiplication of Sects.--The division of the Reformers
-into numerous sects has ever been a reproach to Protestants and
-likewise an evidence of the weakness of their position. Men of
-different capacities and dispositions examined the Bible; they found it
-no systematic treatise upon religion and morals, but a miscellaneous
-collection of inspired writings, dealing with historical events,
-connected, in the main, with the people of God; prophecies, dreams,
-revelations, doctrines, and morals; written at different times, to
-different peoples, and under a great variety of circumstances. In
-addition to all this, many plain and precious parts have been taken
-away from it;[40] other parts have doubtless been purposely changed
-by designing men;[41] which, with the imperfections arising from its
-translation from the original languages in which it was written,
-has made it an uncertain guide, taken alone, for the church or for
-individuals; and as Protestants insisted upon the right of private
-judgment in the interpretation of the Bible, it is not surprisingg
-that a great variety of opinions were entertained, or that numerous
-sects were founded upon them. It was a great evil; much confusion and
-disorder arose out of it; but it was an evil that could not be avoided.
-It was one of those periods of time when liberty was a cause of
-disorder, but the attainment of liberty through that disorder more than
-outweighed the evils that arose from it.
-
-15. The Error of the Reformers.--The great error which the
-Reformers made was in not giving full application to their principle
-of the right of private judgment in matters of {249} religion. They
-claimed the right to revolt from the Catholic church, to interpret the
-Bible for themselves, and to found their mode of worship upon their own
-conceptions of what was required by the revelations of God; but when
-others differed from them, and desired to exercise the same liberty,
-the Reformers were themselves intolerant, and attempted to compel men
-by force to accept their religious faith and modes of worship. It is
-this intolerance which is the chief reproach applied to the Reformation
-by its enemies, and it must be admitted that it somewhat sullies the
-glory of its achievements. (See note 5, end of section.)
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Motives Back of the Reformation.--The Protestant historian,
-Mosheim, with whom Hume agrees, admits that several of the principal
-agents in this revolution were actuated more by the impulse of passion
-and views of interest than by a zeal for true religion. (Maclaine's
-Mosheim, vol. iv. p. 135.) He had before acknowledged that King
-Gustavus introduced Lutheranism into Sweden in opposition to the
-clergy and bishops, not only as agreeable to the genius and spirit of
-the gospel, but also as favorable to the temporal state and political
-constitution of the Swedish dominions. He adds that Christiern,
-who introduced the Reformation into Denmark, was animated by no
-other motives than those of ambition and avarice. Grotius, another
-Protestant, testifies that it was sedition and violence which gave
-birth to the Reformation in his own country--Holland. The same was the
-case in France, Geneva and Scotland. It is to be observed, that in all
-these countries the Reformers, as soon as they got the upper hand,
-became violent persecutors of the Catholics. Bergier defies Protestants
-to name so much as a town or village in which, when they became masters
-of it, they tolerated a single Catholic.--End of Religious Controversy,
-note, p. 105.
-
-2. Desire for Freedom the Moving Cause in Reformation.--The
-strength of the Protestant party had been derived, both in Germany and
-England, far less from their superiority in argument, however decisive
-{250} this might be, than from that desire which all classes, and
-especially the higher, had long experienced to emancipate themselves
-from the thraldom of ecclesiastical jurisdiction.--Hallam's Const.
-Hist. of Eng.
-
-3. The Cause and Leading Principle of the Reformation.--In
-my opinion the Reformation neither was an accident, the result of
-some casual circumstance, or some personal interests, nor arose from
-unmingled views of religious improvement, the fruit of Utopian humanity
-and truth. It had a more powerful cause than all these; a general cause
-to which all the others are subordinate. It was a vast effort made by
-the human mind to achieve its freedom; it was a new-born desire which
-it felt to think and judge, freely and independently, of facts and
-opinions which, till then, Europe received or was considered bound
-to receive from the hands of authority. It was a great endeavor to
-emancipate human reason, and to call things by their right names;
-it was an insurrection of the human mind against the absolute power
-of spiritual order. Such, in my opinion, was the true character and
-leading principle of the Reformation. * * * Not only was this the
-result of the Reformation, but it was content with this result.
-Whenever this was obtained no other was sought for; so entirely was
-it the very foundation of the event, its primitive and fundamental
-character! * * * I repeat it; whenever the Reformation attained this
-object, it accommodated itself to every form of government and to every
-situation.--Guizot.
-
-4. Unhappy Divisions Among Reformers.--Capito, minister of
-Strasburg, writing to Forel, pastor of Geneva, thus complains to him:
-"God has given me to understand the mischief we have done by our
-precipitancy in breaking with the pope. The people say I know enough of
-the gospel. I can read it for myself. I have no need of you." In the
-same tone Dudith writes to his friend Beza: "Our people are carried
-away with every wind of doctrine. If you know what their religion is
-today, you cannot tell what it will be tomorrow. In what single point
-are those churches which have declared war against the pope agreed
-amongst themselves? There is not one point which is not held by some
-of them as an article of faith, and by others as an impiety!" In the
-same sentiment, Calvin, writing to Melanchthon, says: "It is of great
-importance that the divisions which subsist among us should not be
-known to future ages: for nothing can be more ridiculous than that we
-who have broken off from the whole world, should have agreed so ill
-among ourselves from the very beginning of the Reformation."--End of
-Religious Controversy, Page 101.
-
-5. The Reproach of the Reformation.--What were the reproaches
-constantly applied to the Reformation by its enemies? Which of its
-results are thrown in its face, as it were, unanswerable? The two
-principal reproaches are, first, the multiplicity of sects, the
-excessive license of thought, the destruction of all spiritual
-authority, and the entire dissolution of religious society; secondly,
-tyranny and persecution. "You provoke licentiousness," it has been said
-to the Reformers: "you produce it; and, after being the cause of it,
-you wish to restrain and repress it. And how do you repress it? By the
-most harsh and violent means. You take upon yourselves, too, to punish
-heresy, and that by virtue of an illegitimate authority."--Guizot.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What was the matter of chief importance in the Reformation?
-
-2. Describe the growth of Luther's conflict with the pope.
-
-3. Describe the Catholic rule of faith.
-
-4. What demands contrary to that rule did Luther make?
-
-5. What difficulty arose in respect to settling the controversy by an
-appeal to a general council?
-
-6. What can you say of the revolt of Luther to the Catholic church
-authority?
-
-7. What can you say of the right of the true Church of Christ to settle
-controversies and determine the meaning of scripture?
-
-8. Why was the Catholic church unqualified to render decisions on such
-matters?
-
-9. What several causes are assigned for the Reformation by Catholics
-and Protestants respectively? (Note.)
-
-10. What was the true cause?
-
-11. What several considerations aided the Reformation?
-
-12. Was the religious movement of the 16th century a reformation or a
-revolution?
-
-13. What can you say of the evils which arose from the private
-interpretation of the Bible?
-
-14. What caused the multiplication of sects among the Protestants?
-
-15. What makes the Bible an insufficient guide in matters of faith and
-worship?
-
-16. What was the great error of the Reformers?
-
-{252}
-
-
-
-SECTION IV.
-
-1. The Reformation in Switzerland.--So far we have considered
-this sixteenth century revolution as it affected the German empire
-alone. It was not confined, however, to that country. As a matter of
-fact, the so-called Reformation began in Switzerland before it did
-in Germany. Ulrich Zwingle, born in Wildhausen, Canton of St. Gall,
-Switzerland 1484, attacked many of the errors of the Catholic Church,
-before Luther began his opposition.
-
-2. In 1516, Zwingle openly declaimed against many Catholic
-abuses, such as monastic vows, pilgrimages, worship of relics, and
-indulgences. He also taught that the Bible was the only standard of
-religious truth. In 1518, one Samson came into Switzerland to sell
-indulgences. The year following Zwingle opposed him and drove him from
-Zurich. Four years later the Swiss Reformer was accused of heresy
-by adherents of the Roman pontiff, and brought before the council
-of Zurich. He presented sixty-seven doctrinal propositions before
-the council which he agreed to defend by the scriptures against all
-opposers. The council before which his cause was tried decided that
-the controversy must be settled by an appeal to the Bible, and Zwingle
-triumphed. At the conclusion of the hearing the council decreed that
-the Reformer should be allowed to teach as he had formerly done
-unmolested; and that no preacher in the canton should teach any
-doctrine he could not prove by the Bible. The year following--1524--the
-council reformed the public worship, that is, they adopted the
-principles and methods of worship proposed by Zwingle.
-
-{253} 3. In 1531, the Catholics in the surrounding cantons
-attacked Zurich, and early in the battle, Zwingle, while leading the
-Protestant forces, was slain, his body hacked to pieces and afterwards
-burned. [See note 1, end of section.]
-
-4. John Calvin.--Zwingle was succeeded in the leadership of the
-Swiss Reformers by John Calvin, a talented but austere man, a native
-of Noyon, France. [See note 2, end of section.] He more than any other
-man--Luther excepted--influenced the character of the Protestant
-churches. He held many views that were at variance with those of
-Zwingle. The latter taught that civil rulers possessed absolute power
-in religious matters, and subjected the ministers altogether to their
-authority. Calvin held that the church should be free and independent
-of the state; that it should govern itself by its own officers whom
-the church and not the state should appoint; he limited the power of
-the state over the church to giving it external protection. Zwingle
-recognized a gradation of officers in the Christian church; Calvin
-held that all were equal. Suitable persons appointed and ordained with
-the consent of the members of the church, constituted, in his theory
-of church government, a legitimate ministry to preach the gospel and
-administer the sacraments. But for the government of the church a
-number of men were chosen by the people from among the most venerable
-and respectable of the congregation. These men were called presbyters
-or elders. They were all equal in authority, and even the preaching
-minister was in no sense superior to them in office.
-
-5. The elders of a single church or congregation convened
-in council constituted the church session; councils composed of
-representatives from the several churches in a province, constituted
-synods or consistories; while a general council composed of elders from
-all the churches was known as the general assembly. The elders in these
-several councils were all regarded {254} as equal in authority and had
-full power to enact laws relating to religious matters and to establish
-the discipline of the church. Such is the order of church government
-founded by Calvin, and known as Presbyterianism.
-
-6. Difference of Opinion on the Eucharist.--As already stated
-in a previous section, the Catholics maintained that in the eucharist
-the bread and the wine, were converted by consecration into the very
-body and blood of Messiah. Zwingle maintained that the bread and wine
-were symbols merely of Christ's flesh and blood, employed to call to
-mind his death, and the blessings procured to man by that death. Calvin
-stood between these two extremes, as also did Luther, and while they
-disagreed with Catholics, and would not concede that the bread and wine
-were changed to the _very_ body and blood of Christ, neither would they
-concede that the bread and wine were merely symbols, but insisted upon
-a sort of spiritual presence. That is, they held that the saints in
-the exercise of faith in partaking of the sacrament, do become united
-in a certain mystic way with Christ, and from this union received an
-increase of spiritual life.
-
-7. Predestination.--Another thing in which Calvin differed from
-Zwingle was in relation to the celebrated doctrine of an absolute
-decree of God respecting the salvation of men. Calvin emphasized the
-doctrines of Luther and Melanchthon in regard to the part which the
-grace of God takes in the salvation of men; and perhaps carried it
-further than they would have done, certainly further than Zwingle did.
-On this point Calvin taught that God had elected some persons from all
-eternity to everlasting life; and had appointed others to everlasting
-punishments; and that for this he had no other ground except his own
-pleasure, or his most free and sovereign will. This is the doctrine of
-predestination.
-
-8. The Spread of Calvin's Doctrines.--It was some time before the
-Swiss could be brought to accept these doctrines {255} so at variance
-with or not found in the teachings of Zwingle. Yet by the perseverance
-and the high reputation for learning and piety of Calvin they were
-very generally accepted in Switzerland; and after him, such was the
-success of his pupils, that large bodies of Protestants in other
-nations accepted his doctrines. Especially was this the case in France,
-England, Scotland, and even in Germany.
-
-9. The Reformation in France.--In France, though in the main
-her people adhered to the Catholic church, the Reformation found its
-most faithful adherents, and there they suffered the most violent
-persecutions. The Protestants were opprobriously called Huguenots
-[Hu-ge-nots] the origin of the appellation is uncertain. Among these
-French Protestants were men of high character, and not a few bishops
-of the church. The king and the magistrates, however, protected the
-ancient religion by the sword, by penal inflictions; and a large number
-of pious and good people were put to death, among them not a few of the
-nobility. [See notes 3 and 4, end of section.]
-
-10. The Reformation in Sweden.--In Sweden the Reformation made
-rapid headway. Its doctrines were introduced into that country by
-Olaus Peri, whose zeal for the cause was warmly seconded by the king,
-Gustavus Vasa, who while an exile in Lubec, during the revolution of
-1523, learned something of the "reformed" religion. For some time
-before 1523 Sweden had been ruled by Danish kings; but in that year,
-in consequence of the tyranny practiced by Christiern II of Denmark, a
-revolution was inaugurated by Gustavus Vasa, which ended in Christiern
-being driven from Sweden. Gustavus was chosen king in his stead.
-While prejudiced in favor of the "reformed" religion, he acted with
-great moderation. He invited learned Protestants from Germany whom he
-directed to instruct his people in the Bible and the Protestant faith.
-The Bible translated by Olaus Petri he caused to be published and
-disseminated. In 1526, a great discussion on religion was {256} held
-at Upsal at the instance of the king, between Olaus Petri and Peter
-Gallius, a Roman Catholic. Gallius seems to have been so far defeated,
-even in his own estimation, that in the year following, in the assembly
-of the states at Westeras, he recommended the "reformed" religion of
-Luther to the representatives of the nation. After a long discussion,
-and much opposition from the bishops, it was finally harmoniously
-decreed that the "reformed" religion should be introduced. From that
-time until now the power of the pope in Sweden has been prostrated.
-[See note 5, end of section.]
-
-11. Denmark.--In Denmark the reformation was not accomplished so
-happily. Christiern, whose authority, as we have seen, was overthrown
-in Sweden, sought to establish the reformed religion in Denmark,
-but more from a desire to deprive the bishops of their power, and
-confiscate their property, than from a right zeal for true religion. In
-1520 he invited Martin Reynhard, a disciple of Carlstadt, to Denmark,
-and made him professor of theology at Copenhagen. Reynhard stayed about
-a year. When he left, the king sent for Carlstadt. He remained but a
-short time; and then the king invited Luther himself to come, but the
-reformer would not accept the invitation. All these failing him, the
-king set about the work of reformation himself, but as he was a tyrant,
-his people conspired against him, and banished him from the kingdom,
-in 1523. He was succeeded by his uncle, Frederic, Duke of Holstein and
-Sleswick.
-
-12. Frederic was as anxious as Christiern had been to see the
-reformed religion established in Denmark, but he was more prudent
-than his nephew. He permitted the leaders among the Protestants to
-teach publicly the doctrines of Luther, and in time these raised up a
-strong following. In 1527 the king procured a decree from the senate,
-at the diet of Odensee, giving religious liberty to the people. By
-this decree the Danes were left free to embrace the new religion, or
-continue {257} members of the Catholic Church, as they saw proper. The
-successor of Frederic--Christian III--went further than this, however,
-in the interest of the Reformation. He stripped the bishops of their
-odious power, confiscated the church property, much of which, however,
-he restored to the original owners, from whom it had been obtained, it
-is alleged, by base arts. He called John Bugenhagius from Wittemburg,
-and with his assistance regulated the religious affairs of his realm by
-making the reformed the established religion of his kingdom. The action
-of Christian III seems harsh, but a circumstance which mitigates if it
-does not destroy the harshness of his measures, was the insufferable
-arrogance, pride and power of the bishops, which was a constant menace
-to the power of the monarch, and did much to eclipse his glory. [See
-note 6, end of section.]
-
-13. Holland.--Perhaps from being contiguous to Germany, the
-Netherlands--Belgium and Holland--soon partook of the spirit of the
-Reformation--the desire to be free. The writings of Luther were
-early received and widely read by the Netherlanders. This alarmed
-the Catholics who, in 1552, established the Inquisition there and
-persecuted with great vigor all who accepted the doctrines of the
-reformers. It is estimated that in those provinces which, taken
-together, constitute the Netherlands, in the reign of Charles V
-alone--from 1519 to 1552--not less than 50,000 persons lost their
-lives in consequence of their defection from the church of Rome. But
-notwithstanding this severe persecution, adherents to the Protestant
-faith increased. The tyranny of their oppressors seemed to increase
-the boldness of the people in clamoring for the rights of conscience;
-and towards the close of the sixteenth century seven of the provinces
-successfully revolted against the Duke of Alva, Viceroy of the Catholic
-monarch, Phillip II of Spain. These revolting provinces formed the
-Dutch Republic, and in a short time became the most formidable maritime
-{258} power in the world. They suffered the most and wrought the most
-in behalf of the liberty of conscience, the freedom of commerce, and
-the liberty of the state. It is said by one historian that "In freedom
-of conscience they were the light of the world." [42] It is well known
-that for many years their land was the asylum for the oppressed,
-especially for those persecuted for their religion.
-
-14. England.--The Reformation in England took on a different
-aspect to what it did in the other countries. When Luther began his
-assault upon the church of Rome, the English monarch, Henry VIII,
-appeared as a champion on the side of the Roman pontiffs. He wrote a
-book against Luther in defense of the seven sacraments of the Catholic
-Church, which met with such favor in the eyes of the pope that he
-conferred upon Henry the title of "Defender of the Faith." Henry's
-book appeared in 1522. Soon after this the king began to question the
-legality of his marriage with Catherine of Aragon.
-
-15. Catherine had been the wife of the king's deceased brother,
-Arthur; and a marriage with a deceased brother's widow was regarded as
-contrary to the law of God.[43] Henry therefore applied to the pope for
-the annulment of his marriage, since his conscience would not permit
-him to cohabit longer with his deceased brother's wife. The conduct
-of the king, however, was such as to give strong ground to the belief
-that it was his love for Ann Boleyn, an English lady of high birth, and
-not conscientious scruples as to the lawfulness of his marriage with
-Catherine. The queen's beauty had faded and some disease, it is said,
-had rendered her person less agreeable. Still, to do Henry justice,
-it must not be concealed that his father had scrupled the legitimacy
-of the marriage; a foreign {259} court had made it an objection
-to intermarriage with his children by his wife; and the people of
-England very generally entertained fears respecting the succession
-to his crown, and these political considerations doubtless had their
-influence.[44] Still it will not be denied that after the king had
-fallen in love with Ann Boleyn, his love for her and not political
-considerations, or religious scruples, was the incentive that prompted
-him to seek a divorce.
-
-16. The Rupture with the Pope.--The pope, Clement VII, evaded
-a direct answer to Henry's appeal. Catherine was the aunt of Charles
-V, and perhaps Clement feared that he would offend that monarch--to
-whom he looked to suppress the Reformation in Germany--if he granted
-the divorce. Henry, impatient of these enforced delays, consulted the
-universities of Europe, and as most of them pronounced marriage with
-a deceased brother's wife unlawful, he divorced Catherine without the
-consent of the pope. A quarrel ensued between the king and the pontiff,
-which resulted in the former casting off the authority of the latter,
-and the pope excommunicated the king. In 1533 Henry was declared
-head of the British church and Defender of the Faith, by the English
-parliament. He thereupon ejected the monks from their possessions,
-disposed of their property at his own good pleasure, and abolished in
-toto the authority of the pope in England.
-
-17. No other country in all Europe was so well prepared for the
-Sixteenth Century revolution as England. A century and a half before
-either Luther or Zwingle were heard of, John Wycliffe proclaimed
-against the corruption and abuses of the Catholic church, denounced
-the pope as anti-Christ,[45] and preached against the doctrine
-of transubstantiation. He also {260} translated the Scriptures
-and circulated them among the common people. Two years before his
-death, however, he was summoned before a church council by which,
-notwithstanding he defended himself with great ability, many of his
-doctrines were condemned, and he himself was restricted in his ministry
-to the parish of Lutterworth, in Leicestershire, where he died. [See
-note 7, end of section.] His teachings, however, had made a deep
-impression upon his countrymen, and he left many followers, who were
-called by their opponents Lollards. The Lollards were a proscribed
-sect in England, and as they avoided persecution, but little was heard
-of them. Still they cherished the doctrines of their leader, and
-transmitted them to their children, so that when Luther and the other
-continental reformers began their work, there were many in England
-who sympathized with them; and when Henry VIII considered it to his
-interests to revolt against the authority of the pope, he found large
-numbers of his people not only ready to support him in casting off
-that authority, but anxious to go much farther in that revolt than
-the king desired. [See note 6, end of section.] They had viewed the
-rupture between the king and the pope with deep satisfaction; but
-they were soon to learn that the defection of the monarch was not to
-bring religious liberty to England, or establish there the doctrines
-of Wycliffe or Luther. It was but a change of masters that had taken
-place, and the king was as despotic as the pope. [See note 9, end of
-section.] Although Henry had thrown off the authority of the pontiff,
-he would tolerate but few changes in the forms and ceremonies of
-religion. More changes were introduced in the reign of Edward VI, the
-son of Henry VIII by Jane Seymore; and still more in the reign of
-Elizabeth, his daughter by Anne Boleyn.
-
-18. The Puritans.--But these changes came far short of satisfying
-the English Protestants, who were called Puritans. They demanded
-almost a complete abolition of the rites and {261} ceremonies of the
-Roman Church, which they denounced as idolatrous. The most of them
-favored the Presbyterian form of church government, or a still simpler
-method which would recognize each congregation as a complete church
-within itself. Those who contended for this more simple form of church
-government were called Independents. The puritans were frequently rude
-and clamorous in their demands for further reformation; and on their
-part the adherents of the established religion were intolerant, and
-persecuted to imprisonment, exile or death the Puritans. [See note 10,
-end of section.]
-
-19. The Reformation in Scotland.--All things considered, the
-Reformation in Scotland--that is the overthrow of the authority of the
-pope--was accomplished with as little trouble as it was in England; and
-accompanied by less injustice to Catholics. In Scotland, as in England,
-the doctrines of Wycliffe had many silent adherents, and such was the
-frame of the popular mind that only the leadership of bold men was
-needed to make a successful revolt against the authority of the pope.
-That leadership was found in John Knox.[46] Knox was thirty-eight years
-of age when he openly declared himself a Protestant, and began his work
-of reform. About three years later Cardinal Beaton, a proud, arrogant
-man, and of course the head of the Catholic church in Scotland, was
-assassinated. His castle--St. Andrews--was taken possession of by the
-band of nobles and others who had murdered him, and it became for a
-time the stronghold of Protestantism. To this place Knox repaired, and
-there in the parish church of St. Andrews, first became famous as a
-preacher. In a short time, however, the fortress was surrendered, and
-Knox was sent to the French galleys a prisoner. After two years he was
-set at liberty, and allowed to depart for England, where he lived for
-years, on terms of intimacy with Cranmer and other English reformers.
-{262} On the accession of Queen Mary,[47] Knox retired to Germany and
-Switzerland, residing chiefly in the latter place, where he learned and
-became attached to both the doctrines and form of church government
-taught by Calvin.
-
-20. In 155, political necessity compelled the government in
-Scotland to become more lenient towards the nobles favoring the
-Reformation, and Knox returned to Scotland, where his impassioned
-denunciations of the idolatry of the mass and of image-worship aroused
-the pent-up enthusiasm of the people. Indeed the people went far
-beyond what Knox intended; riots ensued, churches and monasteries
-were destroyed, and the whole country, already suffering the evils of
-civil war, was plunged into greater disorder. At last, through the
-assistance of Queen Elizabeth, of England, a truce was proclaimed,
-and a parliament chosen to settle the troubles. The parliament met
-in 1560, and its deliberations resulted in the overthrow of the old
-religion, and the establishment of the "Reformed church," based on the
-doctrines and church polity of Calvin. In the midst of the harshness
-which attended the overthrow of the old religion there was a singular
-instance of moderation which will be looked for in vain in other
-countries where the reformation succeeded. According to Hallam, it
-was agreed in the settlement made by the parliament of 1560, "that
-the Roman Catholic prelates, including the regulars, should enjoy
-two-thirds of their revenues as well as their rank and seats in
-parliament; the remaining third being given to the crown, out of which
-stipends should be allotted to the protestant clergy." [48] "Whatever
-violence may be imputed to the authors of the Scots reformation,"
-continues Mr. Hallam, "this arrangement seems to display a moderation
-which we would vainly seek in our own" [49]--the English reformation.
-
-21. Unfortunately, as in England, after the authority and {263}
-religion of the pope were overthrown in Scotland, the religious
-difficulties were far from settled. A controversy arose between
-the church and the crown on the subject of authority. It will be
-remembered that Calvin insisted that the church should be independent
-of the state,[50] and nowhere was it so strenuously insisted upon as
-in Scotland; not only did it demand of the secular authority freedom
-from interference, but assumed the right to reprove the king and his
-court, and that, too, in no guarded language. In 1854, Andrew Melville
-was summoned before the king's council, to give an account of some
-seditious language employed by him in the pulpit against the court.
-He declined the jurisdiction of the council on the ground that he
-was responsible only to the church for such language; and the king
-could not judge of the matter without violating the immunities of the
-church.[51]
-
-22. The king and council, however, did not hesitate to declare
-the supremacy of the secular power, and thus was begun a controversy
-which, united with the attempts on the part of the sovereigns and
-parliament to restore the Episcopal form of church government, led
-to violent persecutions on the part of the secular authority, and
-to heroic resistance on the part of the people of Scotland. In that
-protracted struggle, persecuted by both parties with varying fortunes,
-the people were at last successful; though their victory was not
-secured for them until the Stuart line of monarchs were driven out
-of Scotland and England by the revolution of 1688, which dethroned
-James II of England and VII of Scotland, and placed William, Prince of
-Orange, and Mary, his wife, on the British throne.
-
-23. The Discovery of America--Its Influence on Liberty.--It is
-significant that about the time of the "Revival of Learning" in Europe,
-America was discovered by Columbus, {264} led hither by the inspiration
-of God. [Note 11, end of section.] Between this struggle for liberty
-in the Old World and the discovery of the New there was doubtless a
-providential connection. God knew there could be but a stunted growth
-of the tree of liberty in the Old World, hence he opened the way for
-it to be planted in a land more congenial to its growth. The whole
-continent of America is a land consecrated by the decrees of Almighty
-God to liberty, and the people who inhabit it are assured by that same
-decree of their freedom.[52] Hence when a fullness of liberty was
-denied the Puritans in England, they fled to America, and here found
-room for the planting of colonies where they could enjoy the liberty
-denied them in the Old World, and the founding of the New England
-colonies (now the New England States) was the result.
-
-24. Catholics Seek Liberty in America--Nor were the Puritans the
-only ones who sought liberty in the New World. Even the Catholics
-came; for they, no less than the Puritans, were persecuted in England.
-Sir George Calvert, whose title was Lord Baltimore, a Roman Catholic,
-desiring to establish a colony in America that would be a place of
-refuge for persecuted Catholics, obtained a charter for that territory
-comprised within the boundary lines of the state of Maryland. Before
-the charter was signed, Sir George died; but it was made out to his son
-Cecil, who carried out his father's designs. The charter granted to
-Lord Baltimore was unlike any which had hitherto passed the royal seal,
-in that it secured to all who should settle in the colony, religious
-liberty. That is, Christianity was the recognized religion, made so by
-the law of the land, but no preference was given to any sect or party.
-
-25. Puritan Intolerance.--Unfortunately all the colonies were not
-founded in the same liberal spirit as Maryland. The Puritans themselves
-seemed not to have learned toleration by the persecutions they had
-suffered; but, on the contrary, {265} when they found themselves
-possessed of power, they forgot right and persecuted all those not of
-their own way of thinking. This led to the founding of other colonies
-where greater religious liberty was granted; such as Pennsylvania,
-settled by the Quakers; Rhode Island, by Roger Williams, a Baptist,
-driven by Puritan intolerance from Massachusetts.
-
-26. Common dangers, however, taught these colonists toleration.
-They were surrounded by hordes of savages, against whom they were
-compelled frequently to combine. The wars between the French and the
-English extended to their respective settlements in America, and
-this circumstance drove the English colonists together and taught
-them toleration. They were driven into a still closer union by the
-oppression of England, and forgot their religious differences in the
-presence of the great danger of losing all their freedom, civil as well
-as religious. When they had achieved their independence, and necessity
-and experience taught them that a national government--an indissoluble
-union of the colonies--must be formed, wisdom clearly suggested that
-the chief cornerstone of the new temple of liberty must be religious
-freedom. Hence in the constitution which they adopted, freedom to
-worship God according to the dictates of conscience is guaranteed. [See
-note 12, end of section.]
-
-27. The Hand of God Manifested.--If in the rise of the great
-Roman Empire we see the hand of God preparing the way for the
-introduction of the gospel under the personal administration of the Son
-of God, that under the protection of that great government the apostles
-of Messiah might visit every land and deliver the glad tidings of great
-joy--if in this the hand of God is visible, it is equally clear that
-the meaning of this sixteenth century revolution which we have been
-considering, together with the subsequent founding of a great republic
-in the New World, pledged to the maintenance of religious liberty--it
-is clearly the meaning of all this that God {266} was preparing the day
-for a restoration of the gospel--the ushering in of the Dispensation of
-the Fullness of Times. [See note 13, end of section.] That revolution
-of the sixteenth century was the first glimmerings of the dawn which
-heralded the approaching day; the light became clearer in America on
-the establishment of religious liberty under the Constitution of the
-United States; the sun rose when the Lord introduced the DISPENSATION
-OF THE FULLNESS OF TIMES by revealing himself and his Son Jesus Christ
-to the Prophet Joseph Smith.
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Zwingle.--Zwingle discovered the corruptions of the church
-of Rome, at an earlier period than Luther. Both opened their eyes
-gradually, and altogether without any concert; and without aid from
-each other. But Zwingle was always in advance of Luther in his
-views and opinions; and he finally carried the reformation somewhat
-farther than what Luther did. But he proceeded with more gentleness
-and caution, not to run before the prejudices of the people; and
-the circumstances in which he was placed did not call him so early
-to open combat with the powers of the hierarchy; Luther, therefore,
-has the honor of being the first to declare open war with the pope,
-and to be exposed to persecution. He also acted in a much wider
-sphere. All Germany, and even all Europe, was the theatre of his
-operations. Zwingle moved only in the narrow circle of a single canton
-of Switzerland. He also died young, and when but just commencing his
-career of usefulness. And these circumstances have raised Luther's fame
-so high that Zwingle has almost been overlooked.--Murdock.
-
-2. Calvin.--John Calvin was born in the year 1509; and in his
-studies connected law with theology, studying the former at the command
-of his father, and the latter from his own choice; and from Melchoir
-Valmar, a German and professor of Greek at Bourges, he acquired a
-knowledge of the evangelican [reformed] doctrines. After the death
-of his father, he devoted himself wholly to theology, and publicly
-professed the reformed doctrine, which he spread in France with all
-diligence. His name soon became known in Switzerland as well as in
-France; and Farell and Viret [two Swiss reformers] besought him, as he
-was traveling through Geneva, to remain {267} there and aid them in
-setting up the new church. But in the year 1538, great dissension arose
-in Geneva; and Calvin and his assistant, Farell, severely inveighed
-from the pulpit against the conduct of the council, which resolved
-to introduce the ceremonies agreed on at Bern, in the ordinances
-of baptism and the Lord's supper, and to reject those which these
-ministers wished to have adopted: and the consequence was, that Calvin
-and Farell were banished from the republic. * * * But in the year 1541,
-at the pressing and repeated invitation of the Genevans, he returned
-to them again, and there officiated with great perseverance, zeal,
-prudence and disinterestedness, till his death in 1564. His great
-talents and virtues were shaded by the love of control, by a want of
-tenderness, and by a passionate vigor against the erring.--Schlegel.
-
-3. The Reformation In France.--France was the first country
-where the reformation that commenced in Germany and Switzerland, very
-soon and under the severest oppressions, found many adherents. No
-country seems to have been so long and so well prepared for it as this;
-and yet here it met the most violent opposition; and nowhere was it
-later, before it obtained legal toleration. Nowhere did it occasion
-such streams of blood to flow; nowhere give birth to such dreadful
-and deadly civil wars. And nowhere have state policy, court intrigue,
-political parties and the ambition of greatness had so powerful an
-influence on the progress and fortunes of the reformation, as in
-France.--Schroeckh.
-
-4. Massacre on St. Bartholomew's Eve.--During the civil
-wars which desolated France from the year 1560 up to the edict of
-Nantes--which secured religious toleration from the Protestants,
-1598--occurred the massacre of St. Bartholomew's eve. A peace was
-concluded in 1570, by which toleration was granted the Protestants.
-The terms of the treaty were enforced with much apparent zeal by the
-French court, for the purpose, as Protestant writers claim, of lulling
-the Protestants into security preparatory to their assassination by
-order of the king. The bloody scene began at midnight of the 22nd of
-August, 1572. The signal for the beginning of the massacre was the
-tolling of the great bell of the palace. The scene of blood and murder
-continued for three days. During which time five hundred noblemen and
-about six thousand other Protestants were butchered in Paris alone.
-Orders were dispatched to all parts of the empire for a similar
-massacre everywhere. More than thirty thousand--some say seventy
-thousand--perished by the hands of the royal assassins; and the pope
-ordered a jubilee throughout Christendom.--Murdock.
-
-5. The Decision to Introduce the "Reformed" Religion into
-Sweden.--This decision was the effect specially of the firmness and
-resolution {268} of the king [Gustavus Vasa], who declared publicly
-that he would rather resign his crown and retire from the kingdom,
-than rule over a people subjected to the laws and authority of the
-Roman pontiff, and more obedient to their bishops than to their
-king.--Mosheim.
-
-6. The Danish and Swedish Bishops Stripped of Power.--Violent
-measures were adopted, and the bishops, against their wills and
-their efforts to the contrary, were deprived of their honors, their
-prerogatives and their possessions. Yet this reformation (?) of the
-clergy in both those northern kingdoms, was not a religious, but a mere
-civil and secular transaction; and it was so necessary that it must
-have been undertaken if no Luther had arisen. For the bishops had by
-corrupt artifices got possession of so much wealth, so many cattle,
-such revenues and so great authority, that they were far more powerful
-than the kings, and were able to govern the whole realm at their
-pleasure; indeed they had appropriated to themselves a large portion of
-the patrimony of the kings and of the public revenues. Such therefore
-was the state both of the Danish and the Swedish commonwealths in the
-time of Luther, that either the bishops who shamefully abused their
-riches, their prerogatives and their honors must be divested of the
-high rank they held in the state, and be deprived of their ill-gotten
-wealth, or the ruin of those kingdoms, the irreparable detriment of
-the public safety and tranquility, and the sinking of their kings
-into contempt, with an utter inability to protect the people, must be
-anticipated.--Mosheim.
-
-7. Wycliffe.--John Wycliffe, the greatest of all the "Reformers
-before the Reformation," was born in 1324, and is supposed to have
-been a native of the parish of Wycliffe, near the town of Richmond,
-Yorkshire. He studied at Oxford, but little is known of his university
-career. Wycliffe appears to have been a man of simple faith and of
-earnest and manly courage. He made a strong impression upon his age;
-an impression that was not effaced at the time of the Reformation. The
-Lollards, as his disciples were called, were to be found, not only
-among the poor, but in the church, the castle and even the throne.
-Wycliffe died in the year 1384.
-
-8. England Prepared for the Reformation.--No revolution has been
-more gradually prepared than that which separated one half of Europe
-from the communion of the Roman see; nor were Luther and Zwingle any
-more than occasional instruments of that change which, had they never
-existed, would at no great distance of time been effected under the
-names of some other reformers. At the beginning of the sixteenth
-century, the learned, doubtfully and with caution, the ignorant with
-zeal and eagerness, were tending to depart from the faith and rites
-which authority prescribed. But probably not even Germany was so far
-advanced on this course as England. {269} Almost a hundred and fifty
-years before Luther, nearly the same doctrines as he taught had been
-maintained by Wycliffe, whose disciples usually called Lollards, lasted
-as a numerous though obscure and proscribed sect, till aided by the
-confluence of foreign streams, they swelled into the Protestant church
-of England. We hear, indeed, little of them during some parts of the
-fifteenth century, for they generally shunned persecution; and it is
-chiefly through records of persecution that we learn of the existence
-of heretics. But immediately before the name of Luther was known, they
-seem to have become more numerous, or to have attracted more attention;
-since several persons were burned for heresy, and others abjured
-their errors in the first years of Henry VIII's reign. Some of these,
-as usual among ignorant men, engaging in religious speculation, are
-charged with very absurd notions; but it is not so material to observe
-their peculiar tenets as the general fact that an inquisitive and
-sectarian spirit had begun to prevail.--Hallam's Const. Hist. England.
-
-9. Henry VIII and his Revolt Against Rome.--Soon after Henry was
-declared by Parliament the only supreme head on earth of the church
-of England, the authority of the pope was finally abolished, and all
-tributes paid to him were declared illegal. But although the king
-thus separated from the church of Rome, he professed to maintain the
-Catholic doctrine in its purity, and persecuted the reformers most
-violently; so that while many were burned as heretics for denying the
-doctrines of Catholicism, others were executed for maintaining the
-supremacy of the pope. As therefore the earnest adherents of both
-religions were equally persecuted and equally encouraged, both parties
-were induced to court the favor of the king, who was thus enabled to
-assume an absolute authority over the nation, and to impose upon it
-his own doctrines as those of the only true church. * * * When news
-of these proceedings reached Rome, the most terrible fulminations
-were hurled by the pope against the king of England, whose soul was
-delivered over to the devil, and his dominions to the first invader;
-all leagues with Catholic princes were declared to be dissolved--his
-subjects were freed from their oaths of allegiance, and the nobility
-were commanded to take up arms against him. But these missives, which
-half a century before would have hurled the monarch from his throne
-and made him a despised outcast among his people, were now utterly
-harmless. The papal supremacy was forever lost in England.--Wilson,
-Hist. U. S., Appendix to Voyage and Discoveries, p. 153.
-
-10. The Puritans.--The Puritan party professing to derive their
-doctrines directly from the scriptures, were wholly dissatisfied with
-the old church system, which they denounced as rotten, depraved and
-defiled by human inventions, and they wished it to undergo a thorough
-{270} reform, to abandon everything of man's device, and adopt nothing,
-either in doctrine or discipline, which was not directly authorized by
-the word of God. Exceedingly ardent in their feelings, zealous in their
-principles, abhorring all formalism as destructive of the very elements
-of piety, and rejecting the regal as well as papal supremacy, they
-demanded in place of the liturgical service, an effective preaching of
-the gospel, more of the substance of religion, instead of what they
-denominated its shadows; and so convinced were they of the justness
-of their views and the reasonableness of their demands, that they
-would listen to no considerations which pleaded for compromise or
-delay.--Wilson, Hist. U. S. Appendix Voyage and Discoveries, p. 157.
-
-11. Columbus Inspired of God.--And it came to pass that I looked
-and beheld many waters; and they divided the Gentiles from the seed of
-my brethren. And it came to pass that the angel said unto me, Behold
-the wrath of God is upon the seed of thy brethren. And I looked and
-beheld a man among the Gentiles who was separated from the seed of my
-brethren by the many waters; and I beheld the Spirit of God, that it
-came down and wrought upon the man; and he went forth upon the many
-waters, even unto the seed of my brethren who were in the promised
-land. And it came to pass that I beheld the Spirit of God, that it
-wrought upon other Gentiles; and they went forth out of captivity
-upon the many waters: * * * [and] I beheld many multitudes of the
-Gentiles upon the land of promise.--Nephi's Vision, Book of Mormon, ch.
-xiii:10-14.
-
-12. Religious Liberty in the Constitution.--The parts of the
-United States Constitution which secure religious freedom are the
-clause in article vi, which says: "No religious test shall ever be
-required as a qualification to any office or public trust under the
-United States;" and the first Amendment which says: "Congress shall
-make no law respecting an establishment of religion or prohibit
-the free exercise thereof." Respecting these two clauses in the
-Constitution, Judge Story remarks: "We are not to attribute this
-prohibition of a national religious establishment to an indifference
-to religion in general, and especially to Christianity, (which none
-could hold in more reverence than the framers of the Constitution),
-but to a dread by the people of the influence of ecclesiastical power
-in matters of government; a dread which their ancestors brought with
-them from the parent country, and which unhappily for human infirmity,
-their own conduct, after the emigration, had not, in any just degree,
-tended to diminish. It was also obvious, from the numerous and powerful
-sects existing in the United States, that there would be perpetual
-temptations to struggles for ascendency in the national councils, if
-any one might thereby hope to found a permanent and exclusive national
-establishment of its own; and religious persecutions {271} might thus
-be introduced, to an extent utterly subversive of the true interests
-and good order of the Republic. The most effectual mode of suppressing
-the evil, in the view of the people, was to strike down the temptations
-to its introduction."
-
-13. Hand of the Lord in the Establishment of the United States
-Government.--That the hand of Almighty God was in the work of
-founding the Government of the United States is plainly declared in
-one of the revelations to Joseph Smith: "It is not right that any
-man should be in bondage one to another. And for this purpose have I
-established the constitution of this land, by the hands of wise men
-whom I raised up unto this very purpose, and redeemed the land by the
-shedding of blood." (Doc. and Cov. sec. ci: 79, 80.) Nor are thoughtful
-historians blind to the fact that the hand of God has had much to do
-with those revolutions which finally produced the great republic of the
-New World. Commenting on the war of the American Revolution, Marcus
-Wilson says: "The expense of blood and treasure which this war cost
-England was enormous; nor, indeed, did her European antagonists suffer
-much less severely. The United States was the only country that could
-look to any beneficial results from the war, and these were obtained by
-a strong union of opposing motives and principles, unequalled in the
-annals of history. France and Spain, the arbitrary despots of the Old
-World, had stood forth as the protectors of an infant republic, and
-had combined, contrary to all the principles of their political faith,
-to establish the rising liberties of America. They seemed but as blind
-instruments in the hands of Providence, employed to aid in the founding
-of a nation which should cultivate those Republican virtues that were
-destined yet to regenerate the world upon the principles of universal
-intelligence, and eventually to overthrow the time-worn system of
-tyrannical usurpation of the few over the many."
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. Was the Reformation confined to Germany?
-
-2. When did the Reformation first begin?
-
-3. Who was the leader of the movement in Switzerland?
-
-4. State what you can of the Reformation in Switzerland under Zwingle.
-
-5. What fate befell the young Reformer?
-
-6. State the chief difference in methods of work between Luther and
-Zwingle. (Note I.)
-
-7. Who succeeded in the leadership of the Reformation in Switzerland?
-
-8. Where and when was Calvin born?
-
-9. State the points of difference in the views of Calvin and Zwingle.
-
-{272} 10. Describe the Presbyterian system of church government.
-
-11. Give a sketch of the life and character of Calvin. (note 2.)
-
-12. State the several views of the Reformers in respect to the
-eucharist.
-
-13. What difference existed between Calvin and Zwingle on the subject
-of predestination?
-
-14. What can you say of the spread of Calvin's doctrine?
-
-15. Describe the Reformation in France.
-
-16. What can you say of the persecution of the Protestants in France?
-(Note 3.)
-
-17. Give a description of the massacre of St. Bartholomew's eve.
-
-18. State what you can of the Reformation in Sweden.
-
-19. Tell how the Reformation in Sweden was accomplished.
-
-20. On what ground can the king of Sweden and Denmark be justified in
-stripping the Catholic bishops of their power and wealth? (Note 5.)
-
-21. Give an account of the Reformation in Holland.
-
-22. What was the attitude of Henry VIII of England at the beginning of
-the Reformation in Germany?
-
-23. What title did his defense of the Roman Catholic sacraments secure
-for him?
-
-24. What circumstance was it that afterwards estranged Henry from the
-pope?
-
-25. What was the conduct of Pope Clement VII in this controversy?
-
-26. What course did Henry adopt?
-
-27. What resulted from the king's conduct?
-
-28. How did the friends of the Reformation in England receive the
-rupture of the king and pope?
-
-29. Did the rupture between king and pope help the Reformation in
-England?
-
-30. What were the Reformers in England called?
-
-31. What were the demands of the Puritans in respect to religion? (Note
-8.)
-
-32. When denied religious liberty in England to what country did the
-Puritans go?
-
-33. What influence on liberty did the discovery of America have?
-
-34. What can you say of the inspiration of Christopher Columbus? (Note
-9.)
-
-35. What people besides Puritans sought religious liberty in the new
-world?
-
-36. Give an account of the settlement of Maryland.
-
-37. What can you say of Puritan intolerance?
-
-38. What circumstances taught them, at least, partial toleration?
-
-39. What power was working in all those changes which brought freedom
-to man? (Note 11.)
-
-40. What was the object of enlarging the liberties of mankind?
-
-Footnotes
-
-1. February, 1070, A. D.
-
-2. Subsequently Henry IV made war upon Gregory, drove him from the
-papal chair into exile, and placed Guibert, archbishop of Ravenna,
-upon the papal throne. Guibert took the name of Innocent III, at his
-consecration, 1084, A. D.
-
-3. It was invented by Schwartz in 1320.
-
-4. Guizot Hist. Civilization.
-
-5. Smith's Eng. Inst., pages 8,9.
-
-6. It is only fair to Catholics to say that such is their explanation
-of indulgences now.
-
-7. Maclain's note in Mosheim, vol. II, Ch. ii.
-
-8. The account here given of the rise and character of indulgences is
-condensed chiefly from Schlegel, quoted by Murdock in the latter's
-translation of Mosheim, vol. III, book iv, cent. xvi, ch. i.
-
-9. The canon law consists of the enactments of the councils and decrees
-of the popes.
-
-10. Peter Lombard, who in the 12th century collected and arranged
-systematically the theological opinions and decisions of the Latin
-fathers.
-
-11. In the church of Rome it may be said there were two parties, one
-of which held that the pope's power was supreme--superior to all
-other authority in the church; the other maintained that the pope's
-authority was subordinate to that of a general council of the whole
-church. The latter party was quite strong in Germany, so that a great
-many sustained Luther in his appeal to a general council. Even Duke
-George of Saxony favored the calling of such a council. Said he:--"The
-scandalous conduct of the clergy is a very fruitful source of the
-destruction of poor souls. There must be a universal reformation;
-and this cannot be better effected than by a general council. It is
-therefore the most earnest wish of us all, that such a measure be
-adopted."--Milner's Church Hist. vol. iv, ch. v, (Note.)
-
-12. Milner's Church Hist., vol. IV, p. 405.
-
-13. Milner's Church Hist., vol. IV, ch. iv.
-
-14. The diet was a great council of the German empire, consisting of
-the princes, provincial rulers and the chief dignitaries of the church.
-The diet from the 10th century had assumed the right of electing the
-emperor of Germany, subject to confirmation by the pope, by whom alone
-he could be crowned. The diet was also usually assembled for the
-consideration of very important matters pertaining to the empire.
-
-15. Mosheim (Murdock) vol. iii, bk. iv, cent. xvi, sec. i, ch. ii.
-
-16. The Emperor was not present at this second diet at Spire. He was
-absent in Spain. "They appealed to the emperor, to a future council
-of the German nation, and lastly to every impartial judge. For they
-believed that a majority of votes in a diet could decide a secular
-question, but not a spiritual or religious question; they appealed
-to the emperor, not as recognizing him as their judge in a matter of
-religion, but merely that he might allow their appeal to a council to
-be valid."--Schlegel.
-
-17. Before the diet rose the cities Kempten, Heilbronn Windsheim,
-and Weisenburg also subscribed; and afterwards many more. It was
-immediately printed and soon spread all over Europe, and was translated
-into various languages. It thus became of great service to the
-Protestant cause; for it was a very able document and was drawn up in a
-most judicious manner.--Murdock.
-
-18. The Protestant princes had held that the election of Ferdinand to
-be king of the Romans was contrary to the laws of the empire.
-
-19. Luther himself testifies to this. In the Latin preface to the first
-volume of his works, the Reformer says: "In the year 1517, when I was a
-young preacher, and dissuaded the people from purchasing indulgences. *
-* * I felt assured I should have the pope on my side: for he himself,
-in his public decrees had condemned the excesses of his agents in this
-business."
-
-20. The foregoing six statements of fact I have summarized from M.
-Guizot's excellent work on the Civilization of Europe.
-
-21. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. I, pages 82, 83.
-
-22. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. I; book III, page 119.
-
-23. Ibid, page 122.
-
-24. Milner's Ch. Hist., vol. IV; page 514.
-
-25. Men desire to do good works before their sins are forgiven, whilst
-it is necessary for sin to be forgiven before men can perform good
-works. It is not the works that expel sin; but the sin being expelled
-good works follow. For good works must be performed with a joyful
-heart, with a good conscience towards God, that is, with remission of
-sins.--D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. 1, page 117. "The works of the
-righteous themselves would be mortal sins, unless being filled with
-holy reverence for the Lord, they feared that their works might in
-truth be mortal sins."--Ibid, page 119.
-
-26. Milner's Ch. Hist., vol. IV., page 379.
-
-27. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. III, page 340.
-
-28. Ibid.
-
-29. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. (Murdock,) vol. III., page 147 (second
-edition.)
-
-30. This doctrine was called Antinomianism; many believed it and
-followed it to its very extremes.
-
-31. From Luther's Commentary on the Epistle to the Galatians, quoted by
-Milner, vol. IV., page 520.
-
-32. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. I., page 15.
-
-33. End of Religious Controversy, p. 80.
-
-34. Ibid.
-
-35. Milner's Church Hist., vol. iv, page 500.
-
-36. Such is the cause assigned for the Reformation by Catholics: John
-Milner, the noted Catholic divine, author of The End of Religious
-Controversy, p. 105, says: "As to Martin Luther, he testifies, and
-calls God to witness the truth of his testimony that it was not
-willingly (that is, not from a previous discovery of the falsehood of
-his religion,) but from accident, (namely, a quarrel with the Dominican
-friars, and afterwards with the pope) that he fell into his broils
-about religion."
-
-37. See preceding section.
-
-38. Archdeacon Blackburn's Confessional, p. 16.
-
-39. End of Religious Controversy, p. 100.
-
-40. I Nephi xiii: 26, 28, 32. See also Part I, Section VI, note 3.
-
-41. Ibid.
-
-42. Bancroft.
-
-43. It must appear remarkable that such an idea could become prevalent
-since it is provided in the law of God to ancient Israel that the
-brother should marry the deceased brother's widow.--Deut. xxv:5, 6, 9,
-10.
-
-44. Hume's Hist. of England vol. iii, ch. xxx.
-
-45. On one occasion he declared the pope to be "The proud, worldly
-priest, Rome, the most cursed of clippers and purse-kervers
-(cut-purses)."
-
-46. Knox was born in the year 1505, near Haddington, Scotland. Died at
-Edinburgh, 1572.
-
-47. Daughter of Henry VIII, and Catherine of Aragon. She was a bigoted
-Catholic; married Philip of Spain, also a Catholic.
-
-48. Hallam's Const. Hist. England, p. 812.
-
-49. Ibid.
-
-50. Page 253.
-
-51. Precedents for such an immunity it would not have been difficult to
-find; but they must have been sought in the archives of the enemy. It
-was rather early for the new republic to emulate the despotism she had
-overthrown.--Hallam, Hist. of England.
-
-52. Book of Mormon, Ether, ch. 11:7-13.
-
-{273}
-
-
-
-PART IV.
-
-THE RESTORATION OF THE GOSPEL.
-
-{275}
-
-
-
-SECTION I.
-
-1. The Dispensation of the Fullness of Times.--By a dispensation,
-in connection with the work of God, we mean "the opening of the heavens
-to men, the bestowing of the Holy Priesthood with all its powers upon
-them, and the organization and building up of the church of Christ
-upon the earth, for the salvation of all who will obey the gospel." [1]
-By the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times we mean the last
-dispensation, the one in which all things, in Christ, whether in heaven
-or in earth, shall be gathered together in one; [2] a dispensation
-which will include all other dispensations--one which will encompass
-all truth. As the rivers of the earth all eventually find their way to
-the ocean and empty into it, so all former dispensations will run into
-and become part of the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times, in which
-the work of God, in respect to the salvation of man and the redemption
-of the earth, will be consummated. [See note 1, end of section]
-
-2. Birth and Parentage of Joseph Smith.--Joseph Smith, the man
-whom God appointed to stand at the head of the Dispensation of the
-Fullness of Times, and be the great Prophet, Seer, Revelator and
-President thereof was born in the year of our Lord 1805, on the 23rd
-of December, in Sharon, Windsor [Winsor] County, State of Vermont.
-His father's name was Joseph[3] Smith, and his mother's maiden name
-Lucy Mack. Joseph and Lucy Smith had nine children, six sons and {276}
-three daughters. The sons in the order of their age were Alvin, Hyrum,
-Joseph, Samuel Harrison, William, Don Carlos; the daughters, Sophronia,
-Catherine, Lucy.
-
-3. The parents of the prophet were of humble origin, and poor,
-having to labor with their hands, hiring out by day's work, and
-otherwise to obtain a livelihood for their large family. In consequence
-of their poverty, they could give their children but very limited
-opportunities for attending school; yet Joseph learned to read,
-to write, and had some knowledge of the rudimentary principles of
-arithmetic.
-
-4. When Joseph was ten years of age, his father moved from
-the State of Vermont to that of New York, settling in Palmyra,
-Ontario County.[4] Four years later the family moved from Palmyra to
-Manchester, in the same county.
-
-5. Religious Agitations.--While the Smith family lived in
-Manchester, when Joseph was in his fifteenth year, there was an
-unusual excitement on the subject of religion. It began with the
-Methodists, but soon became general among all the sects, and union
-revival meetings, in which all sects, took part were held in the
-vicinity of Manchester. The Smith family, being by nature religiously
-inclined became interested in these meetings, and several of them,
-viz., Joseph's mother, his brothers Hyrum and Samuel Harrison, and his
-sisters Lucy and Sophronia, were converted to the Presbyterian faith.
-Joseph's own mind was much wrought up by this religious agitation, and
-at one time he became somewhat partial to the Methodist persuasion.
-
-6. He was greatly perplexed, however, by the strife among the sects,
-and the divisions which existed. The Presbyterians were opposed to
-the Methodists and Baptists; and these last named sects, though not
-agreeing with each other, were equally opposed to the Presbyterians.
-Why should the church of {277} Christ be split up into fractions? Is
-God the author of confusion? Would he teach one society to worship
-one way, and administer one set of ordinances; and then teach another
-society quite a different system of worship, and another set of
-principles and ordinances different from those taught the first? Such
-were the questions Joseph Smith frequently asked himself when he
-reflected upon the confusion he witnessed.
-
-7. In the midst of the war of words and tumult of opinion that
-accompanied this agitation, Joseph would often say to himself, What is
-to be done? Who of all these parties are right?
-
-8. Joseph Smith's First Prayer and Vision.--While floundering in
-the midst of these difficulties he came to the following passage in the
-first chapter of the Epistle of James:
-
- If any of you lack wisdom, let him ask of God, that giveth to all
- men liberally, and upbraideth not; and it shall be given him.
-
-This passage impressed him with great force. It was the voice of God
-to him. If any man lacked wisdom he did; and here was counsel given
-directly how to obtain it, with a promise that he should receive it and
-not be unbraided for asking. He at last decided to follow the divine
-injunction.
-
-9. It was in the morning of a beautiful, clear day, early in the spring
-of eighteen hundred and twenty, that Joseph put his resolution into
-effect. He selected a place in a grove near his father's house for
-that purpose. It was his first attempt to pray vocally, and he was
-somewhat timid; but finding himself alone he knelt down and began to
-offer up the desires of his heart to the Lord. He had scarcely began
-to pray when he was seized by some power which threw him violently to
-the ground, and it seemed for a time that he was doomed to a sudden
-destruction. It was no imaginary power but some actual being from the
-unseen world. His tongue for a time was bound that he could not speak;
-darkness gathered about him; but exerting all his powers he called
-upon God to deliver {278} him out of the hands of his enemy, and at
-the very moment he was ready to give up in despair and abandon himself
-to destruction, he beheld a pillar of light immediately over his head
-descending towards him. Its brightness was above that of the sun at
-noon-day, and no sooner did it appear than he was freed from the enemy
-which had held him bound.
-
-10. When the light rested upon him he beheld within it two personages
-standing above him in the air, whose brightness and glory defy all
-description, but they exactly resembled each other in form and
-features. One of them, pointing to the other said: "JOSEPH, THIS IS MY
-BELOVED SON, HEAR HIM."
-
-11. Joseph's purpose in calling upon the Lord was to learn which of the
-sects was right, that he might know which to join. As soon, therefore,
-as he gained his self-possession, he addressed these questions to the
-personage to whom he was directed. To his astonishment he was told
-that none of the sects were right, and that he must join none of them.
-He was further told by the person who addressed him, that all their
-creeds were an abomination in his sight; that those professors were all
-corrupt; that they drew near to him with their lips, but their hearts
-were far from him; that they taught for doctrine the commandments of
-men; that they had a form of godliness, but denied the power of God.
-And he was commanded the second time to join none of them.
-
-12. There were many other things which Jesus said to Joseph on this
-occasion, but the prophet never recorded them further than to say that
-he received a promise that the fullness of the gospel would at some
-future time be made known to him.
-
-13. The Importance of the Vision.--This splendid revelation is of vast
-importance: First, it dispels the vagaries that men had conjured up in
-respect to the person of Deity. Instead of being a personage without
-body, parts or passions, it revealed the fact that he had both body and
-parts, that he was in the form of man, or rather, that man had been
-made in his {279} image.[5] Second: It clearly proves that the Father
-and Son are distinct persons, and not one person as the Christian
-world believes. The oneness of the Godhead, so frequently spoken
-of in scripture, must therefore relate to oneness of sentiment and
-agreement in purpose. Third: It swept away the rubbish of human dogma
-and tradition that had accumulated in all the ages since Messiah's
-personal ministry on earth, by announcing that God did not acknowledge
-any of the sects of Christendom as his church, nor their creeds as his
-gospel. Thus the ground was cleared for the planting of the truth.
-Fourth: it showed how mistaken the Christian world was in claiming
-that all revelation had ceased--that God would no more reveal himself
-to man. Fifth: the vision created a witness for God on the earth: a
-man lived who could say to some purpose that God lived and that Jesus
-was the Christ, for he had seen and talked with them. Thus was laid
-the foundation for faith. We shall see anon, how the foundation was
-broadened.
-
-14. The Interval of Three Years.--For three years after this first
-vision, Joseph received no other visitation or revelation; and as he
-had been forbidden to join any of the religious sects then existing
-he stood alone. It was a period of severe trial. A few days after his
-first vision, he related the circumstance to a Methodist minister who
-had been active in the religious agitation before mentioned. To the
-lad's surprise he {280} treated his story with the utmost contempt;
-and declared it to be from the devil, as the Lord gave no revelations
-in these days, those things having ceased with the apostles. Making
-his vision public brought upon him the ridicule and indignation of the
-whole neighborhood, especially of the ministers. In this trying period
-of three years, according to his own statement, he was guilty of some
-youthful follies; but he was true to God, and continued in the face of
-all opposition to maintain that he had received a revelation from him.
-
-15. The First Visit of Moroni.--On the 21st of September, 1823, having
-retired for the night, he betook himself to prayer to obtain the
-forgiveness of his sins, and a manifestation that would enable him to
-know his standing before the Lord. While thus engaged, the room began
-to be filled with light, and presently a personage appeared by his
-bedside, standing in the air. [See note 3, end of section.] He said
-that he was a messenger sent from the presence of God, and that his
-name was Moroni. He announced to Joseph Smith that the Lord had a work
-for him to do; and that his name would be had for good and evil among
-all nations.
-
-16. The Book of Mormon.--The angel informed Joseph of the existence
-of the Book of Mormon, a record engraven upon golden plates, giving
-an account of the ancient inhabitants of the American continent
-and their origin. He said, also, that it contained the everlasting
-gospel as taught by the Savior to the ancient inhabitants of this
-Western hemisphere. Deposited with the record was a Urim and Thummim,
-consisting of two stones fastened in silver bows, attached to a
-breast-plate. The Lord had prepared this instrument for the purpose of
-translating the record. A vision of the hill where the sacred plates
-were hidden was given to the prophet.
-
-17. Ancient Prophecies Quoted by Moroni.--After relating these things,
-the angel began quoting from the prophecies of the Old Testament. He
-first quoted part of the third {281} chapter of Malachi; [6] and then
-the fourth chapter. The first verse of the fourth chapter he quoted as
-follows:
-
- For, behold, the day cometh that shall burn as an oven, and all the
- proud, yea, and all that do wickedly shall _burn as stubble; for
- they that come shall burn them_, saith the Lord of hosts; that it
- shall leave them neither root nor branch.
-
-The fifth and sixth verses he quoted:
-
- Behold, I will _reveal unto you the priesthood by the hand of_
- Elijah, the prophet, before the coming of the great and dreadful
- day of the Lord. And he shall _plant in the hearts of the children
- the promise made to the fathers, and the hearts of the children
- shall turn to their fathers; if it were not so, the whole earth
- would be utterly wasted at his coming_.[7]
-
-18. Moroni also quoted the eleventh chapter of Isaiah, and
-said the predictions in it were about to be fulfilled. They relate
-to the glorious restoration of the house of Israel from their long
-dispersion, and the reign of peace and righteousness on the earth.
-He quoted also the twenty-second and twenty-third verses of the
-third chapter of Acts:
-
- For Moses truly said unto the fathers, a prophet shall the Lord
- your God raise up unto you of your brethren, like unto me; him
- shall ye hear in all things whatsoever he shall say unto you. And
- it shall come to pass, that every soul which will not hear that
- prophet, shall be destroyed from among the people.
-
-Moroni explained that the prophet here spoken of was Jesus Christ; but
-the day when they who would not hear his voice should be cut off from
-among the people had not yet come, but it would soon come.
-
-19.>b> The angel quoted from the twenty-eighth verse to the end of
-the second chapter of Joel; and said that it was soon to be fulfilled.
-It predicts the outpouring of God's Spirit upon all {282} flesh; the
-signs in the heavens and the earth which are to precede the glorious
-coming of Messiah; and foretells the safety which shall be found in
-Mount Zion and Jerusalem in those troublous times.
-
-20. The Warnings of Moroni.--After making these and other
-explanations the light within the room seemed to condense about the
-person of the angel and he departed. Shortly, however, he returned and
-repeated what he had said on his first appearance, and again withdrew.
-To Joseph's astonishment he appeared the third time and again repeated
-his message.
-
-21. In his first appearance that eventful night the angel told
-Joseph that when he obtained the plates containing the record of the
-ancient inhabitants of America, together with the breast-plate and the
-Urim and Thummim--the full time for them to be given to him had not
-then arrived--he was to show them to no person except those to whom he
-would be commanded to show them. He was told that if he violated his
-commandment he would be destroyed. At his third appearing that same
-night the angel cautioned Joseph, saying that Satan would try to tempt
-him, in consequence of the poverty of his father's family, to obtain
-the plates for the purpose of getting rich. This he forbade him, saying
-that he must have no other object in view in getting the plates but to
-glorify God, and must be influenced by no other motive than that of
-building up his kingdom.
-
-22. The Fourth Appearance of Moroni.--The whole night was
-consumed in these interviews with the angel. In the morning of the day
-following, Joseph went to his usual labors, but was so exhausted and
-faint that he found himself unable to pursue them. His father, who was
-laboring with him, observing that he was ailing, directed him to go
-home. In attempting to climb the fence out of the field where he was
-working, his strength entirely failed him and he fell unconscious to
-the ground. When he became conscious, the angel who had visited him the
-night before was standing by him calling his name. He {283} repeated
-again the things of the night before, and commanded Joseph to go and
-tell his father of them. This he did, and his father testified that
-they were of God, and counseled his son to be obedient to the heavenly
-vision.
-
-23. Cumorah and its Treasures.--Joseph went immediately to the
-hill Cumorah[8] where the ancient record was hidden. So vivid had been
-his vision of the place the night before that he had no difficulty in
-recognizing it. [See note 4, end of section.]
-
-24. On the west side of the hill Cumorah, not far from the top,
-under a stone of considerable size, lay the plates, deposited in a
-stone box. Removing the soil from around the edges of the stone box,
-with the aid of a lever, he raised it up and to his joy beheld the
-plates, the Urim and Thummim and breast-plate, just as described by
-the angel. He was about to take these treasures from the box when the
-messenger of the previous night again stood before him, and told him
-again that the time for bringing them forth had not yet arrived, and
-would not until four years from that date. The angel instructed him
-to come to that place in just one year from that time and he would
-meet with him, and that he would continue to do so until the time for
-obtaining the plates for translation had come. Accordingly at the end
-of each year Joseph went to the place appointed, and every time met the
-same heavenly messenger, who gave him instruction and intelligence in
-respect to the work of the Lord, and how the Christ's kingdom was to be
-conducted in these last days.
-
-25. Translation and Publication of the Book of Mormon.--On
-the 22nd of September, 1827, the plates, together with the Urim and
-Thummim and breast-plate, were given into the hands of Joseph Smith
-by the angel Moroni, with a strict charge to keep them safe, saying
-that he [Joseph] would be held responsible for them; that if he should
-carelessly, {284} or through any neglect of his, let them go, he would
-be cut off; but if he would use his best endeavors to preserve them,
-they should be protected. He soon learned the necessity of the strict
-charge given to him by Moroni, for no sooner was it learned that he
-had the plates than every kind of device, not even omitting that of
-violence, was employed to wrest them from him. He guarded them safely
-however, and in the midst of much persecution and many difficulties,
-succeeded by the help of the Lord and the assistance of Martin Harris,
-a well-to-to farmer, Oliver Cowdery, a young school teacher, who acted
-as his scribe in much of the work of translation, and the Whitmer
-family--with this assistance he succeeded in completing the translation
-and publishing the work in the year 1830.
-
-26. The Witness.--In the course of the work of translation,
-Joseph and those assisting him, learned from the record itself that it
-would be hidden from the eyes of the world, that the eyes of none might
-behold it except three witnesses that should see it by the power of
-God--besides him to whom the record would be given to translate--and a
-few others who should view it that they might bear witness of the work
-of God to the children of men.[9]
-
-27. Oliver Cowdery, David Whitmer, and Martin Harris desired to
-become the three witness named, and obtained that privilege from the
-Lord. Some time in June, 1829, the promise that they should have a view
-of the plates, the Urim and Thummim and breast-plate was fulfilled. The
-angel Moroni appeared unto them, exhibited to them those sacred things,
-and commanded them to bear witness of their existence to the world.
-This they did, and their testimony is published in all copies of the
-Book of Mormon.
-
-28. The plates were exhibited by Joseph Smith to eight other
-witnesses whose testimony and names are also published in all copies of
-the Book of Mormon.
-
-{285}
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Fullness of Times.--Now the thing to be known is, what
-the fullness of times means, or the extent and authority thereof. It
-means this, that the dispensation of the fullness of times is made up
-of all the dispensations that have ever been given since the world
-began, until this time. Unto Adam first was given a dispensation.
-It is well to know that God spoke to him with his own voice in the
-garden, and gave him the promise of the Messiah. And unto Noah also
-was a dispensation given. * * * And from Noah to Abraham, and from
-Abraham to Moses, and from Moses to Elias, and from Elias to John the
-Baptist, and from them to Jesus Christ, and from Jesus Christ to Peter,
-James and John, the apostles all having received their dispensation
-by revelation from God to accomplish the great scheme of restitution,
-spoken by all the holy prophets since the world began, the end of which
-is, the dispensation of the fullness of times in which all things shall
-be fulfilled that have been spoken of since the earth was made.--Joseph
-Smith, Mill. Star, vol. XVI, p. 220.
-
-2. The Name of Joseph Foretold.--The Book of Mormon contains a
-remarkable prophecy by Joseph, the favorite son of Jacob, by which the
-name of the Prophet Joseph Smith, and of his father were foretold. The
-Prophet Lehi, who, it will be remembered, left Jerusalem six hundred
-years B. C., and who was acquainted with the Jewish scriptures, says,
-in blessing his son Joseph: "For Joseph (the one sold into Egypt by his
-brother) truly testified saying: A seer shall the Lord my God raise up,
-who shall be a choice seer unto the fruit of my loins. * * * Behold
-that seer will the Lord bless; and they that seek to destroy him shall
-be confounded. * * * And his name shall be called after me [Joseph];
-and it shall be after the name of his father. And he shall be like unto
-me; for the thing which the Lord shall bring forth by his hand by the
-power of the Lord shall bring my people unto salvation."--II Nephi, ch.
-iii.
-
-3. Description of Moroni.--He had on a loose robe of most
-exquisite whiteness. It was a whiteness beyond anything earthly I had
-ever seen; nor do I believe any earthly thing could be made to appear
-so exceedingly white and brilliant; his hands were naked, and his
-arms also, a little above the wrist; so also, were his feet naked,
-as were his legs a little above the ankles. His head and neck were
-also bare. I could discover that he had no other clothing on but this
-robe, as it was open, so that I could see into his bosom. Not only was
-his robe exceedingly white, but his whole person was glorious beyond
-description, {286} and his countenance truly like lightning.--Joseph
-Smith, Pearl of Great Price, p. 89,
-
-4. Description of Cumorah.--As you pass on the mailroad from
-Palmyra, Wayne County, to Canandaigua, Ontario County, New York, before
-arriving at the little village of Palmyra, you pass a large hill on
-the east side of the road. Why I say large, is because it is as large,
-perhaps, as any in that country. The north end rises quite suddenly
-until it assumes a level with the more southerly extremity, and I think
-I may say, an elevation higher than at the south, a short distance,
-say half or three-fourth of a mile. As you pass towards Canandaigua it
-lessens gradually, until the surface assumes its common level, or is
-broken by other smaller hills or ridges, water-courses and ravines.
-I think I am justified in saying that this is the highest hill for
-some distance round, and I am certain that its appearance, as it rises
-suddenly from a plain on the north, must attract the notice of the
-traveler as he passes by. The north end, (which has been described as
-rising suddenly from the plain) forms a promontory without timber,
-but covered with grass. As you pass to the south you soon come to
-scattering timber, the surface having been cleared by art or wind;
-and a short distance further left, you are surrounded with the common
-forest of the country. It is necessary to observe that even the part
-cleared, was only occupied for pasturage; its steep ascent and narrow
-summit not admitting the plough of the husbandman with any degree of
-ease or profit. It was at the second mentioned place, where the record
-was found to be deposited, on the west side of the hill, not far from
-the top down its side; and when myself visited the place in the year
-1830, there were several trees standing--enough to cause a shade in
-summer, but not so much as to prevent the surface being covered with
-grass, which was also the case when the record was found.--Oliver
-Cowdery.
-
-5. Analysis of the Book of Mormon.--
-
-1. _The Construction of the Record_.--The Book of Mormon is an
-abridgment made from more extensive records kept by the ancient
-civilized people of America--chiefly by the people known in the Book
-of Mormon as Nephites. The abridgment, for the most part, is made
-by one Mormon, a Nephite prophet, who was born 311 A. D., and slain
-by his enemies in the year 400 A. D. The parts which are not his
-abridgment are the first 157 pages (N. E.), which bring us to the
-"Words of Mormon," page 158; and from page 563 {N. E.} to the end of
-the volume--sixty pages. This latter part of the record was made by
-Moroni, the son of Mormon, who was also the one who hid up the plates
-containing his father's and his own abridgment, in the year 421 A. D.;
-and who, having been raised from the dead, revealed the existence of
-these plates to Joseph Smith.
-
-{287} The first 157 pages are a verbatim translation from what are
-known as the "smaller plates of Nephi"--we will explain: The first
-Nephi, who left Jerusalem with a small company of colonists led out
-from that city by his father, Lehi, 600 B. C., and who afterwards
-became their leader, prophet, and their first king--made two sets of
-plates, on which he proposed engraving the history of his people. On
-the larger of these two sets he engraved an account of his father's
-life, travels, prophecies, etc., together with his genealogy; and
-upon them also he recorded a full history of the wars and contentions
-of his people, as also their travels, and an account of the cities
-they founded and colonies they established. These larger plates were
-preserved in the care of succeeding kings, or judges of the republic
-when the kingdom was transformed into one; and, in a word, upon them
-was written a full history of the rise and fall of the nations which
-existed in America, from the landing of this colony from Jerusalem to
-400 A. D., a period of nearly one thousand years.
-
-It is quite evident that as these plates were transmitted from king to
-king, or from one ruling judge of the republic to another, or given
-into the possession of a prophet, that each recorded the historical
-events of his own day, and gave to such account his own name--hence
-Mormon found in these "larger plates" of Nephi, The Book of Mosiah, the
-Book of Alma, the Book of Helaman, etc.
-
-Furthermore, it happened that there were colonies from time to time
-that drifted off into distant parts of the land and became lost for
-a season to the main body of the people; and there were missionary
-expeditions formed for the conversion of the Lamanites; and these
-parties, whether missionary or colonial, generally kept records; and
-when these colonists or missionary parties were found, or returned to
-the main body of the people, their records were incorporated within the
-main record, being kept by the historian--hence there was, sometimes, a
-book within a book, and the current of events was interrupted to record
-the history of these detached portions of the people, or some important
-missionary expedition.
-
-Mormon, when abridging these plates of Nephi, gave to each particular
-division of his abridgment the name of the book from which he had
-taken his account of the events recorded--hence the Books of Mosiah,
-Alma, Helaman and III and IV Nephi in his abridgment. He also, in some
-instances, at least, followed the sub-divisions we have alluded to,
-hence we have the Record of Zeniff within the Book of Mosiah (page 181,
-N. E.); the account of the church founded by the first Alma (page 213);
-and the account of the missionary expeditions of the sons of Mosiah to
-the Lamanites within the Book of Alma (page 283.)
-
-2. _Complexity of the Literary Structure of the Book_.--Again we
-caution the student to remember that the Book of Mormon is, for the
-most {288} part, an abridgment from the "larger plates" of Nephi; but
-it is quite evident that Mormon frequently came to passages upon the
-plates of Nephi which pleased him so well that he transcribed them
-verbatim upon the plates containing his abridgment. An example of this
-will be found beginning on page 163, in the second line of the ninth
-paragraph, and ending with page 169--the words of King Benjamin to his
-people. The words of King Benjamin are also renewed on page 170, in the
-second line of the fourth paragraph, and continue to the close of the
-chapter. There are many such passages throughout Mormon's abridgment.
-
-In addition to this, Mormon frequently introduces remarks of his own
-by way of comment, warning, prophecy or admonition, and since there is
-nothing in the text, neither quotation marks nor a change of type, to
-indicate where these comments, or what we might call annotations, begin
-or end, they are liable to confuse the reader--a difficulty that we
-hope will be obviated by this caution. So much for Mormon's abridgment.
-Now to consider the part of the work done by his son, Moroni. This is
-from page 563 to the end of the volume. He closes up the record of his
-father, Mormon, and then gives us an abridgment of the twenty-four
-plates of Ether, which were found in North America by the people of
-Limhi, in the second century B. C., and then concludes his work with
-notes on the manner of ordaining priests and teachers, administering
-the sacrament of the Lord's supper, baptism, spiritual gifts, together
-with a sermon and some of his father's letters. In his abridgment of
-the record of the Jaredites, the peculiarity of mixing up his comments,
-admonitions and prophecies with his narrative, is even more marked
-than in the abridgment of Mormon, therefore the reader will need to be
-doubly on his guard.
-
-3. _How the "Smaller Plates" of Nephi came to be attached to Mormon's
-Abridgment_.--We have already said that the first 157 pages of the
-Book of Mormon were not a part of Mormon's abridgment. Those pages are
-a verbatim translation of the "smaller plates" of Nephi, and became
-connected with Mormon's abridgment in this manner: Mormon had abridged
-the "larger plates" of Nephi as far as the reign of King Benjamin, and
-in searching through the records which had been delivered to him, he
-found the "smaller plates" of Nephi. They contained a brief history
-of events connected with the departure of Lehi and his colony from
-Jerusalem to their landing in America, and thence down to the reign
-of this King Benjamin--covering a period of about 400 years. These
-plates were made by Nephi, that upon them might be engraven an account
-of the ministry of the servants of God, among his people, together
-with their prophecies and teachings. They contain, in other words, an
-ecclesiastical history of the {289} Nephites, while the "larger plates"
-of Nephi contained a political or secular history of the same people.
-(I Nephi ix; xix: 1-5.)
-
-Mormon was particularly well pleased with the contents of these
-"smaller plates" of Nephi, because upon them had been engraven so
-many prophecies concerning the coming and mission of the Messiah; and
-instead of condensing the history recorded on them into an abridgment,
-he took the plates themselves and attached them to the abridgment of
-Nephi's "larger plates." "And I do this for a wise purpose," says
-Mormon; "for thus it whispereth me according to the workings of the
-Spirit of the Lord which is in me." (Words of Mormon, page 159 N. E.)
-Nephi also, in speaking of these "smaller plates," says, "the Lord hath
-commanded me to make these plates for a wise purpose in him; which
-purpose I know not." (I Nephi ix:5.)
-
-4. _The Wise Purpose_.--By Mormon attaching these "smaller plates"
-of Nephi to his own abridgment of Nephi's "larger plates," it will
-be observed there was a double line of history of the Nephites for
-about 400 years, and the wisdom of this arrangement is seen in the
-following: When Joseph Smith had translated the first part of Mormon's
-abridgment--amounting to 116 pages of manuscript, he listened to the
-importunities of Martin Harris, who was giving him some assistance in
-the work of translating, and who desired to show that portion of the
-work to his friends. The result was the manuscript was stolen from
-Harris; the records were taken from Joseph by the angel, and for a
-season he lost his power to translate. After a time, however, he was
-permitted to go on with the work, but the Lord made it known to him
-that it was the design of those into whose hands the manuscript had
-fallen to wait until he had translated that part again, and then by
-changing the manuscript in their possession, would bring it forth and
-claim that he could not translate the same record twice alike; and thus
-they would seek to overthrow the work of God.
-
-But the heavenly messenger commanded Joseph Smith not to translate
-again the part he had already translated, but instead thereof he
-should translate the "smaller plates" of Nephi, and that account was
-to take the place of Mormon's abridgment up to the latter days of the
-reign of King Benjamin. (Doc. and Cov., Sec. 10.) Thus it is that we
-have the "Words of Mormon," beginning on page 158, explaining how the
-"smaller plates" of Nephi came into his possession and attached to the
-plates containing the record he himself was making, and connecting
-the historical narrative of the "smaller plates" of Nephi with his
-own abridgment of Nephi's "larger plates." The "Words of Mormon,"
-interrupting as they do the history of the Nephites, have caused no
-little confusion in the minds of unthoughtful readers; but after it is
-understood that they are merely the link connecting the ecclesiastical
-history engraven on the "smaller {290} plates" of Nephi to Mormon's
-abridgment, and that they take the place of the first part of Mormon's
-record, the difficulty will disappear.
-
-5. _Difference in the Literary Style of the "Smaller Plates" and
-Mormon's Abridgment_.--One thing we cannot forbear to mention, and that
-is, in the parts of the Book of Mormon translated from the "smaller
-plates" of Nephi, we find none of those comments or annotations mixed
-up with the record that we have already spoken of as being peculiar
-to the abridgment made by Mormon--a circumstance, we take it, which
-proves the Book of Mormon to be consistent with the account given of
-the original records from which it was translated. The value of this
-fact appears if we stop to consider how destructive to the claims
-of the book it would be if the peculiarity of Mormon's abridgment
-were found in that part of the book which claims to be a verbatim
-translation of the "smaller plates" of Nephi. There will be found,
-however, in this translation direct from the "smaller plates" of
-Nephi, as also in Mormon's abridgment, extracts from the old Jewish
-Scriptures--especially from the writings of Isaiah--this is accounted
-for by the fact that when Lehi's colony left Jerusalem, they took with
-them copies of the books of Moses and the writings of the prophets,
-and the record of the Jews down to the commencement of the reign of
-Zedekiah, all of which were engraven on plates of brass (see I Nephi
-v: 10-13), and the Nephite historians transcribed passages from these
-sacred records into their own writings.
-
-6. _The Transcribed Passages_.--There are a few suggestions about these
-transcribed passages which may be valuable to the student, as they
-furnish an indirect evidence of the truth of the Book of Mormon. The
-Nephites having transcribed passages from the brass plates they carried
-with them from Jerusalem into their records, wherever such passages
-occur in the Book of Mormon, and corresponding passages are found in
-our English Bible, it will be seen by the reader that so far we have
-two translations of the writings of the old Hebrew prophets; and it
-will be found on comparison that the passages in the Book of Mormon are
-stronger and more in keeping with the sense sought to be expressed by
-the prophet than the corresponding passages and chapters in the Bible.
-As a proof of this I ask the student to compare I Nephi xx and xxi with
-Isaiah xlvii and xlix.
-
-In some instances there are sentences, in the Book of Mormon version
-of passages from Isaiah, not to be found in our English version, as
-witness the following:
-
-{291} BOOK OF MORMON.
-
-O house of Jacob, come ye and let us walk in the light of the Lord;
-_yea, come, for ye have all gone astray, every one to his wicked
-ways_.--II Nephi xii.
-
-BIBLE.
-
-O house of Jacob, come ye, and let us walk in the light of the
-Lord.--Isa. ii: 5.
-
-In other instances it will be found that the sense of the passages is
-different, and that the passages in the Book of Mormon best accord with
-the sense of the whole:
-
-BOOK OF MORMON.
-
-Therefore, O Lord, thou hast forsaken thy people, the house of Jacob,
-because they be replenished from the east, and hearken unto soothsayers
-like the Philistines, and they please themselves in the children of
-strangers.--II Nephi xii: 6.
-
-Their land is also full of idols--they worship the work of their own
-hands, that which their own fingers have made: and the mean man boweth
-not down, and the great man humbleth himself not, therefore, forgive
-him not.--II Nephi xii: 8, 9.
-
-Thou hast multiplied the nation, and increased the joy: they joy before
-thee according to the joy in harvest, and as men rejoice when they
-divide the spoil.--II Nephi xix: 3.
-
-BIBLE.
-
-Therefore Thou hast forsaken Thy people the house of Jacob, because
-they be replenished from the east, and _are_ soothsayers like
-the Philistines, and they please themselves in the children of
-strangers.--Isa. ii: 6
-
-Their land also is full of idols; they worship the work which their
-own fingers have made: and the mean man boweth down, and the great man
-humbleth himself: therefore, forgive them not.--Isa. ii: 8, 9.
-
-Thou hast multiplied the nation, and not increased the joy: they joy
-before thee according to the joy in harvest, and as men rejoice when
-they divide the spoil.--Isa. ix: 3.
-
-Observe, too, the difference in the clearness of the following passages:
-
-BOOK OF MORMON.
-
-And when they shall say unto you, seek unto them that have familiar
-spirits, and unto wizards that peep and mutter; should not a people
-seek unto their God? for the living to hear from the dead?--II Nephi
-xix: 3.
-
-BIBLE.
-
-And when they shall say unto you, seek unto them that have familiar
-spirits, and unto wizards that peep, and that mutter; should not a
-people seek unto their God? for the living to the dead?--Isa. viii: 19.
-
-{292} Again, the English translators of the Bible, in order to make the
-sense of various passages more clear, inserted here and there, words of
-their own; which are always written in _Italics_, that the reader might
-know what words have been inserted by the translator, and for which
-he will find no equivalent in the original text. It is worthy of note
-that in those transcribed passages from the brass plates into the Book
-of Mormon, in almost every instance, the words in the Book of Mormon
-version are different to those substituted by the translators of the
-common English Version; or are left out, as follows:
-
-BOOK OF MORMON.
-
-What mean ye? Ye beat my people to pieces, and grind the faces of the
-poor.--II Nephi xiii: 15.
-
-BIBLE.
-
-What mean ye _that_ ye beat my people to pieces, and grind the faces of
-the poor?--Isa. iii: 15.
-
-The above is a case where the inserted word of the translator, which I
-have written in _Italics_, is omitted, and to my mind the passage as it
-stands in the Book of Mormon is the stronger and more beautiful. Here
-is a passage where different words are used than those inserted by the
-translators:
-
-BOOK OF MORMON.
-
-Say unto the righteous, that it is well with them; for they shall eat
-the fruit of their doings.
-
-Woe unto the wicked for they shall perish; for the reward of their
-hands shall be upon them.--II Nephi xiii: 10, 11.
-
-BIBLE.
-
-Say ye to the righteous, that _it shall be_ well _with him_: for they
-shall eat the fruit of their doings.
-
-Woe unto the wicked; _it shall be ill with him_; for the reward of his
-hands shall be given him.--Isa. iii: 10, 11.
-
-I think it will be readily conceived that the above passage as it
-stands in the Book of Mormon is much superior to the version given in
-our common Bible. And when it is remembered that Joseph Smith and those
-who assisted in translating that work were most likely uninformed as to
-the supplied words of the translators being written in _Italics_, it
-is an incidental evidence that those passages in the Book of Mormon to
-which are found corresponding passages in the Bible, were not merely
-copied from the Bible, but in the Book of Mormon we have really another
-translation of those passages taken from original records of the
-Hebrews, uncorrupted by the hand of man, and hence more perfect.
-
-7. _A Means of Testing the Truth of the Book of Mormon_.--One
-suggestion more I would make to the readers of the Book of Mormon:
-{293} that is, that they read it prayerfully with a real desire to
-know if it is of God. If they will peruse it with that desire in their
-hearts, I am sanguine that the Spirit of God which searches all things,
-yea, the deep things of God, will bear witness to their understanding
-that the book is of divine origin, and they will have a witness from
-God of its truth. Such a promise in fact, is contained within the book
-itself. When Moroni was closing up the sacred record previous to hiding
-it up unto the Lord until the time should come for it to be revealed as
-a witness for God, he engraved the following passage on the plates as
-words of counsel to those into whose hands the record should fall:
-
-"And when ye shall receive these things" (i. e., the things written
-in the Book of Mormon) "I would exhort you that ye would ask God the
-Eternal Father, in the name of Christ, if these things are not true;
-and if ye shall ask with a sincere heart, with real intent, having
-faith in Christ, he will manifest the truth of it unto you by the power
-of the Holy Ghost; and by the power of the Holy Ghost ye may know the
-truth of all things." (Moroni x: 4,5.)
-
-Here, then, is a means by which every person into whose hands the Book
-of Mormon falls may find out for himself, not from human testimony, not
-from the deductions of logic, but through the power of the Holy Ghost,
-whether the Book of Mormon is of divine origin or not. This test must
-be final, either for or against it, to every individual who complies
-with the conditions enjoined by Moroni. Those conditions are, that they
-into whose hands the record falls shall inquire of God with a sincere
-heart, with real intent, and having faith in Christ and to those who
-so proceed he promises without equivocation that they shall receive a
-manifestation of its truth by the power of the Holy Ghost. Therefore,
-if these directions are complied with faithfully and honestly, and the
-manifestation follows not, then they may know it is not of God. If
-the manifestation comes, of course the divine origin of the book is
-confirmed, for the Holy Ghost would not confirm by any manifestation of
-its power an imposition.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What is a dispensation in connection with the work of God?
-
-2. In what does the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times differ from
-other dispensations?
-
-3. State when and where the Prophet Joseph was born.
-
-4. What was the condition and standing of the Prophet's parents?
-
-{294} 5. State what you can about the movements of the Smith family
-until its settlement in Manchester.
-
-6. What occurred in Manchester when the prophet was in his fifteenth
-year?
-
-7. What influence did this religious revival have on the Smith family?
-
-8. What reflections did it give birth to in the boy Joseph?
-
-9. What circumstance was it that decided the course of Joseph?
-
-10. Describe the first great vision Joseph received.
-
-11. What sectarian vagary is dispelled by this vision?
-
-12. What were the prophet's subsequent teachings relative to the
-personage of God? (Note.)
-
-13. What does the vision teach in respect to the Father and Son being
-distinct persons?
-
-14. What great truth respecting the character of the creeds and sects
-of Christendom is learned from the vision?
-
-15. What did it prove in regard to the false idea that God would give
-no more revelation to man?
-
-16. What other important thing did this first vision accomplish?
-
-17. How long was it after the prophet received his first vision before
-any other revelation was given him?
-
-18. How was Joseph's announcement that he had received a revelation
-from God treated by the ministers?
-
-19. What can you say of the prophet's conduct during the above
-mentioned interval of three years?
-
-20. Give an account of Moroni's first visit to the Prophet Joseph.
-
-21. Give a description of Moroni. (Note 3),
-
-22. What ancient record did Moroni reveal the existence of?
-
-23. Enumerate the several ancient prophecies of the Bible quoted by
-Moroni.
-
-24. What cautions did Moroni give Joseph before finally leaving him?
-
-25. Relate Moroni's fourth appearance to Joseph.
-
-26. Give an account of Joseph's first visit to Cumorah.
-
-27. By what name was this same hill known among the Jaredites?
-
-28. Give a description of Cumorah.
-
-29. What arrangements for future visitations did Moroni make with
-Joseph?
-
-30. When were the plates of the Book of Mormon together with the Urim
-and Thummim given into the possession of Joseph?
-
-31. What individuals and family rendered Joseph valuable assistance
-while translating the Book of Mormon?
-
-32. How many especial witnesses were raised up to the Book of Mormon?
-
-33. State how the Book of Mormon was constructed.
-
-34. Describe the complexity of the structure of the Book of Mormon.
-
-{295} 35. How did the "smaller plates" of Nephi come to be attached to
-Mormon's abridgment?
-
-36. For what wise purpose were they attached to Mormon's abridgment?
-
-37. What difference in style of composition is noticeable between these
-"smaller plates" and Mormon's abridgment?
-
-38. What can you say of the transcribed passages from the brass plates?
-
-39. What direct means exists for testing the truth of the Book of
-Mormon?
-
-{296}
-
-
-
-SECTION II.
-
-1. The Restoration of the Aaronic Priesthood.--While engaged in
-the work of translating the Book of Mormon, Joseph and Oliver found
-reference made in the record to baptism for the remission of sins; and
-on the 15th of May, 1829, they went into the woods to inquire of the
-Lord about it. While thus engaged a messenger from heaven descended
-in a cloud of light and announced himself to be John, the same that
-is called the Baptist,[10] in the New Testament. He placed his hands
-upon the heads of Joseph and Oliver and ordained them to the Aaronic
-Priesthood.[11] He explained that this priesthood held the keys of the
-ministration of angels, the gospel of repentance and of baptism for
-the remission of sins, but had not the power of laying on hands for
-the gift of the Holy Ghost. He promised them also that the priesthood
-he then conferred upon them should never be taken again from the
-earth, until the sons of Levi offer an offering unto the Lord in
-righteousness. [See note 1, end of section.]
-
-2. John stated that he was acting under the direction of {297}
-Peter, James and John, who held the keys of the Melchisedek Priesthood,
-which he said would in due time be conferred upon them. He then
-commanded Joseph to baptize Oliver, and afterwards Oliver to baptize
-Joseph.[12] After their baptism they were both filled with the spirit
-of prophecy and predicted many things concerning the rise and progress
-of the work. The angel also commanded them to each re-ordain the other
-to the Priesthood--Joseph to first ordain Oliver, and afterwards Oliver
-to ordain Joseph. To this commandment they were obedient, and thus the
-Aaronic Priesthood, the power from God which gives the right to those
-who receive it to preach repentance and to administer baptism for the
-remission of sins, was restored to men.
-
-3. For a season, doubtless in order to avoid persecution, which
-constantly increased in bitterness, Joseph and Oliver kept their
-baptism and ordination to the Aaronic Priesthood a secret; but as men's
-minds were wrought upon to inquire after the truth, they at last let it
-be known that they had received authority to baptize for the remission
-of sins, and a number of people received the ordinance at their hands.
-
-4. Restoration of the Melchisedek Priesthood.--Some time
-in June, 1829,[13] the promise made by John the Baptist to Joseph
-and Oliver, at the time he conferred the Aaronic Priesthood upon
-them--viz., that they should receive the higher or Melchisedek
-Priesthood, was fulfilled. This Priesthood was conferred upon them by
-Peter, James and John, probably in the wilderness between Harmony,
-Susquehanna county, and Colesville, {298} Broome county, on the
-Susquehanna River.[14] [See note 2, end of section] It is quite evident
-from the prominence given to these three apostles in the New Testament,
-that they held the keys of this Priesthood; and that of the three
-Peter was the chief. To him the Lord said: "I will give unto thee the
-keys of the kingdom of heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth
-shall be bound in heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth
-shall be loosed in heaven." [15] It was eminently proper therefore that
-these three apostles should be the ones to restore to the earth the
-Melchisedek Priesthood by conferring the apostleship upon Joseph and
-Oliver.
-
-5. As after receiving their ordination under the hands of John
-the Baptist they were required to re-ordain each other, so after
-receiving the apostleship under the hands of Peter, James and John
-they re-ordained each other, Joseph first re-ordaining Oliver, and
-afterwards accepting re-ordination at his hands.[16]
-
-6. The power and authority of this Melchisedek Priesthood [see
-note 3, end of section] is to hold the keys of all the spiritual
-blessings of the church, and those holding it have the privilege of
-receiving the mysteries of the kingdom of heaven--they have the right
-to have the heavens opened unto them--to commune with the general
-assembly and church of the First Born, and to enjoy the communication
-and presence of God the Father and Jesus the Mediator of the new
-covenant.[17] Hence, clothed with this power, Joseph and Oliver were
-authorized to organize the Church of Christ in the earth.
-
-7. The Organization of the Church of Christ.--In all things,
-however, the two young men waited for direction from the Lord, and
-hence did not undertake to organize the church until he commanded
-them. It was in obedience to a commandment from the Lord, therefore,
-that they appointed the sixth {299} day of April, 1830, as the time to
-organize the church. Six persons[18] who had been baptized, and a few
-of their friends, met at the house of Peter Whitmer, Sen., in Fayette,
-Seneca county, in the State of New York, to effect that organization.
-The meeting was opened by solemn prayer, after which, according to
-previous commandment, the Prophet Joseph called upon the brethren
-present to know if they would accept himself and Oliver Cowdery as
-their teachers in the things of the kingdom of God; and if they were
-willing that they should proceed to organize the church according to
-the commandment of the Lord. To this they consented by unanimous vote.
-Joseph then ordained Oliver an elder of the Church of Jesus Christ;[19]
-after which Oliver ordained Joseph an elder of the said church. The
-sacrament was administered and those who had been previously baptized
-were confirmed members of the church and received the Holy Ghost by the
-laying on of hands. Some enjoyed the gift of prophecy, and all rejoiced
-exceedingly. [See note 4, end of section.]
-
-8. While the church was yet assembled a revelation was received
-from the Lord,[20] directing that a record be kept in the church, and
-that in it Joseph be called a seer, a translator, a prophet, an apostle
-of Jesus Christ, an elder of the church; and the church was commanded
-to give heed to all his words and commandments which he should receive
-from the Lord, accepting his word as the word of God in all patience
-and faith. On condition of their doing this, the Lord promised them
-that the gates of hell should not prevail against the church; but on
-{300} the contrary he would disperse the powers of darkness from before
-them and shake the heavens for their good.
-
-9. The Voice of God and the Voice of the People in Church
-Government.--Thus the church was organized; and in that organization
-we see the operation of two mighty principles--the voice of God: the
-consent of the people. At the time that Joseph and Oliver received
-instruction to ordain each other to be elders of the church, they were
-told to defer their ordination until such time as would be practicable
-to get their brethren who had been and who would be baptized assembled
-together: for they must have the sanction of their brethren before
-they ordained each other elders of the Church; and their brethren must
-decide by vote whether they would accept them [Joseph and Oliver] as
-spiritual[21] teachers. Thus, notwithstanding Joseph and Oliver had
-been ordained apostles under the hands of Peter, James and John, and
-had doubtless re-ordained each other as already stated,[22] yet when
-it came to being ordained _elders of the Church_,[23] and made the
-spiritual leaders of it, it must be done by the common consent of the
-church; and thus early we see enforced that law which says: "All things
-shall be done by common consent in the church, by much prayer and
-faith." [24] But no sooner was the church organized than a prophet, a
-seer, a translator, is appointed and the church commanded to give heed
-to his words, and to receive them as coming from the mouth of of the
-Lord himself. Here in the very inception of the church organization
-is clearly established the great truth, the grand principle, that in
-the government of the church there is to be a union of the voice of
-God {301} and the consent or voice of the people. Not _vox populi,
-vox Dei;_[25] nor _vox Dei, vox populi_;[26] but _vox Dei et vox
-populi_.[27]
-
-10. Revelation on Church Government and Discipline.--Previous
-to the organization of the church, a very important revelation was
-given--in fact it was the revelation which pointed out the date on
-which the church was to be organized[28]--which teaches many important
-truths and points out the duties of the members of the church and also
-the duties of the officers of the church--so far as the officers of
-the church at that time had been given. That revelation announces the
-following doctrines:--
-
-_I. Of the Existence of God_.--There is a God in heaven who is infinite
-and eternal from everlasting to everlasting--unchangeable; the framer
-of heaven and earth and all things which are in them.
-
-_II. Of the Creation and Fall of Man_.--God created man male and
-female, after his own image, and in his own likeness created he them.
-He gave them commandment that they should love and serve him, and that
-he should be the sole object of their worship. But by the transgression
-of these holy laws man became sensual and devilish--fallen man.
-
-_III. Of Jesus Christ_.--The Almighty God gave his Only Begotten Son as
-a ransom for fallen man, as it is written of him in the scriptures. He
-suffered temptations, but gave no heed to them; he was crucified, died,
-and rose again the third day; he ascended into heaven to sit on the
-right hand of his Father, {302} to reign with almighty power according
-to the will of God. As many as believe on him and are baptized in his
-holy name--enduring in faith to the end--shall be saved. Not only those
-who believed after he came in the flesh; but all those who from the
-beginning believed in the words of the holy prophets, who testified of
-him in all things.
-
-_IV. Of the Holy Ghost and the Trinity_.--The Holy Ghost beareth record
-of the Father and of the Son--is God's witness. The Father, Son and
-Holy Ghost constitute the Holy Trinity--one God or grand Presidency of
-heaven and earth, infinite, eternal.
-
-_V. Of Justification and Sanctification_.--Justification and
-sanctification come through the grace of God, and are just and true
-principles. That is, the grace of God supplies the means or conditions
-of justification and sanctification, and it is for man to apply
-those means of salvation. The means or conditions of justification
-and sanctification are that men love and serve God with all their
-might, mind, and strength. That would lead them to exercise faith in
-God, repentance of sin and baptism for the remission of sins, laying
-on of hands for the Holy Ghost, and the pursuit of a godly life and
-conversation--the old conditions of salvation.[29]
-
-_VI. Of Falling from Grace_.--It is possible for men to fall from grace
-and depart from the living God, therefore the saints are admonished to
-take heed and pray always, least they fall into temptation. Even those
-who are sanctified are cautioned to take heed.
-
-_VII. Of Baptism_.--All who humble themselves before God, and desire
-to be baptized and come forth with broken hearts and contrite spirits,
-and witness before the church that they have truly repented of all
-their sins, and are willing to take upon them the name of Jesus Christ,
-having a determination to serve Him to the end, and truly manifest
-by their works that {303} they have received of the spirit of Christ
-unto the remission of their sins--shall be received by baptism into
-the church.[30] No person, however, can be received into the church
-of Christ, unless he has arrived unto the years of accountability[31]
-before God, and is capable of repentance.
-
-_VIII. Of the Manner of Baptism_.--The person who is called of God, and
-has authority from Jesus Christ to baptize, shall go into the water
-with the person who has presented him or herself for baptism, and shall
-say--calling him or her by name--"Having been commissioned of Jesus
-Christ, I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of
-the Holy Ghost. Amen." [32] Then shall he immerse him or her, and come
-forth again out of the water.
-
-_IX. Of Confirmation_.--Confirmation into the church follows baptism
-and is performed by the laying on of hands, by those who have authority
-in the church. The Holy Ghost is imparted in the same manner. There is
-no form of exact words given, so far as we know, for confirming persons
-into the church and imparting the Holy Ghost; but judging from the
-forms given for baptism, administering the sacrament, etc., a simple
-form would be most proper. But whatever other words are used, the
-following should not be omitted: I confirm you a member of the {304}
-Church of Jesus Christ of Latter-day Saints; and say unto you, receive
-ye the Holy Ghost. Those officiating would of course be careful to do
-this in the name of Jesus Christ, or their administration would be of
-none effect.
-
-_X. Of the Duties of Members_.--It is the duty of the members of the
-church to manifest righteousness by "a Godly walk and conversation;"
-to abstain from ill feeling toward each other, neither indulging in
-lying, back-biting nor evil speaking. It is also their duty to pray
-vocally and in secret. They are required to meet together often to
-partake of bread and wine in remembrance of the Lord Jesus, which is
-to be administered by the elder or priest[33] in the following manner:
-kneeling with the church he consecrates the emblems of the body and
-blood of Christ in these words:
-
-BLESSING ON THE BREAD.
-
-"O God, the Eternal Father, we ask thee in the name of thy Son Jesus
-Christ to bless and sanctify this bread to the souls of all those who
-partake of it, that they may eat in remembrance of the body of thy Son,
-and witness unto thee, O God, the Eternal Father, that they are willing
-to take upon them the name of thy Son, and always remember him, and
-keep his commandments which he has given them, that they may always
-have His Spirit to be with them. Amen."
-
-BLESSING ON THE WINE.[34]
-
-"O God, the Eternal Father, we ask thee in the name of thy Son Jesus
-Christ to bless and sanctify this wine to the souls of {305} all those
-who drink of it, that they may do it in remembrance of the blood of thy
-Son, which was shed for them; that they may witness unto thee, O God,
-the Eternal Father, that they do always remember him, that they may
-have his Spirit to be with them. Amen."
-
-_XI. Of the Duties of Saints Respecting Children_.--Every member of the
-church having children is required to bring them to the elders, before
-the church, who are to lay their hands upon them and bless them in the
-name of Jesus Christ.[35]
-
-XII. _Duties of Officers--Elders_. [36]--Elders have authority to
-preside over meetings and conduct them as prompted by the Holy Ghost.
-They also have authority to teach and expound {306} the scriptures; to
-watch over the church; to baptize; to lay on hands for the bestowal
-of the Holy Ghost; confirm those baptized, members of the church;
-administer the sacrament, and ordain other elders and also priests,
-teachers, and deacons.
-
---_Priests_.--It is the duty of priests to preach, teach, and expound
-scripture; to visit the home of each member and exhort them to pray
-vocally and in secret and attend to all duties. They may also baptize
-and administer the sacrament, ordain other priests, teachers and
-deacons, take the lead of meetings when no elder is present, and in
-a general way assist the elder; but they have no authority to lay on
-hands for the gift of the Holy Ghost or confirmation in the church.
-
---_Teachers_.--The teacher's duty is to always be with the church,
-watch over and strengthen it; to see that there is no iniquity in it,
-and that the members thereof meet together often and all do their
-duty. Teachers may warn, expound, exhort, teach and invite all to come
-unto Christ, and take the lead of meetings when no elder or priest is
-present; but they have not the authority to baptize, administer the
-sacrament or lay on hands.
-
---_Deacons_.--Deacons are appointed to assist the teachers in the
-performance of their duties. They may also warn, expound, exhort, teach
-and invite all to come unto Christ, but like teachers have no authority
-to baptize, administer the sacrament, or lay on hands.
-
-_XIII. Conferences_.--The several elders comprising the church of
-Christ are to meet in conference once in three months, or from time
-to time as the said conference shall appoint, to do whatever church
-business is necessary. It is the duty of the several branches of
-the church to send one or more of their {307} teachers [or other
-representatives] to attend the conferences of the church, with a list
-of the names of those who joined the church since the last conference,
-that a record of the names of the whole church may be kept by one
-who shall be appointed to that work; and the names of those who are
-expelled from the church are also to be sent up to the conferences,
-that their names may be blotted out of the general record of the
-church. Members removing from the church where they reside are to take
-a letter certifying that they are regular members in good standing, and
-that when signed by the regular authorities of the church from whence
-they move is to admit them into the fellowship of the Saints in the
-church to which they go. Such is the plan of government and discipline
-contained in the revelation given just previous to the organization
-of the church, and in it one may observe the outlines of that more
-complete organization of the church which will be treated more fully in
-another section. The above was sufficient for the church in its infancy.
-
-11. Commencement of the Public Ministry.--On Sunday, the 11th of
-April, 1830, the first public discourse was preached. It was delivered
-by Elder Oliver Cowdery, at the house of Peter Whitmer, in Fayette.
-After the services six persons were baptized. Thus began the public
-ministry of the church.
-
-12. First Miracle in the Church.--In this same month of April
-the first miracle in the church was performed. It occurred in this
-manner: The Prophet Joseph went on a visit to Mr. Joseph Knight, at
-Colesville, Broome County, New York. This gentleman had rendered the
-prophet some timely assistance while translating the Book of Mormon,
-and he was anxious that Mr. Knight and his family should receive the
-truth. While in Mr. Knight's neighborhood the prophet held a number
-of meetings. Among those who regularly attended was Newel Knight, son
-of Joseph Knight. He and the prophet had many serious conversations
-on the subject of man's salvation. In the meetings {308} held the
-people prayed much, and in one of the aforesaid conversations with the
-prophet, Newel Knight promised that he would pray publicly. When the
-time came, however, his heart failed him, and he refused, saying that
-he would wait until he got into the woods by himself. The next morning
-when he attempted to pray in the woods, he was overwhelmed with a sense
-of having neglected his duty the evening before in not praying in the
-presence of others. He began to feel uneasy, and continued to grow
-worse both in mind and body, until upon reaching home his appearance
-was such as to alarm his wife. He sent for the prophet, who, when he
-came, found Newel in a sad condition and suffering greatly. His visage
-and limbs were distorted and twisted in every shape imaginable. At
-last he was caught up off the floor and tossed about most fearfully.
-The neighbors hearing of his condition came running in. After he had
-suffered for a time, the prophet succeeded in getting him by the hand,
-when immediately Newel spoke to him, saying he knew he was possessed
-of the devil, and that the prophet had power to cast him out. "If you
-know I can, it shall be done," replied the prophet; and then almost
-unconsciously he rebuked Satan and commanded him to depart from the
-man. Immediately Newel's contortions stopped, and he spoke out and said
-he saw the devil leave him and vanish from sight.
-
-13.--"This was the first miracle which was done in this church
-or by any member of it," writes the prophet; "and it was done not by
-man, nor by the power of man, but it was done by God, and by the power
-of godliness; therefore let the honor and praise, the dominion and the
-glory, be ascribed to the Father, Son and Holy Spirit, for ever and
-ever. Amen."
-
-14. The First Conference.--The first conference of the church
-was held the first day of June, 1830. About thirty members were in
-attendance, besides a number of unbaptized believers and others anxious
-to learn. The sacrament was administered, a number who had been
-baptized were confirmed, {309} and brethren were called and ordained
-to various offices of the priesthood. The time was spent in prayer,
-singing, instruction and exhortation. The Holy Ghost was abundantly
-poured out upon the saints. Some prophesied, and others were wrapped
-in heavenly vision, until their bodily strength was exhausted. When
-restored they shouted hosannah to God and the Lamb, and related the
-glorious things they had seen and felt while in vision. [See note
-4, end of section.] Thus the ministry of God's servants began to be
-confirmed by the signs and the gifts of the Holy Ghost following those
-who believed.
-
-15. Errors of the Saints.--It would be unreasonable to suppose
-that the members of the church fell into no errors. Some time in the
-summer of 1830, while the prophet was still living in Harmony, Penn.,
-and Oliver Cowdery was with the Whitmer family in New York, he received
-a letter from Oliver informing him that he [Oliver] had discovered
-an error in one of the revelations, and added: "I command you in the
-name of God to erase these words [having named the passage] that no
-priestcraft be among us." [37] The prophet wrote immediately, asking by
-what authority Oliver took it upon himself to command him to alter or
-erase, to add to, or diminish a revelation or commandment from Almighty
-God. Joseph followed his letter in a few days, and was grieved beyond
-measure to find that the whole Whitmer family sustained Oliver in the
-position he had taken. By labor and perseverance, however, he convinced
-them that they were in error and the difficulty was settled.
-
-16. Scarcely had this trouble subsided when another arose. In
-the month of August, 1830, in consequence of persecution having grown
-extremely bitter in Harmony and vicinity, the prophet removed with
-his family to Fayette, New York, at the invitation of the Whitmers,
-to live with them. On arriving {310} there he learned that Hyrum
-Page was in possession of a stone which he called a seer stone, and
-through which he was receiving revelations for the church in respect
-to the up-building of Zion, church government, etc. The Whitmers and
-the inconstant Oliver accepted these revelations and much harm was
-being done. A conference was to convene on the first of September,
-but before it assembled the prophet inquired of the Lord and obtained
-a revelation on the subject, which was directed more especially to
-Oliver Cowdery.[38] In regard to the subject in hand, it contained
-the following: Oliver was to be heard by the church in all things
-whatsoever he taught by the Comforter, concerning the revelations
-and commandments; and if led by the Comforter to teach by way of
-commandment, he had permission to do it; "But thou shalt not write
-by way of commandment," said the Lord to him, "but by wisdom. And
-thou shalt not command him who is at thy head and at the head of the
-church." No one was to receive commandments and revelations in the
-church, that is for the church, except Joseph the prophet; for the
-Lord had given him the keys of the mysteries and revelations, until he
-appointed unto the church another in his stead. Oliver was commanded
-to take Hyrum Page aside by himself and tell him that the revelations
-which he had written from that stone were not of the Lord, but that
-Satan had deceived him, and they must be given up, for he had not been
-appointed to receive revelations, neither would any one be appointed
-contrary to the church covenants, which provided that all things must
-be done in order and by common consent of the church.
-
-17. During the conference the subject of the revelations from
-Hyrum Page's seer stone was discussed, and after much consideration,
-the whole church, including Hyrum Page, renounced the stone and all
-things connected with it; and the {311} church was made to understand
-more clearly that there is but one on the earth at a time who is
-authorized to receive the word and commandment of the Lord for the
-Church.[39]
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Visitation of John the Baptist.--On a sudden, as from the
-midst of eternity, the voice of the Redeemer spake peace to us, while
-the vail was parted and the angel of God came down clothed with glory,
-and delivered the anxiously looked for message, and the keys of the
-gospel of repentance! What joy! What wonder! What amazement! While the
-world was racked and distracted--while millions were groping as the
-blind for the wall, and while all men were resting on uncertainty,
-as a general mass, our eyes beheld, our ears heard. As in the blaze
-of day; yes, more--above the glitter of the May sunbeam which then
-shed its brilliancy over the face of nature! Then this voice, though
-mild, pierced to the center, and his words, "I am thy fellow servant,"
-dispelled every fear. We listened, we gazed, we admired! 'Twas the
-voice of an angel from glory, 'twas a message from the Most High! And
-as we heard we rejoiced, while his love enkindled upon our souls, and
-we were wrapped in the vision of the Almighty! Where was room for
-doubt? Nowhere; uncertainty had fled, doubt had sunk more more to rise,
-while fiction and deception had fled forever! * * * Think for a moment
-what joy filled our hearts, and with what surprise we must have bowed
-(for who would not have bowed the knee for such a blessing) when we
-received under his hand the holy priesthood as he said, "Upon you, my
-fellow servants, in the name of Messiah, I confer this priesthood and
-this authority, which shall remain upon the earth, that the sons of
-Levi may yet offer an offering to the Lord in righteousness."--Oliver
-Cowdery.
-
-2. Melchisedek Priesthood Restored.--We cannot fix the exact date
-when this priesthood was restored, but it occurred sometime between
-the 15th of May, 1829, and the 6th of April, 1830. We can approximate
-within a few months of the exact time, but no further, from any of
-the records of the church. Joseph, the Prophet, designates {312} the
-place, where their ordination took place, in his address to the saints,
-written September 6th, 1842, as follows: "Again what do we hear? * * *
-the voice of Peter, James and John in the wilderness between Harmony,
-Susquehanna county, and Colesville, Broome county, on the Susquehanna
-River, declaring themselves as possessing the keys of the kingdom and
-of the dispensation of the fullness of times." And in a revelation
-given September, 1830, referring to Joseph and Oliver, the Lord said,
-in reference to partaking again of the sacrament on the earth, that
-the "hour cometh that I will drink of the fruit of the vine with you
-on the earth, and with Moroni, * * * and also with Elias, * * * and
-also with John, the son of Zacharias, * * * and also with Peter, James
-and John whom I have sent unto you, by whom I have ordained you and
-confirmed you apostles and especial witnesses of my name." It would
-appear from the instructions given in the revelation, dated June, 1829,
-[Doc. and Cov. sec. xviii] that the apostleship had been conferred on
-Joseph Smith, Oliver Cowdery, and David Whitmer. If this supposition is
-correct, it reduces the period of uncertainty when this glorious event
-actually took place to a few weeks, or from the middle of May to the
-end of June.--Joseph F. Smith, "Contributor," vol. x, p. 310.
-
-3. Why the Higher Priesthood is Called After Melchisedek.--There
-are in the church two Priesthoods * * * Why the first is called the
-Melchisedek Priesthood, is because Melchisedek was such a great high
-priest. Before his day it was called the Holy Priesthood, after the
-order of the Son of God; but out of respect or deference to the name
-of the Supreme Being, to avoid the too frequent repetition of his
-name, they the church, in ancient days called that priesthood after
-Melchisedek, or the Melchisedek Priesthood.--Doc. and Cov. sec. cvii.
-
-4. Visions at the First Conference of the Church.--Among those
-who received visions was Newel Knight, who was so completely overcome
-by the power of the spirit that he had to be laid on a bed, being
-unable to help himself. "By his own account of the transaction," says
-the prophet, "he could not understand why we should lay him on the bed,
-as he felt no sensibility of weakness. He felt his heart filled with
-love, with glory, and pleasure unspeakable, and could discern all that
-was going on in the room; when all of a sudden a vision of futurity
-burst upon him. He saw there represented the great work which through
-my instrumentality was yet to be accomplished. He saw heaven opened,
-and beheld the Lord Jesus Christ, seated on the right hand of the
-majesty on high, and had it made plain to his understanding that the
-time would come when he would be admitted into His presence to enjoy
-his society for ever and ever."
-
-{313}
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. Relate the circumstances which led to the restoration of the Aaronic
-priesthood.
-
-2. What explanation did the angel make concerning this priesthood?
-
-3. What reason have you for believing that John the Baptist would be
-among the resurrected saints spoken of by Matthew? (Note.)
-
-4. Under whose direction did John say he was acting?
-
-5. What promise did he make to them about the Melchisedek priesthood?
-
-6. What commandment did the angel then give to Joseph and Oliver?
-
-7. How were these baptisms performed? (Note.)
-
-8. What commandment did the angel give in relation to re-ordination?
-
-9. What course did Joseph and Oliver pursue after their ordination?
-
-10. About what time was the Melchisedek Priesthood restored? (Note 2.)
-
-11. By whom and in what locality was it restored?
-
-12. What made it especially appropriate that these three apostles
-should restore that Priesthood?
-
-13. What is the power or authority of the Melchisedek priesthood?
-
-14. What particular power did this Priesthood give to Joseph and Oliver?
-
-15. When was the church organized?
-
-16. How many persons effected the organization?
-
-17. Were six persons all who had been baptized up to that date--6th of
-April, 1830?
-
-18. Relate the circumstances connected with the organization of the
-church.
-
-19. What was the organization called?
-
-20. When was the phrase "of Latter-day Saints," added as a part of the
-name of the church?
-
-21. What spiritual manifestations were experienced at the organization
-of the church? (Note 4.)
-
-22. What important revelation was given immediately after the church
-was organized?
-
-23. What two great principles are seen operating at the organization of
-the church?
-
-{314} 24. What can you say of the union of these two principles in
-church government?
-
-25. What revelation is it that commanded the organization of the
-church? (Note.)
-
-26. State what that revelation says upon the existence of God.
-
-27. --Of the creation of man.
-
-28. --Of Jesus Christ.
-
-29. --Of the Holy Ghost.
-
-30. --Of justification and sanctification.
-
-31. --Of falling from grace.
-
-32. --Of baptism.
-
-33. --Of the manner of baptism.
-
-34. --Of confirmation.
-
-35. --Of the duties of members.
-
-36. --Of the duties of parents respecting their children. (Note.)
-
-37. --Of the duties of officers--elders. (Note.)
-
-38. --Of priests.
-
-39. --Of teachers.
-
-40. --Of deacons.
-
-41. --Of conferences.
-
-42. In what manner did the public ministry of the church begin?
-
-43. Relate the first miracle performed in the church.
-
-44. When was the first conference of the church held, and what occurred?
-
-45. What error did Oliver Cowdery and the Whitmer family fall into?
-
-46. How was Hyrum Page deceived by Lucifer?
-
-47. What great principle concerning revelations to the church was
-brought out by these errors?
-
-{315}
-
-
-
-SECTION III.
-
-1. First Mission to the Lamanites.--At the conference held in
-Fayette, New York, September, 1830, the first mission to the Lamanites
-was appointed. In the revelation[40] which corrected the evils
-introduced by Hiram Page's "seer stone," Oliver Cowdery was appointed
-to a mission to the Lamanites; and before the conference was adjourned
-another revelation as given appointing Parley P. Pratt, Peter Whitmer,
-Jun., and Ziba Peterson to accompany him. Great promises are contained
-in the Book of Mormon concerning the Lamanites, and the elders at that
-conference hoped that the time had come for their fulfillment. [See
-note 1, end of section].
-
-2. _En route_ for their field of labor--the western part of
-the State of Missouri--the elders of the Lamanite mission stopped at
-Kirtland, in the north-eastern part of Ohio. Here they found a society
-of reformed Baptists, sometimes called Campbellites, after Alexander
-Campbell, the chief founder of the new sect. Their pastor was Sidney
-Rigdon. Elder Parley P. Pratt had formerly been a member of this sect,
-and he presented to his former co-religionists the Book of Mormon, and
-with his associates preached the fullness of the gospel to them, which,
-finally Mr. Rigdon and nearly all his congregation accepted.
-
-3. The Lamanite mission continued its journey westward, and in
-mid-winter reached the city of Independence, in the western borders of
-Missouri. Crossing the frontier, several meetings were held with the
-Delaware Indians, which had the effect of arousing the jealousy of the
-sectarian missionaries {316} among them. Such was their influence with
-the Indian agents that they succeeded in getting the elders banished
-from the territory. Returning to Independence, they sent one of their
-number, Parley P. Pratt, to report their labors to the prophet.
-
-4. The First Commandment to Gather.--In December, 1830, the
-Lord gave a revelation[41] to the church in New York, requiring the
-Saints in that state to move into Ohio by the time Oliver Cowdery
-returned from his mission to the Lamanites. This is the first direct
-commandment to the church to gather. During the winter of 1830-31, the
-Saints obeyed this commandment, the most of them settling in Kirtland.
-The Prophet Joseph and his family arrived there about the first of
-February, 1831. Before the coming of the New York Saints there was a
-church at Kirtland of about one hundred members, most of whom had been
-drawn from the Campbellite sect.
-
-5. The First Bishops of the Church.--On the 4th of February,
-1831, the Lord by revelation[42] commanded that Edward Partridge should
-be "appointed by the voice of the church, and ordained a bishop."
-Edward Partridge was a merchant in Kirtland, of whom the prophet said:
-"He was a pattern of piety, and one of the Lord's great men, known by
-his steadfastness and patient endurance to the end;" and of whom the
-Lord said, in the revelation appointing him bishop--"His heart is pure
-before me, for he is like unto Nathaniel of old, in whom there is no
-guile." He was required to give up his business of merchant, and devote
-all his time in the labors of the church. He was not to be the only
-bishop in the church, however, as in the November following (1831), the
-Lord said: "There remaineth * * * other bishops to be set apart unto
-the church, to minister even according to the first." [43] In December
-of that year, Newel K. Whitney was appointed a bishop over the church
-in Kirtland and vicinity {317} [see note 2, end of section]; while
-Edward Partridge was bishop in Zion and the regions round about.
-
-6. The Bishopric.--Although nothing is said in the revelation
-which appointed Edward Partridge bishop about the rights and powers of
-his office in the church, yet here, doubtless, will be the most proper
-place to speak of bishops in respect to their rights and authority.
-
-_I._ The bishopric is the presidency of the Aaronic Priesthood;[44] and
-since that Priesthood has most to do with administering the "outward
-ordinances, the _letter_ of the gospel," [45] the bishops will find
-their chief employment in the temporal affairs of the church. Indeed
-the Lord plainly says: "The office of a bishop is in administering
-all temporal things." [46] By ministering in temporal things we mean
-attending to the tithing, caring for the poor, and when the law of
-consecration shall be observed by the church, the bishops will receive
-the consecrations, settle people on their possessions, divide their
-inheritances unto them,[47] keep the Lord's store-house, etc. [See note
-3, end of section].
-
-_II._ The bishops are also to be judges among the people, to sit
-in judgment on trangressors, to hear testimony and give decisions
-according to the laws of the kingdom which are given by the prophets of
-God.[48] The bishop's court is the first court of record in the church;
-that is, a record is kept of the trial and preserved; whereas in any
-investigation of difficulties that may be had before the teachers or
-others, no record is kept. An appeal lies from the bishop's courts to
-the high council having jurisdiction. For want of a better expression
-we may say there are several kinds of bishops; first, the general
-presiding bishop of the church; second, traveling Bishops; third, local
-or ward bishops.[49]
-
-{318} _III. Presiding Bishop of the Church_:--This bishop is the
-president of the Aaronic Priesthood throughout the church; he has a
-jurisdiction over all other bishops, priests, teachers and deacons;
-and a general supervision of the temporal affairs of the church,
-subject, of course, to the counsel of the presidency of the Melchisedek
-Priesthood. Of right this bishop should be the first-born among the
-sons of Aaron; "For the first-born holds the right of the presidency
-over this [the Aaronic] priesthood, and the keys or authority of the
-same. No man has a legal right to this office, to hold the keys of
-this priesthood, except he be a literal descendant and the first-born
-of Aaron." [50] But before the first-born among the literal descendants
-of Aaron can legally officiate in this calling, he must first be
-designated by the first presidency of the Melchisedek priesthood;
-second, he must be found worthy of the position, and that includes his
-capacity to fill the office with ability, honor and dignity; third,
-he must be ordained under the hands of the first presidency of the
-Melchisedek Priesthood.[51] But by virtue of the decree concerning
-the right of the priesthood descending from father to son, the
-first-born of the sons of Aaron may claim their anointing, if at any
-time they can prove their lineage or do ascertain it by revelation
-from the Lord under the hands of the First Presidency.[52] A literal
-descendant of Aaron when appointed as above described may act without
-counselors, except in a case where a president of the High priesthood
-after the order of Melchisedek is tried. In that event he is to be
-assisted by "twelve counselors of the High priesthood." [53] But when
-no literal descendant of Aaron {319} can be found, as a high priest
-of the Melchisedek priesthood has authority to officiate in all the
-lesser offices, he may officiate in the office of bishop; provided he
-is called, set apart and ordained unto that power under the hands of
-the first presidency of the Melchisedek priesthood, and is assisted
-by two other high priests as counselors.[54] This bishop, whether a
-descendant of Aaron or a high priest appointed to officiate in that
-calling, cannot be tried or condemned for any crime save before the
-first presidency of the church. If he be found guilty on testimony that
-cannot be impeached, he is to be condemned.[55] These are the powers,
-prerogatives and privileges of the presiding bishop of the church.
-
-_IV. Traveling Bishops_:--These are bishops appointed to preside as
-such over large districts of country in which there are a number of
-branches of the church, and among which they would be expected to
-travel, to set in order temporal affairs and preside over those holding
-the Aaronic priesthood. Newel K. Whitney when called to preside over
-the church at Kirtland and the regions round about was a traveling
-bishop, and best illustrates this order of bishops. Some eight or ten
-months after his ordination he was called upon by the Lord to travel
-among all the churches of the east, searching after the poor, to
-administer to their wants by humbling the rich and the proud.[56] He
-was also sent to the cities of New York, Albany and Boston, to warn the
-inhabitants thereof of judgments to come and to preach the gospel.
-
-_V. Local or Ward Bishops_:--By local bishops we mean those ordained
-and set apart to preside over a single ward or branch of the church;
-and whose jurisdiction is strictly limited {320} to that ward or
-branch. Both traveling and local bishops must either be high priests
-or literal descendants of Aaron. If the latter, then from among the
-first-born of the sons of Aaron.[57] In the event of their being
-descendants of Aaron, they would possess the same privileges in their
-sphere as the presiding bishop does in his; that is, they could act
-without counselors but must be found worthy men designated and ordained
-by the first presidency of the church, or by their direction. If
-high priests appointed to act in these bishoprics, then they must be
-designated and set apart by the same authority as literal descendants
-of Aaron, and assisted by two counselors who are also high priests.
-They would form the presidency over the Aaronic priesthood in the
-districts over which they preside, have an oversight of all the
-temporal concerns thereof, and in addition to that act as the common
-judge in that ward or district assigned to them.
-
-7. Zion.--The Book of Mormon prophecies predict the founding of a
-glorious city upon the American continent to be called New Jerusalem,
-or Zion. [See note 4, end of section.][58] It was but natural,
-therefore, that the first elders of the church should be anxious to
-learn where it was to be built and seek to find it. The Book of Mormon,
-while clearly predicting that the city will be established, fails to
-give its location. In March, 1831, however, the Saints were commanded
-to gather {321} up their riches that they might purchase an inheritance
-that the Lord promised to point out to them some time in the future,
-the New Jerusalem--"a city of refuge, a place of safety for the Saints
-of the Most High" [59]--Zion. In June, 1831, a conference convened at
-Kirtland, and the Lord called twenty-eight elders to go through the
-Western States by different routes, two by two, preaching by the way,
-baptizing by water and the laying on of hands by the water side.[60]
-They were to meet in western Missouri to hold a conference, and if
-faithful the Lord promised to reveal to them the place of the city of
-Zion.
-
-8. About the middle of July the Prophet Joseph and a number of
-these brethren arrived at Independence, meeting with Oliver Cowdery and
-his associates--the mission to the Lamanites. A few days afterwards a
-revelation was received[61] declaring Missouri to be the land which God
-had appointed for the gathering of the Saints, the land of promise, the
-place of the city of Zion, Independence being the "center place." The
-site of the temple which the Lord has decreed shall be built in this
-generation, upon which his glory shall rest, and in which the sons of
-Moses and of Aaron shall offer an acceptable offering to the Lord--was
-declared to be a short distance west of the court house. On the morning
-of the 3rd of August, 1831, the Prophet Joseph with the other elders
-that had arrived at Independence, met at the temple site and dedicated
-it as the place for the building of a temple. [See notes 5 and 6, end
-of section].
-
-Meantime a company of Saints known as the Colesville Branch--from their
-having lived at Colesville, Broome County, New York--had arrived in
-Missouri, and having received instructions to purchase the lands in the
-regions round about Zion, they secured a tract of land in a fertile
-prairie some ten or twelve miles west of Independence, in Kaw township,
-not {322} far from the present location of Kansas City. On the 2nd
-of August--the day preceding the dedication of the temple site--in
-the settlement of the Colesville Saints, the first log was laid for
-a house, as the foundation of Zion. The log was carried by twelve
-men in honor of the Twelve Tribes of Israel; and Elder Sidney Rigdon
-consecrated and dedicated the land of Zion for the gathering of the
-Saints. [See note 7, end of section].
-
-9. The Law of Consecration.--It is said of the early Christian
-saints that they "were of one heart and of one soul; neither said any
-of them that aught of the things which he possessed was his own; but
-they had all things common." [62] It was doubtless a desire to imitate
-this condition of affairs which led the followers of Sidney Rigdon, at
-Kirtland, to establish the "common stock" plan of living. That is, the
-whole community attempted to live together as one family, having all
-things in common. Nearly all the "family" joined the church; and when
-the Prophet settled in Kirtland, about the 1st of February, 1831, he
-persuaded them to abandon that plan of living, for the more perfect law
-of the Lord. [63] The more perfect law was the law of consecration.
-
-10. The preparations for the introduction of this law was first
-made by the appointment of a bishop, who should have authority to
-administer in temporal things. The bishop was called by revelation on
-the 4th of February, 1831.[64] On the 9th of the same month the Lord
-in a revelation gave the first {323} instructions about the law of
-consecration.[65] From that and subsequent revelations we summarize the
-following in relation to that law:
-
-I. The person desiring to make the consecration brings his possessions
-to the bishop and delivers them unto him--consecrates them unto the
-Lord, giving them up absolutely, with a deed and a covenant that cannot
-be broken.[66]
-
-II. The person so consecrating his possessions, whether they be much
-or little, if it be a full consecration, has claim upon the bishop
-for stewardship out of the consecrated properties of the church, an
-inheritance for himself and his family,[67] from the management of
-which, by industry and economy--for this law contemplates industry
-and economy on the part of those who embrace it[68]--they may obtain
-a livelihood. But the possessions consecrated are the Lord's, or else
-the consecrations are vain, and the whole proceedings farcical.[69] The
-inheritance given to the individual is given to him as his stewardship,
-of which he must render an account unto the bishop.[70] The steward
-is responsible for his stewardship in time and in eternity unto the
-Lord.[71] The stewardships are to be secured to those to whom they
-are given by a written deed, that they may not be deprived of their
-inheritance.[72]
-
-III. After men have received their stewardships the income from
-them, over and above that which is needful for the support {324} of
-themselves and their families, is also to be consecrated unto the
-Lord and taken to the Lord's store house to be distributed to the
-poor to supply stewardships to those who have not yet received them,
-to purchase lands for the public benefit, to build houses of worship,
-temples, etc., etc.[73]
-
-IV. In the event of any steward needing means to improve his
-stewardship, or for any other righteous purpose, he has a claim upon
-the Lord's store-house, and so long as he is in full fellowship with
-the church, and is a wise and faithful steward, on application to the
-treasurer of the general fund, he is to be supplied with that which he
-needs; the treasurer, of course, being accountable to the church for
-his management of the general fund, and subject to removal in the event
-of incompetency or transgression.[74]
-
-V. Each steward is independent in the management of his stewardship.
-He must pay for that which he buys; he can insist on payment for that
-which he sells. He has no claim upon the stewardship of his neighbor;
-his neighbor has no claim upon his stewardship; but both have claim,
-as also have their children--when they shall become of age and start
-in life for themselves[75]--upon the surplus in the Lord's store-house
-to aid them in the event of their needing assistance.[76] The various
-churches, or branches of the church, are each to be independent in
-the management of their respective store-houses,[77] subject of {325}
-course to a general supervision of the presiding bishop of the church
-and of the first presidency thereof.
-
-11. Reflections.--Such is the law of consecration and stewardship
-given to the church as early as the first and second year of its
-existence in this last dispensation; under which law, and under no
-other, the Saints are to build up the Zion of God, the New Jerusalem
-upon this continent.[78] The law is designated to humble the rich
-and the proud and raise the poor and the lowly,[79] that men might
-be equal in temporal possessions according to their families, their
-circumstances, their wants and their needs.[80] There is enough in
-the earth and more than enough[81] to supply the necessities and
-the reasonable luxuries desired by man if the wealth created by his
-industry was but more equally distributed. The plan which the Lord has
-revealed to accomplish this, however, does not aim at the destruction
-of the individuality of men. It makes no attempt to control men in the
-detail management of their stewardships, or the disposal of their time,
-or to set taskmasters over them, but only to control and dispose of the
-surplus arising from their labors in the management of their respective
-stewardships.
-
-12. In consequence of the unsettled state of the church arising
-from the persecutions and drivings inflicted upon the Saints during the
-time they were settling in Missouri, coupled with their inexperience,
-their pride, covetousness, greed and disobedience, they failed to live
-up to the requirements of the law of consecration, and in 1838 the
-lesser law of tithing was given, and has obtained in the Church unto
-this day. This law of tithing requires that the Saints pay first their
-surplus property to the bishop, and after that those who have been so
-tithed shall pay one-tenth of their income annually. This is the law of
-tithing now binding on the church.[82]
-
-{326}
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Promises to the Lamanites.--Then shall the remnant of our
-seed know concerning us, how that we came out from Jerusalem, and that
-they are descendants of the Jews. And the gospel of Jesus Christ shall
-be declared among them; wherefore they shall be restored unto the
-knowledge of their fathers, and also to the knowledge of Jesus Christ,
-which was had among their fathers. And then shall they rejoice; for
-they shall know that it is a blessing unto them from the hand of God;
-and their scales of darkness shall begin to fall from their eyes; and
-many generations shall not pass away among them, save they shall be a
-white and delightsome people.--Prophecy of Nephi, Nephi II, ch. xxx.
-
-2. Newel K. Whitney's Appointment to be Bishop.--Though in
-natural gifts few men were better qualified for such a position, he
-nevertheless distrusted his ability, and deemed himself incapable of
-discharging the high and holy trust. In his perplexity he appealed to
-the prophet: "I cannot see a bishop in myself, Brother Joseph; but if
-you say it's the Lord's will, I'll try." "You need not take my word
-alone," answered the prophet, kindly, "go and ask Father for yourself."
-Newel felt the force of this mild rebuke, but determined to do as he
-was advised and seek to obtain the knowledge for himself. His humble,
-heartfelt prayer was answered. In the silence of night and the solitude
-of his own chamber, he heard a voice from heaven: "Thy strength is
-in me." The words were few and simple, but for him they had a world
-of meaning. His doubts were dispelled like the dew before the dawn.
-He straightway sought the prophet, told him he was satisfied and was
-willing to accept the office to which he had been called.
-
-3. The Sphere of the Aaronic Priesthood.--The lesser priesthood
-is a part of or an appendage to the greater, or the Melchisedek
-priesthood, and has power in administering outward ordinances. The
-lesser or Aaronic priesthood can make appointments for the greater,
-in preaching, can baptize, administer the sacrament, attend to the
-tithing, buy lands, settle people on possessions, divide inheritances,
-look after the poor, take care of the properties of the church, attend
-generally to temporal affairs, act as common judges in Israel and
-assist in ordinances of the temple, under the direction of the greater
-or Melchisedek priesthood. They hold the keys of the administering of
-angels and administer in outward ordinances, the letter of the gospel
-and the baptism of repentance for the remission of sins.--Items on
-Priesthood. John Taylor.
-
-4. Zion.--The word Zion is variously employed: "This is Zion, the
-pure in heart." (Doc. and Cov.) In this instance the word refers to
-a people who are declared to be the pure in heart. In the south part
-{327} of Jerusalem is a hill frequently spoken of in Jewish scripture
-as Zion, or Mount Zion. Then Enoch the seventh from Adam gathered the
-righteous and built a city, "that was called the city of Holiness, even
-Zion." The Lord in speaking to Enoch about the great events to take
-place in the last days, in which he would come to the earth in his
-glory, said He would with righteousness and truth sweep the earth as
-with a flood to gather His elect to "an holy city * * * and it shall be
-called Zion, a new Jerusalem." The Nephite prophet, Moroni, tells us
-that Ether in vision saw the days of the coming of the Son of Man and
-that "he spake concerning a new Jerusalem upon this land" (America),
-that was to be built up unto the remnant of the seed of Joseph (Ether
-xiii). Jesus also after his resurrection, when he visited the Nephites
-on the American continent, told them that he would establish them upon
-this land, and if the Gentiles would not harden their hearts, but would
-repent of their sins, they should be included in the covenant, and
-should assist in building up the city of Zion, or New Jerusalem (III
-Nephi: xx). The word Zion, then, is applied to a people; it is the name
-of a hill in the south part of Jerusalem; it is the name of a city
-built by Enoch and his people; it is to be the name of a city built
-in the last days by the Saints of the Most High upon the continent of
-America.--Missouri Persecutions.
-
-5. Western Missouri (1831).--It was a country whose richness and
-fertility of soil far surpassed anything which they [the Saints] had
-ever before seen. It was a country abounding with springs and rivulets
-of the purest kind of water, whose crystal streams flowed in luxuriant
-abundance in almost every grove and prairie. A great variety of the
-most excellent timber bordered upon the rivers and water-courses.
-These shady and delightful groves were from one to three miles in
-width, extending many miles in length, while the rich rolling prairies,
-covered with a gorgeous profusion of wild flowers of every varied
-hue, lay spread around among the intervening groves. Their grassy
-surfaces extending for miles, presented the delightful appearance of a
-sea of meadows. It was a new country; but few inhabitants had as yet
-formed settlements within its borders. These consisted principally of
-emigrants from the Southern States.--Orson Pratt.
-
-6. The Temple Site.--Taking the road running west from the court
-house for a scant half mile, you come to the summit of a crowning
-hill, the slope of which to the south and west is quite abrupt and
-very gradual toward the north and east. * * * This is the temple site.
-It was upon this spot on the third day of August, 1831, that Joseph
-Smith, Sidney Rigdon, Edward Partridge, W. W. Phelps, Oliver Cowdery,
-Martin Harris and Joseph Coe and another person whose name I cannot
-learn, for there were eight in all--men in whom the Lord was well
-pleased, assembled to dedicate this place as the {328} temple site in
-Zion. The eighty-seventh Psalm was read. Joseph [the prophet] then
-dedicated the spot where is to be built a temple on which the glory of
-God shall rest. Yea the great God hath so decreed it, saying "Verily,
-this generation shall not all pass away until an house shall be built
-unto the Lord, and a cloud shall rest upon it, which cloud shall be
-even the glory of the Lord, which shall fill the house. * * * And the
-sons of Moses, and also the sons of Aaron shall offer an acceptable
-offering and sacrifice in the house of the Lord, which house shall
-be built unto the Lord in this generation upon the consecrated spot
-as I have appointed." (Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxiv: 5, 31.)--Missouri
-Persecutions--Roberts.
-
-7. The Founding of Zion.--Thus the work of building up Zion
-commenced, and though the commencement was humble in the extreme, the
-final result shall be the erection of a city that shall be the crowning
-glory of the whole earth; a city from which shall go forth the law of
-the Lord unto all nations, for is it not written: "Out of Zion shall
-go forth the law" (Isaiah ii)? It shall be a city of refuge, for the
-Lord has said: "Every man who will not take up his sword against his
-neighbor, must needs flee to Zion for safety." The wicked will consider
-her inhabitants terrible, while the righteous out of every nation will
-come into it with songs of everlasting joy in their hearts. (Doc. and
-Cov., sec. xlv.)--Missouri Persecutions--Roberts.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. When and under what circumstances was the first mission appointed to
-the Lamanites?
-
-2. What important circumstance occurred in the experience of the
-Lamanite mission en route for the west?
-
-3. What success attended the mission to the Lamanites?
-
-4. When was the first commandment given to the Church to gather?
-
-5. To what place did the church first gather?
-
-6. Who was the first Bishop in the church?
-
-7. What was his character?
-
-8. State what you can of the sphere of labor belonging to the bishopric.
-
-9. What can you say of bishops as judges in Israel?
-
-10. How many kinds of bishops are there?
-
-11. Tell what you can of the authority, rights and powers of the
-presiding bishop of the church.
-
-12. What difference exists in respect to a bishop who is a literal
-{329} descendant of Aaron and one who holds the office by virtue of
-holding the high priesthood?
-
-13. Is being a descendant of the first-born among the sons of Aaron all
-sufficient to qualify a man to be a bishop?
-
-14. What is the exception to the rule that a bishop who is a literal
-descendant of Aaron can act without counselors?
-
-15. Describe traveling Bishops.
-
-16. Give an example of such a bishop in the Church.
-
-17. What is meant by local bishops?
-
-18. Describe their power and jurisdiction.
-
-19. How did the first elders of the church learn that Zion was to be
-built in America?
-
-20. What various significations are attached to the word Zion? (Note 4).
-
-21. What circumstances led a number of the elders to western Missouri?
-
-22. What was revealed to them there?
-
-23. Where is Zion located?
-
-24. Describe the land of Zion. (Note 5).
-
-25. What promises are made respecting a temple in that land? (Note 6).
-
-26. What caused the people in Kirtland before they heard the gospel to
-have all things in common?
-
-27. What course did Joseph Smith take relative to this subject? (Note).
-
-28. In what way were the people prepared for the introduction of the
-law of consecration?
-
-29. Describe the law of consecration.
-
-30. What purposes are designed to be accomplished in the law of
-consecration?
-
-31. What circumstances prevented the successful operation of this law
-in Missouri?
-
-{330}
-
-
-
-SECTION IV.
-
-1. Persecution.--From the very commencement the work of the Lord
-in these last days met with the most violent opposition. No sooner did
-Joseph Smith declare that he had received a revelation from God than it
-brought upon him the ridicule and wrath of many who heard of it. The
-stream of hatred grew broader and deeper as the work progressed. Joseph
-himself endured many vexatious persecutions, and those who believed in
-his teachings were doomed to share them. The first general persecution
-of the church, however, occurred in Missouri.
-
-2. The people among whom the Saints settled in Jackson county,
-Missouri, were ignorant, jealous, bigoted, and superstitious. They were
-also given to Sabbath-breaking, drunkenness, profanity, horse racing
-and gambling. It will be seen at once, therefore, that there could be
-but little fellowship between them and the Saints. (See note 1, end of
-section.) Moreover, they were principally from the Southern states, and
-slaveholders; and as the Saints were from the free states of the north,
-they were inclined to be suspicious of them. It was an easy matter
-therefore, for demagogues to persuade the Missourians that it was the
-design of the Saints to supplant them in the possession of the country.
-
-3. Expulsion of the Saints from Jackson County.--The saints
-themselves were not as prudent as they should have been. Many boasted
-that God would destroy the wicked and give their possessions as
-inheritances unto the righteous. {331} Many more failed to live up to
-the moral precepts of the gospel, and were disobedient to the counsels
-of the Lord. This gave the wicked great power over them, and the result
-was that the jealously and wrath which had been burning for some time
-in the hearts of the old settlers finally broke out into deeds of
-violence. Almost the entire population about Independence arose and
-drove the Saints from the county under circumstances of the utmost
-cruelty.[83] Twelve hundred people were driven from their possessions;
-and about two hundred of their homes and one grist mill were burned.
-This was in the fall and winter of 1833-34. [See note 2, end of
-section.]
-
-4. Zion's Camp.--The excited Saints found a temporary abode in
-Clay County--the next county north of Jackson--and in the meantime the
-Lord commanded the Prophet Joseph to gather up the strength of the
-Lord's house--the young and middle-aged men in the church--for the
-purpose of going to the assistance of their brethren in Missouri, and
-to redeem Zion.[84] In the spring of 1834, therefore, about one hundred
-and fifty of the brethren from the churches in the eastern states
-assembled at New Portage, Ohio, about fifty miles from Kirtland; and
-this number was increased to about two hundred by the time the camp
-reached Missouri. They took with them money to purchase lands, food
-and clothing to assist their destitute brethren, and it was also the
-determination of the camp to help their exiled friends maintain their
-possessions when the governor of Missouri re-instated them upon their
-lands.[85] But en route to Missouri the brethren did not live up to the
-requirement made of the camp. Some of them were disobedient, {332} even
-rebellious towards the prophet, and the Lord was not well pleased with
-them.
-
-5. As the camp approached Jackson county it was met by
-delegations inquiring into their designs for approaching Jackson
-county. Various reports had been spread abroad in respect to their
-intentions, and some of them were of a character to create alarm. In
-order to correct these false reports the brethren made the following
-statement:
-
- In the first place it is not our intention to commit hostilities
- against any man, or set of men; it is not our intention to injure
- any man's person or property except in defending ourselves. * * *
- It is our intention to go back upon our lands in Jackson county by
- order of the executive of the state, if possible. We have brought
- our arms with us for the purpose of self-defense, as it is well
- known to almost every man of the state, we have every reason to put
- ourselves in an attitude of defense, considering the abuse we have
- suffered in Jackson county. We are anxious for a settlement of the
- difficulties existing between us, upon honorable and constitutional
- principles.[86]
-
-6. The brethren also made a proposition to submit their losses to
-a committee of impartial arbitrators, and another to buy out those of
-the old settlers who could not live with them. But before matters were
-brought to an investigation and adjustment the Lord in a revelation to
-the prophet,[87] gave instructions which led to the abandonment of any
-attempt at that time to redeem Zion.
-
-7. The Lord in this revelation declared that Zion might have
-been redeemed by that time, had it not been for the transgressions
-of his Saints. They had not been obedient to the requirements made
-of them. They had withheld their means, and in their hearts had said
-concerning the Saints in Zion, "Where is their God? Behold he will
-deliver them in time of trouble, otherwise we will not go up unto Zion,
-and we will keep our {333} moneys." Besides these evidences of a want
-of faith, they lacked that unity required by the law of the celestial
-kingdom, and it is only through the observance of that law that Zion
-can be redeemed. The Lord, therefore, commanded the elders to wait
-a season for the redemption of Zion, until the Saints should obtain
-more experience, learn obedience, and until means could be raised
-to purchase all the lands in Jackson county that could be purchased
-and also in the surrounding counties; and until the Lord's army had
-become very great, and sanctified before him. And when this was done
-the Lord promised to hold his people guiltless in taking possession of
-that which was their own; and they should possess it forever. He had
-permitted the elders composing the camp to come thus far, for a trial
-of their faith; and now he had prepared a great endowment for them in
-the house which he had commanded to be built in Kirtland. Those who
-could stay in Missouri were to do so, but those who had left their
-families in the east were at liberty to return. In obedience to the
-commandment to await for a season the redemption of Zion, the Camp of
-Zion was disbanded early in the morning of the 25th of June. A number
-remained in Missouri, but the most of the camp returned to the east.
-
-8. Relieved now of the immediate responsibility of redeeming
-Zion, the brethren who returned from Missouri and the churches in the
-east devoted their attention to building up Kirtland as a stake of
-Zion, and completing the temple, the foundation of which had been laid
-about a year before.[88] The declaration of the Lord in that revelation
-given on Fishing river, Missouri, to the effect that he had prepared
-a great endowment for the faithful elders in the house which he had
-commanded them to build in Kirtland, hastened the work, as they were
-anxious to receive those spiritual blessings.
-
-9. High Councils.--Meantime the Lord had given many {334}
-important revelations in respect to the priesthood and the organization
-of the church. In February, 1834--a few months previous to Zion's
-Camp starting for Missouri--the first high council of the church was
-organized. This council was appointed by revelation for the purpose of
-settling important difficulties that might arise in the church, and
-which could not be settled in the bishops' courts to the satisfaction
-of the parties.
-
-10. The high council is composed of twelve high priests, presided
-over by one or three presidents, as circumstances may determine. The
-high council cannot act unless seven of its members are present; but
-seven have the power to appoint other high priests to act temporarily
-in the place of absent councilors. Whenever a high council is
-organized, the twelve members draw lots for their places. Those who
-draw the even numbers--two, four, six, eight, ten, twelve--are to stand
-in behalf of the accused; those drawing the odd numbers in behalf
-of the accuser. In every case the accused has a right to half the
-council to prevent injury or injustice. The councilors who represent
-the accused and accuser respectively, do not become partisans bent on
-winning their case irrespective of its righteousness or justice; on
-the contrary, every man is to speak according to equity and truth; and
-aside from that is merely to see that each party to the issue involved
-has justice accorded him, and that he be not subjected to insult or
-injury. [Note 3, end of section.]
-
-11. Whenever the council convenes to act on any case, the twelve
-councilors are to consider whether it is very difficult or not. If
-it be not a difficult case, then only two of the councilors, one for
-the accused and accuser respectively, are appointed to speak. But if
-the case is accounted difficult, then four are appointed to speak; if
-still more difficult, six; but in no case are more than six to speak.
-In all cases both the accuser and accused are to have the privilege of
-speaking for themselves, {335} after the evidence is all in and the
-councilors appointed to speak have all spoken.
-
-12. The evidence all in, the speakers for the accused and the
-accuser having spoken, as also the accused and the accuser, the
-president gives a decision according to the understanding he has of
-the case and calls upon the twelve councilors to sustain it by vote.
-But should the councilors who have not spoken, or any one of them,
-discover an error in the decision of the president, they have the
-right to manifest it and the case has a re-hearing. If after a careful
-re-hearing, additional light is thrown upon the case, the decision
-is altered accordingly. "But in case no additional light is given,
-the first decision shall stand, the majority of the council having
-power to determine the same." [89] Such are the general outlines of the
-organization of a high council and the manner of procedure before it.
-[Notes 4 and 5, end of section.]
-
-13. Different Kinds of High Councils.--There are three kinds of
-high councils in the church. They are similar in organization, and the
-manner of procedure is practically the same before them all; but they
-differ in authority and jurisdiction.
-
-_I. The Traveling High Council_.--This Council consists of the twelve
-apostles of Jesus Christ. They are a traveling presiding high council;
-and, laboring under the first presidency of the church, they have the
-right to build up the church, and regulate all the affairs of the
-same in all the world.[90] Whenever they sit as a high council, there
-is no appeal from their decisions--that is, they can only be called
-in question by the general authorities of the church in the event of
-transgression.[91]
-
-_II. The Standing High Councils at the Stakes of Zion_.--The church
-is divided into branches or wards with appropriate officers; and
-these branches, wards, and settlements of the Saints are grouped
-for convenience into stakes of Zion. In {336} each stake there is a
-standing high council, limited in its jurisdiction to the affairs of
-that particular stake where it is located.
-
-_III. Temporary High Councils_.--The high priests abroad, that is,
-outside of the organized stakes of Zion, whenever the parties to a
-difficulty, or either of them request it, and the high priests abroad
-deem the case of sufficient importance to justify such action, are
-authorized to organize a temporary high council to try the case,
-appointing one of their own number to preside over the council during
-its continuance. Otherwise the council is to be organized after the
-pattern and proceed in the same manner as those at the stakes of Zion.
-"It shall be the duty of said council to transmit immediately, a copy
-of its proceedings, with a full statement of the testimony accompanying
-their decision, to the high council of the seat of the first presidency
-of the church. Should the parties, or either of them, be dissatisfied
-with the decision of said council, they may appeal to the high
-council of the seat of the first presidency of the church, and have a
-re-hearing, which case shall then be conducted according to the former
-pattern written, as though no such decision had been made." [92]
-
-14. Organization of the Quorum of Twelve Apostles.--As early
-as June, 1829, the Lord revealed that there would be twelve especial
-witnesses or apostles called to preach the gospel to the nations of the
-earth. But it was not until several months after the prophet returned
-from the Zion's Camp expedition that such a quorum was organized. In
-the month of February, 1835, however, a general conference was called,
-and the three especial witnesses to the Book of Mormon selected the
-men--under the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, for they were appointed
-to that mission by revelation--who were to {337} constitute the quorum
-of the twelve apostles[93] or especial witnesses.
-
-15. Organization of Quorums of Seventies.--In the same
-month--February, 1835--the first quorum of seventies was organized
-by the Prophet Joseph and his two counselors and others. Shortly
-afterwards the second quorum was also organized. These quorums, as
-would be inferred from their being called seventies' quorums, consist
-of seventy men. Seven presidents preside over each quorum, and the
-first seven presidents--the presidents of the first quorum--preside
-over all the quorums of seventy in the church.
-
-16. About a month after the organization of these quorums--28th
-of March, 1835--a revelation was given,[94] in which the duties of the
-apostles and seventies are made clear, as well as the duties of other
-officers.[95] We have now, however, reached a point in the historical
-development of the church of Christ where we can consider it as a
-system of ecclesiastical government; and to that consideration the next
-section is devoted.
-
-{338}
-
-NOTES
-
-1. Character of the Old Settlers in Jackson County.--Speaking
-of his arrival in Independence and meeting with Oliver Cowdery and
-other brethren there, the Prophet Joseph says: "It seemed good and
-pleasant for brethren to meet together in unity. But our reflections
-were great, coming as we had from a highly cultivated state of society
-in the East, and standing now upon the confines and western limits
-of the United States, and looking into the vast wilderness of those
-that sat in darkness; how natural it was to observe the degradation,
-leanness of intellect, ferocity and jealousy of a people that were
-nearly a century behind the time and to feel for those who roamed about
-without the benefit of civilization, refinement or religion; yea, and
-to exclaim in the language of the prophets, 'when will the wilderness
-blossom as a rose? When will Zion be built up in her glory, and where
-will thy temple stand, unto which all nations shall come in the last
-days?'"--Missouri Persecutions--Roberts.
-
-2. Persecution in Jackson County.--The month of November, 1833,
-was big with important events for the members of the Church in Jackson
-County. That month witnessed the expulsion of twelve hundred American
-citizens from their homes which they had purchased from the general
-government. The events of that month branded the sovereign state of
-Missouri with an infamy that will cling to her as long as the name
-is remembered on earth or in heaven; and when her officials of that
-period shall stand before the bar of God, gouts of blood will be found
-on their ministerial vestments--it will be the stain, too, of innocent
-blood! * * * Early in the spring the mob burned the houses belonging
-to the Saints. According to the testimony of Lyman Wight (_Times and
-Seasons_ for 1843, p. 264), two hundred and three dwelling houses and
-one grist mill were so destroyed.--Missouri Persecutions--Roberts.
-
-3. Fair Dealing in High Councils.--The council should try no case
-without both parties being present, or having had an opportunity to
-be present; neither should they hear one party's complaint before his
-case is brought up for trial; neither should they suffer the character
-of any one to be exposed before the high council without the person
-being present and ready to defend him or herself; that the minds of the
-councilors be not prejudiced for or against any one whose case they may
-possibly have to act upon.--Joseph Smith, Hist. under date of July 11,
-1840.
-
-4. Order in High Councils.--In ancient days councils were
-conducted with strict propriety; no one was allowed to whisper, be
-weary, leave the room or get uneasy in the least until the voice of
-the Lord by revelation, or the voice of the council by the spirit was
-obtained. * * * It was understood in ancient days that if one man {339}
-could stay in the council, another could; and if the president could
-spend his time, the members could also.--Joseph Smith, Hist. under date
-of Feb. 12, 1834.
-
-5. Just Judgment Demanded in High Councils.--No man is capable
-of judging a matter in council unless his own heart is pure; and we
-frequently are so filled with prejudice, or have a beam in our own eye,
-that we are not capable of passing right decisions. * * * Our acts are
-rendered, and at a future day they will be laid before us; and if we
-should fail to judge right, and injure our fellow beings, they may be
-there perhaps, and condemn us. There they are of great consequence, and
-to me the consequence appears to be of force beyond anything which I am
-able to express.--Joseph Smith, Hist. under date of Feb. 12, 1834.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What can you say of the opposition which the work of God has met
-with in these last days?
-
-2. Where did the first general persecution begin?
-
-3. What was the character of the people in western Missouri? (Note.)
-
-4. Relate the expulsion of the Saints from Jackson county.
-
-5. What event brought Zion's Camp into existence?
-
-6. Relate its history.
-
-7. What prevented Zion's Camp from redeeming Zion?
-
-8. When was the first high council organized?
-
-9. For what purpose are such councils organized?
-
-10. Describe the high council.
-
-11. What are the privileges of the accused and accuser before the
-council?
-
-12. What rule obtains as to the decision of the president of the
-council?
-
-13. What is to be the course of the high council in respect to
-deportment, fair dealing and judgment? (See notes 3, 4 and 5.)
-
-14. How many kinds of high councils are there?
-
-15. Describe each.
-
-16. When did the Lord first reveal that there would be a quorum of
-twelve apostles called?
-
-17. When and in what manner were the members of this quorum selected?
-
-18. When were seventies' quorums first organized?
-
-19. State what you can concerning the presidency of the seventies'
-quorums.
-
-{340}
-
-
-
-SECTION V.
-
-1. Priesthood.--Priesthood is power which God gives to man,
-by which man becomes an agent of God; an authorized officer in his
-kingdom, with the right and power to teach the laws of the kingdom, and
-administer the ordinances by which foreigners and aliens are admitted
-to citizenship. It gives man the right and power to act in God's
-stead--thus, If a man endowed with the proper degree of the priesthood
-takes one who believes the gospel and baptizes him for the remission
-of sins in the name of the Father, Son and Holy Ghost, the act of
-that authorized servant of God is just as valid as if the Lord Jesus
-Christ himself did it, and remission of sins will follow. So also if
-an authorized servant of God lays on hands to impart the Holy Ghost,
-the Holy Ghost will be given, inasmuch as all is done as the law of the
-Lord directs. So in preaching, exhorting, warning; whether it be by
-God's own voice, or the voice of his servants, it is the same.[96] Man
-through receiving the priesthood becomes God's agent; and the Lord is
-bound to recognize the ministrations of his agents so long as they act
-in accordance with the terms by which they hold that agency. Such is
-priesthood.
-
-2. Spirit of Government by the Priesthood.--The government of the
-priesthood is exercised through the channels of love, knowledge and
-righteousness. The rights of the priesthood are inseparably connected
-with the powers of heaven, and the powers of heaven can only be
-controlled upon the principles of righteousness.[97] No power can or
-ought to be maintained {341} by virtue of the priesthood, only by persuasion,
-by long-suffering, by gentleness and meekness and by love unfeigned;
-by kindness and pure knowledge, which shall greatly enlarge the soul
-without hypocrisy and without guile; reproving betimes with sharpness,
-when moved upon by the Holy Ghost; and then showing forth afterwards
-an increase of love, lest those reproved esteem those reproving as
-enemies.[98] Such is the spirit of government under the priesthood: it
-may be summed up in this: men are to be taught correct principles and
-then govern themselves.[99]
-
-3. The Church.--From the gospel and the priesthood comes
-the church. The church is the medium through which the gospel is
-promulgated--by which it is made known among the children of men. It
-is the system of government by which those who accept the gospel are
-controlled in things religious. It is the government of God on earth
-pertaining to religious affairs. The Lord had clothed it with his
-authority, which is his power; and it hath authority not only to teach
-the gospel, but to execute its laws, and inflict the penalties attached
-to a violation thereof--at least so far as dealing with the membership
-of trangressors is concerned; as for other penalties {342} that will
-fall upon the violators of divine law, the Father hath reserved that
-to himself, and will in his own time and way vindicate his own laws,
-having due regard to the relative claims of justice and mercy. The
-authority of the church comes from the priesthood, and may be said
-to be the collected authority of all the quorums of the priesthood
-combined--the aggregation of God's authority in the earth, in relation
-to things religious. Such is the church.
-
-4. Divisions of the Priesthood.--In the church of Christ there
-are two grand divisions of priesthood; or rather its powers are
-grouped under two great heads--for all priesthood comes from God,
-is power from him, and therefore cannot properly be regarded as two
-different priesthoods.[100] The two divisions of priesthood are
-named respectively the Melchisedek priesthood[101] and the Aaronic
-priesthood.[102] The Melchisedek priesthood ministers more especially
-in spiritual things; it holds the keys of all the spiritual blessings
-of the church, is entitled to receive the mysteries of the kingdom
-of heaven, to commune with the church of the First Born, and enjoy
-the communion and presence of God the Father, and his Son Jesus
-Christ.[103] The Aaronic priesthood ministers more especially in
-temporal things; it holds the keys, however, of the ministering of
-angels and the baptism of repentance for the remission of sins.[104]
-
-5. Officers of the Priesthood.--The officers of the Melchisedek
-{343} priesthood are apostles, seventies, patriarchs, high priests,
-elders. The officers of the Aaronic priesthood are bishops, priests,
-teachers, deacons. Of necessity there are presidents, or presiding
-officers growing out of, or appointed from among those who are ordained
-to the several offices in these two priesthoods.[105]
-
-6. Presidencies in the Melchisedek Priesthood--First
-Presidency.--Since of necessity there are presiding officers growing
-out of the priesthood, there is a president appointed from the high
-priesthood to preside over that priesthood, he is called president
-of the high priesthood of the church; or, the presiding high priest
-over the high priesthood of the church.[106] This president of the
-high priesthood also presides over the whole church; he is a seer, a
-revelator, a translator and a prophet, having all the gifts of God
-which he bestows upon the head of the church.[107] Two other high
-priests[108] associated with the president of the high priesthood as
-counselors, all being appointed and ordained to that office, and upheld
-by the confidence, faith and prayer of the church, form the quorum of
-the first presidency of the church,[109] and they preside over all
-quorums, over Zion and all the stakes thereof; over all wards and
-branches and missions of the church in all the world. The president in
-his quorum is to be like unto Moses,[110] therefore he is the prophet
-and law-giver unto the church--the mouthpiece of God unto it.
-
-7. The Traveling Presiding High Council.--The twelve apostles,
-or special witnesses of the name of Christ in all the world, are
-a traveling, presiding high council, and have {344} the power to
-officiate in the name of the Lord, under the direction of the first
-presidency of the church, to build up the church and regulate all
-the affairs of the same in all nations. In all large branches of
-the church, or the stakes of Zion, they are authorized to ordain
-patriarchs, as they may be designated unto them by revelation; it
-is the duty of the twelve also to ordain and set in order all other
-officers in the church. These twelve apostles form the second general
-presiding quorum in the church, and are equal in authority and power to
-the quorum of the first presidency.[111]
-
-8. The Presiding Quorum of Seventy.--The seventy are appointed
-to act in the name of the Lord under the direction of the traveling
-high council in building up the church and regulating all the affairs
-of the same in all nations.[112] The quorum of seventy is presided
-over by seven presidents, and the senior of the seven--that is, the
-senior by ordination, not by age--presides over the six. This quorum
-is equal in authority to the traveling high council--the quorum of the
-twelve apostles.[113] In addition to presiding over the first quorum of
-seventy--to which quorum they belong--the first seven presidents were
-authorized in the beginning to choose other seventy, besides the first,
-until seven times seventy had been chosen--if the labor in the ministry
-required it[114]--and preside over them. Each quorum has its council of
-seven presidents; but the first seven presidents preside over all these
-quorums and all their presidents. The seventies are special witnesses
-for the Lord in all the world,[115] and are especially chosen to preach
-the gospel abroad; the responsibility of declaring the great {345}
-message of God unto the world rests upon them particularly, laboring,
-of course, under the direction of the twelve; and the twelve are to
-call upon the seventy in preference to any others when they have need
-of assistance to fill the calls for preaching and administering the
-gospel.[116]
-
-9. We have spoken of these three quorums being equal in
-authority; but every decision made by either of them, in order to make
-such decision of the same power or validity one with the other, must
-be by unanimous voice of the respective quorums; that is every member
-in each quorum must be agreed to its decisions, or such decisions are
-not entitled to the same blessings as the decisions of the quorum
-of the first presidency. When circumstances render it impossible to
-be otherwise, a majority may form a quorum.[117] The decisions of
-these quorums of course are to be made in righteousness, in holiness
-and lowliness of heart. If so made there is no appeal from their
-decision; but in case that any decision of these quorums is made in
-unrighteousness, it may then be brought before a general assembly of
-the several quorums of the priesthood which constitute the spiritual
-authorities of the church.
-
-10. Patriarchs.--These officers hold the keys of blessings in
-the church. The order of this priesthood was confirmed to be handed
-down from father to son, and rightly belongs to the literal descendants
-of the chosen seed, to whom the promises were made.[118] There is one
-general and a number of local patriarchs in the church. The first is
-patriarch to the whole church, and he may minister in any branch or
-stake in it, his jurisdiction in blessing the people being co-extensive
-with the church. He holds the keys of the patriarchal blessings upon
-the heads of all the Lord's people. And whomsoever he blesses shall
-be blessed, and whomsoever he curses shall be cursed; and whatsoever
-he binds on earth shall be bound in {346} heaven; and whatsoever he
-looses on earth shall be loosed in heaven.[119] He holds the sealing
-blessings of the church, "even the Holy Spirit of promise," whereby
-men are sealed up unto the day of redemption; that they may not fall,
-notwithstanding the hour of temptation that may come upon them.[120]
-The local patriarchs referred to above are patriarchs appointed and
-ordained by the apostles to hold and exercise the powers of giving
-patriarchal blessings to the Saints within the branches and stakes of
-Zion in which they are appointed to minister in this calling, but they
-are not to minister outside of their respective districts. Hence they
-call them local patriarchs. They possess the same powers in blessing
-within the district where they are appointed to labor as the general
-patriarch of the church does in his wider sphere.
-
-11. High Priests.--The quorums of high priests are designed to
-qualify those who shall be appointed standing presidents over different
-stakes in Zion, and abroad.[121] They may travel and preach the gospel
-if they choose, for high priests have power to preach and administer
-all the ordinances of the gospel; but their calling is more especially
-to preside. To them belongs the sphere of presidency of government in
-the church. From these quorums, so far as the most suitable men can
-be found in them, are chosen men to act as bishops--where no literal
-descendant of Aaron can be found,--the bishops' counselors; presidents
-of stakes and their counselors; and also high counselors. When men
-more suitable for these positions are found in other quorums of the
-priesthood, then they are ordained high priests, and appointed to the
-presiding positions enumerated. In every stake there is a high priests'
-quorum, presided over by a president and two counselors. There is no
-specific number necessary to form a quorum of high priests, the quorum
-includes all high priests within a stake or branch where it exists, be
-they {347} many or few. The quorum organization is for convenience,
-for discipline, and for training its members in the art of government.
-Since to the high priests belongs the sphere of government, we know of
-no position in the church which calls for higher qualities of heart
-and mind than that of high priests. It is an office that requires the
-combination of wisdom and executive ability, a combination the rarest
-among men. The world has had untold thousands of learned men and
-orators, and multitudes of men with special great gifts; but it has had
-comparatively few blessed with that combination of gifts which makes
-men successful rulers; and yet those qualities which make men rulers
-are the qualities to be looked for and developed in high priests.
-
-12. Elders.--Elder is the lowest office in the Melchisedek
-Priesthood. It is an office that is an appendage to the Melchisedek
-Priesthood.[122] Yet the Elder has the power to preach the gospel,
-baptize, lay on hands for the Holy Ghost, administer the sacrament, and
-preside when there is no high priest present.[123] Ninety-six Elders
-constitute a quorum.[124] The quorum is presided over by a president
-and two counselors, whose duty it is to instruct them in the duties of
-their office. There may be any number of quorums of Elders in a branch
-or stake of Zion, as there is no limit whatsoever in the revelations.
-The elders constitute a standing ministry in Zion and her stakes.[125]
-They are not under obligations to travel abroad as the seventies are;
-but may be called upon to preside from time to time as circumstances
-may require.[126]
-
-13. Presidencies in the Aaronic Priesthood.--The Aaronic
-priesthood, as already remarked,[127] has to do more especially with
-the temporal affairs of the church; and the general {348} presidency
-of it is the presiding bishopric of the church. The local bishops in
-like manner preside over the Aaronic priesthood within their respective
-districts. The powers, rights, duties and responsibilities of the
-bishops have been treated at some length in Section III, Part IV, under
-the caption THE BISHOPRIC, and to the paragraphs on that subject the
-student is directed.
-
-14. Priests.--Forty-eight Priests of the Aaronic order of
-priesthood constitute a quorum. The president of this quorum is to be a
-bishop, for that is one of the duties of his calling to sit in council
-with this quorum and teach the members thereof their duties.[128] There
-is no limit to the number of quorums of priests in the church; there
-may be such a quorum in every ward or branch.
-
-15. Teachers.--Twenty-four Teachers constitute a quorum. They
-are presided over by a president and two counselors, who are to teach
-them the duties of their office.[129]
-
-16. Deacons--Twelve deacons form a quorum. The quorum is presided
-over by a president and two counselors, who are to instruct them in
-the duties of their office.[130] The offices of teacher and deacon are
-appendages[131] to the Aaronic priesthood, as the office of elder and
-bishop are appendages to the Melchisedek priesthood.[132] What is meant
-by appendage to the priesthood is an addition to the regular quorums
-of the priesthood. When so added they become part of the organization
-but in a subordinate way. Then elders may assist high priests in their
-duties when called upon, and may officiate in their stead when there is
-no high priest present; but when the high priest is present the elder
-has no right to act in his stead unless called upon. The teacher may
-assist the priest in his duties, as the deacon may assist the teacher
-in his duty,[133] but {349} in that event the lesser quorums act in
-subordination to the ones they are authorized to assist. They were
-quorums added to the regular organization of the priesthood, when the
-duties were so multiplied that the higher and regular quorums could
-not discharge them. By creating these appendages to the priesthood men
-could be called into requisition whose wisdom and experience would
-not justify placing upon them all the authority with the accompanying
-responsibility of the higher offices of the priesthood.
-
-17. Territorial Division of the Church.--The church in relation
-to the territory it occupies, for convenience in government, is divided
-into stakes of Zion, wards and branches.
-
-_I. Stakes_.--A stake of Zion is a division of the church territorially
-that embraces several wards and branches. There is no set number of
-wards or branches necessary to constitute a stake. That is arranged
-according to convenience. The stake is presided over by a president,
-who is a high priest, assisted by two other high priests as counselors.
-They constitute the presidency of the stake, and preside over the
-organizations in that stake much in the same way that the president of
-the church presides over the entire church; but is subject of course to
-the general authorities of the church.
-
-In each stake is a standing high council, over which the presidency
-of the stake--or the president or either one of the counselors, when
-circumstances render it impossible or inconvenient for all to be
-present--preside. This forms the highest judicial tribunal in the stake.
-
-One or more patriarchs are appointed to confer upon the people
-patriarchal blessings within the stake.
-
-The high priests are organized into a quorum with a presidency over
-them as already explained.[134]
-
-The elders are organized into one or more quorums, according {350} as
-they are numerous enough for one or a number of quorums;[135] and with
-the high priests constitute the standing ministry in the stake.
-
-_II. Wards_.--The stakes are divided into ecclesiastical wards,
-presided over by a bishopric, consisting of a bishop aided by two
-high priests as counselors unless the bishop is a literal descendant
-of Aaron, in which event he has authority to act as bishop without
-counselors.[136] The bishopric has a direct general presidency over the
-quorums of the lesser priesthood in his ward; and presides even over
-those holding the higher priesthood as members of his ward; but not
-over the quorums of the higher priesthood as quorums. The bishopric
-of a ward, like the bishopric of the church, has to do chiefly with
-temporal affairs; but in nearly all cases, in fact, so far as we know,
-in all cases at present in the church, the bishops are high priests
-acting in that capacity; and since in acting as bishops they do not
-lose their position as high priests they have a right to minister in
-both temporal and spiritual affairs. It may be well to remark, however,
-in passing, that wherein bishops do take the lead in spiritual concerns
-they do it by virtue of the high priesthood which they hold, which is
-the proper authority to act in spiritual matters.
-
-The ward officers consist of a quorum of priests, of teachers and of
-deacons. Their powers and duties have already been explained.[137] They
-labor under the direction of the bishop, and are the standing ministers
-within the ward, to be with and watch over the church to see that each
-member thereof does his duty and that no iniquity is allowed to creep
-into the church, to corrupt it. At present in many wards there are not
-enough men to fill up the quorums of the lesser priesthood, and members
-of the high priesthood are frequently found officiating as teachers,
-etc.
-
-{351} Each ward is divided up into teachers' districts, and two
-teachers appointed to take charge of each district, and visit every
-family and member within it, to see that all are doing their duty;
-that they live, so far as may be, in peace with all men; that they are
-prayerful; diligent in attending public worship; and that they are
-honest, sober and hold no hardness against their neighbors.
-
-_III. Branches_.--Branches are organizations established chiefly out
-in the world where there are no regularly organized stakes. The elders
-while abroad on missions in order to preserve in the faith those who
-receive the gospel, organize branches, set apart elders or priests
-to preside, and also ordain as many other elders, priests, teachers
-and deacons to assist the president of the branch as may be deemed
-necessary. These officers discharge the same duties in a branch that
-they would in a fully organized ward. Branches are also sometimes
-organized in outlying districts of large wards where there are not
-enough people to justify a complete ward organization, and yet the
-district is too far removed from the ward to permit the members living
-there to enjoy the advantages of the adjacent ward organization. In
-such an event the branch is usually placed under the care of the
-neighboring ward.
-
-18. Helps in Government.--In addition to these regular and direct
-means of ecclesiastical government in the church, there are also "helps
-in government," or appendages to the church organization. The chief of
-these are:
-
-_I. Female Relief Societies_.--A woman's association organized in each
-ward to relieve the poor in their distress, and visit the sick and
-afflicted.
-
-_II. Sunday Schools_.--In every ward also is a Sunday School, in which
-the young are taught in the gospel and educated in church discipline.
-
-_III. Y. M. and Y. L. M. I. A._--In nearly all wards also are Young
-Men's and Young Ladies' Mutual Improvement Associations {352} for the
-instruction of the young in theology, science, history and literature;
-and, in fact, in all things that tend to the development and refinement
-of the mind of man; but the main object of these organizations is to
-establish the young of both sexes in a knowledge of the truth of the
-gospel.
-
-_IV. Primary Associations_.--Primary Associations are ward
-organizations for juveniles too young to be connected with the
-Improvement Associations, and were established to train the young in
-such moral precepts and conduct as are suitable to their years.
-
-19. The Church Judiciary System.--So long as men are imperfect
-just so long will difficulties and misunderstandings arise among
-them. And these things will beget bitterness of feeling, enmities and
-animosities unbecoming those striving to be saints; and hence the
-church must be purged of these things. Moreover, although man by nature
-is a religious creature, he is prone to be forgetful of religious duty;
-and unless a wholesome church discipline be enforced he is liable to
-become neglectful of his religious obligations. To settle difficulties,
-then, which may arise between members on the one hand, and to enforce
-church discipline on the other, there exists in the church an
-ecclesiastical judiciary system, that is most admirably adapted to
-answer the purposes for which it exists.
-
-20. First, as to the settlement of difficulties arising between
-members of the church. The law of the Lord requires that if a brother
-or sister offend another, the one offended should go alone to the
-one who gave offense and tell him his fault; if he repents and seeks
-forgiveness, and makes restitution, then the one offended must forgive
-his brother and become reconciled. In the event of the offender being
-stubborn and impenitent; or maintaining that he has done no wrong, then
-the one aggrieved should take others with him, one or more,[138] and
-in their presence, {353} and with whatever assistance they can render,
-seek justice of and reconciliation with his brother. If the offender
-refuse to make restitution and reconciliation, then the matter may be
-taken to the bishop's court for settlement.[139] Here the matter is put
-on trial, the statements of the respective parties received, and the
-testimony of witnesses admitted and a decision rendered by the bishop
-according to his understanding of the case.
-
-21. In the event of either party being dissatisfied with the
-bishop's decision, they may appeal to the high council of the stake.
-But if dissatisfied parties neither take an appeal to the high council
-nor comply with the bishop's decision, then they stand in danger of
-losing their fellowship in the church, for if men will not respect the
-decisions of the ecclesiastical courts, then the officers thereof must
-vindicate their decrees and make the courts respected by punishing
-those who would treat them with contempt.
-
-22. If the case be appealed to the high council of the stake, it
-is heard on its merits in the manner already described in section four
-of this part, under the caption HIGH COUNCILS, which see. The parties
-or either of them may appeal to the first presidency of the church,
-who will direct in what manner the case shall be disposed of; but the
-parties must abide that decision or lose their standing in the church.
-
-23. Now as to those who neglect their duties; who do not so much
-offend against individuals as against the church, by failing to live up
-to the regulations it prescribes for its members. It is especially the
-duty of the teachers, priests and bishopric to labor very assiduously
-to preserve their people in the faith, and by patient watchfulness;
-by teaching and admonition; by warning and reproof, when necessary,
-keep alive the spirit of the gospel in the hearts of the saints. If,
-however, {354} in spite of all these efforts to preserve the church
-members in an active performance of their duties men will grow careless
-and transgress the law of the Lord, they are amenable to the church
-courts and may be tried for their fellowship. In that case they would
-have the same rights in the courts and the same rights to appeal as in
-the case of difficulty between members.
-
-24. The only real punishment which is within the power of
-the church to inflict is to disfellowship or excommunicate its
-members. In the former case the offender is merely suspended from the
-privileges of church communion; this punishment may be inflicted by
-the bishop, until satisfaction is made by the offender. In the latter
-case--excommunication--the person absolutely loses his membership in
-the church, together with all the priesthood he holds; and if he ever
-regains a standing it will be by baptism and confirmation as at the
-first.
-
-25. Of course to those who hold lightly their standing in the
-church, suspension of fellowship, or excommunication has no especial
-terror; but to the man of faith, whose full hopes of eternal life
-with all its advantages stand or fall with his standing in the church
-of Christ, no greater punishment can threaten him. He remembers that
-the Lord hath said: "Wo unto them who are cut off from my church,
-for the same are overcome of the world." [140] And, again: "Inasmuch
-as ye are cut off by transgressions, ye cannot escape the buffetings
-of Satan, until the day of redemption." [141] The punishment, then, of
-excommunication is a serious one in the estimation of the faithful; and
-since man in his imperfect state is influenced to righteousness by his
-fear of punishment, as well as by his hope of reward, the punishment of
-excommunication has a wholesome effect in preserving the discipline of
-the church.
-
-26. Conferences of the Church.--There are two general {355}
-conferences of the church each year, one convening on the 6th of April,
-and the other on the 6th of October. Conferences are convened every
-three months in all the stakes of Zion; and in the respective wards
-once a year. The chief purposes of holding these conferences, aside
-from the giving of instructions by the general authorities, who are
-usually present, is to sustain by vote the officers of the church. The
-principle of common consent operating in the church government has
-already been explained; [142] and it only remains to say that the means
-by which this "common" consent is expressed--voting to sustain those
-proposed for the several offices--virtually amounts to an election. The
-elective principle in government or in societies, is not only carried
-out by direct means; it may be carried out by indirect means. It is
-just as much a fact under the form of popular acceptance as of popular
-choice.[143] It is in the form of popular acceptance that the elective
-principle exists in the church.
-
-27. Reflections.--If a good system for the organization and
-administration of authority, and an equally good system for the
-security of liberty is the test of a good plan of government, then this
-ecclesiastical government we have described must be recognized as of
-the very highest order. It is elaborate in organization, but simple in
-its operations. There is in it a most excellent assemblage of means
-to transmit the will of the central power into all departments of
-the society; and, on the other hand, an equally efficient assemblage
-of means for transmitting the response of the society to the central
-organized power. And as the whole government exists by the common
-consent of the church members, and elections by popular acceptance
-are frequent, the liberties of the people composing the church are
-secured. Where these facts exist, the highest order of government
-must result. And we may say, in conclusion, {356} that the formation
-of a free ecclesiastical government on so extensive a scale is one of
-the most interesting problems of humanity. "It requires such refined
-prudence [to form such a government], such comprehensive knowledge,
-and such perspicacious sagacity, united with such almost illimitable
-powers of combination, that it is nearly in vain to hope for qualities
-so rare to be congregated in a solitary mind." [144] Indeed it is in
-vain to hope for these powers in an uninspired mind. It is a task too
-difficult for mere human ingenuity. And when it is remembered that
-Joseph Smith's knowledge of government and history in his early life
-was exceedingly limited; and that this system of church government
-was given piece-meal--as will be seen by its gradual development as
-portrayed in this work [145]--it is absurd to accredit it to a boy's
-native ingenuity. It was not a system marked out in theory and then
-organized. On the contrary, line was given upon line, precept upon
-precept. An officer was given today and his duties explained; another
-given at another time, when the development of the work required his
-services, and his duties explained. After a lapse of years men began
-to discover that these fragments of government constituted a most
-elaborate yet simple system--a consistent whole, based on the highest
-and truest principles of government; a system that while it was suited
-to the conditions of the church in the earlier years of its existence,
-yet is capable of answering the needs of the organization should it
-be so expanded as to fill the earth. This is a fact as astonishing to
-the world as it is gratifying to the Saints. The church is its own
-witness that the mind which fashioned it is divine. It is too great in
-its organization, and yet too simple in its administration to be the
-creation of an uninspired mind, especially of a mind so narrow in its
-knowledge and inexperienced in affairs related to government as that
-of Joseph Smith. No, neither the hand of man {357} nor the mind of
-man created it; it came from God, and bears the impress of its divine
-creation.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What is priesthood?
-
-2. What is the spirit of the government by the priesthood?
-
-3. For what was the church instituted?
-
-4. What powers and authority appertains unto it?
-
-5. How is the priesthood divided?
-
-6. Why was the higher priesthood named after Melchisedek?
-
-7. What are the powers of the Melchisedek priesthood--of the Aaronic?
-
-8. Enumerate the officers of the respective priesthoods.
-
-9. What constitutes the first presidency of the church?
-
-10. What are the rights and powers of the first presidency?
-
-11. What are the rights and powers of the twelve apostles?
-
-12. What is the mission and calling of the seventies?
-
-13. What are the duties and the special calling of the patriarchs?
-
-14. What are the powers and special duties of the high priests--of
-elders?
-
-15. What can you say of presidencies in the Aaronic priesthood?
-
-16. What are the privileges and duties of priests?--of teachers?--of
-deacons?
-
-17. What is the significance of "appendage" in connection with
-priesthood?
-
-18. What can you say of the territorial divisions of the church?
-
-19. Describe the stake organization--the organization of the ward--of
-the branch.
-
-20. What institutions are recognized as helps in government?
-
-21. What can you say of the church judiciary system?
-
-22. State how difficulties are to be settled in the church.
-
-23. What are the means of punishment legitimately within the right of
-the church to exercise?
-
-24. What can you say of the effectiveness of church punishment?
-
-25. What regular conferences are held by the church?
-
-26. What can be said of the church as an ecclesiastical system of
-government?
-
-{358}
-
-
-
-SECTION VI.
-
-Having paused to consider the church as a system of ecclesiastical
-government, it now remains for us to return to the historical
-development of the work of the Lord as connected with the dispensation
-of the fullness of times.
-
-1. The Kirtland Temple.--During the winter of 1835-36 the temple
-at Kirtland was completed. This was the first temple built by the
-church in this dispensation. It was a stone structure, eighty by sixty,
-and fifty feet to the square. At the front was a tower one hundred
-and ten feet high. There were two main halls fifty-five by sixty-five
-feet; four vestries in the front, two on each floor. There was also
-an attic, divided into five rooms. During the winter of 1835-6 a high
-school was conducted in Kirtland by H. M. Hawes, Professor of Greek and
-Latin,[146] and the rooms in the attic were used as class rooms and for
-the meetings of the various quorums of the priesthood. [See note 1, end
-of section.]
-
-2. Dedication of the Temple.--On Sunday, the 27th of March, 1836,
-the temple was dedicated with imposing ceremonies, beginning early in
-the morning--eight o'clock--and continuing all day. As all the Saints
-could not be admitted at once, the Thursday following, March 31st, the
-ceremonies were repeated. The service consisted of singing, prayer,
-preaching, prophesying, speaking in tongues, sustaining the several
-officers of the church by votes of acceptance and confidence, the {359}
-offering of a special dedicatory prayer,[147] partaking of the Lord's
-Supper, rendering the grand shout of Hosanna,[148] etc. The Spirit of
-the Lord was poured out in great power upon the Saints, and spiritual
-manifestations were abundant.
-
-3. Spiritual Manifestations in the Temple.--Frederick G.
-Williams, counselor in the first presidency, testified that while Elder
-Rigdon was making the opening prayer, an angel entered the window, and
-took a seat between himself and Patriarch Joseph Smith, father of the
-prophet, and remained there during the prayer.
-
-David Whitmer, one of the three especial witnesses to the Book of
-Mormon, also saw angels in the house.
-
-Apostle Brigham Young gave a brief address in tongues.
-
-Apostle David W. Patten, interpreted the address, and gave an
-exhortation in tongues himself.
-
-At a meeting in the evening George A. Smith--afterwards an apostle and
-counselor to President Brigham Young--arose and began to prophesy,
-when a noise was heard like the sound of a rushing mighty wind,
-which filled the temple, and all the congregation simultaneously
-arose, being moved upon by an invisible power; many began to speak in
-tongues, and prophesy; others saw glorious visions. The Prophet Joseph
-saw that the temple was filled with angels, which fact he declared
-to the congregation. The people of the neighborhood came running
-together--hearing an unusual sound within, and seeing a bright light
-like a pillar of fire resting upon the temple--and were astonished at
-what was transpiring.
-
-Wednesday night--30th March--while the meeting in the {360} temple was
-in charge of the twelve apostles, the brethren continued exhorting,
-prophesying and speaking in tongues all night. The Savior made his
-appearance to some, while angels ministered to others, and it was a
-Pentecost and an endowment long to be remembered.[149]
-
-4. Restoration of the Keys of Former Dispensations.--Sunday, the
-3rd of April, one week following the first dedication services, there
-was a series of most glorious visions and revelations given in the
-temple. After the sacrament was administered to the congregation, the
-curtains dividing the main hall were dropped and the Prophet Joseph and
-Oliver Cowdery retired into the pulpit and bowed in solemn and silent
-prayer. After prayer they both beheld the Lord Jesus Christ standing
-upon the breastwork of the pulpit. He announced himself as the First
-and the Last, the one who liveth and the one who was slain--their
-advocate with the Father. He declared his acceptance of the temple, and
-promised to appear unto his servants and speak unto them with his own
-voice, if the Saints would but keep his commandments, and not pollute
-the temple, the fame of which he declared should spread to foreign
-lands.[150]
-
-5. The Appearing of Moses.--After this vision closed the heavens
-were again opened and Moses appeared before them and committed unto
-them the keys of the gathering of Israel from the four quarters of the
-earth and the leading of the ten tribes from the land of the north.[151]
-
-6. The Appearing of Elias.--Then Elias appeared and committed the
-dispensation of the gospel of Abraham, saying that in them and in their
-seed all generations after them should be blessed.
-
-7. The Appearing of Elijah.--As soon as the above vision closed,
-another opened before them, and Elijah the Prophet, who was taken to
-heaven without tasting death, stood before them, and said that the
-time had fully come which {361} Malachi had spoken of, saying, that
-before the great and dreadful day of the Lord should come, he, Elijah,
-would be sent to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, and
-the children to the fathers, lest the whole earth be smitten with a
-curse.[152] "Therefore," said Elijah, to Joseph and Oliver, "the keys
-of this dispensation are committed into your hands, and by this ye may
-know that the great and dreadful day of the Lord is near, even at the
-doors." [153]
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Inner Courts of Kirtland Temple.--There was a peculiarity in
-the arrangement of the inner court which made it more than ordinary
-impressive--so much so that a sense of sacred awe seemed to rest upon
-all who entered; not only the Saints but strangers also manifested
-a high degree of reverential feeling. Four pulpits stood one above
-another, in the center of the building, from north to south, both on
-the east and west ends; those on the west for the presiding officers
-of the Melchisedek priesthood, and those on the east for the Aaronic:
-and each of these pulpits was separated by curtains of white painted
-canvas, which were let down and drawn up at pleasure. In front of
-each of these two rows of pulpits was a sacrament table for the
-administration of that sacred ordinance. In each corner of the court
-was an elevated pew for the singers, the choir being distributed into
-four compartments. In addition to the pulpit curtains, were others,
-intersecting at right angles, which divided the main ground-floor
-hall into four equal sections, giving to each one half of one set of
-pulpits.--Eliza R. Snow.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. When was the Kirtland Temple completed?
-
-2. Give a description of it. (Note 1.)
-
-3. For what were the attic rooms used?
-
-4. What branches were taught in the temple school? (Note.)
-
-5. Describe the dedicatory services.
-
-6. State what spiritual manifestations occurred during the dedicatory
-services.
-
-7. Describe the vision of the Savior given to the Prophet Joseph and
-Oliver Cowdery in the temple.
-
-8. Relate the appearing of Moses--of Elias--of Elijah.
-
-{362}
-
-
-
-SECTION VII.
-
-The appearing of Moses in Kirtland Temple and his restoring the keys
-for the gathering of Israel, marks the inauguration of a mighty work
-within the work of God, in this dispensation, and gives a reality to
-many of the predictions of the ancient prophets. To fully comprehend
-this great work it will be necessary to call the attention of the
-student to the Israelites, and a brief outline of their history.
-
-1. Who Are Israel.--The children of Israel are the descendants
-of Abraham through the loins of Isaac and Jacob, taking their name,
-however, from the last-named patriarch, whose name was changed by an
-angel of the Lord from Jacob to Israel, which means a prince of God.
-Unto Jacob by four wives were born twelve sons--the heads of the Twelve
-Tribes of Israel. Joseph, Jacob's son by his wife Rachel, being his
-father's favorite son, was hated by his brethren, and without the
-father's knowledge was sold to merchants, who carried him into Egypt.
-His cruel brethren rent his clothing and stained it in blood, then
-taking it to their father represented that his son had been destroyed
-by a wild beast. The Lord was with Joseph in Egypt, and gave him
-favor in the eyes of the rulers of that land, until he became second
-in authority in the kingdom. Having been warned in a dream of an
-approaching famine, some years before it took place, he laid up in
-store an abundance of corn, so that while famine distressed surrounding
-countries there was plenty in Egypt, and thither the sons of Israel
-went to purchase food. Joseph revealed his identity to his brethren,
-became reconciled to them, and sent for his father and all attached to
-his household--about seventy souls in all--to {363} come to him and
-take up their abode in Egypt. This the aged patriarch did, and ended
-his days there.
-
-2. Israel Enslaved.--Some time after Joseph's death, there arose
-a king who knew him not, and observing that the Israelites were likely
-to become more numerous than the Egyptians--since they did not murder
-their offspring either before or at birth, as many among the Egyptians
-did--this monarch enslaved them and placed task masters over them, and
-by oppression and the destruction of their male offspring sought to
-prevent their increase. Finally the Lord raised up Moses and delivered
-them from bondage amid a splendid display of his Almighty power, and
-eventually settled them in the land of Canaan--the land he had promised
-unto Abraham as an inheritance--where they became a mighty nation. [See
-note 1, end of section.]
-
-3. Revolt of the Ten Tribes.--As a nation the Israelites
-reached the zenith of their splendor under the reign of David and
-his son Solomon. At the death of the latter, 975 B. C., the kingdom
-was divided. Ten tribes revolted against the oppression of Solomon's
-successor, his son Rehoboam, and formed the kingdom of Israel, choosing
-for their king Jeroboam, the son of Nebat, one of Solomon's servants.
-The new king--a man of great valor--established his capital at Shechem
-[Shek-em], but fifty years afterwards it was removed to Samaria.
-
-4. The Captivity of Israel--The Lost Tribes.--This kingdom of
-Israel continued its existence for about two hundred and fifty years.
-In that time the people may be said to have departed wholly from the
-paths of righteousness, becoming drunken, licentious and idolatrous. So
-the Lord gave them up and Shalmaneser, a noted Assyrian king, made war
-upon them, utterly overcame them and led them captives into Assyria.
-From thence the Lord led many of them away into the northern country,
-where, no man knoweth, and hence they are denominated the Lost Tribes.
-Our reason for saying they were led {364} away into the north is to
-be found in the fact that many predictions of the prophets plainly
-declare that they shall come from the land of the north, a great
-company, etc.; [154] and it must be manifest that they cannot come from
-the land of the north unless they are there. Messiah, when he visited
-the Nephites after his resurrection, plainly told them that the other
-tribes of the house of Israel--meaning the ten tribes--the Lord had
-led away out of the land;[155] and he also announced his intention of
-visiting them, and commanded the Nephites to make a record of it that a
-knowledge of the existence of these "other tribes" might be made known
-unto the Gentiles when the Nephite records should be revealed to them.
-These "other tribes," Messiah spoke of, he declared not to be of the
-land of America, nor the land of Jerusalem, "neither in any parts of
-that land round about whither I have been to minister." [156]
-
-5. The Apocryphal writer Esdras, in relating one of his visions
-describes one of the great characters that figured in those visions
-as calling unto himself a peaceful people. "Those," said the angel
-sent to interpret the vision, "are the tribes which were carried away
-captives out of their own land in the time of Oseas (Hosea) the king,
-whom Salmanaser, the king of the Assyrians, took captive, and crossed
-them beyond the river; so were they brought into another land. But
-they took counsel to themselves, that they would leave the multitude
-of the heathen, and go forth unto a further country where never man
-dwelt, that they there might keep their statutes, which they never
-kept in their own land. And they entered in at the narrow passage of
-the River Euphrates. For the Most High then showed them signs, and
-stayed the springs of the flood till they were passed over. For through
-the country there was great journey, even of a year and a half, and
-the same region is called Arsareth (or Ararah). Then dwelt they there
-until the latter {365} time, and when they come forth again, the Most
-High shall hold still the springs of the river again, that they may go
-through; therefore sawest thou the multitude peaceable." [157]
-
-6. Whatever doubt may be entertained respecting the writings of
-Esdras, it cannot be denied that in respect to the Ten Tribes and what
-became of them he is in harmony with the statement made by Jesus to
-the Nephites, _viz:_ that the Lord had led them away out of the land.
-The Most High, according to Esdras, showing them signs by staying the
-springs of the flood of the Euphrates, as he will do when the time
-comes for them to return. [158] He is also in harmony with the prophets
-who predict the return of Israel in the last days from the land in
-which they have been hidden by the Lord.[159] [See note 2, end of
-section.]
-
-7. The Samaritans.--The country inhabited by the kingdom of
-Israel--the north half of Palestine--was taken possession of by people
-sent from Babylon, Persia and other countries by the Assyrian king,
-and these strangers, intermarrying with the few Israelites remaining
-in the land, after the main body of the people had been led away into
-captivity, became the mixed people called Samaritans, so heartily
-despised by the Jews.
-
-8. The Kingdom of Judah.--In the civil dissensions which divided
-the Israelites at the death of Solomon, the tribe of Benjamin remained
-loyal to Judah, and may be said to have almost lost its identity in the
-kingdom which with Judah it formed after the revolt of the ten tribes.
-It was a stormy career that the kingdom of Judah experienced after
-the said revolt. It was subject in turn to the Egyptians, Assyrians,
-and Babylonians. In consequence of treachery to the last named power,
-Nebuchadnezzar, king of Babylon, about 586 B. C., [160] {366} besieged
-Jerusalem, reduced the city to the utmost extremity, captured the king,
-put out his eyes and led him and most of the Jews captive to Babylon.
-The walls of the city were thrown down, the temple rifled of its sacred
-vessels and the city left desolate to be inhabited by strangers. The
-captivity of the Jews in Babylon lasted about seventy years.[161] The
-Babylonians in the meantime had been overcome of the Persians, under
-Cyrus the Great, who in the first year of his reign permitted the Jews
-to return and rebuild the city and its walls.
-
-9. The Jews, however, never wholly regained their independence;
-being located between Syria and Egypt, their country was held in
-subjection as a province to one or the other of them according as now
-one and now the other was successful in the unhappy wars which broke
-out between those nations. Finally Palestine became a province of Rome,
-but the people were allowed the freedom to worship God according to the
-teachings of Moses and their prophets. This was their condition at the
-birth and during the lifetime of Messiah.[162]
-
-10. About forty years after the crucifixion of the Christ, the
-Jews foolishly rebelled against the Roman authority, which brought on a
-terrible war. During the siege of Jerusalem, which lasted six months,
-over one million of the wretched inhabitants, according to Josephus,
-perished of the famine. The remainder were either driven into exile
-or sold into slavery. The city was razed to the ground, the temple
-destroyed, and in their eager search for gold the Romans tore up the
-very foundation, and ploughed up the site, so that literally there was
-not left one stone to stand upon another that was not thrown down.[163]
-Since the destruction of their city and the overthrow of their nation,
-the Jews have been scattered among all nations, despised, hated,
-oppressed, until all the evil that was prophesied of by Moses[164]
-concerning them--when they should turn away {367} from God and his
-law--came upon them. [See note 3, end of section.]
-
-11. Miscellaneous Dispersions.--Besides the tribes of Israel that
-were thus dispersed, there were families of various tribes whom the
-Lord led away at different times into distant lands. Such as the family
-of Lehi of the tribe of Manasseh; and that of Ishmael of the tribe of
-Ephraim, both of which families, together with one Zoram--of what tribe
-he was is not known--the Lord led to the continent of America. The
-Lord also led to the same land a colony that departed from Jerusalem
-immediately after its destruction by king Nebuchadnezzar, in the sixth
-century B. C., among whom was one Mulek, one of the sons of King
-Zedekiah, whose people founded the city of Zarahemla, and afterwards
-united with the Nephites.
-
-12. The Blood of Israel Sprinkled Among all Nations.--The Jews
-since the destruction of their city and nation by the Romans, have been
-scattered among all nations, but they have succeeded in a remarkable
-manner in preserving their identity as a distinct people. Still it is
-not to be doubted that there are instances where Jews have married and
-intermarried with the Gentiles among whom they lived, until they lost
-their identity, and thus the blood of Israel, unrecognized, is in the
-veins of many supposed to be Gentiles.
-
-13. The tribes of Israel sent into Babylon, Assyria and the
-surrounding countries in like manner inter-mingled their blood with the
-people of those nations. Moreover, there are good reasons to believe
-that in that exodus of the ten tribes from Assyria to the north, many
-became discouraged and stopped by the way. Others unable to prosecute
-the journey also abandoned the expedition, and these that thus halted,
-uniting and intermarrying with the original inhabitants of the land,
-constituted those prolific races that over-ran the western division of
-the Roman Empire.
-
-14. In this manner the blood of Israel has been sprinkled {368}
-almost among all the nations of the earth, until the word of the Lord
-which says, "I will sift the house of Israel among all nations," [165]
-has been literally fulfilled.
-
-15. The Gathering of Israel.--Notwithstanding Israel and Judah
-have thus been scattered, their temple destroyed and their chief city
-trodden down of the Gentiles, the remnant of this favored people of
-God, according to the promises of the Lord, are to be gathered together
-again and established upon the lands promised to their forefathers.
-The keys necessary for the inauguration of this work were given to the
-Prophet Joseph by Moses on the occasion of his appearing to him and to
-Oliver Cowdery in the Kirtland Temple, and the work has begun. I think
-it proper here to give some of the passages of scripture which promise
-the gathering of Israel.
-
-16. From the Bible.--Hear the word of the Lord, O, ye nations,
-and declare it in the isles afar off, and say, He that scattered Israel
-will gather him, and keep him as a shepherd doth his flock. For the
-Lord hath redeemed Jacob, and ransomed him from the hand of him that
-was stronger than he. Therefore they shall come and sing in the height
-of Zion, and shall flow together to the goodness of the Lord, for
-wheat, and for wine, and for oil, and for the young of the flock and of
-the herd: and their soul shall be as a watered garden, and they shall
-not sorrow any more at all.[166]
-
-Therefore, behold the days come, saith the Lord, that it shall no more
-be said, the Lord liveth that brought up the children of Israel out of
-the land of Egypt; but the Lord liveth that brought up the children of
-Israel from the land of the north, and from all the lands whither he
-had driven them: and I will bring them again into their land that I
-gave unto their fathers.[167]
-
-And it shall come to pass in that day[168] that the Lord shall set his
-hand again the second time to recover the remnant of his people, {369}
-which shall be left from Assyria, and from Egypt, and from Pathos, and
-from Cush, and from Elam, and from Shinar, and from Hamath, and from
-the islands of the sea. And he shall set up an ensign for the nations,
-and shall assemble the outcasts of Israel, and gather together the
-dispersed of Judah from the four corners of the earth. The envy also
-of Ephraim shall depart, and the adversaries of Judah shall be cut
-off. Ephraim shall not envy Judah, and Judah shall not vex Ephraim. *
-* * And there shall be an highway for the remnant of his people, which
-shall be left from Assyria; like as it was to Israel in the day that he
-came up out of the land of Egypt.[169]
-
-Turn, O backsliding children, saith the Lord; for I am married unto
-you: and I will take you one of a city, and two of a family, and I will
-bring you to Zion: and I will give you pastors according to my own
-heart, and they shall feed you with knowledge and understanding. And
-it shall come to pass when ye be multiplied and increased in the land
-in those days, saith the Lord, they shall say no more the ark of the
-covenant of the Lord: neither shall it come to mind. * * * At that time
-they shall call Jerusalem the throne of the Lord; and all the nations
-shall be gathered unto it, to the name of the Lord, to Jerusalem. * * *
-In those days the house of Judah shall walk with the house of Israel,
-and they shall come together out of the land of the north, to the land
-that I have given for an inheritance unto your fathers.[170]
-
-17. From the Book of Mormon.--But behold thus saith the Lord God:
-when the day cometh that they [the Jews--see context] shall believe in
-me, that I am Christ, then have I covenanted with their fathers that
-they shall be restored in the flesh, upon the earth, unto the lands
-of their inheritance. And it shall come to pass that they shall be
-gathered in from their long dispersion, from the isles of the sea, and
-from the four parts of the earth; and the nations of the Gentiles shall
-be great in the eyes of me, saith God, in carrying them forth to the
-lands of their inheritance.[171]
-
-18. From the Doctrine and Covenants.--And the Lord, even the
-Savior, shall stand in the midst of his people, and shall reign {370}
-over all flesh. And they who are in the north countries shall come in
-remembrance before the Lord, and their prophets shall hear his voice,
-and shall no longer stay themselves, and they shall smite the rocks,
-and the ice shall flow down at their presence. And an highway shall be
-cast up in the midst of the great deep. Their enemies shall become a
-prey unto them, and in the barren deserts there shall come forth pools
-or living water; and the parched ground shall no longer be a thirsty
-land. And they shall bring forth their rich treasures unto the children
-of Ephraim, my servants. And the boundaries of the everlasting hills
-shall tremble at their presence. And there shall they fall down and be
-crowned with glory, even in Zion, by the hands of the servants of the
-Lord, even the children of Ephraim; and they shall be filled with songs
-of everlasting joy. Behold, this is the blessing of the Everlasting
-God upon the tribes of Israel, and the richer blessing upon the head
-of Ephraim and his fellows. And they also of the tribe of Judah, after
-their pain, shall be sanctified in holiness before the Lord to dwell in
-his presence day and night, for ever and for ever.[172] [See note 4,
-end of section.]
-
-19. The Preparatory Work to the Return of the Ten Tribes.--This
-is enough in a general way upon the return of the Ten Tribes from the
-north and the return of the Jews to Jerusalem. Yet there is another
-part of this work of gathering Israel that calls for our attention.
-We have described the manner in which the blood of Israel has been
-sprinkled among the Gentile nations. The people in whose veins that
-blood runs must be gathered as well as the Jews and the Ten Tribes;
-for the promise of gathering extends to all the children of Israel,
-in all the countries whither they have been scattered. Moreover, it
-would seem that the Ten Tribes are to come to Zion and sing in the
-heights thereof, and there be crowned with glory by the hands of the
-servants of the Lord, the children of Ephraim.[173] The gathering of
-Israel scattered among the Gentile nations will have made considerable
-progress, and Zion will be built up before the Ten Tribes will be
-brought from the north. This {371} work of gathering Israel from among
-the Gentile nations is the work that the Church of Christ is now
-engaged in. The Lord has revealed the location of Zion;[174] it has
-been dedicated for the gathering together of his people Israel. Even
-the temple site is known and dedicated, and the sure word of God given
-that the temple shall be built in this generation.[175] The enemies
-of the church drove the Saints away form the consecrated land, it is
-true;[176] but their absence will only be temporary; the time will come
-when they will return and fulfill all that the Lord hath decreed in
-relation to Zion and its redemption.
-
-20. Meantime they are building up stakes of Zion in the Rocky
-Mountain valleys, and in this way are fulfilling predictions of the
-ancient prophets. Isaiah hath it written, that "In the last days the
-house of the Lord shall be established in the tops of the mountains; *
-* * and all nations shall flow unto it. And many people shall go and
-say, Come ye and let us go up to the mountain of the Lord, to the house
-of the God of Jacob; and he will teach us of his ways, and we will walk
-in his paths: for out of Zion shall go forth the law, and the word of
-the Lord from Jerusalem." [177]
-
-21. It is remarkable how minutely the Latter-day Saints are
-fulfilling the terms of this prophecy:
-
-I. They are building the temples of God in the tops of the mountains,
-so that the house of the Lord is truly where Isaiah saw it would be.
-
-II. The Saints engaged in this work are people gathered from nearly
-all the nations under heaven, so that all nations are flowing unto the
-house of the Lord in the top of the mountains. [See note 5, end of
-section.]
-
-III. The people who receive the gospel in foreign lands joyfully say to
-their relatives and friends, "Come ye, and let us go {372} up to the
-house of the Lord, and he will teach us of his ways and we will walk in
-his paths."
-
-22. The manner in which the Saints are gathered, one here and one
-there, one from this city and one from another, fulfills the prophecy
-of Jeremiah, who, in speaking of this great gathering of Israel,
-represents the Lord as saying: "I will take you one of a city, and two
-of a family, and I will bring you to Zion; and I will give you pastors
-according to mine heart, which shall feed you with knowledge and
-understanding." [178]
-
-23. The student should be informed how it is we know the
-Saints are of the house of Israel. First, they fulfill the terms of
-the prophecies written about the gathering of Israel by the ancient
-prophets, as seen above; second, the patriarchs of the church, ordained
-and set apart to that calling by the apostles, in giving blessings to
-the Saints declare them to be of the house of Israel, and mainly of the
-tribe of Ephraim. [See note 6, end of section.]
-
-24. Object of Gathering.--Another object of this gathering of
-the people of God from among the Gentile nations--which with their
-wickedness, spiritual blindness, and confusion constitute Babylon--is
-that they may not partake of the sins of Babylon, and that they might
-escape the judgments and plagues decreed by God against the wickedness
-thereof. The Apostle John prophesies of this. In those visions given to
-him on the Isle of Patmos, showing him things that would take place in
-the future, he heard a voice from heaven saying: "Come out of her [that
-is out of Babylon], my people; that ye be not partakers of her sins,
-and that ye receive not of her plagues. For her sins have reached unto
-heaven, and God hath remembered her iniquities. * * * Therefore shall
-her plagues come in one day, death and mourning, and famine; for strong
-is the Lord God who judgeth her." [179] The Saints are gathering out of
-Babylon that they may escape these threatened judgments.
-
-{373} NOTES.
-
-1. Settlement of Israel in Canaan.--Of the twelve tribes of
-Israel, nine and a half were located to the west and two and a half to
-the east of the Jordan. In this region they had been led by Joshua,
-Moses being only permitted to catch a distant glimpse of the promised
-land. After the death of Joshua, followed the period of Judges, which
-lasted about five centuries. The last of the judges was Samuel, who,
-when the people demanded a king, anointed Saul, 1095, B.C.--Anderson's
-Gen. Hist.
-
-2. The Departure of the Ten Tribes for the North--They [the ten
-tribes] determined to go to a country "where never man dwelt," that
-they might be free from all contaminating influences. That country
-could only be found in the north. Asia was already the seat of a
-comparatively ancient civilizations; Egypt flourished in northern
-Africa; and southern Europe was rapidly filling with the future
-rulers of the world. They had, therefore, no choice but to turn their
-faces northward. The first portion of their journey was not, however,
-north; according to the account of Esdras, they appear to have at
-first moved in the direction of their old home, and it is possible
-that they originally started with the intention of returning thereto,
-or probably in order to deceive the Assyrians, they started as if to
-return to Canaan, and when they crossed the Euphrates, and were out of
-danger from the hosts of the Medes and Persians, then they turned their
-journeying feet toward the polar star. Esdras states that they entered
-in at the narrow passage of the river Euphrates, the Lord staying the
-springs of the flood until they were passed over. The point on the
-river Euphrates at which they crossed would necessarily be in its
-upper portion, as lower down would be too far south for their purpose.
-The upper course of the Euphrates lies among lofty mountains near the
-village of Pastas; it plunges through a gorge formed by precipices
-more than a thousand feet in height and so narrow that it is bridged
-at the top; it shortly afterwards enters the plain of Mesopotamia. How
-accurately this portion of the river answers to the description of
-Esdras of the "Narrows," where the Israelites crossed!--Reynolds' Are
-we of Israel? pp. 26-27.
-
-3. Final Overthrow of Judah.--According to Josephus (De Bell.
-Jud. vi: 9, 3) 1,100,000 men fell in the siege of Jerusalem by Titus,
-and 79,000 were captured in the whole war. Of the latter number, the
-greater part was distributed among the provinces, to be butchered in
-the amphitheaters or cast to wild beasts; others were doomed to work
-as public slaves in Egypt; only those under the ages of seventeen were
-sold into private bondage. An equally dreadful destruction fell upon
-the remains of the nation, which had once more assembled in Judea,
-{374} under the reign of Hadrian (A. D. 133), which Dion Cassius
-concisely relates. By these two savage wars the Jewish population must
-have been effectually extirpated from the Holy Land itself, a result
-which did not follow from the Babylonian captivity. Afterwards a dreary
-period of fifteen hundred years' oppression crushed in Europe all who
-bore the name of Israel, and Christian nations have visited on their
-head a crime [the crucifixion of Messiah] perpetrated by a few thousand
-inhabitants of Jerusalem, who were not the real forefathers of the
-European Jews. Nor in the east has their lot been much more cheering.
-With a few partial exceptions, they have ever since been a despised,
-an oppressed and naturally a degraded people; though from them have
-spread light and truth to the distant nations of the earth.--Biblical
-Literature (Kitto) vol. I, p. 39.
-
-4. Return of the Ten Tribes from the North.--Away in yonder
-north countries, where, I do not know, but away in those regions are
-ten tribes of the house of Israel. How do you know they are in the
-north country? Because the Bible has told us that in the latter days
-they should come out of the north country, and if they were not in the
-north country they could not come from there. Jeremiah says in his
-thirty-first chapter--"Behold I will bring them from the north, the
-blind and the lame with them, and the woman with child; they shall
-come, a great company out of the north countries." Where will they go
-to? Will they go immediately to Palestine, where they formerly had
-their inheritance. No. Jeremiah tells us where they will go, he tells
-there is to be a place called Zion before these tribes come out of the
-north countries, and when they come with a great company, the blind and
-the lame with them, and the Lord God leads them with supplication and
-with tears and with prayers, bringing them forth from those dreary,
-desolate, cold arctic regions; when that day shall come, there shall
-be a Zion prepared to receive these ten tribes, before they finally
-go back to Palestine. Is there anything in the scriptures about this?
-Yes. In the same chapter of Jeremiah we read that, "they shall come
-and sing in the height of Zion." Zion, then, will have to be built up
-before they come; Zion will have to be reared somewhere and prepared
-to receive them; and it will be a holy place, and it will be a holy
-people who will build up Zion, so much so that the Lord will bring
-these ten tribes into the height of Zion, into the midst of it.--Orson
-Pratt--Journal of Discourses, vol. 18, p. 22, 23.
-
-5. All Nations Flowing Unto the House of the Lord.--One of
-the features in the celebration of Pioneer Day--24th of July, the
-anniversary of the day the company of Pioneers entered Salt Lake
-Valley, 1847--in Salt Lake City, 1880, was to have represented the
-various nationalities composing the population of Utah. A man and a
-woman {375} of each nation from which people had been gathered by the
-proclamation of the gospel were selected as the representatives, each
-pair bearing the national colors of their country. They occupied a
-platform in the Tabernacle during the services, and after a historical
-sketch of the introduction of the gospel in the various nations was
-read by Orson Pratt, the representatives of the nations arose and
-President John Taylor said: "I wish to state to the congregation that
-the Lord commanded his servants to go forth to all the world to preach
-the gospel to every creature. We have not yet been to all the world,
-but here are twenty-five nations represented today, and we have thus
-far fulfilled our mission."
-
-6. The Latter-day Saints of Israel.--The set time was come for
-God to gather Israel, and for his work to commence upon the face of
-the whole earth, and the elders who have arisen in this church and
-kingdom are actually of Israel. Take the elders who are in the house
-[the old Tabernacle in Salt Lake City], and you can scarcely find one
-out of a hundred but what is of the house of Israel. * * * Will we go
-to the Gentile nations to preach the gospel? Yes, and gather out the
-Israelites wherever they are mixed among the nations of the earth. * *
-* Ephraim has become mixed with all the nations of the earth, and it
-is Ephraim that is gathering together. It is Ephraim that I have been
-searching for all the days of my preaching, and that is the blood which
-ran in my veins when I embraced the gospel. If there are any of the
-other tribes of Israel mixed with the Gentiles we are also searching
-after them.--Brigham Young. From a Discourse preached April 8th, 1855.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What great work did the visit of Moses to the Kirtland Temple
-inaugurate?
-
-2. Who are Israel?
-
-3. Give a sketch of the history of Israel to the revolt of the ten
-tribes.
-
-4. How came the ten tribes to revolt?
-
-5. Give an account of the fall of the kingdom of Israel.
-
-6. Why are the ten tribes called the "lost tribes?"
-
-7. What evidence have you that they are in the north?
-
-8. Give the evidence to be found in the words of Jesus to the Nephites.
-
-{376} 9. What statement does the Apocryphal writer Esdras make
-respecting the ten tribes? (Note 2.)
-
-10. Who were the Samaritans?
-
-11. What tribes formed the kingdom of Judah?
-
-12. Give an outline of the history of Judah to the birth of Messiah.
-
-13. What befell Judah about thirty years after the crucifixion of
-Messiah? (Note 3.)
-
-14. What can you say of miscellaneous dispersions?
-
-15. How came the blood of Israel sprinkled among all nations?
-
-16. What promises are made to scattered Israel?
-
-17. Quote the several passages from the Bible which predict the
-gathering of Israel.
-
-18. Quote the passages from the Book of Mormon.
-
-19. What progress has been made in the preparatory work of the ten
-tribes? (Note 4.)
-
-20. What progress has been made in the preparatory work?
-
-21. What prophecies are the Saints minutely fulfilling in gathering
-together in the mountains? (Note 5.)
-
-22. How do we know that the Latter-day Saints are of Israel? (Note 6.)
-
-23. For what object are the Saints gathering from Babylon?
-
-{377}
-
-
-
-SECTION VIII.
-
-1. Salvation for the Dead.--The appearing of Elijah the prophet,
-in the Kirtland Temple on the 3rd of April, 1836, was the introduction
-of another great work connected with the redemption of the human race.
-That work is Salvation for the dead, the keys of which were given to
-the Prophet Joseph Smith by Elijah, on the occasion of the appearing
-mentioned above. That event was an epoch in the history of this great
-dispensation. It began a revolution in the theology of the Christian
-world. Up to that time--1836--it was universally believed by orthodox
-Christians that the souls of men who died without conversion to the
-Christian religion, were everlastingly lost. It was believed that the
-application of the gospel of Jesus Christ was limited to this life; and
-those who failed, through whatever cause, to obtain the benefits of the
-means of salvation it affords, are forever barred from such benefits.
-"If the tree fall toward the south, or toward the north, in the place
-where the tree falleth, there it shall lie;" [180] and they argued from
-this that in whatever state a man died so he remained. If he died in
-a state of justification his salvation was assured; but if not, then
-justification and consequently salvation was forever beyond his hope.
-
-2. This sectarian doctrine which does so much violence to the
-justice of God--since it closes the door of salvation against so
-many thousands of God's children through no other circumstances than
-that they never so much as heard of the gospel of Jesus Christ, and
-therefore could not either believe or obey it-arose, first, through
-a misconception of the doctrine of eternal punishment with which the
-wicked are threatened in the scriptures; and, second, through a very
-narrow conception of the sure mercies of God.
-
-{378} 3. Christian Dogma of Eternal Judgment.--Christians believe
-that to receive eternal punishment was to be punished eternally. This
-popular Christian error was corrected in a revelation to Martin Harris
-through Joseph Smith, even before the church was organized.[181]
-In that revelation it is explained that God is "Endless;" that is
-one of his names; as also is "Eternal" one of his names. "Therefore
-eternal punishment is God's punishment. Endless punishment is God's
-punishment." In other words, the punishment that will overtake the
-wicked is Eternal's punishment; Endless' punishment. But Christians,
-mistaking the name of the punishment for the sign of its duration,
-taught that men were punished eternally for the sins committed in
-this life. Then again God's punishment is eternal; that is, it always
-exists; it is eternal as God is, but the transgressor receives only
-so much of it, endures it only so long as may be necessary to satisfy
-the reasonable claims of justice, tempered with mercy. Then, when
-the insulted law is vindicated, the offender is released from the
-punishment. But as "the bars survive the captive they enthrall," as the
-prison remains after the transgressor has served his time in it, so in
-God's government, the punishment eternally remains after transgressors
-have satisfied the claims of justice, and are relieved from its pains
-and penalties. It remains to vindicate the law of God whenever it shall
-be broken. But men read--"He that believeth not [the gospel] shall be
-damned," [182] and they are taught to believe that they were damned
-to all eternity--that they were consigned forever to the flames of
-hell.[183] [See note 1, end of section.]
-
-{379} 4. One would think that right conceptions of the attributes
-of justice and mercy as they exist in God's character would lead
-men to the rejection of the horrible dogma of eternal punishment as
-taught by orthodox Christianity. But if that be not sufficient then
-the scriptures themselves refute it, as will appear in the following
-paragraphs:
-
-5. Preaching to the Spirits in Prison.--From a remark made in
-the writings of the Apostle Peter,[184] we learn that after Messiah
-was put to death in the flesh "He went and preached to the spirits in
-prison, which sometime [aforetime] were disobedient, when once the
-long-suffering of God waiting in the days of Noah." During the three
-days, then, that Messiah's body lay in the tomb at Jerusalem, his
-spirit was in the world of spirits preaching to those who had rejected
-the preaching of righteous Noah. The Christian traditions no less than
-the scriptures teach that Jesus went down into hell and preached to
-those there held in ward. [See note 2, end of section.]
-
-6. Not only is the mere fact of Messiah's going to the spirit
-prison stated in the scripture, but the purpose of his going there is
-learned from the same source. "For this cause was {380} the gospel
-preached also to them that are dead, that they might be judged
-according to men in the flesh, but live according to God in the
-spirit." [185] This manifestly means that these spirits who had once
-rejected the counsels of God against themselves, had the gospel again
-preached to them and had the privilege of living according to its
-precepts in the spirit life, and of being judged according to men in
-the flesh, or as men in the flesh are judged; that is, according to the
-degree of their faithfulness to the precepts of the gospel.
-
-7. Naturally the question arises, Why was the gospel preached
-to the spirits in prison who had once been disobedient if there were
-no means by which it could be applied to them for their salvation? We
-can scarcely suppose that Messiah would preach the gospel to them if
-it could do them no good. He did not go there to mock their sufferings
-or to add something to the torture of their damnation by explaining
-the beauties of that salvation now forever beyond their reach! Such
-a supposition would at once be revolting to reason, insulting to the
-justice of God, and utterly repugnant to the dictates of mercy!
-
-8. Following that question comes another: If the gospel is
-preached again to those who have once rejected it, how much sooner will
-it be presented to those who have never heard it, who have lived in
-those generations when the gospel and the authority to administer its
-ordinances were not in the earth? Seeing that those who once rejected
-the offer of salvation had it presented to them again--after paying
-the penalty of their first disobedience--it would seem that those who
-lived when it was not upon the earth, or who when it was upon the earth
-perished in ignorance of it, will much sooner come to salvation.
-
-9. Of the things we have written, this is the sum: (1) The gospel
-was preached by Messiah to the spirits in prison who had rejected the
-teachings of Noah; therefore there must be {381} some means through
-which its precepts and ordinances may be applied to them. (2) If the
-gospel can be made available to those who once rejected the proffered
-mercies of God, its privileges will much sooner, and doubtless more
-abundantly be granted to those who died in ignorance of it.
-
-10. Baptism for the Dead.--The manner in which the ordinances
-of the gospel may be administered to those who have died without
-receiving them is hinted at by Paul. Writing to the Corinthians on the
-subject of the resurrection,--correcting those who said there was no
-resurrection--he asks: "What shall they do which are baptized for the
-dead, if the dead rise not at all? Why are they then baptized for the
-dead?" [186] In this the apostle manifestly referred to a practice which
-existed among the Christian saints of the living being baptized for
-the dead, and argues from the existence of that practice that the dead
-must rise, or why the necessity of being baptized for the dead. Though
-this is the only passage in the New Testament, or in the whole Bible,
-that refers directly to the subject, yet of itself it is sufficient to
-establish the fact that such a principle was known among the ancient
-saints. [See notes 3 and 4, end of section.]
-
-11. From the revelations of God to the church in this
-dispensation the following may be learned: Elijah, in the fulfillment
-of ancient prophecy, appeared unto Joseph Smith and Oliver Cowdery, and
-delivered to them those keys or powers of the priesthood which give to
-the living the right to do a work for the salvation of the dead. As a
-consequence the hearts of the children are turned to the fathers; and
-of course, since the fathers in the spirit world through the preaching
-of the gospel learn that it is within the power of their children to do
-a work for them, their hearts are turned to the children, and thus the
-predicted result to follow Elijah's mission is fulfilled.
-
-12. The work that the living may do for the dead is that of
-attending to outward ordinances--baptisms, confirmations, {382}
-ordinations, washings; anointings and sealings--all being appointed
-by revelation and the direction of the Lord, and all sealed and
-ratified by the power of the priesthood of God which binds on earth
-and in heaven. It is required that all baptisms and other ordinances
-of the gospel performed for the dead be attended to in houses--and
-more properly in temples--specially dedicated for holy purposes. Those
-ordinances are to be faithfully recorded by those who see and hear them
-performed,[187] that there may be valid testimony that the work has
-been done. These ordinances attended to on earth by the living, and
-accepted in the spirit world by those for whom they are performed, will
-make them a patent means of salvation to the dead and of exaltation
-to the living, since they become in very deed "saviors upon Mount
-Zion." This work that can be done for the dead enlarges one's view of
-the gospel of Jesus Christ. One begins to see indeed that it is the
-"everlasting gospel;" for it runs parallel with man's existence both in
-this life and in that which is to come. It vindicates the character of
-God, for by it we may see that justice and judgment, truth and mercy
-are in all his ways. [See note 5, end of section.]
-
-13. Different Degrees of Glory.--Closely associated with the
-subjects treated in the forgoing paragraphs of this section, is the
-subject of the Different Degrees of Glory. Nothing is more clearly
-stated in holy writ than that men will be judged and rewarded according
-to their works. [188]And as their works vary in degree or righteousness
-so will their rewards vary, and so will they have bestowed upon them
-different degrees of glory according as their works shall merit and
-their intelligence be capable of comprehending. Messiah said to his
-disciples: "In my Father's house are many mansions: if it were not so
-I would have told you. I go to prepare a place for you; * * * that
-where I am there ye may be also." [189] Still it is commonly held {383}
-among Christian sects that he who attains heaven partakes immediately
-of the highest glories; while he who misses heaven goes direct to hell
-and partakes of all its miseries forever.[190] Yet nothing is clearer
-than the fact that there are different heavens spoken of in scripture
-and different degrees of glory. When Solomon dedicated the temple he
-had builded, he exclaimed in his prayer--"Behold the heaven and heaven
-of heavens cannot contain thee; how much less this house which I have
-builded!" [191] Paul in writing to the Corinthians says "I knew a man
-in Christ above fourteen years ago * * * such an one caught up to the
-third heaven. And I knew such a man * * * how that he was caught up
-into paradise, and heard unspeakable words, which it is not lawful for
-a man to utter." [192]
-
-14. Reasoning on the resurrection, the last writer quoted says:
-"There are also celestial bodies, and bodies terrestrial; but the
-glory of the celestial is one, and the glory of the terrestrial is
-another. There is one glory of the sun, and another glory of the moon,
-and another glory of the stars: for as one star differeth from another
-star in glory. So also is the resurrection of the dead." [193] In all
-this, however, the great subject is but vaguely hinted at. For a full
-understanding of it we are indebted to a revelation given to Joseph
-Smith, February {384} 16th, 1832. From that revelation we summarized
-the following:[194]
-
-15. The Celestial Glory.--They who receive the testimony of
-Jesus, that believe on his name and are baptized after the manner of
-his burial; that by keeping the commandments they might be washed
-and cleansed from all sin, and receive the Holy Ghost by the laying
-on of hands by those having authority; who overcome by faith, and
-are sealed by the Holy Spirit of Promise--these become the church of
-the First Born. They are they into whose hands the Father hath given
-all things--they are priests and kings, who have received of God's
-fullness, and of his glory; they are priests of the Most High, after
-the order of Melchisedek, which is after the order of the Son of
-God--therefore they are Gods, even the Sons of God. All things are
-theirs, whether life or death, or things present, or things to come,
-all are theirs, and they are Christ's and Christ is God's. They shall
-overcome all things; they shall dwell in the presence of God and Christ
-forever and forever; they are they whom Christ will bring with him when
-he shall come in the clouds of heaven to reign on the earth over his
-people; they have part in the resurrection of the just; their names
-are written in heaven, where God and Christ dwell; they are just men
-made perfect through Jesus the mediator of the new covenant; these are
-they whose bodies are celestial, whose glory the sun in heaven is {385}
-spoken of as typical--they inherit the celestial glory, they see as
-they are seen and know as they are known.
-
-16. The Terrestrial Glory.--The terrestrial glory differs from
-the celestial glory as the light of the moon differs from the light of
-the sun. These are they who died without law, and also they who are the
-spirits of men in prison, whom the Son visited, and preached the gospel
-unto them, that they might be judged according to men in the flesh,
-who received not the testimony of Jesus in the flesh, but afterwards
-received it. These are they who are honorable men of the earth, who
-were blinded by the craftiness of men. These are they who receive of
-God's glory but not of his fullness. They may enjoy the presence of the
-Son but not of the presence of the Father; these are they who are not
-valiant in the testimony of Jesus, therefore they obtain not the crown
-over the kingdom of God.
-
-17. The Telestial Glory.--The telestial glory differs from the
-terrestrial, as the light of the stars differs from the light of the
-moon. The inhabitants of the telestial glory are those who neither
-received the gospel of Christ in the flesh nor the testimony of Jesus
-in the spirit world. These are they who are thrust down to hell, and
-will not be redeemed from the devil until the last resurrection, when
-Christ shall have finished his work. These are they who are of Paul and
-of Apollos, and of Cephas. some of Christ and some of John, some of
-Moses and some of Elias; but received not the gospel nor the testimony
-of Jesus. These are they who will not be gathered with the Saints, to
-be caught up unto the church of the First Born, and received into the
-cloud. These are liars and sorcerers and adulterers, and whoremongers,
-and whosoever loves and makes a lie. They suffer the wrath of God on
-earth and the vengeance of eternal fire, but they will be judged every
-man according to his works and receive according to his works, his
-own dominion, in the mansions which are prepared; and they shall be
-servants {386} of the Most High,[195] but where God and Christ dwell
-they cannot come, worlds without end. They of the Telestial Glory
-enjoy neither the presence of the Father nor the Son, but receive the
-ministration of angels, and of the Holy Ghost, for even they of the
-Telestial Glory are accounted heirs of salvation. The Prophet Joseph
-and Sidney Rigdon in their vision saw that the inhabitants of the
-telestial glory were as innumerable as the stars in the firmament of
-heaven, or as the sand upon the sea shore--and they heard the voice
-of God saying--"These all shall bow the knee and every tongue shall
-confess to Him who sits upon the throne forever and ever; for they
-shall be judged according to their works, and every man shall receive
-according to his own works, his own dominions, in the mansions which
-are prepared, and they shall be servants of the Most High, but where
-God and Christ dwell they cannot come, worlds without end."
-
-18. Degrees Within the Three Great Kingdoms of Glory.--These
-are the three great divisions of glory in the world to come, but
-within these great divisions are subdivisions or degrees. The Prophet
-Joseph taught that in the celestial glory there are three heavens or
-degrees.[196] Of the telestial glory it is written: "And the glory
-of the telestial is one, even as the glory of the stars is one, for
-as one star differs from another star in glory even so differs one
-from another in glory in the telestial world." [197] From this it is
-evident that there are different degrees of glory within the celestial
-and telestial glories; and though we have no direct authority for the
-statement, it seems but reasonable to conclude that there are different
-degrees of glory in the terrestrial world also. It appears but rational
-that it should be so, since the degrees of worthiness in men are almost
-infinite in their variety; and as every man is to be judged according
-to his works, it will require {387} a corresponding infinity of degrees
-in glory to mete out to every man that reward of which he is worthy,
-and that also which his intelligence will enable him to enjoy.
-
-19. Progress Within and From Different Degrees of Glory.--The
-question of advancement within the great divisions of glory--celestial,
-terrestrial, and telestial; as also the question of advancement
-from one sphere of glory to another remains to be considered. In
-the revelation from which we have summarized what has been written
-here, in respect to the different degrees of glory, it is said that
-those of the terrestrial glory will be ministered unto by those of
-the celestial; and those of the telestial will be ministered unto by
-those of the terrestrial--that is, those of the higher glory minister
-to those of a lesser order of glory. We can conceive of no reason for
-all this administration of the higher to the lower, unless it be for
-the purpose of advancing our Father's children along the lines of
-eternal progression. Whether or not in the great future, full of so
-many possibilities now hidden from us, they of the lesser glories after
-education and advancement within those spheres may at last emerge from
-them and make their way to the higher degrees of glory until at last
-they attain to the highest, is not revealed in the revelations of God,
-and any statement made on the subject must partake more or less of the
-nature of conjecture.
-
-20. But if it be granted that such a thing is possible, they who
-at the first entered into the celestial glory--having before them the
-privilege also of eternal progress--have been moving onward, so that
-the relative distance between them and those who have fought their way
-up from the lesser glories, may be as great when the latter have come
-into the degrees of celestial glory in which the righteous at first
-stood, as it was at the commencement; and thus between them is an
-impassable gulf which time cannot destroy. Thus: those whose faith and
-works are such only as to entitle them to inherit a telestial glory,
-may arrive at last where those whose works in this life were such as
-{388} to entitle them to entrance into the celestial kingdom--they may
-arrive where these were but never where they are.
-
-21. Sons of Perdition.--There is a class of souls with whom the
-justice of God must deal, which will not and cannot be classified in
-the celestial, terrestrial or telestial glories.
-
-They are the sons of perdition. But though they will not be assigned
-a place in either of these grand divisions of glory, the revelation
-from which we have drawn our information respecting man's future state
-describes the condition of these sons of perdition so far as it is made
-known unto the children of men. It also informs us as to the nature of
-the crime which calls for such grievous punishment.
-
-22. The sons of perdition are they of whom God hath said that
-it had been better for them never to have been born; for they are
-vessels of wrath, doomed to suffer the wrath of God, with the devil
-and his angels in eternity. Concerning whom he hath said there is no
-forgiveness in this world nor the world to come. These are they who
-shall go away into everlasting punishment, with the devil and his
-angels, and the only ones on whom the second death shall have any
-power; the only ones who will not be redeemed in the due time of the
-Lord, after the sufferings of his wrath. He saves all the works of his
-hands except these sons of perdition; but they go away to reign with
-the devil and his angels in eternity, where their worm dieth not, and
-the fire is not quenched, which is their torment. The end thereof, the
-place thereof no man knoweth. It has not been revealed, nor will it be
-revealed unto man, except to them who are made partakers thereof. It
-has been partially shown to some in vision, and may be shown again in
-the same partial manner to others; but the end, the width, the height,
-the depth and the misery thereof they understand not, nor will any one
-but those who receive the terrible condemnation.
-
-23. Such the punishment, now as to the crime that merits it.
-It is the crime of high treason to God which pulls down on {389} men
-this fearful doom. It falls upon men who know the power of God and
-who have been made partakers of it, and then permit themselves to be
-so far overcome of the devil that they deny the truth that has been
-revealed to them and defy the power of God. They deny the Holy Ghost
-after having received it. They deny the Only Begotten Son of the Father
-after the Father hath revealed him, and in this crucify him unto
-themselves anew, and put him to an open shame. They commit the same
-act of high treason that Lucifer in the rebellion of heaven did, and
-hence are worthy of the same punishment with him. Thank God, the number
-who commit that fearful crime is but few. It is only those who attain
-to a very great knowledge of the things of God that are capable of
-committing it, and the number among such are few indeed who become so
-recklessly wicked as to rebel against and defy the power of God.[198]
-But when such characters do fall, they fall like Lucifer, never to
-rise again; they get beyond the power of repentance, or the hope of
-forgiveness.
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. The Sectarian Dogma of Eternal Punishment.--There is nothing
-more obnoxious to a reasonable mind, a loving heart, a soul susceptible
-to the relative claims of justice and mercy, than the Presbyterian and
-other old ecclesiastical school doctrines of an eternal, material,
-unchanging hell of fire and torment in which the unregenerate are
-doomed to suffer the implacable wrath of an unrelenting Deity forever
-and forever, worlds without end. * * * And it is not true. It was not
-and is not a doctrine of Christ. It sprang from the gloom-clothed
-brains of cloistered monks and heretic-burning priests, bearing not
-a vestige of the sacred authority vested in the apostles and their
-immediate associates. It is redolent of the Auto de fe, and stamped
-with the bloody seal of apostate papal Rome. It breathes of vengeance
-instead of justice, and banishes sweet mercy {390} from the economy of
-heaven. It makes God more cruel than the most inhuman mortal. It is a
-libel on the Almighty and a fruitful cause of atheism, irreverence and
-doubt.--Penrose.
-
-2. Messiah Preaching to the Spirits in Prison.--In the second and
-third centuries every branch and division of the Christian church, so
-far as their record enables us to judge, believed that Christ preached
-to the departed; and this belief dates back to our earliest reliable
-sources of information in the former of those two centuries.--Christ's
-Mission to the Under World, (Huidekoper), fourth edition, p. 49.
-
-As Christ died for us, and was buried, so also is it to be believed,
-that he went down into hell.--Articles of Religion--Church of
-England--Art. III, Book of Common Prayer, p. 311.
-
-These "spirits in prison" are supposed to be the holy dead. * * * The
-most intelligent meaning suggested by the context is, however, that
-Christ by his spirit preached to those who in the time of Noah, while
-the Ark was a preparing, were disobedient, and whose spirits are now in
-prison, abiding the general judgment. The prison is doubtless hades,
-but what hades is must be determined by other passages of scripture;
-and whether it is the grave or hell, it is still a prison for those who
-yet await the judgment day.--Cyclopedia Biblical Literature (Kitto), p.
-798.
-
-3. Baptism for the Dead.--While not maintaining the view that
-there is such a thing as a living man being baptized for one who is
-dead, the writer in Biblical Literature (Kitto), expresses these views:
-"From the wording of the sentence [why then are they baptized for the
-dead?] the most simple impression certainly is, that Paul speaks of a
-baptism which a living man receives in the place of a dead one. This
-interpretation is particularly adopted by those expounders with whom
-grammatical construction is of paramount importance, and the first
-thing to be considered." This view is also upheld by Ambrose among the
-early Christian writers; and by Erasmus, Scaliger, Grotius, Calixtus
-among the moderns; and still more recently by Augusti Meyer, Billroth
-and Ruckert. De Wette considers this the only possible meaning of the
-words.
-
-4. Epiphanius, a writer of the fourth century, in speaking of the
-Marcionites, a sect of Christians to whom he was opposed, says: "In
-this country--I mean Asia--and even Galatea, their school flourished
-eminently; and a traditional fact concerning them has reached us, that
-when any of them had died without baptism, they used to baptize others
-in their name, lest in the resurrection they should suffer punishment
-as unbaptized" (Heresies xxviii:7). This proves beyond controversy the
-fact that vicarious baptism for the dead was practiced among some sects
-of the early Christians. Another fact proves it still more emphatically
-than this statement by Epiphanius. The Council of Carthages, held A. D.
-397, in its sixth canon, forbids the {391} administration of baptism
-and holy communion for the dead; why should this canon be formed
-against these practices if they had no existence among the Christians
-of those days?--The Gospel, page 246.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What great work did Elijah's visit to the Kirtland Temple introduce?
-
-2. What was the Christian belief previous to this in respect to those
-who died without conversion to the Christian religion?
-
-3. Through what cause did this error arise?
-
-4. Explain the meaning of "Eternal" punishment--"Endless" punishment.
-
-5. What scripture teaches that Jesus preached to the spirits in prison?
-
-6. For what purpose was the gospel preached to those who once rejected
-it?
-
-7. If the gospel was preached again to those who once rejected it, what
-may we conclude in respect to those who never heard it in this life?
-
-8. By what means is the gospel made available to those who died without
-a knowledge of it, or who hearing, rejected it?
-
-9. Give an exposition of baptism for the dead. (Notes 3 and 4.)
-
-10. What is the scriptural doctrine in relation to the future rewards
-of men?
-
-11. What is the orthodox Christian view in respect to those who attain
-unto heaven?
-
-12. In what does the Catholic view differ from that of the Protestant?
-(Note, p. 414.)
-
-13. What evidences in the scripture can you quote to prove that there
-are different kingdoms or degrees of glory in heaven?
-
-14. Say what you can of the celestial glory.
-
-15. Describe as far as you can the terrestrial glory.
-
-16. In what does the telestial glory differ from the terrestrial?
-
-17. What class of people inherit the telestial glory?
-
-18. What can you say of degrees within the three great kingdoms of
-glory?
-
-19. What can you say of progress within and from the different degrees
-of glory?
-
-20. What can you say of the sons of perdition and their punishment?
-
-21. What is the nature of their sin?
-
-22. What of the number of those who commit it?
-
-{392}
-
-
-
-SECTION IX.
-
-1. The Breaking up at Kirtland.--The keys of knowledge respecting
-the great doctrines treated in the last two sections were received
-in the Kirtland temple; and for a time it appeared that the Saints
-would long enjoy the blessings of their temple and the communion
-and instruction of heavenly messengers. But not so. With prosperity
-which attended them there, came pride, envyings, jealousies and
-heart-burnings. Their temporal prosperity existed but a brief period.
-It was carried away by the wave of financial disaster which swept
-over the United States in 1837. Then came financial embarrassment,
-accompanied with charges and counter-charges of fraud and dishonesty.
-Apostasy among men high in authority was rife. Several of the twelve
-apostles went down in those dark days, and became bitter enemies to the
-Prophet Joseph. To such an extent did the spirit of apostasy prevail
-that it became murderous; and the prophet and a number of his most
-devoted friends had to flee from Kirtland for their lives. [See note 1,
-end of section.]
-
-2. The Founding of Far West--Expulsion From Missouri.--Meantime
-the Saints in Missouri who were driven from Jackson county, in the
-latter part of 1833, removed from their temporary locations in Clay
-County, and settled in the new county of Caldwell, where they founded
-the city of Far West. It was to Far West that the Prophet Joseph and
-other church leaders fled when compelled to leave Kirtland. But there
-was little rest for the church in Missouri; persecution was threatened
-{393} before the prophet arrived, and his presence only seemed to
-hasten the impending storm. In the autumn of 1838 it broke upon the
-church in all its fury, and during that winter the entire church was
-expelled from the State by order of its governor, Lilburn W. Boggs.
-[See note 2, end of section.]
-
-3. The Rise of Nauvoo.--While the Saints were being expelled from
-the state the Prophet Joseph and several other leading elders were
-imprisoned in Liberty jail, Clay county, Missouri, having been betrayed
-into the hands of their enemies by the treachery of false brethren.
-They were held on false charges of murder, arson and treason. They
-finally made their escape from their enemies and joined the body of
-the church, which had found a temporary resting place in the city of
-Quincy and vicinity, in Illinois. Shortly afterwards they settled at
-Commerce, in Hancock county, in the same state. The church purchased
-several large tracts of land at this place of Dr. Galland, a Mr. White,
-Hubbard, Wells, Hotchkiss, and others; and soon from the wilderness
-and bogs of Commerce--[See note 3, end of section]--rose the city
-of Nauvoo--meaning The Beautiful; "carrying with it also," says the
-Prophet Joseph, "the idea of rest."
-
-4. Although both Joseph and the Saints saw some of their best
-days in Nauvoo, there was not much "rest" for them there, especially
-for the former. The toil and anxiety of founding a city, establishing
-manufactures, publishing a paper, and converting the surrounding
-country into fields and gardens; sending the apostles to preach the
-gospel in foreign lands, being all the time tormented by their enemies
-in Missouri and Illinois, kept the church, and especially the Prophet
-Joseph, busy during the whole time they remained in Nauvoo. Here the
-translation of the Book of Abraham was published. [See note 4, end of
-section.] A magnificent temple was constructed in which to carry on the
-work of salvation for the dead, and in which the living could receive
-those washings and anointings, endowments and {394} sealings, necessary
-to prepare them for their entrance into and their exaltation in heaven.
-
-5. Celestial Marriage Introduced.--It was in Nauvoo also that
-the prophet introduced celestial marriage,--the marriage system which
-obtains in celestial worlds. It consists of the eternity of the
-marriage covenant, that is, the marriage covenant between a man and his
-wife is made for time and all eternity, and being sealed by that power
-of the priesthood which binds on earth and in heaven, the covenant
-holds good in heaven as well as on earth; and by reason of it men will
-have claim upon their wives, and wives upon their husbands, in and
-after the resurrection. Celestial marriage may also include a plurality
-of wives.
-
-6. Eternity of the Marriage Covenant.--This new marriage
-system--new at least to this generation--completely revolutionized the
-ideas of the Saints in respect to the marriage institution. In common
-with the Christian sects, they had regarded marriage vaguely as an
-institution to exist in this world only; and married their wives as
-other Christians did and now do--until death shall them part. But by
-the revelation which the prophet made known at Nauvoo, they learned
-that in celestial spheres the marriage covenant exists eternally, and
-that the pleasing joys of family ties and associations coupled with
-the power of endless increase, contributes to the happiness, power and
-dominion of those who attain to the celestial glory. What a revelation
-was here! Instead of the God-given power of pro-creation being one of
-the things that is to pass away, it is one of the chief means of man's
-exaltation and glory in that great eternity, which like an endless
-vista stretches out before him! Through it man attains to the glory
-of the endless increase of eternal lives, and the right of presiding
-as priest and patriarch, king and lord, over his ever-increasing
-posterity. Instead of the commandment--"Be fruitful, multiply and
-replenish the earth," being an unrighteous law, it is one {395} by
-means of which the race of Gods is perpetuated, and it is as holy and
-pure as the commandment, "Repent and be baptized." Through that law,
-in connection with an observance of all the other laws of the gospel,
-man will yet attain unto the power of the Godhead,[199] and like his
-Father--God--his chief glory shall be to bring to pass the eternal life
-and happiness of man.
-
-{396} 7. Plurality of Wives.--Celestial marriage, as already
-observed, may include a plurality of wives. This was as great an
-innovation as marriage for eternity. It came in conflict with the
-education and tradition of the Saints, and the sentiments of the age.
-Still God had commanded it through his prophet, and though their
-prejudices--the fruit of their traditions--revolted against it, the
-faithful to whom it was revealed resolved to obey it.
-
-8. It was in 1831 that plural marriage was first made known to
-Joseph Smith. In that year he was engaged in revising by inspiration
-the Jewish Scriptures;[200] and observing with what favor the Lord
-regarded the early patriarchs, and many of the kings and prophets of
-the Jews who had a plurality of wives, he inquired of God how it was he
-justified them in that thing. The Lord in answer revealed the law of
-celestial marriage. But the time had not come for the Saints to enter
-into its practice, and hence the prophet kept it locked up a secret in
-his own breast, with the exception of saying to one or two of his most
-confidential friends that plural marriage was a correct principle. [See
-note 4, end of section.] In 1841 the prophet introduced the practice of
-this principle into the church by taking to himself plural wives.[201]
-He also taught the principle to a number of the leading elders and they
-obeyed it.
-
-{397}NOTES.
-
-1. Prosperity and Disaster which Overwhelmed the Church at
-Kirtland.--Speculation was rife all over the United States at
-that time, [1837] and the Saints did not escape the contagion.
-They started a banking institution, engaged in mercantile pursuits
-and land speculation. For a time they were prosperous and wealth
-rapidly accumulated among them. Sidney Rigdon declared, in a burst of
-enthusiasm, that the glory of the latter days was now being ushered
-in, and that Zion would soon become the glory of the whole earth; when
-the Lord for silver would bring gold; for iron, brass; and for stones,
-iron. But a wave of financial disaster swept over the entire country.
-Banking institutions went down before it; thousands of merchants were
-hopelessly ruined; and in the general disaster Kirtland did not escape.
-Like the inhabitants of other towns, her people were overwhelmed with
-financial embarrassment. "Distress, ruin and poverty," says Elder
-Taylor, "seemed to prevail. Apostates and corrupt men were prowling
-about as so many wolves seeking whom they might devour. They were
-oppressive, cruel, heartless, devising every pretext that the most
-satanic malignity could invent to harass the Saints. Fraud, false
-accusation and false swearing, vexatious law suits, personal violence,
-and bare-faced robbery abounded. They were truly afficted, persecuted
-and tormented."--Life of John Taylor, p. 52.
-
-2. Persecution of the Saints in Missouri.--This brings us to the
-close of our story of the Missouri Persecutions. We have seen a people
-start out under the direction of the Lord to build up the city of Zion
-to his holy name; but who, through their disobedience and failure to
-observe strictly those conditions upon which the Lord promised them
-success in accomplishing so great and glorious a work, were driven
-entirely from the State where that city is to be erected. We have seen
-a proud, sovereign state, with a constitution that guaranteed the
-largest possible religious and civil liberty to its citizens, ignore
-the spirit and letter of that constitution; shamelessly violate the
-laws passed in pursuance of it; and the officers of the state, from
-the chief executive down, combine to destroy the Saints of God, or
-drive them from the State: in accomplishing which they were guilty of
-the most cruel barbarity. It is no palliation of their offense to say
-that the Saints had not strictly kept the commandments of God. Their
-offenses were against the laws of God rather than the laws of man. So
-far as the state of Missouri was concerned, she was not justified in
-trampling on her own constitution and laws, and committing outrages
-that would bring to the cheek of {398} a savage the blush of shame. It
-was a case where offenses must needs come, but woe, woe, unto them by
-whom they come!--Missouri Persecutions--Roberts.
-
-3. Commerce, Afterwards Nauvoo.--The place was literally a
-wilderness. The land was mostly covered with trees and bushes, and
-much of it was so wet that it was with the utmost difficulty a footman
-could get through, and totally impossible for teams. Commerce was
-unhealthful, very few could live there; but believing that it might
-become a healthful place by the blessing of heaven to the Saints, and
-no more eligible place presenting itself, I considered it wisdom to
-make an attempt to build up a city.--Joseph Smith.
-
-4. The Book of Abraham.--The rolls of papyrus filled with
-Egyptian characters and hieroglyphics, from which Joseph translated
-the Book of Abraham, came into his possession in the following manner:
-In 1831 the celebrated French traveler, Antonio Sebolo, penetrated
-Egypt as far as the ancient city of Thebes, under a license procured
-from Mehemet Ali--then Viceroy of Egypt--through the influence of
-Chevalier Drovetti, the French Consul. Sebolo employed four hundred
-and thirty-three men for four months and two days, either Turkish or
-Egyptian soldiers, paying them from four to six cents a day per man.
-They entered the Catatombs near ancient Thebes on the seventh of June,
-1831, and procured eleven mummies. These were shipped to Alexandria,
-and from there the great traveler started with his treasures for Paris.
-But en route for the French capital, Sebolo put in at Trieste, where
-he was taken sick, and after an illness of ten days, died. This was
-in 1832. Previous to his death he willed his Egyptian treasures to
-his nephew, Michael H. Chandler, who was then living in Philadelphia,
-Pennsylvania, but whom Sebolo believed to be in Dublin, to which city
-he ordered the mummies shipped. Mr. Chandler ordered the mummies
-forwarded to New York from Dublin, where he took possession of them.
-Here the coffins for the first time were opened, and in them was found
-two rolls of papyrus covered with engraving. While still in the customs
-house, Mr. C. was informed by a gentleman, a stranger to him, that
-no one in the city could translate the characters; but was referred
-to Joseph Smith, who, the stranger informed him, possessed some
-kind of gift or power by which he had previously translated similar
-characters. Joseph Smith was then unknown to Mr. C. The mummies were
-shipped to Philadelphia; and from there Mr. C. traveled through the
-country, exhibited them and the rolls of papyrus, reaching Kirtland
-in July, 1835, and the Saints purchased some of the mummies and the
-two rolls of papyrus, one of which was the writing of Abraham and the
-other of Joseph, who was sold into Egypt. The Book of Abraham has been
-translated and published, at least in part. {399} [See Pearl of Great
-Price. Elder George Reynolds has published a work on this subject, "The
-Divine Authenticity of the Book of Abraham," which should be carefully
-studied by every elder in Israel.]
-
-5. The Establishment of Plural Marriage.--The principle of
-plural marriage was first revealed to Joseph Smith in 1831, but being
-forbidden to make it public, or to teach it as a doctrine of the
-gospel, at that time, he confided the facts to only a very few of
-his intimate associates. Among them were Oliver Cowdery and Lyman E.
-Johnson, the latter confiding the fact to his traveling companion,
-Elder Orson Pratt, in the year 1832. And this great principle remained
-concealed in the bosoms of the Prophet Joseph Smith and the few to whom
-he revealed it, until he was commanded, about 1842, to instruct the
-leading members of the priesthood, and those who were most faithful
-and intelligent, and best prepared to receive it. In relation thereto,
-at which time and subsequently until his martyrdom, the subject in
-connection with the great principles of baptism, redemption and
-sealing for the dead, became the great theme of his life, and as the
-late President George A. Smith repeatedly said to me and others--"The
-prophet seemed irresistibly moved by the power of God to establish that
-principle not only in theory, in the hearts and minds of his brethren,
-but in practice also, he himself having led the way."--Joseph F. Smith.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. What appeared to be the prospects of the Saints at Kirtland?
-
-2. What influence did wealth have upon them?
-
-3. What did the great apostasy at Kirtland result in?
-
-4. State what you can about the founding of Far West.
-
-5. What effect did the presence of the Prophet Joseph have in Missouri?
-
-6. Tell what you can of the expulsion from Nauvoo.
-
-7. Where did the church find a temporary resting place after its
-expulsion from Missouri?
-
-8. Where did the church next settle?
-
-9. What is the meaning of the word "Nauvoo?"
-
-10. What can you say of Nauvoo being a place of rest to the Prophet
-Joseph and the Saints?
-
-11. Enumerate the several things which employed the attention of the
-Prophet and the Saints at Nauvoo.
-
-{400} 12. Where was celestial marriage introduced?
-
-13. What is celestial marriage?
-
-14. In what light was celestial marriage looked upon by the Saints?
-
-15. What was the effect of this principle upon their minds?
-
-16. Is it sacrilege to believe that man may become like his
-Father--God? (See note.)
-
-17. What beside marriage for eternity may celestial marriage include?
-
-18. When was the rightfulness of plural marriage first made known to
-the Prophet Joseph?
-
-19. About what time was this principle introduced into the Church?
-
-20. Under what circumstances and on what date was the revelation on
-celestial marriage written out? (See foot note, also note 5.)
-
-{401}
-
-
-
-SECTION X.
-
-1. Martyrdom of the Prophets.--The relentless persecution which
-had followed the Prophet Joseph Smith ever since he first announced
-that he had received a revelation from God, culminated at last in his
-and his brother Hyrum's martyrdom, at Carthage jail, Hancock county,
-Illinois, on the 27th of June, 1844. Religious prejudices and political
-jealousies, combined with the treason of wicked apostates from the
-church in Nauvoo, are the forces which led to this sad result. The
-two brothers were murdered in Carthage prison while awaiting trial on
-a false charge of treason against the State of Illinois. They were
-under the immediate protection of the officers of the state, the
-governor thereof having only the day before pledged the honor of the
-State for their protection. Notwithstanding all this a mob of from
-one to two hundred surrounded the prison where they were confined,
-forced the door, killed the Prophet Joseph and his brother Hyrum, and
-severely wounded Apostle John Taylor, who, with Willard Richards, was a
-voluntary inmate of the prison with the brothers Smith.[202]
-
-2. The martyrdom of the prophet has an importance second only
-to the crucifixion of Messiah; for in his martyrdom he sealed his
-testimony with his blood, and thenceforth it is made binding on all
-the world. "For where a testament is, there must also of necessity be
-the death of the testator. For a testament is of force after men are
-dead; otherwise it is of no {402} strength at all while the testator
-liveth." [203] The Dispensation of the Fullness of Times doubtless
-required a testimony such as Joseph Smith bore to the world, to be
-sealed with his blood, else the tragedy at Carthage would not have been
-permitted.
-
-3. The Twelve Apostles Succeed in Presidency.--After the death
-of the Prophet Joseph, the Twelve--the quorum standing next to the
-First Presidency, and equal in authority to that quorum--took charge of
-the affairs of the church. Sidney Rigdon, who with Hyrum Smith was a
-counselor in the first presidency, pressed his claims to be recognized
-as the "guardian" or president of the church, but he was rejected by
-the Saints, and the twelve were sustained for the time being as the
-presiding quorum of the church.[204]
-
-4. Expulsion from Illinois.--When the enemies of the Saints
-in Illinois saw that the killing of the prophet did not destroy the
-church, they agitated the question of driving them from the state,
-and such was the influence of the mob, and such the cowardice and
-weakness of the state officials, that they were entirely successful in
-the undertaking. The Saints were compelled to leave the state under
-circumstances of the utmost cruelty, sacrificing very much of their
-property, the city they had founded and the temple they had built.
-
-5. Flight to the West--Why.--When compelled to leave Illinois,
-the Saints turned their faces westward. The country west of the
-Missouri was unoccupied, except by wandering tribes of Indians, and
-they might look for that peace in the vast wilderness of the west which
-had been refused them in the Christian, civilized states of the east.
-But what caused them to look to the west for an abiding place--even
-more than the fact that the west was unoccupied--was the frequent
-predictions {403} of the Prophet Joseph that the Saints would yet
-remove to the Rocky Mountains and become a great people. [See note 1,
-end of section.] Here, too, in the tops of the Rocky Mountains they
-could fulfill better than anywhere else the predictions of the ancient
-prophets. [See note 2, end of section.]
-
-6. Arrival in Salt Lake Valley.--Westward, therefore, they
-turned their faces; the pioneer company--consisting of one hundred and
-forty-three men and three women--crossed the plains in 1847, arriving
-in Salt Lake Valley on the 24th of July of that year. They made their
-encampment on the present site of Salt Lake City, and soon afterwards
-laid off the city and began the erection of permanent homes.
-
-7. Reorganization of the First Presidency.--At Winter Quarters,
-December 5, 1847, the first presidency of the church was reorganized.
-Brigham Young was nominated and sustained as the president, with
-authority to choose his two counselors. He selected Heber C. Kimball
-and Willard Richards for first and second counselors, respectively, and
-they were unanimously sustained by the church.
-
-8. Brigham Young.[205]--Brigham Young acted as the president of
-the church for thirty years--for thirty-three years, if the three years
-that the quorum of the twelve (of which he was president) acted as the
-presiding quorum of the church, be counted. In the course of these
-thirty-three eventful years this truly great man conducted the exodus
-of the Saints from Nauvoo; led them across the wide extended plains
-which form the eastern slopes of the Rocky Mountains; established
-them in Salt Lake and surrounding valleys, located and laid out many
-of their settlements, and taught them not only the moral precepts of
-the gospel, but how to produce from the elements, sterile as they
-then seemed, the necessaries and comforts {404} of life. Through his
-wisdom--God-given--he laid the foundation of the present commonwealth
-of Utah. Just previous to his death he organized the settlements of the
-church into Stakes of Zion, as we now know them, and set in order the
-various quorums of the priesthood.
-
-9. President Young was a natural leader among men--a master
-spirit. His genius especially manifested itself in his ability to
-organize and govern men. He had not only been the president of the
-church and the first governor of Utah, but he was also the friend
-of the people. In times of trial and sorrow they turned to him for
-comfort; in times of danger they looked to him to direct their action;
-in times of perplexity they went to him for the word of the Lord; and
-Brigham Young, full of heaven-inspired wisdom, never failed them in any
-of these things. [See note 3, end of section.]
-
-10. The Twelve again Presiding.--At the death of President
-Brigham Young, August 29, 1877, the quorum of the twelve apostles
-again became the temporary presiding quorum of the church, with John
-Taylor at their head. [See note 4, end of section.] The quorum of the
-twelve continued to act as the presiding quorum of the church until
-the October conference of 1880, when the first presidency was again
-organized. John Taylor was chosen president, and he selected George Q.
-Cannon for his first, and Joseph F. Smith for his second counselor.
-
-11. John Taylor.--President John Taylor came to the high office
-of president of the church late in life, in his seventy-second year.
-He joined the church in his early manhood, in 1836, and two years
-later was ordained into the quorum of the twelve apostles. He was a
-trusted friend of the Prophet Joseph, and was in prison with him when
-he was martyred, and he himself was wounded nigh unto death. He had
-been prominent in all leading events of the church from the time he was
-ordained an apostle until he became the president thereof. He was a man
-of wide experience, profound judgment, and unwavering {405} integrity.
-[See note 5, end of section.] He entered upon the performance of his
-high duties with a zeal and vigor only to be expected of a younger man.
-He was careful to set in order the several quorums of the priesthood,
-and insist upon each man doing his duty. The seven years of his
-administration as president of the church will be remembered as among
-the most eventful in the history of the church. It was during those
-years that the judicial crusade was inaugurated by the United States
-and most vigorously carried on against the Saints for the suppression
-of plural marriage.
-
-12. Wilford Woodruff--His Administration.--President Taylor died
-on the 25th of July, 1887, and once more the quorum of the twelve
-apostles became the presiding quorum of the church. They continued to
-act in that capacity, with Wilford Woodruff as president, until April
-7, 1889, when the first presidency was again reorganized, with Wilford
-Woodruff as president. He retained the counselors of the late President
-Taylor, George Q. Cannon and Joseph F. Smith, as his counselors.
-
-13. The persecution which the United States had inflicted upon
-the church on the pretext of suppressing plural marriage culminated in
-1890 in the discontinuance of the practice of that principle. It may
-be well here to enumerate those circumstances which led to the above
-result. It has already been stated how plural marriage was introduced
-and practiced in Nauvoo. After the church settled in Salt Lake valley
-it was publicly proclaimed as a doctrine of the church in 1852. The
-practice of it then was public, the whole church--and at that time the
-members of the church comprised nearly the whole community--approving
-the principle, which was at once recognized as a proper religious
-institution.
-
-14. Enactments of Congress Against Plural Marriage.--For ten
-years the practice in Utah of this system of marriage met with no
-opposition from the United States. But {406} in 1862 a law was enacted
-by Congress to punish and prevent the practice of polygamy in the
-Territories of the United States.[206] The penalties affixed were
-a fine, not to exceed five hundred dollars, and imprisonment not
-to exceed five years. For twenty years, however, the law remained
-practically a dead letter. It was claimed by the Saints that it was an
-infringement of the religious liberty guaranteed by the Constitution
-[207] of the United States, since it prohibited the free exercise
-of religion. For twenty years no pronounced effort was made by the
-officers of the general government to enforce the law. In 1882,
-however, the law enacted twenty years before was supplemented by
-what is known as the Edmunds Law. In addition to defining the crime
-polygamy--for which it retained the same penalties as the law of
-1862--the Edmunds law also made the cohabiting with more than one
-woman a crime, punishable by a fine not to exceed three hundred
-dollars, and by imprisonment not to exceed six months. This law also
-rendered persons who were living in polygamy, or who believed in its
-rightfulness, incompetent to act as grand or petit jurors; and also
-disqualified all polygamists for voting or holding office. This law of
-1882 was supplemented by the Edmunds-Tucker law--enacted in 1887--which
-made the legal wife or husband, in case of polygamy or unlawful
-cohabitation, a competent witness, provided the accused consented
-thereto; it also enlarged the powers of United States commissioners and
-marshals, and required certificates of all marriages to be filed in the
-office of the probate court. The violation of this last provision was a
-fine of one thousand dollars, and imprisonment for two years. The law
-disincorporated the church, and ordered the supreme court to wind up
-its affairs, and take possession of the escheated property.
-
-{407} 15. The laws were rigorously enforced by the United States
-officials, special appropriations being made by Congress to enable
-them to carry on a judicial crusade against the Saints. The prominent
-church officials were driven into retirement; others into exile. Homes
-were disrupted; family ties were rent asunder. Upwards of a thousand
-men endured fines and imprisonment in the penitentiary rather than be
-untrue to their families. Every effort of the government to deprive the
-people of what was considered their religious liberty was stubbornly
-contested in the Courts until the decision of the supreme court of
-the United States was obtained. While some of the proceedings of the
-courts in Utah in enforcing the anti-polygamy laws were condemned, the
-laws were sustained as constitutional. The court also held that the
-first amendment to the Constitution, which provides that Congress shall
-not prohibit the free exercise of religion, cannot be invoked against
-legislation for the punishment of plural marriages. Meantime government
-was relentless, and still more stringent measures than those already
-enacted were threatened.
-
-16. Discontinuance of Plural Marriages.--In the midst of
-these afflictions and threatening portents President Wilford Woodruff
-besought the Lord in anguish and prayer and the Lord inspired him
-to issue the manifesto which discontinued the practice of plural
-marriages. At the semi-annual conference in October following, the
-action of President Woodruff was sustained by unanimous vote of the
-conference and plural marriages are discontinued in the church. [See
-notes 6, 7, 8, end of section.]
-
-17. In this matter of plural marriage the Latter-say Saints are
-neither responsible for its introduction nor for its discontinuance.
-The Lord commanded its practice, and in the face of the sentiment of
-ages, and in opposition to the teachings of their own traditions, many
-of the Saints obeyed the commandment, and in the midst of weakness,
-difficulties and dangers {408} sought to carry out the law as revealed
-to them. For about half a century they maintained its practice in the
-face of opposition sufficient to appall the stoutest hearts. They
-defended it in the public press proclaimed it from the pulpit, debated
-it on the platform with all those who chose to assail it, and practiced
-it in their lives, notwithstanding fines and imprisonments threatened;
-and when the power of the government was vigorously employed to enforce
-its laws against this institution, hundreds of men cheerfully endured
-both fines and imprisonment rather than be untrue to it. A whole
-generation had been grown and had grown to manhood and womanhood in
-this marriage system, and the affections of family ties were entwined
-with it. Then, under the pressure of suffering brought upon the people
-through the laws of the United States, the Lord inspired the president
-of the church to proclaim its discontinuance, and the people, with
-hearts bursting with grief submitted to the will of heaven, and there
-the matter rests. If the labors and sufferings of the church of Christ
-for this principle have done nothing more, this much at least has been
-accomplished--the Saints have borne testimony to the truth. And it is
-for God to vindicate his own law and open the way for its establishment
-on the earth, which doubtless he will do when his kingdom shall come in
-power, and when his will shall be done in earth as it is in heaven.
-
-18. Laying of the Cap-Stone of the Salt Lake Temple.--One of
-the most pleasing and at the same time one of the most important events
-in the history of the church during the administration of President
-Woodruff, was laying the cap-stone of the Salt Lake Temple, on the 6th
-of April, 1892. It was laid by President Woodruff amid the rejoicing of
-thousands of the Saints; and a resolution was adopted to complete the
-sacred edifice and dedicate it on the 6th of April, 1893--forty years
-from the time the corner-stones thereof was laid.
-
-19. The Growth and Present Condition of the Church (1892).--Since
-the Saints settled in the valleys of the Rocky {409} mountains the
-church has been making steady growth in numbers, and its territorial
-boundaries are constantly extending. The church is no longer confined
-within the boundary lines of the territory of Utah. It has five stakes
-organized in the state of Idaho, one in the state of Colorado, one
-in Wyoming, four in the territory of Arizona, and colonies in Mexico
-and Canada. The settlements of the Saints are noted for peace and
-good order; for the cleanliness, thrift, sobriety and the comfortable
-circumstances of the people. But few individuals in the church can be
-considered wealthy, yet as a whole the community is rich, most of the
-people owning their homes, the lands they cultivate and the flocks and
-herds they tend. The land has been blessed for their sakes, and made to
-yield in its strength. They are a contented, happy, and fast becoming a
-mighty people. They are diligently preaching the gospel to the world,
-having sent missionaries to nearly all the nations of the earth. In
-the British Isles, and among the Scandinavian and German people the
-missionaries have been especially successful. Of late years great
-progress has been made also among the natives of New Zealand, Sandwich
-Islands, and other islands of the Pacific, notably in Samoa.
-
-20. The church is also devoting much of its energies to the work
-for the dead. Four magnificent temples have been reared by the Saints.
-One in St, George, dedicated January 1st, 1877; one in Logan, dedicated
-17th of May, 1884; another in Manti, dedicated 21st of May, 1888; and
-one in Salt Lake, dedicated on the 6th of April, 1893. In these temples
-the faithful Saints are doing a noble and a mighty work for their
-ancestors, as well as a very important work for the living.
-
-21. A Preparatory Work.--The work of God, as revealed through the
-Prophet Joseph Smith, has a peculiar significance to this generation.
-It is essentially a preparatory work; its direct mission is to prepare
-for the glorious coming of the Son {410} of God to reign over the
-earth. Nothing can be more explicitly stated in the scripture than the
-fact that the Son of God will come to the earth in the glory of his
-Father, to reward the righteous with a speedy resurrection from the
-dead, and destroy the wicked by the judgments of famine, pestilence and
-war; to establish his kingdom in power, bringing in a reign of peace,
-liberty and righteousness. In proof of this let the student consider
-the following scripture:
-
-_I. Promise of Messiah's Glorious Return:_--"And when he had spoken
-these things, while they beheld, he was taken up; and a cloud received
-him out of their sight. And, while they looked steadfastly toward
-heaven as he went up, behold two men [angels] stood by them in white
-apparel; which also said, Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up
-into heaven? This same Jesus, which is taken up from you into heaven,
-shall so come in like manner as ye have seen him go into heaven." [208]
-
-"For the Son of man shall come in the glory of his Father, with his
-angels; and then he shall reward every man according to his works." [209]
-
-_II. Messiah to Come to Judgment:_--"For if we believe that Jesus
-died and rose again, even so them also which sleep in Jesus will God
-bring with him. For this we say unto you by the word of the Lord, that
-we which are alive and remain unto the coming of the Lord shall not
-prevent them which are asleep. For the Lord himself shall descend from
-heaven with a shout, with the voice of the archangel, and with the
-trump of God: and the dead in Christ shall rise first; then we which
-are alive and remain shall be caught up together with them in the
-clouds, to meet the Lord in the air: and so shall we ever be with the
-Lord." [210]
-
-"And to you who are troubled rest with us, when the Lord Jesus shall
-be revealed from heaven with his mighty angels {411} in flaming fire
-taking vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not the
-gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ: who shall be punished with everlasting
-destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his
-power; when he shall come to be glorified in his saints, and to be
-admired in all them that believe (because our testimony among you was
-believed) in that day." [211] "For the Son of Man cometh at an hour when
-we think not." [212] [See note 9, end of section.]
-
-_III. The World to be Warned of Coming Judgments:_--To a number of
-elders in Kirtland, in 1832, who had been called to the ministry,
-the Lord gave these instructions, and, of course, they apply to all
-elders called to the same ministry:--"Teach ye diligently and my grace
-shall attend you, that you may be instructed more perfectly in theory,
-in principle, in doctrine, in the law of the gospel, in all things
-that pertain unto the kingdom of God, that is expedient for you to
-understand. * * * That ye may be prepared in all things when I shall
-send you again to magnify the calling whereunto I have called you, and
-the mission with which I have commissioned you. Behold, I sent you out
-to testify and warn the people, and it becometh every man who hath been
-warned to warn his neighbor. Therefore, they are left without excuse,
-and their sins are upon their own heads. * * * Therefore, tarry ye,
-and labor diligently, that ye may be perfected in your ministry to go
-forth among the Gentiles for the last time, as many as the mouth of
-the Lord shall name, to bind up the law and seal up the testimony, and
-to prepare the saints for the hour of judgment which is to come; that
-their souls may escape the wrath of God, the desolation of abomination
-which awaits the wicked, both in this world and the world to come. *
-* * Abide ye in the liberty wherewith ye are made free; entangle not
-yourselves in sin, but let your hands be clean, until the Lord come;
-for not many days hence and the earth shall {412} tremble and reel to
-and fro as a drunken man, and the sun shall hide his face, and shall
-refuse to give light, and the moon shall be bathed in blood, and the
-stars shall become exceeding angry, and shall cast themselves down as a
-fig that falleth from off a fig tree.
-
-"And after your testimony cometh wrath and indignation upon the people;
-for after your testimony cometh the testimony of earthquakes, that
-shall cause groanings in the midst of her, and men shall fall upon the
-ground, and shall not be able to stand. And also cometh the testimony
-of the voice of thunderings, and the voice of lightnings, and the
-voice of the tempest, and the voice of the waves of the sea heaving
-themselves beyond their bounds. And all things shall be in commotion;
-and surely, men's hearts shall fail them; for fear shall come upon all
-people; and angels shall fly through the midst of heaven, crying with a
-loud voice, sounding the trump of God, saying, Prepare ye, prepare ye,
-O inhabitants of the earth; for the judgment of our God is come; behold
-and lo! the Bridegroom cometh, go ye out to meet him." [213]
-
-_IV. The Coming of the Kingdom of God from Heaven:_--"Hearken, and lo,
-a voice as of one from on high. * * * Prepare ye the way of the Lord,
-make his paths straight. The keys of the kingdom of God are committed
-unto man on the earth, and from thence shall the gospel roll forth unto
-the ends of the earth, as the stone which is cut out of the mountains
-without hands shall roll forth, until it has filled the whole earth;
-yea, a voice crying--Prepare ye the way of the Lord, prepare ye the
-supper of the Lamb, make ready for the Bridegroom; pray unto the Lord,
-call upon his holy name, make known his wonderful works among the
-people; call upon the Lord, that his kingdom may go forth upon the
-earth, that the inhabitants thereof may receive it, and be prepared for
-the days to come, in which the Son of Man shall come down from heaven,
-clothed {413} in the brightness of his glory, to meet the kingdom of
-God which is set up on the earth." [214]
-
-_V. A Prayer:_--"Wherefore may the kingdom of God go forth, that the
-kingdom of heaven may come, that thou, O God, mayest be glorified in
-heaven so on earth, that thy enemies may be subdued; for thine is the
-honor, power and glory, forever and ever. Amen." [215]
-
-22. Conclusion.--Such then is the work of God in the great
-Dispensation of the Fullness of Times--a preparatory work for the
-glorious coming and reign of Messiah. It is the gospel of Jesus Christ
-restored to the earth through the ministration of angels to Joseph
-Smith and others whom the Lord called to the work. In it are found
-all the principles, ordinances, authorities, powers, gifts, graces,
-callings and appointments necessary to accomplish the eternal salvation
-of the living and the dead--it is the _fullness_ of the gospel; and has
-or will gather into it all that has ever been revealed concerning the
-redemption of the earth and the human race. This great work of God, as
-we have seen, contemplates the gathering of Israel and the restoration
-of the "lost tribes;" the return of the Jews to Jerusalem, which city
-they will rebuild; the redemption of the Lamanites and the building
-of a glorious city upon the American continent to be called Zion; the
-advent of Messiah in power and glory to reign in righteousness over the
-earth for a thousand years, with all the ancient Saints and those of
-modern days who are worthy; it contemplates the final redemption of the
-earth, and teaches that it will become a celestial sphere, the abode
-of resurrected celestial beings forever. This work of God accepts and
-includes within its boundary lines all truth. It is progressive and
-is destined to become the religion of the age. Within it is scope for
-all the intelligence that shall flow unto it--"within its atmosphere
-is room for every intellectual wing." {414} It does not, as some have
-supposed, thrive best where ignorance is most profound; nor does it
-depend upon superstition for its existence or perpetuity; but it
-possesses within itself principles of native strength that will enable
-it to weather every storm, outlive all hatred born of ignorance and
-prejudice, and will yet prove itself to be what indeed it is--the power
-of God unto salvation to all those who believe and obey it.
-
-NOTES.
-
-1. Prophecy that the Saints would Remove to the West.--I
-passed over the river to Montrose, Iowa, in company with General
-Adams, Colonel Brewer and others, and witnessed the installation of
-the officers of the Rising Sun Lodge of Ancient order of Masons, at
-Montrose, by General James Adams, deputy grand master of Illinois.
-While the deputy grand master was engaged in giving the requisite
-instructions to the master-elect, I had a conversation with a number
-of the brethren in the shade of the building on the subject of our
-persecutions in Missouri, and the constant annoyance which has followed
-us since we were driven from that state. I prophesied that the Saints
-would continue to suffer much affliction and would be driven to the
-Rocky Mountains, many would apostatize, others would be put to death
-by their persecutors, or lose their lives in consequence of exposure
-or disease, and some of you will live to go and assist in making
-settlements and build cities and see the Saints become a mighty people
-in the midst of the Rocky Mountains.--Joseph Smith's journal for 6th of
-August, 1842.
-
-2. Why the Church Came West.--"Many living witnesses can testify
-that we proposed moving to California [then a general name for the
-great West, including what is now Utah] leaving the land of our
-oppression, preaching the gospel to the Lamanites, building up other
-temples to the living God, establishing ourselves in the far distant
-West. The cruel and perfidious persecutions that we endured tended to
-hasten our departure, but did _not_ dictate it. It jeopardized our
-lives, property and liberty, but was not the cause of our removal. Many
-a time have I listened to the voice of our beloved prophet, while in
-council, dwell on this subject with delight; his eyes sparkling with
-animation, and his soul fired with the inspiration of the Spirit of
-the living God. It was a theme that caused the bosoms of all who were
-privileged to listen to thrill with delight; intimately {415} connected
-with this were themes upon which prophets, patriarchs, priests and
-kings dwelt with pleasure and delight; of them they prophesied, sung,
-wrote, spoke and desired. to see, but died without the sight. My spirit
-glows with sacred fire while I reflect upon these scenes, and I say, O
-Lord, hasten the day! Let Zion be established! Let the mountain of the
-Lord's house be established in the tops of the mountains!"--a thing, I
-may add--and which he plainly intimates--could not have been done had
-the Saints remained in Nauvoo. The Saints did not come to the Rocky
-Mountain valleys because they were compelled to by their enemies,
-but came here because it was their destiny to come; because the Lord
-would have them here; and because there were problems to work out in
-connection with the work of God which could be worked out nowhere
-else.--Life of John Taylor p. 179.
-
-3. Character of Brigham Young.--Brigham Young was colonizer,
-statesman, philosopher, philanthropist, reformer, prophet leader,
-priestly-king, an honest man, God's noblest work! * * * His greatness
-shines forth in conduct and leadership and colonization and in the
-building of a mighty commonwealth in these mountain valleys. * * * On
-all great occasions promptness and decision were characteristics of his
-organization; and let a question arise where it might, all Israel felt
-when it reached God's prophet-leader, it would find proper solution,
-and when solved would be endorsed by wisdom.--Moses Thatcher.
-
-4. Succession of the Twelve on the Death of President Young.--On
-the 4th of September, 1877, the two counselors of the late President
-Young and ten of the Twelve Apostles--Orson Pratt and Joseph F.
-Smith, the other two members, were absent in England--held a meeting
-and waited upon the Lord. With humble, contrite and saddened hearts
-they earnestly sought to learn his will concerning themselves and the
-church. The Lord blessed them with the spirit of union, and revealed to
-them what steps should be taken, and the following is what was done:
-Elder Taylor was unanimously sustained as the president of the twelve;
-and with the same unanimity it was voted that the twelve apostles
-should be sustained as the presiding authority in the church, while the
-counselors to the late President Young, John W. Young and Daniel H.
-Wells, were sustained as one with, counselors to, and associated with
-the twelve apostles. To facilitate the transaction of business it was
-also voted that for the time being President Taylor should be assisted
-by John W. Young, Daniel H. Wells and George Q. Cannon, in attending
-to business connected with the temples, the public works and other
-financial affairs of the Church.--Life of John Taylor.
-
-5. John Taylor.--There was a beautiful harmony in the character
-of {416} his mind and the lineaments of his person. If the habitation
-was splendid, the inmate was worthy of it. His noble form and bearing
-were but the outward expression of the spirit within. A universal
-benevolence, powerful intellect, splendid courage, physical as well
-as moral, a noble independence of spirit, coupled with implicit faith
-and trust in God, a high sense of honor, unimpeachable integrity,
-indomitable determination and passionate love of liberty, justice and
-truth marked the outlines of his character.--Life of John Taylor.
-
-6. The Discontinuance of Plural Marriage.--The clause in
-President Woodruff's manifesto which discontinued plural marriage is
-as follows: "Inasmuch as laws have been enacted by Congress forbidding
-plural marriages, which laws have been pronounced constitutional by the
-court of last resort, I hereby declare my intention to submit to those
-laws, and to use my influence with the members of the church over which
-I preside to have them do likewise. * * * And I now publicly declare
-that my advice to the Latter-day Saints is to refrain from contracting
-any marriage forbidden by the law of the land."
-
-Following is the resolution presented to the semi-annual conference in
-the October following. It was presented by Lorenzo Snow, the president
-of the twelve apostles:--"I move that, recognizing Wilford Woodruff
-as the president of the Church of Jesus Christ of Latter-day Saints,
-and the only man on the earth at the present time who holds the keys
-of the sealing ordinances, we consider him fully authorized by virtue
-of his position to issue the manifesto which has been read in our
-hearing, and which is dated September 24, 1890; and that as a church
-in general conference assembled, we accept his declaration concerning
-plural marriage as authoritative and binding." The vote to sustain the
-foregoing motion was unanimous.
-
-7. Basis on which the Manifesto was Issued.--Verily, verily I
-say unto you, that when I give a commandment to any of the sons of
-men, to do a work unto my name, and those sons of men go with all
-their might, and with all they have to perform that work, and cease
-not their diligence, and their enemies come upon them and hinder them
-from performing that work; behold, it behooveth me to require that
-work no more at the hands of those sons of men, but to accept of their
-offerings. [Revelation given 19th Jan., 1841, Doc. and Cov., sec.
-cxxiv.] It is on this basis that President Woodruff has felt himself
-justified in issuing this manifesto. * * * We have waited for the
-Lord to move in this matter, and on the 24th of September, President
-Woodruff made up his mind that he would write something, and he had
-the spirit of it. He had prayed about it and he had besought the Lord
-repeatedly to show him what to do. At that time the spirit came upon
-him, and the document that has been read in your hearing was the
-result. I know that it was right, much as it has gone against {417} the
-grain with me in many respects. * * * But when God speaks and when God
-makes known his mind and will, I hope that I and all Latter-day Saints
-will bow in submission to it.--Geo. Q. Cannon, in a sermon Oct. 6th,
-1890.
-
-I want to say to all Israel that the step which I have taken in issuing
-this manifesto has not been done without earnest prayer before the
-Lord. * * * I have done my duty, and the nation of which we form a part
-must be responsible for that which has been done in relation to that
-principle [plural marriage.]--President Woodruff, in a sermon Oct.6th,
-1890.
-
-8. Testimony from God Promised that the Manifesto was
-Inspired.--I have received a revelation and commandment from the
-Lord, which I have not revealed to any man, which I shall reveal to
-this assembly, and the command of the Lord I shall give to this people,
-which is this: The Lord has revealed to me that there are many in
-the church who feel badly tried about the manifesto, and also about
-the testimony of the presidency and apostles before the master in
-chancery. The Lord has commanded me to put the following question to
-the Saints, and those who will give strict attention to it shall have
-the Holy Ghost to be with them to inspire them to answer that question
-for themselves, and the Lord has promised that the answer will be to
-all alike. The question is this: which is the wisest course for the
-Latter-day Saints to pursue--to continue to attempt to practice plural
-marriage with the laws of the nation against it and the opposition
-of 60,000,000 of people, and at the cost of the confiscation, and
-loss of all the temples, and the stopping of the ordinances therein,
-both for the living and the dead; and the imprisonment of the first
-presidency and the twelve, and the leaders of heads of families in the
-church, and the confiscation of the personal property of the people
-(all of which of themselves would stop the practice) or after doing
-and suffering what we have through our adherence to this principle, to
-cease the practice and submit to the law, and through doing so leave
-the prophets, apostles and fathers at home, so that they can instruct
-the people and attend to the duties of the church, and also leave the
-temples in the hands of the Saints so that they can attend to the
-ordinances of the gospel, both for the living and the dead? Now the
-inspiration of the Lord will reveal to any person which course wisdom
-would dictate us to pursue. And the Latter-day Saints throughout all
-Israel should understand that the first presidency of the church and
-the twelve apostles are led and guided by the inspiration of the Lord,
-and the Lord will not permit me nor any other man to lead the people
-astray.--President Woodruff, at Box Elder quarterly conference, Oct.
-25th. 1891. Juvenile Instructor, vol. xxvi: p. 671.
-
-9. Sign of the Coming of Messiah.--I have asked the Lord
-concerning {418} his coming; and while asking the Lord, he gave me
-a sign and said: "In the days of Noah I set a bow in the heavens as
-a sign and a token that in any year that the bow should be seen the
-Lord would not come; but there should be seed time and harvest during
-that year; but whenever you see the bow withdrawn, it shall be a token
-that there shall be famine, pestilence and great distress among the
-nations, and that the coming of the Messiah is not far distant. * *
-Jesus Christ never did reveal to any man the precise time that he would
-come."--Joseph Smith.
-
-REVIEW.
-
-1. Relate the circumstances connected with the martyrdom of Joseph and
-Hyrum Smith.
-
-2. Who succeeded to the presidency of the church after the death of the
-Prophet Joseph?
-
-3. Give an account of the expulsion of the church from Illinois.
-
-4. State the reasons why the church in its flight went westward.
-
-5. Give an account of the arrival in Salt Lake valley.
-
-6. When and where was the first presidency of the church reorganized?
-
-7. State the leading achievements in the career of Brigham Young.
-
-8. What was the character of President Young? (Note 3.)
-
-9. Who again took the presidency of the church at the death of Brigham
-Young?
-
-10. When was the first presidency again organized?
-
-11. State what you can of the life and character of John Taylor.
-
-12. For what is John Taylor's administration noted?
-
-13. Who succeeded to the presidency of the church after the death of
-President Taylor?
-
-14. What led to the discontinuance of the practice of plural marriage?
-
-15. When was plural marriage publicly announced as a doctrine of the
-Church?
-
-16. Give an account of the enactments of Congress against plural
-marriage.
-
-17. State in what spirit these laws were enforced.
-
-18. State in what way plural marriage was finally discontinued.
-
-19. What was the basis of this action of the Church? (Notes 6, 7, 8.)
-
-20. Were the Saints responsible either for the introduction or
-discontinuance of plural marriage?
-
-21. What has been their course in relation to this principle since its
-introduction?
-
-{419} 22. Give an account of the laying of the cap-stone on the Salt
-Lake temple.
-
-23. Make a statement of the growth and present position of the church.
-
-24. What is the immediate purpose of the work began by the Prophet
-Joseph Smith?
-
-25. State several promises to be found in the Jewish scriptures
-respecting the glorious return of Messiah.
-
-26. Quote those that predict Messiah will come to judgment.
-
-27. What hath God decreed concerning the time of his coming? (Note 9.)
-
-28. For what especial purpose hath God sent forth his servants to the
-world in this dispensation?
-
-29. What will be the crowning event to the work of this dispensation?
-
-30. State what is contemplated by the work of God in the dispensation
-of the fullness of times.
-
-THE END.
-
-Footnotes
-
-1. Jaques' Catechism, page 77.
-
-2. "God having made known unto us * * * that in the dispensation of
-the fullness of times he might gather together in one all things in
-Christ, both which are in heaven, and which are on earth; even in him."
-(Ephesians i:9, 10.)
-
-3. Note 2, end of section.
-
-4. Ontario County has since been divided, and the north part of it, in
-which Palmyra is located, is now called Wayne County.
-
-5. While the Prophet Joseph in describing this first great vision
-refers to the Lord and his Son Jesus Christ as two glorious personages
-without giving at that time any particular description of their
-persons, it is clear that they were in the form of men. Teaching the
-church the character of the Godhead some years later, the prophet said:
-"God himself was once as we are now, and is an exalted Man and sits
-enthroned in yonder heavens. That is the great secret. If the vail was
-rent today and the great God who holds this world in its orbit, and who
-upholds all worlds and all things by his power, was to make himself
-visible--I say if you were to see him today, you would see him like a
-man in form--like yourselves, in all the person, image and very form as
-a man, for Adam was created in the very fashion, image and likeness of
-God, and received instruction from and walked and talked, and conversed
-with him, as one man talks and communes with another."--Journal of
-Discourses, Vol. VI, page 3.
-
-6. Most likely the first part of the third chapter, as that relates to
-the coming of a messenger to prepare the way for the glorious coming of
-Messiah. (See Mal. iii: 1-6.)
-
-7. Pearl of Great Price, page 90. The words in Italics indicate the
-difference between the passages as quoted by Moroni and as they stand
-in our English version of the Bible. The student should compare the
-passages as quoted above with the Bible and mark how superior is the
-angel's rendering of them.
-
-8. That was the name of the hill among the Nephites. The Jaredites, a
-still more ancient people, called it Ramah.
-
-9. Book of Mormon, pp. 114, 115.
-
-10. This messenger was a resurrected personage. It will be remembered
-that John the Baptist was beheaded by Herod Antipas before the
-crucifixion of the Lord; and that after the resurrection of Messiah,
-"the graves were opened; and many bodies of the saints which slept
-arose, and came out of the graves after his [Christ's] resurrection,
-and went into the holy city, and appeared unto many." (Matt. xxvii: 52,
-53.) As John the Baptist was one of the most worthy of the saints, and
-a martyr for righteousness, it is but reasonable to conclude that he
-was among the number resurrected immediately after the resurrection of
-Jesus.
-
-11. For the words of the angel see Doc. and Cov., sec. 13.
-
-12. These baptisms were, of course, by immersion. The Savior when
-teaching the Nephites how to baptize, said: "Ye shall go down and stand
-in the water, and * * * these are the words ye shall say, calling them
-by name, saying--Having authority given me of Jesus Christ, I baptize
-you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
-Amen. And then shall ye immerse them in the water, and come forth again
-out of the water." (III Nephi xi: 23-26.) It was this passage which led
-Joseph and Oliver to inquire of the Lord about baptism, with the result
-stated in the text.
-
-13. See Cannon's Life of Joseph Smith, p. 73.
-
-14. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxviii: 20; also article by Joseph F. Smith on
-Restoration of the Melchisedek Priesthood, "Contributor," vol x, p. 310.
-
-15. Matt. xvi: 19.
-
-16. Cannon's Life of Joseph Smith, p. 73.
-
-17. Doc. and Cov., sec. cvii: 18, 19.
-
-18. Their names were Joseph Smith, Oliver Cowdery, Hyrum Smith, Peter
-Whitmer, Jun., Samuel H. Smith, and David Whitmer. There were a number
-of others who had been baptized, but as six persons were sufficient to
-fill the requirements of the laws of the State of New York in respect
-to organizing religious societies, the church was organized with that
-number.
-
-19. The words "of Latter-day Saints," were not used until some time
-after April 26, 1838, when they were added by revelation from the Lord.
-(Doc. and Cov., sec. cxv.)
-
-20. See Doc. and Cov. sec. xxi.
-
-21. The revelation giving these instructions was given in the chamber
-of Peter Whitmer, Sen., and is the "voice of God in the chamber of old
-Father Whitmer," alluded to in the letter of Joseph to the church under
-date of Sep. 6, 1842, contained in sec. cxxviii of the Doc. and Cov.
-
-22. Page 297.
-
-23. It is the law of the church that "no person is to be ordained to
-any office in this church, where there is a regularly organized branch
-of same, without the vote of that church." (Doc. and Cov., sec. xx: 65.)
-
-24. Doc. and Cov., sec. xxvi.
-
-25. The voice of the people is the voice of God.
-
-26. The voice of God is the voice of the people.
-
-27. The voice of God and the voice of the people.
-
-28. This revelation is the one found in sec. xx., Doc. and Cov. The
-Prophet Joseph precedes it in his history with these remarks: "Among
-many other things of the kind [spiritual manifestations], we obtained
-of Him the following, by the spirit of prophecy and revelation, which
-not only gave us much information, but also pointed out to us the
-precise day upon which, according to his will and commandment, we
-should proceed to organize his church once again here upon the earth."
-Then followed the revelation above referred to.--Hist. Joseph Smith,
-Mill Star (Supplement) vol. xiv, p.22
-
-29. See part I.
-
-30. Subsequently when some persons desired to join the church without
-baptism at the hands of the elders, having been baptized by the
-ministers of other churches, the Lord said: "All old covenants have I
-caused to be done away in this thing, and this is a new and everlasting
-covenant, even that which was from the beginning. Wherefore, although
-a man should be baptized an hundred times, it availeth him nothing,
-for you cannot enter in at the straight gate by the law of Moses,
-neither by your dead works. For it is because of your dead works, that
-I have caused this last covenant and this church to be built up unto me
-even as in days of old. Wherefore enter ye in at the gate, as I have
-commanded, and seek not to counsel your God." Doc. and Cov. sec. xxii.
-
-31. Eight years is fixed as the age of baptism for children. Doc. and
-Cov. sec. lxviii: 27.
-
-32. These are the same words given to the Nephites, except that the
-opening clause in the Book of Mormon is: "Having authority given me of
-Jesus Christ" (III Nephi xi: 25), and that means the same as "Having
-been commissioned of Jesus Christ," etc.
-
-33. All officers in the church holding higher authority than those
-named would, of course, have authority to administer the sacrament.
-
-34. A few months after the organization of the church, viz., early in
-the month of August, 1830, when the Prophet Joseph left his house in
-Harmony, Penn., for the purpose of procuring wine to administer the
-sacrament to a few saints visiting him at his home--he had gone but a
-short distance when he was met by a heavenly messenger and received
-the revelation contained in the Doc. and Cov. sec. xxvii, a portion
-of which is as follows: "Listen to the voice of Jesus Christ, your
-Lord, your God and your Redeemer, whose word is quick and powerful.
-For behold I say unto you, that it mattereth not what ye shall eat or
-what ye shall drink when ye partake of the sacrament, if it so be that
-ye do it with an eye single to my glory, remembering unto the Father
-my body which was laid down for you, and my blood which was shed for
-the remission of your sins; wherefore, a commandment I give unto you,
-that ye shall not purchase wine, neither strong drink of your enemies;
-wherefore you shall partake of none except it is made new among you;
-yea, in this my Father's kingdom, which shall be built up on the
-earth." This revelation is the authority the Church of Jesus Christ of
-Latter-day Saints has for using water instead of wine in the sacrament.
-
-35. It must be remembered that this revelation was given before the
-church was organized; at that time there were a number who had been
-baptized, and who had children not old enough to be baptized, and had
-not yet been blessed of the elders. This commandment, therefore, was
-directed more especially to them, but applies, of course, to people
-placed in like circumstances. Subsequently, in November 1831, the
-Lord said: "Inasmuch as parents have children in Zion, or in any of
-her stakes which are organized, who teach them not to understand the
-doctrine of repentance, faith in Christ, the Son of the living God,
-and of baptism and the gift of the Holy Ghost by the laying on of
-hands when eight years old, the sin be upon the heads of the parents;
-for this shall be a law unto the inhabitants of Zion, or in any of
-her stakes when organized; and their children shall be baptized for
-the remission of sins when eight years old and receive the laying on
-of hands, and they shall also teach their children to pray and walk
-uprightly before the Lord." (Doc. and Cov. sec. lxviii:25-28.)
-
-36. The term "elder" is both a general and a specific title. That
-is, it may be applied to an apostle or a seventy; as, for instance,
-in the revelation under consideration (Doc. and Cov. sec. xx), it is
-said: "An apostle is an elder," etc. We shall see also further on that
-it is the name of a specific office in the church; that ninety-six
-elders constitute a quorum; that they constitute a standing ministry
-in the stakes of Zion; and that they have authority to do all that is
-enumerated in the text above.
-
-37. The closing phrases of paragraph 37, sec. xx; Doc. and Cov., are
-what Oliver objected to--"And truly manifest by their works that they
-have received of the Spirit of Christ unto the remission of sins."
-
-38. Doc. and Cov. sec. xxviii
-
-39. Doc. and Cov. xxviii, and sec. xliii:1-6
-
-40. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xxviii.
-
-41. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xxxvii.
-
-42. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xli.
-
-43. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii.
-
-44. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 15.
-
-45. Ibid, verse 20.
-
-46. Ibid, verse 68.
-
-47. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lvii:17.
-
-48. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lviii: 15; 18. Ibid, sec. cvii: 72-75.
-
-49. There are bishops holding different positions: Bishop Partridge
-was a general bishop over the land of Zion; while Bishop Whitney was
-a general bishop over the church in Kirtland, Ohio, and also over the
-eastern churches until afterwards appointed as presiding bishop. * * *
-There are also ward bishops, whose duties are confined to their several
-wards. * * * There are also bishops' agents such as Sidney Gilbert [he
-was Bishop Partridge's agent in Zion, Missouri], and others.--Items on
-Priesthood by the late President John Taylor.
-
-50. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 17, 18.
-
-51. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 20.
-
-52. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 21.
-
-53. And inasmuch as a president of the high priesthood shall
-transgress, he shall be had in remembrance before the common council
-of the church, who shall be assisted by twelve counselors of the
-high priesthood; and their decision upon his head shall be an end of
-controversy concerning him. (Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 82, 83).
-
-54. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 19.
-
-55. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 22-24.
-
-56. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv: 112.
-
-57. I think a careful reading of sec. lxviii of the Doctrine and
-Covenants, will justify this conclusion--that not only the office of
-presiding bishop of the church should be filled by the first-born of
-the sons of Aaron, but that the traveling and local bishops also, so
-far as can be, should be chosen from among the first born of the sons
-of Aaron. The following passage seems especially clear on the question:
-"There remaineth hereafter, in the due time of the Lord, other bishops
-to be set apart unto the church, to minister even according to the
-first; wherefore they shall be high priests who are worthy, and
-they shall be appointed by the first presidency of the Melchisedek
-priesthood, except they be descendants of Aaron, and if they be literal
-descendants of Aaron they have a legal right to the bishopric, if they
-are the first-born among the sons of Aaron." Sec. lxviii: 14-16.
-
-58. Book of Ether, ch. xiii, and III Nephi, ch. xx.
-
-59. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlv.
-
-60. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lii.
-
-61. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lvii.
-
-62. Acts iv: 32.
-
-63. The branch of the Church in this part of the Lord's vineyard
-[Kirtland], which had increased to nearly one hundred members, were
-striving to do the will of God so far as they knew it, though some
-had strange notions, and false spirits had crept in among them. With
-a little caution and some wisdom, I soon assisted the brethren and
-sisters to overcome them. The plan of "common stock," which had existed
-in what was called "the family," whose members generally had embraced
-the everlasting gospel, was readily abandoned for the more perfect law
-of the Lord, and the false spirits were easily discerned and rejected
-by the light of revelation.--Joseph Smith.--Millennial Star Supplement
-to vol. xiv, p. 56.
-
-64. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xli.
-
-65. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii.
-
-66. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 30,32.
-
-67. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 32.
-
-68. In the very revelations in which the first instructions on the
-subject of consecration and stewardship are given the Lord says: "Let
-all thy garments be plain and their beauty the beauty of the work of
-thine own hands. * * * Thou shalt not be idle, for he that is idle
-shall not eat the bread nor wear the garments of the laborer." (Doc.
-and Cov., sec. xliii: 40,42). In a subsequent revelation, referring to
-the inhabitants of Zion who were living under this law of consecration,
-the Lord said: "And the inhabitants of Zion, also, shall remember their
-labors, inasmuch as they are appointed to labor in all faithfulness,
-for the idler shall be had in remembrance before the Lord." (Doc. and
-Cov., sec. lxviii: 30).
-
-69. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ: 54,57.
-
-70. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxii: 2,8.
-
-71. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ.
-
-72. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. li: 4, 5.
-
-73. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 33, 35.
-
-74. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ: 70, 77.
-
-75. "All children have claim upon their parents for their maintenance
-until they are of age. After that they have claim upon the church, or
-in other words, upon the Lord's store-house, if their parents have not
-wherewith to give them inheritances. And the store-house shall be kept
-by the consecrations of the church, and widows and orphans shall be
-provided for as also the poor." (Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxiii: 4, 6.)
-
-76. Sec. xlii: 53;54. And you are to be equal, or in other words, you
-are to have equal claims on the properties for the benefit of managing
-the concerns of your stewardships, every man according to his wants and
-needs inasmuch as his wants are just. (Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxii: 17.)
-
-77. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. li: 10, 13, also verse 18, which says
-the law laid down in verses 10, 13, shall be an example to all churches.
-
-78. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cv: 1, 5, also sec. lviii: 35, 36.
-
-79. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 39.
-
-80. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. li: 3.
-
-81. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ: 15-17.
-
-82. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxix.
-
-83. For a detailed account of this event and the causes leading up to
-it, see the author's work on the "Missouri Persecutions."
-
-84. Doc. and Cov., sec. ciii.
-
-85. Daniel Dunklin, governor of Missouri, agreed to call out the
-militia of the state and re-instate the exiles on their lands; but he
-claimed that he had no authority to keep a force under arms to protect
-them after they were restored. Hence the coming of Zion's camp to so
-strengthen the brethren that they could hold their own against the mob
-when once placed back in their homes.
-
-86. Missouri Persecutions.
-
-87. Doc. and Cov., sec. cv. The revelation was given on Fishing river,
-Missouri.
-
-88. The corner stones of the Kirtland temple were laid on the 23rd of
-July, 1833.
-
-89. Doc. and Cov., sec. cii:22.
-
-90. Doc. and Cov., sec. cvii: 23-33.
-
-91. Doc. and Cov., sec. cii: 30-32, also sec. cvii: 32.
-
-92. Doc. and Cov., sec. cii: 26, 27.
-
-93. Their names were Lyman E. Johnson, Brigham Young, Heber C. Kimball,
-Orson Hyde, David W. Patten, Luke S. Johnson, Wm. E. McLellin, John F.
-Boynton, Wm. B. Smith, Parley P. Pratt, Thomas B. Marsh, Orson Pratt.
-
-94. Doc. and Cov., sec. cvii.
-
-95. The circumstances under which this revelation (contained in section
-cvii, Doc. and Cov.) was given are highly interesting; they are as
-follows: On the afternoon of the 28th of March the twelve met in
-council and had a time of general confession. "On reviewing our past
-course," writes Orson Hyde and Wm. E. McLellin, clerks of the meeting,
-"we are satisfied, and feel to confess also, that we have not realized
-the importance of our calling, to that degree that we ought; we have
-been light minded and vain, and in many things done wrong--_wrong_. For
-all these things we have asked the forgiveness of our Heavenly Father,
-and wherein we have grieved or wounded the feelings of the presidency,
-we ask their forgiveness. The time when we are about to separate is
-near, and when we shall meet again, God only knows; we therefore feel
-to ask of him whom we have acknowledged to be our prophet and seer,
-that he inquire of God for us and obtain a revelation (if consistent)
-that we may look upon it when we are separated, that our hearts may be
-comforted. Our worthiness has not inspired us to make this request,
-but our unworthiness. We have unitedly asked God our Heavenly Father
-to grant unto us through his seer, a revelation of his mind and will
-concerning our duty the coming season, even a great revelation that
-will enlarge our hearts comfort us in adversity and brighten our hopes
-amidst the power of darkness." (Mill. Star, vol. xv, p. 245.) The
-revelation which was given in answer to this request is one of the most
-splendid contained in the Book of Doctrine and Covenants.
-
-96. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. i: 38.
-
-97. Doctrine and Covenants sec. cxxi:36.
-
-98. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxi: 41-44. These views from the
-revelations of the Lord to Joseph Smith are in strict accord with
-the teachings of Jesus Christ to the twelve apostles among the Jews.
-To them he said: "Ye know that the princes of the Gentiles exercise
-dominion over them, and they that are great, exercise authority upon
-them. But it shall not be so among you; but whosoever will be great
-among you let him be your minister; and whosoever will be chief among
-you, let him be your servant; even as the Son of Man came not to be
-ministered unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for
-many." (Matt. xx: 25-28.) Peter, it would seem remembered the spirit
-of these instructions, as years afterwards we have him saying to those
-set to govern the churches: "Feed the flock of God which is among you,
-taking the oversight thereof, not by constraint, but willingly; not for
-filthy lucre, but of a ready mind; neither as being lords over God's
-heritage, but being ensamples unto the flock." (I Peter v: 2, 3.)
-
-99. This it appears is the view Joseph Smith took of the subject.
-Replying to a question of Judge Stephen A. Douglas, how he governed
-so easily so large a people as the Saints were at Nauvoo, the prophet
-replied, "I teach them correct principles and they govern themselves."
-
-100. In answering the question: was the priesthood of Melchisedek
-taken away when Moses died, the Prophet Joseph said: "All priesthood
-is Melchisedek, but there are different portions or degrees of it. The
-portion which brought Moses to speak with God face to face was taken
-away; but that which brought the ministry of angels remained." (Hist.
-Joseph Smith. See also Doc. and Cov., sec. cxii: 4, 5.)
-
-101. The reasons for calling this division the Melchisedek priesthood
-are given in note 3, section ii of part iv.
-
-102. The reason for calling the second division the Aaronic Priesthood
-is because it was a priesthood conferred upon Aaron, the brother of
-Moses, and his sons after him. It is a division of the priesthood which
-belongs of right to the house of Aaron. (See Doc. and Cov. sec. cvii:
-13, 14.)
-
-103. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 18-19.
-
-104. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 20.
-
-105. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 21
-
-106. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 65-66.
-
-107. Ibid, verses 91, 92.
-
-108. It must be remembered by the student that apostles are also high
-priests. In fact the apostleship circumscribes all priesthood, hence it
-happens that some men who have not been directly ordained high priests,
-but who were apostles, have acted in the quorum of the first presidency
-of the church. Brigham Young did so.
-
-109. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 22.
-
-110. Ibid, verse 91.
-
-111. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 23, 24, 32, 39, 58.
-
-112. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii:34.
-
-113. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 25, 26.
-
-114. Up to the present date--1902--there have been one hundred and
-forty-three quorums of seventies organized. The Prophet Joseph Smith
-said that this choosing of seventies was to go on--if the labor in the
-vineyard required it--"even until there are one hundred and forty and
-four thousand thus set apart for the ministry."--Hist. Joseph Smith
-under date May 2, 1835.
-
-115. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii.
-
-116. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 38.
-
-117. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 27, 28.
-
-118. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 39, 41.
-
-119. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxiv: 91, 93.
-
-120. Ibid, verse 124.
-
-121. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxiv: 133-136.
-
-122. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv, verse 29.
-
-123. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 11.
-
-124. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 89.
-
-125. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxiv: 137.
-
-126. Doc. and Covenants, sec. cvii: 89, 90. Ibid, sec. cxxiv: 140. For
-further information on duties of elders see sec. ii, part iv, of this
-work.
-
-127. See sec. iii, part iv.
-
-128. See sec. ii, part iv, under caption Priests for explanation of
-their duties and powers.
-
-129. For explanation of the duties and powers of Teachers see caption
-Teachers, sec. ii, part iv.
-
-130. For explanation of their duties see caption Deacons, sec. ii, part
-iv.
-
-131. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv: 30.
-
-132. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv: 29.
-
-133. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xx: 38, 59.
-
-134. See caption High Priests this section.
-
-135. See caption Elders this section.
-
-136. See Bishopric, sec. iii, part iv.
-
-138. See caption _Of the Duties of Officers, Priests, Teachers,
-Deacons_.
-
-138. When the difficulty arises in a regularly organized ward the most
-suitable persons to engage in such business would be the teachers of
-the respective parties.
-
-139. See on this method of settling difficulties Matt. xviii: 15, 17.
-Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 88-91. Book of Mormon, III Nephi,
-xii: 23,25.
-
-140. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. iv: 8.
-
-141. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. clv: 9.
-
-142. See Section ii, Part IV, paragraphs 8, 9.
-
-143. Guizot's Hist. Civilization.
-
-144. Remarks of Disraeli on the formation of government in his
-Vindication of the English Constitution.
-
-145. That is Part IV of this work.
-
-146. Besides the classic, there was an English department that included
-a course in common and higher mathematics, geography, English grammar,
-reading and writing. Hebrew was taught by Professor Seixas, a Jew, and
-the elders made considerable progress in that language. These items are
-interesting as showing that "Mormonism" is not and was not even in the
-beginning of its career, opposed to education as many have claimed.
-
-147. The prayer will be found in the Doc. and Cov. sec. cix. It was
-given by revelation to the prophet.
-
-148. The shout of hosanna consists in the whole congregation shouting
-with all the strength of their voices--accompanying it with the waving
-of handkerchiefs--these words: Hosanna! Hosanna! Hosanna! TO GOD AND
-THE LAMB! AMEN! AMEN! AMEN! Those who have witnessed this shout of
-praise and gladness to God by a large congregation of saints, will
-never forget the power and heavenly influence that accompany it.
-
-149. For the foregoing account of spiritual manifestations see Hist.
-Joseph Smith, Mill. Star, Vol. 15, pages 726-28.
-
-150. Doc. and Cov. sec. cx.
-
-151. Doc. and Cov. sec. cx.
-
-152. Mal. iv: 5, 6.
-
-153. Doc. and Cov. sec. cx.
-
-154. See pages 371-97.
-
-155. Book of Mormon, III Nephi xv: 12-20.
-
-156. Book of Mormon, III Nephi xvi: 1-5.
-
-157. II Esdras xiii.
-
-158. Compare with Isaiah xi: 15, 16.
-
-159. See prophecies quoted p. 368-9.
-
-160. I do not state this date definitely because authorities differ in
-respect to it; some fixing it at 588, another at 590, and still others
-as in the text. The difference which is not material, arose no doubt
-from some giving the date at which the king of Babylon began his siege
-and others when it ended.
-
-161. Fifty-six, according to some historians.
-
-162. See Part I, p. 27.
-
-163. Matt. xxiv: 2.
-
-164. Deut. xxviii:15-68. The student should read this passage in
-Deuteronomy. It is without exception the most terrible warning and
-prophecy on record. Yet terrible as it is, it hath all overtaken Israel.
-
-165. Amos ix: 9.
-
-166. Jeremiah xxxi:10-12. See also verses 7, 8, 9.
-
-167. Jeremiah xvi:14, 15.
-
-168. See the verses preceding this quotation for an explanation of the
-time of this occurrence, Isaiah xi:1-10. This is one of the passages
-quoted to Joseph Smith by the angel Moroni, who said also that "it was
-about to be fulfilled." See Pearl of Great Price, p. 90.
-
-169. Isaiah xi:10-12, 16.
-
-170. Jeremiah iii:15-19.
-
-171. Book of Mormon II Nephi x:7, 8. See also I Nephi x:14, II Nephi
-vi:8-11, and also Book of Jacob v. This last reference especially
-should be studied.
-
-172. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxxiii:25-35.
-
-173. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxxiii:32.
-
-174. See page 321, this work.
-
-175. See p. 321.
-
-176. For the particulars of the persecution which resulted in the
-banishment of the Saints from that land, the student is referred to the
-author's work on the Missouri Persecutions.
-
-177. Isaiah ii:23.
-
-178. Jeremiah iii:14, 15.
-
-179. Rev. xviii:4-8.
-
-180. Eccl. xi.
-
-181. The revelation was given March, 1830; Doc. and Cov. sec. xix.
-
-182. Mark xvi:16.
-
-183. The so-called early fathers of the church, Justin Martyr, Clement,
-of Alexandria, Tertullian and Cyprian, all taught that the fire of
-hell is a real material flame, and that the wicked were punished in
-it eternally. Augustine in the fifth century stated the same doctrine
-with great emphasis and argued against those who sought to modify it.
-(See Augustine's City of God. Part II, book xx, and xxi).Thomas Aquinas
-(A-kwi-nas) of the mediaeval school of theologians, rising head and
-shoulders above divines of his day, teaches in his Summa Theologia,
-that the fire of hell is of the same nature as ordinary fire, though
-with different properties; that the place of punishment though not
-definitely known is probably under the earth. He also taught that
-there was no redemption for those once damned, their punishment is to
-be eternal. Coming to more modern times, we read in the Westminster
-Confession of Faith--adopted in the seventeenth century by the Puritan
-party in England--the following on the subject (ch. xxxiii): "The
-wicked who know not God, and obey not the Gospel of Jesus Christ
-shall be cast into eternal torment and be punished with everlasting
-destruction from the presence of the Lord and from the glory of his
-power." Question twenty-nine of the larger catechism and the answer to
-it are as follows: "What are the punishments of sin in the world to
-come. Ans. The punishments of sin in the world to come are everlasting
-separation from the comfortable presence of God, and most grievous
-torment in soul and body, without intermission, in hell fire forever."
-The Westminster Confession and the large catechism are still the
-standards of the Presbyterian churches. Indeed the above expresses the
-orthodox Christian faith from the second and third centuries until the
-present time.
-
-184. I Peter iii:18-21.
-
-185. I Peter iv:6.
-
-186. I Cor. xv:29.
-
-187. Doc. and Cov. sec. cxxvii and cxxviii.
-
-188. Rom. ii:6-12; I Cor. iii:8; II Cor. v:10; Rev. ii:23; xx:12.
-
-189. St. John xiv:1-3.
-
-190. An exception must be made in the case of the Roman Catholic
-Church. Catholics do not believe that all Christians at death go
-immediately into heaven, but on the contrary "believe that a Christian
-who dies after the guilt and everlasting punishment of mortal sins have
-been forgiven him, but who, either from want of opportunity or through
-his negligence, has not discharged the debt of temporal punishment due
-to his sin, will have to discharge that debt to the justice of God in
-purgatory." "Purgatory is a state of suffering after this life, in
-which those souls are for a time detained, which depart this life after
-their deadly sins have been remitted as to the stain and guilt, and as
-to the everlasting pain that was due to them; but which souls have on
-account of those sins still some temporal punishment to pay; as also
-those souls which leave this world guilty only of venial [pardonable]
-sins. In purgatory these souls are purified and rendered fit to enter
-into heaven, where nothing defiled enters." The quotations in the above
-are from Catholic Belief, by Bruno, D. D. of the Catholic church. As
-all works of the Catholic church accessible to me have nothing on the
-different degrees of glory, I conclude that Catholic teaching is that
-they who attain unto heaven are all equal in glory.
-
-191. I Kings viii:27.
-
-192. II Cor. xii:2-4.
-
-193. I Cor. xv:40-42.
-
-194. The circumstances under which the revelation was given are these:
-The Prophet Joseph and Sidney Rigdon were engaged in revising the
-Jewish scriptures. When they came to St. John, ch. v:29--speaking of
-the resurrection of the dead, concerning those that should hear the
-voice of the Son of Man and come forth, instead of reading in the text
-of our common English Bibles--"And shall come forth; they that have
-done good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done
-evil, unto the resurrection of damnation," the following was given
-to them by the Spirit: "And shall come forth they who have done good
-in the resurrection of the just, and they who have done evil in the
-resurrection of the unjust." This reading of the passage caused them to
-marvel as it was given to them by inspiration; and while they pondered
-on this thing the Spirit of God enveloped them, and they saw the Lord
-Jesus Christ and those different glories which men will inherit, an
-account of which is given in the text. The vision is recorded in Doc.
-and Cov., sec. lxxvi.
-
-195. "Servants of God, but not Gods nor the sons of God," remarks
-Apostle Orson Pratt in his foot note on the passage from which this is
-condensed. Doc. and Cov. sec. lxxvi:112.
-
-196. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxxi:1.
-
-197. Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxvi.
-
-198. Those desiring to verify the statements of the text will consult
-with care Heb. vi:4-8 and Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxvi:25-48.
-
-199. It may sound like sacrilege in modern ears to speak of man
-becoming as God. Yet why should it be so considered? Man is
-the offspring of God, he is of the same race, and hath within
-him--undeveloped, it is true--the faculties and attributes of his
-Father. He hath also before him an eternity of time in which to develop
-both the faculties of the mind and the attributes of the soul--why
-should it be accounted a strange thing that at last the child shall
-arrive at the same exaltation and partake of the same intelligence
-and glory with his Father? If Jesus Christ, "being in the form of
-God, thought it not robbery to be equal with God" (Philippians ii:6),
-why should it be thought blasphemous to teach that man by faith and
-righteousness in following the counsels of God shall at last become
-like him, and share in his power and glory, being a God, even a son of
-God? I grant you the height from our present position looks tremendous;
-yet it is not impossible of attainment, since we have eternity in
-which to work. Stand by the cradle of a new-born babe and contemplate
-it. Within that little body of organized pulp--with eyes incapable
-of distinguishing objects; legs unable to bear the weight of its
-body--without the power of locomotion; hands over whose movements it
-hath no control; ears that hear but cannot distinguish sounds; a tongue
-that cannot speak--yet within that little helpless tabernacle what
-powers lie dormant! Within that germ in the cradle are latent powers
-which only require time for their unfolding to astonish the world. From
-it may come the man of profound learning who shall add something by
-his own wisdom to the sum total of human knowledge. Perhaps from that
-germ shall come a profound historian, a poet or eloquent orator to sway
-the reason and passions of men, and guide them to better and purer
-things than they have yet known. Or a statesman may be there in embryo;
-a man whose wisdom shall guide the destiny of the state, or perhaps
-with God-like power rule the world. If from such a germ as this in the
-cradle may come such an unfolding of power as we see in the highest
-and noblest manhood, may it not be, that taking that highest and
-noblest manhood as the germ, that from it may come, under the guiding
-hand of our Father in heaven, a still more wonderful unfolding, until
-the germ of highest and noblest manhood shall develop into a God! The
-distance between the noblest man and the position of a God is greater
-than that between the infant in the cradle and the highest development
-of manhood; but if so, there is a longer time--eternity--in which to
-arrive at the result; and a God and heavenly influences instead of
-the human parent and earthly means to bring to pass the necessary
-development.--Roberts.
-
-200. Millennial Star, vol. xiv, p. 114.
-
-201. On the 12th of July, 1843, at the request of Hyrum Smith, the
-revelation as now contained in the book of Doctrine and Covenants, was
-written from the dictation of the Prophet Joseph, by Elder William
-Clayton, at that time the Prophet's scribe. The same day a copy of the
-revelation was made for Bishop Newel K. Whitney by Joseph C. Kingsbury.
-Emma Smith, the first wife of the Prophet, obtaining the revelation as
-first written out by William Clayton, in a moment of jealousy destroyed
-it. Bishop Whitney's copy, however, was preserved and from it the
-revelation, now in the Doctrine and Covenants, was printed. It will be
-observed by the student from the revelation itself that the principle
-of plural marriage was known and practiced before the writing of the
-revelation on the 12th of July.
-
-202. For a full account of this terrible tragedy the student is
-referred to the Life of Joseph Smith by Geo. Q. Cannon, ch. lxvi; and
-the Life of John Taylor, ch. xiii, xiv, xv.
-
-203. Heb. ix:16, 17.
-
-204. The subject of "Succession in the Presidency of the Church," is a
-subject of deep importance, and those who desire to enter minutely into
-the consideration of it should consult the author's work of that title,
-a book of 120 pages.
-
-205. President Brigham Young was born in Whitingham, Windham county,
-Vermont, June 1, 1801. He was baptized into the Church April 14th,
-1832, and immediately afterwards ordained an elder.
-
-206. The first anti-polygamy law was approved July 1st, 1862.
-
-207. "Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of
-religion, or prohibiting the free exercise thereof."--Amendments to the
-Constitution, Article I.
-
-208. Acts i:9-11.
-
-209. Matt. xvi:27.
-
-210. I Thess. iv:14-17.
-
-211. II Thess. i:7-10.
-
-212. Luke xii:40. II Peter iii:10. Doc. and Cov., sec. xlix:6-7.
-
-213. Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxviii:78-92.
-
-214. Doc. and Cov., sec. lxv.
-
-215. Ibid.
-
-
-
-Index
-
- Abraham, Book of, 393, 398.
- Actors in Christ's Crucifixion, Fate of, 58.
- Adam, Fall of, 83.
- Agitation, Religious in N. Y., 276,
- Albert, Archbishop of Mentz, 212.
- Alva, Duke of, 257.
- America, Discovery of, 269, 270.
- " Influence of on liberty, 263.
- " Catholics seek liberty in, 264
- Anarchy, Reign of, 200.
- Announcement, Angelic, 12.
- Anti-Christ, Rise of foretold, 193.
- Apostasy--see Part II.
- " in days of apostles, 154.
- " admitted by Christian writers, 189.
- " predicted in scriptures, 192, 196.
- Apostles, Twelve, 45.
- " a second time succeed to presidency, 404.
- " equal in authority with first presidency, 344.
- " Quorum filled, 70.
- " Quorum of Twelve succeed to presidency, 402.
- " Twelve organized, 336.
- " Traveling, presiding high council, 343.
- Associations, Primary, 352.
- Athanasius, 172.
- Atonement, a mystery, 98.
- " Pact of, 86, 87.
- " Love of God in, 89.
- " Mercy and Justice of, 87.
- " of Christ voluntary, 88.
- " universal in application, 98.
- Augsburg, Confession of, 220.
- Augustus, 12, 31.
- Aurelius, Marcus, 115.
- Authority from God needful, 101.
-
- Bartholomew's Eve, St., Massacre on, 267.
- Baptism, 128.
- " Form changed, 129.
- " Manner of, among Nephites, 136.
- " Of, 302.
- " of children, 130, 136.
- " Of the manner of, 303.
- " symbol of burial and resurrection, 135.
- Baptist, John, restores Aaronic Priesthood, 297.
-
- Bethlehem, 11.
- Bible corrupted, 65.
- Bishopric, Powers of, 317.
- Bishops, Equality among changed 141, 142.
- " Pirst in the Church, 316.
- " Local or Ward, 319.
- " Manner of electing, 140.
- " Objections to, 145.
- " of Constantinople, 149.
- " Presiding, 318.
- " Pre-eminence of Roman, 144, 146, 150.
- " Traveling, 319.
- Blasphemy, 52, 57.
- Boleyn, Anne, 259.
- Bull of Excommunication burned, 215, 225.
-
- Cajetan, Cardinal Thomas, appointed to hear cause of Luther, 212.
- Cajetan urges Luther's excommunication, 215.
- Calvin, John, 266.
- " Spread of his doctrine, 254.
- " Views on church government, 253.
- " Views on eucharist, 254.
- Ceremonies, Addition to, 128.
- Charles V, Emperor Germany, 215.
- " annuls edict of Worms and Augsburg, 221.
- " decides against Protestants, 221.
- " rupture with pope, 218.
- Christian III of Denmark regulates religious affairs of his kingdom, 257.
- Christians, Unwise Zeal of, 123.
- Christiern II, King of Sweden and Denmark, 255.
- " Banished from Denmark, 256.
- " driven from Sweden, 255.
- " Invites Reynhard, Carlstadt and Luther to Denmark, 256.
- Church, The, 92,
- " A corrupt, 244.
- " Attempt to reorganize Nephite, 200.
- " Anti-Christian Nephite, 198.
- " Condition of, 2d century, 114.
- " Condition of, in 4th century, 184.
- " Condition of, in 5th century, 185.
- " Condition of, subsequent to 5th century, 187.
- " Condition of, in 10th century, 188.
- " Conferences of, 354.
- " destroyed, 189.
- " Distinct Protestant, founded, 218.
- " Division of, 9th century, 151.
- " Early decline of, 155.
- " Establishment of, by apostles, 139.
- " Government of, modeled on plan of civil government, 143.
- " government, opinions on, 99.
- " government, Reflections on, 355.
- " Growth and present condition of, 409.
- " Immoral condition of, 184.
- " in America, 64, 96, 97.
- " Judiciary system of, 352.
- " members of, Duties of, 304.
- " Nephite, 198.
- " Officers, divinely called, 95.
- " Organization of by Joseph Smith, 299.
- " organization not perpetuated, 139.
- " Progress of, under Constantine, 121.
- " The, what it is, etc., 341.
- " Territorial divisions of, 349.
- Clement VII proposes council in Italy, 222.
- " rupture with Charles V, 218
- " succeeds Hadrian VI, 217.
- Clergy, Celibacy of, 183.
- Commerce, afterwards Nauvoo, 393, 398.
- Conferences appointed, 306.
- " The first, 308.
- Confirmation, Manner of, 303.
- Consecration, Law of, 322.
- Constantine, 119, 120, 121.
- " Friendliness to Christians, 120.
- Constantinople taken by Turks, 206.
- Cornelius, 76.
- Councils, Attempt to settle difficulties by, 244.
- " Desire for general, 213.
- " Difficulty of locating one, 222.
- " General, appeal to, 212.
- " High, Different kinds, 335.
- " " Fair dealing in, 338.
- " " how organized, 334.
- " " Just judgment in, 339.
- " " Order in, 338.
- " " organized, 333.
- " " Standing, The, 335.
- " " Temporary, 336.
- " " Traveling. The, 335.
- " Nicene, The, 171.
- " Rise of, 142.
- " Trent, The, of, 223, 227.
- " Usurpations of, 155.
- Cowdery, Oliver, one of the three witnesses, 284.
- " involved in errors, 309.
- Cross, Luminous, 119, 124.
- Crucifixion, 55.
- Crusades, Influence of the, on liberty, 207.
- Cumorah, Treasures of, 283.
- " Description of, 286.
- Cyprian, 149, 156.
-
- Darkness, Age of, 205.
- " Three hours', 55, 58.
- Deacons, Duties of, 306.
- " Quorums of, 348.
- Dead, Baptism for, 381, 390.
- " Salvation for, 377.
- Diet at Augsburg, The, 220.
- " Spire, The, 219.
- " Worms, The, 215, 216.
- Diocletian, 117,
- Distinctions, Class, among Nephites, 198.
- " Revival of, 199.
- Dispersions, Miscellaneous, 367.
- Dispensation of Fullness of Times,
- " Preparation for opening the, 266.
- " Meaning of, 275.
- " Character of, 409.
- Domitian, 110, 111.
- Duties of deacons, 306.
- " elders, 305.
- " members, 304.
- " priests, 306.
- " teachers, 306.
-
- Eckius, John, theologian of Ingolstadt, 212.
- " Discussion with Carlstadt, 215.
- " Discussion with Luther, 213.
- Edicts of Severus, 113.
- Elders, Duties of, 305.
- " Quorums of, 347.
- Elias, Appearing of, 360.
- Elijah, Appearing of, 360.
- Eucharist--see Sacrament.
- Events, Chronological order of, neglected, 49.
- " Order of, 47.
- Excommunication, Manner of, 162.
-
- Faith, Catholic, Rule of, 242.
- Far West, Founding of, 392.
- Fear, Political, 51.
- Feudalism, Breaking up of, 207.
- Frederick, Elector of Saxony, 215.
- " Death of, 218.
- " Duke of Holstein and Sleswick succeeds Christiern II of Denmark, 256.
- " Gives religious liberty to Denmark, 256.
- Free will, Discussion on, 213.
-
- Gamaliel, 73.
- Gathering, first command to gather, 316.
- " Object of, 372.
- Gentiles, Gospel taken to, 76.
- George, Duke of Saxony joins in demand for general council, 213.
- " at the discussion between Luther and Eckius, 215.
- " on the corruptions of the church, 225.
- Gifts Spiritual, 92.
- " Decline of, 161, 176.
- " On continuance of, 175.
- Glory, different degrees of, 382.
- " Celestial, The, 384.
- " Terrestrial, The, 385.
- " Telestial, The, 385.
- " Degrees within the three great divisions, 386.
- " Progress within degrees of, 387.
- God, Appears to Joseph Smith, 278.
- " Arian theory of, 171.
- " Christian doctrine respecting, 164.
- " Existence of, 301.
- " Form of, etc., 279.
- " Immateriality of, 173.
- " Orthodox view of, 170.
- " Sabellian theory of, 170.
- Godhead, Oneness of the, 173.
- " Illustration of, 176.
- " Man may attain unto, 395.
- Gods, Heathen, 21.
- Gospel, supplants the law, 44.
- " Spread of, 77.
- " Messiah, author of, 177.
- " Fragmentary histories of, 65.
- " Moral precepts, Departure from, 180.
- Government, Helps in, 351.
- " Roman, 24.
- Grace, Catholic view of, 233.
- " Controversy on, 230.
- " Facts which enter the question of, 231.
- " Falling from, 302.
- " Pelagian view of, 233.
- " Protestant view of, 233.
- Gregory VII, 205.
-
- Harris, Martin, one of the three witnesses, 284.
- Henry IV, Humiliation of, 205, 224.
- Henry VIII, of England, champion Roman church, 258.
- " Marriage to Catharine of Aragon, 258.
- " Divorce of, 259.
- " Rupture with pope, 259.
- Hermit, Peter the, 207.
- Herod, Antipas, 38, 41.
- " the Great, 13, 17.
- Herodias, 38.
- Hosanna, Shout of, 359.
- House of the Lord, All nations to flow unto the, 374.
- Huguenots, Character of the, 255.
-
- Immaterialists, Atheists, 178.
- Indulgences, Nature of, 209.
- " Origin of, 209.
- " Position of Catholic church respecting, 230.
- " To be accompanied by reformation, 238.
- " Traffic in, 210.
- Interpretation of Bible, Private, 243.
- " Private, effects of, 246.
- Israel, Blood of, sprinkled in all nations, 367.
- " Captivity of, 363.
- " Enslaved, 363.
- " Latter-day Saints of, 375.
- " Miscellaneous Dispersion of, 367.
- " Revolt of Ten Tribes of, 363.
- " Scattering of, 365.
- " Settlement of, in Canaan, 373.
- " The gathering of, 368.
- " Ten tribes of, preparatory work to their return, 370.
- " Who are, 362.
-
- Jealousy, Religious, 51.
- Jesus Christ, Appearance among Nephites, 62.
- " Appears to Prophet Joseph and Oliver Cowdery, 278, 360.
- " Ascension, 62.
- " Baptism of, 37.
- " Before Pilate and Herod, 54.
- " Betrayal of, 53.
- " Birth of, 11, 16.
- " Burial of, 56.
- " Charges against, 52.
- " Childhood of, 34, 39.
- " Common people hear, 51.
- " Crucifixion of, 55.
- " Defense of, 57.
- " Divinity of, 47.
- " Doctrines of, 43.
- " Manner of Teaching, 48.
- " Ministry of, 43.
- " Mission of, 83, 301.
- " Resurrection of, 60.
- " Temptation of, 43.
- " Trial of, 53.
- " Jews, Judgment upon, 107.
- " State of, 26.
- " John, The apostle, 196.
- " John, the Baptist, 35.
- " Martyrdom of, 38.
- " Mission of, 36.
- " Restores Aaronic Priesthood, 296, 311.
- " Was he Elias, 40.
- Joseph, husband of Mary, 11.
- John, Prince, succeeds Frederic the Wise, 218.
- " signs the Augsburg confession, 220.
- Judah, Final overthrow of, 373.
- " Kingdom of, 394.
- Judas, 52.
- Judgment, eternal, Christian dogma of, 378.
- " True doctrine of, 378.
- Justification by faith, Luther on, 234, 239.
- " Catholic church on, 237.
- " Evil results of, 239.
- " and sanctification, 302.
-
- Keys of former dispensations restored, 360.
- Kirtland, Breaking up at, 392.
- Knight, Joseph, 307.
- " Newel, 307.
- Knox, John, Scotch reformer, 261.
- " sent to galleys, 261.
- " his work in Scotland, 262.
-
- Law added to gospel, 45.
- Learning, Revival of, 205.
- Leo X, indifference to German agitation, 211.
- " Luther's appeal from, 212.
- " Death of, 217.
- Liberty, Religious, secured, 223.
- " " secured by U. S. Constitution, 270.
- Life, Double rule of, 180.
- " Origin of false idea of moral, 181.
- Literature, Greek, Influence of, 224.
- Logos, Plato's, 169.
- " in Trinity, 170.
- Lying accounted a virtue, 183.
- Luther, Martin, Birth of, 208.
- " at Wartburg, 217.
- " before Diet at Worms, 215.
- " burns pope's bull, 215, 225.
- " Character of, 226.
- " Danger of doctrine, 236.
- " Death of, 222.
- " Fundamental doctrine of, 234.
- " excommunicated, 215, 226.
- " his answer to Diet, 216.
- " Mischief of doctrine, 235.
- " on Indulgences, 224.
- " Preaching of, 208.
- " visits Rome, 208.
-
- Magi, 13.
- Man, Creation and Fall of, 301.
- Manifesto, discontinuing plural marriage, 407.
- Marriage, Celestial, introduced, 394.
- " Covenant, Eternity of, 394.
- " Establishment of plural, 396.
- " Plural, 394.
- " " Discontinued, 407.
- " " Enactments of Congress against, 405.
- Martyrdom of the prophets, 401.
- Martyrs, Christian, 124.
- " " Worship of, 161.
- Mary Magdalene, 61.
- Mary, the mother of Jesus, 11.
- Mass, Institution of, 133.
- Matthias, 70.
- Maximilian I, Emperor of Germany, 212.
- Melanchthon, Philip, drafts religious formula, 218.
- " drafts Augsburg Confession, 220.
- Messiah — see Jesus Christ.
- Metropolitans, Origin of, 142.
- Ministry, Commencement of, 307.
- Miracle, First in the Church, 307.
- Mission, First, to Lamanites, 315.
- Missouri, Character of old settlers, 338.
- " Saints expelled from, 392.
- " Western, 327.
- Mormon, Book of, 280.
- " " Analysis of, 286.
- " " Means of testing truth of, 292.
- " " The Prophet Joseph's first view of, 283.
- " " Translation and publication, 283.
- Moroni, Ancient Prophecies quoted by, 281.
- " Description of, 285.
- " Fourth appearance of, 282.
- " First visit to Joseph Smith, 280.
- " Warning to Jos. Smith, 282.
- Moses, Appearing of, 360.
- Mysteries, Pagan, 22.
-
- Nazareth, 35, 39.
- Nature, Convulsions of, 58.
- Nero, 109, 112.
- Nephites, Destruction of, 200.
- Nuremberg, The truce of, 221.
- Nauvoo, The rise of, 393, 398.
-
- Opposition, Rise of, 72.
- Officials, Church, Corruption of, 143.
- Ordinances, Outward, 127.
- Organizations, Rerival of secret, 199.
-
- Paganism, Mysteries of, 22,
- Pagans, Accusations of, 127.
- Partridge, Edward, appointed bishop, 316.
- Passover, 34, 39.
- Patriarchs, Duties and callings, 345.
- Paul, 75, 80.
- " prophesies of apostasy, 194.
- Paul III succeeds Clement VII, 222.
- " calls Council of Trent, 222.
- Pentecost, 71, 79.
- Perdition, Sons of, 388.
- Persecution, First, 75.
- " among Nephites, 198.
- " Early church, 353.
- " End of Pagan, 119.
- " in Jackson County, Mo., 330, 338.
- " of Christians by Jews, 105.
- " " Romans, 107.
- " second century, A, 123.
- " under Aurelius, 115.
- " under Severus, 115.
- " under Trajan, 116, 123.
- " under Diocletian, 117.
- Petri, Olaus, 255.
- " Discussion with Gallius, 256.
- Pharisees, 27.
- Philip II of Spain, 257.
- Philosophy, Gnostic and New Platonic, 166.
- " Modes of life to which it led, 168.
- " Pagan, mixed with Christian religion, 163.
- Pilate, 54.
- Pioneers, Arrival of, in Salt Lake Valley, 403.
- Polycarp, 115, 122.
- Popes, Absolute power of, 157.
- " Character of language used by, 158.
- " Supremacy of, discussed, 214.
- " Rise of temporal power of, 153.
- Predestination, Luther on, 234.
- " Melanchthon on, 235.
- " Effect of, on the mind, 239.
- Presbyterian form of church government, 253.
- Presidency, First, reorganized, 403.
- Priesthood, Nature of, 340.
- " Aaronic, Restoration of, 296.
- " Spirit of government by, 340.
- " Sphere of Aaronic, 326.
- " Time of restoration of Melchisedek, 311.
- Priests, Duties of, 306.
- " High, Duties, Powers, 346.
- " Quorums of, 348.
- Prophecies on gathering of Israel, 368.
- " quoted by Moroni, 281.
- Protestant, Confession of Faith, 220.
- " Origin of name, 219.
- " objection to Catholic abuses, 220.
- " Reverses of, 222.
- " Victory of, 223.
- Punishment, Eternal, Sectarian dogma, of, 378, 389.
- Puritans Character of, 269.
- " Intolerance of, 264.
- " not satisfied with reformation, 260.
- Rebellion, Luther's, 242.
- " Revolution, not, 244.
- Reformation, Catholic view of, 245.
- " in Switzerland, 252.
- " in France, 255.
- " in Sweden, 255, 267.
- " in Denmark, 256, 268.
- " Motives back of, 249.
- " Reproach of, 250.
- " Revolution, not, 246.
- " True cause of, 245, 249.
- Reformers, Divisions among, 250.
- " The error of, 248.
- Relatives of Jesus, 111.
- Resurrection, 60.
- Rigdon, Sidney, accepts gospel, 315.
- Rites, Pagan, joined to Christian, 137.
-
- Sacrament, 52.
- " Administration, Manner of 134, 304.
- " Corrupted, 132.
- " Suppression of half, the 134.
- " Views of Calvin and Zwingle on, 254.
- Sadducees, 27.
- Saints, Latter-day, added to Church title, 299.
- " Errors of, 309.
- " Expulsion of from Illinois, 402.
- " Expulsion of, from Jackson County, Mo., 330.
- " Flight of, to the west, 402.
- Salvation, Conditions of, 91.
- " General, 84.
- " Individual, 89.
- Samaritans, 29, 365.
- Sanctification, 302.
- Sanhedrim, 32.
- Schools, Sunday, 351.
- Scripture, Missing parts of, 66.
- Sects, Multiplication of, 248.
- Serfdom, Release of masses from, 206.
- Seventies, 46.
- " Nature of calling, etc., 344.
- " Organization of, 337.
- " Presiding quorum of, 344.
- Sign of dove, 42.
- Signs of Christ's birth, 13.
- Smalcald, League of, 221.
- Smith, Joseph, Birth and parentage of, 275.
- " first prayer and vision, 277.
- " martyrdom of, 401.
- " name foretold, 285.
- Societies, Female Relief, 351.
- Spirits in prison, Preaching to, 379.
- " Messiah preaching to, 390.
-
- Tacitus, 109.
- Taylor, President John, 404.
- " " Description of, 415.
- Teachers, Duties of, 306.
- " False, to arise, 192.
- " Quorum of, 348.
- Temple, Kirtland, The, 358, 361.
- " Manifestations in, 359.
- " Salt Lake, Laying capstone of, 408.
- " Site of, in Jackson Co., 327.
- Temporal affairs, 74.
- Temptations, Order of, 47.
- Tetzel, John, his connection with indulgences, 211.
- " Luther's assault upon, 211.
- " Character of, 225.
- " Death of, 230, 239.
- Toleration, Heathen, 21.
- Traditions, 67.
- Trajan, 116.
- Trent, Council of, 223.
- " Pestilence at, 227.
- Tribes, Ten, depart for north, 373,
- " lost, 363.
- " Return of, 368, 374.
- " Revolt of, 363.
- Trinity, Doctrine of the, 302.
-
- United States government, Hand of God in establishment of, 271.
- Urban II favors crusades, 208.
-
- Vasa, Gustavus, king of Sweden, 255.
- Vision at first Conference of the Church, 312.
- " Importance of Joseph Smith's first, 278.
- " Joseph Smith's first, 277.
- Voice of God and of the people in Church government, 300.
-
- Wards, how organized, 350.
- Whitmer, David, one of the Three Witnesses, 284.
- Whitnev, Newel K., appointed Bishop, 316, 326.
- Witnesses, Three, 284.
- Woodruff, President Wilford, 405.
- " issues Manifesto, 407.
- " lays capstone of Salt Lake Temple, 408.
- Works, Good, Luther on, 234.
- " Catholics trusted in, 237.
- World, Condition of, etc., 20.
- " Pagan, Arraignment of, 23.
- " State at Christ's birth, 24.
- Worship, on Sunday, Reason why, 135.
- " Description of, 135.
- " of martyrs, 161, 175.
- " Simplicity of, changed, 160.
- Wycliffe, John, English reformer, 259, 268.
-
- Y. M. and Y. L. M. I. A., 351.
- Young, Brigham, Birth, etc., 403.
- " Character of, 415.
- " chosen President of the Church, 403.
-
- Zion, Location of, etc., 320, 326.
- " Camp of, 331.
- " Stakes of, 349.
- Zwingle, birth, teaching, death, 252.
- " recognized gradation in Church officers, 252.
- " views on eucharist, 254.
- " views on predestination, 254.
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Note
-
-Various spelling and punctuation errors in the original print edition have
-been corrected as seemed reasonable. This ebook was developed using scans
-available at https://archive.org/details/outlinesofeccles1902robe.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Outlines of Ecclesiastical History, by
-B. H. Roberts
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK OUTLINES OF ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-***** This file should be named 52391-0.txt or 52391-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/3/9/52391/
-
-Produced by the Mormon Texts Project
-(http://mormontextsproject.org), with thanks to Renah
-Holmes for proofreading.
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/52391-0.zip b/old/52391-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 2f19404..0000000
--- a/old/52391-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52391-h.zip b/old/52391-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index b12d38e..0000000
--- a/old/52391-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52391-h/52391-h.htm b/old/52391-h/52391-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 417b3e1..0000000
--- a/old/52391-h/52391-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,17333 +0,0 @@
-
-<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01//EN" "http://www.w3.org/TR/html4/strict.dtd">
-<html>
-<head>
-
-<meta http-equiv="content-type" content="text/html; charset=iso-8859-1">
-
-<title>
-The Project Gutenberg E-text of Outlines of Ecclesiastical History, by B. H. Roberts
-</title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg">
-<style TYPE="text/css">
-body { color: Black; background: White; margin-right: 10%; margin-left: 10%;
- font-family: "Times New Roman", serif; text-align: justify }
-
-h1 { text-align: center }
-
-h2 { text-align: center; padding-top: 15%; }
-
-h3 { text-align: center; padding-top: 4%; }
-
-h4 { text-align: center }
-
-p.chapterHeading { margin-right: 20%; margin-left: 20%}
-
-p.caption { text-align:center; font-style: italic; margin-right: 20%; margin-left: 20%; padding-bottom: 4%}
-
-img {display: block; margin-left: auto;
- margin-bottom: 0; margin-top: 1%; margin-right: auto; }
-
-.pagenum { position: absolute; left: 1%; font-size: 95%; text-align: left; text-indent: 0;
- font-style: normal; font-weight: normal; font-variant: normal; }
-
-.centered {text-align: center}
-
-.right {text-align: right}
-
-sup { font-size: 60%}
-
-.sidenote { right: 0%; font-size: 80%; text-align: right; text-indent: 0%; width: 17%;
- float: right; clear: right; padding-right: 0%; padding-left: 1%; padding-top: 1%;
- padding-bottom: 1%; font-style: normal; font-weight: normal; font-variant: normal; }
-</style>
-
-</head>
-
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-Project Gutenberg's Outlines of Ecclesiastical History, by B. H. Roberts
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Outlines of Ecclesiastical History
-
-Author: B. H. Roberts
-
-Release Date: June 22, 2016 [EBook #52391]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK OUTLINES OF ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by the Mormon Texts Project
-(http://mormontextsproject.org), with thanks to Renah
-Holmes for proofreading.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-
-<h1>OUTLINES
-<br>
-OF
-<br>
-ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
-</h1>
-
-<p class="centered"><br>BY
-<br>
-<br>ELDER B. H. ROBERTS
-<br>
-<br>AUTHOR OF
-<br>
-<br>"The Life of John Taylor" "The Gospel" "New Witness for God" "Missouri
-<br>Persecutions" "Rise and Fall of Nauvoo," etc.
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>THIRD EDITION
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>SALT LAKE CITY, UTAH.
-<br>1902.
-</p>
-
-<h3><a name="DEDICATION"></a>DEDICATION
-</h3>
-<p class="centered"><big>TO THE SEVENTIES:</big><br> THAT BODY OF MEN
-<br>UPON WHOM&mdash;UNDER THE
-<br>DIRECTION OF THE TWELVE APOSTLES&mdash;
-<br>DEVOLVES THE RESPONSIBILITY OF PREACHING
-<br>THE GOSPEL, AND DEFENDING THE TRUTH
-<br>IN ALL THE WORLD, THIS WORK
-<br>IS AFFECTIONATELY
-<br>DEDICATED.
-</p>
-
-
-<h2><a name="INTRODUCTION"></a>A WORD WITH STUDENTS AND TEACHERS.
-</h2>
-<p>Before you take up the study of OUTLINES OF ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY, I
-beg leave to call your attention to the structure of the work, and the
-purpose for which it was written. First, then, as to its structure.
-</p>
-<p>The work is divided into four parts, each with a distinct idea
-running through it. Part I deals with THE ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CHURCH
-through the ministry of Messiah and his apostles; Part II with THE
-APOSTASY, brought about through the severe persecution to which the
-early saints were subjected, the rise of false teachers, changing
-the ordinances of the gospel, intermingling pagan philosophy with
-Christian doctrine, and a transgression of the laws of God; Part III
-deals with "THE REFORMATION," treating it, however as a revolution
-instead of a reformation since the so-called reformation by no means
-re-established primitive Christianity, either in its form or essence,
-but it did overthrow the power of the Catholic Church in the greater
-part of Western Europe, gave larger liberty to the people, and thus
-prepared the way for the great work which followed it&mdash;the introduction
-of the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times; Part IV treats of THE
-RESTORATION OF THE GOSPEL, in the aforesaid dispensation, through the
-revelations which God gave to the Prophet Joseph Smith.
-</p>
-<p>The parts above enumerated are separated into sections, these
-subdivisions being determined by the several subjects into which the
-main idea of the respective parts naturally divides. The sections are
-again separated into topics, the <span class="pagenum"><a name="piv"></a>{iv}</span> titles of which are printed in
-bold-face type, and the paragraphs are numbered. These divisions, it
-is believed, will better enable the student to discern the relation
-of the respective parts to the main subject, and at the same time
-afford a convenient division for the assignment of lessons to classes.
-Ordinarily it will be found that a section will be sufficient for a
-lesson for either a class or quorum; but in some instances two of the
-shorter sections may be taken for a lesson; but some of the longer
-sections should be divided into two or more.
-</p>
-<p>At the end of each section will be found a collection of notes bearing
-upon the important points treated in the text of the work, at which
-place reference will be found to the note at the end of the section.
-The author cannot, in his opinion, too emphatically urge upon the
-student the importance of turning to the notes to which he is directed
-in the text and reading them. They will be found to throw additional
-light upon the subject treated in the text, either by giving the
-statement of a recognized authority, supplying pointed argument&mdash;with
-which it has been thought best not to burden the body of the work&mdash;or
-giving illustrations to the statement made in the text. Another purpose
-for placing these notes at the end of the sections has been to arouse
-an interest in the works of the authors quoted; that the students
-of this text book may be induced to delve deeper into the study of
-Ecclesiastical History than a perusal of these pages will enable
-them to do. And here let the author confess, while he believes he is
-presenting a very valuable collection of facts to those who will take
-up the study of his work&mdash;yet if the study of these pages shall result
-in merely awakening in the minds of the elders and the youth of Israel
-an interest in the subject, he will account the objects of his efforts
-successfully attained.
-</p>
-<p>At the end of each section also will be found Review Questions,
-covering the main points treated in the text and in the notes. It
-is hoped that they will be found useful in conducting <span class="pagenum"><a name="pv"></a>{v}</span> class
-exercises, and to the private student who wishes to ascertain if he has
-mastered the subject matter of each section. Let him put to himself
-the questions found in the review at the end of the section, when
-completing it, and if he can give a satisfactory answer to each one,
-the author feels assured that the student has mastered the salient
-points.
-</p>
-<p>The purpose of the work is two-fold: First, it is to sustain the
-position taken by the church of Christ in the last days. What that
-position is may be readily discerned by the very first revelation
-the Lord gave to Joseph Smith. In answering the young prophet's
-question&mdash;which of all the sects of religion was acknowledged of him
-as his church and kingdom&mdash;the Lord said they were all wrong; that all
-their creeds were an abomination in his sight; that those professors
-were all corrupt; that they drew near to him with their lips, but
-their hearts were far from him; that they taught for doctrine the
-commandments of men&mdash;having a form of godliness, but denying the power
-thereof.<sup>[<a name="AWORDWITHSTUDENTSANDTEACHERSfn1"></a><a href="#txtAWORDWITHSTUDENTSANDTEACHERSfn1">1</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>It has been to bring together the historical evidences of the truth of
-this divine announcement that, in part, this work has been written;
-and therefore prominence has been given to those facts of history
-which support that announcement. But no fact has been suppressed that
-has a tendency to support the opposite view. No such fact either of
-history or prophecy exists. The whole stream of evidence proves that
-there has been a universal apostasy from the religion taught by Jesus
-Christ and his apostles; and the existing differences between the
-present teachings of "Christendom" and the doctrines of the scriptures
-is a proof so palpable that it admits of no contradiction. As this
-position of the church is one which the seventies and elders will have
-to maintain against all the world, it is of first importance that they
-become familiar with those facts of history and of prophecy that will
-enable them to maintain that position intelligently and successfully.
-</p>
-<p>The second purpose of the work is to teach the principles of the
-gospel. This, the author is convinced, can best be done in connection
-with their history. Relate the historical events which resulted in
-the introduction and establishment of the gospel and the church of
-Christ; then in all the centuries from the second to the tenth show how
-the doctrines of Messiah were departed from, how the ordinances were
-changed and the laws of God transgressed; relate the principal events
-of the sixteenth century revolution&mdash;miscalled the "Reformation"&mdash;and
-point out how that revolution, however salutary in bringing to pass an
-enlargement of popular liberty, failed to re-establish the gospel of
-the Lord Jesus Christ, or re-organize the church as at first founded
-by Messiah; then relate the events connected with the restoration of
-the gospel through the revelations given to the great prophet of the
-Dispensation of the Fullness of Times, Joseph Smith&mdash;and in so doing
-you are not only teaching the interesting facts of Ecclesiastical
-History to your students, but at the same time you are making them
-acquainted with the principles of the gospel. Under such a presentation
-the students, without being conscious of it, perhaps, will examine
-those principles under a variety of circumstances. They will see them
-stated in connection with the leading events of the Messiah's life;
-they will see them corrupted by an apostate church; they will hear
-them discussed by men during the attempt at Reformation; and after
-witnessing the unavailing efforts of the "Reformers" to re-establish
-the gospel and the church of Christ, they will see how the heavens
-were opened and every principle, doctrine, ordinance, law, officer
-and institution known to the church of Christ, restored. Such a
-presentation of the principles of the gospel, we repeat, must lead to
-a very comprehensive understanding of them, and such is one of the
-purposes of this work, and one which the author hopes will give it
-a claim upon the attention of all those desiring information on the
-subject of the gospel, as well as to the quorums of seventies and
-elders to whom we believe it will be of special service.
-</p>
-<p>Before the work went to press the manuscript was submitted to a
-committee of brethren appointed by the First Presidency. Elders John
-Nicholson, George Reynolds and James E. Talmage constituted that
-committee. The author is very much indebted to them for their patient
-consideration of his manuscript, and for the very valuable suggestions
-and corrections made by them. They reported favorably to the First
-Presidency on the work, and it is now presented to the students of
-Ecclesiastical History&mdash;in which the church of Christ should abound&mdash;in
-the hope that it will be of service to them in their researches in this
-most interesting department of knowledge.
-</p>
-<p>This, the fifth edition, is uniform with the previous edition, in every
-respect.
-</p>
-<p><em>The Publishers</em>
-</p>
-<h3>Footnotes
-</h3>
-<p><a name="txtAWORDWITHSTUDENTSANDTEACHERSfn1"></a><a href="#AWORDWITHSTUDENTSANDTEACHERSfn1">1</a>. Pearl of Price, page 85.
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>CONTENTS
-</h2>
-<p class="centered"><a href="#DEDICATION">DEDICATION</a></p>
-<p class="centered"><a href="#INTRODUCTION">INTRODUCTION</a>
-</p>
-<p class="centered"><a href="#PARTI">PART I.</a>
-<br>ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CHURCH
-</p>
-<p class="centered"><a href="#PARTII">PART II.</a>
-<br>THE APOSTASY
-</p>
-<p class="centered"><a href="#PARTIII">PART III.</a><br>
-THE REFORMATION
-</p>
-<p class="centered"><a href="#PARTIV">PART IV.</a>
-<br>THE RESTORATION OF THE GOSPEL
-</p>
-<p class="centered"><a href="#INDEX">INDEX</a>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2><a name="PARTI"></a>PART I.
-<br><br>
-THE ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CHURCH.
-</h2>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p11"></a>{11}</span></p>
-<h2>SECTION I.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Birth of Messiah.</b>&mdash;Jesus Christ, the Son of God and Savior
-of the world, was born, most probably, in the year of Rome 753; at a
-period of the year corresponding to our month of April (see notes 1, 2,
-end of section). The place of his birth was Bethlehem [Beth-le-hem],<sup>[<a name="PartIfn1"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn1">1</a>]</sup>
-a small town about four miles south of Jerusalem. The birth-place of
-Messiah was foretold by Micah [Mi-kah], the prophet, more than seven
-hundred years before the event, in the following prophecy:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> But thou, Bethlehem Ephratah [Ef-ra-tah], though thou be little
- among the thousands of Judah, yet out of thee shall he come forth
- unto me that is to be ruler in Israel; whose goings forth have been
- from of old, from everlasting.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn2"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn2">2</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>2. Parentage of Christ.</b>&mdash;Messiah was born of the virgin Mary, a
-descendant of David, and the espoused wife of Joseph, a carpenter in
-the little village of Nazareth [Naz-a-reth], who, notwithstanding his
-humble station in life, was also a descendant of the royal house of
-David. An angel appeared unto Mary previous to her conception, and thus
-addressed her:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Hail thou that art highly favored, the Lord is with thee: blessed
- art thou among women. And when she saw him, she was troubled at his
- saying, and cast in her mind what manner of salutation this should be.
- And the angel said unto her, Fear not, Mary: for thou hast found favor
- with God. And, behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring
- forth a son, and shall call his name JESUS. He shall be great, and
- shalt be called the Son of the Highest: and the Lord God shall give
- unto him the throne of his father David: and he shall <span class="pagenum"><a name="p12"></a>{12}</span> reign over
- the house of Jacob forever; and of his kingdom there shall be no end.
- Then said Mary unto the angel, How shall this be, seeing I know not a
- man? And the angel answered and said unto her, The Holy Ghost shall
- come upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee:
- therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee, shall be
- called the Son of God. * * * And Mary said: Behold the handmaid of the
- Lord; be it unto me according to thy word.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn3"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn3">3</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>3.</b> These two, the mother of Jesus and her betrothed husband,
-had left their home in Nazareth to enroll their names as members of
-the house of David, in a census which had been ordered by the Emperor
-Augustus, and while at Bethlehem Mary was delivered of her son. The
-enrollment ordered by the emperor had called so many strangers into the
-little town of Bethlehem that on the arrival of Joseph and Mary there
-was no room at the inn for them, and they had to take up quarters in
-the stable adjacent. There, among the hay and straw spread for the food
-and rest of the cattle, Christ was born. (Note 2, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The Angelic Announcement.</b>&mdash;The birth of Christ was announced
-to a few shepherds watching their flock by night&mdash;about a mile distant
-from the village of Bethlehem&mdash;by an angel, surrounded about by the
-glory of God, who said:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Fear not: for, behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy,
- which shall be to all people. For unto you is born this day in the
- city of David a Savior, which is Christ the Lord. And this shall
- be a sign unto you; ye shall find the babe wrapped in swaddling
- clothes, lying in a manger. And suddenly there was with the angel a
- multitude of the heavenly host, praising God, and saying, Glory to
- God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn4"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn4">4</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p13"></a>{13}</span> A visit to the village confirmed the strange proclamation of the
-angel&mdash;they found the mother and child.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The Inquiry of the Magi.</b>&mdash;Not alone by voice of angels was
-the birth of Messiah announced, but "wise men from the east" who had
-seen his star in the firmament came to Jerusalem about the time of his
-birth, inquiring&mdash;"Where is he that is born King of the Jews? for we
-have seen his star in the east, and are come to worship him."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn5"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn5">5</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> Nor were signs of Messiah's birth seen alone on the eastern
-hemisphere; to the people of the western hemisphere signs were also
-given; "a new star did appear," according to the words of the Nephite
-prophets, at Zarahemla; the Nephites saw it and to them, as well as to
-the wise men of the east, a star announced the birth of him who was to
-be King of the Jews<sup>[<a name="PartIfn6"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn6">6</a>]</sup> and the Savior of the world. Another sign was
-given to the Nephites, which had also been predicted by their prophets;
-the night before<sup>[<a name="PartIfn7"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn7">7</a>]</sup> Jesus was born remained beautifully light on the
-western hemisphere. This event is thus recorded in the Book of Mormon:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> And it came to pass that the words which came unto Nephi were
- fulfilled, according as they had been spoken; for behold at the
- going down of the sun, there was no darkness; and the people began
- to be astonished, because there was no darkness when the time of
- night came. * * * There was no darkness in all that night, but it
- was light as though it was midday. And it came to pass that the sun
- did rise in the morning again, according to its proper order; and
- they [the Nephites] knew that it was the day that the Lord should
- be born, because of the sign which had been given.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn8"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn8">8</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>7. The Alarm of King Herod.</b>&mdash;The inquiry made by the "wise men"
-from the east concerning the one who was "born King of the Jews,"
-alarmed the jealousy of Herod, and learning from the chief priests and
-scribes that Bethlehem was the place <span class="pagenum"><a name="p14"></a>{14}</span> where the deliverer of Israel
-was to be born, he sent the wise men there, strictly charging them to
-search diligently, and when they had found the child to bring him word
-that he too might worship him. On the way to Bethlehem the star they
-had seen in the east went before them until it stood over where the
-child was. They found the babe with Mary his mother and they worshipped
-him, giving him presents of gold and frankincense and myrrh. They were
-commanded of God in a dream, however, not to return to Herod, so they
-departed into their own country another way.
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> Joseph, too, after the departure of the wise men, was warned
-in a dream to flee out of the land, for Herod would seek the young
-child to destroy him. He was commanded to go into Egypt and remain
-there until the Lord should call him to return. In obedience to these
-divine commandments, Joseph took the mother and child and fled in the
-night into Egypt.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> Herod's wrath knew no bounds when he found that the wise men
-had not obeyed him; and in order that he might not be baffled in his
-determination to destroy the one he feared would supplant himself or
-his posterity in the throne of Israel, he sent out an edict commanding
-that all the children in Bethlehem two years old and under should be
-slain. Then was fulfilled the prophecy of Jeremiah:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> In Rama [Ra-ma] was there a voice heard, lamentation, and weeping
- and great mourning, Rachel weeping for her children, and would not
- be comforted because they were not.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn9"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn9">9</a>]</sup> (See note 3, end of section.)
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>10. Death of Herod.</b>&mdash;(note 4 end of section). After Herod's death,
-Joseph was again visited, in a dream, by an angel, who commanded him to
-return with the child and his mother into the land of Israel; for they
-who had sought the young child's life were dead. Then was fulfilled
-that which was <span class="pagenum"><a name="p15"></a>{15}</span>spoken by the prophet of the Lord, (Hosea), "Out of
-Egypt have I called my son." Joseph obeyed the commandment, but as he
-approached Judea and learned that Archelaus [Ar-ke-la-us] the son of
-Herod reigned in his father's stead, he was fearful and instead of
-remaining in Judea, he went into Galilee [Gal-i-lee] and dwelt in the
-little town of Nazareth&mdash;his former home&mdash;"that it might be fulfilled
-which was spoken by the prophets, He shall be called a Nazarene"<sup>[<a name="PartIfn10"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn10">10</a>]</sup>
-[Naz-a-reen].
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Year of Messiah's Birth.</b>&mdash;"The Birth of Christ was
-first made an era, from which to reckon dates," says the learned
-translator of Dr. Mosheim's <em>Institutes</em>,&mdash;Murdock&mdash;"by Dionysius
-Exiguus, [Di-o-nish-i-us Exs-ig-u-us] about A. D. 532. He supposed
-Christ to have been born on the 25th of December, in the year of Rome
-753, and this computation has been followed in practice to this day;
-notwithstanding the learned are well agreed that it must be incorrect."
-It will be seen, however, from what follows, from the same author, that
-all is uncertainty with the learned in respect to this subject:
-</p>
-<p>"To ascertain the true time of Christ's birth, there are two principal
-data afforded by the Evangelists: I. It is clear, from Matt. ii: 1,
-etc., that Christ was born before the death of Herod the Great, who
-died about Easter, in the year of Rome 749 or 750. Now, if Christ was
-born in the December next before Herod's death, it must have been in
-the year of Rome 748 or 749; and, of course, four, if not five years
-anterior to the Dionysian or Vulgar era: II. It is probable, from
-Luke iii: 1, 2, 23, that Jesus was 'about' thirty years of age in the
-fifteenth year of the reign of Tiberius Caesar. Now, the reign of
-Tiberius may be considered as commencing at the time he became sole
-emperor, in August of the year of Rome 767; or (as there is some reason
-to suppose that Augustus made him partner in the government two years
-before he died), we may begin his reign in the year of Rome 765. The
-fifteenth year of Tiberius will therefore be either the year of Rome
-781 or 779. From which deduct 30, and we have the year of Rome 751 or
-749 for the year of Christ's birth; the former two and the latter four
-years earlier than the Dionysian computation. Comparing these results
-with those obtained from the death of Herod, it is generally supposed
-the true time of Christ's birth was the year of Rome 749, or four years
-before the Vulgar era. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p16"></a>{16}</span> <em>But the conclusion is not certain, because
-there is uncertainty in the data</em>. (1.) It is not certain that we ought
-to reckon Tiberius' reign as beginning two years before the death
-of Augustus. (2.) Luke says '<em>about</em> thirty years of age.' This is
-indefinite and may be understood of twenty-nine, thirty, or thirty-one
-years. (3.) It is not certain in which of the two years mentioned Herod
-died; nor how long before that event the Savior was born. Respecting
-the month and day of Christ's birth, we are left almost wholly to
-conjecture."
-</p>
-<p>It will be demanded on what authority I have gone counter to the
-conclusions of the learned on this subject by keeping to the Dionysian
-date,&mdash;so far, at least, as the year is concerned. My answer is that
-in the revelation on Church government in the Doctrine and Covenants
-(sec. xx), the following in respect to the rise of the Church is given:
-"The rise of the Church of Christ in these last days, <em>being one
-thousand eight hundred and thirty years since the coming of our Lord
-and Savior Jesus Christ in the flesh</em>, it being regularly organized
-and established agreeable to the laws of our country, by the will and
-commandments of God, in the fourth month, and on the sixth day of the
-month, which is called April."
-</p>
-<p>I believe that this&mdash;better than any other authority, fixes the time
-of the birth, or the "coming of our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ
-in the flesh;" and that, as to the year at least, agrees with the
-Dionysian computation. It must be remembered that this revelation in
-section twenty of the Doctrine and Covenants was given before the
-Church was organized&mdash;at sundry times between the first and the sixth
-of April&mdash;and that the prophet was instructed to organize the Church
-on the sixth day of April, 1830, hence it was not mere chance that
-determined the day on which that organization took place, (History
-Joseph Smith, "Millennial Star Supplement" to vol. xiv, p. 22) a fact
-that is significant in view of the above considerations and those which
-follow in note 2.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Day of Messiah's Birth.</b>&mdash;Strictly speaking, if this Church
-was organized "one thousand eight hundred and thirty years since
-the coming of our Lord and Savior in the flesh," then the sixth of
-April must have been the anniversary of the Savior's birthday. If the
-organization of the Church had been before or subsequent to that date,
-if only by one or any number of days, the great event would have been
-more or less than one thousand eight hundred and thirty years by just
-so many days. [This argument also holds good as to the year of Christ's
-birth.] Options formed by the study of chronological events may or may
-not be accurate. But we would scarcely think the Lord would make any
-mistake about dates. Least of all he who was born on that day, and on
-that day thirty-three years later was crucified.&mdash;Joseph F. Smith.
-</p>
-<p>Let us inquire if the day observed by the Christian world as the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p17"></a>{17}</span>
-day of His [Christ's] birth&mdash;the 25th of December&mdash;is or is not the
-real Christmas day. A great many authors have found out from their
-researches, that it is not. I think that there is scarcely an author
-at the present day that believes that the twenty-fifth of December was
-the day that Christ was born on * * * It is generally believed and
-conceded by the learned who have investigated the matter, that Christ
-was born in April. * * * It is stated that according to the best of
-their [the learned] judgment from the researches they have made, Christ
-was crucified on the sixth of April. That is the day on which this
-Church was organized. But when these learned men go back from the day
-of his crucifixion to the day of his birth, they are at a loss, having
-no certain evidence or testimony by which they can determine it.&mdash;Orson
-Pratt.
-</p>
-<p>In support of Elder Pratt's contention relative to the uncertainty of
-Christian scholars as to the day on which Jesus was born, I quote the
-statement of Rev. Charles F. Deem, author of "The Light of the Nation,"
-and president of the American Institute of Christian Philosophy. "It is
-annoying to see learned men use the same apparatus of calculation and
-reach the most diverse results." In a foot note at page 32, in "Light
-of the Nation," he refers to fifteen different authors all of whom
-are writers of note, who give different years for the birth of Christ
-varying from B. C. 1 to B. C. 7
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Humble Nativity of Messiah.</b>&mdash;In the rude limestone grotto
-attached to the inn as a stable, among the hay and straw spread for
-the food and rest of the cattle, weary with their day's journey, far
-from home, in the midst of strangers, in circumstances so devoid of
-all earthly comfort or splendor that it is impossible to imagine a
-humbler nativity, Christ was born. Distant but a few miles, on the
-plateau of the abrupt and singular hill now called <em>Jebel Fureidis</em>
-or "Little Paradise Mountain," towered the palace&mdash;fortress of the
-great Herod. The magnificent houses of his friends and courtiers
-crowded around its base. The humble wayfarers, as they passed near
-it, might have heard the hired and voluptuous minstrelsy with which
-its feasts were celebrated, or the shouting of the rough mercenaries
-whose arms enforced obedience to its despotic lord. But the true King
-of the Jews&mdash;the rightful Lord of the universe&mdash;was not to be found in
-palace or fortress. They who wear soft clothing are in kings' houses.
-The cattle stables of the lowly caravan-serai were a more fitting
-birthplace for him who came to reveal that the soul of the greatest
-monarch was no dearer or greater in God's sight than the soul of his
-meanest slave; for him who had not where to lay his head; for him who,
-from his cross of shame, was to rule the world!&mdash;Canon Farrar.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Character of Herod.</b>&mdash;Now some there are who stand amazed
-at the diversity of Herod's nature and purposes; for when we have
-respect <span class="pagenum"><a name="p18"></a>{18}</span> to his magnificence, and the benefits which he bestowed
-on all mankind, there is no possibility for even those who had the
-least respect for him, to deny, or not openly confess, that he had a
-nature vastly beneficent; but when anyone looks upon the punishment he
-inflicted and the injuries he did, not only to his subjects, but to
-his nearest relatives, and takes notice of his severe and unrelenting
-disposition there, he will be forced to allow that he was brutish, and
-a stranger to all humanity. * * * If anyone was not very obsequious to
-him in his language, and would not confess himself to be his slave, or
-but seemed to think of any innovation in his government, he was not
-able to contain himself, but prosecuted his very kindred and friends
-and punished them as if they were enemies; and this wickedness he
-undertook out of a desire that he might be himself alone honored. * * *
-A man he was of great barbarity towards all men equally, and a slave to
-his passion; but above the consideration of what was right.&mdash;Josephus.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Last Illness of Herod.</b>&mdash;But now Herod's distemper greatly
-increased upon him after a severe manner, and this by God's judgment
-upon him for his sins; for a fire glowed in him slowly, which did
-not so much appear to the touch outwardly, as it augmented his pains
-inwardly; for it brought upon him a vehement appetite to eating, which
-he could not avoid to supply with one sort of food or other. His
-entrails were exulcerated, and the chief violence of his pain lay on
-his colon; an aqueous and transparent liquor also had settled itself
-upon his feet; * * * and when he sat upright, he had a difficulty of
-breathing which was very loathsome, on account of the stench of his
-breath, and the quickness of his returns. He had also convulsions in
-all parts of his body, which increased his strength to an unsufferable
-degree. It was said by those who pretended to divine, and who were
-endowed with wisdom to foretell such things, that God inflicted this
-punishment on the king on account of his great impurity; yet was he
-still in hopes of recovering, though his afflictions seemed greater
-than anyone could bear.&mdash;Josephus.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. In what year of Rome was Messiah born?
-</p>
-<p>2. State the reasons for placing the date of Messiah's birth in the
-year of Rome 753. (See notes 1 and 2.)
-</p>
-<p>3. Give the name of Messiah's birthplace.
-</p>
-<p>4. For what is Ephratah noted? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>5. Who was the mother of Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>6. Relate what you can of Mary, and the announcement that she should be
-the mother of the Son of God.
-</p>
-<p>7. Relate the circumstances under which Christ was born.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p19"></a>{19}</span> 8. Give an account of the visitation of the angels to the
-shepherds.
-</p>
-<p>9. What is Canon Farrar's translation of the title of the angelic song?
-</p>
-<p>10. Give an account of the magi's visit to Jerusalem in search of the
-Christ.
-</p>
-<p>11. What signs were given of Messiah's birth to the people on the
-Western Hemisphere?
-</p>
-<p>12. By what divine providence was Messiah's life preserved in infancy?
-</p>
-<p>13. What was the character of Herod the Great? (Note 4.)
-</p>
-<p>14. Describe Herod's last illness and death. (Note 5.)
-</p>
-<p>15. Where did Joseph settle on his return from Egypt?
-</p>
-<p>16. What prophecies were fulfilled by Messiah being taken into Egypt
-and Nazareth?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p20"></a>{20}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>Section II.<a name="PartIfn11"></a><sup>[<a href="#txtPartIfn11">11</a>]</sup>
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. State of the Religious World at Messiah's Birth.</b>&mdash;At the time
-of the birth of the Son of God, the enfeebled world was tottering
-on its foundations. The national religions which had satisfied the
-parents, no longer proved sufficient for the children. The new
-generations could not repose contented within the ancient forms. The
-gods of every nation, when transported to Rome&mdash;then the dominant
-political power in the world&mdash;there lost their oracles, as the nations
-themselves had there lost their liberty. Brought face to face in the
-capital they had destroyed each other, and their divinity had vanished.
-A great void was thus occasioned in the religion of the world.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> A kind of deism, destitute alike of spirit and of life,
-floated for a time above the abyss in which the vigorous superstitions
-of antiquity had been engulfed. But like all negative creeds it had
-no power to reconstruct. All nations were plunged in the grossest
-superstition. Most of them, indeed all except the Jews, supposed that
-each country and province was subjected to a set of very powerful
-beings whom they called gods, and whom the people, in order to live
-happily, must propitiate with various rites and ceremonies. These
-deities were supposed to differ materially from each other in sex,
-power, nature and offices. Some nations went beyond others in impiety
-of worship, but all stood chargeable with absurdity, if not gross
-stupidity in matters of religion. (See note 1, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p21"></a>{21}</span> <b>3.</b> Thus every nation had a class of deities peculiar to
-itself, among which one was supposed to be pre-eminent over the rest,
-and was their king, though subject himself to the laws of fate, or to
-an eternal destiny. The oriental nations had not the same gods as the
-Gauls, the Germans, and the other northern nations; and the Grecian
-deities were essentially different from those of the Egyptians, who
-worshipped brute animals, plants, and various productions of nature
-and art. Each nation, likewise, had its own method of worshiping its
-gods; differing widely from the rites of other nations. But, from their
-ignorance or from other causes the Greeks and Romans maintained that
-their gods were universally worshipped; and they therefore gave the
-names of their own gods to the foreign deities which has caused great
-confusion and errors in the history of ancient religions even in the
-works of the learned.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Heathen Toleration&mdash;Its Cause.</b>&mdash;The variety of gods and
-religions in the pagan nations produced no wars or feuds among them.
-Each nation without concern allowed its neighbors to enjoy their own
-views of religion, and to worship their own gods in their own way. Nor
-need this tolerance greatly surprise us. For they who regard the world
-as divided like a great country into numerous provinces each subject to
-a distinct order of deities, cannot despise the gods of other nations
-nor think of compelling all others to pay worship to their national
-gods. The Romans in particular, though they would not allow the public
-religions to be changed or multiplied, yet gave the citizens full
-liberty to observe foreign religions in private, and to hold meetings
-and feasts and to erect temples and groves to these foreign deities, in
-whose worship there was nothing inconsistent with the public safety and
-existing laws. (See note 2, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Character of Heathen Gods.</b>&mdash;The greater part of the gods of
-all nations were ancient heroes, famous for their achievements and
-their worthy deeds; such as kings, generals <span class="pagenum"><a name="p22"></a>{22}</span> and the founders of
-cities; and likewise females who were highly distinguished for their
-deeds and discoveries, whom a grateful posterity had deified. To these
-some added the more splendid and useful objects in the natural world,
-among which the sun, moon, and stars being pre-eminent, received
-worship from nearly all, and some were not ashamed to pay divine honors
-to mountains, rivers, trees, the earth, the ocean, the winds, and even
-to diseases, to virtues and vices, and to almost every conceivable
-object, or, at least, to the deities supposed to preside over these
-objects.
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> The worship of these deities consisted in numerous ceremonies
-with sacrifices, offerings, and prayers. The ceremonies, for the most
-part, were absurd and ridiculous; and what was worse yet, debasing,
-obscene and cruel. The whole pagan system had not the least efficacy
-to excite and cherish virtuous emotions in the soul. For in the first
-place, the gods and goddesses to whom the public homage was paid,
-instead of being patterns of virtue, were patterns rather of enormous
-vices and crimes. They were considered as superior to mortals in power
-and as exempt from death, but in all things else as on a level with
-man. In the next place, the ministers of this religion, neither by
-precept nor by example, exhorted the people to lead honest and virtuous
-lives, but gave them to understand that all the homage required of
-them by the gods was comprised in the observance of the traditional
-rites and ceremonies. And lastly, the doctrines inculcated respecting
-the rewards of the righteous and the punishments of the wicked in the
-future world were some of them dubious and uncertain, and others more
-adapted to promote vice than virtue. Hence the wiser pagans themselves,
-about the time of the Savior's birth, contemned and ridiculed the whole
-system.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Mysteries of Paganism.</b>&mdash;It is contended by those who would
-dignify paganism, that back of its common worship, among the orientals
-and Greeks at least, certain recondite <span class="pagenum"><a name="p23"></a>{23}</span> and concealed rites called
-mysteries&mdash;containing in them the essence of true religion&mdash;existed:
-and that back of its idolatry stood and was recognized the true God,
-of which the images worshiped were but the material representatives.
-To these mysteries, however, very few were admitted. Candidates for
-initiation had first to give satisfactory proof of their good faith and
-patience, by various most troublesome ceremonies. When initiated they
-could not divulge anything they had seen without exposing their lives
-to imminent danger. Hence the interior of these hidden rites is at this
-day but little known, and therefore but an imperfect judgment may be
-formed as to their virtue. But what glimpses are obtained of the rites
-of these mysteries do not prepossess one in their favor; for in many of
-them many things were done which are repugnant to modesty and decency,
-and in all of them that are known the discerning may see that the
-deities there worshipped were more distinguished for their vices than
-for their virtues. (See note 3, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Paul's Arraignment of the Pagan World.</b>&mdash;Paul, the great
-apostle of the Gentiles, brings a terrible indictment against the pagan
-world of his day, and also against the more ancient pagans, and avers
-that there was no excuse for their idolatry or wickedness:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven against all
- ungodliness and unrighteousness of men, who hold the truth in
- unrighteousness; because that which may be known of God is manifest
- in them; for God hath showed it unto them. For the invisible things
- of him from the creation of the world are clearly seen, being
- understood by the things that are made, even his eternal power and
- Godhead; so that they are without excuse: because that, when they
- knew God, they glorified him not as God, neither were thankful;
- but became vain in their imaginations, and their foolish heart was
- darkened. Professing themselves to be wise, they became fools,
- and changed the glory of the incorruptible God into an image like
- to corruptible man, and to birds, and four-footed beasts and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p24"></a>{24}</span>
- creeping things. Wherefore God also gave them up to uncleanness
- through the lusts of their own hearts, to dishonor their own bodies
- between themselves; who changed the truth of God into a lie and
- worshiped and served the creature more than the Creator. * * * For
- this cause God gave them up unto vile affections; * * * and even
- as they did not like to retain God in their knowledge, God gave
- them over to a reprobate mind, to do those things which are not
- convenient; being filled with all unrighteousness, fornication,
- wickedness, covetousness, maliciousness; full of envy, murder,
- debate, deceit, malignity; whisperers, backbiters, haters of God,
- despiteful, proud, boasters, inventors of evil things, disobedient
- to parents, without understanding, covenant-breakers, without
- natural affection, implacable, unmerciful: who knowing the judgment
- of God, that they which commit such things are worthy of death, not
- only do the same, but have pleasure in them that do them.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn12"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn12">12</a>]</sup> (See
- note 4, end of section.)
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>9. Political State of the World at Messiah's Birth.</b>&mdash;At the birth
-of Jesus Christ the greater part of the civilized world on the eastern
-hemisphere was subject to the Romans. Their remoter provinces they
-either ruled by means of temporary governors and presidents sent from
-Rome, or suffered them to live under their own kings and laws, subject
-to the control of the Roman emperors.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> The senate and people of Rome, though they had not lost all
-the appearance of liberty, were really under the authority of one
-man, Augustus; who was clothed with the titles of emperor, sovereign
-pontiff, censor, tribune of the people, pro-consul; in a word, with
-every office which conferred general power and pre-eminence in the
-commonwealth.
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> The Roman government, if we regard only its form and laws,
-was sufficiently mild and equitable. But the injustice and avarice of
-the nobles and provincial governors, the Roman lust of conquest and
-dominion, and the rapacity of the publicans who farmed the revenues
-of the state, brought many and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p25"></a>{25}</span> grievous evils upon the people.
-The magistrates and publicans fleeced them of their property on the
-one hand, while, on the other, the Roman lust of dominion required
-armies to be raised in the provinces&mdash;a thing which was very oppressive
-to them, and the occasion of almost perpetual insurrection. This,
-however, is true more especially of the days which preceded the reign
-of Augustus [Au-gus-tus]. The principal conquests of the Romans were
-achieved under the republic. It was left for Augustus to adopt that
-policy which aimed merely to preserve those dominions which had been
-acquired by the policy of the senate, the active emulation of the
-consuls and the martial enthusiasm of the people. Under his reign the
-Roman people themselves seem to have relinquished the ambitious design
-of subduing the whole earth. (See note 5, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> This widely extended dominion of one people, or rather, of
-one man, was attended with several advantages: (1), it brought into
-union a multitude of nations differing in customs and languages;
-(2,) it gave freer access to the remotest nations; (3,) it gradually
-civilized the barbarous nations, by introducing among them the Roman
-laws and customs; (4), it spread literature, the arts and philosophy
-in countries where they were not before cultivated, and guaranteed the
-protection of its laws to the people even in the remotest provinces.
-(See note 6, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> Moreover, at the birth of Messiah, the Roman empire was freer
-from commotion that it had been for many years. Though it cannot be
-said that the whole world was in profound peace, yet there can be no
-doubt that the period when the Savior was born, if compared with the
-preceding times, was peculiarly peaceful&mdash;a condition quite essential
-to the introduction of the gospel and the extensive preaching of it.
-Nor is it too much to say that the Lord raised up the great Roman
-empire that under its beneficent yet powerful sway, the glad tidings of
-great joy, the gospel of Jesus Christ, might be widely preached among
-men.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p26"></a>{26}</span> <b>14.</b> Of the state of those nations which lay beyond the
-boundaries of the Roman empire we may not learn so much as of Rome. It
-is sufficient to know, however, that the Oriental nations were pressed
-down by a stern despotism, which their effeminacy of mind and body, and
-even their religion, led them to bear with patience; while the northern
-nations enjoyed much greater liberty, which was protected by the rigor
-of their climate and the consequent energy of their constitutions,
-aided by their mode of life.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. Political and Religious State of the Jews.</b>&mdash;The condition
-of the Jewish people among whom the Savior was born was scarcely any
-better than that of other nations. Herod, called the Great, then
-governed, or rather, oppressed the Jewish nation, though only a
-tributary king under the Romans. He drew upon himself universal hatred
-by his cruelties, jealousies and wars; and he exhausted the wealth of
-the unhappy nation by his mad luxury, his excessive magnificence, and
-his immoderate largesses. Under his administration Roman luxury and
-licentiousness spread over Palestine. In religion he was professedly a
-Jew, but he copied the manners of those who despise all religion.
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> The Romans did not wholly prohibit the Jews from retaining
-their national laws, and the religion established by Moses.
-</p>
-<p>They had their high priests, council or senate (Sanhedrim)<sup>[<a name="PartIfn13"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn13">13</a>]</sup>, and
-inflicted lesser punishments. They could apprehend men and bring them
-before the council; and if a guard of soldiers was needful, could be
-assisted by them upon asking the governor for them; they could bind
-men and keep them in custody; the council could summon witnesses,
-take examinations, and when they had any capital offenders, carry
-them before the governor. This governor usually paid a regard to what
-they offered, and if they brought evidence of the fact, pronounced
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p27"></a>{27}</span> sentence according to their laws. He was the proper judge in all
-capital causes.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn14"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn14">14</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>17.</b> The measure of liberty and comfort allowed to the Jews by
-the Romans was well nigh wholly dissipated, first by the cruelty
-and avarice of the governors, and by the frauds and rapacity of the
-publicans; and second, by the profligacy and crimes of those who
-pretended to be patriots and guardians of the nation. Their principal
-men, their high priests, were abandoned wretches, who had purchased
-their places by bribes or by deeds of iniquity, and who maintained
-their ill-acquired authority by every species of dishonest acts. The
-other priests and all who held any considerable office, were not much
-better. The multitude, excited by such examples, ran headlong into
-every sort of iniquity, and by their unceasing robberies and seditions
-they excited against themselves both the justice of God and the
-vengeance of man.
-</p>
-<p><b>18. Religious Divisions.</b>&mdash;Two religions may be said to have
-flourished in Palestine at the times of which we write; viz., the
-Jewish and the Samaritan; between the followers of which there was
-a deadly hatred. The nature of the former is set forth in the Old
-Testament. But in the age of the Savior it had been corrupted by
-the traditions of the people, who were divided into sects filled
-with bitterness against each other. Chief among these sects were the
-Pharisees [Fa-ri-sees,] and Sadducees [Sad-du-seez.]
-</p>
-<p><b>19. Pharisees and Sadducees.</b>&mdash;While these two sects agreed as
-to a number of fundamental principles of the Jewish religion, they
-differed on questions of the highest importance, and such as related
-to the salvation of the soul. First, they disagreed respecting the
-law which God had given them. The Pharisees superadded to the written
-law an oral or unwritten law, handed down by tradition, which the
-Sadducees rejected, adhering alone to the written law. They differed,
-too, as to <span class="pagenum"><a name="p28"></a>{28}</span> the import of the law. The Pharisees held to a double
-sense of the scripture, the one literal, the other figurative; while
-the Sadducees held only to the literal sense of the Bible. To these
-contests concerning the laws were added others on subjects of the
-highest moment; particularly in respect to the rewards and punishments
-announced in the sacred writings. The Pharisees supposed them to affect
-both body and spirit&mdash;in whose pre-existence and eternal existence
-they believed&mdash;and that punishments and rewards extended beyond the
-present life. The Sadducees believed in no future retributions. They
-were sceptical of the miraculous; and denied the existence of spiritual
-beings, the immortality of the soul, the resurrection of the body.
-They were deists, in fact; viewing the Supreme Being as a quiescent
-Providence calmly surveying and ruling the regular working of natural
-laws. They gave themselves up to ease, luxury, self-indulgence, and
-were not indisposed to view with indifferent liberality the laxity of
-heathen morals and the profanity of idol worship. They included in
-their numbers the leading men of the nation, were the aristocracy in
-fact, while the Pharisees, on the other hand, were the common people;
-proud of their unblemished descent from Abraham, exclusive, formal,
-self-righteous, strict observers of external rites and ceremonies, even
-beyond the requirements of the law.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> Such were the chief sects among the Jews. There were others
-but they were of minor importance. Both Sadducees and Pharisees looked
-for a deliverer; not, however, such a one as God had promised; but a
-powerful warrior and a vindicator of their national liberties, a king,
-a ruler. All placed the sum of religion in an observance of the Mosaic
-ritual, and in certain duties toward their countrymen. All excluded the
-rest of mankind from the hope of salvation, and, of course whenever
-they dared, treated them with hatred and inhumanity. To these fruitful
-sources of vice, must be added the various absurd and superstitious
-opinions concerning the Divine Nature, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p29"></a>{29}</span> genii, magic, etc., which
-they had imbibed from surrounding nations.
-</p>
-<p><b>21. Samaritans.</b>&mdash;The Samaritans [Sa-mar-i-tans] were colonists
-sent by the king of Assyria [As-syr-rya], Shalmaneser [Shal-ma-ne-zer,]
-to people the land after he had carried captive the Israelites, in
-the latter part of the eighth century, B. C. They were a mixed people
-from various eastern nations, conquered by this same king&mdash;and they
-brought with them their various forms of national idolatry. A plague
-breaking out among them, however, led them to petition for a priest of
-the god of the country, to teach them the old form of worship. He was
-stationed at Bethel [Beth-el,] and the Samaritans endeavored to combine
-a formal reverence of God with the practice of their own idolatrous
-rites. After the captivity of Judah, they sought an alliance with
-the returned Jews (536 B. C.,) with whom they intermarried. On Ezra
-enforcing the Mosaic law against mixed marriages&mdash;three-quarters of a
-century later&mdash;Manasses [Ma-nas-ses,] a Jewish priest, who had married
-the daughter of Sanballat [San-bal-lat,] chief of the Samaritans,
-headed a secession at Shechem [Shek-em.] The Samaritans taught the
-Mosaic ritual and erected a rival temple to that at Jerusalem, on Mount
-Gerizim [Ger-i-zim]. This mixed community before the time of the Savior
-began to claim descent from the patriarchs and a share in the promises.
-Their religion was less pure than that of the Jews, as they adulterated
-the doctrines of the Old Testament with the profane rites of the pagan
-religion.
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> Such was the state of the world&mdash;such the condition of
-the Jews at the time of Messiah's birth; and surely that condition
-justified the pity and also the stern reproofs&mdash;nay, the severe rebukes
-administered, as we shall see, by the Son of God in the course of his
-ministry.
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. State of the World at Messiah's Birth.</b>&mdash;The world had grown
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p30"></a>{30}</span> old, and the dotage of its paganism was marked by hideous
-excesses. Atheism in belief was followed, as among all nations it has
-always been, by degradation of morals, iniquity seemed to have run its
-course to the very farthest goal. Philosophy had abrogated its boasted
-functions except for the favored few. Crime was universal, and there
-was no known remedy for the horror and ruin which it was causing in a
-thousand hearts. Remorse itself seemed to be exhausted, so that men
-were past feeling. There was a callosity of heart, a petrifying of the
-moral sense, which even those who suffered from it felt to be abnormal
-and portentous. Even the heathen world felt that "the fullness of the
-time" had come.&mdash;Canon Farrar.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Policy of Rome in Respect to Religion.</b>&mdash;The policy of the
-emperors and the senate, so far as it concerned religion, was happily
-seconded by the reflections of the enlightened, and by the habits
-of the superstitious part of their subjects. The various modes of
-worship, which prevailed in the Roman world, were all considered by
-the people as equally true; by the philosopher as equally false; and
-by the magistrate as equally useful. And this toleration produced not
-only mutual indulgence, but even religious concord. * * * Avarice and
-taste very frequently despoiled the vanquished nations of the elegant
-statues of their gods and the rich ornaments of their temples; but in
-the exercise of the religion which they derived from their ancestors,
-they uniformly experienced the indulgence, and even protection of
-the Roman conquerors. The province of Gaul seems, and indeed only
-seems, an exception to this universal toleration. Under the specious
-pretext of abolishing human sacrifices, the emperors Tiberius and
-Claudius suppressed the dangerous power of the Druids; but the priests
-themselves, their gods and their altars, subsisted in peaceful
-obscurity till the final fall of paganism. * * * Rome gradually became
-the common temple of her subjects; and the freedom of the city was
-bestowed on all the gods of mankind.&mdash;Gibbon.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Mysteries of the Pagan Religion.</b>&mdash;It has been maintained that
-the design of at least some of these mysteries was to inculcate the
-grand principles of natural religion, such as the unity of God, the
-immortality of the soul, the importance of virtue, etc., and to explain
-the vulgar polytheism as symbolical of these great truths. But this
-certainly needs better proof. It is more probable that the later pagan
-philosophers, who lived after the light of Christianity had exposed the
-abominations of polytheism, were the principal authors of this moral
-interpretation of the vulgar religion, which they falsely pretended
-was taught in the mysteries, while in reality, those mysteries were
-probably mere supplements to the vulgar mythology and worship, and of
-the same general character and spirit.&mdash;Murdock.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p31"></a>{31}</span> <b>4. State of Religion in Rome.</b>&mdash;A modern writer describing
-the religious state of Rome at the time of Julius Caesar&mdash;it could
-not have been much changed at the birth of Messiah, sixty years
-later&mdash;says: "Religion, once the foundation of the laws and rule of
-personal conduct, had subsided into opinion. The educated in their
-hearts disbelieved it. Temples were still built with increasing
-splendor; the established forms were scrupulously observed. Public men
-spoke conventionally of Providence, that they might throw on their
-opponents the odium of impiety; but of genuine belief that life had
-any serious meaning, there was none remaining beyond the circle of the
-silent, patient, ignorant multitude. The whole spiritual atmosphere was
-saturated with cant&mdash;cant moral, cant political, cant religious; an
-affectation of high principle which had ceased to touch the conduct,
-and flowed on in an increasing volume of insincere and unreal speech.
-The truest thinkers were those who, like Lucretius, spoke frankly out
-their real convictions, declared Providence was a dream, and that
-man and the world he lived in were material phenomena, generated
-by natural forces out of cosmic atoms, and into atoms to be again
-resolved."&mdash;Froude.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Policy of Augustus as to Conquests.</b>&mdash;Inclined to peace by
-his temper and situation, it was easy for him to discover that Rome,
-in her present exalted situation, had much less to hope than to fear
-from the chance of arms; and that, in the prosecution of remote wars,
-the undertaking every day became more difficult, the event more
-doubtful and the possession more precarious and less beneficial. The
-experience of Augustus added weight to these salutary reflections,
-and eventually convinced him that by prudent vigor of his counsels,
-it would be easy to secure every concession which the safety or the
-dignity of Rome might require from the most formidable barbarians * *
-* On the death of the emperor, his testament was publicly read in the
-senate. He bequeathed, as a valuable legacy to his successors, the
-advice of confining the empire within those limits which nature seemed
-to have placed as its permanent bulwarks and foundations; on the west
-the Atlantic ocean; the Rhine and Danube on the north; the Euphrates
-on the east; and towards the south the sandy deserts of Arabia and
-Africa.&mdash;Gibbon, "Decline and Fall", vol. i, chap. 1.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Mission and Character of the Roman Empire.</b>&mdash;As the soil must
-be prepared before the wheat can be sown, so before the kingdom of
-heaven could throw up its shoots there was needed a kingdom of this
-world, where the nations were neither torn to pieces by violence nor
-were rushing after false ideals [as to governments] and spurious
-ambitions. Such a kingdom was the empire of the Caesars&mdash;a kingdom
-where peaceful men could work, think and speak as they pleased, and
-travel freely among provinces ruled for the most part by Gallios who
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p32"></a>{32}</span> protected life and property, and forbade fanatics to tear each
-other to pieces for their religious opinions. "It is not lawful for
-us to put a man to death," was the complaint of the Jewish priests to
-the Roman governor. Had Europe and Asia been covered with independent
-nations, each with a local religion represented in its ruling powers,
-Christianity must have been stifled in its cradle. If St. Paul had
-escaped the Sanhedrim of Jerusalem, he would have been torn to pieces
-by the silversmiths at Ephesus. The appeal to Caesar's judgment
-seat was the shield of his mission, and alone made possible his
-success.&mdash;Froude.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Sanhedrin of the Jews.</b>&mdash;"The council" of the Jewish
-church and people was a theocratic oligarchy, which after the return
-from the captivity (536 B. C.,) ruled the new settlement, being in
-all causes and over all persons, ecclesiastical and civil, supreme.
-It is supposed to be suggested by the old institution of seventy-two
-Elders (six from each tribe,) appointed by Moses, at Jethro's [Jeth-ro]
-suggestion, to relieve him in the administration of justice (Ex.
-xviii:14; Num. xi:16.) Having died out in the age succeeding Joshua, and
-being superceded under the monarchy, it was revived either by Ezra,
-or after the Macedonian ascendancy. It consisted of an equal number
-of priests, scribes and elders all of whom must be married, above
-thirty years of age, well instructed in the law, and of good report
-among the people. This constituted the Supreme Court of judicature
-and administrative council, taking cognizance of false doctrine and
-teaching, as well as breaches of the Mosaic Law, and regulating both
-civil and religious observances peculiar to the Jewish nation. The
-power of life and death had been taken from it by the Roman government
-which otherwise covenanted to respect its decrees. The council usually
-met in the hall Gazith, within the Temple precincts, though special
-meetings were sometimes held in the house of the high priest, who was
-generally (though not necessarily) the president. There were also two
-vice-presidents, and two scribes&mdash;clerks&mdash;or "heralds," one registering
-the votes of acquittal (or nos), and the other those of convictions
-(or ayes), and a body of lictors or attendants. The assembly set in
-the form of a semi-circle, the president occupying the center of the
-arc, the prisoner that of the center of the chord, while the two
-"heralds" sat a little in advance of the president, on his right and
-his left.&mdash;"Oxford Teacher's Bible"&mdash;Addenda.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. State the religious condition of the world at Messiah's birth.
-</p>
-<p>2. What was the cause of heathen religious toleration?
-</p>
-<p>3. What was the policy of Rome in respect to religion? (Note 2.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p33"></a>{33}</span> 4. What was the nature of the heathen gods?
-</p>
-<p>5. Describe the character of heathen worship.
-</p>
-<p>6. What can you say of pagan mysteries? (Note 3.)
-</p>
-<p>7. Give the substance of Paul's arraignment of the pagan world.
-</p>
-<p>8. What was the political state of the world at Messiah's birth?
-</p>
-<p>9. Describe the general character of the Roman government.
-</p>
-<p>10. Enumerate the advantages the Roman government gave to the world.
-</p>
-<p>11. How did these advantages affect the work of the Christ?
-</p>
-<p>12. What was the state of the nations outside of the Roman empire?
-</p>
-<p>13. Who was the king of the Jews at Messiah's birth?
-</p>
-<p>14. What was the political state of the Jews at that time?
-</p>
-<p>15. What can you say of religion among the Jews at this period?
-</p>
-<p>16. What were the religious divisions in Palestine?
-</p>
-<p>17. State the doctrines of the Pharisees. The Sadducees.
-</p>
-<p>18. What was the character of the Deliverer expected by both Pharisees
-and Sadducees?
-</p>
-<p>19. Did Jesus Christ answer their expectations?
-</p>
-<p>20. Tell what you can of the Samaritans.
-</p>
-<p>21. Describe the Sanhedrim of the Jews. (Note 7.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p34"></a>{34}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION III.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Childhood and Youth of Messiah.</b>&mdash;Returning from Egypt in
-obedience to the commandment of God, Joseph, the husband of Mary, with
-the infant Savior, went into Galilee, and lived at Nazareth&mdash;the most
-despised village of the most despised province in all Palestine. (Note
-1, end of section.) Of his childhood but little information can be
-obtained from any authentic source. All that may be learned from the
-biographies in the Gospels is that after the settlement in Nazareth,
-the child grew and waxed strong in spirit, filled with wisdom; and the
-grace of God was upon him.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> Luke tells us that when twelve years of age, Jesus accompanied
-his mother and Joseph to Jerusalem, to attend the feast of the
-Passover. (See note 2, end of section.) When they started on the
-return to Nazareth, Jesus remained behind at Jerusalem without their
-knowledge. They supposed him to be in the company, but when after a
-whole day's journey he did not appear, they made inquiry for him among
-their kindred, and not finding him, returned to Jerusalem in search of
-him. After three days' anxious inquiry they found him in the temple,
-sitting in the midst of the doctors, both hearing them and asking
-questions. Answering his mother's gentle reproof for remaining behind,
-he said:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> How is it that ye sought me? Wist ye not that I must be about my
- Father's business?
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Thus early in life, just emerging from childhood, it seems that the
-Son of God had the inspiration of his mission resting upon him. Yet in
-loving obedience he went with them down into Nazareth, "and was subject
-unto them." With the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p35"></a>{35}</span> return to Nazareth the authentic history of
-the childhood and youth of the Son of God ends; further than we learn
-from the remark of Luke that "Jesus increased in wisdom and stature,
-and in favor with God and man." But what the details of his life and
-development were for the next eighteen years, we do not know. (See note
-3, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> In the New Testament apocrypha there are wonderful and
-miraculous stories of his carrying spilt water in his robe; of his
-pulling a short board to its requisite length; of moulding sparrows
-out of clay and then clapping his hands at which they are made alive
-and fly away; how he vexes and shames and silences those who wish to
-teach him; how he rebukes Joseph or turns his playmates into kids; how
-he strikes dead with a curse the boys who offend or run against him,
-until at last there is a storm of popular indignation, and his mother
-fears to have him leave the house<sup>[<a name="PartIfn15"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn15">15</a>]</sup>&mdash;and a hundred other things
-equally absurd which mar rather than embellish the childhood and youth
-of Jesus, which the silence of his reliable biographers dignifies and
-exalts.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. John the Baptist.</b>&mdash;In the fifteenth year of the reign of
-Tiberius Caesar, there came preaching throughout the wilderness of
-Judea [Ju-de-a] a strange character, called John the Baptist. He was
-the son of Elizabeth, who was a descendant of Aaron, and a cousin to
-Mary, the mother to Jesus. His father was a priest of the temple, named
-Zacharias. Zacharias and Elizabeth were both well stricken in years,
-when there appeared unto the former, in the temple, as he was burning
-incense upon the altar, the angel Gabriel [Ga-bri-el], who announced
-to him that his wife should bear him a son, and that he must call his
-name John. The angel also said that John should be great in the eyes of
-the Lord; that he should be filled with the Holy Ghost, even from his
-mother's womb. He was <span class="pagenum"><a name="p36"></a>{36}</span> to have power also to turn unto their God
-many of the children of Israel, and to go before the Lord in the spirit
-and power of Elias to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children,
-and the disobedient to the wisdom of the just; to make ready a people
-prepared for the Lord.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn16"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn16">16</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> In due time all that the angel promised came to pass. The
-child was born, and when eight days old he was circumcised and named
-John. On that occasion his father who had been dumb from the time of
-the visitation of the angel prophesied that the child should be called
-the prophet of the Highest; that he should go before the face of the
-Lord to prepare his ways; give knowledge of salvation unto his people
-by the remission of their sins, through the tender mercy of God; and
-give light to them that sit in darkness, and in the shadow of death.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn17"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn17">17</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> That the child grew and waxed strong in spirit, and was in the
-deserts till the day of his showing unto Israel;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn18"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn18">18</a>]</sup> that he had his
-raiment of camel's hair; a leathern girdle about his loins; that his
-food was locusts and wild honey<sup>[<a name="PartIfn19"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn19">19</a>]</sup> is all we know of him until the
-word of the Lord came to him in the wilderness<sup>[<a name="PartIfn20"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn20">20</a>]</sup> commanding him to
-cry repentance, and proclaim the coming of the kingdom of heaven.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Voice from the Wilderness.</b>&mdash;The burden of John's message
-consisted of three great declarations: Repent, for the kingdom of
-heaven is at hand; prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths
-straight; there cometh one after me mightier than I am, whose shoe
-latchet I am unworthy to loose, he will baptize you with fire and with
-the Holy Ghost.
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> When the multitude flocked to hear the teaching of John the
-Pharisees and Sadducees came also&mdash;with guile in their hearts and
-deceit on their lips, he rebuked them, called them a generation of
-vipers and told them to bring forth fruits meet for repentance, and not
-to pride themselves on being the children of Abraham, for God was able
-of the very stones about <span class="pagenum"><a name="p37"></a>{37}</span> them to raise up children unto Abraham.
-He warned them that the ax was laid at the root of every tree, and that
-tree which brought not forth good fruit was to be destroyed.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> That was a strange voice to the people of that generation,
-accustomed as they were to hear only the accents of flattery or
-subserviency. Without a tremor of hesitation he rebuked the tax
-gatherers for their extortion; the soldiers for their violence; the
-Sadducees and Pharisees for their pride and formalism; and warned the
-whole people that their cherished privileges were worse than valueless
-if without repentance they regarded them as a protection against the
-wrath to come.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> So unusual a teacher as John the Baptist could not fail
-to attract attention in Judea where all men were anticipating the
-coming of a deliverer. Hence, as the Jews listened to his teachings
-so inspired with the power of God, they wondered if he were not the
-Messiah. This he denied. They asked him then if he were not Elias. This
-too he denied (see note 5, end of section); and claimed only to be the
-voice of one crying in the wilderness: "Make straight the way of the
-Lord."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn21"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn21">21</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>11. The Baptism of Jesus.</b>&mdash;When John came into the region about
-Bethabara [Beth-ab-a-rah], on the Jordan,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn22"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn22">22</a>]</sup> among others who came to
-be baptized was Jesus. When John saw him he hesitated, and knowing by
-the inspiration within him what he was soon to know by a more splendid
-manifestation of God's power, <em>viz.</em>, that this was the Son of God,
-he said: "I have need to be baptized of thee, and comest thou to me?"
-"Suffer it to be so now," replied Jesus, "for thus it becometh us to
-fulfill all righteousness."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn23"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn23">23</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> Then John baptized him, and as Jesus came up out of the water
-the heavens were opened unto him (that is, unto John; see note 6, end
-of section), and he saw the Spirit of God descending like a dove and
-lighting upon him; and he heard a voice from heaven saying: "This is
-my beloved Son, in whom I <span class="pagenum"><a name="p38"></a>{38}</span> am well pleased."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn24"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn24">24</a>]</sup> This splendid
-spiritual manifestation was a sign to John that this was the Son of
-God, the One who was to baptize with fire and the Holy Ghost, the
-Messiah, who was to take away the sins of the world. For he who had
-sent him to baptize with water, had said to him: "Upon whom thou shalt
-see the Spirit descending, and remaining on him, the same is he which
-baptizeth with the Holy Ghost."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn25"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn25">25</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>13. The Martyrdom of John.</b>&mdash;Having borne witness that Jesus was
-the Son of God, John seems to have completed the mission given to him
-at that time, and soon after fell a victim to the malice of a wicked
-woman and a weak prince. Herod Antipas [Anti-pas], the son of Herod the
-Great, who was made Tetrarch of Galilee on the death of his father,
-married the daughter of Aretas [Ar'-e-ta], king of Arabia. But forming
-also an unholy attachment for Herodias [He-ro'-di-as], his brother
-Philip's wife, he soon became involved in a course of guilt with her.
-For this he was reproved by John, who told him it was not lawful for
-him to have her. Herod at the instance of Herodias cast John into
-prison for his temerity in reproving their wicked course, and would
-have put him to death, but he feared the multitude, who esteemed John a
-prophet.
-</p>
-<p><b>14.</b> The revengeful spirit of Herodias, however, was not satisfied
-with the bonds and imprisonment of John; she determined to have his
-life. On Herod's birthday, in the midst of the feast, she sent her
-daughter to dance for the amusement of the company, which greatly
-pleased Herod, and he promised her with an oath that he would give
-her whatsoever she should ask; and the damsel being instructed of her
-mother demanded the head of John the Baptist. It was with sorrow that
-Herod, bad as he was, heard this demand, yet for his oath's sake, and
-ashamed to manifest weakness in the presence of those who sat at meat
-with him, he sent and beheaded John in the prison, and had the head
-brought in and given to the damsel in a charger. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p39"></a>{39}</span> Thus fell the
-first martyr in that dispensation. (See note 7, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Nazareth.</b>&mdash;Nazareth was in Galilee, a part of Palestine, which
-was held in disesteem for several reasons: it had a provincial dialect;
-lying remote from the capital, its inhabitants spoke a strange tongue,
-which was rough, harsh, and uncouth, having a peculiar combination
-of words, and words also peculiar to themselves. Its population was
-impure, being made up not only of provincial Jews but also of heathens
-of several sorts, Egyptians, Arabians, Phoenicians. As Galilee was a
-despised part of Palestine, so was Nazareth a despised part of Galilee,
-being a small, obscure, if not mean place. Accordingly its inhabitants
-were held in little consideration by other Galileans, and, of course,
-by those Jews who dwelt in Judea. Hence the name of Nazarene came to
-bear with it a bad odor and was nearly synonymous with a low, ignorant
-and uncultivated, if not un-Jewish person.&mdash;"Biblical Literature",
-Kitto.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Passover.</b>&mdash;The Passover, like the Sabbath and other
-institutions had a two-fold reference&mdash;historical and typical. As a
-commemorative institution, it was designed to preserve among the Jews
-a grateful sense of their redemption from Egyptian bondage, and with
-the protection granted to their first born, on the night when all
-the first born of the Egyptians were destroyed (Exodus xii: 27,) as
-a typical institute its object was to shadow forth the great facts
-and consequences of the Christian sacrifices (I. Cor. v: 7). That the
-ancient Jews understood this institution to prefigure the sufferings
-of the Christ is evident, not only from the New Testament, but from
-the Mishna, where, among the five things said to be contained in the
-<em>Great Hallel</em> (a hymn composed of several songs and sung after the
-Paschal supper,) one is, the suffering of Messiah, for which they refer
-to Psalm cxvi. * * * * * The Passover also denotes the whole solemnity,
-commencing on the fourteenth and ending on the twenty-first day of
-Nisan.&mdash;Kitto.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Youth of Christ.</b>&mdash;It is written that there was once a
-pious, godly bishop who had often earnestly prayed that God would
-manifest unto him what Jesus had done in his youth. Once the bishop
-had a dream to this effect. He seemed in his sleep to see a carpenter
-working at his trade, and beside him a little boy who was gathering up
-chips. Then came in a maiden clothed in green, who called them both
-to come to the meal, and set porridge before them. All <span class="pagenum"><a name="p40"></a>{40}</span> this the
-bishop seemed to see in his dream, himself standing behind the door
-that he might not be perceived. Then the little boy began and said:
-Why does that man stand there? Shall he not also eat with us? And this
-so frightened the bishop that he awoke. Let this be what it may, a
-true history or a fable, I none the less believe that Christ in his
-childhood and youth looked and acted like other children, yet without
-sin; in fashion like a man.&mdash;Martin Luther.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Messiah's Life for Thirty Years.</b>&mdash;What was his manner of
-life during those thirty years? It is a question which the Christians
-cannot help asking in deep reverence, and with yearning love; but the
-words in which the Gospels answer it are very calm and very few. * * *
-* * His development was a strictly human development. He did not come
-to the world endowed with infinite knowledge, but, as St. Luke tells
-us, he gradually advanced in wisdom. He was not clothed with infinite
-power, but experienced the weakness and imperfections of human infancy.
-He grew as other children grow, only in a childhood of stainless and
-sinless beauty&mdash;as the "flower of roses in the spring of the year and
-as lilies by the waters." * * * * * It was in utter stillness, in
-prayerfulness, in the quiet round of daily duties&mdash;like Moses in the
-wilderness, like David among the sheep folds, like Elijah among the
-tents of the Bedouin, like Jeremiah in his quiet home at Anathoth,
-like Amos in the sycamore groves of Tekoa&mdash;that the boy Jesus prepared
-himself, amid a hallowed obscurity, for his mighty work on earth. His
-outward life was the life of all those of his age, and station and
-place of birth. He lived as lived other children of peasant parents in
-that quiet town, and in great measure as they live now.&mdash;Canon Farrar.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Was John the Elias?</b>&mdash;"Art thou Elias?" said the messengers
-from Jesus to John. "And he saith, I am not" (John i). Afterwards,
-as Jesus, Peter, James and John were descending the mountain on
-whose summit they had seen in vision Moses and Elias, the following
-conversation occurred:
-</p>
-<p>JESUS: Tell the vision to no man, until the Son of man be risen again
-from the dead.
-</p>
-<p>DISCIPLES: Why then say the scribes that Elias must first come?
-</p>
-<p>JESUS: Elias truly shall first come, <em>and restore all things</em>; but I
-say unto you that Elias is come already, and they knew him not, but
-have done unto him whatsoever they listed. * * * * Then the disciples
-knew that he spake unto them of John the Baptist. (Matt. xvii.) From
-this it appears that John denied being Elias, while Jesus declared
-that he was, and in consequence much controversy has arisen on this
-subject. The matter may be easily understood, however, when it is known
-that Elias is the name of a person, the name of a prophet who lived,
-doubtless, in the days of Abraham <span class="pagenum"><a name="p41"></a>{41}</span> (Doc. and Cov. sec cx: 12), and
-who also appeared to Jesus on the occasion above named; Elias is also
-the name of an office&mdash;the office of Restorer. "The spirit of Elias,"
-said the Prophet Joseph (March 10, 1844) "is to prepare the way for a
-greater revelation of God, which is the priesthood of Elias. * * * *
-And when God sends a man into the world to prepare for a greater work
-holding the keys of the power of Elias, it was called the doctrine of
-Elias, even from the early ages of the world." Hence any man who came
-to prepare the way for a greater revelation was an Elias, and in this
-sense John the Baptist was pre-eminently Elias; but it is equally true
-that he was <em>not</em> Elias, the prophet who lived in the days of Abraham,
-who appeared unto Jesus in the mountain and who also appeared to the
-Prophet Joseph and Oliver Cowdery in the Kirtland Temple.
-</p>
-<p>In the revision of the New Testament, by the Prophet Joseph Smith,
-often improperly called the new translation, the difficulty in respect
-to the denial of John that he was Elias is easily understood. We
-quote the passage: "This is the record of John, when the Jews sent
-priests and seventies from Jerusalem, to ask him: Who art thou? And he
-confessed and denied not that he was Elias; but he confessed, saying, I
-am not the Christ. And they asked him, saying: How art thou then Elias?
-And he said, <em>I am not that Elias who was to restore all things</em>. And
-they asked him, saying, Art thou that Prophet? And he answered, No."
-(St. John i: 20-22.) From the above it may be plainly seen that while
-John was not the particular Elias who is to restore <em>all</em> things, yet
-he is an Elias because he restored some things in respect to the
-gospel.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> John the Only Witness of the Descent of the Holy Ghost.&mdash;I
-suppose that John the Baptist was the only one who was a witness
-of the Holy Ghost resting upon Jesus in the form of a dove. In all
-the accounts given of this event, except by Luke, the pronoun "he,"
-referring to John, is used. While in Luke it is not said that anyone
-else saw it, but it is merely stated that "the Holy Ghost descended
-in a bodily shape like a dove upon him." John's own testimony is as
-follows: "I saw the Spirit descending from heaven like a dove, and it
-abode upon him. And I knew him not: but he that sent me to baptize
-with water, the same said unto me, Upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit
-descending and remaining on him, the same is he which baptizeth with
-the Holy Ghost."&mdash;"The Gospel" (note), Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Fate of Herod Antipas.</b>&mdash;He was not allowed to enjoy his
-prosperity long. His nephew Agrippa having obtained the title of king,
-Herodias urged him to make a journey to Italy and demand the same
-honor. He weakly assented to his wife's ambitious representations;
-but the project proved fatal to them both. Agrippa anticipated their
-design; and when they appeared before Caligula, they <span class="pagenum"><a name="p42"></a>{42}</span> were met
-by accusations of hostility to Rome, the truth of which they in
-vain attempted to disprove. Sentence of deposition was accordingly
-passed upon Herod, and both he and his wife [Herodias] were sent into
-banishment and died at Lyons in Gaul.&mdash;Kitto.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Sign of the Dove.</b>&mdash;The Holy Ghost descended in the
-form of a dove, or rather in the sign of a dove, in witness of that
-administration [Messiah's baptism]. The sign of the dove was instituted
-before the creation of the world, a witness for the Holy Ghost, and the
-devil cannot come in the sign of a dove. The Holy Ghost is a personage,
-and is in the form of a personage. It (he) does not confine itself to
-the form of a dove, but in the sign of a dove. The Holy Ghost cannot
-be transformed into a dove; but the sign of a dove was given to John
-to signify the truth of the deed, as the dove is an emblem or token of
-truth and innocence.&mdash;Joseph Smith.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. State what you can of the childhood of Christ.
-</p>
-<p>2. What can you say of Nazareth?
-</p>
-<p>3. What happened when Jesus was twelve years old?
-</p>
-<p>4. Describe the Passover. (Note 2.)
-</p>
-<p>5. What can you say of the fabulous stories related of the childhood
-and youth of Christ?
-</p>
-<p>6. At what time did John the Baptist appear as a preacher?
-</p>
-<p>7. Who were the parents of John? What their descent?
-</p>
-<p>8. Relate all you can concerning John's birth and childhood.
-</p>
-<p>9. What was the burden of John's message?
-</p>
-<p>10. How did he treat the deceitful Pharisees and Sadducees?
-</p>
-<p>11. As whom did some of the Jews regard John?
-</p>
-<p>12. What was the extent of his pretensions?
-</p>
-<p>13. What can you say of Elias? (Note 5.)
-</p>
-<p>14. Relate the baptism of Jesus.
-</p>
-<p>15. Tell the story of John's martyrdom.
-</p>
-<p>16. What was the fate of Herod Antipas? (Note 7.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p43"></a>{43}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION IV.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Temptations of Jesus.</b>&mdash;After his baptism Jesus was led
-by the Spirit into the wilderness, where he fasted for forty days
-and forty nights. Then at the moment of his great physical weakness
-Lucifer came tempting him, but all the allurements of the wily foe were
-thwarted, from the challenge to turn the stones into bread to the offer
-of the kingdoms of this world and the glory of them. After his failure
-to seduce Jesus to sin, Lucifer left him&mdash;"for a season," and angels
-came and administered unto him. (See notes 1 and 2, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Commencement of Christ's Ministry.</b>&mdash;Having in all things
-resisted the temptations of Lucifer, Jesus returned from the wilderness
-into Galilee, the Spirit of God resting upon him in mighty power. It
-was then that he began his great ministry among the people, teaching
-in their synagogues, astonishing all with the graciousness of his
-doctrines, and his power in healing the sick, until his fame extended
-throughout the land and great multitudes of people from Galilee, and
-also from Decapolis (De-kap-o-lis), Jerusalem and other parts of Judea
-followed him.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Doctrines Christ Taught.</b>&mdash;The burden of his teaching
-at this period of his ministry seems to have been: "Repent for the
-kingdom of heaven is at hand."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn26"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn26">26</a>]</sup> In addition to this, he also taught
-beautiful truths and moral precepts in brief, emphatic sentences (see
-note 3, end of section), that were especially comforting to the poor;
-such as, "Blessed are the poor in spirit: for theirs is the kingdom
-of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn: for they shall be comforted:
-Blessed are <span class="pagenum"><a name="p44"></a>{44}</span> the meek: for they shall inherit the earth. Blessed
-are they which do hunger and thirst after righteousness: for they shall
-be filled. * * * Blessed are the pure in heart: for they shall see God."
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> In some things His teachings seemed to come in conflict with
-the traditions of the people; and, indeed with the law of Moses itself,
-as witness the following: "Ye have heard that it was said by them of
-old time, Thou shalt not kill; and whosoever shall kill shall be in
-danger of the judgment: but I say unto you, That whosoever is angry
-with his brother without a cause shall be in danger of the judgment;
-and whosoever shall say to his brother, Raca,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn27"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn27">27</a>]</sup> shall be in danger
-of the council; but whosoever shall say Thou fool, shall be in danger
-of hell fire." Again: "Ye have heard that it hath been said by them of
-old time, Thou shalt not forswear thyself, but shall perform unto the
-Lord thine oaths: but I say unto you, Swear not at all; * * * but let
-your communications be Yea, yea; Nay, nay. * * * Ye have heard that it
-hath been said, An eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth: but I say
-unto you, That ye resist not evil. * * * Ye have heard that it hath
-been said, Thou shalt love thy neighbor, and hate thine enemy. But I
-say unto you, Love your enemies, bless them that curse you, do good to
-them that hate you, and pray for them that despitefully use you, and
-persecute you."
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> Yet Jesus claimed that He came not to destroy the law nor the
-prophets, but to fulfill them, and declared that though heaven and
-earth should pass away not one jot nor tittle of the law should pass
-away but all should be fulfilled. Still it cannot be denied that some
-of his teachings set aside many parts of the law of Moses, and seemed
-to be in conflict with its spirit.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Gospel Supplants the Law.</b>&mdash;The seeming conflict, referred
-to in the last paragraph, between the law of Moses and the teachings
-of Messiah disappears when it is understood <span class="pagenum"><a name="p45"></a>{45}</span> that the gospel of
-Jesus Christ was about to supplant the law. The gospel, under Moses
-was offered to ancient Israel before they received the law of carnal
-commandments; but they would not live in accordance with its divine
-precepts, but hardened their hearts against it until the gospel, as
-also the higher priesthood, was taken from among them. The lesser
-priesthood, which holds the keys of the ministering of angels and the
-preparatory gospel, repentance and baptism, and the law of carnal
-commandments (the spirit of which is an eye for an eye, a tooth for a
-tooth) remained with them,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn28"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn28">28</a>]</sup> to educate and instruct them, that they
-might be prepared eventually for the fullness of the gospel. When Jesus
-began his ministry by proclaiming his gospel, the law of Moses was
-about fulfilled, and many of the carnal commandments and precepts were
-being pushed aside by the more excellent precepts of the gospel, even
-as many of the sacrifices and burnt offerings were to be discontinued
-after Messiah should be offered up as a sacrifice, of which the
-sacrifices before mentioned were but types and symbols. (See note 4,
-end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Twelve Apostles Called.</b>&mdash;From among the disciples which
-followed him Jesus selected twelve men whom he called apostles. Their
-names were: Simon, commonly called Peter; Andrew, brother to Peter;
-James, the son of Zebedee, sometimes called James the Elder; John,
-brother to James above named; Philip; Bartholomew; Thomas; Matthew, the
-publican, author of the book of Matthew in the New Testament; James,
-the son of Alphaeus, also called James the less, perhaps to distinguish
-him from James the elder, or because of his small stature;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn29"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn29">29</a>]</sup> Lebbaeus
-usually called by his surname Thaddaeus; Simon, the Canaanite; Judas
-Iscariot, who betrayed him.
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> These twelve men Jesus sent out on a mission to the cities
-of Israel, forbidding them to go into the way of the Gentiles, or
-into the cities of the Samaritans. Their mission was to the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p46"></a>{46}</span> lost
-sheep of the house of Israel.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn30"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn30">30</a>]</sup> They were sent without purse and
-without scrip, nor were they to provide themselves with two coats nor
-take thought as to what they should eat, or wherewithal they would be
-clothed; but they were to trust to the Lord, being assured that the
-laborer is worthy of his hire.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> The burden of their message was to be: "The kingdom of heaven
-is at hand." They also received power from their Master to heal the
-sick, cleanse the lepers, raise the dead, cast out devils: and were
-admonished, since they had received freely, to give as freely to
-others. Jesus told them they were going as sheep among wolves; that
-they would be brought before governors and kings for his sake; that
-they would be delivered up to councils, and scourged in the synagogues;
-that they would be hated of all men for his sake; but they were also
-given the comforting assurance that they who would endure to the end
-should be saved.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn31"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn31">31</a>]</sup> These apostles went forth through the towns of
-Judea preaching the gospel and healing the sick.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Seventies Called.</b>&mdash;The harvest being great and the laborers
-few, Jesus called seventies into the ministry to aid the twelve
-apostles. He sent them two and two before him into every city and
-place where he himself expected to go. The commission, powers and
-instructions which the seventies received were nearly the same as those
-given to the twelve apostles.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn32"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn32">32</a>]</sup> These seventies went forth as the
-apostles had done and returning from their labor bore record that the
-power of God was with them in their ministry and that the very devils
-were subject to them in the name of Jesus.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn33"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn33">33</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>11. The Order of Events.</b>&mdash;It would be difficult if not impossible
-to relate even the chief events in the life of Messiah in the order in
-which they occurred, since no little confusion exists in respect to
-the succession of events in the narratives of the New Testament. (See
-note 5, end of section.) Nor is it necessary to our purpose to dwell in
-detail or in sequence <span class="pagenum"><a name="p47"></a>{47}</span> upon those matters. It is sufficient for us
-to know that after the events we have already noted Messiah's mission
-was more boldly declared. He proclaimed himself to be the Son of God;
-the Messiah of which the scriptures had borne record;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn34"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn34">34</a>]</sup> he taught
-men that God so loved the world that he gave his only begotten Son to
-redeem it, that whosoever would believe in him might have everlasting
-life.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn35"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn35">35</a>]</sup> In addition to this great doctrine we have seen that he
-taught repentance; he likewise taught that men must be born (baptized)
-of the water and of the Spirit before they could enter into the kingdom
-of God;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn36"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn36">36</a>]</sup> he made and baptized more disciples than John;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn37"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn37">37</a>]</sup> he also
-taught the doctrine of the resurrection of the dead, and announced
-himself as possessing the keys and powers thereof.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn38"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn38">38</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>12. The Divinity of Messiah's Mission.</b>&mdash;Jesus sustained the
-divinity of his mission by pointing to the conformity of the facts
-connected with his career with the predictions of the scriptures;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn39"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn39">39</a>]</sup>
-by the testimony which John the Baptist bore;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn40"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn40">40</a>]</sup> by the works which
-he did&mdash;his wonderful miracles wherein the power of God was made
-manifest;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn41"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn41">41</a>]</sup> and lastly, and best of all, the testimony of the Father
-himself which was promised unto all those who would do his (the
-Father's) will.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn42"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn42">42</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Order of the Temptations.</b>&mdash;The order of the temptations is
-given differently by St. Matthew and St. Luke. St. Matthew placing
-second the scene on the pinnacle of the temple, and St. Luke the vision
-of the kingdoms of the world. Both orders cannot be right, and possibly
-St. Luke may have been influenced in his arrangement by the thought
-that a temptation to spiritual pride and the arbitrary exercise of
-miraculous power was a subtler and less transparent, and therefore
-more powerful one than the temptation to fall down and recognize the
-power of evil. * * * The consideration that St. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p48"></a>{48}</span> Matthew, as one of
-the Apostles, is more likely to have heard the narrative immediately
-from the lips of Christ&mdash;gives greater weight to the order which he
-adopts.&mdash;Canon Farrar.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. More than Three Temptations.</b>&mdash;The positive temptations of
-Jesus were not confined to that particular point of time when they
-assailed him with concentrated force. [In the wilderness.] * * * But
-still more frequently in after life was he called to endure temptation
-of another kind&mdash;the temptation of suffering, and this culminated on
-two occasions, viz., in the conflict of Gethsemane, and in that moment
-of agony on the cross when he cried, "<em>My God, my God! why hast thou
-forsaken me?"</em>&mdash;Ullman.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Manner of Christ's Teaching.</b>&mdash;Next to what our Savior taught,
-may be considered the manner of his teaching, which was extremely
-peculiar; yet, I think, precisely adapted to the peculiarity of his
-character and situation. His lessons did not consist of disquisitions;
-of anything like moral essays, or like sermons, or like set treatises
-upon several points which he mentioned. When he delivered a precept,
-it was seldom that he added any proof or argument, still more seldom
-that he accompanied it with, what all precepts require, limitations
-and distinctions. His instructions were conceived in short, emphatic,
-sententious rules, in occasional reflections or in sound maxims. I do
-not think this is a natural, or would it have been a proper method
-for a philosopher or a moralist or that it is a method which can be
-successfully imitated by us. But I contend that it was suitable to the
-character which Christ assumed, and to the situation in which, as a
-teacher, he was placed. He produced himself as a messenger from God.
-He put the truth of what he taught upon authority. [I say unto you,
-swear not at all; I say unto you, resist not evil; I say unto you, love
-your enemies.] In the choice, therefore, of his mode of teaching, the
-purpose by him to be consulted was <em>impression</em>; because conviction,
-which forms the principal end of our discourse, was to arise in the
-minds of his followers from a different source, from their respect to
-his person and authority. Now, for the purpose of impression singly and
-exclusively, I know nothing which would have so great force, as strong,
-ponderous maxims, frequently urged and frequently brought back to the
-thoughts of the hearers. I know nothing that could in this view be said
-better than, Do unto others as ye would that others should do unto
-you; The first and great commandment is, Thou shalt love the Lord thy
-God; and the second is like unto it, Thou shalt love thy neighbor as
-thyself.&mdash;Christian Evidences&mdash;Paley.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The Law Added to the Gospel.</b>&mdash;The Mosaic Law never was
-considered, by those who understood it, "an everlasting covenant." It
-was given for a special purpose, and when it had accomplished that
-purpose, it was laid aside. We read in Galatians iii:8, that "the
-scripture, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p49"></a>{49}</span> foreseeing that God would justify the heathen through
-faith, preached before the gospel unto Abraham, saying, In thee shall
-all the nations of the earth be blessed." From this it appears that
-the gospel was preached unto Abraham. In Hebrews (iv:2), Paul speaking
-of ancient Israel says: "For unto us was the gospel preached, as well
-as unto them [ancient Israel]: but the word preached did not profit
-them, not being mixed with faith in them that heard it." Not only then
-was the gospel preached unto Abraham, but also unto the children of
-Israel. Now let us go back to the third chapter of Galatians; for Paul
-having stated that the gospel was preached unto Abraham, asks this
-question (verse 19): "Wherefore then serveth the law?" (if the gospel
-was preached unto Abraham). "It was added because of transgression,
-till the seed" (Christ) "should come to whom the promise was made."
-Added? Added to what? Added to the gospel, which before that time
-had been preached unto Abraham, and also to ancient Israel. But the
-Israelites under Moses were unable to live the perfect law of the
-gospel. They were not strong enough to overcome evil with good, as
-the gospel requires, so a law of carnal commandments was "added" to
-the gospel&mdash;a law which breathed of the spirit of an eye for an eye,
-a tooth for a tooth&mdash;a law which was suited to their capacity. Paul,
-speaking of this subject in the same chapter of Galatians (verses
-23-25), says: "Before faith came we were kept under the law, shut up
-unto the faith which should afterwards be revealed. Wherefore the law
-[the law of Moses] was our school-master to bring us unto Christ, that
-we might be justified by faith. But after that faith has come we are
-no longer under a school-master." From these passages of scripture we
-learn this: The gospel was preached unto Abraham, and also unto ancient
-Israel. The Israelites were unable to live the law of the gospel,
-hence a law of carnal commandments, known as the law of Moses was
-given as a school-master to bring them up to a higher law; Christ came
-and introduced that higher law&mdash;the gospel; explained its principles
-and pointed out the difference between it and the law of Moses. The
-gospel took the place of the law of Moses, which was laid aside, having
-fulfilled the object for which it was added to the gospel.&mdash;Lecture on
-Mission of Joseph Smith&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Neglect of Chronological Order in New Testament
-Narratives.</b>&mdash;The four gospels narrate the principal events connected
-with our Lord's abode on earth, from his birth to his ascension. There
-must, therefore, be a general resemblance between them, though that
-of John contains little in common with the others, being apparently
-supplementary to them. Yet there are considerable diversities both in
-the order in which facts are narrated, and in the facts themselves.
-Hence the difficulty of weaving the accounts of the four into a
-continuous and chronological history. It is our decided conviction
-that <span class="pagenum"><a name="p50"></a>{50}</span> all the evangelists have not adhered to chronological
-arrangement. The question then arises, have all neglected the order of
-time? Newcome and many others espouse this view. "Chronological order,"
-says the writer, "is not precisely observed by any of the evangelists;
-St. John and St. Mark observe it most; and St. Matthew neglects it
-most."&mdash;Davidson&mdash;Biblical Literature.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What followed the baptism of Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>2. What can you say of the order of the temptations? (Note 1).
-</p>
-<p>3. What was the commencement of Christ's ministry?
-</p>
-<p>4. What was the character of Christ's doctrine at this period?
-</p>
-<p>5. State how the gospel supplanted the law of Moses.
-</p>
-<p>6. Name the Apostles whom Jesus called.
-</p>
-<p>7. What was the first mission of the Twelve?
-</p>
-<p>8. What was the nature of the commission given to the Apostles?
-</p>
-<p>9. State the calling and commission of the Seventies.
-</p>
-<p>10. What can you say of the order of chronological events in the New
-Testament? (Note 5.)
-</p>
-<p>11. To what several circumstances did Messiah point as giving evidence
-of the divinity of his mission?
-</p>
-<p>12. Quote the passages of scripture cited in the text.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p51"></a>{51}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION V.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Common People Hear Jesus Gladly.</b>&mdash;The mission of Jesus
-was full of comfort to the poor. As one of the signs that he was the
-promised Messiah, he said to a delegation of John's disciples&mdash;"The
-poor have the gospel preached to them."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn43"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn43">43</a>]</sup> He claimed to be anointed
-of the Lord to that work; and in doing it was fulfilling that which
-had been predicted by the prophets.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn44"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn44">44</a>]</sup> He often reproved the rich,
-not merely because they were rich, however, but because of their pride
-and hypocrisy which led them to oppress the poor. In like manner he
-reproved the chief elders and scribes and Pharisees who loved fine
-clothing, and loved to receive salutations in the market places; who
-coveted the chief seats in the synagogues and the uppermost rooms at
-the feasts; who devoured widows' houses, and for a pretense made long
-prayers.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn45"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn45">45</a>]</sup> This with a free reproof of their other vices and crimes
-brought upon him the enmity of the wealthy, and of the rulers of the
-people; but the common people heard him gladly.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn46"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn46">46</a>]</sup> (See note 1, end of
-section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Religious Jealousy&mdash;Political Fear.</b>&mdash;Another thing which
-embittered the minds of the chief priests and elders against Jesus was
-religious jealousy. The numerous evidences of his divine authority,
-to be seen in his character and works, led many of the Jews to revere
-him as the Son of God. Especially was this the case after he raised
-Lazarus from the dead.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn47"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn47">47</a>]</sup> They said: "If we let this man alone all
-men will believe in him; and the Romans will come and take away both
-our place and nation." It was religious jealousy that dictated the
-first half of the sentence; and political fear the rest. The Jews had
-but a precarious hold upon their political rights; already it had <span class="pagenum"><a name="p52"></a>{52}</span>
-been intimated that Jesus was king of the Jews;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn48"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn48">48</a>]</sup> and if the people
-should under a sudden impulse accept him as king, the result in their
-judgment, must be a loss of those political rights which the Romans
-permitted them to exercise. To allow Jesus, therefore, to continue
-preaching was dangerous to their supposed honors and privileges; and
-this consideration was sufficient to induce the leading men among all
-parties to plot against his life.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Charges Against Jesus.</b>&mdash;The principal charges which the
-Jews brought against Jesus were: (1) violation of the Sabbath; he had
-healed a man on the Sabbath day, and had commanded him to take up
-his bed and walk:<sup>[<a name="PartIfn49"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn49">49</a>]</sup> (2) blasphemy; he had said God was his Father,
-"making himself equal with God" (see note 2, end of section):<sup>[<a name="PartIfn50"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn50">50</a>]</sup> (3)
-It was said that he was king of the Jews; and, on one occasion, the
-people hearing of his coming to Jerusalem took palm branches and went
-out to meet him, shouting Hosannah: blessed is the king of Israel that
-cometh in the name of the Lord.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn51"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn51">51</a>]</sup> For this he was said to be an enemy
-to Caesar's government and a seditious person.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Treason of Judas.</b>&mdash;For some time the efforts of the chief
-priests to arrest Jesus were baffled. They feared to proceed openly
-against him lest the people should stand in his favor and overthrow
-them. At last, however, Judas Iscariot, one of the twelve, met with
-some of the chief rulers and promised to betray him to them in the
-absence of the multitude. This offer they gladly accepted and agreed to
-pay him thirty pieces of silver for his treachery.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Institution of the Sacrament.</b>&mdash;The time chosen by Judas for
-the betrayal of his Master was the night of the passover feast. Jesus
-with the twelve ate the feast in an upper room in Jerusalem. It was on
-this occasion that he instituted the Sacrament of the Lord's supper.
-He took bread and gave thanks, broke it and gave it to his disciples,
-saying: This is my <span class="pagenum"><a name="p53"></a>{53}</span> body which is given for you; this do in
-remembrance of me. He also took wine, gave thanks, saying as he gave it
-to them: This cup is the New Testament in my blood, which is shed for
-many for the remission of sins.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn52"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn52">52</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> After the supper was over, having sung a hymn, Jesus with the
-twelve, excepting Judas Iscariot, went out to the garden of Gethsemane
-[Geth-sem-e-na] where Jesus prayed in great agony of spirit so that he
-sweat great drops of blood. He prayed that the bitter cup of suffering
-now about to be held to his lips might be removed from him. Thrice he
-so prayed, but closed each petition to his Father with&mdash;"not my will,
-but thine, will be done."
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Betrayal.</b>&mdash;Meantime, Judas Iscariot having stolen out
-in the midst of the feast, went to the chief priests and directed a
-multitude with a company of Roman soldiers to the garden, and running
-to Jesus cried, "Hail, Master!" and kissed him. That was the sign
-agreed upon by the traitor and those who came to make the arrest, that
-they might know which one to take. And when they had secured him, they
-took him first to the house of Annas [An-nas], who, after questioning
-him, sent him bound to Caiaphas [Kai-ya-fas], the high priest, where he
-was arraigned before the Sanhedrim [San-he-drim].
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Trial.</b>&mdash;The court before which Jesus was arraigned was
-not one before which his case was to be investigated, they had come
-together with the fixed determination to adjudge him guilty; hence
-they sought for witnesses who would testify something against him
-that would furnish a pretext for putting him to death. Many false
-witnesses testified against him; but their testimony was unsatisfactory
-and failed of its purpose. At last the high priest, evidently losing
-patience at the silence of the prisoner&mdash;for he made no defense against
-the charges of the false witnesses&mdash;adjured him by the living God to
-say if he were the Christ, the Son of God. Jesus acknowledged that he
-was, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p54"></a>{54}</span> and told them that hereafter they should see him at the right
-hand of Power, coming in the clouds of heaven. At this the high priest
-rent his clothes, saying, "he hath spoken blasphemy," and claimed that
-they had no need of further witnesses, since they themselves had heard
-his "blasphemy" (see note 3, end of section). The council at once
-decided him worthy of death.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. Christ Before Pilate and Herod.</b>&mdash;The Romans had taken from the
-Sanhedrim of the Jews the power of executing those whom it adjudged
-guilty of death, unless the sentence was confirmed by the Roman
-governor; hence after sentence of death was passed upon Jesus by the
-Sanhedrim they took him to Pilate's judgment hall to have that sentence
-confirmed.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> Learning incidentally that Jesus was a Galilean, and belonged
-to Herod's jurisdiction, Pilate sent him to Herod who, at the time, was
-in Jerusalem. Before Herod Jesus was silent; neither the contempt of
-the murderer of his forerunner, nor the mockery of the common soldiers
-could provoke him into breaking his dignified silence. So in ridicule
-of his claims to kingship&mdash;although, as Jesus himself said, his kingdom
-was not of this world<sup>[<a name="PartIfn53"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn53">53</a>]</sup>&mdash;Herod clothed him in gorgeous apparel and
-sent him back to Pilate.
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> Satisfied that there was nothing in Messiah's conduct worthy
-of death, Pilate sought to let him go; but the Jews insisted upon his
-execution. It was the custom among the Jews to have released to them a
-prisoner at the feast of the Passover, and on that ground Pilate sought
-to release Jesus; but the Jews would not listen to it, and preferred
-that the robber, Barabbas, a murderer, should be released. They told
-Pilate that whosoever made himself a king was an enemy to Caesar; and
-if he let Jesus go he was not Caesar's friend. By such arguments on
-the part of the chief priests, and the persistent cry of the people to
-crucify him, Pilate was over-awed, and at last confirmed the sentence
-of death. (See note 4, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p55"></a>{55}</span> <b>12. The Crucifixion.</b>&mdash;From the hall of judgment Jesus was
-led into the common hall, where the soldiers stripped him of his own
-raiment, and put upon him a scarlet robe in mockery of his claims to
-kingship. They also platted a crown of thorns and placed it on his
-brow, and for a scepter gave him a reed in his right hand. They bowed
-the knee before him, and mockingly cried: "Hail, king of the Jews!"
-They spit upon him, beat him with their hands and with the reed they
-had given him for a scepter.
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> From the common hall he was led away under a guard of
-soldiers to a place called Golgotha [Gol-go-tha], which, as well as
-its Latin equivalent&mdash;<em>Calvaria</em>-<em>Calvary</em><sup>[<a name="PartIfn54"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn54">54</a>]</sup>&mdash;means, the place of
-a skull. Here Jesus was stripped, and nailed to the cross, which was
-erected between two other crosses, on each of which was a thief. Above
-the his head in Latin, Greek and Hebrew was fixed the superscription
-written by Pilate&mdash;"<em>This is the King of the Jews."</em> As he hung there
-between the two thieves, the soldiers mocked him as did also the chief
-scribes and the Pharisees, saying: He saved others, let him save
-himself; if he is Christ, the chosen of God; let him come down from
-the cross and we will believe him; he trusted in God, let him deliver
-him now, if he will have him; for he said, I am the Son of God. In the
-midst of his great suffering, in which his mental agony was greater
-than his physical pain; the Son of God cried, "Father, forgive them,
-they know not what they do."
-</p>
-<p><b>14.</b> At the sixth hour&mdash;mid-day&mdash;there was a darkness that spread
-over the whole land, and continued until the ninth hour (see note 5,
-end of section). About the ninth hour Jesus said: "Father, into thy
-hands I commend my spirit," then he bowed his head and expired. At
-the same moment the veil of the Temple was rent from top to bottom,
-an earthquake shook <span class="pagenum"><a name="p56"></a>{56}</span> the solid earth and rent the rocks, all the
-elements of nature seemed agitated as if anxious to bear witness that a
-God had died!
-</p>
-<p><b>15. The Convulsions of Nature on the Western Hemisphere.</b>&mdash;On the
-western hemisphere during the crucifixion of our Lord, the elements
-of nature were more disturbed than on the eastern hemisphere. During
-the time that Jesus was upon the cross, great and terrible tempests
-accompanied with terrific lightning raged throughout the land.
-Earthquakes shattered cities into confused piles of ruins; level
-plains were broken up and left in confused mountainous heaps; solid
-rocks were rent in twain; many cities were swept out of existence
-by fierce whirl-winds; others were sunk into the depths of the sea,
-others covered with mountain chains thrown up by the convulsions of the
-trembling earth; and others still were burned with fire. For the space
-of about three hours this awful disturbance of the elements continued,
-during which the whole face of the land both in North and South America
-was greatly changed, and most of the inhabitants destroyed. After the
-storm and tempest and the quakings of the earth had ceased, there
-followed intense darkness which lasted for three days, the time that
-Jesus was lying in the tomb.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn55"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn55">55</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>16. The Burial.</b>&mdash;Towards evening of the day of the crucifixion,
-Joseph of Arimathaea [Ar-ra-ma-thee-ya], a rich man and a disciple of
-Jesus, went to Pilate, and begged that the body of the Lord be given
-him that he might bury it. Pilate granted the request; and Joseph took
-the body, wrapt in clean linen and put it in his own new tomb. The
-Pharisees also went to Pilate and reminded him how Jesus had said when
-living that after three days in the tomb he would rise again, and asked
-that the sepulchre wherein he was buried should be placed under guard
-until the third day should pass, lest his disciples should come and
-steal his body by night, and then spread abroad the rumor <span class="pagenum"><a name="p57"></a>{57}</span> that he
-had arisen from the dead. Pilate granted them permission to seal up the
-sepulchre and set a watch to guard it. (See note 6, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Common People Begin Reforms.</b>&mdash;The case of the common
-people hearing Jesus gladly is not singular; it may be said to be true
-in nearly all great movements. It is a truth so generally accepted that
-a modern writer (Lew Wallace) has said: "To begin a reform, go not into
-the palaces of the great and rich; go rather to those whose cups of
-happiness are empty&mdash;to the poor and humble."
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Jesus' Defense Against the Charge of Blasphemy.</b>&mdash;The following
-scene occurred in Solomon's porch, at the temple, where Jesus was
-walking. A number of Jews gathered about him and said: How long dost
-thou make us to doubt? If thou be the Christ tell us so plainly.
-</p>
-<p>JESUS.&mdash;I told you and ye believed not; the works that I do in my
-Father's name, they bear witness of me * * * I and my Father are one.
-[Then the Jews took up stones to stone him.]
-</p>
-<p>JESUS.&mdash;Many good works have I showed you from my Father; for which of
-those works do you stone me?
-</p>
-<p>JEWS.&mdash;For a good work we stone thee not; but for blasphemy; and
-because that thou, being a man, makest thyself God.
-</p>
-<p>JESUS.&mdash;Is it not written in your law; I said ye are Gods? If he called
-them Gods unto whom the word of God come, and the scripture cannot be
-broken, say ye of him whom the Father hath sanctified, and sent unto
-the world, thou blasphemest; because I said, I am the Son of God? If I
-do not the works of my Father, believe me not.
-</p>
-<p>Then they sought again to take him, but he escaped out of their hands.
-(John x.)
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Law Against Blasphemy.</b>&mdash;The law against blasphemy is to be
-found in Leviticus (xxiv:15, 16) and is as follows: "Whosoever curseth
-his God shall bear his sin; and he that blasphemeth the name of the
-Lord, he shall surely be put to death, and all the congregation shall
-certainly stone him; as well the stranger as he that is born in the
-land, when he blasphemeth the name of the Lord, shall be put to death."
-The Jews claimed that Jesus was guilty of blasphemy, because he claimed
-to be the Son of God, thus making himself equal with God; when to their
-eyes he was merely a man. Therein consisted his alleged blasphemy.
-Christ's own defense against the charge (see note above) is the best
-answer to the sophistry of the Jews by <span class="pagenum"><a name="p58"></a>{58}</span> which they tried to make it
-appear that he had broken this law.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Character of Pilate.</b>&mdash;If we now wish to form a judgment of
-Pilate's character, we easily see that he was one of that large class
-of men who aspire to public offices, not from a pure and lofty desire
-of benefitting the public and advancing the good of the world, but from
-selfish and personal considerations, from a love of distinction, from a
-love of power, from a love of self indulgence; being destitute of any
-fixed principles, and having no aim but office and influence, they act
-right only by chance and when convenient, and are wholly incapable of
-pursuing a consistent course, or of acting with firmness or self-denial
-in cases in which the preservation of integrity require the exercise
-of these qualities. Pilate was obviously a man of weak, and therefore,
-with his temptations, of corrupt character.&mdash;J. R. Beard, D. D., Member
-of the Historical Theological Society, Leipzig.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The Three Hours' Darkness.</b>&mdash;In the gospel of Matthew and Luke,
-we read that while Jesus hung upon the cross, "from the sixth hour
-there was darkness over all the land to the ninth hour." Most of the
-ancient commentators believed that this darkness extended to the whole
-world. But their arguments are now seldom regarded as satisfactory, and
-their proofs even less so. Of the latter the strongest is the mention
-of an eclipse of the sun, which is referred to this time by Phlegon
-Trallianus, and, after him by Thallus. But even an eclipse of the sun
-could not be visible to the whole world; and neither of these writers
-names the places of the eclipse. Some think it was Rome; but it is
-impossible that an eclipse could have happened from the sixth to the
-ninth hour both at Rome and Jerusalem. * * * That the darkness could
-not have proceeded from an eclipse of the sun is further placed beyond
-all doubt by the fact that, it being then the time of the Passover, the
-moon was at the full. This darkness may, therefore, be ascribed to an
-extraordinary and preternatural obscuration of the solar light, which
-might precede and accompany the earthquake which took place on the same
-occasion. For it has been noticed that often before an earthquake such
-a mist arises from sulphurous vapors as to occasion a darkness almost
-nocturnal.&mdash;Biblical Literature&mdash;Kitto.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Fate of the Chief Actors in Christ's Crucifixion.</b>&mdash;Before
-the dread sacrifice was consummated, Judas died in the horrors of a
-loathsome suicide. Caiaphas (the high priest and president of the
-Sanhedrim) was deposed the year following. Herod died in infamy and
-exile. Stripped of his procuratorship very shortly afterwards, on the
-very charges he had tried by a wicked concession to avoid. Pilate,
-wearied out with misfortunes, died in suicide and banishment, leaving
-behind him an execrated name. The house of Annas was destroyed a
-generation later by an infuriated mob, and his son was dragged through
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p59"></a>{59}</span> the streets and scourged and beaten to his place of murder. Some
-of those who shared in and witnessed the scenes of that day&mdash;and
-thousands of their children&mdash;also shared in and witnessed the long
-horrors of that siege of Jerusalem, which stands unparalleled in
-history for its unutterable fearfulness.&mdash;Canon Farrar.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What class of people heard Jesus gladly?
-</p>
-<p>2. What classes of people did Jesus reprove? Why?
-</p>
-<p>3. What was it that embittered the minds of the chief priests and
-rulers against Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>4. Enumerate the charges against Jesus.
-</p>
-<p>5. In what manner did Jesus defend himself against the charge of
-blasphemy? (Note 2.)
-</p>
-<p>6. Who betrayed Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>7. What time was chosen by Judas to betray Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>8. Give an account of the institution of the sacrament.
-</p>
-<p>9. Tell the story of the betrayal.
-</p>
-<p>10. State the circumstances of the trial of Jesus before the Sanhedrim.
-</p>
-<p>11. Why did the Jews take Jesus before Pilate?
-</p>
-<p>12. Why did Pilate send him to Herod?
-</p>
-<p>13. What was Messiah's treatment at the hands of Herod?
-</p>
-<p>14. What the deportment of Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>15. How did Pilate look upon Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>16. In what manner did the Roman governor try to save Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>17. What was the character of Pilate? (Note 4).
-</p>
-<p>18. Tell the story of the crucifixion.
-</p>
-<p>19. What occurred on the Western hemisphere at the crucifixion, and
-during the time Jesus was in the tomb?
-</p>
-<p>20. Tell about the burial of Jesus.
-</p>
-<p>21. What was the fate of those who judged and condemned Jesus? (Note 6).
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p60"></a>{60}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VI.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Resurrection.</b>&mdash;Notwithstanding the sealed sepulchre, the
-armed watch, on the third day after his burial, the Son of God arose
-from the dead, as he himself predicted he would.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn56"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn56">56</a>]</sup> A number of women
-coming to the sepulchre early in the morning, for the purpose of
-finishing the work of embalming his body, found the grave untenanted
-and the angel present who announced the resurrection of the Lord; and
-commanded them to go and inform his disciples that he was risen from
-the dead and would go before them into Galilee, where he would appear
-unto them.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> According to Matthew's account of the resurrection an angel
-from heaven came to the sepulchre wherein Jesus was laid, and rolled
-back the stone from its mouth; at his presence the soldiers who had
-been stationed as a guard to prevent the disciples from coming and
-stealing the body, became as dead men. Recovering from their stupor,
-some of the watch made their way to the chief priests and related what
-had happened. The chief priests and elders immediately assembled in
-council, and bribed the soldiers to say that they had fallen asleep,
-and during that time the followers of Christ had come and stolen his
-body. They agreed also that if the rumor of their falling asleep while
-on watch&mdash;a capital offense for a Roman soldier&mdash;should come to the
-ears of the governor, they would persuade him and secure them from
-punishment. It was in this way that the disappearance of the body of
-Jesus was commonly explained by the Jews who crucified him.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn57"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn57">57</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p61"></a>{61}</span> <b>3. The Appearances of Jesus After His Resurrection.</b>&mdash;There
-are some slight discrepancies in the writings of Matthew, Mark, Luke
-and John in respect to the order of the appearances of Messiah after
-his resurrection, as indeed there is in respect to the order of the
-events connected with his trial, condemnation and death; but the
-following because of the fragmentary character of the four gospels may
-be regarded as being as nearly correct as may be ascertained. (See
-notes 1, 2, and 3, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> First, he appeared to Mary Magdalene, in the garden where
-the tomb in which he was laid was located;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn58"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn58">58</a>]</sup> second, to the women
-returning from the sepulchre on their way to deliver the angel's
-message to the disciples;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn59"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn59">59</a>]</sup> third, to two disciples going to
-Emmaus;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn60"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn60">60</a>]</sup> fourth, to Peter;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn61"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn61">61</a>]</sup> fifth, to ten apostles in an upper
-room;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn62"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn62">62</a>]</sup> sixth, to the eleven apostles, also in the upper room;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn63"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn63">63</a>]</sup>
-seventh, to seven apostles at the sea of Tiberias;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn64"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn64">64</a>]</sup> eighth, to
-eleven apostles in a mountain in Galilee;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn65"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn65">65</a>]</sup> ninth, to above five
-hundred brethren at once;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn66"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn66">66</a>]</sup> tenth, to James;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn67"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn67">67</a>]</sup> and finally to Paul
-while on his way to Damascus<sup>[<a name="PartIfn68"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn68">68</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> In all, Jesus was with his disciples on the eastern hemisphere
-for forty days after his resurrection,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn69"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn69">69</a>]</sup> during which time he taught
-them all things pertaining to the kingdom of heaven, and authorized
-them to go into all the world and preach the gospel to every creature,
-baptizing them in the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy
-Ghost, teaching them to observe all things whatsoever he had commanded
-them; and promised that he would be with them even unto the end of the
-world.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn70"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn70">70</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> Moreover, he told them that these signs should follow them
-that believed: In his name they should cast out devils; they should
-speak with new tongues, take up serpents, and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p62"></a>{62}</span> even if they drank
-any deadly thing he promised that it should not harm them; they should
-lay hands on the sick, and they should recover.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn71"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn71">71</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Ascension.</b>&mdash;Having thus taught the gospel to the people
-of the eastern hemisphere, organized his church and commissioned his
-apostles to teach the gospel to all nations, he prepared to depart from
-them. It was most probably at Bethany [Beth-a-ny] that this solemn
-parting occurred. His forerunner, John the Baptist, had promised that
-he who should come after him, Jesus Christ, would baptize them with
-the Holy Ghost, and just previous to leaving the apostles he told them
-that the promise was about to be fulfilled. He therefore commanded them
-to tarry in Jerusalem until they were endowed with that power from on
-high. Then he lifted up his hands and blessed them, after which he was
-parted from them, and a cloud received him out of their sight.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn72"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn72">72</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> As they were still looking steadfastly toward heaven, two
-men&mdash;angels&mdash;in white apparel stood by them, and declared that this
-same Jesus whom they had seen go into heaven, should come in like
-manner, that is, in the clouds of heaven and in great glory.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn73"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn73">73</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Appearing of Messiah to the Nephites.</b>&mdash;Jesus, before his
-crucifixion, told his disciples at Jerusalem that he was the good
-shepherd that would lay down his life for the sheep. He told them
-plainly, also, that he had other sheep which were not of that fold.
-"Them also I must bring," said he, "and they must hear my voice; and
-there shall be one fold, and one shepherd."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn74"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn74">74</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> This saying, like many others which he delivered to them, the
-apostles did not understand, because of their unbelief. And because
-of their unbelief and their stiffneckedness Jesus was commanded by
-his Father to say no more to them <span class="pagenum"><a name="p63"></a>{63}</span> about it.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn75"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn75">75</a>]</sup> But it was the
-Nephites on the continent of America whom Jesus had in mind when he
-uttered the saying recorded in John's gospel,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn76"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn76">76</a>]</sup> "Other sheep I have,
-which are not of this fold," etc.
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> What length of time intervened between Messiah's departure
-from his disciples at Jerusalem and his appearance among the Nephites
-is not known. It was not, however, until after he had ascended into
-heaven.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn77"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn77">77</a>]</sup> His appearing to them was in this manner:
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> The few people upon the western hemisphere&mdash;and they were
-the more righteous part both of the Nephites and the Lamanites&mdash;who
-survived that terrible period of destruction which lasted during the
-time that Jesus hung upon the cross,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn78"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn78">78</a>]</sup> and the three succeeding
-days of darkness, were gathered together about the temple in the land
-Bountiful.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn79"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn79">79</a>]</sup> And as they were pointing out to each other the changes
-that had occurred because of the earthquakes and other convulsions of
-the elements, while the Messiah suffered upon the cross, they heard
-a voice speaking unto them as if from heaven. They at first did not
-understand the voice they heard; but the third time it spoke they
-understood it, and it made their hearts burn within them and their
-whole frame to quake, and these are the words which the voice spake:
-"Behold my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased, in whom I have
-glorified my name; hear ye him." And looking up into heaven from whence
-the voice came, they saw a man descending clothed in a white robe.
-The multitude were breathlessly silent, for they supposed an angel
-had appeared unto them; but as soon as Jesus was in their midst he
-stretched out his arm and said: "Behold I am Jesus Christ, whom the
-prophets testified should come into the world. * * * I am the light and
-life of the world; and I have drunk out of that bitter cup which the
-Father hath <span class="pagenum"><a name="p64"></a>{64}</span> given me, and have glorified the Father in taking upon
-me the sins of the world."
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> At this announcement the people fell prostrate and worshiped
-him. But he commanded them to arise and come unto him that they might
-thrust their hands into his side, and feel the prints of the nails in
-his hands and in his feet, that they might know that he was the God
-of Israel, and the God of the whole earth who had been slain for the
-sins of the world.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn80"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn80">80</a>]</sup> (See notes 5, 6, and 7, end of section). This
-the people did, and then again they worshiped him, and shouted aloud:
-"Hosanna! blessed be the name of the Most High God!"
-</p>
-<p><b>14. The Church Established in America.</b>&mdash;After these things, Jesus
-proceeded to teach them his gospel and establish his church among them.
-It will be sufficient to say here that the Messiah taught the people
-on the western continent the same great moral truths that he taught
-the Jews; that he established the same ordinances for the salvation of
-the people; that he chose Twelve Apostles to whom he committed power
-to preach his gospel, and administer in its ordinances; that a church
-was organized which was called the Church of Christ; that Jesus bore
-record of the great truth of the resurrection of the dead; that the
-Saints enjoyed the same spiritual graces and powers that the church in
-Palestine did, only more abundantly because of their greater faith;
-that two years after the appearance of Messiah all the people on the
-continent accepted the gospel and were baptized; that they had all
-things common and were a blessed and prosperous people among whom were
-no strifes or jealousies or contentions, and every man did deal justly
-one with another.
-</p>
-<p><b>15.</b> They increased rapidly in numbers and went forth and built
-up the waste places, and rebuilded many of the cities which had been
-ruined by the earthquakes and by fires. They walked no more after the
-ordinances of the law of Moses, but <span class="pagenum"><a name="p65"></a>{65}</span> they practiced the principles
-of the doctrines of the gospel of Christ, and thus the first century of
-the Christian era passed away.
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> All the members of the first quorum of the twelve whom Jesus
-called on the western hemisphere died within the first century of the
-Christian era, except the three to whom he had granted the privilege,
-as he did unto John the beloved disciple,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn81"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn81">81</a>]</sup> of remaining on the
-earth until he should come in his glory. The places of those who died
-were filled by ordaining others, and thus the quorum of apostles was
-perpetuated.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn82"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn82">82</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Gospels but Fragmentary Histories.</b>&mdash;Although skeptics
-have dwelt with disproportioned persistency upon a multitude
-of discrepancies in the four-fold narrative of Christ's trial,
-condemnation, death, and resurrection, yet these are not of a nature
-to cause the slightest anxiety to a Christian scholar; nor need they
-awaken the most momentary distrust in anyone who&mdash;even if he have
-no deeper feelings in the matter&mdash;approaches the gospels with no
-preconceived theory, whether of infallibility or of dishonesty, to
-support and merely accept them for that which, at the lowest, they
-claim to be&mdash;histories, honest and faithful, up to the full knowledge
-of the writers, <em>but each, if taken alone, confessedly fragmentary
-and obviously incomplete.</em> After repeated study, I declare, quite
-fearlessly, that though the slight variations are numerous&mdash;though the
-lesser particulars cannot in every instance be rigidly and minutely
-accurate&mdash;though no one of the narratives taken singly would give us
-an adequate impression&mdash;yet, so far from there being, in this part of
-the gospel story, any irreconcilable contradiction, it is perfectly
-possible to discover how one evangelist supplements the details
-furnished by another, and perfectly possible to understand the true
-sequence of the incidents by combining into one whole the separate
-indications which they furnish.&mdash;<em>Canon Farrar</em>.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Bible Corrupted by the Gentiles.</b>&mdash;And it came to pass that
-I, Nephi, beheld that they [the Gentiles] did prosper in the land <span class="pagenum"><a name="p66"></a>{66}</span>
-[America] and I beheld a book [the Bible], and it was carried forth
-among them. And the angel said unto me, Knowest thou the meaning of
-the book? And I said unto him, I know not. * * * And he said unto me,
-The book which thou beholdest, is a record of the Jews, which contains
-the covenants of the Lord which he hath made unto the house of Israel.
-* * * Thou hast beheld that the book proceeded forth from the mouth
-of a Jew; and when it proceeded forth from the mouth of the Jew, it
-contained the plainness of the gospel of the Lord, of whom the twelve
-apostles bear record; and they bear record according to the truth
-which is in the Lamb of God; wherefore these things go forth from the
-Jews in purity, unto the Gentiles, according to the truth which is in
-God; and after they go forth by the hand of the twelve apostles of the
-Lamb, from the Jews unto the Gentiles, thou seest the foundation of a
-great and abominable church, which is most abominable above all other
-churches; for behold, they have taken away from the gospel of the Lamb,
-many parts which are plain and most precious; and also many covenants
-of the Lord have they taken away; and all this have they done, that
-they might pervert the right ways of the Lord; that they might blind
-the eyes and harden the hearts of the children of men. * * * Because
-of these things which are taken away out of the gospel of the Lamb, an
-exceeding great many do stumble, yea, insomuch that Satan hath great
-power over them.&mdash;Vision of Nephi&mdash;I Nephi xiii.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Missing Parts of the Scripture.</b>&mdash;No better evidence can be
-given that the Jewish scriptures are fragmentary and corrupted than
-the fact that reference is made in them to books and scriptures which
-are not now extant&mdash;that have been destroyed. The following are a such
-references taken from the New Testament:
-</p>
-<p><em>Scriptures of Abraham's Time</em>.&mdash;"And the scripture, foreseeing that
-God would justify the heathen through faith, preached before the gospel
-unto Abraham" (Gal. iii:8). The Christian world says, "Moses was God's
-first pen," but it appears from the above quotation that some one wrote
-scriptures even before Abraham's days, and he read them, learned the
-gospel from them and also learned that God would justify the heathen
-through faith.
-</p>
-<p><em>Prophecy of Enoch</em>.&mdash;Speaking of characters who were like "raging
-waves of the sea foaming out their own shame," Jude says: "And Enoch
-also, the seventh from Adam prophesied of these, saying, Behold the
-Lord cometh with ten thousand of his saints, to execute judgment
-upon all," etc. (Jude 14, 15). From this it appears that Enoch had
-a revelation concerning the glorious coming of the Son of God to
-judgment. May not the prophecy of Enoch have been among the scripture
-with which Abraham was acquainted?
-</p>
-<p><em>Another Epistle of Jude</em>.&mdash;"When I gave all diligence to write unto
-you of the common salvation, it was needful for me to write unto <span class="pagenum"><a name="p67"></a>{67}</span>
-you, and exhort you that ye should contend earnestly for the faith
-which was once delivered unto the Saints." (Jude 3). We have but one
-epistle of Jude. Would not the epistle on the "common salvation" be as
-important as the one and the only one we have from Jude's pen?
-</p>
-<p><em>Another Epistle to the Ephesians</em>.&mdash;In Ephesians iii and 3rd, Paul
-alludes to another epistle which he had written to that people, but of
-which the world has no knowledge except this reference which is made by
-its author. This epistle contained a revelation from God.
-</p>
-<p><em>An Epistle to the Laodiceans</em>.&mdash;"When this epistle [Colossians]
-is read among you, cause that it be read also in the church of the
-Laodiceans, and that ye likewise read the epistle from Laodicea." (Col.
-iv: 16.) The epistle to the Laodiceans is among the scripture that is
-lost.
-</p>
-<p><em>Another Epistle to the Corinthians</em>.&mdash;In the first letter to the
-Corinthians is this statement: "I wrote unto you in an epistle not
-to company with fornicators" (I Cor. v:9). From this it would appear
-that our so-called first epistle to the Corinthians, is really not
-the first, since Paul in it speaks of a former letter he had written,
-and which was doubtless as good scripture as the two which have been
-preserved.
-</p>
-<p>The books mentioned in the Old Testament, but which are missing,
-are more numerous than those in the New Testament. In the following
-passages some few of the many lost books are referred to: I Chronicles
-xxix:29; II Chronicles ix:29; II Chronicles xii:15; I Samuel x:25; I
-Kings iv:32, 33.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Traditions of Aborigines Respecting Messiah.</b>&mdash;It is beyond
-all question that the descendants of the Nephites and Lamanites&mdash;the
-American Indians&mdash;have kept in their traditions a recollection&mdash;though
-perhaps a distorted one&mdash;of the memorable visit of Messiah to their
-forefathers. "The chief divinity of the Nahua nations," says Bancroft
-in his "Native Races," "was Quetzalcoatl, the gentle God, ruler of the
-air, controller of the sun and rain, and source of all prosperity. * *
-* From toward the rising sun Quetzalcoatl, had come; and he was white,
-with large eyes and long, black hair and copious beard. He finally set
-out for some other country<sup>[<a name="PartIfn83"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn83">83</a>]</sup> and as he departed from them his last
-words were that "one day bearded white men, brethren of his, perhaps
-he himself, would come by way of the sea in which the sun rises, and
-would enter in and rule the land;" and from that day, with a fidelity
-befitting Hebrews waiting for the coming of Messiah, the Mexican people
-watched for the fulfillment of this prophecy, which promised them a
-gentle rule, free from bloody sacrifices and oppression."&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p68"></a>{68}</span> <b>5. The Incarnation Believed by the Mexicans.</b>&mdash;How truly
-surprisingg is it to find that the Mexicans who seemed to have been
-unacquainted with the doctrine of the migration of the soul, should
-have believed in the incarnation of the only Son of the supreme
-God!&mdash;Humboldt.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Crucifixion and Atonement Believed in by
-Mexicans.</b>&mdash;Quetzalcoatl is there (in a certain plate where that God
-is represented) painted in the attitude of a person crucified, with the
-impression of nails in his hands and feet, but not actually upon the
-cross. * * * The seventy-third plate of the Borgian Ms. is the most
-remarkable of all, for there Quetzalcoatl is not only represented as
-crucified upon a cross of Greek form, but his burial and descent into
-hell are also depicted in a very curious manner. * * * The Mexicans
-believe that Quetzalcoatl took human nature upon him, partaking of
-all the infirmities of man, and was not exempt from sorrow, pain
-or death, which he suffered voluntarily to atone for the sins of
-man.&mdash;"Antiquities of Mexico"&mdash;Kingsborough.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Christ and Quetzalcoatl.</b>&mdash;The story of the life of the
-Mexican divinity, Quetzalcoatl, closely resembles that of the Savior;
-so closely indeed that we can come to no other conclusion than that
-Quetzalcoatl and Christ are the same being. But the history of the
-former has been handed down to us through an impure Lamanitish source,
-which has sadly disfigured and perverted the original incidents
-and teachings of the Savior's life and ministry.&mdash;"Mediation and
-Atonement"&mdash;President John Taylor.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What occurred on the third day of Christ's burial?
-</p>
-<p>2. State the several prophecies made by Jesus which were fulfilled in
-his resurrection? (note).
-</p>
-<p>3. Relate the account of the resurrection as given by Matthew.
-</p>
-<p>4. In respect to what are there slight discrepancies in the writings of
-Matthew, Mark, Luke and John?
-</p>
-<p>5. What can you say of the fragmentary character of the New Testament
-"Gospels?" (Notes 1 and 2).
-</p>
-<p>6. State the most probable order in which Jesus made his several
-appearances after the resurrection.
-</p>
-<p>7. How long was Jesus with his disciples on the eastern hemisphere
-after his resurrection?
-</p>
-<p>8. What notable commission did Jesus give to the apostles before
-leaving them?
-</p>
-<p>9. What signs did Messiah say should follow believers?
-</p>
-<p>10. Describe the last parting of Jesus from his disciples.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p69"></a>{69}</span> 11. What prophecy did Jesus make to his disciples at Jerusalem
-that they did not understand?
-</p>
-<p>12. Give an account of Messiah's visit to the Nephites.
-</p>
-<p>13. What did Jesus do among the Nephites?
-</p>
-<p>14. What was the effect that followed the preaching of the gospel and
-the organization of the church?
-</p>
-<p>15. What course was pursued as to the quorum of the apostles?
-</p>
-<p>16. Relate the several traditions of the Mexicans respecting the visit
-of Messiah to this land.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p70"></a>{70}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VII.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Vacancy in the Quorum of the Twelve Filled.</b>&mdash;The first
-official business which occupied the attention of the authorities of
-the church after the ascension of the Lord&mdash;according to our Christian
-annals&mdash;was filling up the quorum of the twelve. Judas by his treason
-had forfeited his apostleship and was dead, and hence it became
-necessary to ordain another to fill his place. Peter when presenting
-this matter before the church, appeared to lay some stress upon the
-necessity of choosing some one of the brethren who had been with them
-from the beginning&mdash;"from the baptism of John unto that same day that
-he (Christ) was taken up," that he might be a witness with the rest of
-the apostles of the things which Jesus did and also a witness of his
-resurrection.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> "And they appointed [nominated] two. Joseph called Barsabas,
-who was surnamed Justus, and Matthias. And they prayed. * * * Thou,
-Lord, which knowest the hearts of all men, show whether of these two
-thou hast chosen. * * * And they gave forth their lots [or, gave their
-votes];<sup>[<a name="PartIfn84"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn84">84</a>]</sup> and the lot fell upon Matthias." From that time he was
-numbered with the apostles. (See note 1, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> The filling of this vacancy in the quorum of the twelve&mdash;the
-only instance of the kind mentioned in the New Testament&mdash;may <span class="pagenum"><a name="p71"></a>{71}</span>
-be taken as a proof that it was clearly the understanding of the
-apostles that the quorum of the twelve was to be perpetuated. It was
-so understood in the church on the western hemisphere, for the fourth
-Nephi informs us that as the apostles whom Jesus had chosen passed
-away, others were ordained in their stead;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn85"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn85">85</a>]</sup> and thus the quorum was
-kept full, but for how long cannot be ascertained.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The Holy Ghost Given.</b>&mdash;The first time the gospel was preached
-publicly after the ascension of Messiah was on the day of Pentecost,
-most probably seven days after the ascension.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn86"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn86">86</a>]</sup> The church had
-assembled and suddenly the promised baptism of the Holy Ghost&mdash;promised
-both by John the Baptist and Messiah<sup>[<a name="PartIfn87"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn87">87</a>]</sup>&mdash;took place, for the Spirit
-came like the rushing of a mighty wind and filled the house where the
-saints were assembled; and they were all filled with the Holy Ghost. It
-rested upon them visibly like cloven tongues of fire; and they began
-speaking in other tongues, that is, in languages before unknown to
-them, as the spirit gave them utterance.
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> The occurrence was soon noised about the city and the
-multitude came together, to witness this strange event. In that great
-concourse of people thus hastily assembled were devout men out of
-every nation under heaven (see note 2, end of section), and they were
-confounded with astonishment since every man heard the gospel in his
-own language.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn88"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn88">88</a>]</sup> "Are not all these which speak Galileans," said they,
-"and how hear we every man in his own tongue, wherein we were born?"
-All were amazed, and some inquired one of another, "What meaneth this?"
-Others mockingly said, "These men are full of new wine."
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p72"></a>{72}</span> <b>6.</b> To this latter remark the apostle Peter replied that
-the brethren were not drunken as had been supposed, and reminded the
-accusers that it was but the third hour of the day. Men were not likely
-to be drunk so early. The apostle further informed them that his power
-which they witnessed was the same as that of which Joel<sup>[<a name="PartIfn89"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn89">89</a>]</sup> spoke when
-he said that in the last days the Spirit of God should be poured out
-upon all flesh, and make the sons and daughters of men to prophesy,
-young men to see visions and old men to dream dreams, etc. (See notes 3
-and 4, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> Having corrected the slander uttered by those inclined to mock
-at the power of God, Peter continued his discourse, and proved from the
-scriptures and from the marvelous works of the Lord Jesus while among
-them, that he was both Lord and Christ. Then a great multitude was
-converted, and cried as with one voice, "Men and brethren, what shall
-we do?" To which Peter answered, "Repent and be baptized every one of
-you in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins, and ye shall
-receive the gift of the Holy Ghost."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn90"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn90">90</a>]</sup> He informed them that this
-promise of the Holy Ghost&mdash;and, of course, of salvation&mdash;was both to
-them and to their children, in fact to all whom God should call.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn91"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn91">91</a>]</sup>
-There were added to the church that day, three thousand souls.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Rise of Opposition.</b>&mdash;Being now endowed with power from on
-high, the apostles continued to preach in and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p73"></a>{73}</span> about Jerusalem with
-great success, the Lord working with them and confirming their ministry
-by signs and wonders following the believers.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> The chief priests and rulers among the Jews became alarmed
-at the boldness of the disciples of Jesus and the rapidity with which
-faith in the gospel spread among the people. They were in imminent
-danger of being adjudged by the people, guilty of executing an innocent
-man; nay, more, of putting to death Messiah!
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> They therefore had some of the apostles brought before them
-and sought to intimidate them with threats not to preach any more in
-the name of Jesus. To these threats the apostles made answer: "Whether
-it be right in the sight of God to hearken unto you more than unto
-God, judge ye."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn92"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn92">92</a>]</sup> Leaving the presence of the council the apostles
-preached even more boldly in the name of Jesus. A second time they
-were brought before the chief rulers, to answer for a disregard of the
-orders of the council which charged them with threats not to teach in
-the name of Jesus; "and behold," said they, "ye have filled Jerusalem
-with your doctrine, and mean to bring this man's blood upon us."
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> The answer of Peter, who spoke also for the rest of the
-apostles, was even bolder than before. "We ought to obey God rather
-than men," said he. "The God of our fathers raised up Jesus, whom ye
-slew and hanged on a tree. Him hath God exalted with his right hand
-to be a Prince and a Savior, for to give repentance to Israel and
-forgiveness of sins. And we are witnesses of these things; and so is
-also the Holy Ghost, whom God hath given to them that obey him."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn93"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn93">93</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> The boldness of his answer gave deep offense and led the
-chief rulers to take counsel how they might slay them. But Gamaliel
-[Ga-ma-li-el], a learned doctor of the law, advised them against such
-proceedings. His advice was to let the men alone, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p74"></a>{74}</span> for if the work
-they had in hand was of men it would come to naught. If it was of God,
-nothing which they could do would overthrow it; and they might be found
-fighting against God.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn94"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn94">94</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> The counsel of Gamaliel prevailed in part at least. The
-apostles were not killed at that time; but they were once more
-forbidden to speak in the name of Jesus, beaten and then set free. The
-apostles rejoiced at being found worthy to suffer shame for the name of
-Jesus, and not heeding the orders of the council continued preaching in
-the temple and in private houses.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. Temporal Concerns.</b>&mdash;So completely did the apostles and the
-other disciples give themselves to the work of the ministry, that
-complaint was made by the Grecians because the widows and poor were
-neglected. Whereupon the twelve called the church together and proposed
-that seven men of good report be chosen and set apart to see to these
-affairs, that they themselves might give their attention wholly to the
-ministry, as it was not profitable for them to neglect that in order to
-"wait on tables." The plan pleased the church and the seven men were
-appointed.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn95"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn95">95</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p75"></a>{75}</span> <b>15. All Things in Common.</b>&mdash;The effect of the gospel upon
-the saints of Jerusalem was very marked. They were of one heart and
-of one mind; they had all things in common, and those who possessed
-houses or lands sold them and brought the price of the things and laid
-it at the apostles' feet. Distribution was made unto every man as he
-had need; and there was none among them that lacked for that which was
-necessary.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn96"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn96">96</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>16. Persecution.</b>&mdash;A great persecution arose against the church
-at Jerusalem, within the first year after Messiah's ascension, so
-that most of the brethren, except the apostles, were scattered abroad
-throughout Judea and Samaria. Everywhere they went they preached the
-gospel, so that great good came out of what was intended to be an evil,
-as the gospel was more widely preached. Philip, one of the seven who
-had been appointed to look after the temporal affairs of the church,
-was among the number driven from Jerusalem by the persecution. He went
-to the city of Samaria, where the people listened to his teachings,
-accepted his testimony and were baptized both men and women. The
-apostles hearing of his success, sent to Samaria Peter and John; and
-when they came they laid their hands upon those who had been baptized
-and they received the Holy Ghost;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn97"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn97">97</a>]</sup> and thus the work was established
-there.
-</p>
-<p><b>17. Paul.</b>&mdash;It was during this persecution that Saul, of Tarsus,
-afterwards better known as Paul, the apostle of the Gentiles,
-manifested his bitterness toward the saints. He witnessed the stoning
-to death of Stephen, one of the seven men appointed to look after
-the temporal affairs of the church at Jerusalem. He held the clothes
-of those who killed him; and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p76"></a>{76}</span> being exceedingly vexed at what he
-regarded as a superstition, he followed the saints into distant cities,
-breathing out threatenings and slaughter against them. He went to the
-high priest and obtained letters of authority from him to the rulers of
-the synagogue at Damascus, that if he found any of the saints there he
-might bring them bound to Jerusalem. On his way to Damascus, however,
-the Lord Jesus appeared to him, and Paul, blinded by the glory of the
-vision, and humbled because he found he had been fighting against God,
-was led by his companions into the city where a disciple of the name of
-Ananias was sent by the Lord to restore to Paul his sight and baptize
-him. He was afterwards made an apostle and became zealous for the
-truth.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn98"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn98">98</a>]</sup> (See note 4, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>18. The Gospel Taken to the Gentiles.</b>&mdash;The apostles, being Jews
-themselves, appear to have shared the common prejudices of their race
-against the Gentiles; and treated them as if they had no lot nor part
-in the gospel of Christ. It was not the design of the Lord, however,
-to thus restrict the application of the gospel. Jesus, himself, while
-he had said that he was sent but to the lost sheep of the house of
-Israel,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn99"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn99">99</a>]</sup> had also said: "And I, if I be lifted up from the earth,
-<em>will draw all men unto me</em>."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn100"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn100">100</a>]</sup> Hence when Cornelius, of Caesarea,
-a devout man, one that feared God, though a Gentile, sought the Lord
-by prayer and good works, he found him; for an angel was sent to him
-who told him his prayers and alms were accepted of God, and that he had
-come to direct him to send men to Joppa for Simon Peter, who would be
-able to tell him what he ought to do. The devout Gentile immediately
-started the messengers to find the apostle.
-</p>
-<p><b>19.</b> Meantime Peter himself was prepared by a vision to go with
-the gospel unto one whom both he and all his race regarded as unclean.
-In vision he thought he beheld a great net let down from heaven, filled
-with all manner of four-footed <span class="pagenum"><a name="p77"></a>{77}</span> beasts, fowls of the air and
-creeping things. And a voice said to him, "Rise, Peter, kill, and eat."
-"Not so, Lord," was his reply: "for I have never eaten anything that is
-common or unclean." "What God hath cleansed," said the voice that spoke
-to him, "that call not thou common or unclean." This was done thrice,
-and as he was yet pondering what the vision could mean, the messengers
-of Cornelius were at the gates enquiring for him; and he was commanded
-by the Spirit to go with them, doubting nothing, for God had sent them.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> Peter was obedient to the inspired commandment, and went to
-the house of Cornelius, where he found many of the devout Gentile's
-friends and kinsmen gathered together in anticipation of his coming.
-Cornelius having informed the apostle how he came to send for him,
-Peter exclaimed: "Of a truth I perceive that God is no respecter
-of persons: but in every nation he that feareth him, and worketh
-righteousness, is accepted with him." He then proceeded to preach the
-gospel to Cornelius and all present. As he did so the Holy Ghost fell
-upon them to the astonishment of all the Jews who had accompanied
-Peter; for they heard them speak in new tongues and magnify God.
-Cornelius and his friends were baptized and thus the door of the gospel
-was opened to the Gentiles.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn101"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn101">101</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>21. Rapid Growth of the Work.</b>&mdash;The knowledge once established in
-the minds of the apostles that God granted to the Gentiles repentance
-unto life, seemed to unshackle those who were to preach the gospel,
-and gave a broader meaning in their <span class="pagenum"><a name="p78"></a>{78}</span> minds to their commission to
-go unto "all the world, and preach the gospel unto every creature."
-Evidently before this they did not comprehend it in its fullest sense.
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> The apostles appear to have remained in Jerusalem a number
-of years&mdash;twelve years, tradition says&mdash;presiding over the church and
-directing the labors of those preaching the gospel. Churches, or, more
-correctly speaking, branches of the church were built up in Antioch
-[An-ti-ok], Damascus [Da-mas-kus] and other cities of Syria [Sir-ia].
-The work also spread into Asia Minor, Greece and Rome; and everywhere
-great success attended the preaching of the elders, until the gospel
-was firmly established in various parts of the Gentile world. So
-extensive was the preaching of the ambassadors of Christ in those early
-days of the church, that we have Paul saying (about thirty years after
-the ascension of Messiah) that it had been preached to every creature
-under heaven.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn102"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn102">102</a>]</sup> (See note 5, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Was Matthias Called of God?</b>&mdash;In consequence of Matthias having
-been chosen by "lot," it may be a question in the minds of some as to
-his being called of God. A careful consideration of all that was done
-in connection with that circumstance will dispel all doubt in relation
-to it. It must be observed that after Joseph Barsabas and Matthias
-were nominated for the place in the quorum of the Twelve, the Apostles
-prayed, saying: "Thou Lord, which knowest the hearts of all men, show
-whether of these two thou hast chosen." Before his ascension Jesus had
-said to these men, "If ye abide in me, and my words abide in you, ye
-shall ask what ye will, and it shall be done unto you. * * * Ye have
-not chosen me, but I have chosen you, and ordained you; * * * that
-whatsoever ye shall ask of the Father in my name, he may give it you."
-Therefore when these Apostles asked which of the two men nominated
-God had chosen, and they gave their votes and Matthias was the one
-selected, God in that way answered their prayer, and Matthias was
-thus called of God. Again, to be <span class="pagenum"><a name="p79"></a>{79}</span> called by a divinely appointed
-authority is to be called of God. No one can deny that the Apostles
-were a divinely appointed authority, hence to be called by them was to
-be called of God.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Pentecost.</b>&mdash;Pentecost is the name given in the New Testament
-to the Feast of Weeks, or of Ingathering, celebrated on the fiftieth
-day from the Passover. It was a festival of thanks for the harvest.
-It was also one of the three great yearly festivals, in which all the
-males were required to appear before the Lord at the place of his
-sanctuary. Josephus in three places in his writings, viz., in the
-fourteenth book of "Antiquities," ch. xiii,4; Ibid. xvii, ch. x,2; and
-in his second book of the "Wars of the Jews," ch. iii,2,&mdash;speaks of
-this festival as bringing together great numbers of the Jews from all
-parts of the world, and sustains the statement in Acts ii, that there
-were in Jerusalem at Pentecost "Jews, devout men, out of every nation
-under heaven," who came running together on hearing that the disciples
-of Jesus were speaking in unknown tongues. We cannot refrain from
-remarking that it was a most opportune time for such a demonstration,
-since these men would carry the rumor of these things and the substance
-of the remarkable sermon they heard to the distant lands from which
-they had come, and thus the news of the gospel would be spread
-abroad.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Joel's Prophecy.</b>&mdash;It is very generally supposed among
-Christians, that this outpouring of the Holy Ghost on the day of
-Pentecost was the fulfillment of Joel's prophecy, that is, its complete
-fulfillment. A careful examination of the prophecy, however, will
-clearly demonstrate that this is not the case. The prophecy will be
-found in Joel ii,28-32, and the particulars enumerated in it are as
-follows: The spirit of the Lord is to be poured out upon all flesh.
-At Pentecost it was poured out upon a few of the disciples of Jesus
-only; the sons and daughters of the people were to prophesy; we have no
-account of their doing so at Pentecost; old men were to dream dreams
-and young men see visions; there is no account of this taking place
-on the occasion in question; wonders were to be shown in the heavens
-and in the earth, blood and fire and pillars of smoke, the sun is to
-be turned into darkness, the moon into blood, before the great and
-terrible day of the Lord come, yet on Mount Zion and in Jerusalem
-deliverance was to be found. These things unquestionably point to
-the glorious coming of the Son of God to judgment (see Matt. xxiv);
-and certainly they were not fulfilled on the day of Pentecost by the
-outpouring of the Holy Ghost on a few of the disciples of Jesus. Still
-Peter said, referring to the Spirit poured out upon the disciples:
-"This is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel," and then quoted
-the passage. He doubtless meant: This Spirit which you now see poured
-out upon these few men, is that Spirit which Joel spoke of, and which
-will eventually be poured out upon all flesh, not only upon <span class="pagenum"><a name="p80"></a>{80}</span> men
-and women, but upon the brute creation as well, so that the lion and
-lamb shall lie down together and a little child shall lead them, and
-they shall not hurt nor destroy in all God's holy mountain. I have
-deemed it necessary to make this note, first, because of the very
-general belief among Christians that the prophecy of Joel was fulfilled
-on the day of Pentecost; and second, because the prophecy is one that
-was quoted by the angel Moroni on the occasion of his first visit
-to Joseph Smith, concerning which he said, it was not yet fulfilled
-but soon would be (Pearl of Great Price, page 90), hence, since this
-heavenly messenger puts its fulfillment in the future, it could
-not have been fulfilled on the day of Pentecost two thousand years
-ago.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Description of Paul.</b>&mdash;He is about five feet high; very dark
-hair, dark complexion; dark skin; large Roman nose; sharp face; small,
-black eyes, penetrating as eternity; round shoulders; a whining voice;
-except when elevated, and then it almost resembled the roaring of a
-lion. He was a good orator, active and diligent, always employing
-himself in doing good to his fellow-man.&mdash;Joseph Smith, at the
-organization of a school for instruction, Jan. 5th, 1841.
-</p>
-<p>Paul was small in size, and his personal appearance did not correspond
-with the greatness of his soul. He was ugly, stout, short, and
-stooping, and his broad shoulders awkwardly sustained a little bald
-head. His sallow countenance was half hidden in a thick beard; his nose
-was aquiline, his eyes piercing, and his eye-brows heavy and joined
-across his forehead. Nor was there anything imposing in his speech, for
-his timid and embarrassed air gave but a poor idea of his eloquence.
-He shrewdly, however, admitted his exterior defects, and even drew
-advantage therefrom. The Jewish race possesses the peculiarity of at
-the same time presenting types of the greatest beauty, and the most
-thorough ugliness; but this Jewish ugliness is something quite apart
-by itself. Some of the strange visages which at first excite a smile,
-assume, when lighted up by emotion, a sort of deep brilliancy and
-grandeur.&mdash;Renan&mdash;"Life of the Apostles," p. 165.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Travels of the Apostles Uncertain.</b>&mdash;The ambassadors of Christ
-on leaving Jerusalem traveled over a great part of the world, and in a
-short time collected numerous religious societies in various countries.
-Of the churches they founded, not a small number is mentioned in the
-sacred books, especially in the Acts of the Apostles. Besides these,
-there can be no doubt they collected many others, both by their own
-efforts and by the efforts of their followers. But how far they
-traveled, what nations they visited, or when and where they died, is
-exceedingly dubious and uncertain.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Divine Aid in Propagation of the Gospel.</b>&mdash;The causes must
-have been divine which could enable men destitute of all human aid,
-poor <span class="pagenum"><a name="p81"></a>{81}</span> and friendless, neither eloquent nor learned, fishermen and
-publicans, and they too Jews, that is, persons odious to all other
-nations, in so short a time to persuade a great part of mankind to
-abandon the religion of their fathers, and to embrace a new religion
-which is opposed to the natural dispositions of men. In the words they
-uttered there must have been an amazing and a divine power controlling
-the minds of men. To which may be added miracles, prophecies, the
-detection of men's secret designs, magnanimity in the midst of perils,
-contempt for all the objects of ordinary ambition, a patient and
-cheerful endurance of sufferings worse than death, as well as of
-death itself, and finally, lives of the purest and most unblemished
-character. That the ambassadors of Jesus Christ were in fact thus
-furnished for their work, is a truth perfectly clear and obvious. And
-if we suppose them not to have been so furnished, no probable reason
-can be assigned for so rapid a propagation of Christianity by this
-small and feeble band.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Rapid Spread of the Gospel.</b>&mdash;Thus, then, under a celestial
-influence and co-operation, the doctrine of the Savior, like the
-rays of the sun, quickly irradiated the whole world. Presently, in
-accordance with divine prophecy, the sound of his inspired evangelists
-and apostles had gone throughout all the earth, and their words to
-the ends of the world. Throughout every city and village, like a
-replenished barn floor, churches were rapidly abounding and filled with
-members from every people. Those who, in consequence of the delusions
-that had descended to them from their ancestors, had been fettered by
-the ancient disease of idolatrous superstition, were now liberated
-by the power of Christ, through the teachings and miracles of his
-messengers.&mdash;Eusebius, writing of the period between 37-41 A. D.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What was the first official business of the authorities of the
-church after the resurrection?
-</p>
-<p>2. State the manner of filling the vacancy in the quorum of the twelve.
-</p>
-<p>3. What of Mosheim's translation of the phrase: "They gave forth their
-lots?" (Note).
-</p>
-<p>4. Was Matthias called of God? (Note 1).
-</p>
-<p>5. What evidence can you refer to in proof that the quorum of Twelve
-Apostles was to be perpetuated?
-</p>
-<p>6. When was the gospel first publicly preached after the resurrection?
-</p>
-<p>7. How long between the ascension and Pentecost? (Note 2).
-</p>
-<p>8. Describe the events in the church on the day of Pentecost.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p82"></a>{82}</span> 9. What circumstance is an evidence that the statement of
-scripture is true that there were devout men from many nations in
-Jerusalem at that time? (Note 2).
-</p>
-<p>10. Was the outpouring of the Holy Ghost on the day of Pentecost a
-complete fulfillment of Joel's prophecy quoted by Peter? (Note 3).
-</p>
-<p>11. How does the order of principles taught by Peter on the day of
-Pentecost compare with the order of principles taught by John the
-Baptist and Messiah? (Note).
-</p>
-<p>12. Describe the rise of opposition to the church.
-</p>
-<p>13. What answer did Peter make to the mandates of the rulers not to
-teach in the name of Jesus?
-</p>
-<p>14. What was the counsel of Gamaliel to the Jews?
-</p>
-<p>15. To what extent did his counsel prevail?
-</p>
-<p>16. What arrangements were made in the church in respect to looking
-after the poor?
-</p>
-<p>17. What priesthood did the seven most likely hold? (Note).
-</p>
-<p>18. Give an account of the introduction of the gospel among the
-Samaritans.
-</p>
-<p>19. What was Paul's course at the first towards the church?
-</p>
-<p>20. Relate the circumstances of his conversion.
-</p>
-<p>21. Give a description of Paul. (Note 4).
-</p>
-<p>22. What were the views entertained by the Jews toward the Gentiles?
-</p>
-<p>23. Relate how the gospel was introduced to the Gentiles.
-</p>
-<p>24. State the exception to the order of the gospel in the case of
-Cornelius.
-</p>
-<p>25. What was the object of the exception?
-</p>
-<p>26. What effect on the church did carrying the gospel to the Gentiles
-have?
-</p>
-<p>27. How long is it supposed that the Twelve remained at Jerusalem?
-</p>
-<p>28. What can you say of the spread of the work during the first
-century? (Notes 5, 6, 7).
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p83"></a>{83}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VIII.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Review.</b>&mdash;We have now related the chief events connected with
-the introduction of the gospel and the establishment of the Church by
-the personal labors of Messiah and those immediately connected with
-him. We may now review the doctrines that he taught, which, taken in
-the aggregate, constitute the gospel; and examine the character of the
-organization he founded&mdash;the Church.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Mission of Messiah.</b>&mdash;Jesus Christ came into the earth
-to accomplish three great purposes; first, to redeem mankind from
-the consequences of Adam's transgression; second, to save them from
-the consequences of their own sins. The first is a general salvation,
-which, without any conditions whatever, will be applied to all
-mankind, irrespective of their obedience or disobedience to God, their
-righteousness or wickedness, their belief or unbelief. The redemption
-will be as universal as the fall. The second may be regarded as a
-particular salvation, dependent upon faith in, and obedience to the
-gospel of Christ by the individual.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Fall.</b>&mdash;When Adam and Eve were placed in the garden of
-Eden, there were certain laws given them by their Creator, the penalty
-of violating which was death and banishment from the presence of God.
-They transgressed the laws and became subject to the penalty. Nor
-was that all; but by their transgression, having become mortal, they
-bequeathed that mortality to their offspring; and thus death passed
-upon all mankind, and that too, through no act or fault of theirs.
-Their agency was not exercised in the matter, and therefore justice
-would require that they should receive a full and complete <span class="pagenum"><a name="p84"></a>{84}</span>
-redemption from the evil which overtakes them through the actions of
-others over which they had no control.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. General Salvation.</b>&mdash;Such a redemption was wrought out through
-the atonement of Jesus Christ, and that its benefits are to be
-universal, so far as redeeming mankind for the consequences of Adam's
-transgression is concerned, is evident from the fact,
-</p>
-<p><em>First</em>, That the resurrection from the dead is universal, as the
-scriptures witness:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> And many of them that sleep in the dust of the earth shall awake,
- some to everlasting life, and some to shame and everlasting
- contempt.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn103"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn103">103</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p> For as the Father hath life in himself; so hath he given to the
- Son to have life in himself. * * * Marvel not at this: for the
- hour is coming, in which all that are in their graves shall hear
- his voice, and shall come forth; they that have done good unto
- the resurrection of life, and they that have done evil, unto the
- resurrection of damnation.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn104"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn104">104</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Or, as the last two clauses were given to the Prophet Joseph Smith by
-inspiration:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> They who have done good in the resurrection of the just, and they
- who have done evil in the resurrection of the unjust.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn105"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn105">105</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>After giving a full account of the resurrection of the righteous and
-their reign upon the earth for a thousand years, the writer of the
-Apocalypse [A-poc-a-lypse] says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> And I saw the dead, small and great, stand before God. * * * And
- the sea gave up the dead which were in it; and death and hell
- delivered up the dead which were in them: and they were judged
- every man according to his works.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn106"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn106">106</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><em>Second</em>, The scriptures plainly declare that the redemption <span class="pagenum"><a name="p85"></a>{85}</span> of
-men from the consequences of Adam's transgression shall be universal:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Therefore as by the offense of one [Adam] judgment came upon <em>all
- men</em> to condemnation; even so by the righteousness of one the free
- gift came <em>upon all men</em> to the justification of life.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn107"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn107">107</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p> Since by man came death, by man came also the resurrection of
- the dead. For as in Adam <em>all die</em>, even so in Christ shall <em>all
- be made alive</em>. But every man in his own order: Christ the first
- fruits; afterward they that are Christ's at his coming. Then cometh
- the end, when he shall have delivered the kingdom to God, even the
- Father; when he shall have put down all rule and all authority and
- power. For he must reign, till he hath put all enemies under his
- feet. The last enemy that shall be destroyed is death.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn108"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn108">108</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p> Behold, he created Adam, and by Adam came the fall of man. And
- because of the fall of man, came Jesus Christ even the Father and
- the Son; and because of Jesus Christ came the redemption of man.
- And because of the redemption of man, which came by Jesus Christ,
- they are brought back into the presence of the Lord; yea, this is
- wherein all men are redeemed, because the death of Christ bringeth
- to pass the resurrection, which bringeth to pass a redemption from
- an endless sleep, from which sleep all men shall be awakened by the
- power of God when the trump shall sound; and they shall come forth,
- both small and great, and all shall stand before his bar, being
- redeemed and loosed from this eternal band of death, which death is
- a temporal death.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn109"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn109">109</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>5.</b> Through the atonement made by Messiah, therefore, a full and
-complete redemption from the consequences of Adam's transgression is
-brought about; that is, a victory over the grave is secured, and that,
-too, through the merits of Jesus Christ. And while the law transgressed
-by Adam has been vindicated, the posterity of Adam who became subject
-to death through his disobedience, are redeemed from the grave without
-anything <span class="pagenum"><a name="p86"></a>{86}</span> being required of them. For as their agency was not
-concerned in bringing about the mischief, nothing is required of them
-in order to obtain redemption from it. So far salvation is free and
-universal. (See notes 1, 2 and 3, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Atonement a Fact Proven by Evidence.</b>&mdash;It is often asked:
-"How is it that through the sacrifice of one who is innocent salvation
-may be purchased for those under the dominion of death?" We observe,
-in passing, that what should most concern man is, not so much <em>how</em> it
-is that such is the case; but is it a <em>fact</em>? Is it true that God has
-established such a scheme of redemption? is what should concern him.
-To that question the blood sprinkled upon a thousand Jewish altars,
-and the smoke that darkened the heavens for ages from burnt offerings,
-answer yes. For those sacrifices, and that sprinkled blood were but
-typical of the great sacrifice to be made by the Messiah.
-</p>
-<p>Even the mythology of heathen nations retains the idea of an atonement
-that either has been, or is to be made for mankind. Fantastic,
-distorted, confused, buried under the rubbish of savage superstition
-it may be, but it nevertheless exists. So easily traced, so distinct
-is this feature of heathen mythology, that some writers<sup>[<a name="PartIfn110"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn110">110</a>]</sup> have
-endeavored to prove that the gospel plan of redemption was derived from
-heathen mythology. Whereas the fact is that the gospel was understood
-and extensively preached in the earliest ages; men retained in their
-tradition a knowledge of those principles, or parts of them, and
-however much they may have been distorted, traces of them may still be
-found in nearly all the mythologies of the world.
-</p>
-<p>The prophets of the Jewish scriptures answer the question in the
-affirmative. The writers of the New Testament make Christ's atonement
-the principal theme of their discourses and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p87"></a>{87}</span> epistles. The Book
-of Mormon, speaking as the voice of entire nations of people whose
-prophets and righteous men sought and found God, testify to the same
-great fact. The revelations of God as given through the Prophet Joseph
-Smith are replete with passages confirming this doctrine. The evidence
-is more than sufficient, to establish the <em>fact</em> of the atonement
-beyond the possibility of a doubt; and if there are some things in it
-not within the scope of our comprehension, still there is sufficient
-foundation for the glorious hope of eternal life through its power.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Claims of Mercy and Justice Balance.</b>&mdash;In the atonement there
-is a nice balancing of the relative claims of justice and mercy. The
-law given to man having been transgressed, justice demanded the payment
-of the penalty, which was death. And as Adam had no power to liberate
-himself from the captivity thereof, his sleep in the grave must have
-been eternal; so also with all his posterity to whom his mortality
-was bequeathed as an evil legacy, had not Mercy put in her claims and
-prevented Justice from being cruel. The Son of God having it given
-to him to have life in himself,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn111"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn111">111</a>]</sup> and being capable of making an
-infinite atonement, he stood forth as the great friend of man and
-offered himself as a sacrifice to satisfy the claims of Justice. That
-offering was accepted by the great Law Giver, and upon the demands of
-Justice being satisfied&mdash;the law having no further claim upon him&mdash;the
-captive is set free from the dominion of death. Mercy is not permitted
-to rob Justice, but she claims her own. Justice is not permitted to be
-cruel, but he retains his dignity&mdash;his demands are satisfied. As the
-late President Taylor very beautifully says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Is justice dishonored? No; it is satisfied; the debt is paid. Is
- righteousness departed from? No; there is a righteous act. All
- requirements are met. Is judgment violated? No; its demands are
- <span class="pagenum"><a name="p88"></a>{88}</span> fulfilled. Is mercy triumphant? No; she simply claims her own.
- Justice, judgment, mercy and truth all harmonize as the attributes
- of Deity. "Justice and truth have met together, righteousness and
- peace have kissed each other." Justice and judgment triumph as well
- as mercy and peace; all the attributes of Deity harmonize in this
- great momentous, just, equitable, merciful and meritorious act.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn112"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn112">112</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>8. The Sacrifice of Messiah Voluntary.</b>&mdash;Unbelievers delight to
-represent God, the great Law Giver, as unspeakably cruel in demanding
-such an atonement as Christ made for the salvation of the children of
-men. But let it be borne in mind that he who made the atonement did so
-voluntarily. Testifying to his disciples respecting the matter, he says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Therefore doth my father love me, be cause I lay down my life that
- I may take it up again. No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down
- of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it
- again. This commandment have I received of my Father.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn113"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn113">113</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>When his enemies gathered about him&mdash;a former friend betraying him with
-a kiss,&mdash;and Peter prepared to defend him with the sword, he chided him
-for his rashness, commanding him to put up his sword, and added:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Thinkest thou that I cannot now pray to my Father, and he shall
- presently give me more than twelve legions of angels? But how then
- shall the scriptures be fulfilled, that thus it must be?<sup>[<a name="PartIfn114"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn114">114</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Thus down to the very last moment, it appears that Jesus could have
-been delivered from the sacrifice had he so willed it. But the
-principle which was the guiding star of his life&mdash;"Father, not my will,
-but thy will be done"&mdash;influenced him in this instance, and he drank of
-the cup given him of his Father, and wrung out the dregs in agony; but
-he did it voluntarily, and that, too, out of his great love for mankind.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p89"></a>{89}</span> <b> 9. The Love of God Made Manifest in the Atonement.</b>&mdash;By this
-atonement of Messiah's there is especially one fact thrown out in bold
-relief, that is, the great love of God and Christ for mankind. When one
-thinks of the unspeakable agony, of the anguish of heart, of the pains
-that racked the body and distressed the mind of the Savior at the time
-of his betrayal, and during his trial and crucifixion, he may see how
-great the love of the Father for mankind must be, when he would consent
-for his only begotten Son to pass through this great humiliation and
-affliction, in order to redeem mankind from the bonds of death. On such
-contemplation increased emphasis will be given to the passage&mdash;
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> In this was manifested the love of God towards us, because that
- God sent his only begotten Son into the world that we might live
- through him.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn115"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn115">115</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>And also to this:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> For God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten
- Son, that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but
- have everlasting life. For God sent not his Son into the world
- to condemn the world, but that the world through him might be
- saved.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn116"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn116">116</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Equally great appears the love of the Son of God, who of his own free
-will volunteered to take upon himself the task of man's redemption.
-</p>
-<p><b> 10. Individual Salvation.</b>&mdash;As before stated, Messiah came
-not only to redeem man from the consequences of the fall, but to
-save him also from the consequences of his own personal sins. The
-redemption from the fall is universal and unconditional, because the
-penalties following it were entailed upon the race through no action
-of theirs, but through the transgressions of Adam. The redemption from
-the consequences of man's personal sins, however, is bottomed upon
-conditions, because his agency is more completely a factor in the
-violations of the law. He <span class="pagenum"><a name="p90"></a>{90}</span> sins knowingly, willfully, and sometimes
-wantonly. He transgresses the laws of God and of nature in spite of
-the protests of his conscience, the convictions of his reason, and
-the promptings of his judgment. He becomes desperately wicked and so
-depraved that in some cases he actually seeks evil and loves it. He
-hugs it to his bosom and cries: Evil, be thou my good; sin, be thou my
-refuge!
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> In cases of such violation of the laws of God, justice
-demands that the outraged laws should be vindicated by the punishment
-of the transgressor. But here again the principle of mercy is active.
-By the sacrifice which he made, Messiah purchased mankind as an
-inheritance for himself, and they came of right under his dominion;
-for he not only ransomed them from an endless sleep in the grave, but
-"he hath borne our griefs and carried our sorrows. * * * * He was
-wounded for our transgressions, he was bruised for our iniquities,
-the chastisement of our peace was upon him; and by his stripes we are
-healed. The Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn117"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn117">117</a>]</sup> (See
-note 4, end of section.) It was these considerations, doubtless, which
-led the Apostle to say to the saints&mdash;"Ye are not your own; for ye are
-bought with a price."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn118"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn118">118</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>Still more plain in relation to the effect that Messiah's atonement
-has upon the personal sins of men, is the word of the Lord through the
-Prophet Joseph Smith to Martin Harris, warning him to repent lest his
-sufferings be sore&mdash;how sore, how exquisite, how hard to bear, he knew
-not:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> For behold, I God, have suffered these things for all, that they
- might not suffer if they would repent, but if they would not
- repent, they must suffer even as I, which suffering caused myself,
- even God, the greatest of all, to tremble because of pain, and to
- bleed at every pore, and to suffer both body and spirit; and would
- that I might not drink the bitter cup, and shrink&mdash;nevertheless,
- glory be to the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p91"></a>{91}</span> Father, I partook and finished my preparations
- unto the children of men.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn119"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn119">119</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>12. Conditions of Salvation.</b>&mdash;Messiah having thus ransomed
-mankind by his own suffering and death, he becomes the law-giver to
-our race and of right prescribes the conditions upon which the full
-benefits of his great atonement shall be applied to individuals. Those
-conditions he has prescribed, and they constitute the gospel. It was
-these conditions which he authorized his Apostles to proclaim to the
-world, saying:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye therefore,
- and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father,
- and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; teaching them to observe
- <em>all things</em> whatsoever I have commanded you.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn120"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn120">120</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>13.</b> Following the apostles in their fulfillment of this
-commission, we have them persuading people to believe on the Lord
-Jesus Christ as the Savior of the world, as the only one to whom
-they may look for salvation<sup>[<a name="PartIfn121"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn121">121</a>]</sup>&mdash;the resurrection and the life. Men
-in whose minds this faith was created they commanded to repent and
-be baptized in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins;
-and promised them on the condition of their obedience the gift of
-the Holy Ghost.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn122"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn122">122</a>]</sup> By repentance they meant a deep and heart-felt
-sorrow for sin, accompanied by a reformation of life;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn123"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn123">123</a>]</sup> by baptism
-they meant immersion in water in the likeness of Christ's burial and
-resurrection;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn124"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn124">124</a>]</sup> and the Holy Ghost was imparted by the laying on of
-hands and prayer.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn125"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn125">125</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>14.</b> These things connected with a Godly walk and conversation
-after obeying them<sup>[<a name="PartIfn126"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn126">126</a>]</sup>&mdash;constitute the laws of adoption <span class="pagenum"><a name="p92"></a>{92}</span> into the
-Church of Christ. These are the conditions on which man receives the
-full benefit of the atonement of Jesus Christ&mdash;a forgiveness of sins
-and power through the Holy Ghost to overcome all evil propensities
-within himself, until he becomes pure in heart and every way made
-ready and worthy of the kingdom of heaven. This is the gospel of Jesus
-Christ, as taught by Jesus and his apostles. (See note 6, end of
-section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>15. The Church.</b>&mdash;In order to propagate the gospel, and teach,
-encourage, instruct, preserve and finally perfect those who accepted
-it, Messiah organized his church. He bestowed upon its members certain
-great and precious spiritual gifts and graces, such as the power to
-speak in new tongues and interpret them; to receive revelation, to
-prophesy, to see visions, receive the visitation of angels, to possess
-the gift of wisdom, knowledge, faith, discernment of spirits, and
-healing the sick.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn127"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn127">127</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> The description of the Church organization in the New
-Testament is extremely imperfect, owing, no doubt, to the fragmentary
-character of the Christian annals. While the distinctions between the
-respective offices in the Priesthood, and the definition of the duties
-of each officer are even less satisfactory; still there is enough
-written to enable us to get an outline of the organization.
-</p>
-<p><b>17.</b> Messiah, during his personal ministry, organized a quorum of
-twelve apostles, to whom he gave very great powers and authority, even
-to be witnesses of him among the people, to build up his church by the
-proclamation of the gospel, to heal the sick, open the eyes of the
-blind, raise the dead and cast out devils.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn128"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn128">128</a>]</sup> He likewise organized
-quorums of seventies, unto whom he gave similar powers to those
-bestowed upon the apostles.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn129"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn129">129</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p93"></a>{93}</span> <b>18.</b> After his resurrection Messiah was with his apostles and
-disciples forty days, during which time he was teaching them all things
-concerning the kingdom of God.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn130"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn130">130</a>]</sup> Hence we have these men after his
-ascension organizing branches of the church wherever they found people
-who received their testimony. In some instances they ordained elders to
-preside over these branches;<sup>[<a name="PartIfn131"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn131">131</a>]</sup> and in other instances bishops were
-appointed.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn132"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn132">132</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>19.</b> Paul, in giving a description of the organization of the
-church says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> And God hath set some in the church, first apostles, secondarily
- prophets, thirdly teachers, after that miracles, then gifts of
- healing, helps, governments, diversities of tongues. Are all
- apostles? are all prophets? are all teachers? are all workers of
- miracles? have all the gifts of healing? do all speak with tongues?
- do all interpret?<sup>[<a name="PartIfn133"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn133">133</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>The implied answer is that all are not apostles, nor prophets, nor
-teachers, etc., in the church of Christ, but that the whole body, is
-fitly joined together and compacted by that which every part and every
-joint supplieth.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn134"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn134">134</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> Preceding the first quotation we made from Paul,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn135"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn135">135</a>]</sup> he
-compares the church of Christ to the body of a man, which, though it be
-composed of many members, yet it is but one body, and all the members
-thereof are needful to it. "The eye cannot say unto the hand, I have no
-need of thee; nor again the head to the feet, I have no need of thee.
-Nay, much more, those members of the body which seem to be more feeble
-are necessary." This is equivalent to saying that the apostle cannot
-say to the elder, I have no need of thee; nor the deacon to the bishop,
-I have no need of thee; nor the seventy to the priest, I have no need
-of thee. The argument is that all the offices, even those which seem
-the least necessary, are all needful to the existence of the church of
-Christ, and everyone is forbidden to hold as unnecessary his brother
-officer.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p94"></a>{94}</span> <b>21.</b> Moreover, the apostle insists that there should be the
-same bond of sympathy between the members of the church of Christ that
-there is in the members of the human body; that there should be no
-schism in it, and that the members should have a care one for another;
-that when one member suffers all the members suffer with it; or if one
-member be honored all rejoice with it.
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> In another description of the church the same writer after
-saying again that God had given to men "some apostles, and some
-prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers"&mdash;he also
-enumerates the objects for which this peculiar organization was given:
-1. For the perfecting of the Saints. 2. The work of the ministry. 3.
-Edifying the body of Christ. 4. To prevent the saints being carried
-about by every wind of doctrine, by the sleight of men, and cunning
-craftiness whereby they lie in wait to deceive.
-</p>
-<p><b>23.</b> He very plainly intimates, too, that this organization was
-designed to be perpetuated until the saints all come to the "unity of
-the faith and the knowledge of the Son of God&mdash;unto a perfect man,
-unto the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn136"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn136">136</a>]</sup>
-Furthermore, we suggest that it must be obvious, since the church
-organization was given to perfect the saints, to the work of the
-ministry, to edify the body of Christ, to prevent the saints being
-carried about by every wind of doctrine or being deceived by cunning
-men&mdash;that so long as there are saints who need perfecting, so long
-as there is a necessity for work in the ministry, so long as the
-church of Christ needs edifying, or the saints need to be guarded from
-heresy, or the deceitfulness of false teachers&mdash;just so long will this
-organization of the church with apostles and prophets, seventies, and
-elders, bishops and teachers and deacons be needed; and since the kinds
-of work enumerated in the foregoing will always be necessary, we reach
-the conclusion that the Church organization as established <span class="pagenum"><a name="p95"></a>{95}</span> by the
-apostles was designed to be perpetual. (See note 5, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>24. Officers of the Church to be Divinely Appointed.</b>&mdash;Moreover
-it is apparent that these officers of the church were called of God.
-Concerning the apostles Jesus said: "Ye have not chosen me but I have
-chosen you, and ordained you that ye may bring forth fruit."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn137"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn137">137</a>]</sup> When
-seven men were chosen to look after the poor and minister to them they
-set them before the apostles, who, when they had prayed, laid their
-hands upon them and ordained them to their calling.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn138"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn138">138</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>25.</b> So in the case of Paul. It was not enough that he saw and
-spoke with Messiah, for afterwards when the Lord would have him engage
-in the work of preaching the gospel and administering in the ordinances
-thereof, the Holy Ghost said unto certain prophets at Antioch,
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Separate me Barnabas and Saul for the work whereunto I have called
- them. And when they had fasted and prayed, and laid their hands on
- them, they sent them away.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn139"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn139">139</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>26.</b> Furthermore, as Paul went about confirming the souls of
-saints, he ordained elders in every church.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn140"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn140">140</a>]</sup> He did not suffer
-men to take the authority on themselves to minister in the things of
-God; but warned the saints against such characters. "Take heed unto
-yourselves," said he to the elders of Ephesus, "and to all the flock
-over which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the flock
-of God * * * For I know this, that after my departing, shall grievous
-wolves enter in, not sparing the flock. And of your own selves shall
-men arise, speaking perverse things, to draw away disciples after
-them."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn141"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn141">141</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>27.</b> The general law of the church is expressed in the following:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Every high priest taken from among men is ordained for men in
- <span class="pagenum"><a name="p96"></a>{96}</span> things pertaining to God that he may offer both gifts and
- sacrifices for sins. * * * And no man taketh this honor unto
- himself, but he that is called of God as was Aaron.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn142"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn142">142</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>The manner in which Aaron was called to the priest's office is recorded
-in the writings of Moses as follows: The word of the Lord came to that
-prophet saying:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Take thou unto thee Aaron thy brother, and his sons with him from
- among the children of Israel that he may minister unto me in the
- priest's office, even Aaron, Nadab and Abihu, Eleazer and Ithamar,
- Aaron's sons.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn143"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn143">143</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>28.</b> It may be objected that this was the law relating to the
-calling of high priests alone, but if high priests were to be called in
-this manner, is it not reasonable to conclude that all who administer
-in things "pertaining to God" must be called in the same manner&mdash;that
-is, of God? So far as the scriptures are concerned, and on subjects
-of this character their authority is conclusive, wherever we have an
-account of men administering in the things pertaining to God, and their
-administrations are accepted of him, they have either been called
-directly by revelation from him, or through inspiration in those who
-already had authority from God to act in his name; and to be called by
-a legitimate, divinely established authority is to be called of God.
-(See note 6, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>29.</b> The Church on the Western Hemisphere.&mdash;The Book of Mormon is
-no more explicit in its description of the church organization than the
-New Testament. This is owing to the fact that the Book of Mormon is but
-an abridgement of the Nephite annals, and we are informed by Mormon,
-who made the abridgement, that not an hundredth part of the things
-which Jesus taught to the Nephites could be recorded in his abridged
-record&mdash;hence the meagre description of the church organization.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn144"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn144">144</a>]</sup>
-From Mormon's abridged account of Messiah's visit and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p97"></a>{97}</span> labors among
-the Nephites, however, it appears that Jesus chose from among the
-faithful men who believed on him, twelve apostles,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn145"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn145">145</a>]</sup> unto whom he
-gave power to preach repentance, baptize for remission of sins,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn146"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn146">146</a>]</sup>
-lay on hands for the Holy Ghost,<sup>[<a name="PartIfn147"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn147">147</a>]</sup> and organize the Church.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn148"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn148">148</a>]</sup>
-But the details of this work are not given. It is evident, however,
-that the twelve disciples ordained subordinate officers, since Moroni
-informs us of the manner in which they ordained priests and teachers;
-<sup>[<a name="PartIfn149"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn149">149</a>]</sup> and he also refers to the office of elders.<sup>[<a name="PartIfn150"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn150">150</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>30.</b> Thus in the Book of Mormon, as in the New Testament, may be
-seen only the faint outlines of the organization, the church of Christ.
-A full description of it, together with the callings and authority of
-the respective officers and persons of which it is composed, will be
-reserved for Part IV of this work.
-</p>
-<p><b>31.</b> The acceptance of the gospel by the Nephites was followed
-by the same results as when accepted by the Jews and Gentiles of the
-eastern hemisphere. The sick were healed, the dead were raised, the
-lame walked, the deaf heard, and the blind received their sight. Peace,
-love, sobriety, justice and an absence of greed and pride characterized
-the conduct of the saints of the western hemisphere; and here, too,
-they had "all things common among them, therefore they were not rich
-and poor, bond and free, but they were all made free, and partakers of
-the heavenly gifts."<sup>[<a name="PartIfn151"></a><a href="#txtPartIfn151">151</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Redemption Unconditional.</b>&mdash;We believe that through the
-sufferings, death and atonement of Jesus Christ, all mankind without
-one exception, are to be completely and fully redeemed, both body
-and spirit, from the endless banishment and curse to which they were
-consigned by Adam's transgression; and that this universal salvation
-and redemption of the whole human family from the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p98"></a>{98}</span> endless penalty
-of the original sin, is effected without any conditions whatsoever on
-their part; that is, that they are not required to believe or repent,
-or be baptized, or do anything else, in order to be redeemed from
-that penalty; for whether they believe or disbelieve, whether they
-repent or remain impenitent, whether they are baptized or unbaptized,
-whether they keep the commandments or break them, whether they are
-righteous or unrighteous, it will make no difference in relation to
-their redemption, both soul and body, from the penalty of Adam's
-transgression. The most righteous man that ever lived on the earth,
-and the most wicked wretch of the whole human family, were both placed
-under the same curse without any transgression or agency of their
-own, and they both alike will be redeemed from that curse, without any
-agency or conditions on their part.&mdash;"Remarkable Visions"&mdash;Orson Pratt.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Atonement Universal in its Application.</b>&mdash;Transgression of
-the law brought death upon all the posterity of Adam, the restoration
-through the atonement restored all the human family to life. "For since
-by man came death, by man came also the resurrection of the dead. For
-as in Adam all die, even so in Christ shall all be made alive." So that
-whatever was lost by Adam was restored by Jesus Christ. The penalty of
-the transgression of the law was the death of the body. The atonement
-made by Jesus Christ resulted in the resurrection of the human body.
-Its scope embraced all peoples, nations and tongues.
-</p><blockquote>
-<p class="poetry">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;For all my Lord was crucified,<br>
-&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;For all, for all my Savior died.<br>
-</p>
-<p class="poetry">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; &mdash;"Mediation and Atonement"&mdash;John Taylor.<br>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>3. The Atonement a Mystery.</b>&mdash;As stated elsewhere, in some
-mysterious, incomprehensible way, Jesus assumed the responsibility
-which naturally would have devolved upon Adam; but which could only
-be accomplished through the mediation of himself, and by taking upon
-himself their sorrows, assuming their responsibilities and bearing
-their transgressions or sins. In a manner incomprehensible and
-inexplicable, he bore the weight of the sins of the whole world; not
-only of Adam, but of his posterity; and in doing that, opened the
-kingdom of heaven, not only to all believers and all who obeyed the
-law of God, but to more than one-half of the human family who died
-before they came to years of maturity, as well as to the heathen, who
-having died without law, will through his mediation be resurrected
-without law, and be judged without law, and thus participate
-according to their capacity, works and worth, in the blessings of his
-atonement.&mdash;"Mediation and Atonement"&mdash;John Taylor.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p99"></a>{99}</span> <b>4. The Means of Escape from Penalties of Personal
-Sins.</b>&mdash;After this full, complete and universal redemption,
-restoration, and salvation of the whole of Adam's race through the
-atonement of Jesus Christ, * * * all and every one of them will enjoy
-eternal life and happiness, never more to be banished from the presence
-of God if they themselves have committed no sin. * * * We believe that
-all mankind, in consequence of the fall, after they grow up from their
-infant state and come to the years of understanding, know good and evil
-and are capable of obeying or disobeying law, and that a law is given
-against doing evil and that the penalty affixed is a second banishment
-from the presence of God, both body and spirit, after they have been
-redeemed from the first banishment and restored into his presence. *
-* * We believe that all who have done evil, having a knowledge of the
-law, or afterwards in this life coming to the knowledge thereof, are
-under its penalty, which is not inflicted in this world but in the
-world to come. * * * "But," inquires the sinner, "is there no way of
-escape? Is my case hopeless?" * * * The answer is, if thou canst hide
-thyself from the all-searching eye of an omnipresent God, that he shall
-not find thee, or if thou canst prevail with him to deny justice its
-claim, or if thou canst clothe thyself with power, and contend with the
-Almighty and prevent him from executing the sentence of the law, then
-thou canst escape. * * * But be assured, O sinner, that thou canst not
-devise any way of thine own to escape, nor do anything which will atone
-for thy sins. Therefore thy case is hopeless, unless God hath devised
-some way for thy deliverance; but do not let despair seize upon thee;
-* * * for he who gave the law has devised a way for thy deliverance.
-That same Jesus, who hath atoned for the original sin (Adam's
-transgression), and will redeem all mankind from the penalty thereof,
-hath also atoned for thy sins, and offereth salvation and deliverance
-to thee, on certain conditions to be complied with on thy part. * *
-* The first condition to be complied with on the part of sinners is
-to believe in God, and in the sufferings and death of his son Jesus
-Christ * * * and in the Holy Ghost. * * * That the second condition is
-to repent. * * * That the third condition is to be baptized for the
-remission of sins. * * * And that the fourth condition is to receive
-the laying on of hands for the gift of the Holy Ghost. * * * They are
-then required to be humble, to be meek and lowly in heart, to watch
-and pray and deal justly. * * * And, in short, to continue faithful to
-the end in all the duties enjoined upon them by the word and Spirit of
-Christ.&mdash;"Remarkable Visions"&mdash;Orson Pratt.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Four Opinions on Church Government.</b>&mdash;How far even wise men and
-Christian scholars have gone astray in relation to church government
-may be judged from the following opinions on the subject:
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p100"></a>{100}</span> Those who imagine that Christ himself or the apostles by his
-direction or authority appointed a certain fixed form of church
-government are not agreed what that form was. The principal opinions
-that have been adopted upon this head may be reduced to the four
-following:
-</p>
-<p><em>First</em>, is that of the Roman Catholics maintain that Christ's
-intention and appointment was that his followers should be collected
-into one sacred empire, subject to the government of St. Peter and
-his successors, and divided like the kingdoms of this world into
-several provinces; that in consequence thereof Peter fixed the seat of
-ecclesiastical dominion at Rome, but afterwards to alleviate the burden
-of his office divided the church into three greater provinces according
-to the division of the world at that time, and appointed a person to
-preside in each who was dignified with the title of Patriarch; that the
-European Patriarch resided at Rome, the Asiatic at Antioch, and the
-African at Alexandria; that the bishops of each province among whom
-there were various ranks, were to reverence the authority of their
-respective patriarchs, and that both bishops and patriarchs were to be
-passively subject to the supreme dominion of the Roman Pontiff. This
-romantic account scarcely deserves a serious refutation.
-</p>
-<p>The <em>second</em> opinion concerning the government of the church makes no
-mention of a supreme head or of patriarchs constituted by a divine
-authority; but it supposes that the apostles divided the Roman empire
-into as many ecclesiastical provinces as there were secular or civil
-ones; that the metropolitan bishops, that is, the prelate who resides
-in the capital city of each province, presides over the clergy of that
-province, and that the other bishops were subject to his authority.
-This opinion has been adopted by some of the most learned of the Romish
-church; and has also been favored by some of the most eminent British
-divines. Some Protestant writers of note have endeavored to prove that
-it is not supported by sufficient evidence.
-</p>
-<p>The <em>third</em> opinion is that of those who acknowledge that when the
-Christians began to multiply exceedingly, metropolitans, patriarchs
-and archbishops were indeed created but only by human appointment and
-authority; though they confess at the same time that it is consonant to
-the orders and intentions of Christ and his apostles that there should
-be in every Christian church one person invested with the highest
-authority and clothed with certain rights and privileges above the
-other doctors of that assembly. This opinion has been embraced by many
-English divines of the first rank in the learned world; and also by
-many in other countries and communions.
-</p>
-<p>The <em>fourth</em>, and last opinion is that of the Presbyterians who affirm
-that Christ's intention was that the Christian doctors and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p101"></a>{101}</span>
-ministers should all enjoy the same rank and authority without any
-sort of pre-eminence or subordination or distinction of rights and
-privileges.&mdash;Mosheim, vol. 1, pages 67, 68. Note&mdash;Murdock.
-</p>
-<p>"The truth of the matter is," remarks Dr. Maclaine, "that Christ by
-leaving this matter undetermined, has of consequence, left Christian
-societies a discretionary power of modeling the government of the
-church in such a manner as the circumstantial reasons of times, places,
-etc., may require; and therefore the wisest government of the church is
-the best and the most divine; and every Christian society has a right
-to make laws for itself; provided that these laws are consistent with
-charity and peace and with the fundamental doctrines and principles of
-Christianity." Of this it is only necessary to say that Christ did not
-leave this matter undetermined but established his church government
-as explained in the text of this work. The wisest form of church
-government is that which God gave; it is at the same time the best and
-not only the most divine but the only one that can lay any claim to
-being so; and for the church or any branch thereof to establish any
-other government for itself is an unjustifiable departure from the
-order of God.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Authority from God Needful.</b>&mdash;We are informed in the
-scriptures, that the Lord wrought special miracles by the hands of
-Paul, whom he had called to be his servant. The sick were healed, and
-evil spirits were cast out of those who were possessed. "Then certain
-of the vagabond Jews, exorcists, took upon them to call over them which
-had evil spirits, the name of the Lord Jesus, saying, We adjure you,
-by Jesus whom Paul preacheth. And there were seven sons, of one Sceva,
-a Jew, and chief of the priests, which did so. And the evil spirit
-answered and said, Jesus I know, and Paul I know, but who are ye? And
-the man in whom the evil spirit was, leaped on them, and overcame them,
-and prevailed against them, so that they fled out of the house, naked
-and wounded."&mdash;(Acts xix: 13-16). These men presumptuously took it upon
-themselves to act as those who had authority, and the result was that
-not even the devils would respect their administrations, much less
-the Lord. There is a principle of great moment associated with this
-incident. The question is, if these men, when acting without authority
-from God could not drive out an evil spirit, would their administration
-be of force, or have any virtue in it, had they administered in some
-other ordinance of the gospel, say baptism for the remission of
-sins, or the laying on of hands for the reception of the Holy Ghost?
-Manifestly it would not. Hence we come to the conclusion, so well
-expressed in one of our articles of faith: "A man must be called of God
-by prophecy and by the laying on of hands by those who are in authority
-to preach the gospel and administer in the ordinances thereof."&mdash;"The
-Gospel"&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p102"></a>{102}</span> <b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What two great purposes were contemplated in Messiah's mission?
-</p>
-<p>2. Relate the fall of man and its consequences.
-</p>
-<p>3. What is general salvation?
-</p>
-<p>4. How do you prove that there will be a general salvation?
-</p>
-<p>5. Why is redemption from Adam's transgression unconditional? (Notes 1
-to 4).
-</p>
-<p>6. How are the claims of justice and mercy balanced in the atonement?
-</p>
-<p>7. Was Messiah's atonement voluntary?
-</p>
-<p>8. What can you say of the love of God as it appears in the atonement?
-</p>
-<p>9. What is meant by individual salvation?
-</p>
-<p>10. In what does it differ from general salvation?
-</p>
-<p>11. By what consideration does mercy mitigate the claims of justice in
-the plan of redemption?
-</p>
-<p>12. What are the conditions of salvation? (Note 6).
-</p>
-<p>13. For what several purposes did Messiah institute his church?
-</p>
-<p>14. Why is it that the description of the Church of Christ is so
-imperfect in the New Testament?
-</p>
-<p>15. Enumerate the powers granted to the Twelve.
-</p>
-<p>16. What other officers did Jesus call to the ministry upon whom he
-bestowed similar powers?
-</p>
-<p>17. What other officers were appointed in the church?
-</p>
-<p>18. Give Paul's description of the church.
-</p>
-<p>19. State the particular objects to be accomplished by the church
-organization.
-</p>
-<p>20. What reasons can you give for believing that the church as
-organized by Messiah is to be perpetuated?
-</p>
-<p>21. What are the four leading opinions in respect to church government?
-(Note 5).
-</p>
-<p>22. What is the truth in respect of church government? (Note 5).
-</p>
-<p>23. Is the Book of Mormon description of church organization more
-complete than that of the New Testament? Why?
-</p>
-<p>24. Give an account of the organization of the church on the western
-hemisphere.
-</p>
-<p>25. What followed the preaching of the gospel and the organization of
-the church on the western hemisphere?
-</p>
-<h3>Footnotes
-</h3>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn1"></a><a href="#PartIfn1">1</a>. It is also called Ephrath [Ef-rath] and Ephratah [Ef-ra-tah.] It was
-the scene of Rachel's death and burial, the native place of Samuel's
-father, the residence of Boaz and Ruth, and the birthplace of David;
-it was also the last rallying point of the remnant of Judah after the
-invasion of Nebuchadnezzar.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn2"></a><a href="#PartIfn2">2</a>. Micah v: 2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn3"></a><a href="#PartIfn3">3</a>. Luke 1:28-38.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn4"></a><a href="#PartIfn4">4</a>. Canon Farrar translates this splendid passage: "Glory to God in the
-highest, and on earth peace among men of good will," maintaining that
-such is the reading of the best Mss. Dear to us as the reading in King
-James' translation of the Bible is, if looked upon as announcing the
-effect of Christianity in this world&mdash;"On earth peace among men of good
-will," comes more nearly to the truth than "on earth peace, good will
-toward men."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn5"></a><a href="#PartIfn5">5</a>. Matt. ii: 2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn6"></a><a href="#PartIfn6">6</a>. III Nephi i: 21.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn7"></a><a href="#PartIfn7">7</a>. III Nephi i: 13.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn8"></a><a href="#PartIfn8">8</a>. III Nephi i: 15-19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn9"></a><a href="#PartIfn9">9</a>. Matt. ii: 18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn10"></a><a href="#PartIfn10">10</a>. Matt. ii: 23.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn11"></a><a href="#PartIfn11">11</a>. I have condensed much of the matter in the first part of this
-section from the learned works of D'Aubigne, Dr. Mosheim, Gibbon and
-Josephus, sometimes using even their phraseology without further
-acknowledgement than this note.&mdash;The Author.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn12"></a><a href="#PartIfn12">12</a>. Epistle to Romans i: 18-32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn13"></a><a href="#PartIfn13">13</a>. See note 7, end of section.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn14"></a><a href="#PartIfn14">14</a>. Dr. Lardner.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn15"></a><a href="#PartIfn15">15</a>. See "The First Gospel of the Infancy," Apocryphal New Testament
-(Colley &amp; Rich, publishers, Boston, 1891.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn16"></a><a href="#PartIfn16">16</a>. Luke i.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn17"></a><a href="#PartIfn17">17</a>. Matt. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn18"></a><a href="#PartIfn18">18</a>. Luke iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn19"></a><a href="#PartIfn19">19</a>. Matt. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn20"></a><a href="#PartIfn20">20</a>. Luke iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn21"></a><a href="#PartIfn21">21</a>. John i:19-23.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn22"></a><a href="#PartIfn22">22</a>. The location of Bethabara is uncertain.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn23"></a><a href="#PartIfn23">23</a>. Matt. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn24"></a><a href="#PartIfn24">24</a>. Matt. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn25"></a><a href="#PartIfn25">25</a>. John i:33.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn26"></a><a href="#PartIfn26">26</a>. Matt. iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn27"></a><a href="#PartIfn27">27</a>. That is, vain fellow.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn28"></a><a href="#PartIfn28">28</a>. Doc. and Cov. lxxxiv:17-27.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn29"></a><a href="#PartIfn29">29</a>. Biblical Literature.&mdash;Kitto.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn30"></a><a href="#PartIfn30">30</a>. Matt. x.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn31"></a><a href="#PartIfn31">31</a>. Matt. x.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn32"></a><a href="#PartIfn32">32</a>. Compare Luke x with Matt. x.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn33"></a><a href="#PartIfn33">33</a>. Luke x.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn34"></a><a href="#PartIfn34">34</a>. John v.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn35"></a><a href="#PartIfn35">35</a>. John iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn36"></a><a href="#PartIfn36">36</a>. John iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn37"></a><a href="#PartIfn37">37</a>. John iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn38"></a><a href="#PartIfn38">38</a>. John v:24-30.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn39"></a><a href="#PartIfn39">39</a>. John v:39-47, vii:14-18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn40"></a><a href="#PartIfn40">40</a>. John v:32-35.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn41"></a><a href="#PartIfn41">41</a>. John v:36; x:25.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn42"></a><a href="#PartIfn42">42</a>. John v:37, 39.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn43"></a><a href="#PartIfn43">43</a>. Mark xi:5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn44"></a><a href="#PartIfn44">44</a>. Matt. iv:16-24.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn45"></a><a href="#PartIfn45">45</a>. Matt. iv:16-24.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn46"></a><a href="#PartIfn46">46</a>. Mark xii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn47"></a><a href="#PartIfn47">47</a>. John xi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn48"></a><a href="#PartIfn48">48</a>. Matt. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn49"></a><a href="#PartIfn49">49</a>. John v:1-18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn50"></a><a href="#PartIfn50">50</a>. John v:17, 18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn51"></a><a href="#PartIfn51">51</a>. John xii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn52"></a><a href="#PartIfn52">52</a>. Luke xxii. Matt. xxvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn53"></a><a href="#PartIfn53">53</a>. John xviii:36.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn54"></a><a href="#PartIfn54">54</a>. Luke alone calls it <em>Calvary</em>; Matthew, Mark and John call it
-Golgotha. They each have reference to the same place, which was known
-by the two different names.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn55"></a><a href="#PartIfn55">55</a>. III Nephi viii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn56"></a><a href="#PartIfn56">56</a>. Those predictions are found in the following passages: John
-ii:18-22; x:17, 18; xiii:31-33. Matt. xii:38=42; xvi:21-23; xvii:1-9;
-Mark ix:30-32; x:32-34.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn57"></a><a href="#PartIfn57">57</a>. Matt. xxviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn58"></a><a href="#PartIfn58">58</a>. John xx:14-17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn59"></a><a href="#PartIfn59">59</a>. Matt. xxviii:9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn60"></a><a href="#PartIfn60">60</a>. Luke xxiv:13-31.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn61"></a><a href="#PartIfn61">61</a>. Luke xxiv:34 and I Cor. xv:5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn62"></a><a href="#PartIfn62">62</a>. John xx:19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn63"></a><a href="#PartIfn63">63</a>. John xx:26; Mark xvi:14.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn64"></a><a href="#PartIfn64">64</a>. John xxi:1-24.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn65"></a><a href="#PartIfn65">65</a>. Matt. xxviii:16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn66"></a><a href="#PartIfn66">66</a>. I Cor. xv:6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn67"></a><a href="#PartIfn67">67</a>. I Cor. xv:7.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn68"></a><a href="#PartIfn68">68</a>. I Cor. xv:8.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn69"></a><a href="#PartIfn69">69</a>. Acts i.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn70"></a><a href="#PartIfn70">70</a>. Matt. xviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn71"></a><a href="#PartIfn71">71</a>. Mark xvi:16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn72"></a><a href="#PartIfn72">72</a>. Luke xxiv:49, 53; Acts i.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn73"></a><a href="#PartIfn73">73</a>. Acts i; Matt. xvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn74"></a><a href="#PartIfn74">74</a>. John x:16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn75"></a><a href="#PartIfn75">75</a>. III Nephi xv:18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn76"></a><a href="#PartIfn76">76</a>. III Nephi xv:21.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn77"></a><a href="#PartIfn77">77</a>. III Nephi xi:12.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn78"></a><a href="#PartIfn78">78</a>. Section V, paragraph 14.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn79"></a><a href="#PartIfn79">79</a>. The land Bountiful was in the northern part of South America.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn80"></a><a href="#PartIfn80">80</a>. III Nephi xi:14.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn81"></a><a href="#PartIfn81">81</a>. See John xxi:21-25; III Nephi xxviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn82"></a><a href="#PartIfn82">82</a>. Let those who would be more minutely informed upon the ministry
-of Messiah on the western hemisphere, study carefully the book of III
-Nephi, where the history of that important event is recorded, and which
-book has been called&mdash;a "Fifth Gospel."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn83"></a><a href="#PartIfn83">83</a>. It must be remembered, that Jesus told the Nephites that he was
-going to visit the lost tribes whom the Father had led away. They, too,
-were to have the gospel preached to them (III Nephi xv and xvi.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn84"></a><a href="#PartIfn84">84</a>. In his "Comment de Rebus Christ," p. 78-80, the learned Dr.
-Mosheim has a note on this passage in which his aim is to prove that
-the correct translation from the Greek of the phrase usually rendered
-"they gave forth their lots," should be "they gave their votes."
-While it is but proper to say that the Doctor's translation is very
-generally rejected by the learned, still there will be no question with
-those who understand the order of the priesthood and the manner of
-filling vacancies in its quorums, that Dr. Mosheim is correct in his
-interpretation as to the meaning of the passage.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn85"></a><a href="#PartIfn85">85</a>. IV Nephi i:14.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn86"></a><a href="#PartIfn86">86</a>. Pentecost came fifty days after the Passover, on which day the
-Lord Jesus was crucified. Allowing that he lay three days in the tomb
-and was with his disciples forty days after his resurrection (Acts
-i:3), forty-three days of the fifty between Passover and Pentecost
-are accounted for, leaving but seven days between ascension and the
-day of Pentecost, when the promise of the baptism of the spirit was
-fulfilled.&mdash;"The Gospel," note p. 177.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn87"></a><a href="#PartIfn87">87</a>. Luke iii:16. Matt. iii:2. Acts i:4, 5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn88"></a><a href="#PartIfn88">88</a>. The languages spoken are enumerated by the writer of The Acts
-ii:9-11.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn89"></a><a href="#PartIfn89">89</a>. Joel ii:28.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn90"></a><a href="#PartIfn90">90</a>. I think it proper here to call the attention of the student to the
-fact that the principles of the gospel in this discourse of Peter's
-are stated in the same order that they were unfolded in the ministry
-of John the Baptist and Messiah. First, John came bearing witness of
-one who should come after him&mdash;Christ, the Lord. Hence, he taught faith
-in God (John i:15, 16, also verses 19-36). After that, the burden of
-his message was, "Repent, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand;" then
-followed his baptism in water with a promise that they should receive
-the Holy Ghost. So Peter first taught the people faith in the Lord,
-proving from the scripture that Jesus was both Lord and Christ; and
-when they believed that, then he taught them repentance and baptism for
-the remission of sins, and promised them the Holy Ghost.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn91"></a><a href="#PartIfn91">91</a>. Acts ii:38, 39.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn92"></a><a href="#PartIfn92">92</a>. Acts iv:9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn93"></a><a href="#PartIfn93">93</a>. Acts v:26-32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn94"></a><a href="#PartIfn94">94</a>. Acts v:34-42.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn95"></a><a href="#PartIfn95">95</a>. It is generally supposed by Biblical scholars, Mosheim, Neander,
-Kitto, Murdock and many others, that these men were deacons only.
-There is nothing, however, in the Acts of the Apostles or other parts
-of the New Testament which would lead one to believe that such was
-the case. We have evidence on the other hand that one of them at
-least held a higher priesthood than the office of deacon. In modern
-revelation we have it stated that neither teachers nor deacons have
-authority to baptize, administer the sacrament or lay on hands for the
-Holy Ghost (Doc. and Cov., sec. xx:58); yet we have Philip, one of the
-seven, going down into Samaria, teaching the gospel "and baptizing the
-people" (Acts viii), hence we may know that he held a higher priesthood
-than that of deacon. Yet when it became necessary to confer the Holy
-Ghost upon these same converts by the laying on of hands, Philip, it
-would seem, had not the authority to do it; but the Apostles hearing
-that Samaria had received the word, sent Peter and John down and
-they conferred upon the Samaritans the Holy Ghost. And though Philip
-was present he appears to have taken no part in it. It is therefore
-reasonable to conclude that since Philip had authority to baptize, he
-therefore must have held an office higher than that of deacon, or even
-of teacher; but since he evidently had not authority to lay on hands
-for the gift of the Holy Ghost, his office was something less than that
-of an Elder. Hence it is most likely that he was a priest&mdash;priests
-have the right to baptize but not to lay on hands for the reception
-of the Holy Ghost (Doc. and Cov. sec. xx)&mdash;as perhaps also were his
-six associates, appointed to preside over the temporal affairs of the
-Church, especially to see after the poor.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn96"></a><a href="#PartIfn96">96</a>. Acts iv:32-37.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn97"></a><a href="#PartIfn97">97</a>. Acts viii. The student will observe that the same order of
-presenting and accepting the gospel is observed in the account given of
-its introduction into Samaria as was observed in the teaching of John
-the Baptist and Jesus, and also of Peter, on the day of Pentecost.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn98"></a><a href="#PartIfn98">98</a>. Acts ix.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn99"></a><a href="#PartIfn99">99</a>. Matt. xv:24.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn100"></a><a href="#PartIfn100">100</a>. John xii:32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn101"></a><a href="#PartIfn101">101</a>. This case of Cornelius marks an exception&mdash;the only one recorded
-in the New Testament&mdash;to that order in the gospel to which attention
-has been drawn several times in this section; that is, these Gentiles
-received the Holy Ghost before baptism in water. The object of the
-deviation from the rule is obvious. It was that the Jews might have a
-witness from God that the gospel was for the Gentiles as well as for
-the house of Israel. But according to the Scriptures, and I may say
-according to the nature and relationship of these several principles
-and ordinances of the gospel to each other, the reception of the Holy
-Ghost comes after repentance and baptism, the one leading up logically
-to the other, which follows in beautiful and harmonious sequence.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn102"></a><a href="#PartIfn102">102</a>. Col. i:23.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn103"></a><a href="#PartIfn103">103</a>. Dan. xii:2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn104"></a><a href="#PartIfn104">104</a>. John v:26, 28, 29.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn105"></a><a href="#PartIfn105">105</a>. Doc. and Cov. lxxvi:17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn106"></a><a href="#PartIfn106">106</a>. Rev. xx:12, 13.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn107"></a><a href="#PartIfn107">107</a>. Rom. v:18. See whole chapter.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn108"></a><a href="#PartIfn108">108</a>. Cor. xv:21-26.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn109"></a><a href="#PartIfn109">109</a>. Mormon ix:12, 13. Other evidences from the Nephite scriptures will
-be found in Alma xi:40-44. III Nephi xxvii:13-15. II Nephi ii. Mosiah
-xv:18-27. Alma xxxiv:7-17. Alma xiii:1-26.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn110"></a><a href="#PartIfn110">110</a>. See "The World's Sixteen Crucified Saviors," by Kersey Graves.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn111"></a><a href="#PartIfn111">111</a>. John v:26.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn112"></a><a href="#PartIfn112">112</a>. Mediation and Atonement, xxiv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn113"></a><a href="#PartIfn113">113</a>. John x:17, 18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn114"></a><a href="#PartIfn114">114</a>. Matt. xxvi:53, 54.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn115"></a><a href="#PartIfn115">115</a>. I John iv:9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn116"></a><a href="#PartIfn116">116</a>. John iii:16, 17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn117"></a><a href="#PartIfn117">117</a>. Isaiah liii:5, 6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn118"></a><a href="#PartIfn118">118</a>. I Cor. vi:19, 20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn119"></a><a href="#PartIfn119">119</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. xix:16-18. See also Mosiah iii:20, 21. "The
-Gospel," Roberts, page 29.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn120"></a><a href="#PartIfn120">120</a>. Matt. xxviii:18-20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn121"></a><a href="#PartIfn121">121</a>. Acts iv:12.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn122"></a><a href="#PartIfn122">122</a>. Acts ii:22-47. Acts viii:5-25.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn123"></a><a href="#PartIfn123">123</a>. II Cor. vii:8-10.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn124"></a><a href="#PartIfn124">124</a>. Rom. vi:3-5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn125"></a><a href="#PartIfn125">125</a>. Acts viii:14-18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn126"></a><a href="#PartIfn126">126</a>. The injunction placed upon those who accept the faith of the
-gospel is that they add to their faith virtue; and to virtue,
-knowledge; and to knowledge, temperance; and to temperance, patience;
-and to patience, godliness; and to godliness, brotherly kindness; and
-to brotherly kindness, charity. For if these things be in you, and
-abound they make you that ye shall neither be barren nor unfruitful
-in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ. (II Peter i:5-8.)&mdash;"The
-Gospel," page 37.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn127"></a><a href="#PartIfn127">127</a>. Mark xvi. I Cor. xii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn128"></a><a href="#PartIfn128">128</a>. Matt. x. Acts i:4-8.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn129"></a><a href="#PartIfn129">129</a>. Compare Luke x with Matt. x.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn130"></a><a href="#PartIfn130">130</a>. Acts i:3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn131"></a><a href="#PartIfn131">131</a>. Acts xiv:23. Acts xx:17, 28.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn132"></a><a href="#PartIfn132">132</a>. Phil. i:1. Titus i:5-7.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn133"></a><a href="#PartIfn133">133</a>. I Cor. xii:28-30.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn134"></a><a href="#PartIfn134">134</a>. Eph. iv:10.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn135"></a><a href="#PartIfn135">135</a>. I Cor. xii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn136"></a><a href="#PartIfn136">136</a>. Eph. iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn137"></a><a href="#PartIfn137">137</a>. John xv:16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn138"></a><a href="#PartIfn138">138</a>. Acts v:1-6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn139"></a><a href="#PartIfn139">139</a>. Acts xiii:1-3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn140"></a><a href="#PartIfn140">140</a>. Acts xiv:2, 3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn141"></a><a href="#PartIfn141">141</a>. Acts xx:28, 29.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn142"></a><a href="#PartIfn142">142</a>. Heb. v:1, 5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn143"></a><a href="#PartIfn143">143</a>. Ex. xxviii:1.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn144"></a><a href="#PartIfn144">144</a>. III Nephi xxvi:6, 7.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn145"></a><a href="#PartIfn145">145</a>. III Nephi xii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn146"></a><a href="#PartIfn146">146</a>. III Nephi xi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn147"></a><a href="#PartIfn147">147</a>. III Nephi xxvii:37; also Moroni ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn148"></a><a href="#PartIfn148">148</a>. III Nephi xxvii and IV Nephi i:1.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn149"></a><a href="#PartIfn149">149</a>. Moroni iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn150"></a><a href="#PartIfn150">150</a>. Moroni vi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIfn151"></a><a href="#PartIfn151">151</a>. IV Nephi i:1-7.
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p103"></a>{103}</span></p>
-<h2><a name="PARTII"></a>PART II.
-<br>
-<br>THE APOSTASY.
-</h2>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p105"></a>{105}</span></p>
-
-<h2>SECTION I.
-</h2>
-<p>In Part I, our narrative was confined mainly to those propitious
-circumstances which made for the successful introduction of the gospel
-and the founding of the church of Christ. In Part II, we are to deal
-with those adverse events which led finally to the subversion of the
-Christian religion. We commence with the
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Persecution of the Christians by the Jews.</b>&mdash;The Messiah
-forewarned his disciples that they would be persecuted by the world,
-pointed out the reasons for it, and comforted them by reminding them
-that the world had hated him before it hated them; that the servant
-was not greater than his lord; and for that matter all the prophets
-which were before them had been persecuted by the generations in which
-they lived, and that, for the reason that they were not of the world,
-therefore the world hated and destroyed them.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn1"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn1">1</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> Two special reasons may be assigned for the persecution
-of the saints by the Jews. 1. They looked upon Christianity as a
-rival religion to Judaism, a thing of itself sufficient to engender
-bitterness, jealousy, persecution. 2. If Christianity should live and
-obtain a respectable standing, the Jews of that generation must ever
-be looked upon as not only putting an innocent man to death, but as
-rejecting and slaying the Son of God. To crush this rival religion
-and escape the odium which the successful establishment of it would
-inevitably fix upon them, were the incentives which prompted that first
-general persecution which arose against the church in Jerusalem, and
-that commenced in the very first year after Messiah's ascension.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p106"></a>{106}</span> <b>3.</b> The extent of the persecution or the time of its
-continuance may not be determined; but that it was murderous may be
-learned from the fact that Stephen was slain,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn2"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn2">2</a>]</sup> as was also James, the
-son of Zebedee,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn3"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn3">3</a>]</sup> and James, the Just, brother of the Lord.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn4"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn4">4</a>]</sup> The
-Apostle Peter was imprisoned and would doubtless have shared the fate
-of the other martyrs, but that he was delivered by an angel.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn5"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn5">5</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> Nor was this persecution confined alone to Jerusalem; on
-the contrary the hate-blinded high priests and elders of the Jews in
-Palestine conferred with the Jews throughout the Roman provinces,
-and everywhere incited them to hatred of the Christians, exhorting
-them to have no connection with, and to do all in their power to
-destroy the "superstition," as the Christian religion was then
-called. Nor were they content with what they themselves could do,
-but they exhausted their ingenuity in efforts to incite the Romans
-against them. To accomplish this they charged that the Christians had
-treasonable designs against the Roman government, as "appeared by their
-acknowledging as their king one Jesus, a malefactor whom Pilate had
-most justly put to death."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn6"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn6">6</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> The Jews themselves, however, were in no great favor with
-the Romans since their impatience of Roman restraint led them to be
-constantly on the eve of rebellion and sedition, and frequently to
-break out into deeds of violence against the Roman authority. This lack
-of favor rendered the power of the Jews unequal to their malice against
-the church of Christ.
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> The imperious nation, too, whose forefathers had rejected
-the prophets and at the last had crucified the Son of God with every
-circumstance of cruelty, crying out in the streets of their holy city,
-"crucify him, and let his blood be upon us and on our children,"<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn7"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn7">7</a>]</sup>
-were about to meet the calamities which their wickedness called down
-upon them. The Roman emperor Vespasian <span class="pagenum"><a name="p107"></a>{107}</span> [Ves-pa-zhe-an], tired
-of their repeated seditions, at last sent an army under Titus to
-subjugate them. The Jews made a stubborn resistance and a terrible
-war followed. Jerusalem, crowded with people who had come into the
-city from the surrounding country to attend the Passover, was besieged
-for six months, during which time more than a million of her wretched
-inhabitants perished of famine. The city was finally taken, the walls
-thereof thrown down and the temple so completely destroyed that not
-one stone was left upon another. Thousands of Jews were cut to pieces
-and nearly a hundred thousand of those taken captive were sent into
-slavery.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn8"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn8">8</a>]</sup> All the calamities predicted by the Messiah<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn9"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn9">9</a>]</sup> befell the
-city and people. Jerusalem from that time until now has been trodden
-down of the Gentiles; and will be until the times of the Gentiles are
-fulfilled.
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> According to Eusebius, the Christians escaped these calamities
-which befell the Jews; for the whole body of the church at Jerusalem,
-having been commanded by divine revelation, given to men of approved
-piety, removed from Jerusalem before the war and dwelt at Pella, beyond
-Jordan, where they were secure from the calamities of those times.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn10"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn10">10</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Persecution by the Romans.</b>&mdash;It is more difficult to
-understand why the Romans should persecute the Christians than it is
-to see why the Jews did it. The Romans were polytheists, and affected
-the fullest religious liberty. The author of the "Decline and Fall of
-the Roman Empire" claims that this period of Roman history was the
-golden age of religious liberty. And such was the multitude of deities
-collected in Rome from various nations, and such the variety of worship
-to be seen in the great capital of the empire, that Gibbon has said:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Rome gradually became the common temple of her subjects; and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p108"></a>{108}</span>
- the freedom of the city was bestowed on all the gods of mankind.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn11"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn11">11</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Furthermore, the same high authority says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The various modes of worship which prevailed in the Roman world,
- were all considered by the people as being equally true; by the
- philosophers as all equally false; and by the magistrates as
- equally useful. And thus toleration produced not only mutual
- indulgences, but even religious concord.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>9.</b> The student who would learn why the mild and beautiful
-Christian religion was alone selected to bear the wrath and feel the
-vengeful power of Rome, must look deeper than the reasons usually
-assigned for the strange circumstance. It is superficial to say that
-the persecution was caused by the charges of immorality. The Roman
-authorities had the best of evidence that the charges were false. (See
-note 1, end of section). Equally absurd is it to assign as a cause
-the supposed atheism of the Christians, for that was the condition
-of nearly all Rome; while the charge that they were traitors to the
-emperor, and expected to see the empire supplanted by the kingdom of
-Christ&mdash;which some assign as the chief cause of Roman persecution&mdash;was
-treated with contempt by the emperors. (See note 2, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> The true cause of the persecution was this: Satan knew there
-was no power of salvation in the idolatrous worship of the heathen,
-and hence let them live on in peace, but when Jesus of Nazareth and
-his followers came, in the authority of God, preaching the gospel,
-he recognized in that the principles and power against which he had
-rebelled in heaven, and stirred up the hearts of men to rebellion
-against the truth to overthrow it. This was the real cause of
-persecution, though it lurked under a variety of pretexts, the most of
-which are named in the above supposed causes.
-</p>
-<p><b>11. The First Roman Persecution.</b>&mdash;The first emperor <span class="pagenum"><a name="p109"></a>{109}</span> to
-enact laws for the extermination of Christians was Nero. (See note
-3, end of section). His decrees against them originated rather in an
-effort to shield himself from popular fury than any desire that he
-had to protect the religion of the State against the advancement of
-Christianity. Nero, wishing to witness a great conflagration, had
-set fire to the city of Rome. The flames utterly consumed three of
-the fourteen wards into which the city was divided, and spread ruin
-in seven others. It was in vain that the emperor tried to soothe the
-indignant and miserable citizens whose all had been consumed by the
-flames, and neither the magnificence of the prince, nor his attempted
-expiation of the gods could remove from him the infamy of having
-ordered the conflagration.
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> Therefore, [writes Tacitus, one of the most trustworthy of
-all historians], to stop the clamor Nero falsely accused and subjugated
-to the most exquisite punishments a people hated for their crimes,
-called Christians. The founder of the sect, Christ, was executed in the
-reign of Tiberius, by the Procurator Pontius Pilate. The pernicious
-superstition, repressed for a time, burst forth again; not only
-through Judea, the birth-place of the evil, but at Rome also, where
-everything atrocious and base centers and is in repute. Those first
-seized, confessed; then a vast multitude, detected by their means, were
-convicted, not so much of the crime of burning the city as of hatred
-of mankind. And insult was added to their torments; for being clad in
-skins of wild beasts they were torn to pieces by dogs; or affixed to
-crosses to be burned, were used as lights to dispel the darkness of
-night, when the day was gone. Nero devoted his garden to the show,
-and held circensian [sir-sen-shan] games, mixing with the rabble, or
-mounting a chariot, clad like a coachman. Hence, though the guilty and
-those meriting the severest punishment, suffered, yet compassion was
-excited, because they were destroyed, not for the public good, but to
-satisfy the cruelty of an individual.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn12"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn12">12</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Time of the Persecution.</b>&mdash;The time of this persecution <span class="pagenum"><a name="p110"></a>{110}</span>
-is fixed by the date of the great conflagration, which Tacitus set down
-as commencing on the 18th of July, A. D. 65. It lasted six days; and
-soon after that the persecution broke out.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. Continuance and Extent of the Persecution.</b>&mdash;How long this
-persecution lasted, and whether it was confined to the city of Rome
-or extended throughout the empire is difficult to determine. From
-some remarks made by Tertullian [Ter-tul-li-an], writing in the next
-century, it would seem that the decrees of Nero against the Christians
-of Rome were general laws, such as those afterwards passed by Domitian.
-But the inferences of his language are generally discredited or
-accounted the result of Tertullian's fervid rhetoric; and Gibbon's
-conclusion that the persecution was confined within the walls of Rome
-generally accepted.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn13"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn13">13</a>]</sup> It was in this persecution, according to the
-tradition of the early Christian fathers, that Peter and Paul suffered
-martyrdom.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. The Second Persecution.</b>&mdash;The second persecution against the
-Christian church broke out in the year A. D. 93 or 94, under the reign
-of Domitian. It was during this persecution that the Apostle John
-was banished to Patmos. Eusebius states that at the same time, for
-professing Christ, Flavi Domitilla, the niece of Flavius Clemens, one
-of the consuls of Rome at the time, "was transported with many others,
-by way of punishment, to the island of Pontia." The pretext for this
-persecution is ascribed to the fears of Domitian that he would lose
-his empire. A rumor reached him that a person would arise from the
-relatives of Messiah who would attempt a revolution; whereupon the
-jealous nature of the emperor prompted him to begin this persecution.
-In it both Jews and Christians suffered, the emperor ordering that
-the descendants of David, especially, should be put to death. An
-investigation of the prospects of a revolution arising from such a
-quarter caused Domitian to dismiss <span class="pagenum"><a name="p111"></a>{111}</span> the matter with contempt and
-order the persecution to cease.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn14"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn14">14</a>]</sup> (See note 2, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Pliny's Testimony to the Morality of the Christians.</b>&mdash;The
-character which this writer gives of the Christians of that age (his
-celebrated letter was written to Trajan early in the second century),
-and which was drawn from a pretty accurate inquiry, because he
-considered their moral principles as the point in which the magistrate
-was interested, is as follows: He tells the emperor that some of
-those who had relinquished the society, or who, to save themselves
-pretended that they had relinquished it, affirmed "that they were
-wont to meet together on a stated day, before it was light, and sang
-among themselves alternately a hymn to Christ as a God; and to bind
-themselves by an oath, not to the commission of any wickedness, but
-that they would not be guilty of theft, or robbery, or adultery; that
-they would never falsify their word, or deny a pledge committed to
-them when called upon to return it." This proves that a morality more
-pure and strict than was ordinary, prevailed at that time in Christian
-societies.&mdash;Paley's "Evidences."
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Interview of Domitian and the Relatives of the Lord.</b>&mdash;There
-were yet living of the family of our Lord the grandchildren of
-Judas, called the brother of our Lord according to the flesh. These
-were reported as being of the family of David, and were brought to
-Domitian by the evocaties. For this emperor was as much alarmed at
-the appearance of Christ as Herod. He put the question whether they
-were of David's race and they confessed that they were. He then asked
-them what property they had, or how much money they owned. And both of
-them answered, that they had between them only nine thousand denarii,
-and this they had not in silver, but in the value of a piece of land,
-containing only thirty-nine acres; from which they raised their taxes
-and supported themselves by their own labor. Then they also began to
-show their hands, exhibiting the hardness of their bodies, and the
-callosity formed by incessant labor on their hands, as evidence of
-their own labor. When asked also, respecting Christ and his kingdom,
-what was its nature, and when and where it was to appear, they replied
-that it was not a temporal nor an earthly kingdom, but celestial
-and angelic; that it would appear at the end of the world, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p112"></a>{112}</span>
-when coming in glory he would judge the quick and the dead, and give
-to every one according to his works. Upon which Domitian despising
-them, made no reply; but treating them with contempt, as simpletons,
-commanded them to be dismissed, and by a decree ordered the persecution
-to cease.&mdash;Hegesippus, quoted by Eusebius.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Character of Nero.</b>&mdash;Nero was the incarnation of depravity&mdash;the
-very name by which men are accustomed to express the fury of
-unrestrained malignity. Bad as he was, he was not worse than Rome. She
-had but her due. Nay, when he died the rabble and the slaves crowned
-his statue with garlands and scattered flowers over his grave. And
-why not? Nero never injured the rabble, never oppressed the slave. He
-murdered his mother, his brother, his wife, and was the tyrant of the
-wealthy, the terror of the successful. He rendered poverty sweet, for
-poverty alone was secure; he rendered slavery tolerable, for slaves
-alone or slavish men were promoted to power. The reign of Nero was the
-golden reign of the populace, and the holiday of the bondman.&mdash;Bancroft.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. Of what did Messiah warn his followers?
-</p>
-<p>2. What reason may be assigned for the hatred of the world towards the
-people of God?
-</p>
-<p>3. What special reason can you assign for the persecution of the
-Christians by the Jews?
-</p>
-<p>4. What can you say of the bitterness and extent of the first great
-persecution?
-</p>
-<p>5. What circumstance rendered the Jewish power to injure the Christians
-unequal to the malice?
-</p>
-<p>6. Describe the great conflict between the Jews and the Romans.
-</p>
-<p>7. By what means did the Christians living at Jerusalem escape the
-calamities of those times?
-</p>
-<p>8. What makes it difficult to understand why the Romans persecuted the
-Christians?
-</p>
-<p>9. What can you say of the charges of immorality as justifying Roman
-persecution? (Note 1).
-</p>
-<p>10. What of the charge of treason? (Note 2).
-</p>
-<p>11. What was the true cause of the persecution?
-</p>
-<p>12. Who was the first emperor to enact laws against the Christians?
-</p>
-<p>13. What was the character of Nero? (Note 3).
-</p>
-<p>14. What was the incentive which prompted Nero to persecute the
-Christians?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p113"></a>{113}</span> 15. What was the duration and extent of the first Roman
-persecution?
-</p>
-<p>16. Under whose reign did the second Roman persecution begin?
-</p>
-<p>17. On what was the persecution based?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p114"></a>{114}</span></p>
-
-
-
-<h2>SECTION II.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Condition of the Church in the Second Century.</b>&mdash;During
-the second century the church had many seasons of immunity from
-persecution. The Roman emperors for the most part were of a mild and
-equitable character, and at the beginning of the century there were
-no laws against the Christians, as those enacted both by Nero and
-Domitian had been repealed. The first by the senate, the second by his
-successor, Nerva.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn15"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn15">15</a>]</sup> Still it must not be supposed that the saints
-were free from persecution. Their troubles arose, however, rather from
-the tumults of the rabble at the instigation of the pagan priests than
-from any desire of the emperors to oppress them.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> As the Christians had no temples, no altars, no clouds of
-incense, no smoking victims&mdash;in short, as they had none of the pomp and
-circumstance in their simple religion which attended pagan worship,
-they were open to the charge of atheism by the great body of the people
-of the Roman empire; and, in their judgment, deserved the severest
-tortures and death.
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> If the empire had been afflicted by any recent calamity, [remarks
- Gibbon], by a plague, a famine, or an unsuccessful war; if the
- Tiber had, or if the Nile had not, risen above its banks; if the
- earth had shaken, or if the temperate order of the seasons had
- been interrupted, the superstitious pagans were convinced that the
- crimes and impurities of the Christians, who were spared by the
- excessive lenity of the government, had at length, provoked the
- divine justice.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn16"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn16">16</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>And however virtuous the emperors were, however mild or equitable in
-character the governors of the provinces, it is certain <span class="pagenum"><a name="p115"></a>{115}</span> they did
-not hesitate to appease the rage of the people by sacrificing a few
-obnoxious victims.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Persecution Under Marcus Aurelius.</b>&mdash;The strangest fact
-of all connected with the persecutions of this century is that the
-saints suffered most under the most virtuous of the emperors&mdash;Marcus
-Aurelius [Mar-cus Au-re-li-us], who allowed the judges to put many of
-the saints accused of crime to torture. Among those of note who fell in
-this persecution were Polycarp, the bishop of Smyrna (see note 1, end
-of section.) and Justin Martyr, the philosopher. The persecution was
-most severe in Gaul (France), the churches of Lyons and Vienne being
-well nigh utterly destroyed. The unparalleled cruelties practiced upon
-the saints in those cities are related at length by Eusebius<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn17"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn17">17</a>]</sup> in
-letters written by those who survived the persecution. (See note 2, end
-of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Edicts of Severus.</b>&mdash;Early in the third century a law was
-enacted by the Emperor, Severus [Se-ver-us,] making it criminal
-for any reason to abandon the religion of his fathers for that of
-the Christians or the Jews. The object of the law was to stay the
-propagation of Christianity which was spreading abroad on every hand;
-and while it was not intended to increase the hardships of those
-already Christians, it nevertheless encouraged the governors and judges
-of some of the provinces&mdash;especially those of Egypt and other parts of
-Africa and Asia&mdash;to sorely afflict the saints. Many of the poor were
-put to death&mdash;thousands of them if we may credit Eusebius&mdash;and many
-of the rich intimidated into paying large sums of money to the judges
-to secure them from torture and death. Still this persecution was not
-long continued, nor was it general throughout the empire, and after
-it subsided there was a long period of peace&mdash;pity it is that we have
-to say that it was more hurtful to the church than the periods of the
-cruelest persecution.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p116"></a>{116}</span> <b>5. Persecution Under Decius Trajan.</b>&mdash;In the middle of
-this century under Decius Trajan [De-ci-us Tra-jan] the severest and
-most disastrous persecution of all befell the Christians. The emperor
-must have been impelled both by his fear of the Christians and his
-attachment to the ancient religion of the Romans to publish his
-terrible edicts by which he hoped to destroy the Christian church. The
-governors of the provinces were ordered, on pain of forfeiting their
-own lives, either to exterminate all Christians utterly, or bring them
-back by pains and tortures to the religion of their fathers. Even
-Gibbon, whose constant effort is to belittle the sufferings of the
-early Christians, says of this persecution:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The bishops of the most considerable cities were removed by exile
- or death; the vigilance of the magistrates prevented the clergy of
- Rome during sixteen months from proceeding to a new election and
- it was the opinion of the Christians that the emperor would more
- patiently endure a competitor for the purple than a bishop in the
- capital.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn18"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn18">18</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>6.</b> For more than two years the persecution raged with unmitigated
-fury; and great multitudes of Christians, in all the Roman provinces,
-were butchered in the most inhuman manner.
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> This persecution, [writes Dr. Mosheim], was more cruel and
- terrific than any which preceded it; and immense numbers,
- dismayed, not so much by the fear of death as by the dread of
- the long continued tortures by which the magistrates endeavored
- to overcome the constancy of the Christians, professed to
- renounce Christ, and procured for themselves safety, either by
- sacrificing&mdash;i. e., offering incense before the idols&mdash;or by
- certificates purchased with money.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn19"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn19">19</a>]</sup> (See note 3, end of section.)
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>7.</b> The immediate successors of Decius continued this persecution,
-which with a pestilential disease which prevailed in many of the Roman
-provinces, greatly increased the hardships <span class="pagenum"><a name="p117"></a>{117}</span> of the saints; but the
-latter part of the century passed away in peace.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Diocletian Persecution.</b>&mdash;In the commencement of the fourth
-century a peculiar state of affairs existed in the Roman empire. In 284
-A. D., Diocletian [Di-o-kle-shan], a native of Dalmatia [Dal-ma-shi-a],
-whose parents were slaves, was proclaimed emperor. The year following,
-feeling that the extent of the empire was too vast to be managed by
-a single mind, he chose a colleague, one Maximian [Max-im-i-an], an
-unlettered soldier, with whom he shared the authority of emperor and
-the title of "Augustus." Soon afterwards they each chose a colleague
-with whom they shared their authority. These were Constantinus
-[Con-stan-ti-nus] Chlorus [Klo-rus] and Galerius [Ga-le-ri-us]. On
-their ascension to this honor they each took the title of "Caesar," and
-so matters stood at the opening of the fourth century.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> The church had peace at the opening of this century, and
-at first there were no indications that it would be broken. But
-early within that period Diocletian was persuaded to undertake the
-suppression of the Christian religion. This he attempted by demanding
-that the Christians give up their sacred books; if they refused they
-were put to death. The constancy of all the Christians, no, not even
-that of all their bishops and clergy, was equal to this trial, and many
-voluntarily surrendered the sacred writings in their possession, to
-save themselves from punishment and death.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> The royal palace at Nicomedia being twice set on fire,
-soon after the first edict of Diocletian was published, the crime
-was charged to the Christians, and led to the issuance of a second
-edict which caused many Christians to suffer the penalties inflicted
-on incendiaries&mdash;torture and death. Following this came rebellion
-against Roman authority in Nicomedia and Syria. This too was charged
-to the intrigue of Christians (see notes 4 and 5, end of section), and
-was made a pretext for <span class="pagenum"><a name="p118"></a>{118}</span> throwing all bishops and ministers into
-prison. A third edict authorized the employment of torture to compel
-them to offer sacrifices to the gods of the heathen. It was hoped by
-Diocletian that if these leaders of the church could be forced into
-acts of apostasy the people would follow. A great multitude, therefore,
-of excellent men in all parts of Christendom&mdash;excepting Gaul&mdash;were put
-to death, and others condemned to labor in the mines.
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> But Diocletian was disappointed in the effects of these
-assaults on the leaders of the church. The members thereof remained
-obdurate in their adherence to the Christian faith; whereupon he issued
-a fourth edict, directing the magistrates to compel all Christians to
-offer sacrifice to the gods and to use tortures for that purpose. As
-the governors yielded strict obedience to these orders, the Christian
-church was reduced to the last extremity.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn20"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn20">20</a>]</sup>
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> <b>12.</b> With the exception of Gaul, [says Schlegel], streams
- of Christian blood flowed in the provinces of the Roman empire.
- Everywhere the Christian temples lay in ruins, and assemblies
- for worship were all suspended. The major part had forsaken the
- provinces and taken refuge among the barbarians. Such as were
- unable or unwilling to do this, kept themselves concealed, and were
- afraid for their lives if they appeared in public. The ministers
- of Christ were either slain, or mutilated and sent to the mines,
- or banished from the country. The avaricious magistrates had
- seized upon nearly all their church property and their private
- possessions. Many, through dread of undergoing torture, had made
- away with their own lives and many apostatized from the faith; and
- what remained of the Christian community consisted of weak, poor,
- and timorous persons.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn21"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn21">21</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Truly it would appear from this that the beast unto whom was given
-power "to make war with the saints and overcome them"<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn22"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn22">22</a>]</sup> had at last
-triumphed.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p119"></a>{119}</span> <b>13. End of Pagan Persecution.</b>&mdash;This, however, was to be
-the last great persecution of the Christians by the heathens. In
-305 Diocletian, to the surprise of his own and all succeeding ages,
-resigned the empire and compelled his associate, Maximian, to do the
-same. This left the empire in the hands of the two Caesars, who became
-the emperors. Like their predecessors they chose colleagues; but
-Constantius Chlorus, dying at York, in Britain, his son, Constantine
-[Kon-stan-tin], afterwards called the Great, was proclaimed emperor by
-the army. The associate of his father, Galerius, and the two Caesars
-refused to ratify the election, and civil war ensued which lasted for
-eighteen years. Finally, however, Constantine prevailed over all his
-rivals and became sole emperor, A. D., 323. Being, like his father,
-favorably disposed towards Christianity, his accession to the throne
-brought universal peace to the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. The Luminous Cross Seen by Constantine.</b>&mdash;It was during
-the above-mentioned civil war, while marching against the forces
-of Maxentius [Max-en-ti-us], one of the rebellious Caesars, that
-Constantine and his army are said to have seen near midday, in the
-heavens, a luminous cross bearing this inscription in Greek: "By This
-Conquer." The same night Christ appeared to him in a dream accompanied
-with the same sign and instructed him to make a standard bearing the
-cross as a protection against his enemies. The circumstance is related
-at great length in the life of Constantine by Eusebius, on whose
-sole authority the story rests. It is regarded as suspicious that he
-makes no reference to the matter in Ecclesiastical History, written
-only twelve years after the event. (See note 7, end of section.)
-The story is altogether rejected by some writers as the cunning
-invention of interested priests seeking to make the cross an object of
-veneration; and even Christian writers of high standing&mdash;among them
-Mosheim&mdash;consider the story to be doubtful.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. Constantine and his Friendliness to Christianity.</b>&mdash;With
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p120"></a>{120}</span> the accession of Constantine to the imperial throne, as before
-remarked, the peace of the church was assured. His father had favored
-the Christians, and in the cruel persecution under Diocletian, he kept
-the provinces of Gaul free from the effusion of Christian blood; and
-his son seems to have fallen heir to his father's friendliness for the
-Christian faith.
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> It is difficult to determine the motives of Constantine for
-favoring the Christian cause and resolving upon the destruction of the
-pagan religion. Whether it was the appearance of the miraculous cross
-in the heavens, as some aver, the influence of Helena, his mother,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn23"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn23">23</a>]</sup>
-as Theodoret claims, or through the arguments of an Egyptian priest
-who promised him absolution for the crime of murder if he would accept
-Christianity.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn24"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn24">24</a>]</sup> But let the motive be what it may, benevolence,
-policy, conviction or remorse, coupled with a hope of forgiveness,
-Constantine from the time of his accession to the throne became
-the avowed protector of the Christian church; and at length by his
-powerful influence made Christianity the reigning religion of the Roman
-empire.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn25"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn25">25</a>]</sup> The exiles were recalled; those condemned to labor in the
-mines were released; those who had been robbed of their property were
-reinstated in their possessions, and the demolished Christian temples
-were ordered to be rebuilt and enlarged. The church militant after
-the emperor's edicts of toleration became the church tranquil, so far
-as external opposition was concerned. Her ministers were welcomed to
-the court of the emperor, admitted to the imperial table, and even
-accompanied the monarch in his expeditions. Wealth, honor and imperial
-patronage were bestowed almost without measure on the Christian church.
-From the position of a despised, persecuted religion, Christianity
-was suddenly exalted to <span class="pagenum"><a name="p121"></a>{121}</span> the very throne of the Roman world. Yet
-these things which are usually accounted among the good fortunes of
-the church, were, as we shall yet see, disastrous to the purity of the
-Christian religion.
-</p>
-<p><b>17. Progress of the Church Under the Patronage of
-Constantine.</b>&mdash;The court of Constantine was converted, of course;
-but it is to be feared that it was the hope of wealth and honor, the
-example of the emperor, his exhortations, his irresistible smile,
-rather than the truths of Christianity which wrought a change in the
-hearts of the obsequious crowd that filled the palace. A number of
-cities manifested a forward zeal in a voluntary destruction of their
-temples and idols, but it is more than likely that the municipal
-distinctions and popular donations which were held out as a reward
-for such conduct, rather than belief in the Christian faith are what
-inspired the iconoclasts. Twelve thousand men and a proportionate
-number of women and children were baptized in a single year in Rome;
-but how far did the twenty pieces of gold and a white garment promised
-to each convert by the emperor influence the conversion of this
-great number? Nor was the influence of Constantine in respect to the
-Christian religion confined within the provinces of the empire. It
-extended to the barbarous peoples outside; who, while they had held
-in disdain a despised and proscribed sect, soon learned to esteem a
-religion which had been so lately embraced by the greatest monarch, and
-the most civilized nation of the globe.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn26"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn26">26</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>18. The Character of Constantine.</b>&mdash;It is as difficult to come to
-a right conclusion as to the real character of Constantine as it is to
-decide the motives which led him to accept the Christian religion; for
-in the former as in the latter case the authorities are conflicting.
-The Christians who were favored by his actions extol him for his
-virtues; while the pagans who were despoiled by him, execrate him for
-his crimes. It is <span class="pagenum"><a name="p122"></a>{122}</span> certain, however, that he put to death his own
-son Crispus, and his wife Fausta, on a suspicion that was at least
-precarious. He cut off his brother-in-law Licinius, and his offending
-son, contrary to his plighted word; and, according to Schlegel and
-Gibbon, he was much addicted to pride and voluptuousness:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> He pursued the great objects of his ambition through the dark and
- bloody paths of war and policy, and after the victory, abandoned
- himself without moderation to the abuse of his good fortune. As
- he advanced in years he seems to have declined in the practice of
- virtue, blighting in his old age, when a convert to the Christian
- faith, and famed as the protector of the Christian church, the fair
- promises he gave in his youth, and while a pagan, of being a truly
- virtuous prince. It is not likely that the patronage of such an
- emperor would contribute to the real progress of religion or assist
- in the establishment of the church of Christ.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Martyrdom of Polycarp.</b>&mdash;Presently the instruments prepared
-for the funeral pile were applied to him. As they were on the point of
-securing him with spikes, he said: "Let me be thus, for he that gives
-me strength to bear the fire, will also give me power, without being
-secured by you with these spikes, to remain unmoved on the pile." They
-therefore did not nail him, but merely bound him to the stake. But he,
-closing his hands behind him, and bound to the stake as a noble victim
-selected from the great flock an acceptable sacrifice to Almighty
-God, said: "Father of thy well-beloved and blessed Son, Jesus Christ,
-through whom we have received the knowledge of thee, the God of angels
-and power and all creation, and of all the family of the righteous,
-that live before thee, I bless thee that thou hast thought me worthy of
-the present day and hour to have a share in the number of the martyrs
-and in the cup of Christ, unto the resurrection of eternal life, both
-of the soul and body, in the incorruptible felicity of the Holy Spirit.
-Among whom may I be received in thy sight this day as a rich and
-acceptable sacrifice, as thou the faithful and true God hast prepared,
-hast revealed and fulfilled. Wherefore on this account, and for all
-things I praise thee, I bless thee; I glorify thee through the eternal
-High Priest, Jesus Christ, thy well beloved Son. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p123"></a>{123}</span> Through whom
-be glory to thee with Him in the Holy Ghost, both now and forever.
-Amen." After he had repeated Amen, and had finished his prayer, the
-executioners kindled the fire.&mdash;Eusebius.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. A Second Century Persecution.</b>&mdash;Would the reader know what a
-persecution in those days was, I would refer him to a circular letter
-written by the church at Smyrna soon after the death of Polycarp, who
-it will be remembered had lived with St. John; and which letter is
-entitled a relation of that Bishop's martyrdom. "The sufferings," say
-they, "of all the other martyrs were blessed and generous which they
-underwent according to the will of God. For so it becomes us, who are
-more religious than others, to ascribe the power and ordering of all
-things unto him. And indeed who can choose but admire the greatness
-of their minds, and that admirable patience and love of their Master,
-which then appeared in them? Who when they were so flayed with
-whipping, that the frame and structure of their bodies were laid open
-to their very inward veins and arteries, nevertheless endured it. In
-like manner, those who were condemned to the beasts and kept a long
-time in prison, underwent many cruel torments, being forced to lie
-upon sharp spikes laid under their bodies, and tormented with divers
-other sorts of punishments; that so, if it were possible, the tyrants
-by the length of their sufferings might have brought them to deny
-Christ."&mdash;Paley.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Persecution Under Decius Trajan.</b>&mdash;This persecution was
-more terrible than any preceding one, because it extended over the
-whole empire, and because its object was to worry the Christians into
-apostasy by extreme and persevering torture.&mdash;The certificated or
-libellatici, are supposed to be such as purchased certificates from the
-corrupt magistrates, in which it was declared that they were pagans and
-had complied with the demands of the law, when neither of these was
-fact. To purchase such a certificate was not only to be partaker in the
-fraudulent transaction, but it was to prevaricate before the public in
-regard to Christianity, and was inconsistent with that open confession
-of Christ before men, which He Himself requires.&mdash;Murdock. (Note in
-Mosheim, vol. I., cent. iii., p. 1, ch. ii.)
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The Insurrection of Syria and Nicomedia.</b>&mdash;Some degree of
-probability could be attached to the charge against the Christians of
-causing the insurrection from the fact that their inconsiderate zeal
-sometimes led them to deeds which had an aspect of rebellion. At the
-commencement of this persecution, for example, a very respectable
-Christian tore down the imperial edict against the Christians which was
-set up in a public place.&mdash;Schlegel.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Unwise Zeal of the Christians.</b>&mdash;Several examples have been
-preserved of a zeal impatient of those restraints which the emperors
-had provided for the security of the church. The Christians sometimes
-supplied by their voluntary declaration the want of an accuser, rudely
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p124"></a>{124}</span> disturbed the public service of paganism, and rushing in crowds
-round the tribunal of the magistrates, called upon them to pronounce
-and to inflict the sentence of the law. The behavior of the Christians
-was too remarkable to escape the notice of the ancient philosophers;
-but they seemed to have considered it with much less admiration than
-astonishment. Incapable of conceiving the motives which sometimes
-transported the fortitude of believers beyond the bounds of prudence
-or reason, they treated such an eagerness to die as the strange
-result of obstinate despair, of stupid insensibility or of suspicious
-frenzy.&mdash;Gibbon.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Spirit of the Christian Martyrs.</b>&mdash;The spirit of the Christian
-martyrs, at least of the first three centuries, may be learned from
-the epistle of Ignatius of Antioch, who, early in the second century
-was taken from Syria to Rome, where he suffered martyrdom by being
-thrown to the wild beasts. On his journey to Rome, under sentence of
-death, he wrote an epistle to the Roman saints from which the following
-passage is taken: "I write to the churches and I declare to all, that
-willingly I die for God, if it be that you hinder me not. I beg of you,
-do not become to me an unseasonable love. Let me be of the beasts, by
-whose means I am enabled to obtain God. I am God's wheat, and by the
-teeth of the beasts am I ground, that I may be found God's pure bread.
-Rather entreat kindly the beasts that they may be a grave for me and
-may leave nothing of my body; that not even when I am fallen asleep, I
-may be a burden upon any man. Then I shall be in truth a disciple of
-Jesus Christ, when the world seeth not even my body. Supplicate our
-Lord for me, that by these instruments I may be found a sacrifice to
-God. I am not commanding you like Peter and Paul; they were apostles,
-I am a condemned convict; they were free, I am hitherto a slave. But
-if I suffer I am a free man of Jesus Christ, and I shall rise from
-the dead, in him a free man. And now since I am in bonds, I learn to
-desire nothing. From Syria to Rome I am cast among beasts by sea and
-by land, by night and by day; since I am bound between ten leopards,
-who get worse when I do good to them. But by their ill-treatment I am
-furthered in my apprenticeship; still by that I am not justified. May
-I have to rejoice of the beasts prepared for me! and I pray that they
-may be found ready for me, and I will kindly entreat them quickly to
-devour me, and not as they have done to some, being afraid of them, to
-keep from touching me. And should they not be willing, I will force
-them."&mdash;Ignatius' Epistle to the Romans.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Constantine's Luminous Cross.</b>&mdash;Now if this narrative [by
-Eusebius] is all true, and if two connected miracles were actually
-wrought as here stated, how happens it that no writer of that age,
-except Eusebius, says one word about the luminous cross in the
-heavens? How came it that Eusebius himself said nothing about it in
-his Ecclesiastical <span class="pagenum"><a name="p125"></a>{125}</span> History, which was written twelve years
-after the event, and about the same length of time before his life of
-Constantine? Why does he rely solely on the testimony of the emperor
-and not even intimate that he even heard of it from others; whereas,
-if true, many thousands must have been eye-witnesses of the fact. What
-mean his suggestions, that some may question the truth of the story;
-and his caution not to state anything as a matter of public notoriety,
-but to confine himself simply to the emperor's private representation
-to himself. * * * But how came the whole story of the luminous cross to
-be unknown to the Christian world, for more than twenty-five years, and
-then to transpire only through a private conversation between Eusebius
-and Constantine?&mdash;Murdock.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. From what source did the persecution of the church come during the
-2nd century?
-</p>
-<p>2. What charge did pagan priests bring against the Christians?
-</p>
-<p>3. What in the estimation of the ignorant pagans gave the color of
-truth to their charge?
-</p>
-<p>4. To what circumstance were the calamities which befell the empire
-usually attributed?
-</p>
-<p>5. What strange fact meets us in connection with the persecution of the
-2nd century?
-</p>
-<p>6. What two noted martyrs were put to death in the reign of Marcus
-Aurelius?
-</p>
-<p>7. Describe the martyrdom of Polycarp.
-</p>
-<p>8. What was the nature of some of the tortures inflicted on the
-Christians? (Note 2).
-</p>
-<p>9. What was the nature and purpose of the edicts of Severus?
-</p>
-<p>10. What was the effect of this persecution and the period of peace
-which followed it?
-</p>
-<p>11. What can you say of the persecution under Trajan?
-</p>
-<p>12. What does Gibbon say of it?
-</p>
-<p>13. How long did it continue?
-</p>
-<p>14. What means of avoiding the severe tortures were offered the
-Christians?
-</p>
-<p>15. What was the effect of this persecution?
-</p>
-<p>16. What other circumstance added to the afflictions of the Christians?
-</p>
-<p>17. What changes in respect to the Roman government took place early in
-the 4th century?
-</p>
-<p>18. What method did Diocletian adopt for the suppression of the
-Christian religion?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p126"></a>{126}</span> 19. What special crimes were charged to the Christians in the
-reign of Diocletian?
-</p>
-<p>20. What can you say of the zeal of the Christians? (Note 4 and 5).
-</p>
-<p>21. What effect did these persecutions have on the church?
-</p>
-<p>22. What event put a stop to the pagan persecutions?
-</p>
-<p>23. Relate the circumstances which led to Constantine becoming emperor
-of Rome.
-</p>
-<p>24. What effect did his accession to the throne have upon the Christian
-church?
-</p>
-<p>25. By what circumstance is Constantine said to have been converted to
-the Christian religion?
-</p>
-<p>26. What evidences exist against the probability of this story?
-</p>
-<p>27. What good service did the father of Constantine do the Christians
-in the Diocletian persecution?
-</p>
-<p>28. What are the several motives assigned for Constantine's
-friendliness to the Christian church?
-</p>
-<p>29. What can you say of the emperor's treatment of the Christians?
-</p>
-<p>30. What considerations very likely influenced converts when
-Constantine extended his patronage to the church?
-</p>
-<p>31. What was the character of Constantine?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p127"></a>{127}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION III.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Accusations of the Pagans.</b>&mdash;The simplicity of the
-Christian religion was made a reproach to the church of Christ by
-the pagan priests. The saints were accused of atheism, an accusation
-which found support in the fact that the primitive church had no
-temples, no incense, no sacrifice, no incantations, pomp or ceremony
-in its worship. "The Christians have no temples, therefore they have
-no gods," was an argument sufficiently convincing to the heathen. It
-was but natural, perhaps, that the Christians should seek to cast off
-this reproach; but the desire to do so led to the introduction of many
-ceremonies quite at variance with the religion of Jesus Christ, and
-eventually subverted it altogether.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Outward Ordinances of the Christian Religion.</b>&mdash;The outward
-ordinances of the gospel consisted of baptism, the laying on of hands
-for the imparting of the Holy Ghost, and the Lord's Supper. The laying
-on of hands was also employed in ordaining men to the Priesthood and
-in administering to the sick. In the latter case it was accompanied by
-anointing with oil.
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> While it does not appear that there was any specific law
-commanding or regulating fasts, the ancient saints occasionally joined
-abstinence from their food with their prayers, and especially when
-engaged in great undertakings. But the frequency of his fasts and the
-time of their continuance were left to each man's judgment.
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> They met on the first day of the week&mdash;Sunday&mdash;for worship
-(see note 1, end of section) the meetings, during the first century,
-being held in most instances in private houses. The <span class="pagenum"><a name="p128"></a>{128}</span> ceremonies
-were of the simplest character. They consisted of reading the
-scriptures, the exhortation of the president of the assembly&mdash;"neither
-eloquent nor long, but full of warmth and love;" the testimony of such
-as felt moved upon by the Holy Ghost to bear testimony, exhort or
-prophesy; the singing of hymns; the administration of the Sacrament and
-prayers.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn27"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn27">27</a>]</sup> (See note 2, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Baptism.</b>&mdash;Baptism was administered by immersing the candidate
-in water. The only pre-requisites were faith in Jesus Christ and
-repentance. As soon as the candidate professed these he was admitted
-into the church by baptism.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn28"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn28">28</a>]</sup> In a short time, however, the
-simplicity of this ordinance was corrupted and burdened with useless
-ceremonies. In the second century the newly baptized converts, since
-by baptism they had been born again, were taught to exhibit in their
-conduct the innocence of little infants. Milk and honey, the common
-food of infants, were administered to them, after their baptism, to
-remind them of their infancy in the church. Moreover, since by baptism
-they were released from being servants of the devil, and became God's
-free men, certain forms borrowed from the Roman ceremony of manumission
-of slaves were employed in baptism. As by baptism also they were
-supposed to be made God's soldiers, like newly enlisted soldiers in the
-Roman army, they were sworn to obey their commander, etc.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Further Additions of Ceremonies to Baptism.</b>&mdash;A century later
-(the third) further ceremonies were added. It was supposed that some
-evil spirit was resident in all vicious persons and impelled them
-to sin. Therefore, before entering the sacred font for baptism, an
-exorcist by a solemn, menacing formula declared them free from the
-bondage of Satan, and hailed them servants of Christ.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn29"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn29">29</a>]</sup> After baptism
-the new converts <span class="pagenum"><a name="p129"></a>{129}</span> returned home, "decorated with a crown and a
-white robe, the first being indicative of their victory over the world
-and their lusts, the latter of their acquired innocence."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn30"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn30">30</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> We have already noted the fact that baptism was administered
-in the days of the apostles as soon as profession of faith and
-repentance were declared, but in the second and third century baptism
-was only administered twice a year, and then only to such candidates as
-had gone through a long preparation and trial.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn31"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn31">31</a>]</sup> The times chosen for
-the administration of the ordinance were on the vigils of Easter and
-Whitsuntide;<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn32"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn32">32</a>]</sup> and in the fourth century it had become the custom to
-accompany the ceremony with lighted wax candles, to put salt&mdash;an emblem
-of purity and wisdom&mdash;in the mouth of the baptized, and everywhere a
-double anointing was administered to the candidates, the one before,
-the other after, baptism.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn33"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn33">33</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Form of Baptism Changed.</b>&mdash;It must have been early in the
-third century that the form of baptism began to be changed. Up to this
-time it had been performed only by immersion of the whole body. But
-in the first half of the third century, Cyprian, bishop of Carthage,
-during a controversy respecting the re-baptism of those who in times
-of persecution had denied the faith, decided that those whose weak
-state of health did not permit them to be immersed, were sufficiently
-baptized by being sprinkled.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn34"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn34">34</a>]</sup> The first case of this kind of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p130"></a>{130}</span> baptism is related by Eusebius. The person to whom it was so
-administered was Novatus [No-va-tus], a desperate heretic, who created
-a schism in the church and became the founder of a sect. He was among
-the number of so-called Christians who put off baptism as long as he
-dared; in order to enjoy a life of sin and then through baptism, just
-before death, obtain forgiveness for them&mdash;a custom very prevalent in
-those times. Novatus being attacked with an obstinate disease, and
-supposed to be at the point of death, was baptized by having water
-sprinkled upon him as he lay in bed; "if indeed," says Eusebius, "it be
-proper to say one like him did receive baptism."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn35"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn35">35</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> This innovation continued to spread until now the general rule
-among so-called Christian sects is to baptize by sprinkling or pouring.
-For this change there is no warrant of revelation. It destroys the
-symbol there is in baptism as taught by Messiah and his apostles&mdash;that
-of a burial and resurrection&mdash;of a death and a birth&mdash;a death unto sin,
-a birth unto sin, a birth unto righteousness. (See notes 3 and 4, end
-of section.) It is one of those innovations which changed an ordinance
-of the everlasting covenant.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Baptism Misapplied.</b>&mdash;About the time that the form of
-administering baptism was changed it began to be misapplied, that
-is, it was administered to infants. Just when this custom came into
-vogue may not be determined, but clearly it has no warrant for its
-existence either in the doctrines or practice of the apostles or any
-New Testament writer. (See note 5, end of section.) No truth is more
-plainly taught by the apostles than that baptism is for the remission
-of sins, and must be preceded by faith and repentance; and as infants
-are incapable of sin, or of exercising faith, or of repenting,
-evidently they are not fit subjects for baptism.
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> Still it became the custom in the latter part of the second
-century or early in the third to baptize infants. In the year 253 A.
-D., a council of sixty bishops, in Africa&mdash;at which <span class="pagenum"><a name="p131"></a>{131}</span> Cyprian,
-bishop of Carthage, presided, took under consideration the question
-whether infants should be baptized within two or three days after
-birth, or whether it should be deferred until the eighth day, as was
-the custom of the Jews in respect to circumcision. The council decided
-that they should be baptized at once, that is within a day or two after
-birth.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn36"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn36">36</a>]</sup> It will be observed that the question was not as to whether
-infants should be baptized or not, but when they should be baptized,
-within a day or two after birth or not until they were eight days old.
-The matter was treated in the council as if infant baptism was a custom
-of long standing. This proves, not that infant baptism is a correct
-doctrine, or that it was derived from the teachings and examples of
-the apostles&mdash;as some aver<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn37"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn37">37</a>]</sup>&mdash;but that in a century or so after the
-introduction of the gospel, men began to pervert it by changing and
-misapplying its ordinances. The false doctrine of infant baptism is
-now practiced by nearly all so-called Christian churches, Catholic and
-Protestant.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. The Sacrament.</b>&mdash;Much as the simple rite of baptism was
-burdened with useless ceremonies, changed in its form and misapplied,
-it was not more distorted than was the sacrament of the Lord's supper.
-The nature of the sacrament&mdash;usually called the eucharist&mdash;and the
-purposes for which it was instituted are so plain that he who runs may
-read.
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> From Paul's description of the ordinance, it is clear that
-the broken bread was an emblem of Messiah's broken body; the wine an
-emblem of his blood, shed for sinful man; and his disciples were to
-eat the one and drink the other in remembrance of him until he should
-return; and by this ceremony show forth the Lord's death.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn38"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn38">38</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p132"></a>{132}</span> <b>14.</b> It was designed as a memorial of Messiah's great
-atonement for mankind, a token and witness unto the Father that the Son
-was always remembered. It was to be a sign that those partaking of it
-were willing to take upon them the name of Christ, to always remember
-him, and keep his commandments. In consideration of these things being
-observed, the saints were always to have the Spirit of the Lord to be
-with them.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn39"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn39">39</a>]</sup> In this spirit and without great ceremony (see note 7,
-end of section) the sacrament was administered for some time.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. Administration of the Sacrament Corrupted.</b>&mdash;In the third
-century there were longer prayers and more ceremony connected with
-the administration of the sacrament than in the century preceding.
-Disputations arose as to the proper time to administer it. Some
-considered the morning, others the afternoon, and some the evening
-the most suitable time. All were not agreed either as to how often
-the ordinance should be celebrated. Gold and silver vessels were
-used, and neither those doing penance, nor those unbaptized, though
-believers, were <span class="pagenum"><a name="p133"></a>{133}</span> permitted to be present at the celebration of
-the ordinance; "which practice, it is well known, was derived from the
-pagan mysteries."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn40"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn40">40</a>]</sup> Very much of mystery began to be associated with
-it even at an early date. The bread and the wine through the prayer
-of consecration were considered to undergo a mystic change by which
-they were converted into and became the very body and the very blood
-of Jesus Christ; so that they were no longer regarded as emblems of
-Messiah's body and blood, but the body and blood itself.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn41"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn41">41</a>]</sup> This is
-the doctrine of transubstantiation.
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> The dogma established, it was but a short step to the
-"elevation of the host;" that is, the elevation of the bread and
-wine before they were distributed, so that they might be viewed with
-reverence by the people. Thus came the adoration of the symbols.
-</p>
-<p><b>17. Institution of the Mass.</b>&mdash;Hence came also the mass, or the
-idea of a sacrifice being connected with the celebration <span class="pagenum"><a name="p134"></a>{134}</span> of the
-eucharist. It was held that as Jesus was truly present in the bread and
-wine he could be offered up, and was truly offered up as an oblation to
-his Eternal Father. The death of the victim was not supposed to occur
-in reality but mystically, in such a way, however, as to constitute a
-true sacrifice, commemorative of that of the cross, and not different
-from it in essence. The same victim was present, and offered up by
-Christ through his minister, the priest. The sacrifice at the cross was
-offered with real suffering; true shedding of blood, and real death of
-the victim; in the mass it was taught there was a mystical shedding of
-blood and a mystical death of the same victim.
-</p>
-<p><b>18.</b> Into such absurdities was the simple sacrament of the Lord's
-supper distorted! When attended with all the pomp and ceremony of
-splendid altars, lighted tapers, processions, elevations and chantings:
-offered up by priests and bishops clad in splendid vestments and in
-the midst of clouds of incense, accompanied by mystic movements and
-genuflections of bishops and priests, the church could congratulate
-itself on having removed the reproach at the first fastened upon the
-Christians for not having altars and sacrifice. The mass took away the
-reproach; and the new converts to Christianity were accustomed to see
-the same rites and ceremonies employed in this mystical sacrifice of
-the Son of God as they had seen employed in offering up of sacrifice to
-their pagan deities. (See notes 8 and 9, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>19. Suppression of Half the Sacrament.</b>&mdash;In time the idea became
-prevalent that as the body and blood of Messiah were equally and
-entirely present under each "species"&mdash;that is, equally and entirely
-present in the bread and in the wine&mdash;it was equally and entirely
-given to the faithful whichever they received. This idea, of course,
-rendered it unnecessary to partake of both bread and wine&mdash;hence
-the practice of communion in one kind. That is, the sacrament was
-administered by giving <span class="pagenum"><a name="p135"></a>{135}</span> bread alone to the communicant. To remark
-that this was changing the ordinance of the sacrament as instituted
-by Messiah&mdash;suppressing half of it in fact&mdash;can scarcely be necessary
-since it is so well known that Jesus administered both bread and wine
-when instituting the sacred ordinance.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn42"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn42">42</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Reasons Why the Ancient Saints Worshiped on Sunday.</b>&mdash;But
-Sunday is the day on which we all hold our common assembly, because it
-is the first day on which God, when he changed the darkness and matter,
-made the world; and Jesus Christ our Savior on the same day rose from
-the dead; for the day before that of Saturn he was crucified, and on
-the day after it, which is Sunday, he appeared to his apostles and
-disciples and taught them these things which we have given to you also
-for your consideration.&mdash;Justin Martyr.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Description of Christian Public Worship in the Second
-Century.</b>&mdash;On the day which is called Sunday there is an assembly in
-the same of all who live in cities or in country districts; and the
-records of the apostles, or the writings of the prophets, are read as
-long as we have time. Then the reader concludes, and the president
-verbally instructs and exhorts us to the imitation of these excellent
-things. Then we all rise together and offer up our prayers. And, as I
-said before, when we have concluded our prayer, bread is brought, and
-wine and water, and the president in like manner offers up prayers and
-thanksgivings with all his strength, and the people give their assent
-by saying Amen; and there is a distribution and a partaking by every
-one of the eucharistic elements [the sacrament,] and to those who are
-not present they are sent by the hands of the deacons. And such as are
-in prosperous circumstances, and wish to do so, give what they will,
-each according to his choice; and what is collected is placed in the
-hands of the president, who assists the orphans and widows, and such as
-through sickness or any other cause are in want; and to those who are
-in bonds, and to strangers from afar, and, in a word, to all who are in
-need, he is a protector.&mdash;Justin Martyr.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Baptism a Symbol of Burial and Resurrection.</b>&mdash;In writing
-to the saints of Rome, Paul says: "Know ye not, that so many of us
-as were baptized into Jesus Christ were baptized into his death?
-Therefore <span class="pagenum"><a name="p136"></a>{136}</span> we are <em>buried</em> with him by baptism into death; that
-like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the Father,
-even so we also should walk in newness of life. For if we have been
-<em>planted</em> together in the likeness of his death, we shall be also in
-the likeness of his resurrection." (Rom. vi:3-5.) In writing to the
-saints of Colosse, the same apostle reminds them that they had been
-"<em>Buried</em> with him [Christ] in baptism, wherein also ye are risen with
-him through the faith of the operation of God who hath raised him from
-the dead." (Col. ii: 12.)
-</p>
-<p>In these passages the terms "buried" and "planted" are in plain
-allusion to the manner in which the saints had received the ordinance
-of baptism, which could not have been by sprinkling or pouring, as
-there is no burial or planting in the likeness of Christ's death, or
-being raised in likeness of his resurrection in that; but in immersion
-there is.&mdash;"The Gospel&mdash;Roberts," page 173.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The Manner of Baptism Instituted Among the Nephites.</b>&mdash;"Verily
-I say unto you, that whoso repenteth of his sins through your words,
-and desireth to be baptized in my name, on this wise shall ye baptize
-them: Behold, ye shall go down and stand in the water, and in my name
-shall ye baptize them. And now behold, these are the words which ye
-shall say, calling them by name, saying, Having authority given me
-of Jesus Christ, I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the
-Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen. And then shall ye immerse them in
-the water and come forth again out of the water. And after this manner
-shall ye baptize in my name."&mdash;Jesus to the Nephites.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Infant Baptism not Ordained of Christ or the Apostles.</b>&mdash;As
-faith and baptism are constantly so closely connected together in the
-New Testament, an opinion was likely to arise that where there could
-be no faith there could be no baptism. It is certain that Christ did
-not ordain infant baptism. * * We cannot prove that the apostles
-ordained infant baptism; from those places where the baptism of a whole
-family is mentioned (Acts xvi:33; I Cor. i: 16), we can draw no such
-conclusions, because the inquiry is still to be made whether there
-were any children in those families of such an age that they were not
-capable of any intelligent reception of Christianity; for this is the
-only point on which the case turns.&mdash;Neander "Church History," vol. I.,
-page 360.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Infant Baptism Forbidden Among the Nephites.</b>&mdash;The word of
-the Lord came to me by the power of the Holy Ghost, saying: * * *
-Behold, I came into the world not to call the righteous, but sinners
-unto repentance; the whole need no physician, but they that are
-sick; wherefore little children are whole for they are incapable of
-committing sin; wherefore the curse of Adam is taken from them in me,
-that <span class="pagenum"><a name="p137"></a>{137}</span> it hath no power over them; and the law of circumcision is
-done away in me. * * * Wherefore, my beloved son, I know that it is
-solemn mockery before God that ye should baptize little children. * *
-* Awful is the wickedness to suppose that God saveth one child because
-of baptism, and the other must perish because he hath no baptism. Wo
-be unto him that shall pervert the ways of the Lord after this manner,
-for they shall perish, except they repent.&mdash;Mormon to Moroni (Book of
-Moroni, chapter viii.)
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Manner of Administering the Sacrament&mdash;Second Century.</b>&mdash;When
-the Christians celebrated the Lord's supper which they were accustomed
-to do chiefly on Sundays, they consecrated a part of the bread and
-wine of the oblations, by certain prayers pronounced by the president,
-the bishop of the congregation. The wine was mixed with water, and the
-bread was divided into small pieces. Portions of the consecrated bread
-and wine were commonly sent to the absent and the sick, in testimony
-of fraternal affection towards them. There is much evidence that this
-most holy rite was regarded as very necessary to the attainment of
-salvation.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Pagan Rites Introduced into the Christian Worship&mdash;Fourth
-Century.</b>&mdash;The Christian bishops introduced, with but slight
-alterations, into the Christian worship, those rites and institutions
-by which formerly the Greeks and Romans, and other nations had
-manifested their piety and reverence towards their imaginary deities;
-supposing that the people would more readily embrace Christianity, if
-they saw that the rites handed down to them from their fathers still
-existed unchanged among the Christians, and perceived that Christ and
-the martyrs were worshiped in the same manner as formerly their gods
-were. There was, of course, little difference in these times, between
-the public worship of the Christians and that of the Greeks and Romans.
-In both alike there were splendid robes, mitres, tiaras, wax tapers,
-crosiers, processions, illustrations, images, golden and silver vases,
-and numberless other things.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. Superstitious Observances Connected with the Eucharist&mdash;Eighth
-Century.</b>&mdash;As evidence of the superstition which was associated with
-the eucharist, note the following: "If any one through negligence,
-shall destroy the eucharist, i. e. the sacrifice, let him do penance
-one year. * * * If he lets it fall on the ground, carelessly, he must
-sing fifty Psalms. Whoever neglects to take care of the sacrifice, so
-that worms get into it, or it lose its color or taste, must do penance
-thirty or twenty days; and the sacrifice must be burned in the fire.
-Whoever turns up the cup at the close of the solemnity of the mass must
-do penance forty days. If a drop from the cup should fall on the altar,
-the minister must suck up the drop and do penance three days; and the
-linen cloth which the drop touched, must be washed three times, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p138"></a>{138}</span>
-over the cup, and the water in which it was washed be cast into the
-fire."&mdash;Decisions of Pope Gregory III. (Harduin's Concilia.)
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What reproach did the simplicity of the Christian religion lead to?
-</p>
-<p>2. What effect did the endeavor to get rid of that reproach have on the
-Christian religion?
-</p>
-<p>3. Enumerate the outward ordinances of the gospel.
-</p>
-<p>4. What can you say of Christian fasts?
-</p>
-<p>5. On what day did the Christians meet for worship?
-</p>
-<p>6. What reasons do the early church fathers give for holding public
-worship on that day? (Note 1).
-</p>
-<p>7. Describe the meetings of the early Christians. (Note 2.)
-</p>
-<p>8. How was baptism administered in the early church?
-</p>
-<p>9. What does baptism represent? (Note 3).
-</p>
-<p>10. Tell how the simplicity of this ordinance was changed.
-</p>
-<p>11. What additions were made to the ceremony of baptism in the third
-century?
-</p>
-<p>12. When was the form of baptism changed?
-</p>
-<p>13. Relate the first known case of baptism by sprinkling.
-</p>
-<p>14. In what way was the ordinance of baptism misapplied?
-</p>
-<p>15. Was infant baptism ordained of the apostles? (Note 5).
-</p>
-<p>16. About when was infant baptism introduced into the church?
-</p>
-<p>17. Does the antiquity of infant baptism prove it to be a correct
-doctrine?
-</p>
-<p>18. What does it prove?
-</p>
-<p>19. What was said to the Nephites about infant baptism? (Note 6).
-</p>
-<p>20. For what was the sacrament of the Lord's supper instituted?
-</p>
-<p>21. Give Paul's description of the introduction of the sacrament.
-(Note).
-</p>
-<p>22. About what time was the manner of administering the sacrament
-changed?
-</p>
-<p>23. What was the nature of those changes?
-</p>
-<p>24. What custom crept into the practice of the Christian church that
-was forbidden by Jesus among the Nephites? (Note).
-</p>
-<p>25. What can you say of the antiquity of the doctrine of
-transubstantiation?
-</p>
-<p>26. What is the mass?
-</p>
-<p>27. What reproach did the institution of the mass remove from the
-Christians?
-</p>
-<p>28. At what cost was the reproach removed?
-</p>
-<p>29. Who introduced pagan rites into Christian worship?
-</p>
-<p>30. Why was it done? (Note 8.)
-</p>
-<p>31. What reason is given for suppressing half the sacrament?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p139"></a>{139}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION IV.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Early Church Organization Not Perpetuated.</b>&mdash;We have
-already stated in Part I of this work that the church organization
-established by Messiah&mdash;consisting of apostles, prophets, seventies,
-bishops, etc.&mdash;was designed to be perpetual. It is a singular fact,
-however, that aside from filling up the vacancy in the quorum of
-the twelve&mdash;occasioned by the fall of Judas Iscariot&mdash;there is no
-account in any of the writings of the apostles or fathers of the first
-centuries&mdash;on the eastern hemisphere<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn43"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn43">43</a>]</sup>&mdash;of any attempt to perpetuate
-the quorum of the twelve by filling up the vacancies occasioned by the
-death of the original apostles. The same may also be said of the quorum
-of the seventies.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> The reason for this will doubtless be found in the fact that
-in the very days of the apostles the great apostasy which was to end
-eventually in the subversion of the Christian religion, had begun.
-(See note 2, end of section.) And since "the mystery of iniquity"
-had already begun its work in the days of the apostles, and men were
-rapidly proving themselves unworthy of the church of Christ, the Lord
-did not permit his servants to perpetuate these quorums of the higher
-Priesthood.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Establishment of the Church by the Apostles.</b>&mdash;Whenever in
-their travels the apostles converted any considerable number of
-persons, in a city or district, they organized them into a church, or,
-speaking more precisely, into a branch of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p140"></a>{140}</span> the great universal
-church of Christ, and appointed either a bishop or an elder to preside
-over them. As long as the apostles lived they were regarded as the
-presiding authority of the universal church, and were looked to for
-counsel and instruction in all difficult matters that arose concerning
-doctrine or discipline. Their decisions were accepted as final, and
-well might it be so, since these men were guided in their counsels by
-revelation<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn44"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn44">44</a>]</sup> as well as by the wisdom which their large experience in
-company with Jesus Christ had given them.
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> But when the apostles died, and no one succeeded to their
-authority, the branches of the church were left separate and
-independent organizations, united, it is true, in faith and charity,
-but the visible, general presidency recognized in the apostles and
-cheerfully submitted to by all sections of the church, ceased when
-the apostles passed away, and each branch was left an independent
-organization of itself.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn45"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn45">45</a>]</sup> There is no evidence that there was such a
-thing as subordination among the churches when so left, or rank among
-the bishops. Each church was a sort of independent commonwealth, of
-which the bishop was president and a vassal to no other bishop.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn46"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn46">46</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Manner of Electing Bishops.</b>&mdash;The manner in which bishops
-were first elected was for the apostles to nominate them, and then
-for the whole church over which they were to preside to sustain them
-by their vote. After the apostles had passed away then "other men of
-repute" made the nominations <span class="pagenum"><a name="p141"></a>{141}</span> and the people sustained them as at
-first.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn47"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn47">47</a>]</sup> The duties and powers of the bishops in the first and in
-the greater part of the second century were limited to conducting the
-public worship, administering the ordinances of the gospel, settling
-difficulties which arose between brethren, attending in person the
-sick and the poor. They also were made the custodians and managers of
-the public fund. In all these duties they were assisted by the elders
-[presbyters] and the deacons of the church. Yet neither the bishops
-nor the elders, nor both of them together, seem to have had power to
-ordain or determine anything without the approbation and consent of
-the members of the church. The principle of common consent was closely
-adhered to in the primitive church. (See note 3, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Equality Among Bishops Changed.</b>&mdash;This equality of rank among
-the bishops, together with the simple form of church government,
-described above, was soon changed. The bishops who lived in cities
-either by their own labors or those of the elders associated with
-them, raised up new churches in the adjacent villages and hamlets. The
-bishops of these rural districts being nominated and ordained by the
-bishops presiding in the city, very naturally, perhaps, felt themselves
-under the protection and dependent upon the city bishops. This idea
-continued to grow until these "bishops of the suburbs and the fields,"
-were looked upon as a distinct order of officers, possessing a dignity
-and authority above the elders, and yet subordinate <span class="pagenum"><a name="p142"></a>{142}</span> to the
-bishops of the cities, who soon came to be designated as archbishops.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Origin of Metropolitans.</b>&mdash;Gradually and almost
-imperceptibly the church in its government began to follow the civil
-divisions of the Roman empire. The bishops of the metropolis of a civil
-province, in time, came to be regarded as having a general supervision
-of all the churches in that province, over the archbishops and
-indirectly over the suburban bishops or suffragans, as they began to
-be called, and finally, bishops merely. The bishops of these provinces
-were soon designated as metropolitans.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Rise and Influence of Councils.</b>&mdash;Concurrent with these
-changes arose the custom, first derived from the Greeks, of holding
-provincial councils. The bishops living in a single province met in
-council to confer upon matters of common interest to the churches of
-the province. These provincial councils met at stated times of the
-year, usually in the spring and autumn. At the first the attending
-bishops looked upon themselves as merely the representatives of their
-respective churches, without jurisdiction further than to discuss
-and come to agreement on matters of common concern. But gradually
-they usurped the power to order by decree where at first they were
-accustomed to advise or entreat&mdash;so easy is it to change the language
-of exhortation to that of command! Nor was it long ere the decrees of
-these provincial councils were forced upon the respective churches as
-laws to be implicitly obeyed. There was some resistance to this at
-first from the lower orders of the clergy; but that resistance was
-quickly overcome by the activity and ambition of the bishops, who were
-only too glad to escape from the restraints which the doctrine of
-"common consent"&mdash;a doctrine which made it necessary for the bishops
-to submit any matter of importance to their respective churches for
-the approbation of the people&mdash;imposed upon them. (See note 4, end of
-section.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p143"></a>{143}</span> <b>9. Conduct of Lower Clergy.</b>&mdash;As many changes occurred
-among the lower orders of the clergy as among the bishops. The elders
-and deacons became too proud to attend to the humble duties of their
-offices and hence a number of other officers were added to the church,
-while the elders and deacons spent much of their time in indolence and
-pleasure.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Corruption of Church Officials.</b>&mdash;To the evils of
-contention for power and place, which had its origin in arrogance
-and ambition&mdash;unbecoming those who profess to be followers and
-servants of Jesus Christ&mdash;must be added the vices of dissipation and
-voluptuousness. Many bishops, in the third century, affected the state
-of princes, especially those who had charge of the more populous and
-wealthy congregations; for they sat on thrones, surrounded by their
-ministers and other signs of their power, and dazzled the eyes and the
-minds of the populace with their splendid attire.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn48"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn48">48</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Church Government Modeled on the Plan of the Civil
-Government.</b>&mdash;It was reserved for the fourth century to see the
-church government more completely modeled on the plan of the civil
-government of the Roman empire, to witness more pride and arrogance
-in its rulers, and an increase of vices both in clergy and people.
-Early in this century, it will be remembered, Constantine, the emperor
-of Rome, avowed his conversion to Christianity, and as might have
-been expected that fact produced great changes in the fortunes of the
-church. It not only put an end to its persecutions but loaded its
-bishops with new honors and enlarged powers.
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> In saying that the church government was modeled upon the
-plan of the civil government we would not be understood as saying that
-the first was a <em>fac simile</em> of the second; there were some differences
-between them, but the civil divisions of the empire suggested the
-ecclesiastical divisions.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p144"></a>{144}</span> <b>13.</b> Under Constantine the Roman empire was divided into
-four prefectures, containing thirteen dioceses, embracing one hundred
-and sixteen provinces. Officers called praetorian prefects presided
-over the four prefectures&mdash;exarchs over the dioceses and governors
-over the provinces. The Bishops of Rome, Constantinople, Antioch and
-Alexandria having gained a pre-eminence over all other metropolitans
-were made to correspond with the four prefectures by Constantine, and
-assumed, before the close of the century, the title of patriarchs.
-Next to the patriarchs stood the bishops, whose jurisdiction extended
-over several provinces, corresponding to the civil exarchs,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn49"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn49">49</a>]</sup> though
-the bishops of this dignity did not equal in number the civil exarchs.
-Next came the metropolitan bishops, whose jurisdiction was limited
-to a single province. They corresponded to the civil governors of
-the provinces, whose authority was limited in like manner. After the
-metropolitans came the arch-bishops,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn50"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn50">50</a>]</sup> and then the bishops. Some of
-the latter were exempt from the jurisdiction of both metropolitans and
-arch-bishops, and hence were called independent bishops.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. Pre-Eminence of the Bishops of Rome.</b>&mdash;The distinctions of
-rank among the bishops of the Christian church first arose largely
-through the opulence and civil importance of the respective cities
-and provinces over which they presided&mdash;the membership of the church
-and its wealth usually bearing a just proportion to the size and
-civil importance of the city in <span class="pagenum"><a name="p145"></a>{145}</span> which it was located. It is not
-surprisingg, therefore, that the metropolitans and patriarchs also
-struggled for pre-eminence upon the same basis. That basis gave the
-bishop of Rome great advantage; for, as stated by Gibbon, "the Roman
-church was the greatest, the most numerous, and, in regard to the west,
-the most ancient of all the Christian establishments, many of which had
-received their religion from the pious labors of here missionaries."
-The fact, too, that for so many ages Rome had been the capital of the
-great empire led men naturally to give pre-eminence to the church
-established there.
-</p>
-<p><b>15.</b> Another thing which went far to establish the supremacy of
-the bishop of Rome was the tradition that Peter, the chief or "prince"
-of the apostles, had founded that church; that he became its first
-bishop; that the bishops succeeding him succeeded to his apostleship
-and to whatever of pre-eminence he held over his fellow apostles; and
-that pre-eminence, it is claimed, amounted to the right of presidency
-over the universal church.
-</p>
-<p><b>16. Objections to the Claims of the Bishop of Rome.</b>&mdash;That Peter,
-aided by Paul, did found the church at Rome there is little cause
-to doubt. It is also true that Peter was the chief or president of
-the apostles; that to him had been given the keys of the kingdom of
-heaven.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn51"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn51">51</a>]</sup> But that he became the bishop of Rome, or that the bishops
-of Rome succeeded to the apostleship and to that power which made him
-the president of the universal church of Christ, we cannot allow.
-</p>
-<p><b>17.</b> Our first reason for saying that Peter was not bishop of
-Rome is that the office of apostle and bishop are not identical. If
-Peter presided at all over the church at Rome he did so by virtue of
-his apostleship, not by becoming its bishop; but as his apostleship
-would give him the right to act in minor offices of the church&mdash;on the
-principle that the greater authority includes <span class="pagenum"><a name="p146"></a>{146}</span> the lesser&mdash;he may
-have presided for a time over the church at Rome.
-</p>
-<p><b>18.</b> Our second reason is that according to the very best
-authority on the subject, one Linus and not Peter was the first bishop
-of Rome. Irenaeus writing in the second century, says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The blessed apostles [Peter and Paul] then, upon founding
- and erecting the church [at Rome], committed the office of
- administering the church to Linus. Of this Linus, Paul speaks in
- the epistle to Timothy. To him succeeded Anacletus [An-a-cle-tus],
- and after him in the third place from the apostles, Clement
- received the bishopric.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn52"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn52">52</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>From this it plainly appears that Peter and Paul organized a church at
-Rome, and as in other cities they appointed a bishop to preside over
-it. Peter no more became the bishop of Rome than he did of the church
-at Jerusalem, or Paul of Antioch, Ephesus, or Corinth.
-</p>
-<p><b>19.</b> The bishop of Rome did not succeed to the apostleship of
-Peter, much less to the pre-eminence which he held among the apostles;
-and that for the very good reason that the office of bishop and that
-of apostle, as remarked above, are not identical. It would require an
-apostle to succeed an apostle, and as there is no account of an apostle
-being ordained to succeed to Peter's office, we conclude he had no
-successor. Here we might let the matter rest, but it will be proper
-to notice the arguments which are made by those who contend that the
-bishops of Rome are the true successors to the office and mission of
-the Apostle Peter.
-</p>
-<p><b>20. Scripture Basis of the Claims of the Bishop of Rome to
-Pre-Eminence.</b>&mdash;On one occasion Jesus said to his disciples, "Whom
-say ye that I am? And Simon Peter answered, * * * Thou art the Christ,
-the Son of the living God." To this Jesus said: "Blessed art thou,
-Simon Barjona; for flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but
-my Father which <span class="pagenum"><a name="p147"></a>{147}</span> is in heaven. And I say unto thee, That thou art
-Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church; and the gates of hell
-shall not prevail against it."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn53"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn53">53</a>]</sup> He then gave to Peter the keys of
-the kingdom of heaven&mdash;power to bind and loose on earth and in heaven.
-The argument is that since Peter, some time before this, had been given
-the name Cephas, which means a stone,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn54"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn54">54</a>]</sup> therefore when Jesus said,
-"Thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church," it is
-claimed that he meant than on Peter he would build his church.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn55"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn55">55</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>21. That this is a clear misconception of the scripture is apparent. If
-Messiah had meant to found the church on Peter, how unfortunate that he
-did not say, Thou art Cephas, a stone, and upon <em>thee</em> will I build my
-church! etc. But he did not. He first assured Peter that the knowledge
-he had received that Jesus was the Christ, the Son of the living God,
-was received by revelation from God&mdash;"And I say unto thee, That thou
-art Peter, and upon this rock [principle] will I build my church,"
-etc.; i.e., upon the principle of God revealing to men that Jesus was
-the Christ<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn56"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn56">56</a>]</sup>&mdash;on the principle of revelation.
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> Another passage quoted in support of the theory that the
-apostles had successors in the bishops of Rome is found in the
-following: Jesus after his resurrection said to his apostles:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye therefore
- and teach all nations; * * * and lo I am with you always even unto
- the end of the world.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn57"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn57">57</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>This is the argument&mdash;
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The apostles themselves were only to live the ordinary term of
- <span class="pagenum"><a name="p148"></a>{148}</span> man's life: therefore the commission of preaching and
- ministering, together with the promise of divine assistance,
- regards the successors of the apostles, no less than the apostles
- themselves. This proves that there must have been an uninterrupted
- series of successors of the apostles, in every age since their
- time; that is to say, successors to their doctrine, to their
- jurisdiction, to their orders, and to their mission.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn58"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn58">58</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Against this argument we put that of the late Apostle Orson Pratt:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> We do not admit that the promise&mdash;"Lo, I am with you always, even
- unto the end of the world," had any reference to any persons
- whatever only the eleven disciples mentioned. * * * * They were the
- only persons whom he [Jesus] addressed and to whom he made this
- great promise. "But," says Dr. Milner, "they were only to live
- the ordinary term of man's life," and consequently he draws the
- conclusion that the promise could not be fulfilled to them without
- successors. According to this curious inference of the learned
- bishop, the Lord must have forsaken the eleven disciples as soon
- as they died; for if he admit that Jesus continued with them after
- the period of the death of their mortal bodies, and that he will
- continue with them even unto the end of the world, then what need
- would there be for successors in order that the promise might be
- fulfilled? Prove that Jesus has not been with the eleven apostles
- from the time of their death until the present time, and that he
- will not be with them even unto the end of the world, and after you
- have proved this, you will prove that Jesus has falsified his word;
- for to be with the successors of the apostles is not to be with
- them. But whether the apostles have successors or not, Jesus will
- always be with them, and will bring them with him when he shall
- appear in his glory, and they shall sit upon thrones and judge the
- house of Israel during the great Millennium, while Jesus will not
- only be with them, but will reign with them even unto the end of
- the world.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn59"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn59">59</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>23.</b> Those who believe that the church was founded on Peter;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p149"></a>{149}</span>that he became the bishop of Rome; that those who succeeded
-to that bishopric became the heir to his apostleship and right of
-presidency over the universal church, are as weak in their arguments as
-they are wrong in their conceptions of the foundation of the church and
-the right of succession in the priesthood.
-</p>
-<p><b>24. Primacy of the Bishops of Rome Allowed by the Fathers.</b>&mdash;It
-cannot be denied that the early fathers of the Christian church
-conceded to the bishops of Rome a certain "primacy of order and
-association;" but they did not concede to them any such authority
-as the popes wielded from the fifth and sixth centuries onward. The
-assumption of autocratic powers was resisted in the third century
-by Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, who contended for the equality and
-independence of all bishops. (See note 5, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>25. Opposition of the Bishops of Constantinople.</b>&mdash;After Cyprian
-the Roman pontiffs found their chief opponents in the bishops of
-Constantinople. That city was made the capital of the empire early in
-the fourth century; and became a "New Rome." The importance given to
-the city by this act, and the lavish embellishments and increase of
-population which followed it, conferred great dignity on the patriarch
-appointed to preside there; and the council of Constantinople held A.
-D. 381, conferred upon him the second place among the great bishops of
-the world&mdash;the bishop of Rome being first. The council of Chalcedon,
-held in the next century [A. D. 451], decreed that the bishop of "New
-Rome" ought to be equal in power and authority with the bishop of Rome,
-assigning as a reason that the cities where they resided were equal in
-rank and dignity.
-</p>
-<p><b>26.</b> It would appear that second place ill-suited the ambitious
-prelates of "New Rome," and in this century began that struggle for
-supremacy between the bishops of the ancient and the new capital of the
-empire which ended finally in the division of the church. The strife
-raged with varying fortunes; but in the main <span class="pagenum"><a name="p150"></a>{150}</span> the Roman pontiffs
-were most successful. Still in the last half of the sixth century
-the bishop of Constantinople, John, called the Faster&mdash;on account of
-the austerity of his life&mdash;assumed the title of universal bishop and
-continued to hold it in spite of all the efforts and threats of the
-Roman prelates. Early in the seventh century the emperor, Phocas, being
-displeased with Cyriacus, the bishop of Constantinople, he divested
-him of the title of universal bishop and conferred it upon the Roman
-pontiff, Boniface III. "After Phocas' death the prelate of the east
-re-assumed the title. The two bishops each preserved it, and with
-equal ambition strove for the pre-eminence."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn60"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn60">60</a>]</sup> Instead of dwelling
-together as brethren and working for the spread of truth, they spent
-their time in vain disputes about the extent of their respective
-jurisdictions and wasted their revenues and strength in conquests and
-reprisals of each other's ecclesiastical provinces.
-</p>
-<p><b>27. The Ascendency of the Roman Pontiffs.</b>&mdash;Gradually, however,
-the Roman pontiffs surpassed their eastern competitors in the struggle
-for power. The first reason for this will be found in the superior
-activity and that restless energy of the western people. While the east
-was at a standstill in its missionary enterprises, at this period,
-the west was using its best endeavors to extend the faith among the
-barbarous peoples of Germany and Briton; and everywhere they went they
-taught submission to the decrees of the Roman pontiff. Not only did
-Rome send missionaries to the barbarians, but the barbarians came to
-Rome. They came with arms in their hands, and as conquerors, it is
-true, and in the closing years of the fifth century obtained an easy
-victory over the western division of imperial Rome. But if imperial
-Rome was vanquished, there rose above its ruins and above the kingdoms
-founded upon them by the all-conquering barbarians, papal Rome, in
-majesty no <span class="pagenum"><a name="p151"></a>{151}</span> less splendid than imperial Rome in her palmiest days;
-and in the course of time, the victorious barbarians bowed in as humble
-submission to the wand of the popes as their ancestors had to the
-eagle-mounted standards of the emperors.
-</p>
-<p><b>28.</b> Another reason why the Roman pontiff outstripped his
-eastern rival in the struggle for supremacy will be found in the
-superstitious reverence in which the barbarous nations that fell
-under the influence of Roman missionaries were accustomed to hold
-their priests. In the days of paganism in Gaul (France) and Germany
-the priests reigned over both people and magistrates, controlling
-absolutely the jurisdiction of the latter. The proselytes to the
-Christian faith among them, readily transferred that devout obedience
-which they had given to pagan priests, to the Christian bishops. The
-latter were not slow in appropriating to themselves all the honors
-the rude barbarians had before paid to their pagan priests, while
-the extraordinary reverence&mdash;which amounted to worship, according to
-some authorities&mdash;they bestowed upon their chief priest, was readily
-transferred to the pope. (See note 6, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>29. The Great Division of the Church in the Ninth Century.</b>&mdash;The
-jealousy of the bishops of Rome and Constantinople finally ended in
-a division of the church, which remains to this day. It occurred
-in this manner: About the middle of the ninth century the emperor
-of the east&mdash;Michael&mdash;removed Ignatius [Ig-na-shi-us], bishop of
-Constantinople&mdash;whom he accused of treason&mdash;and set up one Photius
-[Fo-shi-us] in his place. Ignatius appealed to the bishop of Rome,
-Nicolaus I. Nicolaus [Nik-o-lus] called a council, which decided that
-the election of Photius was irregular and unlawful, and pronounced
-that he, with all his adherents, was unworthy of Christian communion.
-Instead of being humbled by this decree, and much less frightened at
-it, Photius convened a council, and in turn excommunicated the bishop
-of Rome.
-</p>
-<p><b>30.</b> To follow the controversies in respect to religion which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p152"></a>{152}</span> followed this action, and the contests which arose about the
-jurisdiction over certain ecclesiastical provinces, to note the
-criminations and recriminations, the excommunications and counter
-excommunications would be not only a dreary task but one which the
-limits of this work preclude. Let it be sufficient to say that the
-breach made in the church in the middle of the ninth century, and which
-had its origin in the mutual jealousies of the bishops of Rome and
-Constantinople, rather than in the wrong done to the deposed Ignatius,
-or doctrinal difference which afterwards arose&mdash;continued to widen and
-has proven to be a chasm which up to the present it has been impossible
-to bridge.
-</p>
-<p><b>31. Means by Which Roman Pontiffs Gained Ascendency.</b>&mdash;The popes
-of Rome, however, easily outstripped the prelates of Constantinople in
-wealth, in pride, in power, in the magnificence of their courts, in
-the veneration paid them by their subjects, in the extent of territory
-they brought under their jurisdiction, in the influence wielded in the
-affairs of the world. For by encouraging appeals to themselves; by
-assuming the care of all the churches, as if it were a part of their
-official duty; by appointing vicars in churches, over which they had no
-claims to jurisdiction; by assuming to be judges where they should have
-only been mediators; by requiring accounts to be sent to them of the
-affairs of foreign churches; by imposing the rites and usages of their
-own church upon all others, as being of apostolic origin; by insisting
-that their elevation was due to the pre-eminence of the Apostle
-Peter&mdash;whose successor they claimed to be; by maintaining that their
-fancied prerogatives belonged to them by divine right; by threatening
-with excommunication all who would not submit to their decrees;<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn61"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn61">61</a>]</sup> by
-accepting the homage which the barbarians anciently bestowed upon their
-pagan priests;<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn62"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn62">62</a>]</sup> by assuming <span class="pagenum"><a name="p153"></a>{153}</span> the temporal power of princes,
-and obtaining large grants of lands from kings and emperors<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn63"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn63">63</a>]</sup> (see
-note 7, end of section)&mdash;by these means was that splendid though
-corrupt power established, before which monarchs trembled, and which
-for ages ruled the destinies of Europe.
-</p>
-<p><b>32. Rise of the Temporal Power of the Pope.</b>&mdash;The Roman pontiffs,
-not satisfied with claiming to hold the keys of heaven, determined
-through the prestige which this claim gave them to rule the earth.
-</p>
-<p><b>33.</b> The popes were at first dependent for their election upon the
-suffrages of the clergy and people of Rome. The election after the
-days of Constantine had also to receive the approval of the emperor.
-But in course of time all this was changed. The popes succeeded at
-last in conferring the privilege of electing a successor to the chair
-of St. Peter upon the clergy alone; and finally lodged that power in
-the college of cardinals.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn64"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn64">64</a>]</sup> The next step was to render the election
-independent of the sanction of the emperors. This, too, was finally
-accomplished. But no sooner was the church thus made independent of
-kings and emperors than the former began to dominate the latter, whose
-power was weakness in comparison with that of the popes.
-</p>
-<p><b>34.</b> They assumed the right not only to excommunicate and
-anathematize kings, but to free their subjects from their allegiance,
-and thus encourage rebellions and regicides. They assumed the power to
-inflict temporal punishments for violations of God's laws; and then
-claimed the power to remit those punishments <span class="pagenum"><a name="p154"></a>{154}</span> for a consideration
-paid into the sacred treasury.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn65"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn65">65</a>]</sup> Claiming to be the true successors
-of the humble fisherman of Galilee&mdash;St. Peter&mdash;and the vicars of the
-still more humble Nazarene, their crowns, and thrones and courts as
-far outshone in splendid worldly grandeur those of kings and emperors,
-as their pride and arrogance surpassed the pomp and vain glory of the
-princes of this world; until, at last, the pope exalted himself "above
-all that is called God, or that is worshiped; so that he as God sitteth
-in the temple of God, showing himself that he is God."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn66"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn66">66</a>]</sup> (See notes
-9 and 10, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Apostasy in the Days of the Apostles.</b>&mdash;The great apostasy of
-the Christian church commenced in the first century, while there were
-yet inspired apostles and prophets in their midst; hence Paul, just
-previous to his martyrdom, enumerates a great number who had "made
-shipwreck of their faith," and "turned aside unto vain jangling;"
-teaching "that the resurrection was already past;" giving "heed to
-fables and endless genealogies," "doubting about questions and strifes
-of words whereof came envyings, railings, evil surmisings, perverse
-disputings of men of corrupt minds, and destitute of the truth,
-supposing the gain is godliness." This apostasy had become so general
-that Paul declares to Timothy, "that all they which are in Asia be
-turned away from me;" and again he says "at my first answer, no man
-stood with me, but all men forsook me;" he further says <span class="pagenum"><a name="p155"></a>{155}</span> that
-"there are many unruly, and vain talkers, deceivers, teaching things
-which they ought not, for filthy lucre's sake." These apostates,
-no doubt, pretended to be very righteous; "for," says the apostle,
-"they profess that they know God; but in works they deny him, being
-abominable and disobedient and unto every good work reprobate."&mdash;Orson
-Pratt.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Early Decline of the Church.</b>&mdash;About the year of our Lord
-sixty, he [James] wrote his Catholic epistle. * * * By the practical
-turn of his doctrine, by his discanting on the vices of the tongue,
-of partiality to the rich, and of contemptuous treatment of the poor
-in Christian assemblies, and by his direction against vain swearing,
-it is but too evident that the church had considerably declined from
-its original purity and simplicity; and that the craft of Satan, aided
-ever by human depravity, was wearing out apace the precious fruits of
-that effusion of the Spirit, which has been described [alluding to the
-effusion on the day of Pentecost.]&mdash;Milner, Vol. I, page 34.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Powers and Duties of Bishops&mdash;First and Second Century.</b>&mdash;We
-may define in a few words the narrow limits of their [the bishops]
-original jurisdiction, which was chiefly of a spiritual, though in some
-instances of a temporal nature. It consisted in the administration
-of the sacraments and discipline of the church, the superintendency
-of religious ceremonies which imperceptibly increase in number and
-variety, the consecration of ecclesiastical ministers to whom the
-bishops assigned their respective functions, the management of the
-public fund, and the determination of all such differences as the
-faithful were unwilling to expose before the tribunal of an idolatrous
-judge. These powers, during a short period, were exercised according
-to the advice of the presbyteral college [the Elders of the church],
-and with the consent and approbation of the assembly of Christians. The
-primitive bishops were considered only as the first of their equals,
-and the honorable servants of a free people. Whenever the Episcopal
-chair became vacant by death, a new president was chosen among the
-presbyters [elders] by the suffrage of the whole congregation, every
-member of which supposed himself invested with a sacred and sacerdotal
-character.&mdash;Gibbon (Decline and Fall, ch. xv).
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Usurpation of Provincial Councils.</b>&mdash;As the legislative
-authority of the particular churches was insensibly superseded by the
-use of councils, the bishops obtained by their alliance a much larger
-share of executive and arbitrary power; and as soon as they were
-connected by a sense of their common interest, they were enabled to
-attack, with united vigor, the original rights of their clergy [the
-elders and deacons] and people. The prelates of the third century
-imperceptibly changed the language of exhortation into that of command,
-scattered the seeds of future usurpations, and supplied, by scripture
-allegories <span class="pagenum"><a name="p156"></a>{156}</span> and declamatory rhetoric, their deficiency of force
-and reason. They exalted the unity and power of the church as it was
-represented in the episcopal office, of which every bishop enjoyed an
-equal and undivided portion.&mdash;Gibbon (Decline and Fall, ch. xv).
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Cyprian's Opposition to the Bishop of Rome.</b>&mdash;Rome experienced
-from the nations of Asia and Africa a more vigorous resistance to her
-spiritual than she had formerly done to her temporal dominion. The
-patriotic Cyprian, who ruled with the most absolute sway the church of
-Carthage and the provincial synods, opposed with resolution and success
-the ambition of the Roman pontiff, artfully connected his own cause
-with that of the eastern bishops, and, like Hannibal, sought out new
-allies in the heart of Asia. If this punic war was carried on without
-any effusion of blood, it was owing much less to the moderation than to
-the weakness of the contending prelates. Invectives and excommunication
-were then the only weapons; and these, during the progress of the
-whole controversy, they hurled against each other with equal fury and
-devotion.&mdash;Gibbon (Decline and Fall, Vol. I, ch. xv).
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Reverence of the Barbarians for the Popes.</b>&mdash;That these
-pagan nations had been accustomed to treat their idolatrous priests
-with extraordinary reverence is a fact well known. When they became
-Christians they supposed they must show the same reverence to the
-Christian priests. Of course they honored their bishops and clergy,
-as they had before honored their druids; and this reverence disposed
-them to bear patiently their vices. Every druid was accounted a very
-great character, and was feared by every one; but the chief druid
-was actually worshiped. When these people became Christians, they
-supposed that the bishop of Rome was such a chief druid; and that the
-must be honored accordingly. And this was one cause why the Roman
-pontiff obtained in process of time such an ascendency in the western
-countries. The patriarch of Constantinople rose indeed to a great
-elevation; but he never attained the high rank and authority of the
-Roman patriarch. The reason was that the people of the east had not the
-same ideas of the dignity of a chief priest as the people of the west
-had.&mdash;Schlegel.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Grant of the Roman Dukedom to the Popes.</b>&mdash;Charles
-[Charlemagne], being made emperor and sovereign of Rome and its
-territory, reserved indeed to himself, the supreme power, and the
-prerogatives of sovereignty; but the beneficial dominion, as it is
-called, and subordinate authority over the city and its territory, he
-seems to have conferred on the Romish church. This plan was undoubtedly
-suggested to him by the Roman pontiff; who persuaded the emperor,
-perhaps by showing him some ancient though forged papers and documents,
-that Constantine the Great (to whose place and authority <span class="pagenum"><a name="p157"></a>{157}</span> Charles
-now succeeded) when he removed the seat of empire to Constantinople,
-committed the old seat of empire, Rome and the adjacent territories
-or Roman dukedom, to the possession and government of the church,
-reserving, however, his imperial prerogatives over it; and that, from
-this arrangement and ordinance of Constantine, Charles could not
-depart, without incurring the wrath of God and St. Peter.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Copy of an Indulgence.</b>&mdash;May our Lord Jesus Christ have mercy
-on thee, N. N., and absolve thee by the merits of his passion! And I
-in virtue of the apostolic power that has been confided in me, absolve
-thee from all ecclesiastical censures, judgments, and penalties which
-thou mayst have incurred; moreover, from all excesses, sins and crimes
-that thou mayst have committed, however great and enormous they may be,
-and from whatsoever cause, were they even reserved for our most holy
-father the pope and for the apostolic see. I blot out all the stains
-of inability and all marks of infamy that thou mayst have drawn upon
-thyself on this occasion. I remit the penalties that thou shouldst
-have endured in purgatory. I restore thee anew to participation in the
-sacraments of the church. I incorporate thee afresh in the communion of
-saints, and re-establish thee in the purity and innocence which thou
-hadst at thy baptism. So that in the hour of death, the gate by which
-sinners enter the place of torments and punishments will be closed
-against thee, and, on the contrary, the gate leading to the paradise of
-joy shall be open. And if thou shouldst not die for long years, this
-grace shall remain unalterable until thy last hour shall arrive. In
-the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. Amen. (Friar John Tetzel,
-Commissary, has signed this with his own hand)&mdash;D'Aubugne's Hist.
-Ref., book III, ch. i.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Absolute Power of the Popes</b> (13th century).&mdash;All who had
-any share in the government of the church, were alike sovereign lords;
-at least in their feelings and dispositions they stiffly maintained
-with violence and threats, with both wiles and weapons, those
-fundamental principles of the popish canon law, that the Roman pontiff
-is the sovereign lord of the whole world, and that all other rulers in
-church and state have so much power and authority as he sees fit to
-allow them to have. Resting on this eternal principle as they conceive
-it to be, the pontiffs arrogate to themselves the absolute power, not
-only of conferring sacred offices or benefices as they are called, but
-also of giving away empires, and of divesting kings and princes of
-their crowns and authority. The more intelligent indeed, for the most
-part considered [general] councils as superior to the pontiffs; and
-such of the kings as were not blinded by superstition, restrained the
-pontiffs from intermeddling with worldly or civil affairs, bid them be
-contented with the regulation of things sacred, maintained <span class="pagenum"><a name="p158"></a>{158}</span> their
-power to the utmost of their ability and even claimed for themselves
-supremacy over the church in their respective territories. But they had
-to do these things cautiously, if they would not learn by experience
-that the pontiffs had very long arms.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Character of Language Employed by the Popes Against Kings</b>
-(8th century).&mdash;[As a sample of the arrogant language employed by the
-popes toward kings and emperors, we present the following taken from
-an epistle of Pope Gregory III, addressed to the eastern emperor Leo
-III. Leo at the time was opposing with commendable zeal the use of
-images in divine worship]: "Because you are unlearned and ignorant,
-we are obliged to write to you rude discourses, but full of sense and
-the word of God. We conjure you to quit your pride, and hear us with
-humility. You say that we adore stones, walls and boards. It is not so,
-my lord; but those symbols make us recollect the persons whose names
-they bear, and exalt our grovelling minds. We do not look upon them as
-gods; but if it be the image of Jesus, we say, 'Lord help us.' If it be
-his mother, we say, 'pray to your Son to save us.' If it be a martyr,
-we say, 'St. Stephen, pray for us.' We might as having the power of St.
-Peter, pronounce punishments against you, but as you have pronounced
-the curse upon yourself, let it stick to you. You write to us to
-assemble a general council; of which there is no need. Do you cease to
-persecute images, and all will be quiet. We fear not your threats; for
-if we go a league from Rome toward Campania, we are secure."&mdash;Certainly
-this is the language of anti-Christ supporting idolatry by pretenses to
-infallibility, and despising both civil magistrates and ecclesiastical
-councils.&mdash;Milner (Church History, Vol. III, Page 159).
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. Was the early church organization perpetuated?
-</p>
-<p>2. What reasons can you assign for the failure to do so?
-</p>
-<p>3. What can you say of the early apostasy in the church? (Notes 1, 2).
-</p>
-<p>4. What course was pursued by the apostles in respect to organizing
-churches?
-</p>
-<p>5. In what light were the apostles regarded by the saints?
-</p>
-<p>6. In what condition were the churches left at the death of the
-apostles?
-</p>
-<p>7. Was there such a thing as subordination among the churches, or rank
-among the bishops?
-</p>
-<p>8. What was the manner of electing bishops?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p159"></a>{159}</span> 9. What was the nature of the bishop's duties in the early
-churches? (Note 3).
-</p>
-<p>10. Describe the growth of iniquity among the bishops.
-</p>
-<p>11. Give an account of the origin of metropolitan bishops.
-</p>
-<p>12. Describe the rise and influence of councils. (Note 4).
-</p>
-<p>13. What was the conduct of the lower officials in the church?
-</p>
-<p>14. What was the moral status of the church officials in the 2nd and
-3rd centuries?
-</p>
-<p>15. Tell what important change was made in the form of church
-government in the 4th century?
-</p>
-<p>16. Describe the outlines of Roman government under Constantine.
-</p>
-<p>17. Tell how the church government was made somewhat to correspond with
-it.
-</p>
-<p>18. What circumstances led to the pre-eminence of the bishop of Rome?
-</p>
-<p>19. What reasons can be urged against the idea that the bishop of
-Rome succeeded to the apostleship of Peter and the presidency of the
-universal church?
-</p>
-<p>20. What is the scriptural basis of the claims of the bishops of Rome
-to pre-eminence?
-</p>
-<p>21. Refute the idea that Jesus built his church upon Peter.
-</p>
-<p>22. Refute the argument that the bishops of Rome must have succeeded
-to the apostleship of Peter, because Jesus promised to be with the
-apostles unto the end of the world.
-</p>
-<p>23. To what extent did the early Christian fathers admit a primacy to
-the bishops of Rome?
-</p>
-<p>24. State the controversy which arose between the bishop of Rome and
-the bishop of Constantinople.
-</p>
-<p>25. Through what cause did the Roman pontiffs finally force an
-acknowledgment of their independency? (Note 6).
-</p>
-<p>26. What led to the great division of the church in the 9th century?
-</p>
-<p>27. By what means did the Roman pontiffs outstrip their eastern rivals?
-(Note 7).
-</p>
-<p>28. What of the sale of indulgences? (Note).
-</p>
-<p>29. What was the climax of papal power?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p160"></a>{160}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION V.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Simplicity of Public Worship Changed.</b>&mdash;The public worship of
-the primitive Christians, as we have seen,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn67"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn67">67</a>]</sup> was very simple, but its
-simplicity was soon corrupted. The bishops and other public teachers in
-the third century, framed their discourses and exhortations according
-to the rules of Grecian eloquence; "and were better adapted," says a
-learned writer,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn68"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn68">68</a>]</sup> "to call forth the admiration of the rude multitude
-who love display, than to amend the heart. And that no folly and no
-senseless custom might be omitted in their public assemblies, the
-people were allowed to applaud their orators, as had been practiced
-in the forums and theaters; nay, they were instructed to applaud the
-preachers."
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> This was a wide departure from that spirit of meekness
-and humility enjoined by Messiah upon his ministers. And when to
-these customs was added the splendid vestments of the clergy, the
-magnificence of the temples, with all the pageantry of altars,
-surrounded with burning tapers, clouds of incense, beautiful images,
-the chanting of choirs, processions and other mummeries without
-number&mdash;one sees but little left of that simple worship instituted by
-the Messiah and his apostles. (See note 1, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> About the third century incense began to be used. The
-Christians of the first and second centuries abhorred the use
-of incense in public worship, as being a part of the worship of
-idols.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn69"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn69">69</a>]</sup> It first became a custom to use it at funerals, against
-offensive smells; then in public worship, to disguise the bad air
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p161"></a>{161}</span> of crowded assemblies; then at the consecration of bishops
-and magistrates, and by these steps at last degenerated into a
-superstitious rite.
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> In the fourth century matters became still worse. "The public
-supplications by which the pagans were accustomed to appease their
-gods, were borrowed from them, and were celebrated in many places with
-great pomp. To the temples, to water consecrated in due form, and
-the images of holy men, the same efficacy was ascribed to the pagan
-temples, statues and lustrations before the advent of Christ."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn70"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn70">70</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The Worship of Martyrs.</b>&mdash;In the third century also arose the
-worship of martyrs. It is true that worship or adoration was relative,
-and a distinction was made between the worship of martyrs and the
-worship paid to God; but by degrees the worship of the martyrs was
-made to conform with that which the pagans had in former times paid to
-their gods.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn71"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn71">71</a>]</sup> This was done out of indiscreet eagerness to allure the
-pagans to embrace Christianity.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn72"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn72">72</a>]</sup> (See note 2, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Decline of Spiritual Gifts.</b>&mdash;While pagan ceremonies and rites
-were increasing in the church, the gifts and graces characteristic of
-apostolic times, seemed to have gradually departed from it. Protestant
-writers insist that the age of miracles closed with the fourth or fifth
-century, and that after that the extraordinary gifts of the Holy Ghost
-must not be looked for. Catholic writers, on the other hand, insist
-that the power to perform miracles has always continued in the church;
-yet those spiritual manifestations which they describe after the fourth
-and fifth centuries savor of invention on the part of the priests and
-childish credulity on the part of the people; or else what is claimed
-to be miraculous falls far short of the power and dignity of those
-spiritual manifestations which the primitive church was wont to witness.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p162"></a>{162}</span> <b>7.</b> The virtues and prodigies ascribed to the bones and
-other relics of the martyrs and saints are puerile in comparison with
-the healings, by the anointing with oil and the laying on of hands,
-speaking in tongues, interpretations, prophecies, revelations, casting
-out devils in the name of Jesus Christ; to say nothing of the gifts of
-faith, wisdom, knowledge, discernment of spirits, etc.,&mdash;common in the
-church in the days of the days of the apostles.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn73"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn73">73</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> Nor is there anything in the scriptures or in reason that
-would lead one to believe that they were to be discontinued. Still this
-plea is made by modern Christians&mdash;explaining the absence of these
-spiritual powers among them&mdash;that the extraordinary gifts of the Holy
-Ghost were only intended to accompany the proclamation of the gospel
-during the first few centuries until the church was able to make its
-way without them, and then they were to be done away. It is sufficient
-to remark upon this that it is assumption pure and simple, and stands
-without warrant either of scripture or right reason; and proves that
-men had so far changed the religion of Jesus Christ that it became a
-form of godliness without the power thereof. (See notes 3 and 4, end of
-section).
-</p>
-<p><b>9. Causes and Manner of Excommunications.</b>&mdash;It appears to have
-been the custom of the apostles in the case of members of the church
-grievously transgressing the moral law of the gospel to require
-repentance and confession before the church; and in the event of a
-stubborn adherence to sin the offender was excommunicated, that is, he
-was excluded from the communion of the church and the fellowship of the
-saints. For the crimes of murder, idolatry and adultery, some of the
-churches excommunicated those guilty of them forever; in other churches
-they were received back, but only after long and painful probation.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> The manner in which excommunication was performed <span class="pagenum"><a name="p163"></a>{163}</span> in
-apostolic times is not clear, but there is every reason to believe the
-process was very simple. In the course of time, however, this simple
-order of excommunication was changed, by being burdened with many rites
-and ceremonies borrowed from pagan sources.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn74"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn74">74</a>]</sup> It was not enough
-that the fellowship of the saints be withdrawn from the offender and
-he left to the mercy of God, or the buffetings of Satan, according
-as he was worthy of the one or the other; but the church must load
-him down with anathemas too terrible to contemplate. The power of
-excommunication, too, eventually, passed from the body of the church
-into the hands of the bishops, and finally into those of the pope. At
-first excommunication meant the loss of the fellowship of the saints,
-and such other punishments as God himself might see fit to inflict; the
-church leaving the Lord to be the minister of his own vengeance. But
-gradually it came to mean in some instances banishment from home and
-country, the confiscation of property, the loss not only of religious
-fellowship with the saints, but the loss of civil rights; and the
-rights of Christian burial. In the case of a monarch excommunication
-absolved his subjects from their allegiance; and in the case of a
-subject, it robbed him of the protection of his sovereign. No anathema
-was so terrible but it was pronounced against the excommunicated, until
-the sweet mercies of God were overshadowed by the black pall of man's
-inhumanity.
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Admixture of Pagan Philosophy with the Christian
-Religion.</b>&mdash;The thing which contributed most to the subversion of
-the Christian religion was the employment of pagan philosophy to
-explain Christian doctrine. This brought about an admixture of these
-two discordant elements that <span class="pagenum"><a name="p164"></a>{164}</span> while it failed to purge pagan
-philosophy of its errors, corrupted the doctrines of Christ and laid
-the foundations for those false notions in respect of God which obtain
-in the so-called Christian world unto this day.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. Christian Doctrine Respecting God.</b>&mdash;The scriptural
-doctrine in regard to God&mdash;and of course, that is the true Christian
-doctrine&mdash;is this: There is a being of infinite goodness and power, in
-form like man&mdash;for man was created in his image<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn75"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn75">75</a>]</sup>&mdash;who, with his Son,
-Jesus Christ, and the Holy Ghost, constitute the great creative, and
-governing power or grand Presidency of the heavens and the earth. As
-persons, the Father, Son and Holy Ghost are separate and distinct, yet
-one in attributes, one in purpose; the mind of one being the mind of
-the others.
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> That they are distinct and separate as persons was plainly
-manifested at the baptism of Jesus. On that occasion, as Jesus came
-up out of the water, John saw the Holy Ghost descend upon him, and at
-the same time the voice of the Father was heard speaking from heaven,
-saying: "This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn76"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn76">76</a>]</sup>
-Here we have the persons of the Godhead present but distinct from
-each other. Stephen, the martyr, in the presence of the angry crowd
-which took his life, saw the heavens open and "Jesus standing on
-the right hand of God."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn77"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn77">77</a>]</sup> Here, too, the Father and Son are seen
-and, according to the testimony of the holy man, they are distinct
-personalities.
-</p>
-<p><b>14.</b> Yet Jesus said to the Jews: "I and my Father are one. * * *
-Believe that the Father is in me and I in him."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn78"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn78">78</a>]</sup> But this oneness
-cannot have reference to the persons of the Father and of the Son,
-which we have seen are distinct. Their oneness, therefore, must consist
-in a unity of attributes, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p165"></a>{165}</span> purposes, glory, power. Jesus in his
-great prayer just previous to his betrayal, said, in praying for his
-disciples: "Holy Father, keep through thine own name those whom thou
-hast given me, that they may be one. * * * That they all may be one; as
-thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee, that they also may be one in
-us."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn79"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn79">79</a>]</sup> Clearly it is not the uniting of the persons of his disciples
-into one person or body that Jesus prayed for; but he would have them
-of one mind and one spirit, as he and the Father are one. So also he
-had no wish that the person of one of his disciples should be crowded
-into that of another, and so on until they all became one person or
-body&mdash;but "as thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee." That is, while
-remaining distinct as persons, Messiah would have the mind or Spirit of
-God in his disciples as it was in him, and as his was in the Father,
-that God might be all in all&mdash;the Father to be honored as the head and
-worshiped in the name of the Son; and the Holy Ghost to be revered as
-the witness and messenger of both the Father and the Son<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn80"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn80">80</a>]</sup>&mdash;the bond
-of union between God and men, as it is between the Father and the Son;
-in one word to be God in man.
-</p>
-<p><b>15.</b> Each of these persons in scripture is called God; and taken
-together they are God, or constitute the grand Presidency of heaven and
-earth, and as such are one, as well as in attributes. (See note 5, end
-of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> The spirit of the Son had an existence with the Father before
-he was born in the flesh;<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn81"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn81">81</a>]</sup> and indeed it was by him, and through
-him&mdash;under the direction of the Father&mdash;that the worlds were made;<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn82"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn82">82</a>]</sup>
-"and without him was not anything made that was made."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn83"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn83">83</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>17.</b> Such is the simple doctrine of the Godhead taught to the
-primitive Saints by the apostles. It was implicitly believed as God's
-revelation to them upon the subject, and they were <span class="pagenum"><a name="p166"></a>{166}</span> content to
-allow the revelation to excite their reverence without arousing their
-curiosity to the point where men of finite minds attempt to grasp the
-infinite, or circumscribe God in their understandings. In a short time,
-however, a change came, and men sought to explain the revelation that
-God had given of himself by the vain babblings of pagan science; and
-that led not only to much contention within the church, but to the
-adoption in the Christian creed of erroneous ideas in respect of Deity.
-</p>
-<p><b>18. Gnostic and "New Platonic" Philosophy.</b>&mdash;In order to give
-a clear explanation of this matter, it will be necessary to invite
-the attention of the student to Gnosticism and the Eclectic or "New
-Platonic" philosophy which arose in the early Christian centuries.
-First, then, as to Gnosticism. The Gnostics taught there existed from
-eternity a Being that embodied within himself all the virtues; a Being
-who is the purest light and is diffused throughout boundless space,
-which they called Pleroma. This Being, after dwelling alone and in
-absolute repose for an infinite period, by an operation purely mental,
-or by acting upon himself, produced two spirits<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn84"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn84">84</a>]</sup> of different
-sexes. By the marriage of these two spirits others of similar nature
-were produced, who, in their turn, produced others. Thus a celestial
-family was formed in the pleroma. These emanations from Deity, whether
-directly or from those spirits first begotten by Deity acting upon
-himself, were called Aeons, a term which was doubtless employed
-to signify their eternal duration, and perhaps the mode of their
-production.
-</p>
-<p><b>19.</b> Beyond this pleroma where God and his family dwelt, existed
-a rude and unformed mass of matter, heaving itself continually in wild
-commotion.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn85"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn85">85</a>]</sup> This mass of the Aeons, wandering beyond the pleroma,
-discovered and reduced to order <span class="pagenum"><a name="p167"></a>{167}</span> and beauty and then peopled it
-with human beings and with animals of different species. This builder
-of the world the Gnostics called the Demiurge [Dem-i-urge].<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn86"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn86">86</a>]</sup> Though
-possessed of many shining qualities, the Demiurge was by nature
-arrogant and domineering, hence he claims absolute authority over the
-new world to the exclusion altogether of the authority of the supreme
-God, and requires mankind to pay divine honors exclusively to him.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> Man, according to the Gnostic philosophy, is composed of a
-terrestial, and therefore a vicious body; and of a celestial spirit,
-which in some sense is a particle of the Deity himself. The spirit is
-oppressed by the body, which is supposed to be the seat of all the
-lusts and other evils that flesh is heir to, and by the spirit of man
-is drawn away from the knowledge and worship of the true God, and led
-to pay reverence to the Demiurge and his associates. From this wretched
-bondage of evil God labors to rescue his offspring. But the Demiurge
-and his associates, eager to retain their power, resist the divine
-purpose and labor to efface all knowledge of the supreme Deity. The
-philosophy maintained, however, that God would ultimately prevail;
-and having restored to liberty most of the spirits now imprisoned in
-bodies, he will dissolve the fabric of the world. Then the primitive
-tranquility will return, and God will reign with the redeemed spirits
-in perfect happiness to all eternity.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn87"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn87">87</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>21.</b> When the followers of this philosophy became converted to
-Christianity, they looked upon Jesus Christ and the Holy Ghost as the
-latest Aeons or emanations from the Deity, sent forth to emancipate men
-from the tyranny of matter by <span class="pagenum"><a name="p168"></a>{168}</span> revealing to them the true God;
-to fit them, though perfect knowledge to enter the sacred pleroma. In
-connection with this, however, some of these Christian Gnostics held
-that Jesus had no body at all, but was an unsubstantial phantom that
-constantly deceived the senses of those who thought they associated
-with him. Others of them said there doubtless was a man called Jesus
-born of human parents, upon whom one of the Aeons, called Christ,
-descended at his baptism, having quitted the pleroma for that purpose;
-but who, previous to the crucifixion of the man Jesus, withdrew from
-him and returned to the Deity. [See note 7, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>22. The Two Modes of Life to which Gnosticism led.</b>&mdash;The Gnostic
-philosophy led to two widely different methods of life; one extremely
-ascetic and the other as extremely profligate. Gnostics believed matter
-to be utterly malignant, the source of all evil, therefore it was
-recommended by one party that the body should be weakened by fastings
-and the practice of other austerities, that the spirit might enjoy the
-greater liberty and be better able to contemplate heavenly things. The
-other party, on the contrary, maintained that men could safely indulge
-all their appetites and lustful desires, and that there was no moral
-difference in human actions. One leader of this persuasion&mdash;Carpocrates
-of Alexandria, who flourished in the second century&mdash;not only gave his
-disciples license to sin, but imposed on them the necessity of sinning,
-by teaching them the way to eternal salvation was open to those souls
-only which committed all kinds of enormity and wickedness. Such were
-the errors that grew out of Gnosticism, and which contributed to the
-corruption of the gospel soon after it was founded by the preaching of
-the apostles.
-</p>
-<p><b>23. The New Platonic Philosophy.</b>&mdash;The Eclectic or "New Platonic"
-philosophy which came into existence in the early Christian centuries,
-was compounded from all the systems which had preceded it, though
-following Plato more closely than <span class="pagenum"><a name="p169"></a>{169}</span> any other teacher, for which
-reason its disciples assumed the name of New Platonics. The founders
-of this philosophy professed simply to follow truth, gathering up
-whatever was accordant with it, regardless of its source, or in what
-school it was taught&mdash;hence the name eclectic. Still the teachings
-of Plato formed the basis of their doctrines, and they embraced most
-of his dogmas concerning God, the human soul and the universe. We
-shall therefore learn the fundamental principles of the Eclectics by
-considering what the Athenian sage taught on these subjects.
-</p>
-<p><b>24.</b> Plato held that God and matter existed from all
-eternity&mdash;that they were co-eternal. Before the creation of the
-world matter had in itself a principle of motion, but without end
-or laws. This principle of motion Plato called the immortal soul
-of the universe. God wished to give form to this mass of eternal
-matter, regulate its motion, subject it to some end and to certain
-laws. Everything which exists in heaven or in earth, except Deity
-and unorganized matter, according to Plato's philosophy, had a
-beginning&mdash;there was a time when it did not exist; but there never
-was a time when the idea, that is, the form or plan of the thing, did
-not exist in the mind of Deity. This idea or intelligence existing
-with God from all eternity, is what Plato called the Logos&mdash;the word
-or intelligence of Deity. Many in the age of which we write saw in
-these doctrines a threefold expression of the divine nature&mdash;viz.,
-the First Cause, the Reason or Logos, and the Spirit of the Universe;
-while others saw in these three principles three Gods, united with each
-other by a mysterious and ineffable generation; in which the Logos is
-regarded in the character of the Son of an Eternal Father, and the
-creator and governor of the work.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn88"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn88">88</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>25. Plato's Logos, John's Word Considered Identical.</b>&mdash;In the
-introduction of St. John's gospel, commencing&mdash;"In <span class="pagenum"><a name="p170"></a>{170}</span> the beginning
-was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God"&mdash;in
-this Word, which the Apostle in another verse of his opening chapter
-declares was "made flesh and dwelt among men,"&mdash;plainly alluding to
-the pre-existence and birth of Messiah&mdash;the New Platonics saw the
-incarnation of the Logos of Plato, and according to the fashion of the
-times attempted to harmonize the revelations of God with the philosophy
-of men. (See note 8, end of section).
-</p>
-<p><b>26. The Rank of the Logos in the Trinity.</b>&mdash;It was trying to
-harmonize the revelations of God with these systems of philosophy which
-created the agitation in respect to the rank of the Logos, or Son of
-God, in the divine trinity; and the nature of the Trinity itself&mdash;that
-is, whether the three persons, the Father, Son and Holy Ghost are
-distinct and separate though of the same substance, or merely the same
-substance under different aspects.
-</p>
-<p><b>27. The Orthodox View.</b>&mdash;The view held to be orthodox was that in
-God there are three persons, Father, Son and Holy Spirit; each really
-distinct yet so united as to constitute but one personal God&mdash;of the
-same substance, and equal as to their eternity, power, and glory and
-all other perfections.
-</p>
-<p><b>28. Sabellian Theory.</b>&mdash;On one side of this orthodox theory stood
-the doctrine of Sabellius [Sa-bel-i-us], who held that there was but
-one divine person in the Godhead, and that the Father, Son and Holy
-Spirit were but different aspects of the same God, and that the Trinity
-was one of names, merely, not of distinct persons.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn89"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn89">89</a>]</sup> The Logos, in hi
-theory, is an attribute <span class="pagenum"><a name="p171"></a>{171}</span> of Deity rather than a person; and its
-incarnation is reduced to an energy or inspiration of the Divine wisdom
-which filled the soul and directed all the actions of the man Jesus.
-</p>
-<p><b>29. The Arian Theory.</b>&mdash;On the other side of the orthodox line
-stood the theory of Arius [A-ri-us], who while he maintained a real
-distinction in the persons of the Divine Trinity, taught that the
-Son was created out of nothing by the will of the Father; and though
-the longest astronomical periods would not measure the time of his
-duration, yet there had been a time when he was not. Upon the Son
-thus created the Father bestowed great glory, yet he shone only by a
-reflected light, and governed the universe only in obedience to the
-will of the Father; in other words, the Son was subordinate to the
-Father, unequal as to eternity, power and glory.
-</p>
-<p><b>30. The Nicene Council.</b>&mdash;It was to still the rising commotion
-which arose in the church through the violent discussion of these
-several theories that the Emperor Constantine assembled the Council
-of Nice [Nes]. A. D. 325. In that council the theories of Arius were
-condemned and the orthodox creed stated thus:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> We believe in one God, the Father, Almighty, the maker of all
- things visible and invisible; and in one Lord, Jesus Christ, the
- Son of God, begotten of the Father, only begotten, (that is) of
- the substance of the Father; God of God, Light of Light; Very God
- of Very God; begotten not made; of the same substance with the
- Father, by whom all things were made, that are in heaven and that
- are in earth: who for us men, and for our salvation, descended and
- was incarnate, and became man; suffered and rose again the third
- day, ascended into the heavens and will come to judge the living
- and the dead, and in the Holy Spirit. But those who say there was a
- time when he [the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p172"></a>{172}</span> Son] was not, and that he was not before he
- was begotten, and that he was made out of nothing, or affirm that
- he is of any other substance or essence, of that the Son of God
- was created, and mutable, or changeable, the Catholic Church doth
- pronounce accursed.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn90"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn90">90</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>31.</b> Athanasius [Ath-a-na-shi-us], who was the most active
-opponent of Arius, thus explains the Nicene doctrine, in what is
-commonly known as the creed of Athanasius.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn91"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn91">91</a>]</sup>
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> We worship one God in Trinity, and Trinity and Unity, neither
- confounding the persons, nor dividing the substance. For there
- is one person of the Father, another of the Son, and another of
- the Holy Ghost. But the Godhead of the Father, Son and Holy Ghost
- is all one: the glory equal, the majesty co-eternal. Such as the
- Father is, such is the Son; and such is the Holy Ghost. The Father
- uncreate, the Son uncreate; and the Holy Ghost uncreate. The Father
- incomprehensible, the Son incomprehensible, and the Holy Ghost
- incomprehensible. The Father eternal the Son eternal, and the
- Holy Ghost eternal. And yet these are not three eternals; but one
- eternal. As also there are not three incomprehensibles, nor three
- uncreated; but one uncreated and one incomprehensible. So likewise
- the Father is Almighty, the Son Almighty, and the Holy Ghost
- Almighty; and yet they are not three Almighties, but one Almighty.
- So the Father is God, the Son is God, and the Holy Ghost is God,
- and yet they are not three Gods but one God.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn92"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn92">92</a>]</sup> (See note 7, end
- of section.)
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p173"></a>{173}</span> <b>32. Immateriality of God.</b>&mdash;The evil which grew out of these
-contentions in respect to Deity is found in the conclusion arrived
-at that God is an incorporeal, that is to say, an immaterial being;
-without body, without parts, without passions. The following is the
-Roman Catholic belief in respect to God:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> There is but one God, the creator of heaven and earth, the supreme,
- incorporeal, uncreated being, who exists of himself, and is
- infinite in all his attributes, etc.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn93"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn93">93</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>The Church of England teaches in her articles of faith:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> There is but one living and true God, everlasting, without body,
- parts or passions; of infinite power, wisdom and goodness,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn94"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn94">94</a>]</sup> etc.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>This plainly teaches the great error of the immateriality of God;
-and, indeed, that is the orthodox notion in respect to Deity,
-notwithstanding it finds so many express contradictions in the
-scriptures.
-</p>
-<p><b>33.</b> In the work of creation, God proposed to make man in his own
-image and likeness, and the proposition was executed.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn95"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn95">95</a>]</sup> Moreover,
-Jesus is said to be the brightness of God's glory, "and the express
-image of his person."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn96"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn96">96</a>]</sup> Again it is said, that Jesus "being in the
-form of God, thought it not robbery to be equal with God."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn97"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn97">97</a>]</sup> All
-this teaches that God has a form similar to that of man's; that he
-has organs, dimensions, proportions; that he occupies space and has
-relation to other objects in space; that he moves from place to place;
-and that so far as his actual person is concerned he cannot be in two
-places at one and the same instant. The question here arises as to
-those passages of scripture which declare the omnipresence of God, a
-thing which is impossible&mdash;speaking of his person&mdash;if what is <span class="pagenum"><a name="p174"></a>{174}</span>
-here contended for be true. But God may be and is omnipresent by his
-influence, by his power, if not in his person. While his person is
-confined to one place at a time, as other substances are, his influence
-extends throughout the universe, as does also his power, and through
-this means he is omnipotent and omnipresent.
-</p>
-<p><b>34.</b> To assert the immateriality of God is not only to deny his
-personality, but his very existence; for an immaterial substance cannot
-exist. It can have no relation to time or space, no form, no extension,
-no parts. An immaterial substance is simply no substance at all; it
-is a contradiction of terms to say a substance is immaterial&mdash;it is
-the description of an infinite vacuum; and the difference between the
-atheist and the orthodox Christian is one of terms, not of fact; the
-former says, "There is no God;" the latter in his creed says, "God is
-nothing."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn98"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn98">98</a>]</sup> (See note 10, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>35.</b> Such were the absurdities into which the vain philosophies
-of the pagan led the Christian even in the early centuries of the
-Christian era; so that through these errors they even denied the Lord
-who bought them.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn99"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn99">99</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p175"></a>{175}</span>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Christian Worship in the Fifth Century.</b>&mdash;Public worship
-everywhere assumed a form more calculated for show and for the
-gratification of the eye. Various ornaments were added to the
-sacerdotal garments in order to increase the veneration of the
-people for the clerical order. The new forms of hymns, prayers and
-public fasts, are not easily enumerated. * * * In some places it was
-appointed, that the praises of God should be sung perpetually, day
-and night, the singers succeeding each other without interruption; as
-if the Supreme Being took pleasure in clamor and noise, and in the
-flatteries of men. The magnificence of the temples had no bounds.
-Splendid images were placed in them; and among these * * * the image
-of the Virgin Mary, holding her infant in her arms, occupied the most
-conspicuous place. Altars and repositories for relics, made of solid
-silver if possible, were procured in various places; from which may
-easily be conjectured, what must have been the splendor and the expense
-of the other sacred utensils.&mdash;<em>Mosheim</em>.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Martyr Worship</b> (3rd century).&mdash;When Gregory [surnamed
-Thaumaturgus on account of the numerous miracles he is said to have
-wrought&mdash;born in Pontus, in the second decade of the third century]
-perceived that the ignorant and simple multitude persisted in their
-idolatry, on account of the sensitive pleasures and delights it
-afforded, he allowed them in celebrating the memory of the holy
-martyrs, to indulge themselves, and give a loose to pleasure, (i.e., as
-the thing itself, and both what precedes and what follows, place beyond
-all controversy, he allowed them at the sepulchres of the martyrs on
-their fast days, to dance, to use sports, to indulge in conviviality,
-and do all things that the worshipers of idols were accustomed to do in
-their temples, on their festival days), hoping that in process of time,
-they would spontaneously come over to a more becoming and more correct
-manner of life.&mdash;Nyssen's Life of Gregory Thaumaturgus.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. On the Continuance of Spiritual Gifts.</b>&mdash;The affliction of
-devils, the confusion of tongues, deadly poisons and sickness [all of
-which were to be overcome by the extraordinary gifts of the Spirit] are
-all curses which have been introduced into the world by the wickedness
-of man. The blessings of the gospel are bestowed to counteract these
-curses. Therefore, as long as these curses exist, the promised signs
-[Mark xvi: 17, 18] are needed to counteract their evil consequences.
-If Jesus had not intended that the blessings should be as extensive
-and unlimited in point of time as the curses, he would have intimated
-something to that effect in his word. But when he makes a universal
-promise of certain powers, to enable every believer in the gospel
-throughout the world to overcome certain curses, entailed <span class="pagenum"><a name="p176"></a>{176}</span> upon
-man, because of wickedness, it would be the rankest kind of infidelity
-not to believe the promised blessing necessary, as long as the curses
-abound among men.&mdash;Orson Pratt.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. When and Why the Spiritual Gifts Ceased in the Church.</b>&mdash;It
-does not appear that these extraordinary gifts of the Holy Spirit
-[speaking of I Cor. xii] were common in the church for more than two or
-three centuries. We seldom hear of them after that fatal period when
-the Emperor Constantine called himself a Christian; and from a vain
-imagination of promoting the Christian cause thereby heaped riches,
-and power, and honor upon Christians in general, but in particular
-upon the Christian clergy. From this time they [the spiritual gifts]
-almost totally ceased; very few instances of the kind were found. The
-cause of this was not (as has been supposed) because there was no more
-occasion for them, because all the world was become Christians. This
-is a miserable mistake; not a twentieth part of it was then nominally
-Christian. The real cause of it was the love of many, almost all
-Christians, so-called, was waxed cold. The Christians had no more of
-the Spirit of Christ than the other heathens. The Son of Man when he
-came to examine his church, could hardly find faith upon the earth.
-This was the real cause why the extraordinary gifts of the Holy
-Ghost were no longer to be found in the Christian Church&mdash;because
-the Christians were turned heathens again and only had a dead form
-left.&mdash;John Wesley (Wesley's Works, Vol. vii. Sermon 89, Pages 26, 27.)
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Illustration of the Oneness of the Godhead.</b>&mdash;The Godhead
-may be further illustrated by a council, composed of three men&mdash;all
-possessing equal wisdom, knowledge and truth, together with equal
-qualifications in every respect. Each person would be a separate,
-distinct person or substance from the other two, and yet the three
-would form but one council. Each alone possesses, by supposition,
-the same wisdom and truth that the three united or the one council
-possesses. The union of the three men in one council would not increase
-the knowledge of wisdom of either. Each man would be one part of the
-council when reference is made to his person; but the wisdom and truth
-of each man would be the whole wisdom and truth of the council, and not
-a part. If it were possible to divide truth, and other qualities of a
-similar nature into fractions, so that the Father should have the third
-part of truth, the third part of wisdom, the third part of knowledge,
-the third part of love, while the Son and the Holy Spirit possessed
-the other two-thirds of these qualities or affections, then neither of
-these persons could make "one God," "but only a part of a God." But
-because the divisibility of wisdom, truth or love is impossible, the
-whole of these qualities dwell in the Father&mdash;the whole dwells in the
-Son&mdash;the whole is possessed by the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p177"></a>{177}</span> Holy Spirit. The Holy Spirit
-is one part of the Godhead in essence; but the whole of God in wisdom,
-truth, and other similar qualities. If a truth could become three
-truths, distinct from each other, by dwelling in three substances, then
-there would be three Gods instead of one. But as it is, the trinity
-is three in essence, but one in truth and other similar principles.
-The oneness of the Godhead, as described in the scriptures, never was
-intended to apply to the essence, but only to the perfections and other
-attributes.&mdash;Orson Pratt.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Messiah the Author of the Gospel and Creator of the
-World.</b>&mdash;Christ is the author of this gospel, of this earth, of men
-and women, of all the posterity of Adam and Eve, and of every living
-creature that lives upon the face of the earth, that flies in the
-heavens, that swims in the waters, or dwells in the field. Christ is
-the author of salvation to all this creation, to all things pertaining
-to this terrestial globe we occupy.&mdash;Brigham Young (Discourse, August
-8, 1852).
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Phantom Theory of the Gnostics.</b>&mdash;While the blood of Christ
-yet smoked on Mount Calvary, the Docetus [the name given to the Gnostic
-Christians] invented the impious and extravagant hypothesis, that,
-instead of issuing from the womb of the virgin, he had descended on the
-banks of the Jordan in the form of perfect manhood; that he had imposed
-on the senses of his enemies, and of his disciples; and that the
-ministers of Pilate had wasted their impotent rage on an airy phantom,
-who seemed to expire on the cross, and, after three days, to rise from
-the dead.&mdash;Gibbon.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Fashion of Uniting Discordant Elements in Philosophy and
-Religion.</b>&mdash;When we come to consider the state of philosophy at that
-time [the early Christian centuries], and the fashion which prevailed
-of catching at anything new, and of uniting discordant elements into
-fanciful systems, we shall not be surprised to find the doctrines of
-the gospel disguised and altered, and that, according to the language
-of that age, many new heresies were formed.&mdash;Burton's Brampton Lectures.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Mysteries of Religion Deepened Through Attempted
-Explanation.</b>&mdash;That devout and reverential simplicity of the first
-ages of the church, which taught men to believe when God speaks, and
-obey when God commands, appeared to most of the doctors of this age
-[the fifth century] to be unphilosophical and becoming only in the
-vulgar. Many of those, however, who attempted to explain and illustrate
-these doctrines, opened the way rather to disputation than for a
-rational faith and a holy life; for they did not so much explain, as
-involve in greater obscurity, and darken with ambiguous terms and
-incomprehensible distinctions the deep mysteries of revealed religion.
-And hence arose abundant matter for difficulties, contentions and
-animosities which flowed down to succeeding ages, and which <span class="pagenum"><a name="p178"></a>{178}</span> can
-scarcely be removed by the efforts of human power. It hardly need be
-remarked, that some, while pressing their adversaries, incautiously
-fell into errors of an opposite character which were no less
-dangerous.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Immaterialists are Atheists.</b>&mdash;There are two classes of
-atheists in the world. One class denies the existence of God in the
-most positive language; the other denies his existence in duration or
-space. One says, "There is no God;" the other says "God is not here or
-there, any more than he exists now and then." The infidel says, "There
-is no such a substance as God." The immaterialist says, "There is
-such a substance as God, but it is 'without parts.'" The atheist says,
-"There is no such substance as spirit." The immaterialist says, "A
-spirit, though he lives and acts, occupies no room and fills no space,
-in the same way and after the same manner as matter not even so much
-as does the minutest grain of sand." The atheist does not seek to hide
-his infidelity; but the immaterialist, whose declared belief amounts
-to the same thing as the atheist's endeavors to hide his infidelity
-under the shallow covering of a few words.&mdash;Orson Pratt (Absurdities of
-Immaterialism, page 11).
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. Describe the simplicity of public worship in early Christian times.
-(Note 2, end of section III.)
-</p>
-<p>2. What changes in the public worship were gradually introduced? (Note
-1).
-</p>
-<p>3. What was the object in introducing these changes?
-</p>
-<p>4. In what manner was incense introduced into public worship?
-</p>
-<p>5. What especially obnoxious practice became prevalent in the 4th
-century?
-</p>
-<p>6. What can you say of the worship of martyrs? (Note 2).
-</p>
-<p>7. Give an account of the decline of spiritual gifts in the church.
-</p>
-<p>8. On this point what difference exists between Catholics and
-Protestants?
-</p>
-<p>9. What can you say of Protestant excuses for the absence of the
-spiritual gifts of the gospel? (Notes 3 and 4).
-</p>
-<p>10. What does the absence of spiritual gifts prove?
-</p>
-<p>11. In what way were grievous offenses punished by the church?
-</p>
-<p>12. What ceremonies finally became associated with excommunication?
-</p>
-<p>13. What temporal punishments were sometimes associated with
-excommunication?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p179"></a>{179}</span> 14. What can you say of the mingling of pagan philosophy with the
-Christian religion?
-</p>
-<p>15. Give the scriptural doctrine respecting God.
-</p>
-<p>16. Give an instance from scripture where the personages of the Godhead
-are seen to be distinct.
-</p>
-<p>17. In what does the oneness of the Father, Son and Holy Ghost consist?
-(Note 5.)
-</p>
-<p>18. How did the early Christians regard the scriptural doctrine of the
-Godhead?
-</p>
-<p>19. By what means did men at last try to explain the revelation?
-</p>
-<p>20. Give the Gnostic idea respecting God.
-</p>
-<p>21. How did the Gnostics account for the creation of the world?
-</p>
-<p>22. In what way did the Gnostics avoid making God the author of evil?
-</p>
-<p>23. What is the nature of man according to the Gnostic philosophy?
-</p>
-<p>24. What did the Gnostic philosophy look to as the culmination between
-the struggle of man with evil?
-</p>
-<p>25. In what light did the Gnostics look upon Jesus Christ?
-</p>
-<p>26. What fanciful theory did some of them hold respecting him? (Note 7).
-</p>
-<p>27. To what two modes of life did the Gnostic philosophy lead?
-</p>
-<p>28. What was the new Platonic philosophy?
-</p>
-<p>29. What was Plato's idea of God?
-</p>
-<p>30. In what way was there an attempt to harmonize the philosophy of
-Plato with the writings of St John?
-</p>
-<p>31. State the "orthodox" doctrine respecting Deity in those times.
-</p>
-<p>32. State the Sabellian theory.
-</p>
-<p>33. Give an illustration of it.
-</p>
-<p>34. State the Arian theory.
-</p>
-<p>35. In what way did the Nicene Council decide the trinity controversy?
-</p>
-<p>36. What confession did Athanasius make as to his inability to
-comprehend the Nicene creed?
-</p>
-<p>37. What great error resulted from the controversy on the nature of
-Deity?
-</p>
-<p>38. What passages of scripture refute the "orthodox" Christian notion
-that God is immaterial?
-</p>
-<p>39. How from reason would you refute the notion that God is an
-immaterial Being?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p180"></a>{180}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VI.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Departure from Moral Precepts of the Gospel.</b>&mdash;There was as
-wide a departure from the moral precepts of the gospel among the
-Christians as there was from the doctrines, ordinances and government
-of the church. From the nature of the reproofs, the admonitions and
-warnings to be found in the epistles of the apostles to the churches,
-one may see that while they yet lived the saints were prone to
-wickedness, and great errors in regard to moral conduct crept into the
-churches. The writings of the early fathers of the church who succeeded
-the apostles also bear witness to the continuance and increase of these
-errors.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Double Rule of Life.</b>&mdash;As early as the second century the idea
-became prevalent that messiah had prescribed a twofold rule of moral
-conduct; the one ordinary, the other extraordinary; one for those
-engaged in ordinary affairs of life, the other for persons of leisure
-and such as desired a higher glory in the future life. This led the
-early Christian doctors to divide whatsoever had been taught by the
-apostles in respect to Christian life and morals, into precepts and
-counsels. The precepts were those laws which were equally binding on
-all men the counsels were binding only on those who aspired to a closer
-union with God.
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> Of course there soon appeared a class of persons who sought
-to attain to this closer union; and they adopted the method of life
-practiced among the pagan philosophers who wished to excel in virtue.
-They considered many things forbidden to them which were proper for
-ordinary Christians to <span class="pagenum"><a name="p181"></a>{181}</span> indulge in; such as wine, flesh, matrimony,
-and secular business. They thought the holiness of life they aspired to
-could sooner be attained by emaciating the body by fastings, watchings,
-excessive toil, hunger, insufficient and coarse raiment. In short, they
-"thought to merit heaven by making earth a hell." Those who engaged
-in this kind of life soom came to distinguish themselves by their
-dress as well as by the austerity of their lives. They soon began to
-withdraw themselves from association with their fellow Christians and
-the world and retire to the deserts and the wilderness, where by severe
-meditation they sought to abstract their minds from external objects
-and those things which minister to sensual delights. They sometimes
-lived alone but oftener in association with those devoted to the same
-manner of life.
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> When peace was assured to the Christian church, early in the
-fourth century, the number of those who became ambitious for this
-austere righteousness greatly increased, until vast multitudes of
-monk and sacred virgins spread with remarkable rapidity throughout
-Christendom. About the year 305, A. D., the practice of collecting
-these people into associated communities and regulating their mode of
-living by fixed rules was introduced. St Anthony of Egypt was the prime
-mover in this work. Thus monasteries and nunneries were established;
-and in a short time the east, especially, swarmed with persons who
-abandoned the conveniences, associations and business of ordinary
-life, to pine away in these institutions and hardships and sufferings,
-in order to attain a closer communion with God and a more excellent
-salvation.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Origin of the False Idea of Moral Life.</b>&mdash;"The Christian church
-would have remained free from these numerous tortures of the mond
-and body," remarks Dr. Mosheim, "had not that great and fascinating
-doctrine of the ancient philosophy gained credence among Christians
-that to attain to happiness and communion with God, the soul must be
-freed from the influence <span class="pagenum"><a name="p182"></a>{182}</span> of the body, and for this purpose the
-body must be subdued."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn100"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn100">100</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> As a further evidence that these false notions of life and
-virtue came from the pagan philosophy rather than from the Christian
-religion, we quote again from Mosheim:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The causes of this institution [austere method of life] are at
- hand. First, the Christians did not like to appear inferior to the
- Greeks, the Romans, and the other people; among whom were many
- philosophers and sages, who were distinguished from the vulgar by
- their dress and their whole mode of life, and who were held in
- high honor. Now among these philosopher (as is well known), none
- better pleased the Christians than the Platonists and Pythagoreans
- [Pyth-a-go-re-ans]; who are known to have recommended two modes of
- living, the one for philosophers who wished to excel in virtue, and
- the other for the people engaged in the common affairs of life.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn101"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn101">101</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>The Platonists prescribed the following rules for philosophers:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The mind of a wise man must be withdrawn, as far as possible, from
- the contagious influence of the body, and as the oppressive load of
- the body and social intercourse are most adverse to this design,
- therefore all sensual gratifications are to be avoided; the body is
- to be sustained or rather mortified, with coarse and slender fare;
- solitude is to be sought for; and the mind is to be self-collected,
- and absorbed in contemplation, so as to be detached as much as
- possible from the body. Whoever lives in this manner, shall in the
- present life have converse with God; and when freed from the load
- of the body, shall ascend without delay to the celestial mansions
- and shall not need, like the souls of other men, to undergo
- purgation.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn102"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn102">102</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>7.</b> It will be remembered that the Christians adopted the pagan
-philosophy&mdash;of which the teachings of Plato were the basis&mdash;and
-employed it to explain the Christian religion. It is <span class="pagenum"><a name="p183"></a>{183}</span> not
-surprising, therefore, that they adopted its moral precepts, and by so
-doing corrupted that reasonable and healthy moral life enjoined upon
-all alike in the gospel of Jesus Christ.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Celibacy of the Clergy.</b>&mdash;From the same source came the
-celibacy of the clergy. It was considered that those who lived in
-wedlock were more subject to the assaults of evil spirits than those
-who lived in celibacy; hence those who were appointed to teach and
-govern others were supposed to be all the better qualified for their
-work if they had nothing to do with conjugal life. It was a matter,
-however, which during the first centuries was not strictly enjoined
-by any formal regulations of the church; it was left for Pope Gregory
-VII in the eleventh century to bind such a wicked regulation upon the
-clergy by express law. In the third century the most shameful abuses
-arose out of this doctrine; for men sought to fulfill its requirements
-with the least violence to their inclinations, and many of those who
-had taken upon themselves vows of chastity, took to their houses and
-even to their beds some one of those holy females under like vows of
-chastity, yet maintained that there was no improper relations between
-them. It is but just to say that many bishops condemned this shameful
-practice but it was some time before the church was rid of it, and the
-scandal it created, and even when such practices did cease openly it
-may well be doubted if it really ceased among those forced into such
-unnatural conditions.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. Deceiving and Lying Accounted Virtues.</b>&mdash;Another evil which
-went far toward corrupting the church was the idea that to deceive and
-lie are virtues when religion can be promoted by them. This pernicious
-doctrine was accepted early in the first centuries and it accounts
-for the existence and circulation of that great mass of childish
-fable and falsehood respecting the infancy and youth of Messiah and
-the miraculous, wonder-working power of the relics of the saints and
-martyrs, from which the cause of the Christian religion has suffered so
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p184"></a>{184}</span> much. "If some inquisitive person were to examine the conduct and
-the writings of the greatest and most pious teachers of this century"
-[the fourth], writes Dr. Mosheim, "I fear he would find about all of
-them infected with this leprosy. I cannot except Ambrose, nor Hilary,
-nor Augustine, nor Gregory Nazianzen nor Jerome."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn103"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn103">103</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Immoral Condition of the Church in General.</b>&mdash;The wickedness
-of the clergy in the last centuries, the ambition of the bishops and
-their imitating in their lives the voluptuousness of princes, we have
-already noted in section four of part II, and therefore little need
-be said here further than to remark that those vices very rapidly
-increased. As time rolled on worldly prosperity seemed to relax the
-nerves of discipline. "Fraud, envy and malice prevailed in every
-congregation. The presbyters aspired to the episcopal office, which
-every day became an object more worthy their ambition. The bishops who
-contended with each other for ecclesiastical pre-eminence, appeared by
-their conduct to claim a secular and tyrannical power in the church;
-and the lively faith which still distinguished the Christians from the
-Gentiles was shown much less in their lives than in their controversial
-writings."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn104"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn104">104</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> Sometimes these struggles for place and power resulted in
-war and bloodshed. Such was the case in the fourth century when a new
-pope was to be elected to succeed Liberius [Li-be-ri-us]. One party in
-Rome was for one Damasus [Dam-a-sus], and another party for Ursicinus
-[Ur-si-ci-nus]. The contest resulted in a bloody conflict, houses were
-burned and many lost their lives. In one church alone one morning after
-the conflict there were found one hundred and thirty-seven corpses to
-bear witness to the violence of the struggle for what was claimed to be
-the office of viceregent of God on earth.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. Moral Condition of the Church in the Fourth <span class="pagenum"><a name="p185"></a>{185}</span>
-Century.</b>&mdash;In the fourth century&mdash;"If we look at the lives and
-morals of the Christians&mdash;we shal find, as heretofore, that good men
-were commingled with bad, yet the number of the bad began gradually
-to increase, so that the truly pious and godly appeared more rare.
-when there was no more to fear from enemies from without; when the
-character of most bishops was tarnished with arrogance, luxury,
-effeminacy, animosity, resentments, and other defects; when the lower
-clergy neglected their proper duties, and were more attentive to
-controversies, than to the promotion of piety and the instruction
-of the people; when vast numbers were induced not by a rational
-conviction, but by the fear of punishment and the hope of worldly
-advantage to enroll themselves as Christians, how can it surprise us,
-that on all sides the vicious appeared a host, and the pious a little
-band almost overpowered by them. Against the flagitious and those
-guilty of heinous offenses, the same rules for penance were prescribed,
-as before the reign of Constantine. But as the times continually
-waxed worse and worse, the more honorable and powerful could sin with
-impunity, and only the poor and the unfortunate felt the severity of
-the laws."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn105"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn105">105</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Moral Condition of the Church in the Fifth Century.</b>&mdash;About
-the middle of the fifth century we have Salvian [Sal-vi-an] saying:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The very church which should be the body to appease the anger of
- God, alas! what reigns there but disorders calculated to incense
- the Most High? It is more common to meet with Christians who are
- guilty of the greatest abominations than with those who are wholly
- exempt from crime. So that today it is a sort of sanctity among us
- to be less vicious than the generality of Christians. We insult the
- majesty of the Most High at the foot of his altars. Men, the most
- steeped in crime enter the holy places without respect for them.
- True all men ought to pay their vows to God, but why should they
- seek his temples to propitiate him, only to go forth to provoke
- him? <span class="pagenum"><a name="p186"></a>{186}</span> Why enter the church to deplore their former sins,
- and upon going forth&mdash;what do I say?&mdash;in those very courts the
- commit fresh sins, their mouths and their hearts contradict one
- another. Their prayers are criminal meditations rather than vows of
- expiation. Scarcely is the service ended before each returns to his
- old practices. Some go to their wine, others to their impurities,
- still others to robbing and brigandage, so that we cannot doubt
- that these things had been occupying them while they were in the
- church. Nor is it the lowest of the people who are thus guilty.
- There is no rank whatever in the church which does not commit all
- sorts of crimes.
-</p>
-<p> <b>14.</b> It may be urged that we are at heart better than the
- barbarians who oppose us. Suppose this to be granted; we ought
- to be better than they. But as a matter of fact, they are more
- virtuous than we. The mass of Christians are below the barbarians
- in probity. True, all kinds of sins are found among them but what
- one is not found among us? The several nations have their peculiar
- sin; the Saxons are cruel; the Franks perfidious; the Gepidae
- inhuman; the Huns lewd. But we, having the law of God to restrain
- us, are given over to all these offenses. Then to confine ourselves
- to the single sin of swearing, can many be found among the faithful
- who have not the name of Jesus Christ constantly upon their lips
- in support of their perjuries? This practice coming down from the
- higher to the lower classes, has so prevailed that Christians might
- be deemed pagans. This, although the law of God expressly forbids
- to take his name in vain. We read this law but we do not practice
- it; as a consequence the pagans taunt us that we boast ourselves
- the sole possessors of God's law, and of the rules of truth and of
- what that law enjoins. Christians, indeed, to the shame of Jesus
- Christ! say they.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn106"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn106">106</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>15.</b> In book VI on <em>The Providence of God</em>, Salvian continues his
-arraignment:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> We rush from the churches to the theatres, even in the midst of
- our perils. In Carthage the theatres were thronged while the enemy
- <span class="pagenum"><a name="p187"></a>{187}</span> were before the walls, and the cries of those perishing
- outside under the sword mingled with the shouts of the spectators
- in the circus. Nor are we better here in Gaul (France). Treves
- [Trevz] has been taken four times, and has only increased in
- wickedness under her misfortunes. The same state of things exists
- in Cologne [Ko-lon]&mdash;deplorable wickedness among young and old, low
- and high. The smaller cities have been blind and insensible to the
- dangers threatening, until they have overwhelmed them. It seems to
- be the destiny of the Roman empire to perish rather than reform;
- they must cease to be, in order to cease to be vicious. A part of
- the inhabitants of Treves, having escaped from the ruins, petitions
- the emperor for&mdash;what? A theatre, spectacles, public shows! A city
- which thrice overthrown could not correct itself, well deserved
- to suffer a fourth destruction. * * * Would that my voice might
- be heard by all Romans! I would cry: Let us all blush that today
- the only cities where impurity does not reign are those which have
- submitted to the barbarians. Think not, then, that they conquer and
- we yield by the simple force of nature. Rather let us admit that
- we succumb through the dissoluteness of our morals of which our
- calamities are the just punishment.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn107"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn107">107</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>16. State of Morals in Centuries Subsequent to the Fifth.</b>&mdash;Such
-was the condition of the Christian church as to morals in the fifth
-century. It was no better in the sixth or the seventh or the eighth.
-Indeed the concurrent testimony of all authorities is to the effect
-that matters moral and spiritual grew gradually worse in these
-centuries until darkness covered the earth and gross darkness the
-people. Of the ninth century Mosheim says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The ungodly lives of most of those intrusted with the care and
- government of the church are a subject of complaint with all
- the ingenuous and honest writers of this age. In the east,
- sinister designs, rancor, contentions and strife were everywhere
- predominant. * * *
-</p>
-<p> In the west, the bishops hung round the courts of princes and
- indulged <span class="pagenum"><a name="p188"></a>{188}</span> themselves in every species of voluptuousness; while
- the inferior clergy and the monks were sensual, and by the grossest
- vices corrupted the people whom they were set to reform.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn108"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn108">108</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>17. State of Morals in Tenth Century.</b>&mdash;Of the tenth century Dr.
-Milner, who wrote his great history for the purpose of maintaining that
-there had been a succession of pious men since the founding of the
-church by Messiah, and to "trace the goodness of God taking care of his
-church in every age by his providence,"<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn109"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn109">109</a>]</sup> says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The famous annalist of the Roman Church,<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn110"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn110">110</a>]</sup> whose partiality
- to the see of Rome is notorious, has, however, the candor to own
- that this [the tenth century] was an iron age, barren of all
- goodness; a leaden age, abounding in all wickedness; and a dark
- age, remarkable above all other things for the scarcity of writers
- and men of learning. Christ was then, as it appears, in a very
- deep sleep, when the ship was covered with waves; and what seemed
- worse, when the Lord was thus asleep there were no disciples,
- who by their cries, might wake him, being themselves all fast
- asleep. * * * Under an allusion by no means incongruous with the
- oriental abd scriptural taste, this writer [Baronius] represents
- the divine head of the church as having given up the church for its
- wickedness, to a judicial impenitency, which continued the longer,
- because there was scarcely any zealous spirits who had the charity
- to pray for the cause of God upon earth. * * * Infidel Malice has
- with pleasure recorded the vices and the crimes of the popes of
- this century. Nor is it my intention to attempt to palliate the
- account of their wickedness. It was as deep <span class="pagenum"><a name="p189"></a>{189}</span> and atrocious as
- language can paint; nor can a reasonable man desire more authentic
- evidence of history than that which the records both of civil and
- ecclesiastical history afford concerning the corruption of the
- whole church.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn111"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn111">111</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>18. The Church Destroyed.</b>&mdash;Beyond this century it is not
-necessary to go. The church of Christ no longer existed in the earth.
-The persecution of the Jews and the Romans, coupled with the internal
-dissensions in the church; the rise of false teachers, who brought
-in damnable heresies; the changing of the character and spirit of
-the church government; the addition of pagan rites and ceremonies to
-the doctrines and ordinances of the gospel; the admixture of pagan
-philosophy with Christian theology; and, finally, the universal
-departure of the church from that moral life enjoined upon mankind by
-the precepts of the Christian religion&mdash;utterly subverted the religion
-of Jesus Christ, and destroyed the church which he founded. The
-apostasy of men from that religion and church was complete; and since
-they did not like to retain God in their hearts, God also gave them up
-to uncleanness through the lusts of their own hearts. [See notes 1 to
-6, end of section].
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Admission of the Great Apostasy by Christian Writers.</b>&mdash;The
-church of England in its Homily on the Perils of Idolatry, says: "Laity
-and clergy, learned and unlearned, all ages, sects and degrees have
-been drowned in abominable idolatry most detested by God and damnable
-to man for eight hundred years and more."
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> In Smith's Dictionary of the Bible (page 163)&mdash;the work
-is endorsed by sixty-three learned divines and Bible scholars&mdash;the
-following <span class="pagenum"><a name="p190"></a>{190}</span> occurs: "We must not expect to see the church of Christ
-existing in its perfection on the earth. It is not to be found thus
-perfect, either in the collected fragments of Christendom, or still
-less in any one of those fragments."
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> John Wesley said that the reason why the extraordinary gifts
-of the Holy Ghost were no longer to be found in the church [in the dark
-ages] was "because the love of many waxed cold, the Christians had
-turned heathens again and only had a dead form left."&mdash;(Wesley's Works,
-Vol. vii, sermon 89, pages 26, 27).
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> Dr. Adam Clark commenting on the fourth chapter of
-Ephsians&mdash;treating church officers and the gifts bestowed upon
-them&mdash;says: "All these officers and the and graces conferred upon
-them were adjudged necessary by the great head of the church for its
-full instruction in the important doctrines of Christianity. The same
-officers and gifts are still necessary, and God gives them, but they do
-not know their places."
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> Roger Williams (Picturesque America, page 502) refused to
-continue as pastor over the oldest Baptist church in America on the
-ground that there was "no regularly constituted church on earth, nor
-any person qualified to administer any church ordinance; nor can there
-be until new apostles are sent by the great head of the church, for
-whose coming I am seeking."
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> Alexander Campbell, founder of the sect of the "Disciples,"
-says: "The meaning of this institution [the kingdom of heaven] has been
-buried under the rubbish of human tradition for hundreds of years.
-It was lost in the dark ages and has never, until recently, been
-disinterred."&mdash;(Christianity Restored, page 184).
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What may be learned from the reproofs and admonitions in the
-writings of the apostles and early Christian fathers?
-</p>
-<p>2. About what time did the notion arise in respect to a double rule of
-life?
-</p>
-<p>3. What great evil grew out of this erroneous idea?
-</p>
-<p>4. From whence did Christians derive their ideas which demanded the
-austerities they practiced?
-</p>
-<p>5. Give an account of the origin of monasteries and nunneries.
-</p>
-<p>6. How did the celibacy of the clergy originate?
-</p>
-<p>7. When did it become an express law of the church?
-</p>
-<p>8. What shameful scandal arose from this doctrine in the 3rd century?
-</p>
-<p>9. Under what circumstances were lying and deceiving accounted virtues?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p191"></a>{191}</span> 10. What evil grew out of this wicked notion?
-</p>
-<p>11. What can you say of the general moral condition of the church in
-the early Christian centuries?
-</p>
-<p>12. State the moral condition of the church in the 4th century. In the
-5th.
-</p>
-<p>13. What of the moral state of the church subsequent to the 5th?
-</p>
-<p>14. Give the substance of Dr. Milner's admission concerning the moral
-state of the church in the 10th century.
-</p>
-<p>15. State what several circumstances led to the destruction of the
-church of Christ.
-</p>
-<p>16. Recount the admissions which noted Christian writers make
-concerning the apostasy from the Christian religion. (Notes end of
-section).
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p192"></a>{192}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VII.
-</h2>
-<p>We have considered those events that occurred in the church by
-which its form and spirit of government were altered, its doctrines
-corrupted, its ordinances changed, and its truths and powers subverted.
-We now turn to the scriptures to show that all these things were
-predicted by the apostles and prophets of God, being foreseen by the
-spirit of revelation.
-</p>
-<p><b>1. False Teachers to Arise in the Church.</b>&mdash;On the occasion of
-Paul's last visit to Ephesus, he had the elders assembled, and in the
-course of his address to them said:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> I have not shunned to declare unto you all the counsel of God.
- Taken heed, therefore, unto yourselves, and to all the flock, over
- which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the church of
- God which he hath purchased with his own blood. For I know this,
- that after my departing shall grievous wolves enter in among you,
- not sparing the flock. Also of your own selves shall men arise,
- speaking perverse things to lead away disciples after them.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn112"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn112">112</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>2.</b> In his second letter to Timothy the same apostle again
-prophesies of the coming of these false teachers:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> I charge thee, therfore, [said he], before God, and the Lord Jesus
- Christ, who shall judge the quick and the dead at his appearing and
- his kingdom; preach the word; be instant in season, out of season;
- reprove, rebuke with all long suffering and doctrine. For the time
- will come when they will not endure sound doctrine; but after their
- own lusts shall they heap to themselves teachers having itching
- ears; and they [the false teachers] shall turn their ears from the
- truth, and shall be turned unto fables.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn113"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn113">113</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>3.</b> Peter also prophesied the rise of false teachers in the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p193"></a>{193}</span>
-church. In his second epistle, addressed, "to them that have obtained
-like precious faith," with himself&mdash;that is, to the saints; after
-saying that prophecy in olden time came by men speaking as they were
-moved upon by the Holy Ghost;<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn114"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn114">114</a>]</sup> he then remarks:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> But there were false prophets also among the people [that is, among
- the ancient saints], even as there shall be false teachers among
- you, who privily shall bring in damnable heresies, even denying the
- Lord that bought them, and bring upon themselves swift destruction.
- And many shall follow their pernicious ways; by reason of whom the
- way of truth shall be evil spoken of. And through covetousness with
- feigned words make merchandise of you; whose judgment now of a long
- time lingereth not, and their damnation slumbereth not.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn115"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn115">115</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>4. Hypocrisy and Austerity Predicted.</b>&mdash;Paul also appears to have
-foreseen the hypocrisy that would creep into the church, together with
-that useless austerity of life with which men and women would become
-infatuated, and which, became the fountain of so much corruption. He
-thus speaks of it:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Now the Spirit speaketh expressly, that in the latter times some
- shall depart from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits and
- doctrines of devils; speaking lies in hypocrisy, having their
- conscience seared with a hot iron; forbidding to marry, and
- commanding to abstain from meats.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn116"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn116">116</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>5. The Rise of Anti-Christ Foretold.</b>&mdash;Moreover, the Prophet Paul
-foretold the rise of anti-Christ before the glorious coming of Messiah
-to judgment. He plainly foresaw the "falling away"&mdash;the long night of
-spiritual darkness and apostasy that would brood over the world before
-the coming of the Son of God in the glory of his Father, to reward the
-righteous, to condemn the wicked. He said of this apostasy:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Now we beseech you, brethren, by the coming of our Lord Jesus <span class="pagenum"><a name="p194"></a>{194}</span>
- Christ and by our gathering together unto him; that ye be not soon
- shaken in mind, or be troubled, neither by spirit nor by word, nor
- by letter as from us, as that the day of Christ is at hand.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn117"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn117">117</a>]</sup>
- Let no man deceive you by any means, for that day shall not come
- except there come a falling away first, and that man of sin be
- revealed, the son of perdition; who opposeth and exalteth himself
- above all that is called God, or that is worshiped; so that he
- as God sitteth in the temple of God, showing himself that he is
- God. Remember ye not that when I was yet with you I told you these
- things? And now ye know what withholdeth that he might be revealed
- in his own time. For the mystery of iniquity doth already work:
- only he who now letteth [hindereth] will let [will hinder]<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn118"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn118">118</a>]</sup>
- until he be taken out of the way. And then shall that Wicked be
- revealed, whom the Lord shall consume with the spirit of his mouth,
- and shall destroy with the brightness of his coming; even him whose
- coming is after the working of Satan, with all power and signs and
- lying wonders, and with all deceivableness of unrighteousness in
- them that perish; because they received not the love of the truth,
- that they might be saved. And for this cause God shall send them
- strong delusions, that they should believe a lie; that they all
- might be damned who believe not the truth, but had pleasure in
- unrighteousness.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn119"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn119">119</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>6. Isaiah's Great Prophecy of the Apostasy.</b>&mdash;Isaiah also
-prophesied of the universal apostasy from the gospel of Christ. After
-describing the earth as mourning and fading away, together with its
-haughty people, he said:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The earth also is defiled under the inhabitants thereof; because
- they have transgressed the laws, changed the ordinance, broken the
- everlasting covenant. Therefore hath the curse devoured the earth,
- and they that dwell therein are desolate: therefore the inhabitants
- of the earth are burned, and few men left.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn120"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn120">120</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>7.</b> It is sometimes claimed that this prophecy refers to the
-Mosaic law, and the Mosaic covenant, instead of the gospel of Christ.
-The answer to such claim is that the prophecy has reference to an
-everlasting covenant that is to be broken; and the Mosaic law or
-covenant, never was intended to be an everlasting covenant, while the
-gospel of Christ is such a covenant. Paul said:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> The scripture, foreseeing that God would justify the heathen
- through faith, preached before the gospel to Abraham. * * *
- Wherefore then serveth the law [that is, if the gospel was
- preached unto Abraham, of what use is the law of Moses&mdash;the law
- of carnal commandments&mdash;how came it into existence]? It was added
- because of transgression, till the seed [Christ] should come,
- to whom the promise was made. * * * Wherefore the law was our
- schoolmaster to bring us unto Christ, that we might be justified
- by faith. But after that faith is come, we are no longer under a
- schoolmaster.<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn121"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn121">121</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>8.</b> From this it appears that the gospel was preached in very
-ancient times; that afterwards, because of transgression&mdash;doubtless
-apostasy&mdash;the law of Moses was added, or given in the place of the
-gospel, that it might act as a schoolmaster to bring the people to
-Christ, that is, prepare them for the gospel. Therefore, when the
-gospel was introduced by the personal ministry of Messiah, the law of
-Moses&mdash;the carnal law&mdash;having served its purpose, was set aside, and
-the gospel was reinstated. It will be seen, therefore, that the Mosaic
-law was not an everlasting covenant, but a temporary law, given for a
-specific purpose, having accomplished which it is supplanted by a more
-excellent law and covenant. It is clear that Isaiah's great prophecy
-had no reference to the law of Moses, but to an everlasting covenant
-which was to be broken, its ordinance changed, its laws transgressed.
-That covenant is the gospel of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p196"></a>{196}</span> Jesus Christ, whose blood is
-spoken of as the "blood of the everlasting covenant."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn122"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn122">122</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> Moreover the prophecy ends by saying that in consequence
-of the transgression of the law, the changing of the ordinance, the
-breaking of the covenant, "the inhabitants of the earth are burned, and
-few men left." This predicted calamity did not overtake the people for
-breaking the Mosaic law. It has not yet taken place. It is a judgment
-still hanging over mankind for their great apostasy from the gospel of
-Jesus Christ.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. John's Vision Foreshadowing the Apostasy.</b>&mdash;Among the many
-revelations given to the Apostle John while a prisoner on the Isle of
-Patmos was one in which he saw an angel "fly in the midst of heaven,
-having the everlasting gospel to preach unto them that dwell on the
-earth, and to every nation, and kindred, and tongue, and people, saying
-with a loud voice, "Fear God, and give glory to him; for the hour of
-his judgment is come: and worship him that made heaven, and earth, and
-the sea, and the fountains of waters."<sup>[<a name="PartIIfn123"></a><a href="#txtPartIIfn123">123</a>]</sup> From this it is learned
-that in the hour of God's judgment the gospel will be brought to the
-earth by an angel, and thence proclaimed to every nation, and kindred,
-and tongue, and people, a very good evidence that in the "hour of
-God's judgment" all the world would be without the gospel, or why this
-restoration at that time and its universal proclamation if the nations
-at the time indicated already possessed it?
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> Thus through revelation the ancient prophets foresaw the
-great apostasy from the gospel of Jesus Christ. We who live now after
-the great event has occurred, in the light of historical facts, see it
-no more plainly than did these ancient servants of God through the gift
-of prophecy. They read the history of it by the light of revelation, we
-by the light of history, and the former is a light no less certain than
-the latter.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p197"></a>{197}</span>
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. By what means were the apostles and still more ancient prophets made
-acquainted with the great apostasy from the Christian religion?
-</p>
-<p>2. Repeat the several prophecies concerning the rise of false teachers
-in the church.
-</p>
-<p>3. Give the passage which predicts the rise of hypocrisy and austerity
-of life.
-</p>
-<p>4. In what passage of Paul's writings is the rise of anti-Christ
-predicted?
-</p>
-<p>5. What does letteth and let in this passage mean? Give proof.
-</p>
-<p>6. State in what way Paul's great prophecy has been fulfilled.
-</p>
-<p>7. State Isaiah's great prophecy respecting the apostasy.
-</p>
-<p>8. What objection may be urged to our application of this prophecy?
-</p>
-<p>9. How would you meet the objection?
-</p>
-<p>10. What great judgment is still pending over the world because of
-their wicked apostasy?
-</p>
-<p>11. What vision given to St. John on Patmos foreshadowed a universal
-apostasy?
-</p>
-<p>12. If the gospel from the time it was established on the earth by
-Messiah's personal ministry had continued with men until now, would
-there be any necessity for restoring it to the earth in the hour of
-God's judgment?
-</p>
-<p>13. Was the fact of the apostasy read by the light of the spirit of
-prophecy less clear than when by the light of historical facts?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p198"></a>{198}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VIII.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Nephite Christian Church.</b>&mdash;For nearly two centuries the
-Nephite Christian church flourished in great prosperity. For that
-length of time the truth seems to have been preserved in its fullness,
-and the church in its unity. With the third century, however, began
-that apostasy which eventually terminated by a complete subversion of
-the church of Christ on the Western hemisphere.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Pride of Wealth and Class Distinctions.</b>&mdash;The peace and
-righteousness of two centuries brought great prosperity and wealth
-to the Nephite Christians&mdash;to the entire western hemisphere; but the
-commencement of the third century began to develop the fact that
-pride was pressing fast upon the heels of that prosperity. Up to the
-commencement of the third century the Nephite Christians had all
-things common; but early in the third century that order of things was
-broken up. Class distinctions arose, men began to pride themselves on
-their fine apparel and jewels. They began to build churches to get
-gain, and to deny the true church of Christ. Others, professing to be
-Christians, denied much of that which Messiah taught, and administered
-that which was sacred to those to whom it had been forbidden, because
-of unworthiness.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Anti-Christian Church Persecutions.</b>&mdash;There also arose an
-anti-Christian church, which persecuted the true church, despising the
-members thereof because of their humility, and hating them because
-of the power of God which was with them. Among the twelve apostles
-whom Jesus selected from the Nephites three desired that they might
-remain upon the earth until Messiah should come in his glory. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p199"></a>{199}</span>
-This request was granted them, and their bodies were changed that they
-were not subject to death. They had remained with the church up to the
-time of which we write, and against them the anti-Christian church was
-especially embittered. The apostates sought to kill them as the Jews
-at Jerusalem tried to kill Jesus; they cast them into prison and into
-dens of wild beasts; but the Lord delivered them from prisons, murders
-and the wild beasts, and that by the manifestations of his power. Yet
-the miracles did not convert their ungodly persecutors, and the wicked
-increased rapidly in numbers.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Revival of Old Distinctions.</b>&mdash;Soon the ancient distinctions
-between Nephites and Lamanites which for two centuries had been buried
-in oblivion, began to be employed to designate the two peoples which
-gradually began to be formed. The true Christians were called Nephites,
-and their enemies Lamanite. All the old bitterness which attached to
-the names in former times was revived.
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> It was but a few years after the apostasy began before the
-wicked outnumbered the righteous. For a while the name "Nephites"
-designated the true followers of Messiah, but soon they became as proud
-and as wicked as the Lamanites, and righteousness was subverted.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Revival of Secret Organizations.</b>&mdash;The old secret societies
-were revived for robbery and plunder. Early in the fourth century (320
-A. D.) Ammoran, who had charge of the Nephite records, hid them up,
-revealing the place of their concealment only to Mormon, a lad then ten
-years of age, giving him a charge to go, when he was twenty-four years
-old, and take the plates of Nephi and record on them the things he
-had witnessed among the people. About the same time the three Nephite
-apostles disappeared from among the people; the church no longer
-being worthy of their administrations, the Lord took them away. All
-miracles, healings, and other spiritual manifestations ceased. Mormon,
-a historian and a <span class="pagenum"><a name="p200"></a>{200}</span> righteous man, remained with them, but he was
-forbidden to preach to them. A black pall of spiritual darkness settled
-over the land and the minds of the people.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. An Attempt to Reorganize the Church.</b>&mdash;Forty years later, after
-a series of disastrous wars, by which one might reasonably expect the
-Nephites would be humbled and brought to seek the Lord, an attempt to
-re-establish the church was made. Mormon received a commandment to
-preach repentance and baptism to the people, a commandment which he
-willingly obeyed; but all to no purpose. The people would not repent.
-They hardened their hearts against God and made themselves fit only for
-destruction.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Utter Destruction of the Nephites.</b>&mdash;That destruction was not
-very remote. Towards the close of that century which witnessed the
-climax of their wickedness saw their destruction. By permission of the
-Lamanites the Nephites assembled about the hill called by them Cumorah
-and prepared for the last great struggle. It took place in the year 385
-A. D., and resulted in the entire destruction of the Nephite people,
-except, perhaps, a few who fled southward. Mormon was slain, and his
-son, the last of the Nephites, was preserved to record the destruction
-and the desolation which followed it, and hid up the records of the
-great race which had founded kingdoms and republics upon the western
-hemisphere that would vie with those of Persia, Macedonia or Greece;
-and cities that in extent and grandeur must have equalled those of
-Antioch, Alexandria, Tyre or Sidon.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Reign of Anarchy.</b>&mdash;That civilization was destroyed, the
-empires and republics were overthrown, government was destroyed,
-anarchy reigned. The people, chiefly Lamanites, who survived the
-terrible conflict about Cumorah, broke up into tribes, each fiercely
-contending with the other. Cities were laid waste to crumble into
-shapeless heaps of ruin, with here and there a monument that defied
-the ravages of time and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p201"></a>{201}</span> proudly stood a silent witness of the
-greatness of the departed race which reared it. Such was the apostasy
-on the western hemisphere, and such the result which followed it.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. For how long did the Nephite Christian church keep the faith?
-</p>
-<p>2. In the third century what occurred?
-</p>
-<p>3. On what were their class distinctions based?
-</p>
-<p>4. State what you can of the rise and course of the anti-Christian
-church.
-</p>
-<p>5. What of the rise of old distinctions?
-</p>
-<p>6. What old organizations were revived in the fourth century?
-</p>
-<p>7. What attempt was made to reorganize the church?
-</p>
-<p>8. Where were the Nephites destroyed?
-</p>
-<p>9. What followed the destruction of the Nephites?
-</p>
-<h3>Footnotes
-</h3>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn1"></a><a href="#PartIIfn1">1</a>. These statements are sustained in the following scriptures. Matt.
-x:16-40; Luke vi:22-26; John xv:18-22.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn2"></a><a href="#PartIIfn2">2</a>. Acts vii: 55-60.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn3"></a><a href="#PartIIfn3">3</a>. Acts xii: 1, 2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn4"></a><a href="#PartIIfn4">4</a>. Eusebius Bk. II, ch. xxiii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn5"></a><a href="#PartIIfn5">5</a>. Acts xii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn6"></a><a href="#PartIIfn6">6</a>. Mosheim Part I, ch. v.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn7"></a><a href="#PartIIfn7">7</a>. Matt. xxvii: 22-25.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn8"></a><a href="#PartIIfn8">8</a>. Josephus' Wars of the Jews, Bk. vi, ch. ix.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn9"></a><a href="#PartIIfn9">9</a>. Luke xxi: 5-9, 20-24.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn10"></a><a href="#PartIIfn10">10</a>. Eusebius Bk. III, ch. v. The Saints were also warned to flee from
-Jerusalem by Messiah himself when they should see armies begin to
-encompass it.&mdash;See Luke xxi: 20-24.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn11"></a><a href="#PartIIfn11">11</a>. Decline and Fall Vol. I, ch. 1.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn12"></a><a href="#PartIIfn12">12</a>. Annals lib. xv, ch. 44.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn13"></a><a href="#PartIIfn13">13</a>. Decline and Fall I, ch. xvi. See also Guizot's note on same page.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn14"></a><a href="#PartIIfn14">14</a>. This is according to the testimony of Eusebius, quoting Hagesippus
-and Tertullian. (Eusebius Book III, ch. xx). But other authorities
-claim that Domitian's edicts against the Christians were not revoked
-until after his death.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn15"></a><a href="#PartIIfn15">15</a>. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. I. Second Cent. ch. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn16"></a><a href="#PartIIfn16">16</a>. Decline and Fall, vol. I, ch. xvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn17"></a><a href="#PartIIfn17">17</a>. Eusebius Eccle. Hist. Bk. v, ch. i and ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn18"></a><a href="#PartIIfn18">18</a>. Decline and Fall, vol. I, ch. xvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn19"></a><a href="#PartIIfn19">19</a>. Mosheim's Eccl. His. vol. I, cent. iii, ch. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn20"></a><a href="#PartIIfn20">20</a>. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. vol. I, cent. iv, ch. i.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn21"></a><a href="#PartIIfn21">21</a>. Quoted by Murdock in Mosheim.&mdash;See note&mdash;Mosheim Eccl. Hist. vol.
-I, p. 210.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn22"></a><a href="#PartIIfn22">22</a>. Revelation ch. xiii: 1-7.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn23"></a><a href="#PartIIfn23">23</a>. According to Eusebius, however, Helena was converted to
-Christianity by her son.&mdash;De Veta Constantine I, iii, ch: 47.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn24"></a><a href="#PartIIfn24">24</a>. Constantine had caused to be put to death, through jealousy and on
-what, to say the least, was very slight and very suspicious testimony,
-his son Crispus, his wife Fausta, and his brother-in-law Licinius.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn25"></a><a href="#PartIIfn25">25</a>. Decline and Fall, vol. I, ch. xvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn26"></a><a href="#PartIIfn26">26</a>. Decline and Fall vol. I, ch. xvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn27"></a><a href="#PartIIfn27">27</a>. Mosheim vol. I, Book i, part ii, ch. iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn28"></a><a href="#PartIIfn28">28</a>. Acts ii: 41. Acts viii: 12, 35-40.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn29"></a><a href="#PartIIfn29">29</a>. That exorcism was not annexed to baptism till some time in the
-third century, and after the admission of the Platonic philosophy into
-the church, may almost be demonstrated. The ceremonies used at baptism
-in the second century are described by Justin Martyr in his second
-apology, and by Tertullian in his book de Corono Militas. But neither
-makes mention of exorcism. This is a cogent argument to prove that it
-was admitted by Christians after the times of these fathers, and of
-course in the third century. Egypt perhaps first received it. Murdock's
-Mosheim vol. I, p. 190.&mdash;(Note.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn30"></a><a href="#PartIIfn30">30</a>. Mosheim vol. I, book i, part ii, ch. iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn31"></a><a href="#PartIIfn31">31</a>. According to Schlegel, the so-called apostolic constitution (b.
-viii, ch. 32) enjoined a three years' course of preparation; yet with
-allowance of some exceptions.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn32"></a><a href="#PartIIfn32">32</a>. That is, the evening preceding the day on which Messiah is supposed
-to have arisen from the dead, and the evening preceding the seventh
-Sunday after Easter, the anniversary of Pentecost when the Holy Ghost
-was poured out upon the Apostles in a remarkable manner (Acts ii.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn33"></a><a href="#PartIIfn33">33</a>. Mosheim vol. I, book ii, part ii. ch. iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn34"></a><a href="#PartIIfn34">34</a>. Cyprian's Epistles, letter 76.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn35"></a><a href="#PartIIfn35">35</a>. Eusebius Eccl. Hist. b. vi, ch. 43.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn36"></a><a href="#PartIIfn36">36</a>. Milner's Church Hist. vol. I pp. 429, 430.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn37"></a><a href="#PartIIfn37">37</a>. Such is the opinion of Milner&mdash;Church Hist. vol. I. p. 430.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn38"></a><a href="#PartIIfn38">38</a>. The Lord Jesus the same night in which he was betrayed took bread:
-and when he had given thanks, he brake it, and said, Take, eat; this is
-my body which is broken for you; this do in remembrance of me. After
-the same manner also he took the cup, when he had supped, saying:
-This cup is the new testament in my blood; this do ye, as oft as ye
-drink it, in remembrance of me. For as often as ye eat this bread, and
-drink this cup, ye do show the Lord's death till he come.&mdash;Paul to the
-Corinthians. (I Cor. xi: 23-26.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn39"></a><a href="#PartIIfn39">39</a>. These facts are clearly taught by Messiah when he established the
-sacrament among the Nephites; and of course it was established among
-the Jews for the same purpose that it was among the Nephites. After
-having broken the bread and blessed it, and passed it to the multitude,
-Messiah said: "This shall ye do in remembrance of my body, which I have
-shown unto you. And it shall be a testimony unto the Father that ye do
-always remember me. And if you do always remember me, ye shall have my
-Spirit to be with you." So when he had administered the wine: "Blessed
-are ye for this thing which ye have done; * * * this doth witness unto
-the Father that ye are willing to do that which I have commanded you;
-and this shall ye always do to those who repent and are baptized in my
-name; and ye shall do it in remembrance of my blood which I have shed
-for you, that ye may witness unto the Father that ye do always remember
-me. And if ye do always remember me, ye shall have my Spirit to be with
-you."&mdash;III Nephi, xviii. See also Moroni, iv and v, where the prayer of
-consecration is given.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn40"></a><a href="#PartIIfn40">40</a>. Mosheim's Ecclesiastical History, vol. I, book i, cent. iii, part
-2, chapter iv. The banishment of unbaptized people from sacrament
-meetings was forbidden among the Nephites by Messiah. III Nephi xviii:
-22-23.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn41"></a><a href="#PartIIfn41">41</a>. Protestants combating the Catholic idea of the real presence of the
-flesh and blood in the eucharist&mdash;transubstantiation&mdash;have endeavored
-to prove that this doctrine was not of earlier origin than the eighth
-century. In this, however, the evidence is against them. Ignatius,
-bishop of Antioch, writing early in the second century says of certain
-supposed heretics: "They do not admit of eucharists and oblations,
-because they do not believe the eucharist to be the flesh of our Savior
-Jesus Christ, who suffered for our sins." (Epistles of Ignatius to
-the Smyrneans.) So Justin Martyr, also writing in the first half of
-the second century:&mdash;"We do not receive them [the bread and the win]
-as ordinary food or ordinary drink; but as by the word of God Jesus
-Christ, our Savior, was made flesh and took upon him both flesh and
-blood for our salvation, so also the food which was blessed by the
-prayer of the word which proceeded from him, and from which our flesh
-and blood, by transmutation, receive nourishment, is, we are taught,
-both the flesh and blood of that Jesus who was made flesh." (Justin's
-Apology to Emperor Antonius.) After Justin's time the testimony of
-the fathers is abundant. There can be no doubt as to the antiquity of
-the idea of the real presence of the body and blood of Jesus in the
-eucharist; but that proves&mdash;as we said of infant baptism&mdash;not that the
-doctrine is true, but that soon after the apostles had passed away, the
-simplicity of the gospel was corrupted or else entirely departed from.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn42"></a><a href="#PartIIfn42">42</a>. Luke xxii. Matt. xxvi. III Nephi xviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn43"></a><a href="#PartIIfn43">43</a>. It will be remembered that the quorum of the twelve was perpetuated
-on the western hemisphere by filling up vacancies as fast as they
-occurred (IV Nephi: 14), but for how long a period is uncertain.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn44"></a><a href="#PartIIfn44">44</a>. Acts xv: 1-30. Rev. i-iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn45"></a><a href="#PartIIfn45">45</a>. During a greater part of this century (the second) all the churches
-continued to be, as at the first, independent of each other. * * * Each
-church was a kind of small republic, governing itself by its own laws,
-enacted or at least sanctioned by the people.&mdash;Ecclesiastical History,
-Mosheim Vol. I, book ii, cent. ii, part ii, ch. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn46"></a><a href="#PartIIfn46">46</a>. As might be expected, however, there was a peculiar respect paid
-to the churches founded by the apostles&mdash;the church at Jerusalem,
-Antioch, Ephesus, Corinth, Rome. Those churches were appealed to in
-controversies on points of doctrine, "as most likely to know what the
-apostles taught," but the appeal had no other significance than that.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn47"></a><a href="#PartIIfn47">47</a>. Clement, the third bishop of Rome, is my authority for the above
-statement. It appears that the Corinthians had deposed some of their
-bishops, and Clement in an epistle which he wrote to them said: "Our
-apostles knew through our Lord Jesus Christ that there would be strife
-over the name of the bishop's office. For this cause therefore, having
-received complete foreknowledge, they appointed the aforesaid persons
-[the bishops], and afterward they provided a continuance [i.e.,
-gave instructions] that if these should fall asleep, other approved
-men should succeed to their ministration. Those therefore who were
-appointed by other men of repute with the consent of the whole church,
-and have ministered unblamably * * * these men we consider to be
-unjustly thrust out of their ministration."&mdash;See also Gibbon's "Decline
-and Fall," vol. I, ch. xv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn48"></a><a href="#PartIIfn48">48</a>. Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) vol. I, bk. i, cent. iii, part ii, ch. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn49"></a><a href="#PartIIfn49">49</a>. Dr. Mosheim in his Institutes of Ecclesiastical History states
-that next to the patriarchs were bishops called exarchs; but this his
-translator (Murdock) denies. Certain it is, however, that there were
-bishops who presided over several provinces, just as the civil exarchs
-did. These Mosheim may have considered as corresponding to the civil
-exarchs; while his translator insists that they were merely the "first
-metropolitans of the civil dioceses." The difference seems to be one
-of terms rather than of facts; but there is this to say in favor of
-the translator, that the bishops exercising jurisdiction over several
-provinces did not correspond to the number of civil exarchs. There was
-not an exarch bishop over each civil diocese, and perhaps this is the
-reason the learned translator objects to the term of ecclesiastical
-exarch.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn50"></a><a href="#PartIIfn50">50</a>. In course of time the terms arch-bishop and metropolitan came to be
-used interchangeably.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn51"></a><a href="#PartIIfn51">51</a>. Matt. xvi:19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn52"></a><a href="#PartIIfn52">52</a>. Irenaeus against Heresy, bk. III, ch. iii: 2, 3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn53"></a><a href="#PartIIfn53">53</a>. Matt. xvi:15-18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn54"></a><a href="#PartIIfn54">54</a>. St. John i:42.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn55"></a><a href="#PartIIfn55">55</a>. The words of Christ to Peter, spoken in the vulgar language of the
-Jews, which our Lord made use of, were the same as if he had said in
-English: Thou art a rock, and upon this rock I will build my church. So
-that by the plain course of the words Peter is here declared to be the
-rock upon which the church was to be built.&mdash;Footnote in Douay Bible on
-these passages.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn56"></a><a href="#PartIIfn56">56</a>. As if it read: "Flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but
-my Father which is in heaven; and I say unto thee, Peter, upon this
-principle I will build my church."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn57"></a><a href="#PartIIfn57">57</a>. Matt. xxviii:18-20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn58"></a><a href="#PartIIfn58">58</a>. Milner's End of Religious Controversy&mdash;Letter xxviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn59"></a><a href="#PartIIfn59">59</a>. Orson Pratt's Works, Divine Authenticity, No.3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn60"></a><a href="#PartIIfn60">60</a>. Milner's Church Hist. Vol. III, pp. 53, 69&mdash;note.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn61"></a><a href="#PartIIfn61">61</a>. See Bossuet's Universal History, Vol. I, p. 558. J. Andrew Cramer,
-German translation.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn62"></a><a href="#PartIIfn62">62</a>. See Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) bk. III, part ii, ch. ii:6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn63"></a><a href="#PartIIfn63">63</a>. Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) bk. III, part ii, ch. ii:11.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn64"></a><a href="#PartIIfn64">64</a>. The cardinals are senators of the church and counselors of the
-successors of St. Peter. There are now three orders of cardinals,
-viz., bishops, priests and deacons; six of these are bishops, fifty
-are priests and fourteen deacons. Sixtus V. [between A. D. 1585 and
-1590] fixed the number of cardinals at seventy in order to imitate the
-ancient Sanhedrin of the Jews which was composed of seventy elders, and
-it is this assembly which is now called the Sacred College.&mdash;History of
-all religions (Burder) p. 336.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn65"></a><a href="#PartIIfn65">65</a>. Apologists of the popes may say what they will about purchased
-indulgences not being intended to remit sins, or a grant of permission
-to commit sin; and claim that they are only a remission of the whole or
-part of the temporal punishment due to sin. But if indulgences remit
-the temporal penalties of sins, what is that but the remission of sin
-or at least of its effects, which, for all practical purposes, would
-be the same as remission of sin? And if penalties attached to sins are
-set aside in advance of the commission of the sins, what is that but a
-license to commit sin? "Come," said Tetzel, in selling indulgences in
-Germany early in the 16th century, "come and I will give you letters
-all properly sealed, by which even the sins that you intend to commit
-may be pardoned. * * * There is no sin so great but that an indulgence
-cannot remit."&mdash;Hist. Reformation, D'Aubigne's, bk. III, ch. i. Tetzel
-defends this doctrine in his Antithesis 99, 100, 101. [See note 8, end
-of section.]
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn66"></a><a href="#PartIIfn66">66</a>. II Thess. ii:4.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn67"></a><a href="#PartIIfn67">67</a>. Page 127.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn68"></a><a href="#PartIIfn68">68</a>. Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn69"></a><a href="#PartIIfn69">69</a>. Tertullian's Apology, ch. xlii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn70"></a><a href="#PartIIfn70">70</a>. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. vol. I, bk, ii, part ii, ch. 4.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn71"></a><a href="#PartIIfn71">71</a>. Historie de Manicheism, tom ii, page 642.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn72"></a><a href="#PartIIfn72">72</a>. Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) vol. I, bk. ii, part ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn73"></a><a href="#PartIIfn73">73</a>. I Cor. xii: 8-10.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn74"></a><a href="#PartIIfn74">74</a>. That it was proper for the Christian bishops to increase the
-restraints upon the licentiousness of transgression, will be readily
-granted by all who consider the circumstances of those times. But
-whether it was for the advantage of Christianity, to borrow rules
-for this salutary ordinance from the enemies of truth, and thus to
-consecrate, as it were, a part of the pagan superstition, many persons
-very justly call in question.&mdash;Eccl. Hist. (Mosheim) book I, cent. 2,
-part ii, ch. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn75"></a><a href="#PartIIfn75">75</a>. Gen. i:26, 27. Jesus Christ was in the form of man, yet he is said
-to be the express image of God's person&mdash;Heb. i: 1-2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn76"></a><a href="#PartIIfn76">76</a>. Matt. iii: 16, 17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn77"></a><a href="#PartIIfn77">77</a>. Acts vii: 55, 56.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn78"></a><a href="#PartIIfn78">78</a>. John x: 30, and John xiv: 8-11.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn79"></a><a href="#PartIIfn79">79</a>. John xvii: 11, 21.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn80"></a><a href="#PartIIfn80">80</a>. John xiv: 26. John xv: 26. John xvi: 13-15.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn81"></a><a href="#PartIIfn81">81</a>. John xvii: 4, 5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn82"></a><a href="#PartIIfn82">82</a>. Heb. iv: 2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn83"></a><a href="#PartIIfn83">83</a>. John i:3. [See note 6, end of section].
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn84"></a><a href="#PartIIfn84">84</a>. Some authorities say seven pairs were introduced in this manner.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn85"></a><a href="#PartIIfn85">85</a>. The statement is condensed from Mosheim; Dr. Benton, for years
-professor of divinity at Oxford, in his Brampton lectures states that
-the matter was "inert and powerless though co-eternal with the supreme
-God, and, like Him, without beginning."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn86"></a><a href="#PartIIfn86">86</a>. The Gnostics desired to avoid making God the author of evil, hence
-it is a leading principle in their philosophy that all evil has its
-origin in matter, and as matter was created by one of the Aeons, not by
-God, the Lord in the Gnostic system is relieved from the responsibility
-of being the author of evil.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn87"></a><a href="#PartIIfn87">87</a>. The statement of the Gnostic philosophy I have condensed from
-Mosheim and Dr. Benton, than whom there can be no higher authority on
-this subject.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn88"></a><a href="#PartIIfn88">88</a>. Gibbon's Decline and Fall, vol. ii, ch. xxii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn89"></a><a href="#PartIIfn89">89</a>. The subject is difficult of illustration; but the following will
-perhaps aid the student to grasp the Sabellian doctrine. We see the
-ocean is a liquid; let us next imagine it frozen into solid ice; next
-as entirely dissolved into vapor. Here we have the same substance in
-three different aspects, but whether we speak of it as the liquid
-ocean, the frozen ocean or the ocean dissolved into vapor, it is always
-the same ocean, the same substance, but under different aspects.
-Whether he appeared as the Father, the Son or the Holy Ghost, he was
-always the same God. Such was the Sabellian theory in respect to Deity.
-Mosheim represents Sabellius as teaching that the divine nature was
-divided into portions, that one portion became separate, was called
-the Son, and was joined to the man Jesus. The Holy Ghost was a similar
-portion or part of the Eternal Father. The weight of authority is
-against the learned Doctor in this matter, however, and in favor of the
-statement of Sabellius' views in the text of this work.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn90"></a><a href="#PartIIfn90">90</a>. This is the Nicene Creed as it was formulated by that celebrated
-council. The so-called Nicene Creed used in the Catholic, Lutheran
-and English Churches is this creed as modified by the Council of
-Constantinople, A. D., 381. There is no material difference in them.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn91"></a><a href="#PartIIfn91">91</a>. Mosheim, Gibbon, Montfaucon and others insist that Athanasius is
-not the author of this creed, and this may be true, but I have not yet
-heard of its being rejected as an explanation of the Nicene Creed.
-Indeed, notwithstanding its authenticity has long been suspected, it
-still stands in the English prayer book and is recited in the church of
-England service upon the most notable feasts, Christmas, Epiphany etc.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn92"></a><a href="#PartIIfn92">92</a>. Church of England Book of Common Prayer, p. 49 Athanasius
-is credited with having confessed that whenever he forced his
-understanding to meditate on the divinity of the Logos, his toilsome
-and unavailing efforts recoiled on themselves; that the more he
-thought, the less he comprehended; and the more he wrote, the less
-capable was he of expressing his thoughts. (Decline and Fall, vol.
-II, ch. xxi.) We would naturally think that whoever the author of the
-Athanasian Creed may be, that such would be his mental condition.
-Nor are we very much surprised when we hear Gennadius, patriarch of
-Constantinople, frankly pronouncing it the work of a drunken man.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn93"></a><a href="#PartIIfn93">93</a>. Catholic Belief (Bruno) p. 1. This work is endorsed by His eminence
-Cardinal Manning.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn94"></a><a href="#PartIIfn94">94</a>. Church of England Book of Common Prayer, p. 311.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn95"></a><a href="#PartIIfn95">95</a>. Gen. i: 26, 27.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn96"></a><a href="#PartIIfn96">96</a>. Heb. i: 3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn97"></a><a href="#PartIIfn97">97</a>. Phil. ii: 5, 6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn98"></a><a href="#PartIIfn98">98</a>. It is remarkable how clearly men will reason upon the absurdity of
-immaterialism in everything except in respect to God. As an example,
-take the reasoning of Rev. John Wesley in regard to the supposed
-immateriality of the fire in hell: "But it has been questioned by some
-whether there be any fire in hell; that is, any material fire. Nay, if
-there be any fire it is unquestionably material. For what is immaterial
-fire? The same as immaterial water or earth! Both the one and the other
-is absolute nonsense, a contradiction in terms. Either, therefore, we
-must affirm it to be material, or we deny its existence." Now apply
-that correct reasoning to the immaterial God of the orthodox Christian
-and what is the result? Let us try the experiment by substituting the
-word God, for the word fire in the quotation:&mdash;But it is questioned by
-some whether there be any God, that is, any material God. Nay, if there
-be any God, he is unquestionably material. For what is an immaterial
-God? The same as immaterial water or earth! both the one and the
-other [that is, both immaterial God and immaterial earth] is absolute
-nonsense, a contradiction in terms. Either, therefore, we must affirm
-him to be material, or we deny his existence.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn99"></a><a href="#PartIIfn99">99</a>. II Peter ii: I.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn100"></a><a href="#PartIIfn100">100</a>. Mosheim, book II, cent. iv, part ii, ch. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn101"></a><a href="#PartIIfn101">101</a>. The phraseology of the philosophers was, "living according to
-nature, and living above nature." The former was the rule for all men,
-the latter for the philosophers who aimed at perfect virtue.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn102"></a><a href="#PartIIfn102">102</a>. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist., book I, cent. i, part ii, ch. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn103"></a><a href="#PartIIfn103">103</a>. Mosheim, book II, cent. iv, part ii, ch. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn104"></a><a href="#PartIIfn104">104</a>. Decline and Fall (Gibbon) vol. 1, ch. xvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn105"></a><a href="#PartIIfn105">105</a>. Mosheim, book II, cent. iv, part ii, ch. iii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn106"></a><a href="#PartIIfn106">106</a>. The above quotation is taken from the third and fourth books on
-"The Providence of God" by Salvian, who flourished in the 5th century,
-a priest of Marseilles, and one who knew whereof he wrote, as he was
-dealing with affairs of which he was a witness.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn107"></a><a href="#PartIIfn107">107</a>. Book VI and VII of The Providence of God.&mdash;Salvian.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn108"></a><a href="#PartIIfn108">108</a>. Mosheim, book III, cent. ix, part ii, chap. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn109"></a><a href="#PartIIfn109">109</a>. See Milner's introduction to the first volume of his Church
-History. It will also be seen in that introduction that Milner wrote
-his history to counteract the influence that he feared the great work
-of the too candid Mosheim might exert, viz., to create the impression
-"That real religion appears scarcely to have had any existence." Hence
-the admissions of Dr. Milner to the sad condition of the church in the
-tenth century have a peculiar significance since he would not admit its
-corruption unless compelled to by the facts.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn110"></a><a href="#PartIIfn110">110</a>. This is Caesar Baronius, a Catholic historian of the 16th century.
-His "Annales Ecclesiastical" comprise twelve volumes and were published
-in Rome, 1588-1607. He was a candidate for the papacy in 1605, but
-failed to secure the election.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn111"></a><a href="#PartIIfn111">111</a>. Milner's Ch. Hist., vol. iii, cent. x, ch. i. The only thing
-which seems to console the learned doctor in respect to this terrible
-condition of the church is that the scripture predicted this awful
-state, and the truth of scripture was "vindicated by events of all
-others the most disagreeable to a pious mind."&mdash;Ibid.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn112"></a><a href="#PartIIfn112">112</a>. Acts xx: 27-30.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn113"></a><a href="#PartIIfn113">113</a>. II Tim. iv: 1-4.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn114"></a><a href="#PartIIfn114">114</a>. II Peter i: 21.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn115"></a><a href="#PartIIfn115">115</a>. II Peter ii: 1-3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn116"></a><a href="#PartIIfn116">116</a>. Tim. iv: 1, 2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn117"></a><a href="#PartIIfn117">117</a>. That is, that the day of Messiah's glorious coming is at hand.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn118"></a><a href="#PartIIfn118">118</a>. Letteth and let are the old English equivalents of hindereth and
-hinder. The student will remember that Shakespeare makes Hamlet say
-to those who seek to prevent him following the ghost of his father
-when beckoned to private interview&mdash;"Still am I called. Unhand me,
-gentlemen. By heaven I'll make a ghost of him that lets me"&mdash;i.e. that
-hinders me.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn119"></a><a href="#PartIIfn119">119</a>. II Thes. ii: 1-12.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn120"></a><a href="#PartIIfn120">120</a>. Isaiah xxiv: 4-6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn121"></a><a href="#PartIIfn121">121</a>. Gal. iii. 8, 19, 24, 25.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn122"></a><a href="#PartIIfn122">122</a>. Heb. xiii: 20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIfn123"></a><a href="#PartIIfn123">123</a>. Rev. xiv: 6, 7.
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p203"></a>{203}</span></p>
-<h2><a name="PARTIII"></a>PART III.
-<br>
-<br>THE REFORMATION
-</h2>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p205"></a>{205}</span></p>
-<h2>SECTION 1.
-</h2>
-<p><b>The Age of Darkness.</b>&mdash;We have not found it necessary to our
-purpose to dwell upon the particular events of ecclesiastical history
-from the tenth to the sixteenth centuries. Those were the days of
-spiritual darkness of this earth. The papal power was supreme, and with
-an iron hand it ruled the nations. Some idea of its arrogance and power
-may be conjectured from the fact that in the eleventh century<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn1"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn1">1</a>]</sup> Henry
-IV, of Germany, the greatest temporal monarch in the world, in that
-age, stood for three days together in mid-winter, bare headed, and bare
-footed, and meanly clad, at Canossa (a town in Italy where the pope
-was temporarily residing), professing himself a penitent in order to
-obtain absolution from the Roman pontiff, Gregory VII. His offense was
-persisting to sell ecclesiastical offices in his empire contrary to the
-edicts of the pope. [See note 1, end of section.]<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn2"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn2">2</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Revival of Learning.</b>&mdash;In the latter part of the fifteenth
-century occurred that event called by historians the "Revival of
-Learning." The intellectual stupor of Europe had been as profound as
-spiritual darkness had been dense. But with the close of the fifteenth
-century, literature, science and art seemed to spring into active
-life. The invention of gun-powder<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn3"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn3">3</a>]</sup> had completely revolutionized the
-modes of warfare; the employment of the mariner's compass made ocean
-navigation <span class="pagenum"><a name="p206"></a>{206}</span> less dangerous; the discovery of a new passage to
-India by the Cape of Good Hope, by Vasco de Gama [Vas-ko-da-ga-ma], and
-the discovery of America by Columbus, greatly enlarged the commerce
-of Europe and increased the comforts of life. Painting in oil came
-into vogue about this time and filled Europe with masterpieces of art;
-engraving on copper, invented early in the century, multiplied and
-diffused them. Paper made of linen also came into common use; and,
-finally, between 1436 and 1452 A. D. printing was invented, which gave
-to the modern world the intellectual riches of the ancients.
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> In the middle of this century&mdash;the fifteenth&mdash;Constantinople
-was taken by the Turks, and with that event the eastern division of
-the Roman empire fell. The fall of the great capital drove many of
-the Greeks into Italy. They took with them a greater knowledge of
-antiquity than that possessed by the western nations, together with
-numerous manuscripts; and literature from that time may be said to
-have commenced its splendid career. [See note 2, end of section.]
-Intellectual pursuits became not only a pleasure, but a passion;
-"and it may be regarded as a maxim, that wherever the progress of
-intelligence is a true pleasure, a desire for liberty is soon felt, nor
-is it long in passing from the public mind to the state."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn4"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn4">4</a>]</sup> It was so
-in Europe; for the "Revival of Learning" preceded, and there can be no
-doubt that it did much to produce, that struggle for enlarged liberty
-which convulsed Europe in the following century.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Release of the Masses from Serfdom.</b>&mdash;The masses, moreover,
-began to be released, to some extent, from the serfdom of former
-times, and to be given some share of civil and political freedom. This
-change was largely due to the breaking up of the old feudal system of
-land tenure and service. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p207"></a>{207}</span> According to feudal principles, all
-the land of a country belonged to the king, not as representing the
-community, but as sovereign feudal lord. Out of this land the king
-granted portions to his subjects, on condition of their paying him
-homage and fealty, and rendering him active military service a certain
-number of days in every year. The estates the king granted to his more
-immediate and distinguished followers, whom he called his barons, were
-styled baronies, and were of large extent; the barons in their turn
-made undergrants to their own retainers, on similar conditions to those
-imposed upon themselves by the king. The relation between landlord and
-tenant, though at first merely lifelong, soon came to be regarded as
-hereditary, the heir becoming entitled on the death of the tenant to
-occupy his land upon the same terms.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn5"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn5">5</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> This order of things established a powerful landed aristocracy
-on the one hand, and a peasant tenantry on the other, whose vassalage
-was but little removed from absolute slavery. The crusades and the
-development of a commercial class, living chiefly in the cities, in
-time wrought the destruction of feudalism.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Crusades, their Influence on Feudalism and Liberty</b>&mdash;The
-crusades were religious wars carried on in the eleventh, twelfth and
-thirteenth centuries, between the Christian nations of the West and
-the Mohammedans of the East. It had for ages been looked upon as an
-act of piety to make a pilgrimage to Palestine and visit the various
-places hallowed by the presence of Messiah during his earthly career,
-especially his sepulchre at Jerusalem. These Christian pilgrims had
-been respected by the Saracens for centuries; but when the Seljuk
-Turks captured Jerusalem, towards the close of the eleventh century,
-the Christians met with insult and cruelty. The western nations, under
-the fervent preaching of Peter the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p208"></a>{208}</span> Hermit, a native of France,
-who had witnessed the atrocities practiced upon Christians in the Holy
-Land, were lashed into a fury of resentment against the Turks. Pope
-Urban II took up the cause, and advocated wresting the Holy Land from
-the dominion of the infidels. Europe responded, "God wills it," and
-preparations were made for the holy war.
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> To raise the money necessary to equip and transport their
-soldiers to the distant East, the barons had to sell their lands, which
-had the effect of breaking down to a very great extent the feudal
-system of land tenure, and with it the obligations that it imposed. The
-direct result of this was to enlarge the liberties of the people. For
-the same purpose&mdash;to raise money for carrying on the holy wars in the
-East&mdash;kings granted to the towns political privileges, a circumstance
-which also contributed vastly to the progress of popular liberty. Thus
-the way was prepared for that religious revolution of the sixteenth
-century known in history as the Reformation.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Martin Luther.</b>&mdash;The Reformation is usually considered to have
-begun with the fearless preaching of Martin Luther against the sale
-of indulgences, A. D., 1517. Luther was born at Eisleben [Is-la-ben],
-Germany, A. D., 1483. His father was a miner of Mansfield in the same
-country. After attending the school of Magdeburg [Mag-de-boorg] and
-Eisenach [Is-sen-ak] he was sent to study philosophy and jurisprudence
-at Erfurt [Er-foort]. Much against the will of his father, he abandoned
-the pursuit of these studies, and joined himself to the Augustine
-Eremites, a rigid order of mendicant monks. His good temper, industry
-and abilities won for him the good opinions of his superiors. In 1508
-he was sent by his vicar-general to be professor of philosophy at
-Wittemburg. While here he applied himself to Biblical theology and soon
-discovered a wide discrepancy between the religion of the scriptures
-and that of the church. Two years after becoming a professor at
-Wittemburg, he made a journey to Rome on some business connected <span class="pagenum"><a name="p209"></a>{209}</span>
-with the Augustine order of monks; and was not a little shocked at the
-corruption and depravity of the Italian clergy. That visit to Rome did
-much to dispel the veneration in which he had held the "Holy See," and
-armed him for his subsequent conflict with it.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. Indulgences and their Origin.</b>&mdash;The thing which provoked
-Luther's opposition to the church of Rome was the reckless sale of
-indulgences by the agents of the pope in Germany. The origin of
-indulgences, according to the learned Schlegel, must be sought in
-the earliest history of the church. In the first centuries of the
-Christian era, such Christians as were excluded from the communion of
-the church on account of their apostasy in the times of persecutions,
-or on account of other heinous sins, had to seek a restoration to
-fellowship by a public penance, in which they entreated the brethren
-to forgive them, frequently standing before the door of the church
-clothed in the garb of mourning. This punishment was regarded as a sort
-of "satisfaction" made to the community of saints, and was called by
-that name. In the case of aged or infirm Christians this "satisfaction"
-was sometimes omitted, and this omission was called "indulgence."
-Originally, therefore, indulgences were merely the remission of
-ecclesiastical punishments imposed on grave offenders against church
-laws.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn6"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn6">6</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> It is maintained, however, in the decretal of Pope Clement
-VI, that "one drop of Christ's blood being sufficient to redeem the
-whole human race, the remaining quantity that was shed in the garden
-and upon the cross, was left as a legacy to the church, to be a
-treasure from whence indulgences were to be drawn and administered
-by the Roman pontiffs."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn7"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn7">7</a>]</sup> The doctrine was held that Messiah had
-atoned for the eternal punishment of sins, but not for its temporary
-punishment. The temporary <span class="pagenum"><a name="p210"></a>{210}</span> punishment the Catholic Church divided
-into that of the present life and that of the future life, or of
-purgatory. It was held that every man who attained salvation, must
-suffer the temporary punishment of his sins, either in the present
-world or in the flames of purgatory. It was also held that the priest
-to whom a man confessed his sins, had the power to adjudge and impose
-the necessary punishment.
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> The punishment usually consisted of fastings, pilgrimages,
-whippings, etc.; but people of distinction and wealth were permitted
-to employ substitutes to receive this punishment; and there were
-monks ever ready to endure the punishment of the transgressor for
-a consideration paid in money. This penance was finally changed to
-paying to the church the money instead of employing monks to endure
-the punishment. Whoever, for instance, was bound to whip himself with
-so many stripes each day for several weeks might pay to the church or
-to the monastery a certain sum of money, or give it a piece of land
-and then be released from the penance. As the popes perceived that
-something might be gained in this way, they assumed to themselves the
-right of commuting penances for pecuniary satisfactions, which every
-bishop had before exercised in his own diocese. At first they released
-only from the punishments of sin in the present world; but in the
-fourteenth century they extended this release also to the punishment in
-purgatory.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. The Traffic in Indulgences.</b>&mdash;When such indulgences were to
-be published, the disposal of them was commonly farmed out. The papal
-court could not always wait to have the money conveyed from every
-country of Europe; and there were rich merchants at Genoa, Milan,
-Venice, and Augsburg, who purchased the indulgences for a particular
-province and paid to the papal treasury handsome sums for them. Thus
-both parties were benefited. The pope came at once into possession
-of large sums of money; and the farmers did not fail of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p211"></a>{211}</span> a
-good bargain. They were careful to employ skillful hawkers of the
-indulgences, persons whose boldness and impudence bore due proportion
-to the eloquence with which they imposed upon the simple people. Yet
-that this traffic might have a religious aspect, the pope appointed
-the archbishops of the several provinces to be his commissioners, who
-in his name published that indulgences were to be sold, and usually
-selected the persons to hawk them, and for this service shared the
-profits with the merchants who farmed them.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn8"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn8">8</a>]</sup> [See notes 3 and 4, end
-of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> In the beginning of the sixteenth century the sale of
-indulgences was pushed vigorously and became most offensive. The reason
-for resorting to this mode of raising revenue was justified by the pope
-on the plea of completing the church of St. Peter, at Rome, which had
-been commenced by Julius II.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. John Tetzel.</b>&mdash;The hawker of indulgences who traveled through
-Germany, where Luther was living, was John Tetzel, a Dominical monk, at
-once one of the boldest, most eloquent and the most profligate of men.
-[See note 6, end of section.] His reckless preaching of these papal
-wares aroused the indignation of Luther, who published ninety-five
-propositions against the sale of indulgences, in which he even gently
-censured the pope for permitting the people to be diverted from Christ.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. The Indifference of Leo X to the Agitation in Germany.</b>&mdash;The
-dispute which arose between Luther and Tetzel was looked upon at Rome
-as the wrangle between two monks&mdash;Luther was an Augustine monk, Tetzel
-a Dominican; and it was supposed that the former was jealous because
-the Dominicans had been preferred for this work of selling indulgences.
-In addition to assailing Tetzel, Luther wrote a protest to <span class="pagenum"><a name="p212"></a>{212}</span>
-Albert, Archbishop of Mentz and Magdeburg, and was as surprised as he
-was indignant to learn that the archbishop received of the profits
-arising from this wretched traffic. His assault upon Tetzel provoked
-a protracted controversy, a war of pamphlets between himself and
-Tetzel and his friends, among whom was John Eckius, a theologian of
-Ingolstadt. The dispute on both sides was more noted for its warmth
-than for its Christian character.
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> At last Leo X was aroused from his indifference to the
-controversy that had arisen in Germany, by the emperor, Maximilian
-I informing him that the agitation was serious, and that Germany
-was taking sides in respect to it. He therefore appointed Cardinal
-Thomas Cajetan, then at the diet of Augsburg, to hear the cause of
-Luther. The cardinal summoned the monk before him at Augsburg, in
-October, 1518. They had three interviews, but nothing was accomplished
-towards reconciliation, as the cardinal treated Luther imperiously,
-and peremptorily ordered him to submit his judgment to the authority
-of the pope. This the reformer refused to do until he was convinced
-of his error, and appealed from the pope ill-informed to the pope
-better-informed. This took the matter out of the hands of the cardinal.
-</p>
-<p><b>17. An Appeal to a General Council.</b>&mdash;There was a difference
-between the Reformer and the cardinal in their views in respect to
-authorities appealed to. The latter sought to convince the former of
-his errors by appealing to the canon law,<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn9"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn9">9</a>]</sup> and the authority of
-Lombard;<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn10"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn10">10</a>]</sup> but Luther refused to admit of any proof except that of
-the holy scripture, and as the cardinal seems not to have been able
-to make good his censure of the Reformer's doctrines by proofs from
-the scriptures, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p213"></a>{213}</span> Luther appealed to the pope better informed.
-But Leo X, the month following (Nov. 9th), issued an edict requiring
-the church to believe in his power to forgive sins. Learning of this,
-Luther promptly appealed from the pope to a future council of the whole
-church.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn11"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn11">11</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>18. Discussion on Free Will.</b>&mdash;Meantime the points of disagreement
-between the Reformer and the church of Rome increased. In 1519 John
-Eckius [Eck-ius] challenged Andrew Carlstadt [Karl-stat], a friend and
-colleague of Luther's, to a discussion on the subject of Free Will,
-about which there was a disagreement between the Reformer and those who
-thought with him&mdash;among whom was Carlstadt&mdash;and the adherents of the
-church of Rome. In this dispute Carlstadt maintained&mdash;and of course his
-were Luther's views&mdash;that since the fall, the natural freedom of man is
-not strong enough to move him to that which is morally good, or to do
-the will of God. Eckius on the contrary insisted that the free will of
-man produces good works, and not merely the grace of God; that our free
-will co-operates with divine grace in the production of good works, and
-that it depends on man's free power, whether he will give place to the
-operations of grace or will resist them.
-</p>
-<p><b>19. Luther and Eckius.</b>&mdash;After this dispute with Carlstadt, Eckius
-drew Luther&mdash;who had been present at the discussion on Free Will&mdash;into
-a public debate on the foundation of the authority of the pope. Eckius
-maintained the orthodox <span class="pagenum"><a name="p214"></a>{214}</span> view that the supremacy of the pope was
-founded on divine right, that he was the successor of St. Peter and the
-vicar of Christ. Luther allowed the superiority of the pope over other
-bishops, but based that superiority on other grounds. He could not deny
-that the pontiffs had possessed a decided pre-eminence from age to age,
-and therefore he conceived it as his duty not to resist the powers that
-be. "Unless it had been the will of God," he went on to say, "the pope
-could never have attained so great and durable a dominion. The whole
-body of the Christians own themselves to be under the Roman pontiff.
-This universal consent is a consideration of the greatest weight; the
-unity of the church should be preserved in everything that is not
-directly contrary to the word of God."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn12"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn12">12</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> In all these admissions, however, it will be observed that
-the Reformer placed the supremacy of the pontiffs on human, not divine
-right. It was based upon tradition, upon human arrangement. To the
-contention of Eckius that the expressions&mdash;"Thou art Peter, and upon
-this rock I will build my church," "And I will give unto thee the keys
-of the kingdom"&mdash;evinced the supremacy of Peter and his successors;
-that this was the explanation given by the holy fathers, etc.,
-Luther replied: That even if all the fathers, without exception, had
-understood the passages in that sense, he would confute them by the
-authority of St. Paul, and by St. Peter himself, who said that Jesus
-Christ is the only foundation and corner-stone of the church. And
-further, if the words "Thou art Peter," etc., be construed strictly
-then they must be confined to the person of Peter and therefore the
-authority conveyed by them ceased when that apostle died.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn13"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn13">13</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>21.</b> The dispute amounted to nothing except that it widened the
-breach between the See of Rome and the Reformer. The latter, while
-preparing for his discussion with Eckius, had his <span class="pagenum"><a name="p215"></a>{215}</span> suspicions
-aroused that the pope was the very anti-Christ of the New Testament.
-At the conclusion of the debate, George, Duke of Saxony, said to the
-disputants, privately, "Whether the pope exists by divine or by human
-right, he is, however, the pope;" and that remark doubtless expressed
-the sentiments of the papist party.
-</p>
-<p><b>22. Luther Condemned and Excommunicated.</b>&mdash;Eckius hastened to Rome
-after the discussion at Leipsic [Lip-sik], where, with the assistance
-of other enemies of Luther, among them Cardinal Cajetan, he urged Leo
-X to condemn him and his works. This Leo did by issuing a bull, in
-which forty-one of his tenets were pronounced heretical; his writings
-condemned to the flames, and he himself commanded to confess his faults
-within sixty days, beg the forgiveness of the pope or be excommunicated
-from the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>23.</b> This bull of condemnation Luther burned; together with a copy
-of the pontifical canon law, in the presence of a vast multitude. (See
-note 6, end of section.) By this act he meant to withdraw from the
-church of Rome, that the excommunication which was expected to follow
-might be robbed of its force. About a month later&mdash;4th of January,
-1521&mdash;the second bull of Leo was issued in which the Reformer was
-expelled from the Catholic church for his heresies and for violating
-the majesty of the pontiff. (See note 7, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>24. Luther Before the Diet at Worms.</b>&mdash;After issuing his bull of
-excommunication, Leo X called upon the emperor of Germany, Charles V,
-to vindicate his title to "Advocate and Defender of the Church," by
-inflicting due punishment on that "rebellious member, Martin Luther."
-Charles, however, was under deep obligations to Frederic, the Wise,
-Elector of Saxony, for his election by the states of Germany to the
-imperial dignity; and Frederic, being a warm friend of Luther's and
-favorable in the main to his doctrines, advised the emperor <span class="pagenum"><a name="p216"></a>{216}</span> to take
-no action against the Reformer until he had given him a hearing. This
-course Charles resolved to follow, and therefore summoned Luther to
-appear before the diet which assembled at Worms in 1521.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn14"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn14">14</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>25.</b> Before this august body the Reformer appeared to make answer
-to the two questions: First, if the books which he had written, the
-titles of which were read to him, were his; second, if he was prepared
-to retract those books and their contents, or if he persisted in the
-opinions he had advanced in them. He acknowledged the books to be his,
-and in a speech of some length he explained his motives in writing his
-books, and refused to retract them. He thus concluded his speech:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> <b>26.</b> I cannot submit my faith either to the pope or to
- the council, because it is as clear as the day that they have
- frequently erred and contradicted each other. Unless, therefore,
- I am convinced by the testimony of scripture, or by the clearest
- reasoning&mdash;unless I am persuaded by means of the passages I have
- quoted,&mdash;and unless they thus render my conscience bound, by the
- word of God, I can not and will not retract, for it is unsafe for a
- Christian to speak against his conscience. HERE I STAND, I CAN DO
- NO OTHER, MAY GOD HELP ME! AMEN!
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>27.</b> Luther was protected by a safe conduct from the emperor&mdash;a
-written guarantee pledging the faith and honor of the empire for his
-safety for a limited length of time&mdash;or doubtless he would have been
-burned at the stake for his adherence to his doctrines and his defiance
-of the pope. Indeed, some members of the diet advised the violation of
-the safe conduct, as the word of honor given to an heretic, according
-to the morals of the age, was not binding. Charles V, however, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p217"></a>{217}</span>
-would not listen to such perfidy. He dismissed Luther to return to
-Wittenberg in accordance with the terms of his safe conduct; at the
-same time condemning him as an heretic misled by his own folly. He
-forbade him on his return to Wittenberg to cause the least disorder
-among the people, and then promised the representatives of the pope
-that he would proceed against him and his adherents as contumacious
-heretics, by excommunication, by interdict and by every means
-calculated to destroy them.
-</p>
-<p><b>28. Luther's Confinement at Wartburg.</b>&mdash;Prince Frederic, the
-Wise, fearing that Luther would fall a prey to his enemies, in the
-storm which he saw gathering about him, had him intercepted on his way
-back to Wittenberg, by persons in disguise, who carried him to the
-castle of Wartburg [Wart-berg], where he was concealed ten months. The
-extremes into which some of his followers went, both in doctrine and
-in opposition to the Catholics, at last called him from his place of
-retirement, in order to restrain them and correct the abuses to which
-some of his doctrines gave birth.
-</p>
-<p><b>29. Death of Leo X&mdash;Demands for a General Council.</b>&mdash;The year
-following the diet at Worms, Leo X died and was succeeded by Hadrian
-VI. This pontiff, while renewing the demand that the edict of the
-diet of Worms against Luther and his adherents should be executed,
-acknowledged the church to be in a lamentable condition, and promised
-a general reformation. The assembled princes at the diet of Nuremberg,
-before which the demands of Hadrian were presented, thought the time
-propitious&mdash;the emperor Charles was absent in Spain&mdash;to insist upon a
-free council to be held in Germany, to deliberate in the ancient manner
-on a general reformation of the church. This Hadrian promised to grant,
-but before it could be assembled he died, having occupied the papal
-chair but two years and eight months. He was succeeded by Clement VII,
-who reproved the German princes for <span class="pagenum"><a name="p218"></a>{218}</span> neglecting to proceed against
-Luther and his adherents. The emperor seconded the demands of the pope,
-and a number of the princes, awed by the united demands of the pope and
-the emperor, promised to enforce the edict to the extent of their power.
-</p>
-<p><b>30. Death of Frederic&mdash;Distinct Church Founded.</b>&mdash;In 1525, Prince
-Frederic, the Wise, Elector of Saxony, and friend of Luther, died. He
-was succeeded by his brother John. Frederic had ever been an ardent
-admirer of Luther, but was extremely cautions in giving him any
-direct assistance. John was of a different temperament. He believed
-the principles which the Reformer taught, but saw quite clearly that
-they must either be abandoned or the authority of the pope discarded.
-He resolved upon the latter; and taking matters in his own hands,
-determined to organize a church altogether distinct from that of
-Rome. To accomplish this he called upon Luther and Philip Melancthon
-[Me-lanc-thon] to draw up a formula for public worship, and draft a
-form of church government in harmony with their principles, fixing the
-salaries of the clergy, defining their official duties, etc. This the
-Reformers gladly undertook, and shortly afterwards had the pleasure of
-seeing other German princes pursue the same course that John had taken,
-and adopt the system of worship they had formulated.
-</p>
-<p><b>31. The Rupture Between the Pope and the Emperor.</b>&mdash;This bold step
-threatened for a time to disrupt the German empire; for the princes who
-remained true to the old religion openly consulted together upon the
-advisability of taking up arms against the Lutherans; and the princes
-favoring the Reformers met to consider the necessity of forming an
-alliance to resist their enemies. In the midst of these threatening
-prospects an event happened which was of great advantage to the
-Lutheran cause, and prevented for the moment any action against them.
-The Emperor Charles V and Pope <span class="pagenum"><a name="p219"></a>{219}</span> Clement VII became open enemies.
-The pontiff, fearing the increasing power of Charles, had formed an
-alliance with Francis I, king of France, against him. This so incensed
-Charles that he abolished the authority of the pope in Spain, made war
-upon him in Italy, captured the cities of Rome, besieged the pontiff in
-his castle of St. Angelo, and subjected him to great indignities.
-</p>
-<p><b>32. The Diet at Spire&mdash;1529.</b>&mdash;The difficulties between Charles
-and the pope were finally settled, however, and a diet was called
-at Spire in 1529, in which a majority voted to deprive the princes
-of Germany of the right to regulate religious matters within their
-respective territories&mdash;a right which a diet held three years before
-at Spire had granted. That is, such power was granted pending the
-settlement of religious difficulties by a free general council.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn15"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn15">15</a>]</sup> The
-diet also declared all changes made in the public religion unlawful.
-This action was considered a hardship by those princes who had made
-such changes, and they protested against the action of the diet and
-appealed to the emperor.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn16"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn16">16</a>]</sup> It was this protest which gave to the
-dissenting princes, and the followers of Luther generally, the name
-Protestants.
-</p>
-<p><b>33.</b> The envoys of the dissenting princes sent to inform Charles
-of the stand they had taken in relation to the religious controversy
-in Germany were imprisoned by him, a circumstance which threatened
-hostility, and the Protestant princes at once took counsel for their
-safety and sought to form closer alliances with each other for mutual
-defense. Unfortunately, however, the would-be reformers of religion
-were not united in <span class="pagenum"><a name="p220"></a>{220}</span> doctrine, and the efforts of the princes at
-union were rendered vain by the disputes of the theologians.
-</p>
-<p><b>34. Diet at Augsburg&mdash;Protestant Confession of Faith.</b>&mdash;The
-emperor finally determined to settle this religious controversy within
-his empire, and appointed a diet to be assembled at Augsburg for that
-purpose. In order that the faith of the Protestants might be clearly
-set forth, together with their reasons for separation from the Roman
-church, Luther and Melancthon, at the instance of the princes who
-favored their doctrines, drew up a confession of faith, known as the
-Augsburg Confession. It consisted of twenty-eight articles, twenty-one
-of which stated the doctrines of the Reformers, and the other seven
-stated their reason for withdrawing from the Roman church. These in
-brief were&mdash;communion in one kind; by which the sacramental cup was
-denied the laity; imposing celibacy on the clergy; private masses;
-auricular confession; legendary traditions; monastic vows; and lastly,
-the excessive power of the church. In respect to this last "abuse," as
-these several above things are called, they discriminate between civil
-and ecclesiastical power, and insist that neither should infringe upon
-the domain of the other.
-</p>
-<p><b>35.</b> The diet of Augsburg assembled on the 20th of June, 1530;
-and after the Confession of Faith was read to the emperor, it was
-signed by John, Elector of Saxony, four princes of the empire, and the
-representatives of two imperial cities, Nuremberg [Nu-rem-berg] and
-Reutlingen [Roit-ling-en].<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn17"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn17">17</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>36.</b> The friends of the pope at the diet presented a confutation
-of the Protestant confession, and thereupon the emperor commanded the
-Protestants to abandon their whole cause of controversy. In reply they
-protested they were not satisfied <span class="pagenum"><a name="p221"></a>{221}</span> with the "confutation," and
-asked that a copy of it might be given them that they might make answer
-to it. This the emperor would not grant, nor would he permit an answer
-to be read before the diet which Philip Melanchthon had written out
-from memory. A number of conferences were held between the leaders of
-the contending parties with a view to reach an honorable compromise,
-but they had drifted too far apart, and all hope of reconciliation
-was lost. At last the emperor issued a decree commanding back to
-their allegiance to the pontiff the princes and cities that had
-become alienated from the holy See of Rome, on pain of incurring the
-vengeance of the emperor. The religious changes made in some of the
-principalities were censured and the edict of Worms against Luther and
-his adherents received new force.
-</p>
-<p><b>37. The League of Smalcald.</b>&mdash;Nothing daunted by the unfavorable
-decree of the emperor, the Protestant princes assembled at Smalcald,
-and entered into a league among themselves, and made every effort to
-induce the kings of England, France, Denmark and other princes to join
-their confederacy. This movement seriously embarrassed Charles, for
-he was just on the eve of a war with the Turks, and needed the entire
-strength of his empire. He therefore entered into negotiations with the
-Protestant princes, and finally agreed to annual the edict of Worms and
-of Augsburg, allow the Protestants to regulate religious matters to
-please themselves until either a council of the church or a diet of the
-empire should determine what religious principles should be approved
-and obeyed&mdash;the council to be called within six months. Such were the
-concessions of the emperor. On their part, the Protestant princes were
-to contribute money for the Turkish war, and acknowledge Ferdinand,
-brother of the emperor, king of the Romans.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn18"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn18">18</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>38. The Truce of Nuremberg.</b>&mdash;This treaty of peace <span class="pagenum"><a name="p222"></a>{222}</span> being
-drawn up and accepted in the city of Nuremberg [Nu-rem-berg], was
-known as the Truce of Nuremberg, and under it the Protestant cause was
-materially strengthened; for every day men and cities threw off their
-allegiance to the pope and rejoiced in their new-found freedom.
-</p>
-<p><b>39. Difficulty in Locating the Council.</b>&mdash;The emperor urged the
-pontiff to call the long-talked-of council which was to settle these
-unhappy difficulties. But this Clement VII seemed not anxious to do.
-When he did propose a council it was at places in Italy, and to this
-the Germans would not consent, as a council held there would be under
-the influence of the pope; besides, the controversy had arisen in
-Germany, and there it should be settled. The Protestants also insisted
-that the decision should be founded solely on the scriptures, a point
-which required the church of Rome to set aside all the former decisions
-of her great councils&mdash;a thing her pontiffs were in no temper to do, as
-they considered themselves in the position of a parent having absolute
-jurisdiction, dealing with a refractory child. Finally, the successor
-of Clement VII&mdash;Paul III&mdash;with the approval of the emperor, called a
-council to meet at Trent, in Austria (in the Austrian Tyrol). But this
-was not satisfactory to the Protestants, and Charles X despairing of
-settling the difficulties by peaceful methods and being urged to it
-by Pope Paul III prepared to settle them by resorting to force. While
-the Catholics and Protestants were preparing for this conflict Luther,
-whose preaching had begun this agitation, died at Eisleben, his native
-town. [See note 8, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>40. Reverses of the Protestants.</b>&mdash;In the war which followed the
-Protestants met with severe reverses and were forced by the emperor to
-consent to refer the religious controversy to the council of Trent,
-but it being reported that the plague had broken out in that city,
-the council was broken up, nor could Charles induce the pope to call
-another immediately <span class="pagenum"><a name="p223"></a>{223}</span> (see note 9, end of section); hence it
-became necessary to formulate a treaty which should bind both parties
-in respect to religion, pending the convening of a council. This
-treaty was called The Interim, and was of course most favorable to the
-victorious party&mdash;the Catholics&mdash;and went far towards establishing the
-old methods of worship.
-</p>
-<p><b>41. Victory of Protestants&mdash;Religious Liberty Secured.</b>&mdash;At last
-the emperor persuaded the pope to re-assemble the Council of Trent, and
-gave notice to the Protestants to attend, promising to use his best
-endeavor to have everything done in a Christian manner and without
-passion. But before this council could assemble the Protestant princes
-revolted, took the emperor by surprise, and forced him into signing a
-treaty at Paussau, in 1552, which guaranteed religious liberty to the
-Protestants. This treaty was re-confirmed by the emperor in the diet at
-Augsburg, 1555. By that treaty all who had accepted the Confession of
-Augsburg were declared free from all jurisdiction of the Roman pontiff,
-and his bishops. They were to be permitted to live in peace and the
-quiet enjoyment of religious liberty. Men were to be left free to join
-either the Reformed or the Catholic Church, and any person making war
-upon others, or molesting them because of their religion was to be
-accounted the public enemy of Germany.
-</p>
-<p><b>42.</b> Such was the fruit of the great revolution of the sixteenth
-century in Germany&mdash;religious liberty. To that end all the struggles
-tended, and its result was indeed glorious, worth all the tears and
-blood it had cost to gain it. But it was not a reformation, if by
-that is meant the bringing back of primitive Christianity. That the
-Reformers did not do. Indeed they left more truth in the Catholic
-church than they brought out with them, or found in their speculations
-after leaving that church, as will be seen by a careful consideration
-of Protestant doctrines treated in subsequent sections.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p224"></a>{224}</span>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Humiliation of Henry IV.</b>&mdash;It was the fourth day on which
-he had borne the humiliating garb of an affected penitent, and in
-that sordid raiment he drew near on his bare feet to the more than
-imperial majesty of the church, and prostrated himself in more than
-servile deference before the diminutive and emaciated old man, from
-the terrible glance of whose countenance, we are told, "the eyes of
-every beholder recoiled as from the lightning." Hunger, cold and
-nakedness, and shame, had for the moment crushed the gallant spirit of
-the sufferer. He wept and cried for mercy, again and again renewing his
-entreaties until he had reached the lowest level of abasement to which
-his own enfeebled heart or the haughtiness of his great antagonist
-could depress him. Then, and not till then did the pope condescend
-to revoke the anathema of the vatican.&mdash;Sir J. Stephen's Essays On
-Ecclesiastical Biography.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Influence of Greek Literature on the Fifteenth Century.</b>&mdash;The
-classical school of that period (15th century) inspired its disciples
-with admiration, not only for the writings of Virgil and Homer, but
-for the entire frame of ancient society; for its institutions, its
-opinions, its philosophy, as well as its literature. Antiquity, it must
-be allowed, whether as regards politics, philosophy, or literature,
-was greatly superior to the Europe of the fourteenth and fifteenth
-centuries. It is not surprisingg, therefore, that it should have
-exercised so great an influence; that lofty, vigorous, elegant and
-fastidious minds should have been disgusted with the coarse manners,
-the confused ideas, the barbarous modes of their own time, and should
-have devoted themselves with enthusiasm, and almost with veneration, to
-the study of a state of society at once more regular and more perfect
-than their own. Thus was formed that school of bold thinkers, which
-appeared at the commencement of the fifteenth century, and in which
-prelates, priests and men of learning were united by common sentiment
-and common pursuits.&mdash;Guizot's Hist. Civilization.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Luther on Indulgences.</b>&mdash;I was compelled in my conscience to
-expose the scandalous sale of indulgences. I saw some seduced by them
-into mischievous errors, others tempted into an audacious profaneness.
-In a word, the proclaiming and selling of pardons proceeded to such
-an unbounded licentiousness that the holy church and its authorities
-became subjects of open derision in the public taverns. There was no
-occasion to excite the hatred of mankind against priests to a greater
-degree. The avarice and profligacy of the clergy had for many years
-past kindled the indignation of the laity. Alas! they have not a
-particle of respect or honor for the priesthood, except what solely
-arises from fear of punishment.&mdash;Luther.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p225"></a>{225}</span> <b>4. Duke George of Saxony on the Corruption in the
-Church.</b>&mdash;[Duke George is regarded as a bigoted papist, esteemed
-by the Roman Catholics as a most sincere and active defender of the
-faith of his day. His testimony, therefore, to the sale and evils of
-indulgences, and the corruption of the clergy, is the more valuable.
-He entirely approved of Luther's condemnation.] "Indulgences which
-ought to be obtained by prayer, fastings, benevolence towards our
-neighbor, and other good works," said the duke, "are sold for money.
-Their value is extolled beyond all decency. The sole object is to gain
-a deal of money. Hence the preachers who are bound to set forth truth,
-teach men nothing but lies and frauds. They are not only suffered to
-go on thus, but they are well paid for their fraudulent harangues. The
-reason is the more conviction they can produce among their hearers,
-the more money flows into the chest. Rivers of scandalous proceedings
-arise from this corrupt fountain. The officials of the bishops are
-equally attentive to scrape money together. They vex the poor with
-their censures for great crimes, as whoredom, adultery, blasphemy;
-but they spare the rich. The clergy commit the very same crimes, and
-nobody censures them. Faults which ought to be expiated by prayers and
-fastings are atoned for by money, in order that the officials may pay
-large sums to their respective bishops, and retain a portion of the
-gain for themselves. Neither when a fine is inflicted is it done in a
-way to stop the commission of the same fault in the future, but rather
-so that the delinquent understands he may soon do that very thing
-again, provided he be but ready to pay. Hence all the sacraments are
-sold for money; and where that is not to be had, they are absolutely
-neglected."&mdash;Duke George, quoted by Milner, Church Hist. vol. iv, p.
-568.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Character of Tetzel.</b>&mdash;He was a profligate wretch, who had
-once fallen into the hands of the Inquisition in consequence of his
-adulteries, and whom the elector of Saxony rescued by his intercession.
-He now cried up his merchandise in a manner so offensive, so contrary
-to all Christian principles, and so acceptably to the inconsiderate,
-that all upright men were disgusted with him. * * * He claimed to have
-power to absolve, not only from all church censure, but likewise from
-all sins, transgressions, and enormities, however horrid they might
-be, and even from those of which only the pope can take cognizance.
-He released from all the punishments of purgatory, gave permission
-to come to the sacraments, and promised to those who purchased their
-indulgences, that the gates of hell should be closed, and the gates of
-paradise and of bliss open to them.&mdash;Schlegel.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Luther Burning the Pope's Bull.</b>&mdash;On the 10th of December, a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p226"></a>{226}</span> placard was posted on the walls of the university of Wittemberg,
-inviting the professors and students to be present at nine o'clock in
-the morning, at the eastern gate near the Holy Cross. A great number
-of doctors and students assembled, and Luther walking at their head,
-conducted the procession to the appointed place. How many burning
-piles has Rome erected during the course of ages! Luther resolves to
-make a better application of the great Roman principle. It is only
-a few old papers that are to be destroyed; and fire, thinks he, is
-intended for that purpose. A scaffold had been prepared. One of the
-oldest masters of arts set fire to it. As the flames rose high into
-the air, the formidable Augustine, wearing his frock, approached the
-pile, carrying the Canon Law, the Decretals, the Clementines, the papal
-Extravagants, some writings by Eckius and Emser, and the pope's bull.
-Luther held up the bull and said: "Since thou hast vexed the Holy One
-of the Lord, may everlasting fire vex and consume thee." He then flung
-it into the flames. Never had war been declared with greater energy
-and resolution. After this Luther calmly returned to the city, and the
-crowd of doctors, professors and students testifying their approval by
-loud cheers, re-entered Wittemberg with him.&mdash;D'Aubigne's Hist. of the
-Reformation.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Excommunication of Luther.</b>&mdash;The excommunication bull was an
-attack upon the rights of the German churches. For Luther had appealed
-to an ecclesiastical council; and in consequence of this appeal the
-pope could no longer have jurisdiction of the case. Hence the number
-of Luther's friends increased the more after the publication of this
-bull.&mdash;Schlegel.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Character of Luther.</b>&mdash;Seckendorf * * * defies all the
-adversaries of Luther to fix any just censure on his character except
-what may be ranked under two heads, viz., a disposition to anger, and
-an indulgence in jesting. Beyond all doubt the Saxon reformer was of a
-choleric temper, and he too often gave way to this constitutional evil,
-as he himself laments. Neither is it to be denied that he also too much
-encouraged his natural propensity to facetiousness. The monks of his
-time were in general guilty of the like fault, and often to so great
-a degree as very improperly to mix scurrilities with sacred subjects.
-Moreover, the vices and follies of those whom Luther opposed, afforded
-a strong temptation both to the spirit of anger and of ridicule. For
-however severe he may be thought in many of his invectives, we are
-compelled by unquestionable evidence to confess that his keenest
-satirical pieces never reached the demerits of those who ruled the
-church in that age. But after all that can be said in mitigation, it
-must be owned that a reformer ought to have considered not so much what
-they deserved <span class="pagenum"><a name="p227"></a>{227}</span> as what became the character he had to support;
-viz., that of a serious Christian, zealous for the honor of his God,
-displeased with the vices of his clerical brethren, and grieved on
-account of the pitiable ignorance of the people, yet more desirous of
-curing the prevailing evils than of exposing them.&mdash;Milner.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Pestilence and the Council of Trent.</b>&mdash;The report of a
-pestilence was a mere pretense. The Pope Paul III was equally zealous
-of the council which had not been disposed in all respects to govern
-itself by his prescription, and of the governing power of the emperor,
-which he did not wish to see farther increased by the council. He
-indeed hated the Protestants, but he did not wish to see the emperor,
-under color of enforcing the decrees of the council, acquire a
-more absolute authority over Germany. He had already withdrawn his
-troops from the imperial army; and he now wished to see the council
-dispersed. The Spanish members opposed him; but he found means to
-prevail.&mdash;Schlegel.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What centuries may be considered as the age of moral and spiritual
-darkness?
-</p>
-<p>2. What power was supreme in those ages?
-</p>
-<p>3. Give an instance illustrating the pride and insolence of the popes.
-(Note 1.)
-</p>
-<p>4. What was Henry IV's offense?
-</p>
-<p>5. From what period do historians date the "revival of learning?"
-</p>
-<p>6. What several inventions and circumstances contributed to the
-intellectual awakening of Europe?
-</p>
-<p>7. What effect did the fall of the eastern division of the Roman empire
-have on the west?
-</p>
-<p>8. What was the influence of ancient literature on the west? (Note 2.)
-</p>
-<p>9. What circumstances led to the enlargement of the liberty of the
-masses?
-</p>
-<p>10. Describe land tenure under the feudal system.
-</p>
-<p>11. What were the Crusades?
-</p>
-<p>12. Who aroused the nations of western Europe to undertake the Crusades?
-</p>
-<p>13. What effect did the Crusades have on the feudal system of land
-tenure and liberty?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p228"></a>{228}</span> 14. What did this enlarged liberty prepare the people for?
-</p>
-<p>15. What event is usually considered the beginning of the Reformation?
-</p>
-<p>16. Give an account of the birth and parentage of Martin Luther.
-</p>
-<p>17. What schools did he attend and with what result?
-</p>
-<p>18. What effect was produced by his visit to Rome?
-</p>
-<p>19. State the origin of indulgences.
-</p>
-<p>20. What doctrine respecting the efficacy of Christ's blood was
-advanced by Pope Clement VI?
-</p>
-<p>21. What doctrine is held by the Roman Catholic church about the
-atonement of Christ for sin?
-</p>
-<p>22. Of what did the temporary punishments for sin usually consist&mdash;that
-is, in early times?
-</p>
-<p>23. What changes were made later?
-</p>
-<p>24. Describe the traffic in indulgences.
-</p>
-<p>25. What excuse was made by the pope for the vigorous sale of
-indulgences in the 16th century?
-</p>
-<p>26. Who hawked indulgences in the part of Germany where Luther lived?
-</p>
-<p>27. What was the character of Tetzel? (Note 5.)
-</p>
-<p>28. In what spirit was Luther's controversy with Tetzel regarded at
-Rome?
-</p>
-<p>29. What aroused the pope from his indifference?
-</p>
-<p>30. In what way did meet the difficulty?
-</p>
-<p>31. What course was pursued by Cardinal Cajetan and what was the result?
-</p>
-<p>32. What difference in respect to authority to be appealed to in the
-settlement of controversy existed between Luther and the cardinal?
-</p>
-<p>33. What act of Leo X led Luther to appeal to a general council?
-</p>
-<p>34. State what two parties existed in the Roman Catholic church and
-what their difference.
-</p>
-<p>35. Describe how the controversy on free will arose.
-</p>
-<p>36. State the respective positions of Eckius and Carolstadt in the
-controversy.
-</p>
-<p>37. What discussion arose between Luther and Eckius after the debate on
-free will?
-</p>
-<p>38. What position did Eckius take in relation to the supremacy of the
-pope?
-</p>
-<p>39. What was Luther's position?
-</p>
-<p>40. What was the effect of the discussion?
-</p>
-<p>41. Relate the circumstance of Luther's excommunication.
-</p>
-<p>42. How did Luther treat the bull of excommunication? (Notes 6 and 7.)
-</p>
-<p>43. State how Luther came to be summoned before the diet at Worms.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p229"></a>{229}</span> 44. What two questions confronted Luther at the diet?
-</p>
-<p>45. How did he answer them?
-</p>
-<p>46. By what means was Luther protected from the vengeance of the pope?
-</p>
-<p>47. What at last called him from his retirement?
-</p>
-<p>48. Who succeeded Leo X?
-</p>
-<p>49. What demand was made upon Pope Hadrian by the German princes?
-</p>
-<p>50. What event prevented the assembling of the council?
-</p>
-<p>51. What course did Pope Clement VII follow?
-</p>
-<p>52. How did the death of Frederic, the Wise, and the succession of
-John, his brother, affect the Reformation?
-</p>
-<p>53. What did John's course threaten to produce?
-</p>
-<p>54. What circumstance prevented it?
-</p>
-<p>55. Relate what transpired at the diet at Spire.
-</p>
-<p>56. By what means did the German emperor decide to settle the religious
-controversy in his realm?
-</p>
-<p>57. State what you can of the Augsburg confession of faith.
-</p>
-<p>58. What unreasonable demand did the emperor make of the Protestants?
-</p>
-<p>59. What compromise was effected?
-</p>
-<p>60. What difficulty arose concerning convening the council?
-</p>
-<p>61. What reverses did the Protestants sustain in the conflict of arms?
-</p>
-<p>62. What finally resulted from all this agitation?
-</p>
-<p>63. Give the character of Luther? (Note 8.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p230"></a>{230}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION II.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Controversy on the Question of Grace.</b>&mdash;It is now for us to
-consider the principles at issue in the Reformation. Luther at the
-first began his opposition to the pope by denouncing indulgences, and
-there can be no question but he and every other honest Christian had
-just cause of complaint and indignation against this infamous traffic,
-and against the church for permitting it. Yet it cannot be denied that
-there was a wide difference between the doctrine of the Catholic church
-respecting indulgences [see note 1, end of section] and the things
-taught by the infamous John Tetzel. This is evident from the fact that
-Tetzel with other agents of the pope were censured for their over zeal
-and excesses in dealing in indulgences.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn19"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn19">19</a>]</sup> Miltitz, whom the pope had
-appointed to treat with Luther to bring about his reconciliation with
-the church, meeting with Tetzel at Leipsic, twice rebuked him with the
-greatest severity before the bishops of his province, on account of his
-iniquitous proceedings in the sale of indulgences, and he finally died
-neglected and alone&mdash;"deserted by all the world." [See note 2, end of
-section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> These abuses in the sale of indulgences and the other
-corruptions which had crept into the church formed a just cause
-of complaint; but they were not the true point at issue in the
-controversy. Some time before he opposed indulgences, Luther&mdash;if we
-may believe D'Aubigne [Do-benya]&mdash;had imbibed <span class="pagenum"><a name="p231"></a>{231}</span> ideas in respect
-to the part which the grace of God takes in the salvation of man that
-would have led him to oppose the church of Rome, if the abuses in the
-matter of indulgences had never existed. In order that the student may
-grasp this subject in its fullness, and the better understand this
-controversy between Luther and the Catholic church, we shall make a
-careful statement of the facts which enter into the question of God's
-grace and the free will of man.
-</p>
-<p>1. <em>Power of Deliberation</em>&mdash;The mind is conscious of a power of
-deliberation, before the intellect passes the different motives of
-action, interests, passions, opinions, etc. The intellect considers,
-compares, estimates, and finally judges them. This is a preparatory
-work which precedes the act of will.
-</p>
-<p>2. <em>Liberty, Free Agency or Will</em>.&mdash;When deliberation has taken
-place&mdash;when man has taken full cognizance of the motives which present
-themselves to him, he takes a resolution, of which he looks upon
-himself as the author, which arises because he wishes it, and which
-would not arise unless he did wish it&mdash;here the fact of agency is
-shown; it resides complete in the resolution which man makes after
-deliberation; it is the resolution which is the proper act of man,
-which subsists by him alone; a simple fact independent of all the facts
-which precede it or surround it.
-</p>
-<p>3. <em>Free Will, or Agency Modified</em>&mdash;At the same time that man feels
-himself free, he recognizes the fact that his freedom is not arbitrary,
-that it is placed under the dominion of a law which will preside over
-it and influence it. What that law is will depend upon the education
-of each individual, upon his surroundings, etc. To act in harmony with
-that law is what man recognizes as his duty; it will be the task of
-his liberty. He will soon see, however, that he never fully acquits
-himself of his task, never acts in full harmony with his moral law.
-Morally capable of conforming himself to his law, he falls short of
-doing it. He does not accomplish all that he ought, nor all <span class="pagenum"><a name="p232"></a>{232}</span> that
-he can. This fact is evident, one of which all may give witness; and it
-often happens that the best men, that is, those who have best conformed
-their will to reason, have often been the most struck with their
-insufficience.
-</p>
-<p>4. <em>Necessity of External Assistance</em>&mdash;This weakness in man leads him
-to feel the necessity of an external support to operate as a fulcrum
-for the human will, a power that may be added to its present power and
-sustain it at need. Man seeks this fulcrum on all sides; he demands
-it in the encouragement of friends, in the councils of the wise; but
-as the visible world, the human society, do not always answer to his
-desires, the soul goes beyond the visible world, above human relations,
-to seek this fulcrum of which it has need. Hence the religious
-sentiment develops itself: man addresses himself to God, and invokes
-his aid through prayer.
-</p>
-<p>5. <em>Man Finds the Help he Seeks</em>&mdash;Such is the nature of man that when
-he sincerely asks this support he obtains it; that is, seeking it is
-almost sufficient to secure it. Whosoever feeling his will weak invokes
-the encouragement of a friend, the influence of wise councils, the
-support of public opinion, or who addresses himself to God by prayer,
-soon feels his will fortified in a certain measure and for a certain
-time.
-</p>
-<p>6. <em>Influence of Spiritual World on Liberty</em>&mdash;There are spiritual
-influences at work on man&mdash;the empire of the spiritual world upon
-liberty. There are certain changes, certain moral events which manifest
-themselves in man without his being able to refer their origin to
-an act of his will, or being able to recognize the author. Certain
-facts occur in the interior of the human soul which it does not refer
-to itself, which it does not recognize as the work of its own will.
-There are certain days, certain moments in which it finds itself in a
-different moral state from that which it was last conscious of under
-the operations of its own will. In other words, the moral man does not
-wholly create himself; he is conscious that causes, that powers <span class="pagenum"><a name="p233"></a>{233}</span>
-external to himself act upon and modify him imperceptibly<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn20"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn20">20</a>]</sup>&mdash;this
-fact has been called the grace of God which helps the will of man,
-while others see in it the evidences of predestination.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Pelagian View.</b>&mdash;From these facts men arrive at different
-conclusions. Some regarding only the power of man to deliberate on any
-proposed course of conduct, and his ability to decide for himself what
-course he will pursue, ignoring the spiritual influences which operate
-on him, and taking no account of the aid which comes to man through
-prayer&mdash;believe that man's conduct depends entirely upon his will.
-"Tis in ourselves that we are thus or thus," say they; and hence reject
-the fact of the grace of God and the influence it exerts on human
-conduct.
-</p>
-<p>Such was the conclusion arrived at by Pelagius who flourished early in
-the fifth century. He asserted that human nature is not fallen&mdash;that
-there is no hereditary corruption, and that man having the power to
-do good has only to will in order to perform. His doctrine has been
-revised several times, and has drawn to it not a few believers.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Catholic View.</b>&mdash;Others regarding all the facts elsewhere
-enumerated&mdash;man's power to deliberate, his ability to decide upon his
-course, his failure to do all that his reason teaches him it is his
-duty to do, his need of help from a source external to himself, the
-assistance he can and does obtain through prayer and, lastly, the
-influence of spiritual forces upon man&mdash;leads them to the conclusion
-that it is through a union of the grace of God and the free will of man
-that men arrive at last at righteousness. Such was the teaching of the
-Roman Catholic church.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Protestant View.</b>&mdash;Others still, looking only upon the
-influence of the spiritual world on man, and noting how very far short
-he comes of doing all his reason teaches him it is his <span class="pagenum"><a name="p234"></a>{234}</span> duty to
-do, conclude that man has no power whatsoever to do good of himself,
-that he can exercise no will to work righteousness until after the
-grace of God makes him righteous, and that it is that grace altogether
-which causes him both to will and to do good works.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Luther's Fundamental Doctrine.</b>&mdash;Luther belonged to this
-last-named class. Long before he came to an open rupture with the pope,
-he taught the doctrine of predestination, and of salvation through
-faith alone:&mdash;"The excellent, infallible, and sole preparation for
-grace is the eternal election and predestination of God." "On the side
-of man there is nothing that goes before grace, unless it be impotency
-and even rebellion." "We do not become righteous by doing what is
-righteous; but having become righteous we do what is righteous."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn21"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn21">21</a>]</sup>
-"Since the fall of man, free will is but an idle word; and if man does
-all he can he still sins mortally." "A man who imagines to arrive at
-grace by doing all that he is able to do adds sin to sin and is doubly
-guilty." "That man is not justified who performs many works; but he
-who, without works, has much faith in Christ."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn22"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn22">22</a>]</sup> "What gives peace
-to our consciences is this&mdash;by faith our sins are no longer ours, but
-Christ's on whom God has laid them all; and, on the other hand, all
-Christ's righteousness belongs to us, to whom God has given it."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn23"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn23">23</a>]</sup>
-Thus taught Luther, and this became the first, the main theological
-question of the reformation. "The point which the Reformer had most
-at heart in all his labors, contests and dangers," says a respectable
-authority, "was the doctrine of justification by faith alone."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn24"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn24">24</a>]</sup>
-[Note 3, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> It is but just to the Reformer however, that it should be
-known that he did not himself reject good works, but on the contrary
-exhorted men to practice them; but he condemns <span class="pagenum"><a name="p235"></a>{235}</span> those who did them
-with an idea that by them they would be justified, or that they were
-necessary to salvation. He held also that in order to do good works men
-must first be justified, and that good works done before justification
-were even sinful.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn25"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn25">25</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Mischief of Luther's Doctrine.</b>&mdash;Though Luther did not
-reject good works, and though he held that justifying faith would
-produce them, yet his doctrine has been the source of much mischief in
-the world. When it was charged by his vicar general, Staupitius, that
-his doctrines were the delight of debauches, and that many scandalous
-practices were the consequences of some of his publications, he could
-not deny the charge, but contented himself by saying, "I am neither
-afraid of such censorious representations, nor surprised to hear
-them."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn26"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn26">26</a>]</sup> Luther's doctrine of salvation by faith alone, as stated
-by Melanchthon, with his approval, stands thus: "Man's justification
-before God proceeds from faith alone. This faith enters man's heart
-by the grace of God alone."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn27"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn27">27</a>]</sup> This leaves man a passive creature in
-relation to his salvation. He is helpless to procure it; he can do
-nothing to hasten it; he is helpless; he must wait the divine workings
-of the grace of God. "As all things which happen," says Melanchthon,
-"happen necessarily, according to the divine predestination, there is
-no such thing as liberty in our wills."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn28"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn28">28</a>]</sup> [Note 4, end of section.]
-Other followers of Luther, among them one Nicholas Amsdorf, went so far
-as to maintain that good works were a hindrance to salvation.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn29"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn29">29</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> By denying the existence of human liberty, and maintaining
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p236"></a>{236}</span> that all things happen necessarily, the reformers, with Luther at
-their head, laid themselves open to the charges made by the partisans
-of the church of Rome, viz.: Their doctrine threw open a door to the
-most unbounded licentiousness since it furnished men with this defense
-for the crimes they committed&mdash;"We could do no other, our fate did
-not permit us to do otherwise." By saying that good works were not
-necessary to salvation, and assisted in no way to procure it, the
-Reformers took away the chief incentive to good works, and removed the
-principal restraint to the doing of evil.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> Moreover, their doctrine rendered void the ordinances and
-works required by the gospel; neither repentance nor baptism, nor any
-other act of obedience to God is essential if salvation is by faith
-alone. To say that it is a doctrine adverse to the whole tenor of
-scripture, notwithstanding a few isolated passages depended upon by the
-Reformers and their successors to support it, is not necessary here.
-It is sufficient to remark that it is a doctrine which would render
-the commandments of God incompatible with the powers and capacity of
-his creatures; a doctrine which destroys at once the consistency of
-God and the moral responsibility of man; and therefore a doctrine most
-pernicious and dangerous to entertain. [See note 5, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Luther on the Danger of his Doctrine.</b>&mdash;It proved to be so
-even during the lifetime of Luther; for it led some of his followers to
-believe that Christ had abolished the moral law; and that Christians,
-therefore, were not obliged to observe it.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn30"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn30">30</a>]</sup> Luther himself saw the
-danger of his doctrine and thus spoke of it:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> If faith be preached, as of necessity it must be, the greater
- part of mankind will interpret the doctrine in a carnal way, and
- so understand spiritual liberty as to allow indulgences of the
- flesh. This we <span class="pagenum"><a name="p237"></a>{237}</span> may see in all the ranks of life. All profess
- themselves to be evangelical; all boast of their Christian liberty;
- and yet give way to their lusts and passions, for example to
- covetousness, pride, envy, pleasures, and such like. Who discharges
- his duty faithfully? Who serves his brother in a true spirit of
- charity? The disgrace which such conduct brings on the profession
- of the gospel puts me sometimes so out of temper that I could wish
- these swine, that tread precious pearls under their feet were
- still under the tyranny of the pope; for it is impossible that a
- people so much resembling those of Gomorrah, should be kept in due
- subjection by the mild maxims of the gospel of peace.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn31"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn31">31</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>12.</b> It counts for nothing that Luther denounced this corrupt
-state of morals among his followers; it was the legitimate outgrowth of
-his fundamental doctrine&mdash;the doctrine of nearly all Protestants&mdash;of
-justification by faith alone, a faith which man had no part in
-generating, but which came through the grace of God alone. The tree of
-his planting produced bitter fruit; it was vain for him to proclaim
-against the fruit so long as he insisted that it was a good tree on
-which it grew.
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Teaching of the Church of Rome on Justification.</b>&mdash;The
-Catholic Church at the time, whatever errors in respect to other
-doctrines it entertained, held that salvation, justification before
-God, resulted through the exertion of man's free will, aided by the
-grace of God. It came through a union of faith and works on the part of
-man, and the rich outpouring of grace on the part of Deity; a doctrine
-which man is conscious of as operating upon and influencing human
-conduct, and at once in harmony with the whole tenor of revelation, and
-consonant with the great facts underlying the free will of man which
-have been already stated in this section.
-</p>
-<p><b>14.</b> Unfortunately for the Catholic Church, she did not stop
-here, but attached too great importance to external marks of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p238"></a>{238}</span>
-repentance, to works of penance&mdash;to tears, fastings, mortifications
-of the flesh, and pilgrimages. Men were required to go barefooted, to
-wear coarse raiment next their bodies, to become exiles from their
-homes or to renounce the world and embrace a monastic life. Finally
-in the eleventh century voluntary whippings were added to these other
-punishments [see note 6, end of section]; and men learned to look
-upon these works of penance as purchasing a forgiveness of sins, and
-paid little attention to the inward regeneration of the heart. "As
-confession and penance are easier than the extirpation of sin and
-the abandonment of vice, many ceased contending against the lusts
-of the flesh, and preferred gratifying them at the expense of a few
-mortifications."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn32"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn32">32</a>]</sup> Especially did this become the case when the
-doctrine was promulgated that substitutes could be hired to receive
-the punishment originally inflicted upon the offender, and monks and
-priests could be found willing to undergo it for a consideration.
-</p>
-<p><b>15.</b> The church trusted too much in the works of penance, and
-did not insist stoutly enough upon repentance&mdash;a godly sorrow which
-worketh a reformation of life. If the reformers went to one extreme
-in attributing man's justification wholly to the act of faith and the
-grace of God, the Catholic church went to the other in assigning too
-much value to works of penance and performances of human invention for
-the forgiveness of sins.
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Indulgences to be Accompanied by Amendment of Life.</b>&mdash;The
-doctrine and the sale of indulgences were powerful incentives to evil
-among an ignorant people. True, according to the church, indulgences
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p239"></a>{239}</span> could benefit those only who promised to amend their lives,
-and who kept their word. But what could be expected from a tenet
-invented solely with a view to the profit that might be derived from
-it? The vendors of indulgences were naturally tempted for the better
-sale of their merchandise to present their wares to the people in the
-most attractive and seducing aspect. The learned themselves did not
-fully understand the doctrine. All the multitude saw in them was that
-they permitted men to sin; and the merchants were not over eager to
-dissipate an error so favorable to their sale.&mdash;D'Aubigne.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Death of Tetzel.</b>&mdash;While the proper nuncio (Miltitz) was
-negotiating a reconciliation in Germany, Tetzel, the wretched
-subaltern, whose scandalous conduct had so disgraced his employers,
-met with the reward which frequently awaits the ministers of iniquity.
-He found himself deserted by all the world. Miltitz in particular had
-treated him so roughly that this daring and boisterous instrument of
-papal avarice and extortion actually fell sick, wasted away, and at
-last died of a broken heart. A dreadful lesson! This unhappy man left
-the world, as far as appears, destitute of comfort in his own soul,
-after he had ministered a false peace to thousands.&mdash;Milner.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Luther on Justification by Faith.</b>&mdash;I observe that the devil is
-continually attacking this fundamental article by means of his doctors,
-and that in this respect he can never cease or take any repose. Well,
-then, I, Doctor Martin Luther, unworthy herald of the gospel of our
-Lord Jesus Christ, confess this article, that faith alone without
-works justifies before Gods; and I declare that it shall stand and
-remain forever in spite of the emperor of the Romans, the emperor of
-the Turks, the emperor of the Tartars, the emperor of the Persians&mdash;in
-spite of the pope and all the cardinals, with the bishops, priests,
-monks and nuns&mdash;in spite of kings, princes and nobles, and in spite of
-all the world and of the devils themselves; and that if they endeavor
-to fight against this truth they will draw the fires of hell upon their
-heads. This is the true and holy gospel, and the declaration of me,
-Doctor Luther, according to the teaching of the Holy Ghost.&mdash;D'Aubigne
-(Hist. Ref., vol I, p. 70.)
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Effects of Predestination on the Mind.</b>&mdash;To what purpose shall
-I labor in the service of God? If I am predestinated to death [that is,
-spiritual death] I shall never escape from it; and if I am predestined
-to life [that is, to salvation] even though I do wickedly, I shall, no
-doubt, arrive at eternal rest.&mdash;Raban, Quoted by Guizot.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Evil Results of the Doctrine of Justification by Faith
-Alone.</b>&mdash;The serious evil involved in Luther's doctrine of
-justification by faith without works is perhaps best seen in a
-quotation from Fletcher, of Madeley, the most able disciple of John
-Wesley and his successor <span class="pagenum"><a name="p240"></a>{240}</span> Fletcher accuses one Richard Hill,
-Esq.&mdash;who accepted in its widest sense the doctrine of justification
-by faith alone&mdash;with saying: "Even adultery and murder do not hurt the
-pleasant children, but rather work for their good. God sees no sin in
-believers, whatever sin they may commit. My sins might displease God:
-my person is always acceptable to him * * * It is a most pernicious
-error of the schoolmen to distinguish sins according to the fact, and
-not according to the persons. Though I blame those who say, let us sin
-that grace may abound, yet adultery, incest and murder shall, upon
-the whole, make me holier on earth and merrier in heaven."&mdash;End of
-Religious Controversy, p. 90.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Works in which Catholics Trusted.</b>&mdash;In the eleventh century
-voluntary flagellations were superadded to these practices [fastings,
-pilgrimages, etc.]; somewhat later they became quite a mania in Italy,
-which was then in a very disturbed state. Nobles and peasants, old and
-young, even children of five years of age, whose only covering was
-a cloth tied round the middle, went in pairs by hundreds, thousands
-and tens of thousands, through the towns and villages, visiting the
-churches in the depth of winter. Armed with scourges, they flogged each
-other without pity, and the streets resounded with cries and groans
-that drew tears from all who heard them.&mdash;D'Aubigne.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What difference existed between the teachings of the Catholic church
-and the conduct of its agents in the matter of indulgences? (Note 1.)
-</p>
-<p>2. Was the sale of indulgences the chief cause of Luther's revolt from
-Rome?
-</p>
-<p>3. What doctrines did Luther entertain which would at last have led him
-to oppose the Catholic church?
-</p>
-<p>4. What is the power of deliberation?
-</p>
-<p>5. Explain what liberty or free agency is.
-</p>
-<p>6. In what way is man's will or free agency modified?
-</p>
-<p>7. What is it that convinces man of the necessity of external help to
-aid his will?
-</p>
-<p>8. What does man's experience teach him when he seeks external help?
-</p>
-<p>9. What influence is man conscious of as operating upon him in moral
-and spiritual affairs?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p241"></a>{241}</span> 10. State the Pelagian view on the subject of grace and free will.
-</p>
-<p>11. State the Roman Catholic view.
-</p>
-<p>12. State the Protestant view.
-</p>
-<p>13. What was Luther's fundamental doctrine?
-</p>
-<p>14. In what light did Luther hold good works?
-</p>
-<p>15. What mischief arose out of Luther's doctrine?
-</p>
-<p>16. What did Luther himself say respecting the danger of his doctrine?
-</p>
-<p>17. What were the teachings of the Roman church on justification?
-</p>
-<p>18. To what extreme did the church of Rome go in the matter of good
-works?
-</p>
-<p>19. What was the nature of the works in which Roman Catholics trusted
-too much? (Note 6.)
-</p>
-<p>20. What influence on morals did the doctrine have that substitutes
-could be employed to receive punishment for sins?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p242"></a>{242}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION III.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Growth of Luther's Rebellion.</b>&mdash;The thing most important,
-the one which drew with it the gravest consequences, and which led
-to the greatest good produced by the Reformation, was the rebellion
-of Luther against the authority of the pope. He did not come out in
-open rebellion at the first, but arrived at that state by gradual and
-imperceptible steps. When his opposition to the sale of indulgences met
-with reproof from the pontiff, he appealed from the pope ill-informed
-to the pope better-informed. When that pope better-informed still
-held him to be in error and refractory, he appealed to a general,
-free council of the whole church; but when no heed was taken of this
-appeal, and Leo, pressed by Eckius, Cajetan and others, excommunicated
-him, he then answered by burning the pope's bull of excommunication,
-and stood in open rebellion to the authority of the pontiff. When the
-pope appealed to Emperor Charles to make the excommunication of some
-force by the power of the secular authority vested in him, the emperor,
-contrary to the protests of the pope's legates, resolved to give the
-Reformer a hearing before proceeding against him. Accordingly Luther
-was summoned before the diet at Worms, where he not only insisted upon
-having a hearing before a free, general council of the church, but a
-council that would accept the Bible as the final authority upon the
-questions at issue between himself and the pontiff.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Catholic Rule of Faith.</b>&mdash;This was demanding more than
-the pope could grant; for the Catholics have never exalted the Bible
-above the church, but have always held that <span class="pagenum"><a name="p243"></a>{243}</span> the scriptures must
-be accepted as construed by the church, and in the days of Luther the
-pope was the church. The Catholic rule of faith in respect to the
-laws by which the church is to be governed is: "The word of God, at
-large, whether written in the Bible or handed down from the apostles
-by tradition, and as it is understood and explained by the Catholic
-church."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn33"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn33">33</a>]</sup> Besides their rule of faith, which is scripture and
-tradition, "Catholics acknowledge an unerring judge of controversy, or
-sure guide in all matters relating to salvation&mdash;viz., the church."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn34"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn34">34</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> This rule employed to interpret the Bible and to settle
-controversies that might arise, Luther rejected. Writing in defense
-of his conduct in burning the papal bull of excommunication and the
-decretals of the popes, he said:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Let no man's good sense be so far seduced as to reverence the
- volumes I have burnt, on account of their great antiquity or their
- high titles. Let every one first hear and see what the pope teaches
- in his own books, and what abominable, poisonous doctrines are to
- be found among the sacred, spiritual laws; and then let him freely
- judge, whether I have done right or not in burning such writings.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>4.</b> Among the teachings in the decretals which Luther held up for
-special condemnation were the following:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> (1) The pope has the power to interpret scripture, and to teach as
- he pleases; and no person is allowed to interpret in a different
- way. (2) The pope does not derive from the scripture but the
- scripture derives from the pope, authority, power and dignity.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>He then affirms that comparing together the different parts of the
-canon law, its language amounts to this:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> That the pope is God on earth; above all that is earthly or
- heavenly, temporal or spiritual; that all things belong to the
- pope; and that no one must venture to say, what doest thou?<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn35"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn35">35</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p244"></a>{244}</span>It was against this arbitrary authority that Luther rebelled.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Attempted Settlement by a General Council.</b>&mdash;At last when
-through the influence of the emperor the pope consented to appoint a
-council, a difficulty arose as to where it should be held. The pope on
-his part seemed determined to have it assemble in Italy, or in some
-country where his influence would predominate; the Reformers were
-equally determined to submit their cause to no council outside of
-Germany. The difficulty had arisen in Germany; they insisted it should
-be settled by a council in Germany, or by a diet of the empire. The
-cause was never fairly tried by a council of the whole church; the
-revolt against the authority of the pope was sustained by an appeal to
-arms, as related in section I, Part III, of this work.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Revolution, not Rebellion.</b>&mdash;Had that revolt against the
-Catholic church been a revolt against legitimate authority it would
-have been rebellion: but as it was against a usurped and hence an
-illegitimate authority, it was a justifiable revolution. For in
-ecclesiastical government, no less than in civil government, if a
-long train of abuses renders it odious, and those who execute it are
-tyrannical and usurp authority which the law of God does not sanction,
-by which unrighteous dominion is exercised over the minds of men, it is
-the right of the people to resist such authority: and refuse to sustain
-those who exercise that unrighteous dominion to please their vanity or
-gratify their ambition.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. True Position, but a Corrupt Church.</b>&mdash;The position that
-the church, officered by inspired prophets and apostles&mdash;men having
-by virtue of their priesthood and official position a right to the
-inspiration and revelations of God&mdash;the position that the church of
-Christ so officered, has the right to decide upon all controversies and
-to determine the meaning of scripture, is, beyond all questioning, a
-true position. But the difficulty with the Roman Catholic church was
-that it was no <span class="pagenum"><a name="p245"></a>{245}</span> longer the church of Christ, as already proven in
-Part II of this work. It had no prophets or apostles, no men who had a
-right to the revelations of God. The popes and bishops of the church
-taught that revelation had ceased, and they depended on scripture and
-tradition alone, interpreted by themselves, for their guide. The power
-the church possessed was usurped power merely, the growth of ages. It
-had become both arrogant and insolent, and at last intolerable, and
-when a man was found possessing the courage to resent its presumption
-and defy it, he found plenty to applaud and sanction his act.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. True Cause of the Reformation.</b>&mdash;We cannot ascribe the
-Reformation to accidents and mischances, such for instance as the
-jealousy of Luther because the sale of indulgences was entrusted to
-the Dominican monks instead of to the order of Augustine monks, to
-which he belonged<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn36"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn36">36</a>]</sup>&mdash;we cannot assign the cause of the Reformation
-to this, neither can we go to the other extreme and say that the great
-revolution of the sixteenth century resulted solely from a pure desire
-to reform the abuses that had arisen in the church or bring back
-Christianity to its primitive purity. Not a few of the princes that
-favored Luther in his revolt against the pope did so from other motives
-than those prompted by a desire to reform the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> Many of the temporal monarchs and princes were jealous of the
-power exercised within their dominions by the Roman pontiffs, as it
-lowered the dignity of their own position. They were tired, moreover,
-of the assumed right of the pope to enter their dominions, and, under
-one pretext or another, tax their subjects and thus not only impoverish
-the people, but reduce the revenue of the temporal ruler. It will be
-found, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p246"></a>{246}</span> therefore, that the jealousy, ambition and interest of
-these princes, and not a desire to establish pure religion, made them
-factors in the great revolution. (See note 1, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> The people also were tired of the dominion asserted over
-their minds by the papal authority, and were only too glad to escape
-from that thraldom under any pretext whatsoever. The preceding century
-had brought a great intellectual awakening to Europe, and men were no
-longer content to have questions of fact and belief decided by the
-authority of the church. (See note 2, end of section.) They insisted
-that human reason and individual judgment had a right to investigate
-and to be satisfied on these questions; and the securing of that
-freedom was not only the leading principle of the sixteenth century
-revolution, but its greatest achievement. (See note 3, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Revolution, not Reformation.</b>&mdash;It is absurd to say that
-the revolution of the sixteenth century was a reformation, if by
-that it is meant that it re-established the primitive doctrines of
-Christianity, purified the morals of the people, or gave birth to a
-better ecclesiastical government. It did no such thing. The Reformers
-declaimed against some of the abuses of the Catholic church, such
-as denying the sacramental cup to the laity, the celibacy of the
-clergy, the absurdities of the mass, fasts and ceremonies of human
-invention, the whole system of monkery, and the great usurpation of
-authority by the church; and consequently did not include any of
-these abuses&mdash;except perhaps the last&mdash;in the system of religion they
-founded. Still their doctrines led them into serious errors and great
-disorders.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. Private Interpretation of the Bible and its Effects.</b>&mdash;The
-evils that arose from the doctrine of justification by faith alone, we
-have already noticed.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn37"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn37">37</a>]</sup> The disorders that grew out of the doctrine
-of private interpretation of scripture is yet to be considered. When
-Luther refused to longer recognize the authority of the church in
-matters of doctrine, he still was aware that men would need some
-authority to decide controversies that would arise, consequently he
-held up the Bible as the final arbiter of all questions touching
-faith and morals. But the Bible had to be construed, its meaning made
-plain, and as each one was left to explain it in his own way, the
-utmost confusion prevailed. On the great fundamental principle of the
-Protestants&mdash;justification by faith alone&mdash;Osiander, a Lutheran, says:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> There are twenty several opinions, all drawn from scriptures,
- and held by different members of the Augsburg, or Lutheran
- Confession.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn38"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn38">38</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>When the Reformers from the several parts of Germany consulted
-together, and with them the Reformers from other states met with a
-view to come to some understanding in respect to religion and modes of
-worship, it was soon apparent that they were hopelessly divided, not
-only upon matters unimportant, but also upon fundamental principles.
-Luther had rejected the authority of the church and set up the tribunal
-of private interpretation of scripture in its stead. A number of his
-disciples proceeding on the same principle, rejected some of his
-doctrines and undertook to prove from the scripture that he was in
-error and that the Reformation needed reforming.
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> <b>13.</b> Carolstadt, [says the author of the "End of Religious
- Controversy] Zuinglius, Okolampadius, Muncer and a hundred more
- of his followers, wrote and preached against him and against
- each other with the utmost virulence, whilst each of them still
- professed to ground his doctrine and conduct on the written word
- of God alone. In vain did Luther denounce hell fire against them;
- in vain did he threaten to return back to the Catholic religion;
- he had put the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p248"></a>{248}</span> Bible into each man's hand to explain it for
- himself, and this his followers continued to do in open defiance
- of him, till their mutual contradictions and discords became so
- numerous and scandalous as to overwhelm the thinking part of them
- with grief and confusion."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn39"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn39">39</a>]</sup> (See note 4, end of section.)
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>14. The Multiplication of Sects.</b>&mdash;The division of the Reformers
-into numerous sects has ever been a reproach to Protestants and
-likewise an evidence of the weakness of their position. Men of
-different capacities and dispositions examined the Bible; they found it
-no systematic treatise upon religion and morals, but a miscellaneous
-collection of inspired writings, dealing with historical events,
-connected, in the main, with the people of God; prophecies, dreams,
-revelations, doctrines, and morals; written at different times, to
-different peoples, and under a great variety of circumstances. In
-addition to all this, many plain and precious parts have been taken
-away from it;<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn40"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn40">40</a>]</sup> other parts have doubtless been purposely changed
-by designing men;<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn41"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn41">41</a>]</sup> which, with the imperfections arising from its
-translation from the original languages in which it was written,
-has made it an uncertain guide, taken alone, for the church or for
-individuals; and as Protestants insisted upon the right of private
-judgment in the interpretation of the Bible, it is not surprisingg
-that a great variety of opinions were entertained, or that numerous
-sects were founded upon them. It was a great evil; much confusion and
-disorder arose out of it; but it was an evil that could not be avoided.
-It was one of those periods of time when liberty was a cause of
-disorder, but the attainment of liberty through that disorder more than
-outweighed the evils that arose from it.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. The Error of the Reformers.</b>&mdash;The great error which the
-Reformers made was in not giving full application to their principle
-of the right of private judgment in matters of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p249"></a>{249}</span> religion. They
-claimed the right to revolt from the Catholic church, to interpret the
-Bible for themselves, and to found their mode of worship upon their own
-conceptions of what was required by the revelations of God; but when
-others differed from them, and desired to exercise the same liberty,
-the Reformers were themselves intolerant, and attempted to compel men
-by force to accept their religious faith and modes of worship. It is
-this intolerance which is the chief reproach applied to the Reformation
-by its enemies, and it must be admitted that it somewhat sullies the
-glory of its achievements. (See note 5, end of section.)
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Motives Back of the Reformation.</b>&mdash;The Protestant historian,
-Mosheim, with whom Hume agrees, admits that several of the principal
-agents in this revolution were actuated more by the impulse of passion
-and views of interest than by a zeal for true religion. (Maclaine's
-Mosheim, vol. iv. p. 135.) He had before acknowledged that King
-Gustavus introduced Lutheranism into Sweden in opposition to the
-clergy and bishops, not only as agreeable to the genius and spirit of
-the gospel, but also as favorable to the temporal state and political
-constitution of the Swedish dominions. He adds that Christiern,
-who introduced the Reformation into Denmark, was animated by no
-other motives than those of ambition and avarice. Grotius, another
-Protestant, testifies that it was sedition and violence which gave
-birth to the Reformation in his own country&mdash;Holland. The same was the
-case in France, Geneva and Scotland. It is to be observed, that in all
-these countries the Reformers, as soon as they got the upper hand,
-became violent persecutors of the Catholics. Bergier defies Protestants
-to name so much as a town or village in which, when they became masters
-of it, they tolerated a single Catholic.&mdash;End of Religious Controversy,
-note, p. 105.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Desire for Freedom the Moving Cause in Reformation.</b>&mdash;The
-strength of the Protestant party had been derived, both in Germany and
-England, far less from their superiority in argument, however decisive
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p250"></a>{250}</span> this might be, than from that desire which all classes, and
-especially the higher, had long experienced to emancipate themselves
-from the thraldom of ecclesiastical jurisdiction.&mdash;Hallam's Const.
-Hist. of Eng.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Cause and Leading Principle of the Reformation.</b>&mdash;In
-my opinion the Reformation neither was an accident, the result of
-some casual circumstance, or some personal interests, nor arose from
-unmingled views of religious improvement, the fruit of Utopian humanity
-and truth. It had a more powerful cause than all these; a general cause
-to which all the others are subordinate. It was a vast effort made by
-the human mind to achieve its freedom; it was a new-born desire which
-it felt to think and judge, freely and independently, of facts and
-opinions which, till then, Europe received or was considered bound
-to receive from the hands of authority. It was a great endeavor to
-emancipate human reason, and to call things by their right names;
-it was an insurrection of the human mind against the absolute power
-of spiritual order. Such, in my opinion, was the true character and
-leading principle of the Reformation. * * * Not only was this the
-result of the Reformation, but it was content with this result.
-Whenever this was obtained no other was sought for; so entirely was
-it the very foundation of the event, its primitive and fundamental
-character! * * * I repeat it; whenever the Reformation attained this
-object, it accommodated itself to every form of government and to every
-situation.&mdash;Guizot.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Unhappy Divisions Among Reformers.</b>&mdash;Capito, minister of
-Strasburg, writing to Forel, pastor of Geneva, thus complains to him:
-"God has given me to understand the mischief we have done by our
-precipitancy in breaking with the pope. The people say I know enough of
-the gospel. I can read it for myself. I have no need of you." In the
-same tone Dudith writes to his friend Beza: "Our people are carried
-away with every wind of doctrine. If you know what their religion is
-today, you cannot tell what it will be tomorrow. In what single point
-are those churches which have declared war against the pope agreed
-amongst themselves? There is not one point which is not held by some
-of them as an article of faith, and by others as an impiety!" In the
-same sentiment, Calvin, writing to Melanchthon, says: "It is of great
-importance that the divisions which subsist among us should not be
-known to future ages: for nothing can be more ridiculous than that we
-who have broken off from the whole world, should have agreed so ill
-among ourselves from the very beginning of the Reformation."&mdash;End of
-Religious Controversy, Page 101.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The Reproach of the Reformation.</b>&mdash;What were the reproaches
-constantly applied to the Reformation by its enemies? Which of its
-results are thrown in its face, as it were, unanswerable? The two
-principal reproaches are, first, the multiplicity of sects, the
-excessive license of thought, the destruction of all spiritual
-authority, and the entire dissolution of religious society; secondly,
-tyranny and persecution. "You provoke licentiousness," it has been said
-to the Reformers: "you produce it; and, after being the cause of it,
-you wish to restrain and repress it. And how do you repress it? By the
-most harsh and violent means. You take upon yourselves, too, to punish
-heresy, and that by virtue of an illegitimate authority."&mdash;Guizot.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What was the matter of chief importance in the Reformation?
-</p>
-<p>2. Describe the growth of Luther's conflict with the pope.
-</p>
-<p>3. Describe the Catholic rule of faith.
-</p>
-<p>4. What demands contrary to that rule did Luther make?
-</p>
-<p>5. What difficulty arose in respect to settling the controversy by an
-appeal to a general council?
-</p>
-<p>6. What can you say of the revolt of Luther to the Catholic church
-authority?
-</p>
-<p>7. What can you say of the right of the true Church of Christ to settle
-controversies and determine the meaning of scripture?
-</p>
-<p>8. Why was the Catholic church unqualified to render decisions on such
-matters?
-</p>
-<p>9. What several causes are assigned for the Reformation by Catholics
-and Protestants respectively? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>10. What was the true cause?
-</p>
-<p>11. What several considerations aided the Reformation?
-</p>
-<p>12. Was the religious movement of the 16th century a reformation or a
-revolution?
-</p>
-<p>13. What can you say of the evils which arose from the private
-interpretation of the Bible?
-</p>
-<p>14. What caused the multiplication of sects among the Protestants?
-</p>
-<p>15. What makes the Bible an insufficient guide in matters of faith and
-worship?
-</p>
-<p>16. What was the great error of the Reformers?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p252"></a>{252}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION IV.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Reformation in Switzerland.</b>&mdash;So far we have considered
-this sixteenth century revolution as it affected the German empire
-alone. It was not confined, however, to that country. As a matter of
-fact, the so-called Reformation began in Switzerland before it did
-in Germany. Ulrich Zwingle, born in Wildhausen, Canton of St. Gall,
-Switzerland 1484, attacked many of the errors of the Catholic Church,
-before Luther began his opposition.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> In 1516, Zwingle openly declaimed against many Catholic
-abuses, such as monastic vows, pilgrimages, worship of relics, and
-indulgences. He also taught that the Bible was the only standard of
-religious truth. In 1518, one Samson came into Switzerland to sell
-indulgences. The year following Zwingle opposed him and drove him from
-Zurich. Four years later the Swiss Reformer was accused of heresy
-by adherents of the Roman pontiff, and brought before the council
-of Zurich. He presented sixty-seven doctrinal propositions before
-the council which he agreed to defend by the scriptures against all
-opposers. The council before which his cause was tried decided that
-the controversy must be settled by an appeal to the Bible, and Zwingle
-triumphed. At the conclusion of the hearing the council decreed that
-the Reformer should be allowed to teach as he had formerly done
-unmolested; and that no preacher in the canton should teach any
-doctrine he could not prove by the Bible. The year following&mdash;1524&mdash;the
-council reformed the public worship, that is, they adopted the
-principles and methods of worship proposed by Zwingle.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p253"></a>{253}</span> <b>3.</b> In 1531, the Catholics in the surrounding cantons
-attacked Zurich, and early in the battle, Zwingle, while leading the
-Protestant forces, was slain, his body hacked to pieces and afterwards
-burned. [See note 1, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>4. John Calvin.</b>&mdash;Zwingle was succeeded in the leadership of the
-Swiss Reformers by John Calvin, a talented but austere man, a native
-of Noyon, France. [See note 2, end of section.] He more than any other
-man&mdash;Luther excepted&mdash;influenced the character of the Protestant
-churches. He held many views that were at variance with those of
-Zwingle. The latter taught that civil rulers possessed absolute power
-in religious matters, and subjected the ministers altogether to their
-authority. Calvin held that the church should be free and independent
-of the state; that it should govern itself by its own officers whom
-the church and not the state should appoint; he limited the power of
-the state over the church to giving it external protection. Zwingle
-recognized a gradation of officers in the Christian church; Calvin
-held that all were equal. Suitable persons appointed and ordained with
-the consent of the members of the church, constituted, in his theory
-of church government, a legitimate ministry to preach the gospel and
-administer the sacraments. But for the government of the church a
-number of men were chosen by the people from among the most venerable
-and respectable of the congregation. These men were called presbyters
-or elders. They were all equal in authority, and even the preaching
-minister was in no sense superior to them in office.
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> The elders of a single church or congregation convened
-in council constituted the church session; councils composed of
-representatives from the several churches in a province, constituted
-synods or consistories; while a general council composed of elders from
-all the churches was known as the general assembly. The elders in these
-several councils were all regarded <span class="pagenum"><a name="p254"></a>{254}</span> as equal in authority and had
-full power to enact laws relating to religious matters and to establish
-the discipline of the church. Such is the order of church government
-founded by Calvin, and known as Presbyterianism.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Difference of Opinion on the Eucharist.</b>&mdash;As already stated
-in a previous section, the Catholics maintained that in the eucharist
-the bread and the wine, were converted by consecration into the very
-body and blood of Messiah. Zwingle maintained that the bread and wine
-were symbols merely of Christ's flesh and blood, employed to call to
-mind his death, and the blessings procured to man by that death. Calvin
-stood between these two extremes, as also did Luther, and while they
-disagreed with Catholics, and would not concede that the bread and wine
-were changed to the <em>very</em> body and blood of Christ, neither would they
-concede that the bread and wine were merely symbols, but insisted upon
-a sort of spiritual presence. That is, they held that the saints in
-the exercise of faith in partaking of the sacrament, do become united
-in a certain mystic way with Christ, and from this union received an
-increase of spiritual life.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Predestination.</b>&mdash;Another thing in which Calvin differed from
-Zwingle was in relation to the celebrated doctrine of an absolute
-decree of God respecting the salvation of men. Calvin emphasized the
-doctrines of Luther and Melanchthon in regard to the part which the
-grace of God takes in the salvation of men; and perhaps carried it
-further than they would have done, certainly further than Zwingle did.
-On this point Calvin taught that God had elected some persons from all
-eternity to everlasting life; and had appointed others to everlasting
-punishments; and that for this he had no other ground except his own
-pleasure, or his most free and sovereign will. This is the doctrine of
-predestination.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Spread of Calvin's Doctrines.</b>&mdash;It was some time before the
-Swiss could be brought to accept these doctrines <span class="pagenum"><a name="p255"></a>{255}</span> so at variance
-with or not found in the teachings of Zwingle. Yet by the perseverance
-and the high reputation for learning and piety of Calvin they were
-very generally accepted in Switzerland; and after him, such was the
-success of his pupils, that large bodies of Protestants in other
-nations accepted his doctrines. Especially was this the case in France,
-England, Scotland, and even in Germany.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Reformation in France.</b>&mdash;In France, though in the main
-her people adhered to the Catholic church, the Reformation found its
-most faithful adherents, and there they suffered the most violent
-persecutions. The Protestants were opprobriously called Huguenots
-[Hu-ge-nots] the origin of the appellation is uncertain. Among these
-French Protestants were men of high character, and not a few bishops
-of the church. The king and the magistrates, however, protected the
-ancient religion by the sword, by penal inflictions; and a large number
-of pious and good people were put to death, among them not a few of the
-nobility. [See notes 3 and 4, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>10. The Reformation in Sweden.</b>&mdash;In Sweden the Reformation made
-rapid headway. Its doctrines were introduced into that country by
-Olaus Peri, whose zeal for the cause was warmly seconded by the king,
-Gustavus Vasa, who while an exile in Lubec, during the revolution of
-1523, learned something of the "reformed" religion. For some time
-before 1523 Sweden had been ruled by Danish kings; but in that year,
-in consequence of the tyranny practiced by Christiern II of Denmark, a
-revolution was inaugurated by Gustavus Vasa, which ended in Christiern
-being driven from Sweden. Gustavus was chosen king in his stead.
-While prejudiced in favor of the "reformed" religion, he acted with
-great moderation. He invited learned Protestants from Germany whom he
-directed to instruct his people in the Bible and the Protestant faith.
-The Bible translated by Olaus Petri he caused to be published and
-disseminated. In 1526, a great discussion on religion was <span class="pagenum"><a name="p256"></a>{256}</span> held
-at Upsal at the instance of the king, between Olaus Petri and Peter
-Gallius, a Roman Catholic. Gallius seems to have been so far defeated,
-even in his own estimation, that in the year following, in the assembly
-of the states at Westeras, he recommended the "reformed" religion of
-Luther to the representatives of the nation. After a long discussion,
-and much opposition from the bishops, it was finally harmoniously
-decreed that the "reformed" religion should be introduced. From that
-time until now the power of the pope in Sweden has been prostrated.
-[See note 5, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Denmark.</b>&mdash;In Denmark the reformation was not accomplished so
-happily. Christiern, whose authority, as we have seen, was overthrown
-in Sweden, sought to establish the reformed religion in Denmark,
-but more from a desire to deprive the bishops of their power, and
-confiscate their property, than from a right zeal for true religion. In
-1520 he invited Martin Reynhard, a disciple of Carlstadt, to Denmark,
-and made him professor of theology at Copenhagen. Reynhard stayed about
-a year. When he left, the king sent for Carlstadt. He remained but a
-short time; and then the king invited Luther himself to come, but the
-reformer would not accept the invitation. All these failing him, the
-king set about the work of reformation himself, but as he was a tyrant,
-his people conspired against him, and banished him from the kingdom,
-in 1523. He was succeeded by his uncle, Frederic, Duke of Holstein and
-Sleswick.
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> Frederic was as anxious as Christiern had been to see the
-reformed religion established in Denmark, but he was more prudent
-than his nephew. He permitted the leaders among the Protestants to
-teach publicly the doctrines of Luther, and in time these raised up a
-strong following. In 1527 the king procured a decree from the senate,
-at the diet of Odensee, giving religious liberty to the people. By
-this decree the Danes were left free to embrace the new religion, or
-continue <span class="pagenum"><a name="p257"></a>{257}</span> members of the Catholic Church, as they saw proper. The
-successor of Frederic&mdash;Christian III&mdash;went further than this, however,
-in the interest of the Reformation. He stripped the bishops of their
-odious power, confiscated the church property, much of which, however,
-he restored to the original owners, from whom it had been obtained, it
-is alleged, by base arts. He called John Bugenhagius from Wittemburg,
-and with his assistance regulated the religious affairs of his realm by
-making the reformed the established religion of his kingdom. The action
-of Christian III seems harsh, but a circumstance which mitigates if it
-does not destroy the harshness of his measures, was the insufferable
-arrogance, pride and power of the bishops, which was a constant menace
-to the power of the monarch, and did much to eclipse his glory. [See
-note 6, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Holland.</b>&mdash;Perhaps from being contiguous to Germany, the
-Netherlands&mdash;Belgium and Holland&mdash;soon partook of the spirit of the
-Reformation&mdash;the desire to be free. The writings of Luther were
-early received and widely read by the Netherlanders. This alarmed
-the Catholics who, in 1552, established the Inquisition there and
-persecuted with great vigor all who accepted the doctrines of the
-reformers. It is estimated that in those provinces which, taken
-together, constitute the Netherlands, in the reign of Charles V
-alone&mdash;from 1519 to 1552&mdash;not less than 50,000 persons lost their
-lives in consequence of their defection from the church of Rome. But
-notwithstanding this severe persecution, adherents to the Protestant
-faith increased. The tyranny of their oppressors seemed to increase
-the boldness of the people in clamoring for the rights of conscience;
-and towards the close of the sixteenth century seven of the provinces
-successfully revolted against the Duke of Alva, Viceroy of the Catholic
-monarch, Phillip II of Spain. These revolting provinces formed the
-Dutch Republic, and in a short time became the most formidable maritime
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p258"></a>{258}</span> power in the world. They suffered the most and wrought the most
-in behalf of the liberty of conscience, the freedom of commerce, and
-the liberty of the state. It is said by one historian that "In freedom
-of conscience they were the light of the world."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn42"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn42">42</a>]</sup> It is well known
-that for many years their land was the asylum for the oppressed,
-especially for those persecuted for their religion.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. England.</b>&mdash;The Reformation in England took on a different
-aspect to what it did in the other countries. When Luther began his
-assault upon the church of Rome, the English monarch, Henry VIII,
-appeared as a champion on the side of the Roman pontiffs. He wrote a
-book against Luther in defense of the seven sacraments of the Catholic
-Church, which met with such favor in the eyes of the pope that he
-conferred upon Henry the title of "Defender of the Faith." Henry's
-book appeared in 1522. Soon after this the king began to question the
-legality of his marriage with Catherine of Aragon.
-</p>
-<p><b>15.</b> Catherine had been the wife of the king's deceased brother,
-Arthur; and a marriage with a deceased brother's widow was regarded as
-contrary to the law of God.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn43"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn43">43</a>]</sup> Henry therefore applied to the pope for
-the annulment of his marriage, since his conscience would not permit
-him to cohabit longer with his deceased brother's wife. The conduct
-of the king, however, was such as to give strong ground to the belief
-that it was his love for Ann Boleyn, an English lady of high birth, and
-not conscientious scruples as to the lawfulness of his marriage with
-Catherine. The queen's beauty had faded and some disease, it is said,
-had rendered her person less agreeable. Still, to do Henry justice,
-it must not be concealed that his father had scrupled the legitimacy
-of the marriage; a foreign <span class="pagenum"><a name="p259"></a>{259}</span> court had made it an objection
-to intermarriage with his children by his wife; and the people of
-England very generally entertained fears respecting the succession
-to his crown, and these political considerations doubtless had their
-influence.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn44"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn44">44</a>]</sup> Still it will not be denied that after the king had
-fallen in love with Ann Boleyn, his love for her and not political
-considerations, or religious scruples, was the incentive that prompted
-him to seek a divorce.
-</p>
-<p><b>16. The Rupture with the Pope.</b>&mdash;The pope, Clement VII, evaded
-a direct answer to Henry's appeal. Catherine was the aunt of Charles
-V, and perhaps Clement feared that he would offend that monarch&mdash;to
-whom he looked to suppress the Reformation in Germany&mdash;if he granted
-the divorce. Henry, impatient of these enforced delays, consulted the
-universities of Europe, and as most of them pronounced marriage with
-a deceased brother's wife unlawful, he divorced Catherine without the
-consent of the pope. A quarrel ensued between the king and the pontiff,
-which resulted in the former casting off the authority of the latter,
-and the pope excommunicated the king. In 1533 Henry was declared
-head of the British church and Defender of the Faith, by the English
-parliament. He thereupon ejected the monks from their possessions,
-disposed of their property at his own good pleasure, and abolished in
-toto the authority of the pope in England.
-</p>
-<p><b>17.</b> No other country in all Europe was so well prepared for the
-Sixteenth Century revolution as England. A century and a half before
-either Luther or Zwingle were heard of, John Wycliffe proclaimed
-against the corruption and abuses of the Catholic church, denounced
-the pope as anti-Christ,<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn45"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn45">45</a>]</sup> and preached against the doctrine
-of transubstantiation. He also <span class="pagenum"><a name="p260"></a>{260}</span> translated the Scriptures
-and circulated them among the common people. Two years before his
-death, however, he was summoned before a church council by which,
-notwithstanding he defended himself with great ability, many of his
-doctrines were condemned, and he himself was restricted in his ministry
-to the parish of Lutterworth, in Leicestershire, where he died. [See
-note 7, end of section.] His teachings, however, had made a deep
-impression upon his countrymen, and he left many followers, who were
-called by their opponents Lollards. The Lollards were a proscribed
-sect in England, and as they avoided persecution, but little was heard
-of them. Still they cherished the doctrines of their leader, and
-transmitted them to their children, so that when Luther and the other
-continental reformers began their work, there were many in England
-who sympathized with them; and when Henry VIII considered it to his
-interests to revolt against the authority of the pope, he found large
-numbers of his people not only ready to support him in casting off
-that authority, but anxious to go much farther in that revolt than
-the king desired. [See note 6, end of section.] They had viewed the
-rupture between the king and the pope with deep satisfaction; but
-they were soon to learn that the defection of the monarch was not to
-bring religious liberty to England, or establish there the doctrines
-of Wycliffe or Luther. It was but a change of masters that had taken
-place, and the king was as despotic as the pope. [See note 9, end of
-section.] Although Henry had thrown off the authority of the pontiff,
-he would tolerate but few changes in the forms and ceremonies of
-religion. More changes were introduced in the reign of Edward VI, the
-son of Henry VIII by Jane Seymore; and still more in the reign of
-Elizabeth, his daughter by Anne Boleyn.
-</p>
-<p><b>18. The Puritans.</b>&mdash;But these changes came far short of satisfying
-the English Protestants, who were called Puritans. They demanded
-almost a complete abolition of the rites and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p261"></a>{261}</span> ceremonies of the
-Roman Church, which they denounced as idolatrous. The most of them
-favored the Presbyterian form of church government, or a still simpler
-method which would recognize each congregation as a complete church
-within itself. Those who contended for this more simple form of church
-government were called Independents. The puritans were frequently rude
-and clamorous in their demands for further reformation; and on their
-part the adherents of the established religion were intolerant, and
-persecuted to imprisonment, exile or death the Puritans. [See note 10,
-end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>19. The Reformation in Scotland.</b>&mdash;All things considered, the
-Reformation in Scotland&mdash;that is the overthrow of the authority of the
-pope&mdash;was accomplished with as little trouble as it was in England; and
-accompanied by less injustice to Catholics. In Scotland, as in England,
-the doctrines of Wycliffe had many silent adherents, and such was the
-frame of the popular mind that only the leadership of bold men was
-needed to make a successful revolt against the authority of the pope.
-That leadership was found in John Knox.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn46"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn46">46</a>]</sup> Knox was thirty-eight years
-of age when he openly declared himself a Protestant, and began his work
-of reform. About three years later Cardinal Beaton, a proud, arrogant
-man, and of course the head of the Catholic church in Scotland, was
-assassinated. His castle&mdash;St. Andrews&mdash;was taken possession of by the
-band of nobles and others who had murdered him, and it became for a
-time the stronghold of Protestantism. To this place Knox repaired, and
-there in the parish church of St. Andrews, first became famous as a
-preacher. In a short time, however, the fortress was surrendered, and
-Knox was sent to the French galleys a prisoner. After two years he was
-set at liberty, and allowed to depart for England, where he lived for
-years, on terms of intimacy with Cranmer and other English reformers.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p262"></a>{262}</span> On the accession of Queen Mary,<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn47"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn47">47</a>]</sup> Knox retired to Germany and
-Switzerland, residing chiefly in the latter place, where he learned and
-became attached to both the doctrines and form of church government
-taught by Calvin.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> In 155, political necessity compelled the government in
-Scotland to become more lenient towards the nobles favoring the
-Reformation, and Knox returned to Scotland, where his impassioned
-denunciations of the idolatry of the mass and of image-worship aroused
-the pent-up enthusiasm of the people. Indeed the people went far
-beyond what Knox intended; riots ensued, churches and monasteries
-were destroyed, and the whole country, already suffering the evils of
-civil war, was plunged into greater disorder. At last, through the
-assistance of Queen Elizabeth, of England, a truce was proclaimed,
-and a parliament chosen to settle the troubles. The parliament met
-in 1560, and its deliberations resulted in the overthrow of the old
-religion, and the establishment of the "Reformed church," based on the
-doctrines and church polity of Calvin. In the midst of the harshness
-which attended the overthrow of the old religion there was a singular
-instance of moderation which will be looked for in vain in other
-countries where the reformation succeeded. According to Hallam, it
-was agreed in the settlement made by the parliament of 1560, "that
-the Roman Catholic prelates, including the regulars, should enjoy
-two-thirds of their revenues as well as their rank and seats in
-parliament; the remaining third being given to the crown, out of which
-stipends should be allotted to the protestant clergy."<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn48"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn48">48</a>]</sup> "Whatever
-violence may be imputed to the authors of the Scots reformation,"
-continues Mr. Hallam, "this arrangement seems to display a moderation
-which we would vainly seek in our own"<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn49"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn49">49</a>]</sup>&mdash;the English reformation.
-</p>
-<p><b>21.</b> Unfortunately, as in England, after the authority and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p263"></a>{263}</span>
-religion of the pope were overthrown in Scotland, the religious
-difficulties were far from settled. A controversy arose between
-the church and the crown on the subject of authority. It will be
-remembered that Calvin insisted that the church should be independent
-of the state,<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn50"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn50">50</a>]</sup> and nowhere was it so strenuously insisted upon as
-in Scotland; not only did it demand of the secular authority freedom
-from interference, but assumed the right to reprove the king and his
-court, and that, too, in no guarded language. In 1854, Andrew Melville
-was summoned before the king's council, to give an account of some
-seditious language employed by him in the pulpit against the court.
-He declined the jurisdiction of the council on the ground that he
-was responsible only to the church for such language; and the king
-could not judge of the matter without violating the immunities of the
-church.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn51"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn51">51</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> The king and council, however, did not hesitate to declare
-the supremacy of the secular power, and thus was begun a controversy
-which, united with the attempts on the part of the sovereigns and
-parliament to restore the Episcopal form of church government, led
-to violent persecutions on the part of the secular authority, and
-to heroic resistance on the part of the people of Scotland. In that
-protracted struggle, persecuted by both parties with varying fortunes,
-the people were at last successful; though their victory was not
-secured for them until the Stuart line of monarchs were driven out
-of Scotland and England by the revolution of 1688, which dethroned
-James II of England and VII of Scotland, and placed William, Prince of
-Orange, and Mary, his wife, on the British throne.
-</p>
-<p><b>23. The Discovery of America&mdash;Its Influence on Liberty.</b>&mdash;It is
-significant that about the time of the "Revival of Learning" in Europe,
-America was discovered by Columbus, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p264"></a>{264}</span> led hither by the inspiration
-of God. [Note 11, end of section.] Between this struggle for liberty
-in the Old World and the discovery of the New there was doubtless a
-providential connection. God knew there could be but a stunted growth
-of the tree of liberty in the Old World, hence he opened the way for
-it to be planted in a land more congenial to its growth. The whole
-continent of America is a land consecrated by the decrees of Almighty
-God to liberty, and the people who inhabit it are assured by that same
-decree of their freedom.<sup>[<a name="PartIIIfn52"></a><a href="#txtPartIIIfn52">52</a>]</sup> Hence when a fullness of liberty was
-denied the Puritans in England, they fled to America, and here found
-room for the planting of colonies where they could enjoy the liberty
-denied them in the Old World, and the founding of the New England
-colonies (now the New England States) was the result.
-</p>
-<p><b>24. Catholics Seek Liberty in America.</b>&mdash;Nor were the Puritans
-the only ones who sought liberty in the New World. Even the Catholics
-came; for they, no less than the Puritans, were persecuted in England.
-Sir George Calvert, whose title was Lord Baltimore, a Roman Catholic,
-desiring to establish a colony in America that would be a place of
-refuge for persecuted Catholics, obtained a charter for that territory
-comprised within the boundary lines of the state of Maryland. Before
-the charter was signed, Sir George died; but it was made out to his son
-Cecil, who carried out his father's designs. The charter granted to
-Lord Baltimore was unlike any which had hitherto passed the royal seal,
-in that it secured to all who should settle in the colony, religious
-liberty. That is, Christianity was the recognized religion, made so by
-the law of the land, but no preference was given to any sect or party.
-</p>
-<p><b>25. Puritan Intolerance.</b>&mdash;Unfortunately all the colonies were not
-founded in the same liberal spirit as Maryland. The Puritans themselves
-seemed not to have learned toleration by the persecutions they had
-suffered; but, on the contrary, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p265"></a>{265}</span> when they found themselves
-possessed of power, they forgot right and persecuted all those not of
-their own way of thinking. This led to the founding of other colonies
-where greater religious liberty was granted; such as Pennsylvania,
-settled by the Quakers; Rhode Island, by Roger Williams, a Baptist,
-driven by Puritan intolerance from Massachusetts.
-</p>
-<p><b>26.</b> Common dangers, however, taught these colonists toleration.
-They were surrounded by hordes of savages, against whom they were
-compelled frequently to combine. The wars between the French and the
-English extended to their respective settlements in America, and
-this circumstance drove the English colonists together and taught
-them toleration. They were driven into a still closer union by the
-oppression of England, and forgot their religious differences in the
-presence of the great danger of losing all their freedom, civil as well
-as religious. When they had achieved their independence, and necessity
-and experience taught them that a national government&mdash;an indissoluble
-union of the colonies&mdash;must be formed, wisdom clearly suggested that
-the chief cornerstone of the new temple of liberty must be religious
-freedom. Hence in the constitution which they adopted, freedom to
-worship God according to the dictates of conscience is guaranteed. [See
-note 12, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>27. The Hand of God Manifested.</b>&mdash;If in the rise of the great
-Roman Empire we see the hand of God preparing the way for the
-introduction of the gospel under the personal administration of the Son
-of God, that under the protection of that great government the apostles
-of Messiah might visit every land and deliver the glad tidings of great
-joy&mdash;if in this the hand of God is visible, it is equally clear that
-the meaning of this sixteenth century revolution which we have been
-considering, together with the subsequent founding of a great republic
-in the New World, pledged to the maintenance of religious liberty&mdash;it
-is clearly the meaning of all this that God <span class="pagenum"><a name="p266"></a>{266}</span> was preparing the day
-for a restoration of the gospel&mdash;the ushering in of the Dispensation of
-the Fullness of Times. [See note 13, end of section.] That revolution
-of the sixteenth century was the first glimmerings of the dawn which
-heralded the approaching day; the light became clearer in America on
-the establishment of religious liberty under the Constitution of the
-United States; the sun rose when the Lord introduced the DISPENSATION
-OF THE FULLNESS OF TIMES by revealing himself and his Son Jesus Christ
-to the Prophet Joseph Smith.
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Zwingle.</b>&mdash;Zwingle discovered the corruptions of the church
-of Rome, at an earlier period than Luther. Both opened their eyes
-gradually, and altogether without any concert; and without aid from
-each other. But Zwingle was always in advance of Luther in his
-views and opinions; and he finally carried the reformation somewhat
-farther than what Luther did. But he proceeded with more gentleness
-and caution, not to run before the prejudices of the people; and
-the circumstances in which he was placed did not call him so early
-to open combat with the powers of the hierarchy; Luther, therefore,
-has the honor of being the first to declare open war with the pope,
-and to be exposed to persecution. He also acted in a much wider
-sphere. All Germany, and even all Europe, was the theatre of his
-operations. Zwingle moved only in the narrow circle of a single canton
-of Switzerland. He also died young, and when but just commencing his
-career of usefulness. And these circumstances have raised Luther's fame
-so high that Zwingle has almost been overlooked.&mdash;Murdock.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Calvin.</b>&mdash;John Calvin was born in the year 1509; and in his
-studies connected law with theology, studying the former at the command
-of his father, and the latter from his own choice; and from Melchoir
-Valmar, a German and professor of Greek at Bourges, he acquired a
-knowledge of the evangelican [reformed] doctrines. After the death
-of his father, he devoted himself wholly to theology, and publicly
-professed the reformed doctrine, which he spread in France with all
-diligence. His name soon became known in Switzerland as well as in
-France; and Farell and Viret [two Swiss reformers] besought him, as he
-was traveling through Geneva, to remain <span class="pagenum"><a name="p267"></a>{267}</span> there and aid them in
-setting up the new church. But in the year 1538, great dissension arose
-in Geneva; and Calvin and his assistant, Farell, severely inveighed
-from the pulpit against the conduct of the council, which resolved
-to introduce the ceremonies agreed on at Bern, in the ordinances
-of baptism and the Lord's supper, and to reject those which these
-ministers wished to have adopted: and the consequence was, that Calvin
-and Farell were banished from the republic. * * * But in the year 1541,
-at the pressing and repeated invitation of the Genevans, he returned
-to them again, and there officiated with great perseverance, zeal,
-prudence and disinterestedness, till his death in 1564. His great
-talents and virtues were shaded by the love of control, by a want of
-tenderness, and by a passionate vigor against the erring.&mdash;Schlegel.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Reformation In France.</b>&mdash;France was the first country
-where the reformation that commenced in Germany and Switzerland, very
-soon and under the severest oppressions, found many adherents. No
-country seems to have been so long and so well prepared for it as this;
-and yet here it met the most violent opposition; and nowhere was it
-later, before it obtained legal toleration. Nowhere did it occasion
-such streams of blood to flow; nowhere give birth to such dreadful
-and deadly civil wars. And nowhere have state policy, court intrigue,
-political parties and the ambition of greatness had so powerful an
-influence on the progress and fortunes of the reformation, as in
-France.&mdash;Schroeckh.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Massacre on St. Bartholomew's Eve.</b>&mdash;During the civil
-wars which desolated France from the year 1560 up to the edict of
-Nantes&mdash;which secured religious toleration from the Protestants,
-1598&mdash;occurred the massacre of St. Bartholomew's eve. A peace was
-concluded in 1570, by which toleration was granted the Protestants.
-The terms of the treaty were enforced with much apparent zeal by the
-French court, for the purpose, as Protestant writers claim, of lulling
-the Protestants into security preparatory to their assassination by
-order of the king. The bloody scene began at midnight of the 22nd of
-August, 1572. The signal for the beginning of the massacre was the
-tolling of the great bell of the palace. The scene of blood and murder
-continued for three days. During which time five hundred noblemen and
-about six thousand other Protestants were butchered in Paris alone.
-Orders were dispatched to all parts of the empire for a similar
-massacre everywhere. More than thirty thousand&mdash;some say seventy
-thousand&mdash;perished by the hands of the royal assassins; and the pope
-ordered a jubilee throughout Christendom.&mdash;Murdock.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The Decision to Introduce the "Reformed" Religion into
-Sweden.</b>&mdash;This decision was the effect specially of the firmness and
-resolution <span class="pagenum"><a name="p268"></a>{268}</span> of the king [Gustavus Vasa], who declared publicly
-that he would rather resign his crown and retire from the kingdom,
-than rule over a people subjected to the laws and authority of the
-Roman pontiff, and more obedient to their bishops than to their
-king.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Danish and Swedish Bishops Stripped of Power.</b>&mdash;Violent
-measures were adopted, and the bishops, against their wills and
-their efforts to the contrary, were deprived of their honors, their
-prerogatives and their possessions. Yet this reformation (?) of the
-clergy in both those northern kingdoms, was not a religious, but a mere
-civil and secular transaction; and it was so necessary that it must
-have been undertaken if no Luther had arisen. For the bishops had by
-corrupt artifices got possession of so much wealth, so many cattle,
-such revenues and so great authority, that they were far more powerful
-than the kings, and were able to govern the whole realm at their
-pleasure; indeed they had appropriated to themselves a large portion of
-the patrimony of the kings and of the public revenues. Such therefore
-was the state both of the Danish and the Swedish commonwealths in the
-time of Luther, that either the bishops who shamefully abused their
-riches, their prerogatives and their honors must be divested of the
-high rank they held in the state, and be deprived of their ill-gotten
-wealth, or the ruin of those kingdoms, the irreparable detriment of
-the public safety and tranquility, and the sinking of their kings
-into contempt, with an utter inability to protect the people, must be
-anticipated.&mdash;Mosheim.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Wycliffe.</b>&mdash;John Wycliffe, the greatest of all the "Reformers
-before the Reformation," was born in 1324, and is supposed to have
-been a native of the parish of Wycliffe, near the town of Richmond,
-Yorkshire. He studied at Oxford, but little is known of his university
-career. Wycliffe appears to have been a man of simple faith and of
-earnest and manly courage. He made a strong impression upon his age;
-an impression that was not effaced at the time of the Reformation. The
-Lollards, as his disciples were called, were to be found, not only
-among the poor, but in the church, the castle and even the throne.
-Wycliffe died in the year 1384.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. England Prepared for the Reformation.</b>&mdash;No revolution has been
-more gradually prepared than that which separated one half of Europe
-from the communion of the Roman see; nor were Luther and Zwingle any
-more than occasional instruments of that change which, had they never
-existed, would at no great distance of time been effected under the
-names of some other reformers. At the beginning of the sixteenth
-century, the learned, doubtfully and with caution, the ignorant with
-zeal and eagerness, were tending to depart from the faith and rites
-which authority prescribed. But probably not even Germany was so far
-advanced on this course as England. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p269"></a>{269}</span> Almost a hundred and fifty
-years before Luther, nearly the same doctrines as he taught had been
-maintained by Wycliffe, whose disciples usually called Lollards, lasted
-as a numerous though obscure and proscribed sect, till aided by the
-confluence of foreign streams, they swelled into the Protestant church
-of England. We hear, indeed, little of them during some parts of the
-fifteenth century, for they generally shunned persecution; and it is
-chiefly through records of persecution that we learn of the existence
-of heretics. But immediately before the name of Luther was known, they
-seem to have become more numerous, or to have attracted more attention;
-since several persons were burned for heresy, and others abjured
-their errors in the first years of Henry VIII's reign. Some of these,
-as usual among ignorant men, engaging in religious speculation, are
-charged with very absurd notions; but it is not so material to observe
-their peculiar tenets as the general fact that an inquisitive and
-sectarian spirit had begun to prevail.&mdash;Hallam's Const. Hist. England.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. Henry VIII and his Revolt Against Rome.</b>&mdash;Soon after Henry was
-declared by Parliament the only supreme head on earth of the church
-of England, the authority of the pope was finally abolished, and all
-tributes paid to him were declared illegal. But although the king
-thus separated from the church of Rome, he professed to maintain the
-Catholic doctrine in its purity, and persecuted the reformers most
-violently; so that while many were burned as heretics for denying the
-doctrines of Catholicism, others were executed for maintaining the
-supremacy of the pope. As therefore the earnest adherents of both
-religions were equally persecuted and equally encouraged, both parties
-were induced to court the favor of the king, who was thus enabled to
-assume an absolute authority over the nation, and to impose upon it
-his own doctrines as those of the only true church. * * * When news
-of these proceedings reached Rome, the most terrible fulminations
-were hurled by the pope against the king of England, whose soul was
-delivered over to the devil, and his dominions to the first invader;
-all leagues with Catholic princes were declared to be dissolved&mdash;his
-subjects were freed from their oaths of allegiance, and the nobility
-were commanded to take up arms against him. But these missives, which
-half a century before would have hurled the monarch from his throne
-and made him a despised outcast among his people, were now utterly
-harmless. The papal supremacy was forever lost in England.&mdash;Wilson,
-Hist. U. S., Appendix to Voyage and Discoveries, p. 153.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. The Puritans.</b>&mdash;The Puritan party professing to derive their
-doctrines directly from the scriptures, were wholly dissatisfied with
-the old church system, which they denounced as rotten, depraved and
-defiled by human inventions, and they wished it to undergo a thorough
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p270"></a>{270}</span> reform, to abandon everything of man's device, and adopt nothing,
-either in doctrine or discipline, which was not directly authorized by
-the word of God. Exceedingly ardent in their feelings, zealous in their
-principles, abhorring all formalism as destructive of the very elements
-of piety, and rejecting the regal as well as papal supremacy, they
-demanded in place of the liturgical service, an effective preaching of
-the gospel, more of the substance of religion, instead of what they
-denominated its shadows; and so convinced were they of the justness
-of their views and the reasonableness of their demands, that they
-would listen to no considerations which pleaded for compromise or
-delay.&mdash;Wilson, Hist. U. S. Appendix Voyage and Discoveries, p. 157.
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Columbus Inspired of God.</b>&mdash;And it came to pass that I looked
-and beheld many waters; and they divided the Gentiles from the seed of
-my brethren. And it came to pass that the angel said unto me, Behold
-the wrath of God is upon the seed of thy brethren. And I looked and
-beheld a man among the Gentiles who was separated from the seed of my
-brethren by the many waters; and I beheld the Spirit of God, that it
-came down and wrought upon the man; and he went forth upon the many
-waters, even unto the seed of my brethren who were in the promised
-land. And it came to pass that I beheld the Spirit of God, that it
-wrought upon other Gentiles; and they went forth out of captivity
-upon the many waters: * * * [and] I beheld many multitudes of the
-Gentiles upon the land of promise.&mdash;Nephi's Vision, Book of Mormon, ch.
-xiii:10-14.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. Religious Liberty in the Constitution.</b>&mdash;The parts of the
-United States Constitution which secure religious freedom are the
-clause in article vi, which says: "No religious test shall ever be
-required as a qualification to any office or public trust under the
-United States;" and the first Amendment which says: "Congress shall
-make no law respecting an establishment of religion or prohibit
-the free exercise thereof." Respecting these two clauses in the
-Constitution, Judge Story remarks: "We are not to attribute this
-prohibition of a national religious establishment to an indifference
-to religion in general, and especially to Christianity, (which none
-could hold in more reverence than the framers of the Constitution),
-but to a dread by the people of the influence of ecclesiastical power
-in matters of government; a dread which their ancestors brought with
-them from the parent country, and which unhappily for human infirmity,
-their own conduct, after the emigration, had not, in any just degree,
-tended to diminish. It was also obvious, from the numerous and powerful
-sects existing in the United States, that there would be perpetual
-temptations to struggles for ascendency in the national councils, if
-any one might thereby hope to found a permanent and exclusive national
-establishment of its own; and religious persecutions <span class="pagenum"><a name="p271"></a>{271}</span> might thus
-be introduced, to an extent utterly subversive of the true interests
-and good order of the Republic. The most effectual mode of suppressing
-the evil, in the view of the people, was to strike down the temptations
-to its introduction."
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Hand of the Lord in the Establishment of the United States
-Government.</b>&mdash;That the hand of Almighty God was in the work of
-founding the Government of the United States is plainly declared in
-one of the revelations to Joseph Smith: "It is not right that any
-man should be in bondage one to another. And for this purpose have I
-established the constitution of this land, by the hands of wise men
-whom I raised up unto this very purpose, and redeemed the land by the
-shedding of blood." (Doc. and Cov. sec. ci: 79, 80.) Nor are thoughtful
-historians blind to the fact that the hand of God has had much to do
-with those revolutions which finally produced the great republic of the
-New World. Commenting on the war of the American Revolution, Marcus
-Wilson says: "The expense of blood and treasure which this war cost
-England was enormous; nor, indeed, did her European antagonists suffer
-much less severely. The United States was the only country that could
-look to any beneficial results from the war, and these were obtained by
-a strong union of opposing motives and principles, unequalled in the
-annals of history. France and Spain, the arbitrary despots of the Old
-World, had stood forth as the protectors of an infant republic, and
-had combined, contrary to all the principles of their political faith,
-to establish the rising liberties of America. They seemed but as blind
-instruments in the hands of Providence, employed to aid in the founding
-of a nation which should cultivate those Republican virtues that were
-destined yet to regenerate the world upon the principles of universal
-intelligence, and eventually to overthrow the time-worn system of
-tyrannical usurpation of the few over the many."
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. Was the Reformation confined to Germany?
-</p>
-<p>2. When did the Reformation first begin?
-</p>
-<p>3. Who was the leader of the movement in Switzerland?
-</p>
-<p>4. State what you can of the Reformation in Switzerland under Zwingle.
-</p>
-<p>5. What fate befell the young Reformer?
-</p>
-<p>6. State the chief difference in methods of work between Luther and
-Zwingle. (Note I.)
-</p>
-<p>7. Who succeeded in the leadership of the Reformation in Switzerland?
-</p>
-<p>8. Where and when was Calvin born?
-</p>
-<p>9. State the points of difference in the views of Calvin and Zwingle.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p272"></a>{272}</span> 10. Describe the Presbyterian system of church government.
-</p>
-<p>11. Give a sketch of the life and character of Calvin. (note 2.)
-</p>
-<p>12. State the several views of the Reformers in respect to the
-eucharist.
-</p>
-<p>13. What difference existed between Calvin and Zwingle on the subject
-of predestination?
-</p>
-<p>14. What can you say of the spread of Calvin's doctrine?
-</p>
-<p>15. Describe the Reformation in France.
-</p>
-<p>16. What can you say of the persecution of the Protestants in France?
-(Note 3.)
-</p>
-<p>17. Give a description of the massacre of St. Bartholomew's eve.
-</p>
-<p>18. State what you can of the Reformation in Sweden.
-</p>
-<p>19. Tell how the Reformation in Sweden was accomplished.
-</p>
-<p>20. On what ground can the king of Sweden and Denmark be justified in
-stripping the Catholic bishops of their power and wealth? (Note 5.)
-</p>
-<p>21. Give an account of the Reformation in Holland.
-</p>
-<p>22. What was the attitude of Henry VIII of England at the beginning of
-the Reformation in Germany?
-</p>
-<p>23. What title did his defense of the Roman Catholic sacraments secure
-for him?
-</p>
-<p>24. What circumstance was it that afterwards estranged Henry from the
-pope?
-</p>
-<p>25. What was the conduct of Pope Clement VII in this controversy?
-</p>
-<p>26. What course did Henry adopt?
-</p>
-<p>27. What resulted from the king's conduct?
-</p>
-<p>28. How did the friends of the Reformation in England receive the
-rupture of the king and pope?
-</p>
-<p>29. Did the rupture between king and pope help the Reformation in
-England?
-</p>
-<p>30. What were the Reformers in England called?
-</p>
-<p>31. What were the demands of the Puritans in respect to religion? (Note
-8.)
-</p>
-<p>32. When denied religious liberty in England to what country did the
-Puritans go?
-</p>
-<p>33. What influence on liberty did the discovery of America have?
-</p>
-<p>34. What can you say of the inspiration of Christopher Columbus? (Note
-9.)
-</p>
-<p>35. What people besides Puritans sought religious liberty in the new
-world?
-</p>
-<p>36. Give an account of the settlement of Maryland.
-</p>
-<p>37. What can you say of Puritan intolerance?
-</p>
-<p>38. What circumstances taught them, at least, partial toleration?
-</p>
-<p>39. What power was working in all those changes which brought freedom
-to man? (Note 11.)
-</p>
-<p>40. What was the object of enlarging the liberties of mankind?
-</p>
-<h3>Footnotes
-</h3>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn1"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn1">1</a>. February, 1070, A. D.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn2"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn2">2</a>. Subsequently Henry IV made war upon Gregory, drove him from the
-papal chair into exile, and placed Guibert, archbishop of Ravenna,
-upon the papal throne. Guibert took the name of Innocent III, at his
-consecration, 1084, A. D.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn3"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn3">3</a>. It was invented by Schwartz in 1320.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn4"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn4">4</a>. Guizot Hist. Civilization.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn5"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn5">5</a>. Smith's Eng. Inst., pages 8,9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn6"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn6">6</a>. It is only fair to Catholics to say that such is their explanation
-of indulgences now.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn7"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn7">7</a>. Maclain's note in Mosheim, vol. II, Ch. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn8"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn8">8</a>. The account here given of the rise and character of indulgences is
-condensed chiefly from Schlegel, quoted by Murdock in the latter's
-translation of Mosheim, vol. III, book iv, cent. xvi, ch. i.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn9"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn9">9</a>. The canon law consists of the enactments of the councils and decrees
-of the popes.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn10"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn10">10</a>. Peter Lombard, who in the 12th century collected and arranged
-systematically the theological opinions and decisions of the Latin
-fathers.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn11"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn11">11</a>. In the church of Rome it may be said there were two parties, one
-of which held that the pope's power was supreme&mdash;superior to all
-other authority in the church; the other maintained that the pope's
-authority was subordinate to that of a general council of the whole
-church. The latter party was quite strong in Germany, so that a great
-many sustained Luther in his appeal to a general council. Even Duke
-George of Saxony favored the calling of such a council. Said he:&mdash;"The
-scandalous conduct of the clergy is a very fruitful source of the
-destruction of poor souls. There must be a universal reformation;
-and this cannot be better effected than by a general council. It is
-therefore the most earnest wish of us all, that such a measure be
-adopted."&mdash;Milner's Church Hist. vol. iv, ch. v, (Note.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn12"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn12">12</a>. Milner's Church Hist., vol. IV, p. 405.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn13"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn13">13</a>. Milner's Church Hist., vol. IV, ch. iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn14"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn14">14</a>. The diet was a great council of the German empire, consisting of
-the princes, provincial rulers and the chief dignitaries of the church.
-The diet from the 10th century had assumed the right of electing the
-emperor of Germany, subject to confirmation by the pope, by whom alone
-he could be crowned. The diet was also usually assembled for the
-consideration of very important matters pertaining to the empire.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn15"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn15">15</a>. Mosheim (Murdock) vol. iii, bk. iv, cent. xvi, sec. i, ch. ii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn16"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn16">16</a>. The Emperor was not present at this second diet at Spire. He was
-absent in Spain. "They appealed to the emperor, to a future council
-of the German nation, and lastly to every impartial judge. For they
-believed that a majority of votes in a diet could decide a secular
-question, but not a spiritual or religious question; they appealed
-to the emperor, not as recognizing him as their judge in a matter of
-religion, but merely that he might allow their appeal to a council to
-be valid."&mdash;Schlegel.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn17"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn17">17</a>. Before the diet rose the cities Kempten, Heilbronn Windsheim,
-and Weisenburg also subscribed; and afterwards many more. It was
-immediately printed and soon spread all over Europe, and was translated
-into various languages. It thus became of great service to the
-Protestant cause; for it was a very able document and was drawn up in a
-most judicious manner.&mdash;Murdock.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn18"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn18">18</a>. The Protestant princes had held that the election of Ferdinand to
-be king of the Romans was contrary to the laws of the empire.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn19"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn19">19</a>. Luther himself testifies to this. In the Latin preface to the first
-volume of his works, the Reformer says: "In the year 1517, when I was a
-young preacher, and dissuaded the people from purchasing indulgences. *
-* * I felt assured I should have the pope on my side: for he himself,
-in his public decrees had condemned the excesses of his agents in this
-business."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn20"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn20">20</a>. The foregoing six statements of fact I have summarized from M.
-Guizot's excellent work on the Civilization of Europe.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn21"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn21">21</a>. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. I, pages 82, 83.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn22"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn22">22</a>. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. I; book III, page 119.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn23"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn23">23</a>. Ibid, page 122.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn24"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn24">24</a>. Milner's Ch. Hist., vol. IV; page 514.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn25"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn25">25</a>. Men desire to do good works before their sins are forgiven, whilst
-it is necessary for sin to be forgiven before men can perform good
-works. It is not the works that expel sin; but the sin being expelled
-good works follow. For good works must be performed with a joyful
-heart, with a good conscience towards God, that is, with remission of
-sins.&mdash;D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. 1, page 117. "The works of the
-righteous themselves would be mortal sins, unless being filled with
-holy reverence for the Lord, they feared that their works might in
-truth be mortal sins."&mdash;Ibid, page 119.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn26"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn26">26</a>. Milner's Ch. Hist., vol. IV., page 379.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn27"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn27">27</a>. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. III, page 340.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn28"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn28">28</a>. Ibid.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn29"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn29">29</a>. Mosheim's Eccl. Hist. (Murdock,) vol. III., page 147 (second
-edition.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn30"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn30">30</a>. This doctrine was called Antinomianism; many believed it and
-followed it to its very extremes.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn31"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn31">31</a>. From Luther's Commentary on the Epistle to the Galatians, quoted by
-Milner, vol. IV., page 520.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn32"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn32">32</a>. D'Aubigne's Hist. Ref., vol. I., page 15.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn33"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn33">33</a>. End of Religious Controversy, p. 80.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn34"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn34">34</a>. Ibid.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn35"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn35">35</a>. Milner's Church Hist., vol. iv, page 500.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn36"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn36">36</a>. Such is the cause assigned for the Reformation by Catholics: John
-Milner, the noted Catholic divine, author of The End of Religious
-Controversy, p. 105, says: "As to Martin Luther, he testifies, and
-calls God to witness the truth of his testimony that it was not
-willingly (that is, not from a previous discovery of the falsehood of
-his religion,) but from accident, (namely, a quarrel with the Dominican
-friars, and afterwards with the pope) that he fell into his broils
-about religion."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn37"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn37">37</a>. See preceding section.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn38"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn38">38</a>. Archdeacon Blackburn's Confessional, p. 16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn39"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn39">39</a>. End of Religious Controversy, p. 100.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn40"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn40">40</a>. I Nephi xiii: 26, 28, 32. See also Part I, Section VI, note 3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn41"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn41">41</a>. Ibid.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn42"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn42">42</a>. Bancroft.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn43"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn43">43</a>. It must appear remarkable that such an idea could become prevalent
-since it is provided in the law of God to ancient Israel that the
-brother should marry the deceased brother's widow.&mdash;Deut. xxv:5, 6, 9,
-10.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn44"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn44">44</a>. Hume's Hist. of England vol. iii, ch. xxx.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn45"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn45">45</a>. On one occasion he declared the pope to be "The proud, worldly
-priest, Rome, the most cursed of clippers and purse-kervers
-(cut-purses)."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn46"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn46">46</a>. Knox was born in the year 1505, near Haddington, Scotland. Died at
-Edinburgh, 1572.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn47"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn47">47</a>. Daughter of Henry VIII, and Catherine of Aragon. She was a bigoted
-Catholic; married Philip of Spain, also a Catholic.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn48"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn48">48</a>. Hallam's Const. Hist. England, p. 812.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn49"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn49">49</a>. Ibid.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn50"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn50">50</a>. Page 253.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn51"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn51">51</a>. Precedents for such an immunity it would not have been difficult to
-find; but they must have been sought in the archives of the enemy. It
-was rather early for the new republic to emulate the despotism she had
-overthrown.&mdash;Hallam, Hist. of England.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIIIfn52"></a><a href="#PartIIIfn52">52</a>. Book of Mormon, Ether, ch. 11:7-13.
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p273"></a>{273}</span></p>
-<h2><a name="PARTIV"></a>PART IV.
-<br>
-<br>THE RESTORATION OF THE GOSPEL.
-</h2>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p275"></a>{275}</span></p>
-
-<h2>SECTION I.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Dispensation of the Fullness of Times.</b>&mdash;By a dispensation,
-in connection with the work of God, we mean "the opening of the heavens
-to men, the bestowing of the Holy Priesthood with all its powers upon
-them, and the organization and building up of the church of Christ
-upon the earth, for the salvation of all who will obey the gospel."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn1"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn1">1</a>]</sup>
-By the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times we mean the last
-dispensation, the one in which all things, in Christ, whether in heaven
-or in earth, shall be gathered together in one;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn2"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn2">2</a>]</sup> a dispensation
-which will include all other dispensations&mdash;one which will encompass
-all truth. As the rivers of the earth all eventually find their way to
-the ocean and empty into it, so all former dispensations will run into
-and become part of the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times, in which
-the work of God, in respect to the salvation of man and the redemption
-of the earth, will be consummated. [See note 1, end of section]
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Birth and Parentage of Joseph Smith.</b>&mdash;Joseph Smith, the man
-whom God appointed to stand at the head of the Dispensation of the
-Fullness of Times, and be the great Prophet, Seer, Revelator and
-President thereof was born in the year of our Lord 1805, on the 23rd
-of December, in Sharon, Windsor [Winsor] County, State of Vermont.
-His father's name was Joseph<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn3"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn3">3</a>]</sup> Smith, and his mother's maiden name
-Lucy Mack. Joseph and Lucy Smith had nine children, six sons and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p276"></a>{276}</span>
-three daughters. The sons in the order of their age were Alvin, Hyrum,
-Joseph, Samuel Harrison, William, Don Carlos; the daughters, Sophronia,
-Catherine, Lucy.
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> The parents of the prophet were of humble origin, and poor,
-having to labor with their hands, hiring out by day's work, and
-otherwise to obtain a livelihood for their large family. In consequence
-of their poverty, they could give their children but very limited
-opportunities for attending school; yet Joseph learned to read,
-to write, and had some knowledge of the rudimentary principles of
-arithmetic.
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> When Joseph was ten years of age, his father moved from
-the State of Vermont to that of New York, settling in Palmyra,
-Ontario County.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn4"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn4">4</a>]</sup> Four years later the family moved from Palmyra to
-Manchester, in the same county.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Religious Agitations.</b>&mdash;While the Smith family lived in
-Manchester, when Joseph was in his fifteenth year, there was an
-unusual excitement on the subject of religion. It began with the
-Methodists, but soon became general among all the sects, and union
-revival meetings, in which all sects, took part were held in the
-vicinity of Manchester. The Smith family, being by nature religiously
-inclined became interested in these meetings, and several of them,
-viz., Joseph's mother, his brothers Hyrum and Samuel Harrison, and his
-sisters Lucy and Sophronia, were converted to the Presbyterian faith.
-Joseph's own mind was much wrought up by this religious agitation, and
-at one time he became somewhat partial to the Methodist persuasion.
-</p>
-<p>6. He was greatly perplexed, however, by the strife among the sects,
-and the divisions which existed. The Presbyterians were opposed to
-the Methodists and Baptists; and these last named sects, though not
-agreeing with each other, were equally opposed to the Presbyterians.
-Why should the church of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p277"></a>{277}</span> Christ be split up into fractions? Is
-God the author of confusion? Would he teach one society to worship
-one way, and administer one set of ordinances; and then teach another
-society quite a different system of worship, and another set of
-principles and ordinances different from those taught the first? Such
-were the questions Joseph Smith frequently asked himself when he
-reflected upon the confusion he witnessed.
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> In the midst of the war of words and tumult of opinion that
-accompanied this agitation, Joseph would often say to himself, What is
-to be done? Who of all these parties are right?
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Joseph Smith's First Prayer and Vision.</b>&mdash;While floundering in
-the midst of these difficulties he came to the following passage in the
-first chapter of the Epistle of James:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> If any of you lack wisdom, let him ask of God, that giveth to all
- men liberally, and upbraideth not; and it shall be given him.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p> This passage impressed him with great force. It was the voice of
- God to him. If any man lacked wisdom he did; and here was counsel
- given directly how to obtain it, with a promise that he should
- receive it and not be unbraided for asking. He at last decided to
- follow the divine injunction.
-</p>
-<p> <b>9.</b> It was in the morning of a beautiful, clear day, early
- in the spring of eighteen hundred and twenty, that Joseph put his
- resolution into effect. He selected a place in a grove near his
- father's house for that purpose. It was his first attempt to pray
- vocally, and he was somewhat timid; but finding himself alone he
- knelt down and began to offer up the desires of his heart to the
- Lord. He had scarcely began to pray when he was seized by some
- power which threw him violently to the ground, and it seemed for
- a time that he was doomed to a sudden destruction. It was no
- imaginary power but some actual being from the unseen world. His
- tongue for a time was bound that he could not speak; darkness
- gathered about him; but exerting all his powers he called upon God
- to deliver <span class="pagenum"><a name="p278"></a>{278}</span> him out of the hands of his enemy, and at the very
- moment he was ready to give up in despair and abandon himself to
- destruction, he beheld a pillar of light immediately over his head
- descending towards him. Its brightness was above that of the sun at
- noon-day, and no sooner did it appear than he was freed from the
- enemy which had held him bound.
-</p>
-<p> <b>10.</b> When the light rested upon him he beheld within it two
- personages standing above him in the air, whose brightness and
- glory defy all description, but they exactly resembled each other
- in form and features. One of them, pointing to the other said:
- "JOSEPH, THIS IS MY BELOVED SON, HEAR HIM."
-</p>
-<p> <b>11.</b> Joseph's purpose in calling upon the Lord was to learn
- which of the sects was right, that he might know which to join. As
- soon, therefore, as he gained his self-possession, he addressed
- these questions to the personage to whom he was directed. To his
- astonishment he was told that none of the sects were right, and
- that he must join none of them. He was further told by the person
- who addressed him, that all their creeds were an abomination in
- his sight; that those professors were all corrupt; that they drew
- near to him with their lips, but their hearts were far from him;
- that they taught for doctrine the commandments of men; that they
- had a form of godliness, but denied the power of God. And he was
- commanded the second time to join none of them.
-</p>
-<p> <b>12.</b> There were many other things which Jesus said to Joseph
- on this occasion, but the prophet never recorded them further than
- to say that he received a promise that the fullness of the gospel
- would at some future time be made known to him.
-</p>
-<p> <b>13. The Importance of the Vision.</b>&mdash;This splendid revelation
- is of vast importance: First, it dispels the vagaries that men had
- conjured up in respect to the person of Deity. Instead of being a
- personage without body, parts or passions, it revealed the fact
- that he had both body and parts, that he was in the form of man,
- or rather, that man had been made in his <span class="pagenum"><a name="p279"></a>{279}</span> image.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn5"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn5">5</a>]</sup> Second:
- It clearly proves that the Father and Son are distinct persons,
- and not one person as the Christian world believes. The oneness of
- the Godhead, so frequently spoken of in scripture, must therefore
- relate to oneness of sentiment and agreement in purpose. Third:
- It swept away the rubbish of human dogma and tradition that had
- accumulated in all the ages since Messiah's personal ministry on
- earth, by announcing that God did not acknowledge any of the sects
- of Christendom as his church, nor their creeds as his gospel. Thus
- the ground was cleared for the planting of the truth. Fourth: it
- showed how mistaken the Christian world was in claiming that all
- revelation had ceased&mdash;that God would no more reveal himself to
- man. Fifth: the vision created a witness for God on the earth: a
- man lived who could say to some purpose that God lived and that
- Jesus was the Christ, for he had seen and talked with them. Thus
- was laid the foundation for faith. We shall see anon, how the
- foundation was broadened.
-</p>
-<p> <b>14. The Interval of Three Years.</b>&mdash;For three years after this
- first vision, Joseph received no other visitation or revelation;
- and as he had been forbidden to join any of the religious sects
- then existing he stood alone. It was a period of severe trial. A
- few days after his first vision, he related the circumstance to a
- Methodist minister who had been active in the religious agitation
- before mentioned. To the lad's surprise he <span class="pagenum"><a name="p280"></a>{280}</span> treated his story
- with the utmost contempt; and declared it to be from the devil, as
- the Lord gave no revelations in these days, those things having
- ceased with the apostles. Making his vision public brought upon him
- the ridicule and indignation of the whole neighborhood, especially
- of the ministers. In this trying period of three years, according
- to his own statement, he was guilty of some youthful follies; but
- he was true to God, and continued in the face of all opposition to
- maintain that he had received a revelation from him.
-</p>
-<p> <b>15. The First Visit of Moroni.</b>&mdash;On the 21st of September,
- 1823, having retired for the night, he betook himself to prayer
- to obtain the forgiveness of his sins, and a manifestation that
- would enable him to know his standing before the Lord. While thus
- engaged, the room began to be filled with light, and presently a
- personage appeared by his bedside, standing in the air. [See note
- 3, end of section.] He said that he was a messenger sent from the
- presence of God, and that his name was Moroni. He announced to
- Joseph Smith that the Lord had a work for him to do; and that his
- name would be had for good and evil among all nations.
-</p>
-<p> <b>16. The Book of Mormon.</b>&mdash;The angel informed Joseph of the
- existence of the Book of Mormon, a record engraven upon golden
- plates, giving an account of the ancient inhabitants of the
- American continent and their origin. He said, also, that it
- contained the everlasting gospel as taught by the Savior to the
- ancient inhabitants of this Western hemisphere. Deposited with the
- record was a Urim and Thummim, consisting of two stones fastened
- in silver bows, attached to a breast-plate. The Lord had prepared
- this instrument for the purpose of translating the record. A vision
- of the hill where the sacred plates were hidden was given to the
- prophet.
-</p>
-<p> <b>17. Ancient Prophecies Quoted by Moroni.</b>&mdash;After relating
- these things, the angel began quoting from the prophecies of the
- Old Testament. He first quoted part of the third <span class="pagenum"><a name="p281"></a>{281}</span> chapter of
- Malachi;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn6"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn6">6</a>]</sup> and then the fourth chapter. The first verse of the
- fourth chapter he quoted as follows:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> For, behold, the day cometh that shall burn as an oven, and all the
- proud, yea, and all that do wickedly shall <em>burn as stubble; for
- they that come shall burn them</em>, saith the Lord of hosts; that it
- shall leave them neither root nor branch.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>The fifth and sixth verses he quoted:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> Behold, I will <em>reveal unto you the priesthood by the hand of</em>
- Elijah, the prophet, before the coming of the great and dreadful
- day of the Lord. And he shall <em>plant in the hearts of the children
- the promise made to the fathers, and the hearts of the children
- shall turn to their fathers; if it were not so, the whole earth
- would be utterly wasted at his coming</em>.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn7"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn7">7</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p> <b>18.</b> Moroni also quoted the eleventh chapter of Isaiah, and
- said the predictions in it were about to be fulfilled. They relate
- to the glorious restoration of the house of Israel from their long
- dispersion, and the reign of peace and righteousness on the earth.
- He quoted also the twenty-second and twenty-third verses of the
- third chapter of Acts:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> For Moses truly said unto the fathers, a prophet shall the Lord
- your God raise up unto you of your brethren, like unto me; him
- shall ye hear in all things whatsoever he shall say unto you. And
- it shall come to pass, that every soul which will not hear that
- prophet, shall be destroyed from among the people.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>Moroni explained that the prophet here spoken of was Jesus Christ; but
-the day when they who would not hear his voice should be cut off from
-among the people had not yet come, but it would soon come.
-</p>
-<p><b>19.</b> The angel quoted from the twenty-eighth verse to the end of
-the second chapter of Joel; and said that it was soon to be fulfilled.
-It predicts the outpouring of God's Spirit upon all <span class="pagenum"><a name="p282"></a>{282}</span> flesh; the
-signs in the heavens and the earth which are to precede the glorious
-coming of Messiah; and foretells the safety which shall be found in
-Mount Zion and Jerusalem in those troublous times.
-</p>
-<p><b>20. The Warnings of Moroni.</b>&mdash;After making these and other
-explanations the light within the room seemed to condense about the
-person of the angel and he departed. Shortly, however, he returned and
-repeated what he had said on his first appearance, and again withdrew.
-To Joseph's astonishment he appeared the third time and again repeated
-his message.
-</p>
-<p><b>21.</b> In his first appearance that eventful night the angel told
-Joseph that when he obtained the plates containing the record of the
-ancient inhabitants of America, together with the breast-plate and the
-Urim and Thummim&mdash;the full time for them to be given to him had not
-then arrived&mdash;he was to show them to no person except those to whom he
-would be commanded to show them. He was told that if he violated his
-commandment he would be destroyed. At his third appearing that same
-night the angel cautioned Joseph, saying that Satan would try to tempt
-him, in consequence of the poverty of his father's family, to obtain
-the plates for the purpose of getting rich. This he forbade him, saying
-that he must have no other object in view in getting the plates but to
-glorify God, and must be influenced by no other motive than that of
-building up his kingdom.
-</p>
-<p><b>22. The Fourth Appearance of Moroni.</b>&mdash;The whole night was
-consumed in these interviews with the angel. In the morning of the day
-following, Joseph went to his usual labors, but was so exhausted and
-faint that he found himself unable to pursue them. His father, who was
-laboring with him, observing that he was ailing, directed him to go
-home. In attempting to climb the fence out of the field where he was
-working, his strength entirely failed him and he fell unconscious to
-the ground. When he became conscious, the angel who had visited him the
-night before was standing by him calling his name. He <span class="pagenum"><a name="p283"></a>{283}</span> repeated
-again the things of the night before, and commanded Joseph to go and
-tell his father of them. This he did, and his father testified that
-they were of God, and counseled his son to be obedient to the heavenly
-vision.
-</p>
-<p><b>23. Cumorah and its Treasures.</b>&mdash;Joseph went immediately to the
-hill Cumorah<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn8"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn8">8</a>]</sup> where the ancient record was hidden. So vivid had been
-his vision of the place the night before that he had no difficulty in
-recognizing it. [See note 4, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>24.</b> On the west side of the hill Cumorah, not far from the top,
-under a stone of considerable size, lay the plates, deposited in a
-stone box. Removing the soil from around the edges of the stone box,
-with the aid of a lever, he raised it up and to his joy beheld the
-plates, the Urim and Thummim and breast-plate, just as described by
-the angel. He was about to take these treasures from the box when the
-messenger of the previous night again stood before him, and told him
-again that the time for bringing them forth had not yet arrived, and
-would not until four years from that date. The angel instructed him
-to come to that place in just one year from that time and he would
-meet with him, and that he would continue to do so until the time for
-obtaining the plates for translation had come. Accordingly at the end
-of each year Joseph went to the place appointed, and every time met the
-same heavenly messenger, who gave him instruction and intelligence in
-respect to the work of the Lord, and how the Christ's kingdom was to be
-conducted in these last days.
-</p>
-<p><b>25. Translation and Publication of the Book of Mormon.</b>&mdash;On
-the 22nd of September, 1827, the plates, together with the Urim and
-Thummim and breast-plate, were given into the hands of Joseph Smith
-by the angel Moroni, with a strict charge to keep them safe, saying
-that he [Joseph] would be held responsible for them; that if he should
-carelessly, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p284"></a>{284}</span> or through any neglect of his, let them go, he would
-be cut off; but if he would use his best endeavors to preserve them,
-they should be protected. He soon learned the necessity of the strict
-charge given to him by Moroni, for no sooner was it learned that he
-had the plates than every kind of device, not even omitting that of
-violence, was employed to wrest them from him. He guarded them safely
-however, and in the midst of much persecution and many difficulties,
-succeeded by the help of the Lord and the assistance of Martin Harris,
-a well-to-to farmer, Oliver Cowdery, a young school teacher, who acted
-as his scribe in much of the work of translation, and the Whitmer
-family&mdash;with this assistance he succeeded in completing the translation
-and publishing the work in the year 1830.
-</p>
-<p><b>26. The Witness.</b>&mdash;In the course of the work of translation,
-Joseph and those assisting him, learned from the record itself that it
-would be hidden from the eyes of the world, that the eyes of none might
-behold it except three witnesses that should see it by the power of
-God&mdash;besides him to whom the record would be given to translate&mdash;and a
-few others who should view it that they might bear witness of the work
-of God to the children of men.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn9"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn9">9</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>27.</b> Oliver Cowdery, David Whitmer, and Martin Harris desired to
-become the three witness named, and obtained that privilege from the
-Lord. Some time in June, 1829, the promise that they should have a view
-of the plates, the Urim and Thummim and breast-plate was fulfilled. The
-angel Moroni appeared unto them, exhibited to them those sacred things,
-and commanded them to bear witness of their existence to the world.
-This they did, and their testimony is published in all copies of the
-Book of Mormon.
-</p>
-<p><b>28.</b> The plates were exhibited by Joseph Smith to eight other
-witnesses whose testimony and names are also published in all copies of
-the Book of Mormon.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p285"></a>{285}</span>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Fullness of Times.</b>&mdash;Now the thing to be known is, what
-the fullness of times means, or the extent and authority thereof. It
-means this, that the dispensation of the fullness of times is made up
-of all the dispensations that have ever been given since the world
-began, until this time. Unto Adam first was given a dispensation.
-It is well to know that God spoke to him with his own voice in the
-garden, and gave him the promise of the Messiah. And unto Noah also
-was a dispensation given. * * * And from Noah to Abraham, and from
-Abraham to Moses, and from Moses to Elias, and from Elias to John the
-Baptist, and from them to Jesus Christ, and from Jesus Christ to Peter,
-James and John, the apostles all having received their dispensation
-by revelation from God to accomplish the great scheme of restitution,
-spoken by all the holy prophets since the world began, the end of which
-is, the dispensation of the fullness of times in which all things shall
-be fulfilled that have been spoken of since the earth was made.&mdash;Joseph
-Smith, Mill. Star, vol. XVI, p. 220.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Name of Joseph Foretold.</b>&mdash;The Book of Mormon contains a
-remarkable prophecy by Joseph, the favorite son of Jacob, by which the
-name of the Prophet Joseph Smith, and of his father were foretold. The
-Prophet Lehi, who, it will be remembered, left Jerusalem six hundred
-years B. C., and who was acquainted with the Jewish scriptures, says,
-in blessing his son Joseph: "For Joseph (the one sold into Egypt by his
-brother) truly testified saying: A seer shall the Lord my God raise up,
-who shall be a choice seer unto the fruit of my loins. * * * Behold
-that seer will the Lord bless; and they that seek to destroy him shall
-be confounded. * * * And his name shall be called after me [Joseph];
-and it shall be after the name of his father. And he shall be like unto
-me; for the thing which the Lord shall bring forth by his hand by the
-power of the Lord shall bring my people unto salvation."&mdash;II Nephi, ch.
-iii.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Description of Moroni.</b>&mdash;He had on a loose robe of most
-exquisite whiteness. It was a whiteness beyond anything earthly I had
-ever seen; nor do I believe any earthly thing could be made to appear
-so exceedingly white and brilliant; his hands were naked, and his
-arms also, a little above the wrist; so also, were his feet naked,
-as were his legs a little above the ankles. His head and neck were
-also bare. I could discover that he had no other clothing on but this
-robe, as it was open, so that I could see into his bosom. Not only was
-his robe exceedingly white, but his whole person was glorious beyond
-description, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p286"></a>{286}</span> and his countenance truly like lightning.&mdash;Joseph
-Smith, Pearl of Great Price, p. 89,
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Description of Cumorah.</b>&mdash;As you pass on the mailroad from
-Palmyra, Wayne County, to Canandaigua, Ontario County, New York, before
-arriving at the little village of Palmyra, you pass a large hill on
-the east side of the road. Why I say large, is because it is as large,
-perhaps, as any in that country. The north end rises quite suddenly
-until it assumes a level with the more southerly extremity, and I think
-I may say, an elevation higher than at the south, a short distance,
-say half or three-fourth of a mile. As you pass towards Canandaigua it
-lessens gradually, until the surface assumes its common level, or is
-broken by other smaller hills or ridges, water-courses and ravines.
-I think I am justified in saying that this is the highest hill for
-some distance round, and I am certain that its appearance, as it rises
-suddenly from a plain on the north, must attract the notice of the
-traveler as he passes by. The north end, (which has been described as
-rising suddenly from the plain) forms a promontory without timber,
-but covered with grass. As you pass to the south you soon come to
-scattering timber, the surface having been cleared by art or wind;
-and a short distance further left, you are surrounded with the common
-forest of the country. It is necessary to observe that even the part
-cleared, was only occupied for pasturage; its steep ascent and narrow
-summit not admitting the plough of the husbandman with any degree of
-ease or profit. It was at the second mentioned place, where the record
-was found to be deposited, on the west side of the hill, not far from
-the top down its side; and when myself visited the place in the year
-1830, there were several trees standing&mdash;enough to cause a shade in
-summer, but not so much as to prevent the surface being covered with
-grass, which was also the case when the record was found.&mdash;Oliver
-Cowdery.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Analysis of the Book of Mormon.&mdash;</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. <em>The Construction of the Record</em>.&mdash;The Book of Mormon is an
-abridgment made from more extensive records kept by the ancient
-civilized people of America&mdash;chiefly by the people known in the Book
-of Mormon as Nephites. The abridgment, for the most part, is made
-by one Mormon, a Nephite prophet, who was born 311 A. D., and slain
-by his enemies in the year 400 A. D. The parts which are not his
-abridgment are the first 157 pages (N. E.), which bring us to the
-"Words of Mormon," page 158; and from page 563 {N. E.} to the end of
-the volume&mdash;sixty pages. This latter part of the record was made by
-Moroni, the son of Mormon, who was also the one who hid up the plates
-containing his father's and his own abridgment, in the year 421 A. D.;
-and who, having been raised from the dead, revealed the existence of
-these plates to Joseph Smith.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p287"></a>{287}</span> The first 157 pages are a verbatim translation from what are
-known as the "smaller plates of Nephi"&mdash;we will explain: The first
-Nephi, who left Jerusalem with a small company of colonists led out
-from that city by his father, Lehi, 600 B. C., and who afterwards
-became their leader, prophet, and their first king&mdash;made two sets of
-plates, on which he proposed engraving the history of his people. On
-the larger of these two sets he engraved an account of his father's
-life, travels, prophecies, etc., together with his genealogy; and
-upon them also he recorded a full history of the wars and contentions
-of his people, as also their travels, and an account of the cities
-they founded and colonies they established. These larger plates were
-preserved in the care of succeeding kings, or judges of the republic
-when the kingdom was transformed into one; and, in a word, upon them
-was written a full history of the rise and fall of the nations which
-existed in America, from the landing of this colony from Jerusalem to
-400 A. D., a period of nearly one thousand years.
-</p>
-<p>It is quite evident that as these plates were transmitted from king to
-king, or from one ruling judge of the republic to another, or given
-into the possession of a prophet, that each recorded the historical
-events of his own day, and gave to such account his own name&mdash;hence
-Mormon found in these "larger plates" of Nephi, The Book of Mosiah, the
-Book of Alma, the Book of Helaman, etc.
-</p>
-<p>Furthermore, it happened that there were colonies from time to time
-that drifted off into distant parts of the land and became lost for
-a season to the main body of the people; and there were missionary
-expeditions formed for the conversion of the Lamanites; and these
-parties, whether missionary or colonial, generally kept records; and
-when these colonists or missionary parties were found, or returned to
-the main body of the people, their records were incorporated within the
-main record, being kept by the historian&mdash;hence there was, sometimes, a
-book within a book, and the current of events was interrupted to record
-the history of these detached portions of the people, or some important
-missionary expedition.
-</p>
-<p>Mormon, when abridging these plates of Nephi, gave to each particular
-division of his abridgment the name of the book from which he had
-taken his account of the events recorded&mdash;hence the Books of Mosiah,
-Alma, Helaman and III and IV Nephi in his abridgment. He also, in some
-instances, at least, followed the sub-divisions we have alluded to,
-hence we have the Record of Zeniff within the Book of Mosiah (page 181,
-N. E.); the account of the church founded by the first Alma (page 213);
-and the account of the missionary expeditions of the sons of Mosiah to
-the Lamanites within the Book of Alma (page 283.)
-</p>
-<p>2. <em>Complexity of the Literary Structure of the Book</em>.&mdash;Again we
-caution the student to remember that the Book of Mormon is, for the
-most <span class="pagenum"><a name="p288"></a>{288}</span> part, an abridgment from the "larger plates" of Nephi; but
-it is quite evident that Mormon frequently came to passages upon the
-plates of Nephi which pleased him so well that he transcribed them
-verbatim upon the plates containing his abridgment. An example of this
-will be found beginning on page 163, in the second line of the ninth
-paragraph, and ending with page 169&mdash;the words of King Benjamin to his
-people. The words of King Benjamin are also renewed on page 170, in the
-second line of the fourth paragraph, and continue to the close of the
-chapter. There are many such passages throughout Mormon's abridgment.
-</p>
-<p>In addition to this, Mormon frequently introduces remarks of his own
-by way of comment, warning, prophecy or admonition, and since there is
-nothing in the text, neither quotation marks nor a change of type, to
-indicate where these comments, or what we might call annotations, begin
-or end, they are liable to confuse the reader&mdash;a difficulty that we
-hope will be obviated by this caution. So much for Mormon's abridgment.
-Now to consider the part of the work done by his son, Moroni. This is
-from page 563 to the end of the volume. He closes up the record of his
-father, Mormon, and then gives us an abridgment of the twenty-four
-plates of Ether, which were found in North America by the people of
-Limhi, in the second century B. C., and then concludes his work with
-notes on the manner of ordaining priests and teachers, administering
-the sacrament of the Lord's supper, baptism, spiritual gifts, together
-with a sermon and some of his father's letters. In his abridgment of
-the record of the Jaredites, the peculiarity of mixing up his comments,
-admonitions and prophecies with his narrative, is even more marked
-than in the abridgment of Mormon, therefore the reader will need to be
-doubly on his guard.
-</p>
-<p>3. <em>How the "Smaller Plates" of Nephi came to be attached to Mormon's
-Abridgment</em>.&mdash;We have already said that the first 157 pages of the
-Book of Mormon were not a part of Mormon's abridgment. Those pages are
-a verbatim translation of the "smaller plates" of Nephi, and became
-connected with Mormon's abridgment in this manner: Mormon had abridged
-the "larger plates" of Nephi as far as the reign of King Benjamin, and
-in searching through the records which had been delivered to him, he
-found the "smaller plates" of Nephi. They contained a brief history
-of events connected with the departure of Lehi and his colony from
-Jerusalem to their landing in America, and thence down to the reign
-of this King Benjamin&mdash;covering a period of about 400 years. These
-plates were made by Nephi, that upon them might be engraven an account
-of the ministry of the servants of God, among his people, together
-with their prophecies and teachings. They contain, in other words, an
-ecclesiastical history of the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p289"></a>{289}</span> Nephites, while the "larger plates"
-of Nephi contained a political or secular history of the same people.
-(I Nephi ix; xix: 1-5.)
-</p>
-<p>Mormon was particularly well pleased with the contents of these
-"smaller plates" of Nephi, because upon them had been engraven so
-many prophecies concerning the coming and mission of the Messiah; and
-instead of condensing the history recorded on them into an abridgment,
-he took the plates themselves and attached them to the abridgment of
-Nephi's "larger plates." "And I do this for a wise purpose," says
-Mormon; "for thus it whispereth me according to the workings of the
-Spirit of the Lord which is in me." (Words of Mormon, page 159 N. E.)
-Nephi also, in speaking of these "smaller plates," says, "the Lord hath
-commanded me to make these plates for a wise purpose in him; which
-purpose I know not." (I Nephi ix:5.)
-</p>
-<p>4. <em>The Wise Purpose</em>.&mdash;By Mormon attaching these "smaller plates"
-of Nephi to his own abridgment of Nephi's "larger plates," it will
-be observed there was a double line of history of the Nephites for
-about 400 years, and the wisdom of this arrangement is seen in the
-following: When Joseph Smith had translated the first part of Mormon's
-abridgment&mdash;amounting to 116 pages of manuscript, he listened to the
-importunities of Martin Harris, who was giving him some assistance in
-the work of translating, and who desired to show that portion of the
-work to his friends. The result was the manuscript was stolen from
-Harris; the records were taken from Joseph by the angel, and for a
-season he lost his power to translate. After a time, however, he was
-permitted to go on with the work, but the Lord made it known to him
-that it was the design of those into whose hands the manuscript had
-fallen to wait until he had translated that part again, and then by
-changing the manuscript in their possession, would bring it forth and
-claim that he could not translate the same record twice alike; and thus
-they would seek to overthrow the work of God.
-</p>
-<p>But the heavenly messenger commanded Joseph Smith not to translate
-again the part he had already translated, but instead thereof he
-should translate the "smaller plates" of Nephi, and that account was
-to take the place of Mormon's abridgment up to the latter days of the
-reign of King Benjamin. (Doc. and Cov., Sec. 10.) Thus it is that we
-have the "Words of Mormon," beginning on page 158, explaining how the
-"smaller plates" of Nephi came into his possession and attached to the
-plates containing the record he himself was making, and connecting
-the historical narrative of the "smaller plates" of Nephi with his
-own abridgment of Nephi's "larger plates." The "Words of Mormon,"
-interrupting as they do the history of the Nephites, have caused no
-little confusion in the minds of unthoughtful readers; but after it is
-understood that they are merely the link connecting the ecclesiastical
-history engraven on the "smaller <span class="pagenum"><a name="p290"></a>{290}</span> plates" of Nephi to Mormon's
-abridgment, and that they take the place of the first part of Mormon's
-record, the difficulty will disappear.
-</p>
-<p>5. <em>Difference in the Literary Style of the "Smaller Plates" and
-Mormon's Abridgment</em>.&mdash;One thing we cannot forbear to mention, and that
-is, in the parts of the Book of Mormon translated from the "smaller
-plates" of Nephi, we find none of those comments or annotations mixed
-up with the record that we have already spoken of as being peculiar
-to the abridgment made by Mormon&mdash;a circumstance, we take it, which
-proves the Book of Mormon to be consistent with the account given of
-the original records from which it was translated. The value of this
-fact appears if we stop to consider how destructive to the claims
-of the book it would be if the peculiarity of Mormon's abridgment
-were found in that part of the book which claims to be a verbatim
-translation of the "smaller plates" of Nephi. There will be found,
-however, in this translation direct from the "smaller plates" of
-Nephi, as also in Mormon's abridgment, extracts from the old Jewish
-Scriptures&mdash;especially from the writings of Isaiah&mdash;this is accounted
-for by the fact that when Lehi's colony left Jerusalem, they took with
-them copies of the books of Moses and the writings of the prophets,
-and the record of the Jews down to the commencement of the reign of
-Zedekiah, all of which were engraven on plates of brass (see I Nephi
-v: 10-13), and the Nephite historians transcribed passages from these
-sacred records into their own writings.
-</p>
-<p>6. <em>The Transcribed Passages</em>.&mdash;There are a few suggestions about these
-transcribed passages which may be valuable to the student, as they
-furnish an indirect evidence of the truth of the Book of Mormon. The
-Nephites having transcribed passages from the brass plates they carried
-with them from Jerusalem into their records, wherever such passages
-occur in the Book of Mormon, and corresponding passages are found in
-our English Bible, it will be seen by the reader that so far we have
-two translations of the writings of the old Hebrew prophets; and it
-will be found on comparison that the passages in the Book of Mormon are
-stronger and more in keeping with the sense sought to be expressed by
-the prophet than the corresponding passages and chapters in the Bible.
-As a proof of this I ask the student to compare I Nephi xx and xxi with
-Isaiah xlvii and xlix.
-</p>
-<p>In some instances there are sentences, in the Book of Mormon version
-of passages from Isaiah, not to be found in our English version, as
-witness the following:
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p291"></a>{291}</span> BOOK OF MORMON.
-</p>
-<p>O house of Jacob, come ye and let us walk in the light of the Lord;
-<em>yea, come, for ye have all gone astray, every one to his wicked
-ways</em>.&mdash;II Nephi xii.
-</p>
-<p>BIBLE.
-</p>
-<p>O house of Jacob, come ye, and let us walk in the light of the
-Lord.&mdash;Isa. ii: 5.
-</p>
-<p>In other instances it will be found that the sense of the passages is
-different, and that the passages in the Book of Mormon best accord with
-the sense of the whole:
-</p>
-<p>BOOK OF MORMON.
-</p>
-<p>Therefore, O Lord, thou hast forsaken thy people, the house of Jacob,
-because they be replenished from the east, and hearken unto soothsayers
-like the Philistines, and they please themselves in the children of
-strangers.&mdash;II Nephi xii: 6.
-</p>
-<p>Their land is also full of idols&mdash;they worship the work of their own
-hands, that which their own fingers have made: and the mean man boweth
-not down, and the great man humbleth himself not, therefore, forgive
-him not.&mdash;II Nephi xii: 8, 9.
-</p>
-<p>Thou hast multiplied the nation, and increased the joy: they joy before
-thee according to the joy in harvest, and as men rejoice when they
-divide the spoil.&mdash;II Nephi xix: 3.
-</p>
-<p>BIBLE.
-</p>
-<p>Therefore Thou hast forsaken Thy people the house of Jacob, because
-they be replenished from the east, and <em>are</em> soothsayers like
-the Philistines, and they please themselves in the children of
-strangers.&mdash;Isa. ii: 6
-</p>
-<p>Their land also is full of idols; they worship the work which their
-own fingers have made: and the mean man boweth down, and the great man
-humbleth himself: therefore, forgive them not.&mdash;Isa. ii: 8, 9.
-</p>
-<p>Thou hast multiplied the nation, and not increased the joy: they joy
-before thee according to the joy in harvest, and as men rejoice when
-they divide the spoil.&mdash;Isa. ix: 3.
-</p>
-<p>Observe, too, the difference in the clearness of the following passages:
-</p>
-<p>BOOK OF MORMON.
-</p>
-<p>And when they shall say unto you, seek unto them that have familiar
-spirits, and unto wizards that peep and mutter; should not a people
-seek unto their God? for the living to hear from the dead?&mdash;II Nephi
-xix: 3.
-</p>
-<p>BIBLE.
-</p>
-<p>And when they shall say unto you, seek unto them that have familiar
-spirits, and unto wizards that peep, and that mutter; should not a
-people seek unto their God? for the living to the dead?&mdash;Isa. viii: 19.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p292"></a>{292}</span> Again, the English translators of the Bible, in order to make the
-sense of various passages more clear, inserted here and there, words of
-their own; which are always written in <em>Italics</em>, that the reader might
-know what words have been inserted by the translator, and for which
-he will find no equivalent in the original text. It is worthy of note
-that in those transcribed passages from the brass plates into the Book
-of Mormon, in almost every instance, the words in the Book of Mormon
-version are different to those substituted by the translators of the
-common English Version; or are left out, as follows:
-</p>
-<p>BOOK OF MORMON.
-</p>
-<p>What mean ye? Ye beat my people to pieces, and grind the faces of the
-poor.&mdash;II Nephi xiii: 15.
-</p>
-<p>BIBLE.
-</p>
-<p>What mean ye <em>that</em> ye beat my people to pieces, and grind the faces of
-the poor?&mdash;Isa. iii: 15.
-</p>
-<p>The above is a case where the inserted word of the translator, which I
-have written in <em>Italics</em>, is omitted, and to my mind the passage as it
-stands in the Book of Mormon is the stronger and more beautiful. Here
-is a passage where different words are used than those inserted by the
-translators:
-</p>
-<p>BOOK OF MORMON.
-</p>
-<p>Say unto the righteous, that it is well with them; for they shall eat
-the fruit of their doings.
-</p>
-<p>Woe unto the wicked for they shall perish; for the reward of their
-hands shall be upon them.&mdash;II Nephi xiii: 10, 11.
-</p>
-<p>BIBLE.
-</p>
-<p>Say ye to the righteous, that <em>it shall be</em> well <em>with him</em>: for they
-shall eat the fruit of their doings.
-</p>
-<p>Woe unto the wicked; <em>it shall be ill with him</em>; for the reward of his
-hands shall be given him.&mdash;Isa. iii: 10, 11.
-</p>
-<p>I think it will be readily conceived that the above passage as it
-stands in the Book of Mormon is much superior to the version given in
-our common Bible. And when it is remembered that Joseph Smith and those
-who assisted in translating that work were most likely uninformed as to
-the supplied words of the translators being written in <em>Italics</em>, it
-is an incidental evidence that those passages in the Book of Mormon to
-which are found corresponding passages in the Bible, were not merely
-copied from the Bible, but in the Book of Mormon we have really another
-translation of those passages taken from original records of the
-Hebrews, uncorrupted by the hand of man, and hence more perfect.
-</p>
-<p>7. <em>A Means of Testing the Truth of the Book of Mormon</em>.&mdash;One
-suggestion more I would make to the readers of the Book of Mormon:
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p293"></a>{293}</span> that is, that they read it prayerfully with a real desire to
-know if it is of God. If they will peruse it with that desire in their
-hearts, I am sanguine that the Spirit of God which searches all things,
-yea, the deep things of God, will bear witness to their understanding
-that the book is of divine origin, and they will have a witness from
-God of its truth. Such a promise in fact, is contained within the book
-itself. When Moroni was closing up the sacred record previous to hiding
-it up unto the Lord until the time should come for it to be revealed as
-a witness for God, he engraved the following passage on the plates as
-words of counsel to those into whose hands the record should fall:
-</p>
-<p>"And when ye shall receive these things" (i. e., the things written
-in the Book of Mormon) "I would exhort you that ye would ask God the
-Eternal Father, in the name of Christ, if these things are not true;
-and if ye shall ask with a sincere heart, with real intent, having
-faith in Christ, he will manifest the truth of it unto you by the power
-of the Holy Ghost; and by the power of the Holy Ghost ye may know the
-truth of all things." (Moroni x: 4,5.)
-</p>
-<p>Here, then, is a means by which every person into whose hands the Book
-of Mormon falls may find out for himself, not from human testimony, not
-from the deductions of logic, but through the power of the Holy Ghost,
-whether the Book of Mormon is of divine origin or not. This test must
-be final, either for or against it, to every individual who complies
-with the conditions enjoined by Moroni. Those conditions are, that they
-into whose hands the record falls shall inquire of God with a sincere
-heart, with real intent, and having faith in Christ and to those who
-so proceed he promises without equivocation that they shall receive a
-manifestation of its truth by the power of the Holy Ghost. Therefore,
-if these directions are complied with faithfully and honestly, and the
-manifestation follows not, then they may know it is not of God. If
-the manifestation comes, of course the divine origin of the book is
-confirmed, for the Holy Ghost would not confirm by any manifestation of
-its power an imposition.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What is a dispensation in connection with the work of God?
-</p>
-<p>2. In what does the Dispensation of the Fullness of Times differ from
-other dispensations?
-</p>
-<p>3. State when and where the Prophet Joseph was born.
-</p>
-<p>4. What was the condition and standing of the Prophet's parents?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p294"></a>{294}</span> 5. State what you can about the movements of the Smith family
-until its settlement in Manchester.
-</p>
-<p>6. What occurred in Manchester when the prophet was in his fifteenth
-year?
-</p>
-<p>7. What influence did this religious revival have on the Smith family?
-</p>
-<p>8. What reflections did it give birth to in the boy Joseph?
-</p>
-<p>9. What circumstance was it that decided the course of Joseph?
-</p>
-<p>10. Describe the first great vision Joseph received.
-</p>
-<p>11. What sectarian vagary is dispelled by this vision?
-</p>
-<p>12. What were the prophet's subsequent teachings relative to the
-personage of God? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>13. What does the vision teach in respect to the Father and Son being
-distinct persons?
-</p>
-<p>14. What great truth respecting the character of the creeds and sects
-of Christendom is learned from the vision?
-</p>
-<p>15. What did it prove in regard to the false idea that God would give
-no more revelation to man?
-</p>
-<p>16. What other important thing did this first vision accomplish?
-</p>
-<p>17. How long was it after the prophet received his first vision before
-any other revelation was given him?
-</p>
-<p>18. How was Joseph's announcement that he had received a revelation
-from God treated by the ministers?
-</p>
-<p>19. What can you say of the prophet's conduct during the above
-mentioned interval of three years?
-</p>
-<p>20. Give an account of Moroni's first visit to the Prophet Joseph.
-</p>
-<p>21. Give a description of Moroni. (Note 3),
-</p>
-<p>22. What ancient record did Moroni reveal the existence of?
-</p>
-<p>23. Enumerate the several ancient prophecies of the Bible quoted by
-Moroni.
-</p>
-<p>24. What cautions did Moroni give Joseph before finally leaving him?
-</p>
-<p>25. Relate Moroni's fourth appearance to Joseph.
-</p>
-<p>26. Give an account of Joseph's first visit to Cumorah.
-</p>
-<p>27. By what name was this same hill known among the Jaredites?
-</p>
-<p>28. Give a description of Cumorah.
-</p>
-<p>29. What arrangements for future visitations did Moroni make with
-Joseph?
-</p>
-<p>30. When were the plates of the Book of Mormon together with the Urim
-and Thummim given into the possession of Joseph?
-</p>
-<p>31. What individuals and family rendered Joseph valuable assistance
-while translating the Book of Mormon?
-</p>
-<p>32. How many especial witnesses were raised up to the Book of Mormon?
-</p>
-<p>33. State how the Book of Mormon was constructed.
-</p>
-<p>34. Describe the complexity of the structure of the Book of Mormon.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p295"></a>{295}</span> 35. How did the "smaller plates" of Nephi come to be attached to
-Mormon's abridgment?
-</p>
-<p>36. For what wise purpose were they attached to Mormon's abridgment?
-</p>
-<p>37. What difference in style of composition is noticeable between these
-"smaller plates" and Mormon's abridgment?
-</p>
-<p>38. What can you say of the transcribed passages from the brass plates?
-</p>
-<p>39. What direct means exists for testing the truth of the Book of
-Mormon?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p296"></a>{296}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION II.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Restoration of the Aaronic Priesthood.</b>&mdash;While engaged in
-the work of translating the Book of Mormon, Joseph and Oliver found
-reference made in the record to baptism for the remission of sins; and
-on the 15th of May, 1829, they went into the woods to inquire of the
-Lord about it. While thus engaged a messenger from heaven descended
-in a cloud of light and announced himself to be John, the same that
-is called the Baptist,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn10"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn10">10</a>]</sup> in the New Testament. He placed his hands
-upon the heads of Joseph and Oliver and ordained them to the Aaronic
-Priesthood.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn11"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn11">11</a>]</sup> He explained that this priesthood held the keys of the
-ministration of angels, the gospel of repentance and of baptism for
-the remission of sins, but had not the power of laying on hands for
-the gift of the Holy Ghost. He promised them also that the priesthood
-he then conferred upon them should never be taken again from the
-earth, until the sons of Levi offer an offering unto the Lord in
-righteousness. [See note 1, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> John stated that he was acting under the direction of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p297"></a>{297}</span>
-Peter, James and John, who held the keys of the Melchisedek Priesthood,
-which he said would in due time be conferred upon them. He then
-commanded Joseph to baptize Oliver, and afterwards Oliver to baptize
-Joseph.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn12"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn12">12</a>]</sup> After their baptism they were both filled with the spirit
-of prophecy and predicted many things concerning the rise and progress
-of the work. The angel also commanded them to each re-ordain the other
-to the Priesthood&mdash;Joseph to first ordain Oliver, and afterwards Oliver
-to ordain Joseph. To this commandment they were obedient, and thus the
-Aaronic Priesthood, the power from God which gives the right to those
-who receive it to preach repentance and to administer baptism for the
-remission of sins, was restored to men.
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> For a season, doubtless in order to avoid persecution, which
-constantly increased in bitterness, Joseph and Oliver kept their
-baptism and ordination to the Aaronic Priesthood a secret; but as men's
-minds were wrought upon to inquire after the truth, they at last let it
-be known that they had received authority to baptize for the remission
-of sins, and a number of people received the ordinance at their hands.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Restoration of the Melchisedek Priesthood.</b>&mdash;Some time
-in June, 1829,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn13"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn13">13</a>]</sup> the promise made by John the Baptist to Joseph
-and Oliver, at the time he conferred the Aaronic Priesthood upon
-them&mdash;viz., that they should receive the higher or Melchisedek
-Priesthood, was fulfilled. This Priesthood was conferred upon them by
-Peter, James and John, probably in the wilderness between Harmony,
-Susquehanna county, and Colesville, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p298"></a>{298}</span> Broome county, on the
-Susquehanna River.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn14"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn14">14</a>]</sup> [See note 2, end of section] It is quite evident
-from the prominence given to these three apostles in the New Testament,
-that they held the keys of this Priesthood; and that of the three
-Peter was the chief. To him the Lord said: "I will give unto thee the
-keys of the kingdom of heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth
-shall be bound in heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth
-shall be loosed in heaven."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn15"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn15">15</a>]</sup> It was eminently proper therefore that
-these three apostles should be the ones to restore to the earth the
-Melchisedek Priesthood by conferring the apostleship upon Joseph and
-Oliver.
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> As after receiving their ordination under the hands of John
-the Baptist they were required to re-ordain each other, so after
-receiving the apostleship under the hands of Peter, James and John
-they re-ordained each other, Joseph first re-ordaining Oliver, and
-afterwards accepting re-ordination at his hands.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn16"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn16">16</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> The power and authority of this Melchisedek Priesthood [see
-note 3, end of section] is to hold the keys of all the spiritual
-blessings of the church, and those holding it have the privilege of
-receiving the mysteries of the kingdom of heaven&mdash;they have the right
-to have the heavens opened unto them&mdash;to commune with the general
-assembly and church of the First Born, and to enjoy the communication
-and presence of God the Father and Jesus the Mediator of the new
-covenant.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn17"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn17">17</a>]</sup> Hence, clothed with this power, Joseph and Oliver were
-authorized to organize the Church of Christ in the earth.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Organization of the Church of Christ.</b>&mdash;In all things,
-however, the two young men waited for direction from the Lord, and
-hence did not undertake to organize the church until he commanded
-them. It was in obedience to a commandment from the Lord, therefore,
-that they appointed the sixth <span class="pagenum"><a name="p299"></a>{299}</span> day of April, 1830, as the time to
-organize the church. Six persons<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn18"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn18">18</a>]</sup> who had been baptized, and a few
-of their friends, met at the house of Peter Whitmer, Sen., in Fayette,
-Seneca county, in the State of New York, to effect that organization.
-The meeting was opened by solemn prayer, after which, according to
-previous commandment, the Prophet Joseph called upon the brethren
-present to know if they would accept himself and Oliver Cowdery as
-their teachers in the things of the kingdom of God; and if they were
-willing that they should proceed to organize the church according to
-the commandment of the Lord. To this they consented by unanimous vote.
-Joseph then ordained Oliver an elder of the Church of Jesus Christ;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn19"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn19">19</a>]</sup>
-after which Oliver ordained Joseph an elder of the said church. The
-sacrament was administered and those who had been previously baptized
-were confirmed members of the church and received the Holy Ghost by the
-laying on of hands. Some enjoyed the gift of prophecy, and all rejoiced
-exceedingly. [See note 4, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> While the church was yet assembled a revelation was received
-from the Lord,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn20"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn20">20</a>]</sup> directing that a record be kept in the church, and
-that in it Joseph be called a seer, a translator, a prophet, an apostle
-of Jesus Christ, an elder of the church; and the church was commanded
-to give heed to all his words and commandments which he should receive
-from the Lord, accepting his word as the word of God in all patience
-and faith. On condition of their doing this, the Lord promised them
-that the gates of hell should not prevail against the church; but on
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p300"></a>{300}</span> the contrary he would disperse the powers of darkness from before
-them and shake the heavens for their good.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Voice of God and the Voice of the People in Church
-Government.</b>&mdash;Thus the church was organized; and in that organization
-we see the operation of two mighty principles&mdash;the voice of God: the
-consent of the people. At the time that Joseph and Oliver received
-instruction to ordain each other to be elders of the church, they were
-told to defer their ordination until such time as would be practicable
-to get their brethren who had been and who would be baptized assembled
-together: for they must have the sanction of their brethren before
-they ordained each other elders of the Church; and their brethren must
-decide by vote whether they would accept them [Joseph and Oliver] as
-spiritual<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn21"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn21">21</a>]</sup> teachers. Thus, notwithstanding Joseph and Oliver had
-been ordained apostles under the hands of Peter, James and John, and
-had doubtless re-ordained each other as already stated,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn22"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn22">22</a>]</sup> yet when
-it came to being ordained <em>elders of the Church</em>,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn23"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn23">23</a>]</sup> and made the
-spiritual leaders of it, it must be done by the common consent of the
-church; and thus early we see enforced that law which says: "All things
-shall be done by common consent in the church, by much prayer and
-faith."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn24"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn24">24</a>]</sup> But no sooner was the church organized than a prophet, a
-seer, a translator, is appointed and the church commanded to give heed
-to his words, and to receive them as coming from the mouth of of the
-Lord himself. Here in the very inception of the church organization
-is clearly established the great truth, the grand principle, that in
-the government of the church there is to be a union of the voice of
-God <span class="pagenum"><a name="p301"></a>{301}</span> and the consent or voice of the people. Not <em>vox populi,
-vox Dei;</em><sup>[<a name="PartIVfn25"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn25">25</a>]</sup> nor <em>vox Dei, vox populi</em>;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn26"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn26">26</a>]</sup> but <em>vox Dei et vox
-populi</em>.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn27"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn27">27</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Revelation on Church Government and Discipline.</b>&mdash;Previous
-to the organization of the church, a very important revelation was
-given&mdash;in fact it was the revelation which pointed out the date on
-which the church was to be organized<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn28"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn28">28</a>]</sup>&mdash;which teaches many important
-truths and points out the duties of the members of the church and also
-the duties of the officers of the church&mdash;so far as the officers of
-the church at that time had been given. That revelation announces the
-following doctrines:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p><em>I. Of the Existence of God</em>.&mdash;There is a God in heaven who is infinite
-and eternal from everlasting to everlasting&mdash;unchangeable; the framer
-of heaven and earth and all things which are in them.
-</p>
-<p><em>II. Of the Creation and Fall of Man</em>.&mdash;God created man male and
-female, after his own image, and in his own likeness created he them.
-He gave them commandment that they should love and serve him, and that
-he should be the sole object of their worship. But by the transgression
-of these holy laws man became sensual and devilish&mdash;fallen man.
-</p>
-<p><em>III. Of Jesus Christ</em>.&mdash;The Almighty God gave his Only Begotten Son as
-a ransom for fallen man, as it is written of him in the scriptures. He
-suffered temptations, but gave no heed to them; he was crucified, died,
-and rose again the third day; he ascended into heaven to sit on the
-right hand of his Father, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p302"></a>{302}</span> to reign with almighty power according
-to the will of God. As many as believe on him and are baptized in his
-holy name&mdash;enduring in faith to the end&mdash;shall be saved. Not only those
-who believed after he came in the flesh; but all those who from the
-beginning believed in the words of the holy prophets, who testified of
-him in all things.
-</p>
-<p><em>IV. Of the Holy Ghost and the Trinity</em>.&mdash;The Holy Ghost beareth record
-of the Father and of the Son&mdash;is God's witness. The Father, Son and
-Holy Ghost constitute the Holy Trinity&mdash;one God or grand Presidency of
-heaven and earth, infinite, eternal.
-</p>
-<p><em>V. Of Justification and Sanctification</em>.&mdash;Justification and
-sanctification come through the grace of God, and are just and true
-principles. That is, the grace of God supplies the means or conditions
-of justification and sanctification, and it is for man to apply
-those means of salvation. The means or conditions of justification
-and sanctification are that men love and serve God with all their
-might, mind, and strength. That would lead them to exercise faith in
-God, repentance of sin and baptism for the remission of sins, laying
-on of hands for the Holy Ghost, and the pursuit of a godly life and
-conversation&mdash;the old conditions of salvation.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn29"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn29">29</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><em>VI. Of Falling from Grace</em>.&mdash;It is possible for men to fall from grace
-and depart from the living God, therefore the saints are admonished to
-take heed and pray always, least they fall into temptation. Even those
-who are sanctified are cautioned to take heed.
-</p>
-<p><em>VII. Of Baptism</em>.&mdash;All who humble themselves before God, and desire
-to be baptized and come forth with broken hearts and contrite spirits,
-and witness before the church that they have truly repented of all
-their sins, and are willing to take upon them the name of Jesus Christ,
-having a determination to serve Him to the end, and truly manifest
-by their works that <span class="pagenum"><a name="p303"></a>{303}</span> they have received of the spirit of Christ
-unto the remission of their sins&mdash;shall be received by baptism into
-the church.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn30"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn30">30</a>]</sup> No person, however, can be received into the church
-of Christ, unless he has arrived unto the years of accountability<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn31"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn31">31</a>]</sup>
-before God, and is capable of repentance.
-</p>
-<p><em>VIII. Of the Manner of Baptism</em>.&mdash;The person who is called of God, and
-has authority from Jesus Christ to baptize, shall go into the water
-with the person who has presented him or herself for baptism, and shall
-say&mdash;calling him or her by name&mdash;"Having been commissioned of Jesus
-Christ, I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of
-the Holy Ghost. Amen."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn32"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn32">32</a>]</sup> Then shall he immerse him or her, and come
-forth again out of the water.
-</p>
-<p><em>IX. Of Confirmation</em>.&mdash;Confirmation into the church follows baptism
-and is performed by the laying on of hands, by those who have authority
-in the church. The Holy Ghost is imparted in the same manner. There is
-no form of exact words given, so far as we know, for confirming persons
-into the church and imparting the Holy Ghost; but judging from the
-forms given for baptism, administering the sacrament, etc., a simple
-form would be most proper. But whatever other words are used, the
-following should not be omitted: I confirm you a member of the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p304"></a>{304}</span>
-Church of Jesus Christ of Latter-day Saints; and say unto you, receive
-ye the Holy Ghost. Those officiating would of course be careful to do
-this in the name of Jesus Christ, or their administration would be of
-none effect.
-</p>
-<p><em>X. Of the Duties of Members</em>.&mdash;It is the duty of the members of the
-church to manifest righteousness by "a Godly walk and conversation;"
-to abstain from ill feeling toward each other, neither indulging in
-lying, back-biting nor evil speaking. It is also their duty to pray
-vocally and in secret. They are required to meet together often to
-partake of bread and wine in remembrance of the Lord Jesus, which is
-to be administered by the elder or priest<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn33"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn33">33</a>]</sup> in the following manner:
-kneeling with the church he consecrates the emblems of the body and
-blood of Christ in these words:
-</p>
-<p>BLESSING ON THE BREAD.
-</p>
-<p>"O God, the Eternal Father, we ask thee in the name of thy Son Jesus
-Christ to bless and sanctify this bread to the souls of all those who
-partake of it, that they may eat in remembrance of the body of thy Son,
-and witness unto thee, O God, the Eternal Father, that they are willing
-to take upon them the name of thy Son, and always remember him, and
-keep his commandments which he has given them, that they may always
-have His Spirit to be with them. Amen."
-</p>
-<p>BLESSING ON THE WINE.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn34"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn34">34</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>"O God, the Eternal Father, we ask thee in the name of thy Son Jesus
-Christ to bless and sanctify this wine to the souls of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p305"></a>{305}</span> all those
-who drink of it, that they may do it in remembrance of the blood of thy
-Son, which was shed for them; that they may witness unto thee, O God,
-the Eternal Father, that they do always remember him, that they may
-have his Spirit to be with them. Amen."
-</p>
-<p><em>XI. Of the Duties of Saints Respecting Children</em>.&mdash;Every member of the
-church having children is required to bring them to the elders, before
-the church, who are to lay their hands upon them and bless them in the
-name of Jesus Christ.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn35"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn35">35</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>XII. <em>Duties of Officers&mdash;Elders</em>.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn36"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn36">36</a>]</sup>&mdash;Elders have authority to
-preside over meetings and conduct them as prompted by the Holy Ghost.
-They also have authority to teach and expound <span class="pagenum"><a name="p306"></a>{306}</span> the scriptures; to
-watch over the church; to baptize; to lay on hands for the bestowal
-of the Holy Ghost; confirm those baptized, members of the church;
-administer the sacrament, and ordain other elders and also priests,
-teachers, and deacons.
-</p>
-<p>&mdash;<em>Priests</em>.&mdash;It is the duty of priests to preach, teach, and expound
-scripture; to visit the home of each member and exhort them to pray
-vocally and in secret and attend to all duties. They may also baptize
-and administer the sacrament, ordain other priests, teachers and
-deacons, take the lead of meetings when no elder is present, and in
-a general way assist the elder; but they have no authority to lay on
-hands for the gift of the Holy Ghost or confirmation in the church.
-</p>
-<p>&mdash;<em>Teachers</em>.&mdash;The teacher's duty is to always be with the church,
-watch over and strengthen it; to see that there is no iniquity in it,
-and that the members thereof meet together often and all do their
-duty. Teachers may warn, expound, exhort, teach and invite all to come
-unto Christ, and take the lead of meetings when no elder or priest is
-present; but they have not the authority to baptize, administer the
-sacrament or lay on hands.
-</p>
-<p>&mdash;<em>Deacons</em>.&mdash;Deacons are appointed to assist the teachers in the
-performance of their duties. They may also warn, expound, exhort, teach
-and invite all to come unto Christ, but like teachers have no authority
-to baptize, administer the sacrament, or lay on hands.
-</p>
-<p><em>XIII. Conferences</em>.&mdash;The several elders comprising the church of
-Christ are to meet in conference once in three months, or from time
-to time as the said conference shall appoint, to do whatever church
-business is necessary. It is the duty of the several branches of
-the church to send one or more of their <span class="pagenum"><a name="p307"></a>{307}</span> teachers [or other
-representatives] to attend the conferences of the church, with a list
-of the names of those who joined the church since the last conference,
-that a record of the names of the whole church may be kept by one
-who shall be appointed to that work; and the names of those who are
-expelled from the church are also to be sent up to the conferences,
-that their names may be blotted out of the general record of the
-church. Members removing from the church where they reside are to take
-a letter certifying that they are regular members in good standing, and
-that when signed by the regular authorities of the church from whence
-they move is to admit them into the fellowship of the Saints in the
-church to which they go. Such is the plan of government and discipline
-contained in the revelation given just previous to the organization
-of the church, and in it one may observe the outlines of that more
-complete organization of the church which will be treated more fully in
-another section. The above was sufficient for the church in its infancy.
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Commencement of the Public Ministry.</b>&mdash;On Sunday, the 11th of
-April, 1830, the first public discourse was preached. It was delivered
-by Elder Oliver Cowdery, at the house of Peter Whitmer, in Fayette.
-After the services six persons were baptized. Thus began the public
-ministry of the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. First Miracle in the Church.</b>&mdash;In this same month of April
-the first miracle in the church was performed. It occurred in this
-manner: The Prophet Joseph went on a visit to Mr. Joseph Knight, at
-Colesville, Broome County, New York. This gentleman had rendered the
-prophet some timely assistance while translating the Book of Mormon,
-and he was anxious that Mr. Knight and his family should receive the
-truth. While in Mr. Knight's neighborhood the prophet held a number
-of meetings. Among those who regularly attended was Newel Knight, son
-of Joseph Knight. He and the prophet had many serious conversations
-on the subject of man's salvation. In the meetings <span class="pagenum"><a name="p308"></a>{308}</span> held the
-people prayed much, and in one of the aforesaid conversations with the
-prophet, Newel Knight promised that he would pray publicly. When the
-time came, however, his heart failed him, and he refused, saying that
-he would wait until he got into the woods by himself. The next morning
-when he attempted to pray in the woods, he was overwhelmed with a sense
-of having neglected his duty the evening before in not praying in the
-presence of others. He began to feel uneasy, and continued to grow
-worse both in mind and body, until upon reaching home his appearance
-was such as to alarm his wife. He sent for the prophet, who, when he
-came, found Newel in a sad condition and suffering greatly. His visage
-and limbs were distorted and twisted in every shape imaginable. At
-last he was caught up off the floor and tossed about most fearfully.
-The neighbors hearing of his condition came running in. After he had
-suffered for a time, the prophet succeeded in getting him by the hand,
-when immediately Newel spoke to him, saying he knew he was possessed
-of the devil, and that the prophet had power to cast him out. "If you
-know I can, it shall be done," replied the prophet; and then almost
-unconsciously he rebuked Satan and commanded him to depart from the
-man. Immediately Newel's contortions stopped, and he spoke out and said
-he saw the devil leave him and vanish from sight.
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b>&mdash;"This was the first miracle which was done in this church
-or by any member of it," writes the prophet; "and it was done not by
-man, nor by the power of man, but it was done by God, and by the power
-of godliness; therefore let the honor and praise, the dominion and the
-glory, be ascribed to the Father, Son and Holy Spirit, for ever and
-ever. Amen."
-</p>
-<p><b>14. The First Conference.</b>&mdash;The first conference of the church
-was held the first day of June, 1830. About thirty members were in
-attendance, besides a number of unbaptized believers and others anxious
-to learn. The sacrament was administered, a number who had been
-baptized were confirmed, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p309"></a>{309}</span> and brethren were called and ordained
-to various offices of the priesthood. The time was spent in prayer,
-singing, instruction and exhortation. The Holy Ghost was abundantly
-poured out upon the saints. Some prophesied, and others were wrapped
-in heavenly vision, until their bodily strength was exhausted. When
-restored they shouted hosannah to God and the Lamb, and related the
-glorious things they had seen and felt while in vision. [See note
-4, end of section.] Thus the ministry of God's servants began to be
-confirmed by the signs and the gifts of the Holy Ghost following those
-who believed.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. Errors of the Saints.</b>&mdash;It would be unreasonable to suppose
-that the members of the church fell into no errors. Some time in the
-summer of 1830, while the prophet was still living in Harmony, Penn.,
-and Oliver Cowdery was with the Whitmer family in New York, he received
-a letter from Oliver informing him that he [Oliver] had discovered
-an error in one of the revelations, and added: "I command you in the
-name of God to erase these words [having named the passage] that no
-priestcraft be among us."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn37"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn37">37</a>]</sup> The prophet wrote immediately, asking by
-what authority Oliver took it upon himself to command him to alter or
-erase, to add to, or diminish a revelation or commandment from Almighty
-God. Joseph followed his letter in a few days, and was grieved beyond
-measure to find that the whole Whitmer family sustained Oliver in the
-position he had taken. By labor and perseverance, however, he convinced
-them that they were in error and the difficulty was settled.
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> Scarcely had this trouble subsided when another arose. In
-the month of August, 1830, in consequence of persecution having grown
-extremely bitter in Harmony and vicinity, the prophet removed with
-his family to Fayette, New York, at the invitation of the Whitmers,
-to live with them. On arriving <span class="pagenum"><a name="p310"></a>{310}</span> there he learned that Hyrum
-Page was in possession of a stone which he called a seer stone, and
-through which he was receiving revelations for the church in respect
-to the up-building of Zion, church government, etc. The Whitmers and
-the inconstant Oliver accepted these revelations and much harm was
-being done. A conference was to convene on the first of September,
-but before it assembled the prophet inquired of the Lord and obtained
-a revelation on the subject, which was directed more especially to
-Oliver Cowdery.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn38"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn38">38</a>]</sup> In regard to the subject in hand, it contained
-the following: Oliver was to be heard by the church in all things
-whatsoever he taught by the Comforter, concerning the revelations
-and commandments; and if led by the Comforter to teach by way of
-commandment, he had permission to do it; "But thou shalt not write
-by way of commandment," said the Lord to him, "but by wisdom. And
-thou shalt not command him who is at thy head and at the head of the
-church." No one was to receive commandments and revelations in the
-church, that is for the church, except Joseph the prophet; for the
-Lord had given him the keys of the mysteries and revelations, until he
-appointed unto the church another in his stead. Oliver was commanded
-to take Hyrum Page aside by himself and tell him that the revelations
-which he had written from that stone were not of the Lord, but that
-Satan had deceived him, and they must be given up, for he had not been
-appointed to receive revelations, neither would any one be appointed
-contrary to the church covenants, which provided that all things must
-be done in order and by common consent of the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>17.</b> During the conference the subject of the revelations from
-Hyrum Page's seer stone was discussed, and after much consideration,
-the whole church, including Hyrum Page, renounced the stone and all
-things connected with it; and the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p311"></a>{311}</span> church was made to understand
-more clearly that there is but one on the earth at a time who is
-authorized to receive the word and commandment of the Lord for the
-Church.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn39"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn39">39</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Visitation of John the Baptist.</b>&mdash;On a sudden, as from the
-midst of eternity, the voice of the Redeemer spake peace to us, while
-the vail was parted and the angel of God came down clothed with glory,
-and delivered the anxiously looked for message, and the keys of the
-gospel of repentance! What joy! What wonder! What amazement! While the
-world was racked and distracted&mdash;while millions were groping as the
-blind for the wall, and while all men were resting on uncertainty,
-as a general mass, our eyes beheld, our ears heard. As in the blaze
-of day; yes, more&mdash;above the glitter of the May sunbeam which then
-shed its brilliancy over the face of nature! Then this voice, though
-mild, pierced to the center, and his words, "I am thy fellow servant,"
-dispelled every fear. We listened, we gazed, we admired! 'Twas the
-voice of an angel from glory, 'twas a message from the Most High! And
-as we heard we rejoiced, while his love enkindled upon our souls, and
-we were wrapped in the vision of the Almighty! Where was room for
-doubt? Nowhere; uncertainty had fled, doubt had sunk more more to rise,
-while fiction and deception had fled forever! * * * Think for a moment
-what joy filled our hearts, and with what surprise we must have bowed
-(for who would not have bowed the knee for such a blessing) when we
-received under his hand the holy priesthood as he said, "Upon you, my
-fellow servants, in the name of Messiah, I confer this priesthood and
-this authority, which shall remain upon the earth, that the sons of
-Levi may yet offer an offering to the Lord in righteousness."&mdash;Oliver
-Cowdery.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Melchisedek Priesthood Restored.</b>&mdash;We cannot fix the exact date
-when this priesthood was restored, but it occurred sometime between
-the 15th of May, 1829, and the 6th of April, 1830. We can approximate
-within a few months of the exact time, but no further, from any of
-the records of the church. Joseph, the Prophet, designates <span class="pagenum"><a name="p312"></a>{312}</span> the
-place, where their ordination took place, in his address to the saints,
-written September 6th, 1842, as follows: "Again what do we hear? * * *
-the voice of Peter, James and John in the wilderness between Harmony,
-Susquehanna county, and Colesville, Broome county, on the Susquehanna
-River, declaring themselves as possessing the keys of the kingdom and
-of the dispensation of the fullness of times." And in a revelation
-given September, 1830, referring to Joseph and Oliver, the Lord said,
-in reference to partaking again of the sacrament on the earth, that
-the "hour cometh that I will drink of the fruit of the vine with you
-on the earth, and with Moroni, * * * and also with Elias, * * * and
-also with John, the son of Zacharias, * * * and also with Peter, James
-and John whom I have sent unto you, by whom I have ordained you and
-confirmed you apostles and especial witnesses of my name." It would
-appear from the instructions given in the revelation, dated June, 1829,
-[Doc. and Cov. sec. xviii] that the apostleship had been conferred on
-Joseph Smith, Oliver Cowdery, and David Whitmer. If this supposition is
-correct, it reduces the period of uncertainty when this glorious event
-actually took place to a few weeks, or from the middle of May to the
-end of June.&mdash;Joseph F. Smith, "Contributor," vol. x, p. 310.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Why the Higher Priesthood is Called After Melchisedek.</b>&mdash;There
-are in the church two Priesthoods * * * Why the first is called the
-Melchisedek Priesthood, is because Melchisedek was such a great high
-priest. Before his day it was called the Holy Priesthood, after the
-order of the Son of God; but out of respect or deference to the name
-of the Supreme Being, to avoid the too frequent repetition of his
-name, they the church, in ancient days called that priesthood after
-Melchisedek, or the Melchisedek Priesthood.&mdash;Doc. and Cov. sec. cvii.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Visions at the First Conference of the Church.</b>&mdash;Among those
-who received visions was Newel Knight, who was so completely overcome
-by the power of the spirit that he had to be laid on a bed, being
-unable to help himself. "By his own account of the transaction," says
-the prophet, "he could not understand why we should lay him on the bed,
-as he felt no sensibility of weakness. He felt his heart filled with
-love, with glory, and pleasure unspeakable, and could discern all that
-was going on in the room; when all of a sudden a vision of futurity
-burst upon him. He saw there represented the great work which through
-my instrumentality was yet to be accomplished. He saw heaven opened,
-and beheld the Lord Jesus Christ, seated on the right hand of the
-majesty on high, and had it made plain to his understanding that the
-time would come when he would be admitted into His presence to enjoy
-his society for ever and ever."
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p313"></a>{313}</span>
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. Relate the circumstances which led to the restoration of the Aaronic
-priesthood.
-</p>
-<p>2. What explanation did the angel make concerning this priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>3. What reason have you for believing that John the Baptist would be
-among the resurrected saints spoken of by Matthew? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>4. Under whose direction did John say he was acting?
-</p>
-<p>5. What promise did he make to them about the Melchisedek priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>6. What commandment did the angel then give to Joseph and Oliver?
-</p>
-<p>7. How were these baptisms performed? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>8. What commandment did the angel give in relation to re-ordination?
-</p>
-<p>9. What course did Joseph and Oliver pursue after their ordination?
-</p>
-<p>10. About what time was the Melchisedek Priesthood restored? (Note 2.)
-</p>
-<p>11. By whom and in what locality was it restored?
-</p>
-<p>12. What made it especially appropriate that these three apostles
-should restore that Priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>13. What is the power or authority of the Melchisedek priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>14. What particular power did this Priesthood give to Joseph and Oliver?
-</p>
-<p>15. When was the church organized?
-</p>
-<p>16. How many persons effected the organization?
-</p>
-<p>17. Were six persons all who had been baptized up to that date&mdash;6th of
-April, 1830?
-</p>
-<p>18. Relate the circumstances connected with the organization of the
-church.
-</p>
-<p>19. What was the organization called?
-</p>
-<p>20. When was the phrase "of Latter-day Saints," added as a part of the
-name of the church?
-</p>
-<p>21. What spiritual manifestations were experienced at the organization
-of the church? (Note 4.)
-</p>
-<p>22. What important revelation was given immediately after the church
-was organized?
-</p>
-<p>23. What two great principles are seen operating at the organization of
-the church?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p314"></a>{314}</span> 24. What can you say of the union of these two principles in
-church government?
-</p>
-<p>25. What revelation is it that commanded the organization of the
-church? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>26. State what that revelation says upon the existence of God.
-</p>
-<p>27. &mdash;Of the creation of man.
-</p>
-<p>28. &mdash;Of Jesus Christ.
-</p>
-<p>29. &mdash;Of the Holy Ghost.
-</p>
-<p>30. &mdash;Of justification and sanctification.
-</p>
-<p>31. &mdash;Of falling from grace.
-</p>
-<p>32. &mdash;Of baptism.
-</p>
-<p>33. &mdash;Of the manner of baptism.
-</p>
-<p>34. &mdash;Of confirmation.
-</p>
-<p>35. &mdash;Of the duties of members.
-</p>
-<p>36. &mdash;Of the duties of parents respecting their children. (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>37. &mdash;Of the duties of officers&mdash;elders. (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>38. &mdash;Of priests.
-</p>
-<p>39. &mdash;Of teachers.
-</p>
-<p>40. &mdash;Of deacons.
-</p>
-<p>41. &mdash;Of conferences.
-</p>
-<p>42. In what manner did the public ministry of the church begin?
-</p>
-<p>43. Relate the first miracle performed in the church.
-</p>
-<p>44. When was the first conference of the church held, and what occurred?
-</p>
-<p>45. What error did Oliver Cowdery and the Whitmer family fall into?
-</p>
-<p>46. How was Hyrum Page deceived by Lucifer?
-</p>
-<p>47. What great principle concerning revelations to the church was
-brought out by these errors?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p315"></a>{315}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION III.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. First Mission to the Lamanites.</b>&mdash;At the conference held in
-Fayette, New York, September, 1830, the first mission to the Lamanites
-was appointed. In the revelation<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn40"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn40">40</a>]</sup> which corrected the evils
-introduced by Hiram Page's "seer stone," Oliver Cowdery was appointed
-to a mission to the Lamanites; and before the conference was adjourned
-another revelation as given appointing Parley P. Pratt, Peter Whitmer,
-Jun., and Ziba Peterson to accompany him. Great promises are contained
-in the Book of Mormon concerning the Lamanites, and the elders at that
-conference hoped that the time had come for their fulfillment. [See
-note 1, end of section].
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> <em>En route</em> for their field of labor&mdash;the western part of
-the State of Missouri&mdash;the elders of the Lamanite mission stopped at
-Kirtland, in the north-eastern part of Ohio. Here they found a society
-of reformed Baptists, sometimes called Campbellites, after Alexander
-Campbell, the chief founder of the new sect. Their pastor was Sidney
-Rigdon. Elder Parley P. Pratt had formerly been a member of this sect,
-and he presented to his former co-religionists the Book of Mormon, and
-with his associates preached the fullness of the gospel to them, which,
-finally Mr. Rigdon and nearly all his congregation accepted.
-</p>
-<p><b>3.</b> The Lamanite mission continued its journey westward, and in
-mid-winter reached the city of Independence, in the western borders of
-Missouri. Crossing the frontier, several meetings were held with the
-Delaware Indians, which had the effect of arousing the jealousy of the
-sectarian missionaries <span class="pagenum"><a name="p316"></a>{316}</span> among them. Such was their influence with
-the Indian agents that they succeeded in getting the elders banished
-from the territory. Returning to Independence, they sent one of their
-number, Parley P. Pratt, to report their labors to the prophet.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The First Commandment to Gather.</b>&mdash;In December, 1830, the
-Lord gave a revelation<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn41"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn41">41</a>]</sup> to the church in New York, requiring the
-Saints in that state to move into Ohio by the time Oliver Cowdery
-returned from his mission to the Lamanites. This is the first direct
-commandment to the church to gather. During the winter of 1830-31, the
-Saints obeyed this commandment, the most of them settling in Kirtland.
-The Prophet Joseph and his family arrived there about the first of
-February, 1831. Before the coming of the New York Saints there was a
-church at Kirtland of about one hundred members, most of whom had been
-drawn from the Campbellite sect.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The First Bishops of the Church.</b>&mdash;On the 4th of February,
-1831, the Lord by revelation<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn42"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn42">42</a>]</sup> commanded that Edward Partridge should
-be "appointed by the voice of the church, and ordained a bishop."
-Edward Partridge was a merchant in Kirtland, of whom the prophet said:
-"He was a pattern of piety, and one of the Lord's great men, known by
-his steadfastness and patient endurance to the end;" and of whom the
-Lord said, in the revelation appointing him bishop&mdash;"His heart is pure
-before me, for he is like unto Nathaniel of old, in whom there is no
-guile." He was required to give up his business of merchant, and devote
-all his time in the labors of the church. He was not to be the only
-bishop in the church, however, as in the November following (1831), the
-Lord said: "There remaineth * * * other bishops to be set apart unto
-the church, to minister even according to the first."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn43"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn43">43</a>]</sup> In December
-of that year, Newel K. Whitney was appointed a bishop over the church
-in Kirtland and vicinity <span class="pagenum"><a name="p317"></a>{317}</span> [see note 2, end of section]; while
-Edward Partridge was bishop in Zion and the regions round about.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Bishopric.</b>&mdash;Although nothing is said in the revelation
-which appointed Edward Partridge bishop about the rights and powers of
-his office in the church, yet here, doubtless, will be the most proper
-place to speak of bishops in respect to their rights and authority.
-</p>
-<p><em>I.</em> The bishopric is the presidency of the Aaronic Priesthood;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn44"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn44">44</a>]</sup> and
-since that Priesthood has most to do with administering the "outward
-ordinances, the <em>letter</em> of the gospel,"<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn45"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn45">45</a>]</sup> the bishops will find
-their chief employment in the temporal affairs of the church. Indeed
-the Lord plainly says: "The office of a bishop is in administering
-all temporal things."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn46"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn46">46</a>]</sup> By ministering in temporal things we mean
-attending to the tithing, caring for the poor, and when the law of
-consecration shall be observed by the church, the bishops will receive
-the consecrations, settle people on their possessions, divide their
-inheritances unto them,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn47"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn47">47</a>]</sup> keep the Lord's store-house, etc. [See note
-3, end of section].
-</p>
-<p><em>II.</em> The bishops are also to be judges among the people, to sit
-in judgment on trangressors, to hear testimony and give decisions
-according to the laws of the kingdom which are given by the prophets of
-God.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn48"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn48">48</a>]</sup> The bishop's court is the first court of record in the church;
-that is, a record is kept of the trial and preserved; whereas in any
-investigation of difficulties that may be had before the teachers or
-others, no record is kept. An appeal lies from the bishop's courts to
-the high council having jurisdiction. For want of a better expression
-we may say there are several kinds of bishops; first, the general
-presiding bishop of the church; second, traveling Bishops; third, local
-or ward bishops.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn49"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn49">49</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p318"></a>{318}</span> <em>III. Presiding Bishop of the Church</em>:&mdash;This bishop is the
-president of the Aaronic Priesthood throughout the church; he has a
-jurisdiction over all other bishops, priests, teachers and deacons;
-and a general supervision of the temporal affairs of the church,
-subject, of course, to the counsel of the presidency of the Melchisedek
-Priesthood. Of right this bishop should be the first-born among the
-sons of Aaron; "For the first-born holds the right of the presidency
-over this [the Aaronic] priesthood, and the keys or authority of the
-same. No man has a legal right to this office, to hold the keys of
-this priesthood, except he be a literal descendant and the first-born
-of Aaron."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn50"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn50">50</a>]</sup> But before the first-born among the literal descendants
-of Aaron can legally officiate in this calling, he must first be
-designated by the first presidency of the Melchisedek priesthood;
-second, he must be found worthy of the position, and that includes his
-capacity to fill the office with ability, honor and dignity; third,
-he must be ordained under the hands of the first presidency of the
-Melchisedek Priesthood.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn51"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn51">51</a>]</sup> But by virtue of the decree concerning
-the right of the priesthood descending from father to son, the
-first-born of the sons of Aaron may claim their anointing, if at any
-time they can prove their lineage or do ascertain it by revelation
-from the Lord under the hands of the First Presidency.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn52"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn52">52</a>]</sup> A literal
-descendant of Aaron when appointed as above described may act without
-counselors, except in a case where a president of the High priesthood
-after the order of Melchisedek is tried. In that event he is to be
-assisted by "twelve counselors of the High priesthood."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn53"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn53">53</a>]</sup> But when
-no literal descendant of Aaron <span class="pagenum"><a name="p319"></a>{319}</span> can be found, as a high priest
-of the Melchisedek priesthood has authority to officiate in all the
-lesser offices, he may officiate in the office of bishop; provided he
-is called, set apart and ordained unto that power under the hands of
-the first presidency of the Melchisedek priesthood, and is assisted
-by two other high priests as counselors.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn54"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn54">54</a>]</sup> This bishop, whether a
-descendant of Aaron or a high priest appointed to officiate in that
-calling, cannot be tried or condemned for any crime save before the
-first presidency of the church. If he be found guilty on testimony that
-cannot be impeached, he is to be condemned.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn55"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn55">55</a>]</sup> These are the powers,
-prerogatives and privileges of the presiding bishop of the church.
-</p>
-<p><em>IV. Traveling Bishops</em>:&mdash;These are bishops appointed to preside as
-such over large districts of country in which there are a number of
-branches of the church, and among which they would be expected to
-travel, to set in order temporal affairs and preside over those holding
-the Aaronic priesthood. Newel K. Whitney when called to preside over
-the church at Kirtland and the regions round about was a traveling
-bishop, and best illustrates this order of bishops. Some eight or ten
-months after his ordination he was called upon by the Lord to travel
-among all the churches of the east, searching after the poor, to
-administer to their wants by humbling the rich and the proud.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn56"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn56">56</a>]</sup> He
-was also sent to the cities of New York, Albany and Boston, to warn the
-inhabitants thereof of judgments to come and to preach the gospel.
-</p>
-<p><em>V. Local or Ward Bishops</em>:&mdash;By local bishops we mean those ordained
-and set apart to preside over a single ward or branch of the church;
-and whose jurisdiction is strictly limited <span class="pagenum"><a name="p320"></a>{320}</span> to that ward or
-branch. Both traveling and local bishops must either be high priests
-or literal descendants of Aaron. If the latter, then from among the
-first-born of the sons of Aaron.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn57"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn57">57</a>]</sup> In the event of their being
-descendants of Aaron, they would possess the same privileges in their
-sphere as the presiding bishop does in his; that is, they could act
-without counselors but must be found worthy men designated and ordained
-by the first presidency of the church, or by their direction. If
-high priests appointed to act in these bishoprics, then they must be
-designated and set apart by the same authority as literal descendants
-of Aaron, and assisted by two counselors who are also high priests.
-They would form the presidency over the Aaronic priesthood in the
-districts over which they preside, have an oversight of all the
-temporal concerns thereof, and in addition to that act as the common
-judge in that ward or district assigned to them.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Zion.</b>&mdash;The Book of Mormon prophecies predict the founding of a
-glorious city upon the American continent to be called New Jerusalem,
-or Zion. [See note 4, end of section.]<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn58"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn58">58</a>]</sup> It was but natural,
-therefore, that the first elders of the church should be anxious to
-learn where it was to be built and seek to find it. The Book of Mormon,
-while clearly predicting that the city will be established, fails to
-give its location. In March, 1831, however, the Saints were commanded
-to gather <span class="pagenum"><a name="p321"></a>{321}</span> up their riches that they might purchase an inheritance
-that the Lord promised to point out to them some time in the future,
-the New Jerusalem&mdash;"a city of refuge, a place of safety for the Saints
-of the Most High"<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn59"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn59">59</a>]</sup>&mdash;Zion. In June, 1831, a conference convened at
-Kirtland, and the Lord called twenty-eight elders to go through the
-Western States by different routes, two by two, preaching by the way,
-baptizing by water and the laying on of hands by the water side.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn60"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn60">60</a>]</sup>
-They were to meet in western Missouri to hold a conference, and if
-faithful the Lord promised to reveal to them the place of the city of
-Zion.
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> About the middle of July the Prophet Joseph and a number of
-these brethren arrived at Independence, meeting with Oliver Cowdery and
-his associates&mdash;the mission to the Lamanites. A few days afterwards a
-revelation was received<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn61"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn61">61</a>]</sup> declaring Missouri to be the land which God
-had appointed for the gathering of the Saints, the land of promise, the
-place of the city of Zion, Independence being the "center place." The
-site of the temple which the Lord has decreed shall be built in this
-generation, upon which his glory shall rest, and in which the sons of
-Moses and of Aaron shall offer an acceptable offering to the Lord&mdash;was
-declared to be a short distance west of the court house. On the morning
-of the 3rd of August, 1831, the Prophet Joseph with the other elders
-that had arrived at Independence, met at the temple site and dedicated
-it as the place for the building of a temple. [See notes 5 and 6, end
-of section].
-</p>
-<p>Meantime a company of Saints known as the Colesville Branch&mdash;from their
-having lived at Colesville, Broome County, New York&mdash;had arrived in
-Missouri, and having received instructions to purchase the lands in the
-regions round about Zion, they secured a tract of land in a fertile
-prairie some ten or twelve miles west of Independence, in Kaw township,
-not <span class="pagenum"><a name="p322"></a>{322}</span> far from the present location of Kansas City. On the 2nd
-of August&mdash;the day preceding the dedication of the temple site&mdash;in
-the settlement of the Colesville Saints, the first log was laid for
-a house, as the foundation of Zion. The log was carried by twelve
-men in honor of the Twelve Tribes of Israel; and Elder Sidney Rigdon
-consecrated and dedicated the land of Zion for the gathering of the
-Saints. [See note 7, end of section].
-</p>
-<p><b>9. The Law of Consecration.</b>&mdash;It is said of the early Christian
-saints that they "were of one heart and of one soul; neither said any
-of them that aught of the things which he possessed was his own; but
-they had all things common."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn62"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn62">62</a>]</sup> It was doubtless a desire to imitate
-this condition of affairs which led the followers of Sidney Rigdon, at
-Kirtland, to establish the "common stock" plan of living. That is, the
-whole community attempted to live together as one family, having all
-things in common. Nearly all the "family" joined the church; and when
-the Prophet settled in Kirtland, about the 1st of February, 1831, he
-persuaded them to abandon that plan of living, for the more perfect law
-of the Lord.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn63"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn63">63</a>]</sup> The more perfect law was the law of consecration.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> The preparations for the introduction of this law was first
-made by the appointment of a bishop, who should have authority to
-administer in temporal things. The bishop was called by revelation on
-the 4th of February, 1831.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn64"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn64">64</a>]</sup> On the 9th of the same month the Lord
-in a revelation gave the first <span class="pagenum"><a name="p323"></a>{323}</span> instructions about the law of
-consecration.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn65"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn65">65</a>]</sup> From that and subsequent revelations we summarize the
-following in relation to that law:
-</p>
-<p>I. The person desiring to make the consecration brings his possessions
-to the bishop and delivers them unto him&mdash;consecrates them unto the
-Lord, giving them up absolutely, with a deed and a covenant that cannot
-be broken.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn66"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn66">66</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>II. The person so consecrating his possessions, whether they be much
-or little, if it be a full consecration, has claim upon the bishop
-for stewardship out of the consecrated properties of the church, an
-inheritance for himself and his family,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn67"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn67">67</a>]</sup> from the management of
-which, by industry and economy&mdash;for this law contemplates industry
-and economy on the part of those who embrace it<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn68"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn68">68</a>]</sup>&mdash;they may obtain
-a livelihood. But the possessions consecrated are the Lord's, or else
-the consecrations are vain, and the whole proceedings farcical.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn69"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn69">69</a>]</sup> The
-inheritance given to the individual is given to him as his stewardship,
-of which he must render an account unto the bishop.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn70"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn70">70</a>]</sup> The steward
-is responsible for his stewardship in time and in eternity unto the
-Lord.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn71"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn71">71</a>]</sup> The stewardships are to be secured to those to whom they
-are given by a written deed, that they may not be deprived of their
-inheritance.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn72"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn72">72</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>III. After men have received their stewardships the income from
-them, over and above that which is needful for the support <span class="pagenum"><a name="p324"></a>{324}</span> of
-themselves and their families, is also to be consecrated unto the
-Lord and taken to the Lord's store house to be distributed to the
-poor to supply stewardships to those who have not yet received them,
-to purchase lands for the public benefit, to build houses of worship,
-temples, etc., etc.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn73"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn73">73</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>IV. In the event of any steward needing means to improve his
-stewardship, or for any other righteous purpose, he has a claim upon
-the Lord's store-house, and so long as he is in full fellowship with
-the church, and is a wise and faithful steward, on application to the
-treasurer of the general fund, he is to be supplied with that which he
-needs; the treasurer, of course, being accountable to the church for
-his management of the general fund, and subject to removal in the event
-of incompetency or transgression.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn74"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn74">74</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>V. Each steward is independent in the management of his stewardship.
-He must pay for that which he buys; he can insist on payment for that
-which he sells. He has no claim upon the stewardship of his neighbor;
-his neighbor has no claim upon his stewardship; but both have claim,
-as also have their children&mdash;when they shall become of age and start
-in life for themselves<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn75"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn75">75</a>]</sup>&mdash;upon the surplus in the Lord's store-house
-to aid them in the event of their needing assistance.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn76"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn76">76</a>]</sup> The various
-churches, or branches of the church, are each to be independent in
-the management of their respective store-houses,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn77"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn77">77</a>]</sup> subject of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p325"></a>{325}</span>
-course to a general supervision of the presiding bishop of the church
-and of the first presidency thereof.
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Reflections.</b>&mdash;Such is the law of consecration and stewardship
-given to the church as early as the first and second year of its
-existence in this last dispensation; under which law, and under no
-other, the Saints are to build up the Zion of God, the New Jerusalem
-upon this continent.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn78"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn78">78</a>]</sup> The law is designated to humble the rich
-and the proud and raise the poor and the lowly,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn79"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn79">79</a>]</sup> that men might
-be equal in temporal possessions according to their families, their
-circumstances, their wants and their needs.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn80"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn80">80</a>]</sup> There is enough in
-the earth and more than enough<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn81"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn81">81</a>]</sup> to supply the necessities and
-the reasonable luxuries desired by man if the wealth created by his
-industry was but more equally distributed. The plan which the Lord has
-revealed to accomplish this, however, does not aim at the destruction
-of the individuality of men. It makes no attempt to control men in the
-detail management of their stewardships, or the disposal of their time,
-or to set taskmasters over them, but only to control and dispose of the
-surplus arising from their labors in the management of their respective
-stewardships.
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> In consequence of the unsettled state of the church arising
-from the persecutions and drivings inflicted upon the Saints during the
-time they were settling in Missouri, coupled with their inexperience,
-their pride, covetousness, greed and disobedience, they failed to live
-up to the requirements of the law of consecration, and in 1838 the
-lesser law of tithing was given, and has obtained in the Church unto
-this day. This law of tithing requires that the Saints pay first their
-surplus property to the bishop, and after that those who have been so
-tithed shall pay one-tenth of their income annually. This is the law of
-tithing now binding on the church.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn82"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn82">82</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p326"></a>{326}</span>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Promises to the Lamanites.</b>&mdash;Then shall the remnant of our
-seed know concerning us, how that we came out from Jerusalem, and that
-they are descendants of the Jews. And the gospel of Jesus Christ shall
-be declared among them; wherefore they shall be restored unto the
-knowledge of their fathers, and also to the knowledge of Jesus Christ,
-which was had among their fathers. And then shall they rejoice; for
-they shall know that it is a blessing unto them from the hand of God;
-and their scales of darkness shall begin to fall from their eyes; and
-many generations shall not pass away among them, save they shall be a
-white and delightsome people.&mdash;Prophecy of Nephi, Nephi II, ch. xxx.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Newel K. Whitney's Appointment to be Bishop.</b>&mdash;Though in
-natural gifts few men were better qualified for such a position, he
-nevertheless distrusted his ability, and deemed himself incapable of
-discharging the high and holy trust. In his perplexity he appealed to
-the prophet: "I cannot see a bishop in myself, Brother Joseph; but if
-you say it's the Lord's will, I'll try." "You need not take my word
-alone," answered the prophet, kindly, "go and ask Father for yourself."
-Newel felt the force of this mild rebuke, but determined to do as he
-was advised and seek to obtain the knowledge for himself. His humble,
-heartfelt prayer was answered. In the silence of night and the solitude
-of his own chamber, he heard a voice from heaven: "Thy strength is
-in me." The words were few and simple, but for him they had a world
-of meaning. His doubts were dispelled like the dew before the dawn.
-He straightway sought the prophet, told him he was satisfied and was
-willing to accept the office to which he had been called.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Sphere of the Aaronic Priesthood.</b>&mdash;The lesser priesthood
-is a part of or an appendage to the greater, or the Melchisedek
-priesthood, and has power in administering outward ordinances. The
-lesser or Aaronic priesthood can make appointments for the greater,
-in preaching, can baptize, administer the sacrament, attend to the
-tithing, buy lands, settle people on possessions, divide inheritances,
-look after the poor, take care of the properties of the church, attend
-generally to temporal affairs, act as common judges in Israel and
-assist in ordinances of the temple, under the direction of the greater
-or Melchisedek priesthood. They hold the keys of the administering of
-angels and administer in outward ordinances, the letter of the gospel
-and the baptism of repentance for the remission of sins.&mdash;Items on
-Priesthood. John Taylor.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Zion.</b>&mdash;The word Zion is variously employed: "This is Zion, the
-pure in heart." (Doc. and Cov.) In this instance the word refers to
-a people who are declared to be the pure in heart. In the south part
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p327"></a>{327}</span> of Jerusalem is a hill frequently spoken of in Jewish scripture
-as Zion, or Mount Zion. Then Enoch the seventh from Adam gathered the
-righteous and built a city, "that was called the city of Holiness, even
-Zion." The Lord in speaking to Enoch about the great events to take
-place in the last days, in which he would come to the earth in his
-glory, said He would with righteousness and truth sweep the earth as
-with a flood to gather His elect to "an holy city * * * and it shall be
-called Zion, a new Jerusalem." The Nephite prophet, Moroni, tells us
-that Ether in vision saw the days of the coming of the Son of Man and
-that "he spake concerning a new Jerusalem upon this land" (America),
-that was to be built up unto the remnant of the seed of Joseph (Ether
-xiii). Jesus also after his resurrection, when he visited the Nephites
-on the American continent, told them that he would establish them upon
-this land, and if the Gentiles would not harden their hearts, but would
-repent of their sins, they should be included in the covenant, and
-should assist in building up the city of Zion, or New Jerusalem (III
-Nephi: xx). The word Zion, then, is applied to a people; it is the name
-of a hill in the south part of Jerusalem; it is the name of a city
-built by Enoch and his people; it is to be the name of a city built
-in the last days by the Saints of the Most High upon the continent of
-America.&mdash;Missouri Persecutions.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Western Missouri (1831).</b>&mdash;It was a country whose richness and
-fertility of soil far surpassed anything which they [the Saints] had
-ever before seen. It was a country abounding with springs and rivulets
-of the purest kind of water, whose crystal streams flowed in luxuriant
-abundance in almost every grove and prairie. A great variety of the
-most excellent timber bordered upon the rivers and water-courses.
-These shady and delightful groves were from one to three miles in
-width, extending many miles in length, while the rich rolling prairies,
-covered with a gorgeous profusion of wild flowers of every varied
-hue, lay spread around among the intervening groves. Their grassy
-surfaces extending for miles, presented the delightful appearance of a
-sea of meadows. It was a new country; but few inhabitants had as yet
-formed settlements within its borders. These consisted principally of
-emigrants from the Southern States.&mdash;Orson Pratt.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Temple Site.</b>&mdash;Taking the road running west from the court
-house for a scant half mile, you come to the summit of a crowning
-hill, the slope of which to the south and west is quite abrupt and
-very gradual toward the north and east. * * * This is the temple site.
-It was upon this spot on the third day of August, 1831, that Joseph
-Smith, Sidney Rigdon, Edward Partridge, W. W. Phelps, Oliver Cowdery,
-Martin Harris and Joseph Coe and another person whose name I cannot
-learn, for there were eight in all&mdash;men in whom the Lord was well
-pleased, assembled to dedicate this place as the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p328"></a>{328}</span> temple site in
-Zion. The eighty-seventh Psalm was read. Joseph [the prophet] then
-dedicated the spot where is to be built a temple on which the glory of
-God shall rest. Yea the great God hath so decreed it, saying "Verily,
-this generation shall not all pass away until an house shall be built
-unto the Lord, and a cloud shall rest upon it, which cloud shall be
-even the glory of the Lord, which shall fill the house. * * * And the
-sons of Moses, and also the sons of Aaron shall offer an acceptable
-offering and sacrifice in the house of the Lord, which house shall
-be built unto the Lord in this generation upon the consecrated spot
-as I have appointed." (Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxiv: 5, 31.)&mdash;Missouri
-Persecutions&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Founding of Zion.</b>&mdash;Thus the work of building up Zion
-commenced, and though the commencement was humble in the extreme, the
-final result shall be the erection of a city that shall be the crowning
-glory of the whole earth; a city from which shall go forth the law of
-the Lord unto all nations, for is it not written: "Out of Zion shall
-go forth the law" (Isaiah ii)? It shall be a city of refuge, for the
-Lord has said: "Every man who will not take up his sword against his
-neighbor, must needs flee to Zion for safety." The wicked will consider
-her inhabitants terrible, while the righteous out of every nation will
-come into it with songs of everlasting joy in their hearts. (Doc. and
-Cov., sec. xlv.)&mdash;Missouri Persecutions&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. When and under what circumstances was the first mission appointed to
-the Lamanites?
-</p>
-<p>2. What important circumstance occurred in the experience of the
-Lamanite mission en route for the west?
-</p>
-<p>3. What success attended the mission to the Lamanites?
-</p>
-<p>4. When was the first commandment given to the Church to gather?
-</p>
-<p>5. To what place did the church first gather?
-</p>
-<p>6. Who was the first Bishop in the church?
-</p>
-<p>7. What was his character?
-</p>
-<p>8. State what you can of the sphere of labor belonging to the bishopric.
-</p>
-<p>9. What can you say of bishops as judges in Israel?
-</p>
-<p>10. How many kinds of bishops are there?
-</p>
-<p>11. Tell what you can of the authority, rights and powers of the
-presiding bishop of the church.
-</p>
-<p>12. What difference exists in respect to a bishop who is a literal
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p329"></a>{329}</span> descendant of Aaron and one who holds the office by virtue of
-holding the high priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>13. Is being a descendant of the first-born among the sons of Aaron all
-sufficient to qualify a man to be a bishop?
-</p>
-<p>14. What is the exception to the rule that a bishop who is a literal
-descendant of Aaron can act without counselors?
-</p>
-<p>15. Describe traveling Bishops.
-</p>
-<p>16. Give an example of such a bishop in the Church.
-</p>
-<p>17. What is meant by local bishops?
-</p>
-<p>18. Describe their power and jurisdiction.
-</p>
-<p>19. How did the first elders of the church learn that Zion was to be
-built in America?
-</p>
-<p>20. What various significations are attached to the word Zion? (Note 4).
-</p>
-<p>21. What circumstances led a number of the elders to western Missouri?
-</p>
-<p>22. What was revealed to them there?
-</p>
-<p>23. Where is Zion located?
-</p>
-<p>24. Describe the land of Zion. (Note 5).
-</p>
-<p>25. What promises are made respecting a temple in that land? (Note 6).
-</p>
-<p>26. What caused the people in Kirtland before they heard the gospel to
-have all things in common?
-</p>
-<p>27. What course did Joseph Smith take relative to this subject? (Note).
-</p>
-<p>28. In what way were the people prepared for the introduction of the
-law of consecration?
-</p>
-<p>29. Describe the law of consecration.
-</p>
-<p>30. What purposes are designed to be accomplished in the law of
-consecration?
-</p>
-<p>31. What circumstances prevented the successful operation of this law
-in Missouri?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p330"></a>{330}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION IV.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Persecution.</b>&mdash;From the very commencement the work of the Lord
-in these last days met with the most violent opposition. No sooner did
-Joseph Smith declare that he had received a revelation from God than it
-brought upon him the ridicule and wrath of many who heard of it. The
-stream of hatred grew broader and deeper as the work progressed. Joseph
-himself endured many vexatious persecutions, and those who believed in
-his teachings were doomed to share them. The first general persecution
-of the church, however, occurred in Missouri.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> The people among whom the Saints settled in Jackson county,
-Missouri, were ignorant, jealous, bigoted, and superstitious. They were
-also given to Sabbath-breaking, drunkenness, profanity, horse racing
-and gambling. It will be seen at once, therefore, that there could be
-but little fellowship between them and the Saints. (See note 1, end of
-section.) Moreover, they were principally from the Southern states, and
-slaveholders; and as the Saints were from the free states of the north,
-they were inclined to be suspicious of them. It was an easy matter
-therefore, for demagogues to persuade the Missourians that it was the
-design of the Saints to supplant them in the possession of the country.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Expulsion of the Saints from Jackson County.</b>&mdash;The saints
-themselves were not as prudent as they should have been. Many boasted
-that God would destroy the wicked and give their possessions as
-inheritances unto the righteous. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p331"></a>{331}</span> Many more failed to live up to
-the moral precepts of the gospel, and were disobedient to the counsels
-of the Lord. This gave the wicked great power over them, and the result
-was that the jealously and wrath which had been burning for some time
-in the hearts of the old settlers finally broke out into deeds of
-violence. Almost the entire population about Independence arose and
-drove the Saints from the county under circumstances of the utmost
-cruelty.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn83"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn83">83</a>]</sup> Twelve hundred people were driven from their possessions;
-and about two hundred of their homes and one grist mill were burned.
-This was in the fall and winter of 1833-34. [See note 2, end of
-section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Zion's Camp.</b>&mdash;The excited Saints found a temporary abode in
-Clay County&mdash;the next county north of Jackson&mdash;and in the meantime the
-Lord commanded the Prophet Joseph to gather up the strength of the
-Lord's house&mdash;the young and middle-aged men in the church&mdash;for the
-purpose of going to the assistance of their brethren in Missouri, and
-to redeem Zion.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn84"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn84">84</a>]</sup> In the spring of 1834, therefore, about one hundred
-and fifty of the brethren from the churches in the eastern states
-assembled at New Portage, Ohio, about fifty miles from Kirtland; and
-this number was increased to about two hundred by the time the camp
-reached Missouri. They took with them money to purchase lands, food
-and clothing to assist their destitute brethren, and it was also the
-determination of the camp to help their exiled friends maintain their
-possessions when the governor of Missouri re-instated them upon their
-lands.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn85"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn85">85</a>]</sup> But en route to Missouri the brethren did not live up to the
-requirement made of the camp. Some of them were disobedient, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p332"></a>{332}</span> even
-rebellious towards the prophet, and the Lord was not well pleased with
-them.
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> As the camp approached Jackson county it was met by
-delegations inquiring into their designs for approaching Jackson
-county. Various reports had been spread abroad in respect to their
-intentions, and some of them were of a character to create alarm. In
-order to correct these false reports the brethren made the following
-statement:
-</p><blockquote>
-<p> In the first place it is not our intention to commit hostilities
- against any man, or set of men; it is not our intention to injure
- any man's person or property except in defending ourselves. * * *
- It is our intention to go back upon our lands in Jackson county by
- order of the executive of the state, if possible. We have brought
- our arms with us for the purpose of self-defense, as it is well
- known to almost every man of the state, we have every reason to put
- ourselves in an attitude of defense, considering the abuse we have
- suffered in Jackson county. We are anxious for a settlement of the
- difficulties existing between us, upon honorable and constitutional
- principles.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn86"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn86">86</a>]</sup>
-</p></blockquote>
-<p><b>6.</b> The brethren also made a proposition to submit their losses to
-a committee of impartial arbitrators, and another to buy out those of
-the old settlers who could not live with them. But before matters were
-brought to an investigation and adjustment the Lord in a revelation to
-the prophet,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn87"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn87">87</a>]</sup> gave instructions which led to the abandonment of any
-attempt at that time to redeem Zion.
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> The Lord in this revelation declared that Zion might have
-been redeemed by that time, had it not been for the transgressions
-of his Saints. They had not been obedient to the requirements made
-of them. They had withheld their means, and in their hearts had said
-concerning the Saints in Zion, "Where is their God? Behold he will
-deliver them in time of trouble, otherwise we will not go up unto Zion,
-and we will keep our <span class="pagenum"><a name="p333"></a>{333}</span> moneys." Besides these evidences of a want
-of faith, they lacked that unity required by the law of the celestial
-kingdom, and it is only through the observance of that law that Zion
-can be redeemed. The Lord, therefore, commanded the elders to wait
-a season for the redemption of Zion, until the Saints should obtain
-more experience, learn obedience, and until means could be raised
-to purchase all the lands in Jackson county that could be purchased
-and also in the surrounding counties; and until the Lord's army had
-become very great, and sanctified before him. And when this was done
-the Lord promised to hold his people guiltless in taking possession of
-that which was their own; and they should possess it forever. He had
-permitted the elders composing the camp to come thus far, for a trial
-of their faith; and now he had prepared a great endowment for them in
-the house which he had commanded to be built in Kirtland. Those who
-could stay in Missouri were to do so, but those who had left their
-families in the east were at liberty to return. In obedience to the
-commandment to await for a season the redemption of Zion, the Camp of
-Zion was disbanded early in the morning of the 25th of June. A number
-remained in Missouri, but the most of the camp returned to the east.
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> Relieved now of the immediate responsibility of redeeming
-Zion, the brethren who returned from Missouri and the churches in the
-east devoted their attention to building up Kirtland as a stake of
-Zion, and completing the temple, the foundation of which had been laid
-about a year before.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn88"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn88">88</a>]</sup> The declaration of the Lord in that revelation
-given on Fishing river, Missouri, to the effect that he had prepared
-a great endowment for the faithful elders in the house which he had
-commanded them to build in Kirtland, hastened the work, as they were
-anxious to receive those spiritual blessings.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. High Councils.</b>&mdash;Meantime the Lord had given many <span class="pagenum"><a name="p334"></a>{334}</span>
-important revelations in respect to the priesthood and the organization
-of the church. In February, 1834&mdash;a few months previous to Zion's
-Camp starting for Missouri&mdash;the first high council of the church was
-organized. This council was appointed by revelation for the purpose of
-settling important difficulties that might arise in the church, and
-which could not be settled in the bishops' courts to the satisfaction
-of the parties.
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> The high council is composed of twelve high priests, presided
-over by one or three presidents, as circumstances may determine. The
-high council cannot act unless seven of its members are present; but
-seven have the power to appoint other high priests to act temporarily
-in the place of absent councilors. Whenever a high council is
-organized, the twelve members draw lots for their places. Those who
-draw the even numbers&mdash;two, four, six, eight, ten, twelve&mdash;are to stand
-in behalf of the accused; those drawing the odd numbers in behalf
-of the accuser. In every case the accused has a right to half the
-council to prevent injury or injustice. The councilors who represent
-the accused and accuser respectively, do not become partisans bent on
-winning their case irrespective of its righteousness or justice; on
-the contrary, every man is to speak according to equity and truth; and
-aside from that is merely to see that each party to the issue involved
-has justice accorded him, and that he be not subjected to insult or
-injury. [Note 3, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> Whenever the council convenes to act on any case, the twelve
-councilors are to consider whether it is very difficult or not. If
-it be not a difficult case, then only two of the councilors, one for
-the accused and accuser respectively, are appointed to speak. But if
-the case is accounted difficult, then four are appointed to speak; if
-still more difficult, six; but in no case are more than six to speak.
-In all cases both the accuser and accused are to have the privilege of
-speaking for themselves, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p335"></a>{335}</span> after the evidence is all in and the
-councilors appointed to speak have all spoken.
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> The evidence all in, the speakers for the accused and the
-accuser having spoken, as also the accused and the accuser, the
-president gives a decision according to the understanding he has of
-the case and calls upon the twelve councilors to sustain it by vote.
-But should the councilors who have not spoken, or any one of them,
-discover an error in the decision of the president, they have the
-right to manifest it and the case has a re-hearing. If after a careful
-re-hearing, additional light is thrown upon the case, the decision
-is altered accordingly. "But in case no additional light is given,
-the first decision shall stand, the majority of the council having
-power to determine the same."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn89"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn89">89</a>]</sup> Such are the general outlines of the
-organization of a high council and the manner of procedure before it.
-[Notes 4 and 5, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Different Kinds of High Councils.</b>&mdash;There are three kinds of
-high councils in the church. They are similar in organization, and the
-manner of procedure is practically the same before them all; but they
-differ in authority and jurisdiction.
-</p>
-<p><em>I. The Traveling High Council</em>.&mdash;This Council consists of the twelve
-apostles of Jesus Christ. They are a traveling presiding high council;
-and, laboring under the first presidency of the church, they have the
-right to build up the church, and regulate all the affairs of the
-same in all the world.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn90"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn90">90</a>]</sup> Whenever they sit as a high council, there
-is no appeal from their decisions&mdash;that is, they can only be called
-in question by the general authorities of the church in the event of
-transgression.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn91"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn91">91</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><em>II. The Standing High Councils at the Stakes of Zion</em>.&mdash;The church
-is divided into branches or wards with appropriate officers; and
-these branches, wards, and settlements of the Saints are grouped
-for convenience into stakes of Zion. In <span class="pagenum"><a name="p336"></a>{336}</span> each stake there is a
-standing high council, limited in its jurisdiction to the affairs of
-that particular stake where it is located.
-</p>
-<p><em>III. Temporary High Councils</em>.&mdash;The high priests abroad, that is,
-outside of the organized stakes of Zion, whenever the parties to a
-difficulty, or either of them request it, and the high priests abroad
-deem the case of sufficient importance to justify such action, are
-authorized to organize a temporary high council to try the case,
-appointing one of their own number to preside over the council during
-its continuance. Otherwise the council is to be organized after the
-pattern and proceed in the same manner as those at the stakes of Zion.
-"It shall be the duty of said council to transmit immediately, a copy
-of its proceedings, with a full statement of the testimony accompanying
-their decision, to the high council of the seat of the first presidency
-of the church. Should the parties, or either of them, be dissatisfied
-with the decision of said council, they may appeal to the high
-council of the seat of the first presidency of the church, and have a
-re-hearing, which case shall then be conducted according to the former
-pattern written, as though no such decision had been made."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn92"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn92">92</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>14. Organization of the Quorum of Twelve Apostles.</b>&mdash;As early
-as June, 1829, the Lord revealed that there would be twelve especial
-witnesses or apostles called to preach the gospel to the nations of the
-earth. But it was not until several months after the prophet returned
-from the Zion's Camp expedition that such a quorum was organized. In
-the month of February, 1835, however, a general conference was called,
-and the three especial witnesses to the Book of Mormon selected the
-men&mdash;under the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, for they were appointed
-to that mission by revelation&mdash;who were to <span class="pagenum"><a name="p337"></a>{337}</span> constitute the quorum
-of the twelve apostles<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn93"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn93">93</a>]</sup> or especial witnesses.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. Organization of Quorums of Seventies.</b>&mdash;In the same
-month&mdash;February, 1835&mdash;the first quorum of seventies was organized
-by the Prophet Joseph and his two counselors and others. Shortly
-afterwards the second quorum was also organized. These quorums, as
-would be inferred from their being called seventies' quorums, consist
-of seventy men. Seven presidents preside over each quorum, and the
-first seven presidents&mdash;the presidents of the first quorum&mdash;preside
-over all the quorums of seventy in the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>16.</b> About a month after the organization of these quorums&mdash;28th
-of March, 1835&mdash;a revelation was given,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn94"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn94">94</a>]</sup> in which the duties of the
-apostles and seventies are made clear, as well as the duties of other
-officers.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn95"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn95">95</a>]</sup> We have now, however, reached a point in the historical
-development of the church of Christ where we can consider it as a
-system of ecclesiastical government; and to that consideration the next
-section is devoted.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p338"></a>{338}</span>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Character of the Old Settlers in Jackson County.</b>&mdash;Speaking
-of his arrival in Independence and meeting with Oliver Cowdery and
-other brethren there, the Prophet Joseph says: "It seemed good and
-pleasant for brethren to meet together in unity. But our reflections
-were great, coming as we had from a highly cultivated state of society
-in the East, and standing now upon the confines and western limits
-of the United States, and looking into the vast wilderness of those
-that sat in darkness; how natural it was to observe the degradation,
-leanness of intellect, ferocity and jealousy of a people that were
-nearly a century behind the time and to feel for those who roamed about
-without the benefit of civilization, refinement or religion; yea, and
-to exclaim in the language of the prophets, 'when will the wilderness
-blossom as a rose? When will Zion be built up in her glory, and where
-will thy temple stand, unto which all nations shall come in the last
-days?'"&mdash;Missouri Persecutions&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Persecution in Jackson County.</b>&mdash;The month of November, 1833,
-was big with important events for the members of the Church in Jackson
-County. That month witnessed the expulsion of twelve hundred American
-citizens from their homes which they had purchased from the general
-government. The events of that month branded the sovereign state of
-Missouri with an infamy that will cling to her as long as the name
-is remembered on earth or in heaven; and when her officials of that
-period shall stand before the bar of God, gouts of blood will be found
-on their ministerial vestments&mdash;it will be the stain, too, of innocent
-blood! * * * Early in the spring the mob burned the houses belonging
-to the Saints. According to the testimony of Lyman Wight (<em>Times and
-Seasons</em> for 1843, p. 264), two hundred and three dwelling houses and
-one grist mill were so destroyed.&mdash;Missouri Persecutions&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Fair Dealing in High Councils.</b>&mdash;The council should try no case
-without both parties being present, or having had an opportunity to
-be present; neither should they hear one party's complaint before his
-case is brought up for trial; neither should they suffer the character
-of any one to be exposed before the high council without the person
-being present and ready to defend him or herself; that the minds of the
-councilors be not prejudiced for or against any one whose case they may
-possibly have to act upon.&mdash;Joseph Smith, Hist. under date of July 11,
-1840.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Order in High Councils.</b>&mdash;In ancient days councils were
-conducted with strict propriety; no one was allowed to whisper, be
-weary, leave the room or get uneasy in the least until the voice of
-the Lord by revelation, or the voice of the council by the spirit was
-obtained. * * * It was understood in ancient days that if one man <span class="pagenum"><a name="p339"></a>{339}</span>
-could stay in the council, another could; and if the president could
-spend his time, the members could also.&mdash;Joseph Smith, Hist. under date
-of Feb. 12, 1834.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Just Judgment Demanded in High Councils.</b>&mdash;No man is capable
-of judging a matter in council unless his own heart is pure; and we
-frequently are so filled with prejudice, or have a beam in our own eye,
-that we are not capable of passing right decisions. * * * Our acts are
-rendered, and at a future day they will be laid before us; and if we
-should fail to judge right, and injure our fellow beings, they may be
-there perhaps, and condemn us. There they are of great consequence, and
-to me the consequence appears to be of force beyond anything which I am
-able to express.&mdash;Joseph Smith, Hist. under date of Feb. 12, 1834.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What can you say of the opposition which the work of God has met
-with in these last days?
-</p>
-<p>2. Where did the first general persecution begin?
-</p>
-<p>3. What was the character of the people in western Missouri? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>4. Relate the expulsion of the Saints from Jackson county.
-</p>
-<p>5. What event brought Zion's Camp into existence?
-</p>
-<p>6. Relate its history.
-</p>
-<p>7. What prevented Zion's Camp from redeeming Zion?
-</p>
-<p>8. When was the first high council organized?
-</p>
-<p>9. For what purpose are such councils organized?
-</p>
-<p>10. Describe the high council.
-</p>
-<p>11. What are the privileges of the accused and accuser before the
-council?
-</p>
-<p>12. What rule obtains as to the decision of the president of the
-council?
-</p>
-<p>13. What is to be the course of the high council in respect to
-deportment, fair dealing and judgment? (See notes 3, 4 and 5.)
-</p>
-<p>14. How many kinds of high councils are there?
-</p>
-<p>15. Describe each.
-</p>
-<p>16. When did the Lord first reveal that there would be a quorum of
-twelve apostles called?
-</p>
-<p>17. When and in what manner were the members of this quorum selected?
-</p>
-<p>18. When were seventies' quorums first organized?
-</p>
-<p>19. State what you can concerning the presidency of the seventies'
-quorums.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p340"></a>{340}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION V.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Priesthood.</b>&mdash;Priesthood is power which God gives to man,
-by which man becomes an agent of God; an authorized officer in his
-kingdom, with the right and power to teach the laws of the kingdom, and
-administer the ordinances by which foreigners and aliens are admitted
-to citizenship. It gives man the right and power to act in God's
-stead&mdash;thus, If a man endowed with the proper degree of the priesthood
-takes one who believes the gospel and baptizes him for the remission
-of sins in the name of the Father, Son and Holy Ghost, the act of
-that authorized servant of God is just as valid as if the Lord Jesus
-Christ himself did it, and remission of sins will follow. So also if
-an authorized servant of God lays on hands to impart the Holy Ghost,
-the Holy Ghost will be given, inasmuch as all is done as the law of the
-Lord directs. So in preaching, exhorting, warning; whether it be by
-God's own voice, or the voice of his servants, it is the same.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn96"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn96">96</a>]</sup> Man
-through receiving the priesthood becomes God's agent; and the Lord is
-bound to recognize the ministrations of his agents so long as they act
-in accordance with the terms by which they hold that agency. Such is
-priesthood.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Spirit of Government by the Priesthood.</b>&mdash;The government of the
-priesthood is exercised through the channels of love, knowledge and
-righteousness. The rights of the priesthood are inseparably connected
-with the powers of heaven, and the powers of heaven can only be
-controlled upon the principles of righteousness.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn97"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn97">97</a>]</sup> No power can or
-ought to be maintained <span class="pagenum"><a name="p341"></a>{341}</span> by virtue of the priesthood, only by persuasion,
-by long-suffering, by gentleness and meekness and by love unfeigned;
-by kindness and pure knowledge, which shall greatly enlarge the soul
-without hypocrisy and without guile; reproving betimes with sharpness,
-when moved upon by the Holy Ghost; and then showing forth afterwards
-an increase of love, lest those reproved esteem those reproving as
-enemies.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn98"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn98">98</a>]</sup> Such is the spirit of government under the priesthood: it
-may be summed up in this: men are to be taught correct principles and
-then govern themselves.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn99"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn99">99</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Church.</b>&mdash;From the gospel and the priesthood comes
-the church. The church is the medium through which the gospel is
-promulgated&mdash;by which it is made known among the children of men. It
-is the system of government by which those who accept the gospel are
-controlled in things religious. It is the government of God on earth
-pertaining to religious affairs. The Lord had clothed it with his
-authority, which is his power; and it hath authority not only to teach
-the gospel, but to execute its laws, and inflict the penalties attached
-to a violation thereof&mdash;at least so far as dealing with the membership
-of trangressors is concerned; as for other penalties <span class="pagenum"><a name="p342"></a>{342}</span> that will
-fall upon the violators of divine law, the Father hath reserved that
-to himself, and will in his own time and way vindicate his own laws,
-having due regard to the relative claims of justice and mercy. The
-authority of the church comes from the priesthood, and may be said
-to be the collected authority of all the quorums of the priesthood
-combined&mdash;the aggregation of God's authority in the earth, in relation
-to things religious. Such is the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Divisions of the Priesthood.</b>&mdash;In the church of Christ there
-are two grand divisions of priesthood; or rather its powers are
-grouped under two great heads&mdash;for all priesthood comes from God,
-is power from him, and therefore cannot properly be regarded as two
-different priesthoods.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn100"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn100">100</a>]</sup> The two divisions of priesthood are
-named respectively the Melchisedek priesthood<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn101"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn101">101</a>]</sup> and the Aaronic
-priesthood.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn102"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn102">102</a>]</sup> The Melchisedek priesthood ministers more especially
-in spiritual things; it holds the keys of all the spiritual blessings
-of the church, is entitled to receive the mysteries of the kingdom
-of heaven, to commune with the church of the First Born, and enjoy
-the communion and presence of God the Father, and his Son Jesus
-Christ.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn103"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn103">103</a>]</sup> The Aaronic priesthood ministers more especially in
-temporal things; it holds the keys, however, of the ministering of
-angels and the baptism of repentance for the remission of sins.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn104"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn104">104</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Officers of the Priesthood.</b>&mdash;The officers of the Melchisedek
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p343"></a>{343}</span> priesthood are apostles, seventies, patriarchs, high priests,
-elders. The officers of the Aaronic priesthood are bishops, priests,
-teachers, deacons. Of necessity there are presidents, or presiding
-officers growing out of, or appointed from among those who are ordained
-to the several offices in these two priesthoods.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn105"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn105">105</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Presidencies in the Melchisedek Priesthood&mdash;First
-Presidency.</b>&mdash;Since of necessity there are presiding officers growing
-out of the priesthood, there is a president appointed from the high
-priesthood to preside over that priesthood, he is called president
-of the high priesthood of the church; or, the presiding high priest
-over the high priesthood of the church.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn106"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn106">106</a>]</sup> This president of the
-high priesthood also presides over the whole church; he is a seer, a
-revelator, a translator and a prophet, having all the gifts of God
-which he bestows upon the head of the church.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn107"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn107">107</a>]</sup> Two other high
-priests<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn108"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn108">108</a>]</sup> associated with the president of the high priesthood as
-counselors, all being appointed and ordained to that office, and upheld
-by the confidence, faith and prayer of the church, form the quorum of
-the first presidency of the church,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn109"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn109">109</a>]</sup> and they preside over all
-quorums, over Zion and all the stakes thereof; over all wards and
-branches and missions of the church in all the world. The president in
-his quorum is to be like unto Moses,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn110"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn110">110</a>]</sup> therefore he is the prophet
-and law-giver unto the church&mdash;the mouthpiece of God unto it.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Traveling Presiding High Council.</b>&mdash;The twelve apostles,
-or special witnesses of the name of Christ in all the world, are
-a traveling, presiding high council, and have <span class="pagenum"><a name="p344"></a>{344}</span> the power to
-officiate in the name of the Lord, under the direction of the first
-presidency of the church, to build up the church and regulate all
-the affairs of the same in all nations. In all large branches of
-the church, or the stakes of Zion, they are authorized to ordain
-patriarchs, as they may be designated unto them by revelation; it
-is the duty of the twelve also to ordain and set in order all other
-officers in the church. These twelve apostles form the second general
-presiding quorum in the church, and are equal in authority and power to
-the quorum of the first presidency.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn111"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn111">111</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Presiding Quorum of Seventy.</b>&mdash;The seventy are appointed
-to act in the name of the Lord under the direction of the traveling
-high council in building up the church and regulating all the affairs
-of the same in all nations.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn112"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn112">112</a>]</sup> The quorum of seventy is presided
-over by seven presidents, and the senior of the seven&mdash;that is, the
-senior by ordination, not by age&mdash;presides over the six. This quorum
-is equal in authority to the traveling high council&mdash;the quorum of the
-twelve apostles.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn113"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn113">113</a>]</sup> In addition to presiding over the first quorum of
-seventy&mdash;to which quorum they belong&mdash;the first seven presidents were
-authorized in the beginning to choose other seventy, besides the first,
-until seven times seventy had been chosen&mdash;if the labor in the ministry
-required it<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn114"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn114">114</a>]</sup>&mdash;and preside over them. Each quorum has its council of
-seven presidents; but the first seven presidents preside over all these
-quorums and all their presidents. The seventies are special witnesses
-for the Lord in all the world,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn115"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn115">115</a>]</sup> and are especially chosen to preach
-the gospel abroad; the responsibility of declaring the great <span class="pagenum"><a name="p345"></a>{345}</span>
-message of God unto the world rests upon them particularly, laboring,
-of course, under the direction of the twelve; and the twelve are to
-call upon the seventy in preference to any others when they have need
-of assistance to fill the calls for preaching and administering the
-gospel.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn116"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn116">116</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> We have spoken of these three quorums being equal in
-authority; but every decision made by either of them, in order to make
-such decision of the same power or validity one with the other, must
-be by unanimous voice of the respective quorums; that is every member
-in each quorum must be agreed to its decisions, or such decisions are
-not entitled to the same blessings as the decisions of the quorum
-of the first presidency. When circumstances render it impossible to
-be otherwise, a majority may form a quorum.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn117"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn117">117</a>]</sup> The decisions of
-these quorums of course are to be made in righteousness, in holiness
-and lowliness of heart. If so made there is no appeal from their
-decision; but in case that any decision of these quorums is made in
-unrighteousness, it may then be brought before a general assembly of
-the several quorums of the priesthood which constitute the spiritual
-authorities of the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Patriarchs.</b>&mdash;These officers hold the keys of blessings in
-the church. The order of this priesthood was confirmed to be handed
-down from father to son, and rightly belongs to the literal descendants
-of the chosen seed, to whom the promises were made.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn118"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn118">118</a>]</sup> There is one
-general and a number of local patriarchs in the church. The first is
-patriarch to the whole church, and he may minister in any branch or
-stake in it, his jurisdiction in blessing the people being co-extensive
-with the church. He holds the keys of the patriarchal blessings upon
-the heads of all the Lord's people. And whomsoever he blesses shall
-be blessed, and whomsoever he curses shall be cursed; and whatsoever
-he binds on earth shall be bound in <span class="pagenum"><a name="p346"></a>{346}</span> heaven; and whatsoever he
-looses on earth shall be loosed in heaven.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn119"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn119">119</a>]</sup> He holds the sealing
-blessings of the church, "even the Holy Spirit of promise," whereby
-men are sealed up unto the day of redemption; that they may not fall,
-notwithstanding the hour of temptation that may come upon them.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn120"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn120">120</a>]</sup>
-The local patriarchs referred to above are patriarchs appointed and
-ordained by the apostles to hold and exercise the powers of giving
-patriarchal blessings to the Saints within the branches and stakes of
-Zion in which they are appointed to minister in this calling, but they
-are not to minister outside of their respective districts. Hence they
-call them local patriarchs. They possess the same powers in blessing
-within the district where they are appointed to labor as the general
-patriarch of the church does in his wider sphere.
-</p>
-<p><b>11. High Priests.</b>&mdash;The quorums of high priests are designed to
-qualify those who shall be appointed standing presidents over different
-stakes in Zion, and abroad.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn121"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn121">121</a>]</sup> They may travel and preach the gospel
-if they choose, for high priests have power to preach and administer
-all the ordinances of the gospel; but their calling is more especially
-to preside. To them belongs the sphere of presidency of government in
-the church. From these quorums, so far as the most suitable men can
-be found in them, are chosen men to act as bishops&mdash;where no literal
-descendant of Aaron can be found,&mdash;the bishops' counselors; presidents
-of stakes and their counselors; and also high counselors. When men
-more suitable for these positions are found in other quorums of the
-priesthood, then they are ordained high priests, and appointed to the
-presiding positions enumerated. In every stake there is a high priests'
-quorum, presided over by a president and two counselors. There is no
-specific number necessary to form a quorum of high priests, the quorum
-includes all high priests within a stake or branch where it exists, be
-they <span class="pagenum"><a name="p347"></a>{347}</span> many or few. The quorum organization is for convenience,
-for discipline, and for training its members in the art of government.
-Since to the high priests belongs the sphere of government, we know of
-no position in the church which calls for higher qualities of heart
-and mind than that of high priests. It is an office that requires the
-combination of wisdom and executive ability, a combination the rarest
-among men. The world has had untold thousands of learned men and
-orators, and multitudes of men with special great gifts; but it has had
-comparatively few blessed with that combination of gifts which makes
-men successful rulers; and yet those qualities which make men rulers
-are the qualities to be looked for and developed in high priests.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. Elders.</b>&mdash;Elder is the lowest office in the Melchisedek
-Priesthood. It is an office that is an appendage to the Melchisedek
-Priesthood.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn122"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn122">122</a>]</sup> Yet the Elder has the power to preach the gospel,
-baptize, lay on hands for the Holy Ghost, administer the sacrament, and
-preside when there is no high priest present.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn123"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn123">123</a>]</sup> Ninety-six Elders
-constitute a quorum.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn124"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn124">124</a>]</sup> The quorum is presided over by a president
-and two counselors, whose duty it is to instruct them in the duties of
-their office. There may be any number of quorums of Elders in a branch
-or stake of Zion, as there is no limit whatsoever in the revelations.
-The elders constitute a standing ministry in Zion and her stakes.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn125"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn125">125</a>]</sup>
-They are not under obligations to travel abroad as the seventies are;
-but may be called upon to preside from time to time as circumstances
-may require.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn126"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn126">126</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Presidencies in the Aaronic Priesthood.</b>&mdash;The Aaronic
-priesthood, as already remarked,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn127"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn127">127</a>]</sup> has to do more especially with
-the temporal affairs of the church; and the general <span class="pagenum"><a name="p348"></a>{348}</span> presidency
-of it is the presiding bishopric of the church. The local bishops in
-like manner preside over the Aaronic priesthood within their respective
-districts. The powers, rights, duties and responsibilities of the
-bishops have been treated at some length in Section III, Part IV, under
-the caption THE BISHOPRIC, and to the paragraphs on that subject the
-student is directed.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. Priests.</b>&mdash;Forty-eight Priests of the Aaronic order of
-priesthood constitute a quorum. The president of this quorum is to be a
-bishop, for that is one of the duties of his calling to sit in council
-with this quorum and teach the members thereof their duties.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn128"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn128">128</a>]</sup> There
-is no limit to the number of quorums of priests in the church; there
-may be such a quorum in every ward or branch.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. Teachers.</b>&mdash;Twenty-four Teachers constitute a quorum. They
-are presided over by a president and two counselors, who are to teach
-them the duties of their office.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn129"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn129">129</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>16. Deacons</b>&mdash;Twelve deacons form a quorum. The quorum is presided
-over by a president and two counselors, who are to instruct them in
-the duties of their office.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn130"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn130">130</a>]</sup> The offices of teacher and deacon are
-appendages<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn131"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn131">131</a>]</sup> to the Aaronic priesthood, as the office of elder and
-bishop are appendages to the Melchisedek priesthood.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn132"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn132">132</a>]</sup> What is meant
-by appendage to the priesthood is an addition to the regular quorums
-of the priesthood. When so added they become part of the organization
-but in a subordinate way. Then elders may assist high priests in their
-duties when called upon, and may officiate in their stead when there is
-no high priest present; but when the high priest is present the elder
-has no right to act in his stead unless called upon. The teacher may
-assist the priest in his duties, as the deacon may assist the teacher
-in his duty,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn133"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn133">133</a>]</sup> but <span class="pagenum"><a name="p349"></a>{349}</span> in that event the lesser quorums act in
-subordination to the ones they are authorized to assist. They were
-quorums added to the regular organization of the priesthood, when the
-duties were so multiplied that the higher and regular quorums could
-not discharge them. By creating these appendages to the priesthood men
-could be called into requisition whose wisdom and experience would
-not justify placing upon them all the authority with the accompanying
-responsibility of the higher offices of the priesthood.
-</p>
-<p><b>17. Territorial Division of the Church.</b>&mdash;The church in relation
-to the territory it occupies, for convenience in government, is divided
-into stakes of Zion, wards and branches.
-</p>
-<p><em>I. Stakes</em>.&mdash;A stake of Zion is a division of the church territorially
-that embraces several wards and branches. There is no set number of
-wards or branches necessary to constitute a stake. That is arranged
-according to convenience. The stake is presided over by a president,
-who is a high priest, assisted by two other high priests as counselors.
-They constitute the presidency of the stake, and preside over the
-organizations in that stake much in the same way that the president of
-the church presides over the entire church; but is subject of course to
-the general authorities of the church.
-</p>
-<p>In each stake is a standing high council, over which the presidency
-of the stake&mdash;or the president or either one of the counselors, when
-circumstances render it impossible or inconvenient for all to be
-present&mdash;preside. This forms the highest judicial tribunal in the stake.
-</p>
-<p>One or more patriarchs are appointed to confer upon the people
-patriarchal blessings within the stake.
-</p>
-<p>The high priests are organized into a quorum with a presidency over
-them as already explained.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn134"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn134">134</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>The elders are organized into one or more quorums, according <span class="pagenum"><a name="p350"></a>{350}</span> as
-they are numerous enough for one or a number of quorums;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn135"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn135">135</a>]</sup> and with
-the high priests constitute the standing ministry in the stake.
-</p>
-<p><em>II. Wards</em>.&mdash;The stakes are divided into ecclesiastical wards,
-presided over by a bishopric, consisting of a bishop aided by two
-high priests as counselors unless the bishop is a literal descendant
-of Aaron, in which event he has authority to act as bishop without
-counselors.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn136"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn136">136</a>]</sup> The bishopric has a direct general presidency over the
-quorums of the lesser priesthood in his ward; and presides even over
-those holding the higher priesthood as members of his ward; but not
-over the quorums of the higher priesthood as quorums. The bishopric
-of a ward, like the bishopric of the church, has to do chiefly with
-temporal affairs; but in nearly all cases, in fact, so far as we know,
-in all cases at present in the church, the bishops are high priests
-acting in that capacity; and since in acting as bishops they do not
-lose their position as high priests they have a right to minister in
-both temporal and spiritual affairs. It may be well to remark, however,
-in passing, that wherein bishops do take the lead in spiritual concerns
-they do it by virtue of the high priesthood which they hold, which is
-the proper authority to act in spiritual matters.
-</p>
-<p>The ward officers consist of a quorum of priests, of teachers and of
-deacons. Their powers and duties have already been explained.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn137"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn137">137</a>]</sup> They
-labor under the direction of the bishop, and are the standing ministers
-within the ward, to be with and watch over the church to see that each
-member thereof does his duty and that no iniquity is allowed to creep
-into the church, to corrupt it. At present in many wards there are not
-enough men to fill up the quorums of the lesser priesthood, and members
-of the high priesthood are frequently found officiating as teachers,
-etc.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p351"></a>{351}</span> Each ward is divided up into teachers' districts, and two
-teachers appointed to take charge of each district, and visit every
-family and member within it, to see that all are doing their duty;
-that they live, so far as may be, in peace with all men; that they are
-prayerful; diligent in attending public worship; and that they are
-honest, sober and hold no hardness against their neighbors.
-</p>
-<p><em>III. Branches</em>.&mdash;Branches are organizations established chiefly out
-in the world where there are no regularly organized stakes. The elders
-while abroad on missions in order to preserve in the faith those who
-receive the gospel, organize branches, set apart elders or priests
-to preside, and also ordain as many other elders, priests, teachers
-and deacons to assist the president of the branch as may be deemed
-necessary. These officers discharge the same duties in a branch that
-they would in a fully organized ward. Branches are also sometimes
-organized in outlying districts of large wards where there are not
-enough people to justify a complete ward organization, and yet the
-district is too far removed from the ward to permit the members living
-there to enjoy the advantages of the adjacent ward organization. In
-such an event the branch is usually placed under the care of the
-neighboring ward.
-</p>
-<p><b>18. Helps in Government.</b>&mdash;In addition to these regular and direct
-means of ecclesiastical government in the church, there are also "helps
-in government," or appendages to the church organization. The chief of
-these are:
-</p>
-<p><em>I. Female Relief Societies</em>.&mdash;A woman's association organized in each
-ward to relieve the poor in their distress, and visit the sick and
-afflicted.
-</p>
-<p><em>II. Sunday Schools</em>.&mdash;In every ward also is a Sunday School, in which
-the young are taught in the gospel and educated in church discipline.
-</p>
-<p><em>III. Y. M. and Y. L. M. I. A.</em>&mdash;In nearly all wards also are Young
-Men's and Young Ladies' Mutual Improvement Associations <span class="pagenum"><a name="p352"></a>{352}</span> for the
-instruction of the young in theology, science, history and literature;
-and, in fact, in all things that tend to the development and refinement
-of the mind of man; but the main object of these organizations is to
-establish the young of both sexes in a knowledge of the truth of the
-gospel.
-</p>
-<p><em>IV. Primary Associations</em>.&mdash;Primary Associations are ward
-organizations for juveniles too young to be connected with the
-Improvement Associations, and were established to train the young in
-such moral precepts and conduct as are suitable to their years.
-</p>
-<p><b>19. The Church Judiciary System.</b>&mdash;So long as men are imperfect
-just so long will difficulties and misunderstandings arise among
-them. And these things will beget bitterness of feeling, enmities and
-animosities unbecoming those striving to be saints; and hence the
-church must be purged of these things. Moreover, although man by nature
-is a religious creature, he is prone to be forgetful of religious duty;
-and unless a wholesome church discipline be enforced he is liable to
-become neglectful of his religious obligations. To settle difficulties,
-then, which may arise between members on the one hand, and to enforce
-church discipline on the other, there exists in the church an
-ecclesiastical judiciary system, that is most admirably adapted to
-answer the purposes for which it exists.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> First, as to the settlement of difficulties arising between
-members of the church. The law of the Lord requires that if a brother
-or sister offend another, the one offended should go alone to the
-one who gave offense and tell him his fault; if he repents and seeks
-forgiveness, and makes restitution, then the one offended must forgive
-his brother and become reconciled. In the event of the offender being
-stubborn and impenitent; or maintaining that he has done no wrong, then
-the one aggrieved should take others with him, one or more,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn138"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn138">138</a>]</sup> and
-in their presence, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p353"></a>{353}</span> and with whatever assistance they can render,
-seek justice of and reconciliation with his brother. If the offender
-refuse to make restitution and reconciliation, then the matter may be
-taken to the bishop's court for settlement.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn139"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn139">139</a>]</sup> Here the matter is put
-on trial, the statements of the respective parties received, and the
-testimony of witnesses admitted and a decision rendered by the bishop
-according to his understanding of the case.
-</p>
-<p><b>21.</b> In the event of either party being dissatisfied with the
-bishop's decision, they may appeal to the high council of the stake.
-But if dissatisfied parties neither take an appeal to the high council
-nor comply with the bishop's decision, then they stand in danger of
-losing their fellowship in the church, for if men will not respect the
-decisions of the ecclesiastical courts, then the officers thereof must
-vindicate their decrees and make the courts respected by punishing
-those who would treat them with contempt.
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> If the case be appealed to the high council of the stake, it
-is heard on its merits in the manner already described in section four
-of this part, under the caption HIGH COUNCILS, which see. The parties
-or either of them may appeal to the first presidency of the church,
-who will direct in what manner the case shall be disposed of; but the
-parties must abide that decision or lose their standing in the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>23.</b> Now as to those who neglect their duties; who do not so much
-offend against individuals as against the church, by failing to live up
-to the regulations it prescribes for its members. It is especially the
-duty of the teachers, priests and bishopric to labor very assiduously
-to preserve their people in the faith, and by patient watchfulness;
-by teaching and admonition; by warning and reproof, when necessary,
-keep alive the spirit of the gospel in the hearts of the saints. If,
-however, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p354"></a>{354}</span> in spite of all these efforts to preserve the church
-members in an active performance of their duties men will grow careless
-and transgress the law of the Lord, they are amenable to the church
-courts and may be tried for their fellowship. In that case they would
-have the same rights in the courts and the same rights to appeal as in
-the case of difficulty between members.
-</p>
-<p><b>24.</b> The only real punishment which is within the power of
-the church to inflict is to disfellowship or excommunicate its
-members. In the former case the offender is merely suspended from the
-privileges of church communion; this punishment may be inflicted by
-the bishop, until satisfaction is made by the offender. In the latter
-case&mdash;excommunication&mdash;the person absolutely loses his membership in
-the church, together with all the priesthood he holds; and if he ever
-regains a standing it will be by baptism and confirmation as at the
-first.
-</p>
-<p><b>25.</b> Of course to those who hold lightly their standing in the
-church, suspension of fellowship, or excommunication has no especial
-terror; but to the man of faith, whose full hopes of eternal life
-with all its advantages stand or fall with his standing in the church
-of Christ, no greater punishment can threaten him. He remembers that
-the Lord hath said: "Wo unto them who are cut off from my church,
-for the same are overcome of the world."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn140"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn140">140</a>]</sup> And, again: "Inasmuch
-as ye are cut off by transgressions, ye cannot escape the buffetings
-of Satan, until the day of redemption."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn141"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn141">141</a>]</sup> The punishment, then, of
-excommunication is a serious one in the estimation of the faithful; and
-since man in his imperfect state is influenced to righteousness by his
-fear of punishment, as well as by his hope of reward, the punishment of
-excommunication has a wholesome effect in preserving the discipline of
-the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>26. Conferences of the Church.</b>&mdash;There are two general <span class="pagenum"><a name="p355"></a>{355}</span>
-conferences of the church each year, one convening on the 6th of April,
-and the other on the 6th of October. Conferences are convened every
-three months in all the stakes of Zion; and in the respective wards
-once a year. The chief purposes of holding these conferences, aside
-from the giving of instructions by the general authorities, who are
-usually present, is to sustain by vote the officers of the church. The
-principle of common consent operating in the church government has
-already been explained;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn142"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn142">142</a>]</sup> and it only remains to say that the means
-by which this "common" consent is expressed&mdash;voting to sustain those
-proposed for the several offices&mdash;virtually amounts to an election. The
-elective principle in government or in societies, is not only carried
-out by direct means; it may be carried out by indirect means. It is
-just as much a fact under the form of popular acceptance as of popular
-choice.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn143"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn143">143</a>]</sup> It is in the form of popular acceptance that the elective
-principle exists in the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>27. Reflections.</b>&mdash;If a good system for the organization and
-administration of authority, and an equally good system for the
-security of liberty is the test of a good plan of government, then this
-ecclesiastical government we have described must be recognized as of
-the very highest order. It is elaborate in organization, but simple in
-its operations. There is in it a most excellent assemblage of means
-to transmit the will of the central power into all departments of
-the society; and, on the other hand, an equally efficient assemblage
-of means for transmitting the response of the society to the central
-organized power. And as the whole government exists by the common
-consent of the church members, and elections by popular acceptance
-are frequent, the liberties of the people composing the church are
-secured. Where these facts exist, the highest order of government
-must result. And we may say, in conclusion, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p356"></a>{356}</span> that the formation
-of a free ecclesiastical government on so extensive a scale is one of
-the most interesting problems of humanity. "It requires such refined
-prudence [to form such a government], such comprehensive knowledge,
-and such perspicacious sagacity, united with such almost illimitable
-powers of combination, that it is nearly in vain to hope for qualities
-so rare to be congregated in a solitary mind."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn144"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn144">144</a>]</sup> Indeed it is in
-vain to hope for these powers in an uninspired mind. It is a task too
-difficult for mere human ingenuity. And when it is remembered that
-Joseph Smith's knowledge of government and history in his early life
-was exceedingly limited; and that this system of church government
-was given piece-meal&mdash;as will be seen by its gradual development as
-portrayed in this work<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn145"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn145">145</a>]</sup>&mdash;it is absurd to accredit it to a boy's
-native ingenuity. It was not a system marked out in theory and then
-organized. On the contrary, line was given upon line, precept upon
-precept. An officer was given today and his duties explained; another
-given at another time, when the development of the work required his
-services, and his duties explained. After a lapse of years men began
-to discover that these fragments of government constituted a most
-elaborate yet simple system&mdash;a consistent whole, based on the highest
-and truest principles of government; a system that while it was suited
-to the conditions of the church in the earlier years of its existence,
-yet is capable of answering the needs of the organization should it
-be so expanded as to fill the earth. This is a fact as astonishing to
-the world as it is gratifying to the Saints. The church is its own
-witness that the mind which fashioned it is divine. It is too great in
-its organization, and yet too simple in its administration to be the
-creation of an uninspired mind, especially of a mind so narrow in its
-knowledge and inexperienced in affairs related to government as that
-of Joseph Smith. No, neither the hand of man <span class="pagenum"><a name="p357"></a>{357}</span> nor the mind of
-man created it; it came from God, and bears the impress of its divine
-creation.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What is priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>2. What is the spirit of the government by the priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>3. For what was the church instituted?
-</p>
-<p>4. What powers and authority appertains unto it?
-</p>
-<p>5. How is the priesthood divided?
-</p>
-<p>6. Why was the higher priesthood named after Melchisedek?
-</p>
-<p>7. What are the powers of the Melchisedek priesthood&mdash;of the Aaronic?
-</p>
-<p>8. Enumerate the officers of the respective priesthoods.
-</p>
-<p>9. What constitutes the first presidency of the church?
-</p>
-<p>10. What are the rights and powers of the first presidency?
-</p>
-<p>11. What are the rights and powers of the twelve apostles?
-</p>
-<p>12. What is the mission and calling of the seventies?
-</p>
-<p>13. What are the duties and the special calling of the patriarchs?
-</p>
-<p>14. What are the powers and special duties of the high priests&mdash;of
-elders?
-</p>
-<p>15. What can you say of presidencies in the Aaronic priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>16. What are the privileges and duties of priests?&mdash;of teachers?&mdash;of
-deacons?
-</p>
-<p>17. What is the significance of "appendage" in connection with
-priesthood?
-</p>
-<p>18. What can you say of the territorial divisions of the church?
-</p>
-<p>19. Describe the stake organization&mdash;the organization of the ward&mdash;of
-the branch.
-</p>
-<p>20. What institutions are recognized as helps in government?
-</p>
-<p>21. What can you say of the church judiciary system?
-</p>
-<p>22. State how difficulties are to be settled in the church.
-</p>
-<p>23. What are the means of punishment legitimately within the right of
-the church to exercise?
-</p>
-<p>24. What can you say of the effectiveness of church punishment?
-</p>
-<p>25. What regular conferences are held by the church?
-</p>
-<p>26. What can be said of the church as an ecclesiastical system of
-government?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p358"></a>{358}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VI.
-</h2>
-<p>Having paused to consider the church as a system of ecclesiastical
-government, it now remains for us to return to the historical
-development of the work of the Lord as connected with the dispensation
-of the fullness of times.
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Kirtland Temple.</b>&mdash;During the winter of 1835-36 the temple
-at Kirtland was completed. This was the first temple built by the
-church in this dispensation. It was a stone structure, eighty by sixty,
-and fifty feet to the square. At the front was a tower one hundred
-and ten feet high. There were two main halls fifty-five by sixty-five
-feet; four vestries in the front, two on each floor. There was also
-an attic, divided into five rooms. During the winter of 1835-6 a high
-school was conducted in Kirtland by H. M. Hawes, Professor of Greek and
-Latin,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn146"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn146">146</a>]</sup> and the rooms in the attic were used as class rooms and for
-the meetings of the various quorums of the priesthood. [See note 1, end
-of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Dedication of the Temple.</b>&mdash;On Sunday, the 27th of March, 1836,
-the temple was dedicated with imposing ceremonies, beginning early in
-the morning&mdash;eight o'clock&mdash;and continuing all day. As all the Saints
-could not be admitted at once, the Thursday following, March 31st, the
-ceremonies were repeated. The service consisted of singing, prayer,
-preaching, prophesying, speaking in tongues, sustaining the several
-officers of the church by votes of acceptance and confidence, the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p359"></a>{359}</span>
-offering of a special dedicatory prayer,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn147"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn147">147</a>]</sup> partaking of the Lord's
-Supper, rendering the grand shout of Hosanna,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn148"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn148">148</a>]</sup> etc. The Spirit of
-the Lord was poured out in great power upon the Saints, and spiritual
-manifestations were abundant.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Spiritual Manifestations in the Temple.</b>&mdash;Frederick G.
-Williams, counselor in the first presidency, testified that while Elder
-Rigdon was making the opening prayer, an angel entered the window, and
-took a seat between himself and Patriarch Joseph Smith, father of the
-prophet, and remained there during the prayer.
-</p>
-<p>David Whitmer, one of the three especial witnesses to the Book of
-Mormon, also saw angels in the house.
-</p>
-<p>Apostle Brigham Young gave a brief address in tongues.
-</p>
-<p>Apostle David W. Patten, interpreted the address, and gave an
-exhortation in tongues himself.
-</p>
-<p>At a meeting in the evening George A. Smith&mdash;afterwards an apostle and
-counselor to President Brigham Young&mdash;arose and began to prophesy,
-when a noise was heard like the sound of a rushing mighty wind,
-which filled the temple, and all the congregation simultaneously
-arose, being moved upon by an invisible power; many began to speak in
-tongues, and prophesy; others saw glorious visions. The Prophet Joseph
-saw that the temple was filled with angels, which fact he declared
-to the congregation. The people of the neighborhood came running
-together&mdash;hearing an unusual sound within, and seeing a bright light
-like a pillar of fire resting upon the temple&mdash;and were astonished at
-what was transpiring.
-</p>
-<p>Wednesday night&mdash;30th March&mdash;while the meeting in the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p360"></a>{360}</span> temple was
-in charge of the twelve apostles, the brethren continued exhorting,
-prophesying and speaking in tongues all night. The Savior made his
-appearance to some, while angels ministered to others, and it was a
-Pentecost and an endowment long to be remembered.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn149"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn149">149</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Restoration of the Keys of Former Dispensations.</b>&mdash;Sunday, the
-3rd of April, one week following the first dedication services, there
-was a series of most glorious visions and revelations given in the
-temple. After the sacrament was administered to the congregation, the
-curtains dividing the main hall were dropped and the Prophet Joseph and
-Oliver Cowdery retired into the pulpit and bowed in solemn and silent
-prayer. After prayer they both beheld the Lord Jesus Christ standing
-upon the breastwork of the pulpit. He announced himself as the First
-and the Last, the one who liveth and the one who was slain&mdash;their
-advocate with the Father. He declared his acceptance of the temple, and
-promised to appear unto his servants and speak unto them with his own
-voice, if the Saints would but keep his commandments, and not pollute
-the temple, the fame of which he declared should spread to foreign
-lands.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn150"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn150">150</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The Appearing of Moses.</b>&mdash;After this vision closed the heavens
-were again opened and Moses appeared before them and committed unto
-them the keys of the gathering of Israel from the four quarters of the
-earth and the leading of the ten tribes from the land of the north.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn151"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn151">151</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Appearing of Elias.</b>&mdash;Then Elias appeared and committed the
-dispensation of the gospel of Abraham, saying that in them and in their
-seed all generations after them should be blessed.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Appearing of Elijah.</b>&mdash;As soon as the above vision closed,
-another opened before them, and Elijah the Prophet, who was taken to
-heaven without tasting death, stood before them, and said that the
-time had fully come which <span class="pagenum"><a name="p361"></a>{361}</span> Malachi had spoken of, saying, that
-before the great and dreadful day of the Lord should come, he, Elijah,
-would be sent to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, and
-the children to the fathers, lest the whole earth be smitten with a
-curse.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn152"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn152">152</a>]</sup> "Therefore," said Elijah, to Joseph and Oliver, "the keys
-of this dispensation are committed into your hands, and by this ye may
-know that the great and dreadful day of the Lord is near, even at the
-doors."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn153"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn153">153</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Inner Courts of Kirtland Temple.</b>&mdash;There was a peculiarity in
-the arrangement of the inner court which made it more than ordinary
-impressive&mdash;so much so that a sense of sacred awe seemed to rest upon
-all who entered; not only the Saints but strangers also manifested
-a high degree of reverential feeling. Four pulpits stood one above
-another, in the center of the building, from north to south, both on
-the east and west ends; those on the west for the presiding officers
-of the Melchisedek priesthood, and those on the east for the Aaronic:
-and each of these pulpits was separated by curtains of white painted
-canvas, which were let down and drawn up at pleasure. In front of
-each of these two rows of pulpits was a sacrament table for the
-administration of that sacred ordinance. In each corner of the court
-was an elevated pew for the singers, the choir being distributed into
-four compartments. In addition to the pulpit curtains, were others,
-intersecting at right angles, which divided the main ground-floor
-hall into four equal sections, giving to each one half of one set of
-pulpits.&mdash;Eliza R. Snow.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. When was the Kirtland Temple completed?
-</p>
-<p>2. Give a description of it. (Note 1.)
-</p>
-<p>3. For what were the attic rooms used?
-</p>
-<p>4. What branches were taught in the temple school? (Note.)
-</p>
-<p>5. Describe the dedicatory services.
-</p>
-<p>6. State what spiritual manifestations occurred during the dedicatory
-services.
-</p>
-<p>7. Describe the vision of the Savior given to the Prophet Joseph and
-Oliver Cowdery in the temple.
-</p>
-<p>8. Relate the appearing of Moses&mdash;of Elias&mdash;of Elijah.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p362"></a>{362}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VII.
-</h2>
-<p>The appearing of Moses in Kirtland Temple and his restoring the keys
-for the gathering of Israel, marks the inauguration of a mighty work
-within the work of God, in this dispensation, and gives a reality to
-many of the predictions of the ancient prophets. To fully comprehend
-this great work it will be necessary to call the attention of the
-student to the Israelites, and a brief outline of their history.
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Who Are Israel.</b>&mdash;The children of Israel are the descendants
-of Abraham through the loins of Isaac and Jacob, taking their name,
-however, from the last-named patriarch, whose name was changed by an
-angel of the Lord from Jacob to Israel, which means a prince of God.
-Unto Jacob by four wives were born twelve sons&mdash;the heads of the Twelve
-Tribes of Israel. Joseph, Jacob's son by his wife Rachel, being his
-father's favorite son, was hated by his brethren, and without the
-father's knowledge was sold to merchants, who carried him into Egypt.
-His cruel brethren rent his clothing and stained it in blood, then
-taking it to their father represented that his son had been destroyed
-by a wild beast. The Lord was with Joseph in Egypt, and gave him
-favor in the eyes of the rulers of that land, until he became second
-in authority in the kingdom. Having been warned in a dream of an
-approaching famine, some years before it took place, he laid up in
-store an abundance of corn, so that while famine distressed surrounding
-countries there was plenty in Egypt, and thither the sons of Israel
-went to purchase food. Joseph revealed his identity to his brethren,
-became reconciled to them, and sent for his father and all attached to
-his household&mdash;about seventy souls in all&mdash;to <span class="pagenum"><a name="p363"></a>{363}</span> come to him and
-take up their abode in Egypt. This the aged patriarch did, and ended
-his days there.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Israel Enslaved.</b>&mdash;Some time after Joseph's death, there arose
-a king who knew him not, and observing that the Israelites were likely
-to become more numerous than the Egyptians&mdash;since they did not murder
-their offspring either before or at birth, as many among the Egyptians
-did&mdash;this monarch enslaved them and placed task masters over them, and
-by oppression and the destruction of their male offspring sought to
-prevent their increase. Finally the Lord raised up Moses and delivered
-them from bondage amid a splendid display of his Almighty power, and
-eventually settled them in the land of Canaan&mdash;the land he had promised
-unto Abraham as an inheritance&mdash;where they became a mighty nation. [See
-note 1, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Revolt of the Ten Tribes.</b>&mdash;As a nation the Israelites
-reached the zenith of their splendor under the reign of David and
-his son Solomon. At the death of the latter, 975 B. C., the kingdom
-was divided. Ten tribes revolted against the oppression of Solomon's
-successor, his son Rehoboam, and formed the kingdom of Israel, choosing
-for their king Jeroboam, the son of Nebat, one of Solomon's servants.
-The new king&mdash;a man of great valor&mdash;established his capital at Shechem
-[Shek-em], but fifty years afterwards it was removed to Samaria.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The Captivity of Israel&mdash;The Lost Tribes.</b>&mdash;This kingdom of
-Israel continued its existence for about two hundred and fifty years.
-In that time the people may be said to have departed wholly from the
-paths of righteousness, becoming drunken, licentious and idolatrous. So
-the Lord gave them up and Shalmaneser, a noted Assyrian king, made war
-upon them, utterly overcame them and led them captives into Assyria.
-From thence the Lord led many of them away into the northern country,
-where, no man knoweth, and hence they are denominated the Lost Tribes.
-Our reason for saying they were led <span class="pagenum"><a name="p364"></a>{364}</span> away into the north is to
-be found in the fact that many predictions of the prophets plainly
-declare that they shall come from the land of the north, a great
-company, etc.;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn154"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn154">154</a>]</sup> and it must be manifest that they cannot come from
-the land of the north unless they are there. Messiah, when he visited
-the Nephites after his resurrection, plainly told them that the other
-tribes of the house of Israel&mdash;meaning the ten tribes&mdash;the Lord had
-led away out of the land;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn155"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn155">155</a>]</sup> and he also announced his intention of
-visiting them, and commanded the Nephites to make a record of it that a
-knowledge of the existence of these "other tribes" might be made known
-unto the Gentiles when the Nephite records should be revealed to them.
-These "other tribes," Messiah spoke of, he declared not to be of the
-land of America, nor the land of Jerusalem, "neither in any parts of
-that land round about whither I have been to minister."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn156"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn156">156</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>5.</b> The Apocryphal writer Esdras, in relating one of his visions
-describes one of the great characters that figured in those visions
-as calling unto himself a peaceful people. "Those," said the angel
-sent to interpret the vision, "are the tribes which were carried away
-captives out of their own land in the time of Oseas (Hosea) the king,
-whom Salmanaser, the king of the Assyrians, took captive, and crossed
-them beyond the river; so were they brought into another land. But
-they took counsel to themselves, that they would leave the multitude
-of the heathen, and go forth unto a further country where never man
-dwelt, that they there might keep their statutes, which they never
-kept in their own land. And they entered in at the narrow passage of
-the River Euphrates. For the Most High then showed them signs, and
-stayed the springs of the flood till they were passed over. For through
-the country there was great journey, even of a year and a half, and
-the same region is called Arsareth (or Ararah). Then dwelt they there
-until the latter <span class="pagenum"><a name="p365"></a>{365}</span> time, and when they come forth again, the Most
-High shall hold still the springs of the river again, that they may go
-through; therefore sawest thou the multitude peaceable."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn157"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn157">157</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> Whatever doubt may be entertained respecting the writings of
-Esdras, it cannot be denied that in respect to the Ten Tribes and what
-became of them he is in harmony with the statement made by Jesus to
-the Nephites, <em>viz:</em> that the Lord had led them away out of the land.
-The Most High, according to Esdras, showing them signs by staying the
-springs of the flood of the Euphrates, as he will do when the time
-comes for them to return.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn158"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn158">158</a>]</sup> He is also in harmony with the prophets
-who predict the return of Israel in the last days from the land in
-which they have been hidden by the Lord.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn159"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn159">159</a>]</sup> [See note 2, end of
-section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>7. The Samaritans.</b>&mdash;The country inhabited by the kingdom of
-Israel&mdash;the north half of Palestine&mdash;was taken possession of by people
-sent from Babylon, Persia and other countries by the Assyrian king,
-and these strangers, intermarrying with the few Israelites remaining
-in the land, after the main body of the people had been led away into
-captivity, became the mixed people called Samaritans, so heartily
-despised by the Jews.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. The Kingdom of Judah.</b>&mdash;In the civil dissensions which divided
-the Israelites at the death of Solomon, the tribe of Benjamin remained
-loyal to Judah, and may be said to have almost lost its identity in the
-kingdom which with Judah it formed after the revolt of the ten tribes.
-It was a stormy career that the kingdom of Judah experienced after
-the said revolt. It was subject in turn to the Egyptians, Assyrians,
-and Babylonians. In consequence of treachery to the last named power,
-Nebuchadnezzar, king of Babylon, about 586 B. C.,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn160"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn160">160</a>]</sup> <span class="pagenum"><a name="p366"></a>{366}</span> besieged
-Jerusalem, reduced the city to the utmost extremity, captured the king,
-put out his eyes and led him and most of the Jews captive to Babylon.
-The walls of the city were thrown down, the temple rifled of its sacred
-vessels and the city left desolate to be inhabited by strangers. The
-captivity of the Jews in Babylon lasted about seventy years.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn161"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn161">161</a>]</sup> The
-Babylonians in the meantime had been overcome of the Persians, under
-Cyrus the Great, who in the first year of his reign permitted the Jews
-to return and rebuild the city and its walls.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> The Jews, however, never wholly regained their independence;
-being located between Syria and Egypt, their country was held in
-subjection as a province to one or the other of them according as now
-one and now the other was successful in the unhappy wars which broke
-out between those nations. Finally Palestine became a province of Rome,
-but the people were allowed the freedom to worship God according to the
-teachings of Moses and their prophets. This was their condition at the
-birth and during the lifetime of Messiah.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn162"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn162">162</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>10.</b> About forty years after the crucifixion of the Christ, the
-Jews foolishly rebelled against the Roman authority, which brought on a
-terrible war. During the siege of Jerusalem, which lasted six months,
-over one million of the wretched inhabitants, according to Josephus,
-perished of the famine. The remainder were either driven into exile
-or sold into slavery. The city was razed to the ground, the temple
-destroyed, and in their eager search for gold the Romans tore up the
-very foundation, and ploughed up the site, so that literally there was
-not left one stone to stand upon another that was not thrown down.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn163"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn163">163</a>]</sup>
-Since the destruction of their city and the overthrow of their nation,
-the Jews have been scattered among all nations, despised, hated,
-oppressed, until all the evil that was prophesied of by Moses<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn164"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn164">164</a>]</sup>
-concerning them&mdash;when they should turn away <span class="pagenum"><a name="p367"></a>{367}</span> from God and his
-law&mdash;came upon them. [See note 3, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>11. Miscellaneous Dispersions.</b>&mdash;Besides the tribes of Israel that
-were thus dispersed, there were families of various tribes whom the
-Lord led away at different times into distant lands. Such as the family
-of Lehi of the tribe of Manasseh; and that of Ishmael of the tribe of
-Ephraim, both of which families, together with one Zoram&mdash;of what tribe
-he was is not known&mdash;the Lord led to the continent of America. The
-Lord also led to the same land a colony that departed from Jerusalem
-immediately after its destruction by king Nebuchadnezzar, in the sixth
-century B. C., among whom was one Mulek, one of the sons of King
-Zedekiah, whose people founded the city of Zarahemla, and afterwards
-united with the Nephites.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. The Blood of Israel Sprinkled Among all Nations.</b>&mdash;The Jews
-since the destruction of their city and nation by the Romans, have been
-scattered among all nations, but they have succeeded in a remarkable
-manner in preserving their identity as a distinct people. Still it is
-not to be doubted that there are instances where Jews have married and
-intermarried with the Gentiles among whom they lived, until they lost
-their identity, and thus the blood of Israel, unrecognized, is in the
-veins of many supposed to be Gentiles.
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> The tribes of Israel sent into Babylon, Assyria and the
-surrounding countries in like manner inter-mingled their blood with the
-people of those nations. Moreover, there are good reasons to believe
-that in that exodus of the ten tribes from Assyria to the north, many
-became discouraged and stopped by the way. Others unable to prosecute
-the journey also abandoned the expedition, and these that thus halted,
-uniting and intermarrying with the original inhabitants of the land,
-constituted those prolific races that over-ran the western division of
-the Roman Empire.
-</p>
-<p><b>14.</b> In this manner the blood of Israel has been sprinkled <span class="pagenum"><a name="p368"></a>{368}</span>
-almost among all the nations of the earth, until the word of the Lord
-which says, "I will sift the house of Israel among all nations,"<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn165"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn165">165</a>]</sup>
-has been literally fulfilled.
-</p>
-<p><b>15. The Gathering of Israel.</b>&mdash;Notwithstanding Israel and Judah
-have thus been scattered, their temple destroyed and their chief city
-trodden down of the Gentiles, the remnant of this favored people of
-God, according to the promises of the Lord, are to be gathered together
-again and established upon the lands promised to their forefathers.
-The keys necessary for the inauguration of this work were given to the
-Prophet Joseph by Moses on the occasion of his appearing to him and to
-Oliver Cowdery in the Kirtland Temple, and the work has begun. I think
-it proper here to give some of the passages of scripture which promise
-the gathering of Israel.
-</p>
-<p><b>16. From the Bible.</b>&mdash;Hear the word of the Lord, O, ye nations,
-and declare it in the isles afar off, and say, He that scattered Israel
-will gather him, and keep him as a shepherd doth his flock. For the
-Lord hath redeemed Jacob, and ransomed him from the hand of him that
-was stronger than he. Therefore they shall come and sing in the height
-of Zion, and shall flow together to the goodness of the Lord, for
-wheat, and for wine, and for oil, and for the young of the flock and of
-the herd: and their soul shall be as a watered garden, and they shall
-not sorrow any more at all.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn166"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn166">166</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>Therefore, behold the days come, saith the Lord, that it shall no more
-be said, the Lord liveth that brought up the children of Israel out of
-the land of Egypt; but the Lord liveth that brought up the children of
-Israel from the land of the north, and from all the lands whither he
-had driven them: and I will bring them again into their land that I
-gave unto their fathers.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn167"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn167">167</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>And it shall come to pass in that day<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn168"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn168">168</a>]</sup> that the Lord shall set his
-hand again the second time to recover the remnant of his people, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p369"></a>{369}</span>
-which shall be left from Assyria, and from Egypt, and from Pathos, and
-from Cush, and from Elam, and from Shinar, and from Hamath, and from
-the islands of the sea. And he shall set up an ensign for the nations,
-and shall assemble the outcasts of Israel, and gather together the
-dispersed of Judah from the four corners of the earth. The envy also
-of Ephraim shall depart, and the adversaries of Judah shall be cut
-off. Ephraim shall not envy Judah, and Judah shall not vex Ephraim. *
-* * And there shall be an highway for the remnant of his people, which
-shall be left from Assyria; like as it was to Israel in the day that he
-came up out of the land of Egypt.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn169"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn169">169</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>Turn, O backsliding children, saith the Lord; for I am married unto
-you: and I will take you one of a city, and two of a family, and I will
-bring you to Zion: and I will give you pastors according to my own
-heart, and they shall feed you with knowledge and understanding. And
-it shall come to pass when ye be multiplied and increased in the land
-in those days, saith the Lord, they shall say no more the ark of the
-covenant of the Lord: neither shall it come to mind. * * * At that time
-they shall call Jerusalem the throne of the Lord; and all the nations
-shall be gathered unto it, to the name of the Lord, to Jerusalem. * * *
-In those days the house of Judah shall walk with the house of Israel,
-and they shall come together out of the land of the north, to the land
-that I have given for an inheritance unto your fathers.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn170"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn170">170</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>17. From the Book of Mormon.</b>&mdash;But behold thus saith the Lord God:
-when the day cometh that they [the Jews&mdash;see context] shall believe in
-me, that I am Christ, then have I covenanted with their fathers that
-they shall be restored in the flesh, upon the earth, unto the lands
-of their inheritance. And it shall come to pass that they shall be
-gathered in from their long dispersion, from the isles of the sea, and
-from the four parts of the earth; and the nations of the Gentiles shall
-be great in the eyes of me, saith God, in carrying them forth to the
-lands of their inheritance.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn171"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn171">171</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>18. From the Doctrine and Covenants.</b>&mdash;And the Lord, even the
-Savior, shall stand in the midst of his people, and shall reign <span class="pagenum"><a name="p370"></a>{370}</span>
-over all flesh. And they who are in the north countries shall come in
-remembrance before the Lord, and their prophets shall hear his voice,
-and shall no longer stay themselves, and they shall smite the rocks,
-and the ice shall flow down at their presence. And an highway shall be
-cast up in the midst of the great deep. Their enemies shall become a
-prey unto them, and in the barren deserts there shall come forth pools
-or living water; and the parched ground shall no longer be a thirsty
-land. And they shall bring forth their rich treasures unto the children
-of Ephraim, my servants. And the boundaries of the everlasting hills
-shall tremble at their presence. And there shall they fall down and be
-crowned with glory, even in Zion, by the hands of the servants of the
-Lord, even the children of Ephraim; and they shall be filled with songs
-of everlasting joy. Behold, this is the blessing of the Everlasting
-God upon the tribes of Israel, and the richer blessing upon the head
-of Ephraim and his fellows. And they also of the tribe of Judah, after
-their pain, shall be sanctified in holiness before the Lord to dwell in
-his presence day and night, for ever and for ever.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn172"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn172">172</a>]</sup> [See note 4,
-end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>19. The Preparatory Work to the Return of the Ten Tribes.</b>&mdash;This
-is enough in a general way upon the return of the Ten Tribes from the
-north and the return of the Jews to Jerusalem. Yet there is another
-part of this work of gathering Israel that calls for our attention.
-We have described the manner in which the blood of Israel has been
-sprinkled among the Gentile nations. The people in whose veins that
-blood runs must be gathered as well as the Jews and the Ten Tribes;
-for the promise of gathering extends to all the children of Israel,
-in all the countries whither they have been scattered. Moreover, it
-would seem that the Ten Tribes are to come to Zion and sing in the
-heights thereof, and there be crowned with glory by the hands of the
-servants of the Lord, the children of Ephraim.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn173"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn173">173</a>]</sup> The gathering of
-Israel scattered among the Gentile nations will have made considerable
-progress, and Zion will be built up before the Ten Tribes will be
-brought from the north. This <span class="pagenum"><a name="p371"></a>{371}</span> work of gathering Israel from among
-the Gentile nations is the work that the Church of Christ is now
-engaged in. The Lord has revealed the location of Zion;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn174"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn174">174</a>]</sup> it has
-been dedicated for the gathering together of his people Israel. Even
-the temple site is known and dedicated, and the sure word of God given
-that the temple shall be built in this generation.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn175"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn175">175</a>]</sup> The enemies
-of the church drove the Saints away form the consecrated land, it is
-true;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn176"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn176">176</a>]</sup> but their absence will only be temporary; the time will come
-when they will return and fulfill all that the Lord hath decreed in
-relation to Zion and its redemption.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> Meantime they are building up stakes of Zion in the Rocky
-Mountain valleys, and in this way are fulfilling predictions of the
-ancient prophets. Isaiah hath it written, that "In the last days the
-house of the Lord shall be established in the tops of the mountains; *
-* * and all nations shall flow unto it. And many people shall go and
-say, Come ye and let us go up to the mountain of the Lord, to the house
-of the God of Jacob; and he will teach us of his ways, and we will walk
-in his paths: for out of Zion shall go forth the law, and the word of
-the Lord from Jerusalem."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn177"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn177">177</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>21.</b> It is remarkable how minutely the Latter-day Saints are
-fulfilling the terms of this prophecy:
-</p>
-<p>I. They are building the temples of God in the tops of the mountains,
-so that the house of the Lord is truly where Isaiah saw it would be.
-</p>
-<p>II. The Saints engaged in this work are people gathered from nearly
-all the nations under heaven, so that all nations are flowing unto the
-house of the Lord in the top of the mountains. [See note 5, end of
-section.]
-</p>
-<p>III. The people who receive the gospel in foreign lands joyfully say to
-their relatives and friends, "Come ye, and let us go <span class="pagenum"><a name="p372"></a>{372}</span> up to the
-house of the Lord, and he will teach us of his ways and we will walk in
-his paths."
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> The manner in which the Saints are gathered, one here and one
-there, one from this city and one from another, fulfills the prophecy
-of Jeremiah, who, in speaking of this great gathering of Israel,
-represents the Lord as saying: "I will take you one of a city, and two
-of a family, and I will bring you to Zion; and I will give you pastors
-according to mine heart, which shall feed you with knowledge and
-understanding."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn178"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn178">178</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>23.</b> The student should be informed how it is we know the
-Saints are of the house of Israel. First, they fulfill the terms of
-the prophecies written about the gathering of Israel by the ancient
-prophets, as seen above; second, the patriarchs of the church, ordained
-and set apart to that calling by the apostles, in giving blessings to
-the Saints declare them to be of the house of Israel, and mainly of the
-tribe of Ephraim. [See note 6, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>24. Object of Gathering.</b>&mdash;Another object of this gathering of
-the people of God from among the Gentile nations&mdash;which with their
-wickedness, spiritual blindness, and confusion constitute Babylon&mdash;is
-that they may not partake of the sins of Babylon, and that they might
-escape the judgments and plagues decreed by God against the wickedness
-thereof. The Apostle John prophesies of this. In those visions given to
-him on the Isle of Patmos, showing him things that would take place in
-the future, he heard a voice from heaven saying: "Come out of her [that
-is out of Babylon], my people; that ye be not partakers of her sins,
-and that ye receive not of her plagues. For her sins have reached unto
-heaven, and God hath remembered her iniquities. * * * Therefore shall
-her plagues come in one day, death and mourning, and famine; for strong
-is the Lord God who judgeth her."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn179"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn179">179</a>]</sup> The Saints are gathering out of
-Babylon that they may escape these threatened judgments.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p373"></a>{373}</span> <b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Settlement of Israel in Canaan.</b>&mdash;Of the twelve tribes of
-Israel, nine and a half were located to the west and two and a half to
-the east of the Jordan. In this region they had been led by Joshua,
-Moses being only permitted to catch a distant glimpse of the promised
-land. After the death of Joshua, followed the period of Judges, which
-lasted about five centuries. The last of the judges was Samuel, who,
-when the people demanded a king, anointed Saul, 1095, B.C.&mdash;Anderson's
-Gen. Hist.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Departure of the Ten Tribes for the North</b>&mdash;They [the ten
-tribes] determined to go to a country "where never man dwelt," that
-they might be free from all contaminating influences. That country
-could only be found in the north. Asia was already the seat of a
-comparatively ancient civilizations; Egypt flourished in northern
-Africa; and southern Europe was rapidly filling with the future
-rulers of the world. They had, therefore, no choice but to turn their
-faces northward. The first portion of their journey was not, however,
-north; according to the account of Esdras, they appear to have at
-first moved in the direction of their old home, and it is possible
-that they originally started with the intention of returning thereto,
-or probably in order to deceive the Assyrians, they started as if to
-return to Canaan, and when they crossed the Euphrates, and were out of
-danger from the hosts of the Medes and Persians, then they turned their
-journeying feet toward the polar star. Esdras states that they entered
-in at the narrow passage of the river Euphrates, the Lord staying the
-springs of the flood until they were passed over. The point on the
-river Euphrates at which they crossed would necessarily be in its
-upper portion, as lower down would be too far south for their purpose.
-The upper course of the Euphrates lies among lofty mountains near the
-village of Pastas; it plunges through a gorge formed by precipices
-more than a thousand feet in height and so narrow that it is bridged
-at the top; it shortly afterwards enters the plain of Mesopotamia. How
-accurately this portion of the river answers to the description of
-Esdras of the "Narrows," where the Israelites crossed!&mdash;Reynolds' Are
-we of Israel? pp. 26-27.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Final Overthrow of Judah.</b>&mdash;According to Josephus (De Bell.
-Jud. vi: 9, 3) 1,100,000 men fell in the siege of Jerusalem by Titus,
-and 79,000 were captured in the whole war. Of the latter number, the
-greater part was distributed among the provinces, to be butchered in
-the amphitheaters or cast to wild beasts; others were doomed to work
-as public slaves in Egypt; only those under the ages of seventeen were
-sold into private bondage. An equally dreadful destruction fell upon
-the remains of the nation, which had once more assembled in Judea,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p374"></a>{374}</span> under the reign of Hadrian (A. D. 133), which Dion Cassius
-concisely relates. By these two savage wars the Jewish population must
-have been effectually extirpated from the Holy Land itself, a result
-which did not follow from the Babylonian captivity. Afterwards a dreary
-period of fifteen hundred years' oppression crushed in Europe all who
-bore the name of Israel, and Christian nations have visited on their
-head a crime [the crucifixion of Messiah] perpetrated by a few thousand
-inhabitants of Jerusalem, who were not the real forefathers of the
-European Jews. Nor in the east has their lot been much more cheering.
-With a few partial exceptions, they have ever since been a despised,
-an oppressed and naturally a degraded people; though from them have
-spread light and truth to the distant nations of the earth.&mdash;Biblical
-Literature (Kitto) vol. I, p. 39.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Return of the Ten Tribes from the North.</b>&mdash;Away in yonder
-north countries, where, I do not know, but away in those regions are
-ten tribes of the house of Israel. How do you know they are in the
-north country? Because the Bible has told us that in the latter days
-they should come out of the north country, and if they were not in the
-north country they could not come from there. Jeremiah says in his
-thirty-first chapter&mdash;"Behold I will bring them from the north, the
-blind and the lame with them, and the woman with child; they shall
-come, a great company out of the north countries." Where will they go
-to? Will they go immediately to Palestine, where they formerly had
-their inheritance. No. Jeremiah tells us where they will go, he tells
-there is to be a place called Zion before these tribes come out of the
-north countries, and when they come with a great company, the blind and
-the lame with them, and the Lord God leads them with supplication and
-with tears and with prayers, bringing them forth from those dreary,
-desolate, cold arctic regions; when that day shall come, there shall
-be a Zion prepared to receive these ten tribes, before they finally
-go back to Palestine. Is there anything in the scriptures about this?
-Yes. In the same chapter of Jeremiah we read that, "they shall come
-and sing in the height of Zion." Zion, then, will have to be built up
-before they come; Zion will have to be reared somewhere and prepared
-to receive them; and it will be a holy place, and it will be a holy
-people who will build up Zion, so much so that the Lord will bring
-these ten tribes into the height of Zion, into the midst of it.&mdash;Orson
-Pratt&mdash;Journal of Discourses, vol. 18, p. 22, 23.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. All Nations Flowing Unto the House of the Lord.</b>&mdash;One of
-the features in the celebration of Pioneer Day&mdash;24th of July, the
-anniversary of the day the company of Pioneers entered Salt Lake
-Valley, 1847&mdash;in Salt Lake City, 1880, was to have represented the
-various nationalities composing the population of Utah. A man and a
-woman <span class="pagenum"><a name="p375"></a>{375}</span> of each nation from which people had been gathered by the
-proclamation of the gospel were selected as the representatives, each
-pair bearing the national colors of their country. They occupied a
-platform in the Tabernacle during the services, and after a historical
-sketch of the introduction of the gospel in the various nations was
-read by Orson Pratt, the representatives of the nations arose and
-President John Taylor said: "I wish to state to the congregation that
-the Lord commanded his servants to go forth to all the world to preach
-the gospel to every creature. We have not yet been to all the world,
-but here are twenty-five nations represented today, and we have thus
-far fulfilled our mission."
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Latter-day Saints of Israel.</b>&mdash;The set time was come for
-God to gather Israel, and for his work to commence upon the face of
-the whole earth, and the elders who have arisen in this church and
-kingdom are actually of Israel. Take the elders who are in the house
-[the old Tabernacle in Salt Lake City], and you can scarcely find one
-out of a hundred but what is of the house of Israel. * * * Will we go
-to the Gentile nations to preach the gospel? Yes, and gather out the
-Israelites wherever they are mixed among the nations of the earth. * *
-* Ephraim has become mixed with all the nations of the earth, and it
-is Ephraim that is gathering together. It is Ephraim that I have been
-searching for all the days of my preaching, and that is the blood which
-ran in my veins when I embraced the gospel. If there are any of the
-other tribes of Israel mixed with the Gentiles we are also searching
-after them.&mdash;Brigham Young. From a Discourse preached April 8th, 1855.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What great work did the visit of Moses to the Kirtland Temple
-inaugurate?
-</p>
-<p>2. Who are Israel?
-</p>
-<p>3. Give a sketch of the history of Israel to the revolt of the ten
-tribes.
-</p>
-<p>4. How came the ten tribes to revolt?
-</p>
-<p>5. Give an account of the fall of the kingdom of Israel.
-</p>
-<p>6. Why are the ten tribes called the "lost tribes?"
-</p>
-<p>7. What evidence have you that they are in the north?
-</p>
-<p>8. Give the evidence to be found in the words of Jesus to the Nephites.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p376"></a>{376}</span> 9. What statement does the Apocryphal writer Esdras make
-respecting the ten tribes? (Note 2.)
-</p>
-<p>10. Who were the Samaritans?
-</p>
-<p>11. What tribes formed the kingdom of Judah?
-</p>
-<p>12. Give an outline of the history of Judah to the birth of Messiah.
-</p>
-<p>13. What befell Judah about thirty years after the crucifixion of
-Messiah? (Note 3.)
-</p>
-<p>14. What can you say of miscellaneous dispersions?
-</p>
-<p>15. How came the blood of Israel sprinkled among all nations?
-</p>
-<p>16. What promises are made to scattered Israel?
-</p>
-<p>17. Quote the several passages from the Bible which predict the
-gathering of Israel.
-</p>
-<p>18. Quote the passages from the Book of Mormon.
-</p>
-<p>19. What progress has been made in the preparatory work of the ten
-tribes? (Note 4.)
-</p>
-<p>20. What progress has been made in the preparatory work?
-</p>
-<p>21. What prophecies are the Saints minutely fulfilling in gathering
-together in the mountains? (Note 5.)
-</p>
-<p>22. How do we know that the Latter-day Saints are of Israel? (Note 6.)
-</p>
-<p>23. For what object are the Saints gathering from Babylon?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p377"></a>{377}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION VIII.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Salvation for the Dead.</b>&mdash;The appearing of Elijah the prophet,
-in the Kirtland Temple on the 3rd of April, 1836, was the introduction
-of another great work connected with the redemption of the human race.
-That work is Salvation for the dead, the keys of which were given to
-the Prophet Joseph Smith by Elijah, on the occasion of the appearing
-mentioned above. That event was an epoch in the history of this great
-dispensation. It began a revolution in the theology of the Christian
-world. Up to that time&mdash;1836&mdash;it was universally believed by orthodox
-Christians that the souls of men who died without conversion to the
-Christian religion, were everlastingly lost. It was believed that the
-application of the gospel of Jesus Christ was limited to this life; and
-those who failed, through whatever cause, to obtain the benefits of the
-means of salvation it affords, are forever barred from such benefits.
-"If the tree fall toward the south, or toward the north, in the place
-where the tree falleth, there it shall lie;"<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn180"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn180">180</a>]</sup> and they argued from
-this that in whatever state a man died so he remained. If he died in
-a state of justification his salvation was assured; but if not, then
-justification and consequently salvation was forever beyond his hope.
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> This sectarian doctrine which does so much violence to the
-justice of God&mdash;since it closes the door of salvation against so
-many thousands of God's children through no other circumstances than
-that they never so much as heard of the gospel of Jesus Christ, and
-therefore could not either believe or obey it-arose, first, through
-a misconception of the doctrine of eternal punishment with which the
-wicked are threatened in the scriptures; and, second, through a very
-narrow conception of the sure mercies of God.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p378"></a>{378}</span> <b>3. Christian Dogma of Eternal Judgment.</b>&mdash;Christians believe
-that to receive eternal punishment was to be punished eternally. This
-popular Christian error was corrected in a revelation to Martin Harris
-through Joseph Smith, even before the church was organized.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn181"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn181">181</a>]</sup>
-In that revelation it is explained that God is "Endless;" that is
-one of his names; as also is "Eternal" one of his names. "Therefore
-eternal punishment is God's punishment. Endless punishment is God's
-punishment." In other words, the punishment that will overtake the
-wicked is Eternal's punishment; Endless' punishment. But Christians,
-mistaking the name of the punishment for the sign of its duration,
-taught that men were punished eternally for the sins committed in
-this life. Then again God's punishment is eternal; that is, it always
-exists; it is eternal as God is, but the transgressor receives only
-so much of it, endures it only so long as may be necessary to satisfy
-the reasonable claims of justice, tempered with mercy. Then, when
-the insulted law is vindicated, the offender is released from the
-punishment. But as "the bars survive the captive they enthrall," as the
-prison remains after the transgressor has served his time in it, so in
-God's government, the punishment eternally remains after transgressors
-have satisfied the claims of justice, and are relieved from its pains
-and penalties. It remains to vindicate the law of God whenever it shall
-be broken. But men read&mdash;"He that believeth not [the gospel] shall be
-damned,"<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn182"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn182">182</a>]</sup> and they are taught to believe that they were damned
-to all eternity&mdash;that they were consigned forever to the flames of
-hell.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn183"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn183">183</a>]</sup> [See note 1, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p379"></a>{379}</span> <b>4.</b> One would think that right conceptions of the attributes
-of justice and mercy as they exist in God's character would lead
-men to the rejection of the horrible dogma of eternal punishment as
-taught by orthodox Christianity. But if that be not sufficient then
-the scriptures themselves refute it, as will appear in the following
-paragraphs:
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Preaching to the Spirits in Prison.</b>&mdash;From a remark made in
-the writings of the Apostle Peter,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn184"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn184">184</a>]</sup> we learn that after Messiah
-was put to death in the flesh "He went and preached to the spirits in
-prison, which sometime [aforetime] were disobedient, when once the
-long-suffering of God waiting in the days of Noah." During the three
-days, then, that Messiah's body lay in the tomb at Jerusalem, his
-spirit was in the world of spirits preaching to those who had rejected
-the preaching of righteous Noah. The Christian traditions no less than
-the scriptures teach that Jesus went down into hell and preached to
-those there held in ward. [See note 2, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>6.</b> Not only is the mere fact of Messiah's going to the spirit
-prison stated in the scripture, but the purpose of his going there is
-learned from the same source. "For this cause was <span class="pagenum"><a name="p380"></a>{380}</span> the gospel
-preached also to them that are dead, that they might be judged
-according to men in the flesh, but live according to God in the
-spirit."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn185"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn185">185</a>]</sup> This manifestly means that these spirits who had once
-rejected the counsels of God against themselves, had the gospel again
-preached to them and had the privilege of living according to its
-precepts in the spirit life, and of being judged according to men in
-the flesh, or as men in the flesh are judged; that is, according to the
-degree of their faithfulness to the precepts of the gospel.
-</p>
-<p><b>7.</b> Naturally the question arises, Why was the gospel preached
-to the spirits in prison who had once been disobedient if there were
-no means by which it could be applied to them for their salvation? We
-can scarcely suppose that Messiah would preach the gospel to them if
-it could do them no good. He did not go there to mock their sufferings
-or to add something to the torture of their damnation by explaining
-the beauties of that salvation now forever beyond their reach! Such
-a supposition would at once be revolting to reason, insulting to the
-justice of God, and utterly repugnant to the dictates of mercy!
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> Following that question comes another: If the gospel is
-preached again to those who have once rejected it, how much sooner will
-it be presented to those who have never heard it, who have lived in
-those generations when the gospel and the authority to administer its
-ordinances were not in the earth? Seeing that those who once rejected
-the offer of salvation had it presented to them again&mdash;after paying
-the penalty of their first disobedience&mdash;it would seem that those who
-lived when it was not upon the earth, or who when it was upon the earth
-perished in ignorance of it, will much sooner come to salvation.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> Of the things we have written, this is the sum: (1) The gospel
-was preached by Messiah to the spirits in prison who had rejected the
-teachings of Noah; therefore there must be <span class="pagenum"><a name="p381"></a>{381}</span> some means through
-which its precepts and ordinances may be applied to them. (2) If the
-gospel can be made available to those who once rejected the proffered
-mercies of God, its privileges will much sooner, and doubtless more
-abundantly be granted to those who died in ignorance of it.
-</p>
-<p><b>10. Baptism for the Dead.</b>&mdash;The manner in which the ordinances
-of the gospel may be administered to those who have died without
-receiving them is hinted at by Paul. Writing to the Corinthians on the
-subject of the resurrection,&mdash;correcting those who said there was no
-resurrection&mdash;he asks: "What shall they do which are baptized for the
-dead, if the dead rise not at all? Why are they then baptized for the
-dead?"<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn186"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn186">186</a>]</sup> In this the apostle manifestly referred to a practice which
-existed among the Christian saints of the living being baptized for
-the dead, and argues from the existence of that practice that the dead
-must rise, or why the necessity of being baptized for the dead. Though
-this is the only passage in the New Testament, or in the whole Bible,
-that refers directly to the subject, yet of itself it is sufficient to
-establish the fact that such a principle was known among the ancient
-saints. [See notes 3 and 4, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>11.</b> From the revelations of God to the church in this
-dispensation the following may be learned: Elijah, in the fulfillment
-of ancient prophecy, appeared unto Joseph Smith and Oliver Cowdery, and
-delivered to them those keys or powers of the priesthood which give to
-the living the right to do a work for the salvation of the dead. As a
-consequence the hearts of the children are turned to the fathers; and
-of course, since the fathers in the spirit world through the preaching
-of the gospel learn that it is within the power of their children to do
-a work for them, their hearts are turned to the children, and thus the
-predicted result to follow Elijah's mission is fulfilled.
-</p>
-<p><b>12.</b> The work that the living may do for the dead is that of
-attending to outward ordinances&mdash;baptisms, confirmations, <span class="pagenum"><a name="p382"></a>{382}</span>
-ordinations, washings; anointings and sealings&mdash;all being appointed
-by revelation and the direction of the Lord, and all sealed and
-ratified by the power of the priesthood of God which binds on earth
-and in heaven. It is required that all baptisms and other ordinances
-of the gospel performed for the dead be attended to in houses&mdash;and
-more properly in temples&mdash;specially dedicated for holy purposes. Those
-ordinances are to be faithfully recorded by those who see and hear them
-performed,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn187"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn187">187</a>]</sup> that there may be valid testimony that the work has
-been done. These ordinances attended to on earth by the living, and
-accepted in the spirit world by those for whom they are performed, will
-make them a patent means of salvation to the dead and of exaltation
-to the living, since they become in very deed "saviors upon Mount
-Zion." This work that can be done for the dead enlarges one's view of
-the gospel of Jesus Christ. One begins to see indeed that it is the
-"everlasting gospel;" for it runs parallel with man's existence both in
-this life and in that which is to come. It vindicates the character of
-God, for by it we may see that justice and judgment, truth and mercy
-are in all his ways. [See note 5, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>13. Different Degrees of Glory.</b>&mdash;Closely associated with the
-subjects treated in the forgoing paragraphs of this section, is the
-subject of the Different Degrees of Glory. Nothing is more clearly
-stated in holy writ than that men will be judged and rewarded according
-to their works.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn188"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn188">188</a>]</sup>And as their works vary in degree or righteousness
-so will their rewards vary, and so will they have bestowed upon them
-different degrees of glory according as their works shall merit and
-their intelligence be capable of comprehending. Messiah said to his
-disciples: "In my Father's house are many mansions: if it were not so
-I would have told you. I go to prepare a place for you; * * * that
-where I am there ye may be also."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn189"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn189">189</a>]</sup> Still it is commonly held <span class="pagenum"><a name="p383"></a>{383}</span>
-among Christian sects that he who attains heaven partakes immediately
-of the highest glories; while he who misses heaven goes direct to hell
-and partakes of all its miseries forever.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn190"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn190">190</a>]</sup> Yet nothing is clearer
-than the fact that there are different heavens spoken of in scripture
-and different degrees of glory. When Solomon dedicated the temple he
-had builded, he exclaimed in his prayer&mdash;"Behold the heaven and heaven
-of heavens cannot contain thee; how much less this house which I have
-builded!"<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn191"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn191">191</a>]</sup> Paul in writing to the Corinthians says "I knew a man
-in Christ above fourteen years ago * * * such an one caught up to the
-third heaven. And I knew such a man * * * how that he was caught up
-into paradise, and heard unspeakable words, which it is not lawful for
-a man to utter."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn192"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn192">192</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>14.</b> Reasoning on the resurrection, the last writer quoted says:
-"There are also celestial bodies, and bodies terrestrial; but the
-glory of the celestial is one, and the glory of the terrestrial is
-another. There is one glory of the sun, and another glory of the moon,
-and another glory of the stars: for as one star differeth from another
-star in glory. So also is the resurrection of the dead."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn193"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn193">193</a>]</sup> In all
-this, however, the great subject is but vaguely hinted at. For a full
-understanding of it we are indebted to a revelation given to Joseph
-Smith, February <span class="pagenum"><a name="p384"></a>{384}</span> 16th, 1832. From that revelation we summarized
-the following:<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn194"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn194">194</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>15. The Celestial Glory.</b>&mdash;They who receive the testimony of
-Jesus, that believe on his name and are baptized after the manner of
-his burial; that by keeping the commandments they might be washed
-and cleansed from all sin, and receive the Holy Ghost by the laying
-on of hands by those having authority; who overcome by faith, and
-are sealed by the Holy Spirit of Promise&mdash;these become the church of
-the First Born. They are they into whose hands the Father hath given
-all things&mdash;they are priests and kings, who have received of God's
-fullness, and of his glory; they are priests of the Most High, after
-the order of Melchisedek, which is after the order of the Son of
-God&mdash;therefore they are Gods, even the Sons of God. All things are
-theirs, whether life or death, or things present, or things to come,
-all are theirs, and they are Christ's and Christ is God's. They shall
-overcome all things; they shall dwell in the presence of God and Christ
-forever and forever; they are they whom Christ will bring with him when
-he shall come in the clouds of heaven to reign on the earth over his
-people; they have part in the resurrection of the just; their names
-are written in heaven, where God and Christ dwell; they are just men
-made perfect through Jesus the mediator of the new covenant; these are
-they whose bodies are celestial, whose glory the sun in heaven is <span class="pagenum"><a name="p385"></a>{385}</span>
-spoken of as typical&mdash;they inherit the celestial glory, they see as
-they are seen and know as they are known.
-</p>
-<p><b>16. The Terrestrial Glory.</b>&mdash;The terrestrial glory differs from
-the celestial glory as the light of the moon differs from the light of
-the sun. These are they who died without law, and also they who are the
-spirits of men in prison, whom the Son visited, and preached the gospel
-unto them, that they might be judged according to men in the flesh,
-who received not the testimony of Jesus in the flesh, but afterwards
-received it. These are they who are honorable men of the earth, who
-were blinded by the craftiness of men. These are they who receive of
-God's glory but not of his fullness. They may enjoy the presence of the
-Son but not of the presence of the Father; these are they who are not
-valiant in the testimony of Jesus, therefore they obtain not the crown
-over the kingdom of God.
-</p>
-<p><b>17. The Telestial Glory.</b>&mdash;The telestial glory differs from the
-terrestrial, as the light of the stars differs from the light of the
-moon. The inhabitants of the telestial glory are those who neither
-received the gospel of Christ in the flesh nor the testimony of Jesus
-in the spirit world. These are they who are thrust down to hell, and
-will not be redeemed from the devil until the last resurrection, when
-Christ shall have finished his work. These are they who are of Paul and
-of Apollos, and of Cephas. some of Christ and some of John, some of
-Moses and some of Elias; but received not the gospel nor the testimony
-of Jesus. These are they who will not be gathered with the Saints, to
-be caught up unto the church of the First Born, and received into the
-cloud. These are liars and sorcerers and adulterers, and whoremongers,
-and whosoever loves and makes a lie. They suffer the wrath of God on
-earth and the vengeance of eternal fire, but they will be judged every
-man according to his works and receive according to his works, his
-own dominion, in the mansions which are prepared; and they shall be
-servants <span class="pagenum"><a name="p386"></a>{386}</span> of the Most High,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn195"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn195">195</a>]</sup> but where God and Christ dwell
-they cannot come, worlds without end. They of the Telestial Glory
-enjoy neither the presence of the Father nor the Son, but receive the
-ministration of angels, and of the Holy Ghost, for even they of the
-Telestial Glory are accounted heirs of salvation. The Prophet Joseph
-and Sidney Rigdon in their vision saw that the inhabitants of the
-telestial glory were as innumerable as the stars in the firmament of
-heaven, or as the sand upon the sea shore&mdash;and they heard the voice
-of God saying&mdash;"These all shall bow the knee and every tongue shall
-confess to Him who sits upon the throne forever and ever; for they
-shall be judged according to their works, and every man shall receive
-according to his own works, his own dominions, in the mansions which
-are prepared, and they shall be servants of the Most High, but where
-God and Christ dwell they cannot come, worlds without end."
-</p>
-<p><b>18. Degrees Within the Three Great Kingdoms of Glory.</b>&mdash;These
-are the three great divisions of glory in the world to come, but
-within these great divisions are subdivisions or degrees. The Prophet
-Joseph taught that in the celestial glory there are three heavens or
-degrees.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn196"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn196">196</a>]</sup> Of the telestial glory it is written: "And the glory
-of the telestial is one, even as the glory of the stars is one, for
-as one star differs from another star in glory even so differs one
-from another in glory in the telestial world."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn197"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn197">197</a>]</sup> From this it is
-evident that there are different degrees of glory within the celestial
-and telestial glories; and though we have no direct authority for the
-statement, it seems but reasonable to conclude that there are different
-degrees of glory in the terrestrial world also. It appears but rational
-that it should be so, since the degrees of worthiness in men are almost
-infinite in their variety; and as every man is to be judged according
-to his works, it will require <span class="pagenum"><a name="p387"></a>{387}</span> a corresponding infinity of degrees
-in glory to mete out to every man that reward of which he is worthy,
-and that also which his intelligence will enable him to enjoy.
-</p>
-<p><b>19. Progress Within and From Different Degrees of Glory.</b>&mdash;The
-question of advancement within the great divisions of glory&mdash;celestial,
-terrestrial, and telestial; as also the question of advancement
-from one sphere of glory to another remains to be considered. In
-the revelation from which we have summarized what has been written
-here, in respect to the different degrees of glory, it is said that
-those of the terrestrial glory will be ministered unto by those of
-the celestial; and those of the telestial will be ministered unto by
-those of the terrestrial&mdash;that is, those of the higher glory minister
-to those of a lesser order of glory. We can conceive of no reason for
-all this administration of the higher to the lower, unless it be for
-the purpose of advancing our Father's children along the lines of
-eternal progression. Whether or not in the great future, full of so
-many possibilities now hidden from us, they of the lesser glories after
-education and advancement within those spheres may at last emerge from
-them and make their way to the higher degrees of glory until at last
-they attain to the highest, is not revealed in the revelations of God,
-and any statement made on the subject must partake more or less of the
-nature of conjecture.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> But if it be granted that such a thing is possible, they who
-at the first entered into the celestial glory&mdash;having before them the
-privilege also of eternal progress&mdash;have been moving onward, so that
-the relative distance between them and those who have fought their way
-up from the lesser glories, may be as great when the latter have come
-into the degrees of celestial glory in which the righteous at first
-stood, as it was at the commencement; and thus between them is an
-impassable gulf which time cannot destroy. Thus: those whose faith and
-works are such only as to entitle them to inherit a telestial glory,
-may arrive at last where those whose works in this life were such as
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p388"></a>{388}</span> to entitle them to entrance into the celestial kingdom&mdash;they may
-arrive where these were but never where they are.
-</p>
-<p><b>21. Sons of Perdition.</b>&mdash;There is a class of souls with whom the
-justice of God must deal, which will not and cannot be classified in
-the celestial, terrestrial or telestial glories.
-</p>
-<p>They are the sons of perdition. But though they will not be assigned
-a place in either of these grand divisions of glory, the revelation
-from which we have drawn our information respecting man's future state
-describes the condition of these sons of perdition so far as it is made
-known unto the children of men. It also informs us as to the nature of
-the crime which calls for such grievous punishment.
-</p>
-<p><b>22.</b> The sons of perdition are they of whom God hath said that
-it had been better for them never to have been born; for they are
-vessels of wrath, doomed to suffer the wrath of God, with the devil
-and his angels in eternity. Concerning whom he hath said there is no
-forgiveness in this world nor the world to come. These are they who
-shall go away into everlasting punishment, with the devil and his
-angels, and the only ones on whom the second death shall have any
-power; the only ones who will not be redeemed in the due time of the
-Lord, after the sufferings of his wrath. He saves all the works of his
-hands except these sons of perdition; but they go away to reign with
-the devil and his angels in eternity, where their worm dieth not, and
-the fire is not quenched, which is their torment. The end thereof, the
-place thereof no man knoweth. It has not been revealed, nor will it be
-revealed unto man, except to them who are made partakers thereof. It
-has been partially shown to some in vision, and may be shown again in
-the same partial manner to others; but the end, the width, the height,
-the depth and the misery thereof they understand not, nor will any one
-but those who receive the terrible condemnation.
-</p>
-<p><b>23.</b> Such the punishment, now as to the crime that merits it.
-It is the crime of high treason to God which pulls down on <span class="pagenum"><a name="p389"></a>{389}</span> men
-this fearful doom. It falls upon men who know the power of God and
-who have been made partakers of it, and then permit themselves to be
-so far overcome of the devil that they deny the truth that has been
-revealed to them and defy the power of God. They deny the Holy Ghost
-after having received it. They deny the Only Begotten Son of the Father
-after the Father hath revealed him, and in this crucify him unto
-themselves anew, and put him to an open shame. They commit the same
-act of high treason that Lucifer in the rebellion of heaven did, and
-hence are worthy of the same punishment with him. Thank God, the number
-who commit that fearful crime is but few. It is only those who attain
-to a very great knowledge of the things of God that are capable of
-committing it, and the number among such are few indeed who become so
-recklessly wicked as to rebel against and defy the power of God.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn198"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn198">198</a>]</sup>
-But when such characters do fall, they fall like Lucifer, never to
-rise again; they get beyond the power of repentance, or the hope of
-forgiveness.
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. The Sectarian Dogma of Eternal Punishment.</b>&mdash;There is nothing
-more obnoxious to a reasonable mind, a loving heart, a soul susceptible
-to the relative claims of justice and mercy, than the Presbyterian and
-other old ecclesiastical school doctrines of an eternal, material,
-unchanging hell of fire and torment in which the unregenerate are
-doomed to suffer the implacable wrath of an unrelenting Deity forever
-and forever, worlds without end. * * * And it is not true. It was not
-and is not a doctrine of Christ. It sprang from the gloom-clothed
-brains of cloistered monks and heretic-burning priests, bearing not
-a vestige of the sacred authority vested in the apostles and their
-immediate associates. It is redolent of the Auto de fe, and stamped
-with the bloody seal of apostate papal Rome. It breathes of vengeance
-instead of justice, and banishes sweet mercy <span class="pagenum"><a name="p390"></a>{390}</span> from the economy of
-heaven. It makes God more cruel than the most inhuman mortal. It is a
-libel on the Almighty and a fruitful cause of atheism, irreverence and
-doubt.&mdash;Penrose.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Messiah Preaching to the Spirits in Prison.</b>&mdash;In the second and
-third centuries every branch and division of the Christian church, so
-far as their record enables us to judge, believed that Christ preached
-to the departed; and this belief dates back to our earliest reliable
-sources of information in the former of those two centuries.&mdash;Christ's
-Mission to the Under World, (Huidekoper), fourth edition, p. 49.
-</p>
-<p>As Christ died for us, and was buried, so also is it to be believed,
-that he went down into hell.&mdash;Articles of Religion&mdash;Church of
-England&mdash;Art. III, Book of Common Prayer, p. 311.
-</p>
-<p>These "spirits in prison" are supposed to be the holy dead. * * * The
-most intelligent meaning suggested by the context is, however, that
-Christ by his spirit preached to those who in the time of Noah, while
-the Ark was a preparing, were disobedient, and whose spirits are now in
-prison, abiding the general judgment. The prison is doubtless hades,
-but what hades is must be determined by other passages of scripture;
-and whether it is the grave or hell, it is still a prison for those who
-yet await the judgment day.&mdash;Cyclopedia Biblical Literature (Kitto), p.
-798.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Baptism for the Dead.</b>&mdash;While not maintaining the view that
-there is such a thing as a living man being baptized for one who is
-dead, the writer in Biblical Literature (Kitto), expresses these views:
-"From the wording of the sentence [why then are they baptized for the
-dead?] the most simple impression certainly is, that Paul speaks of a
-baptism which a living man receives in the place of a dead one. This
-interpretation is particularly adopted by those expounders with whom
-grammatical construction is of paramount importance, and the first
-thing to be considered." This view is also upheld by Ambrose among the
-early Christian writers; and by Erasmus, Scaliger, Grotius, Calixtus
-among the moderns; and still more recently by Augusti Meyer, Billroth
-and Ruckert. De Wette considers this the only possible meaning of the
-words.
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> Epiphanius, a writer of the fourth century, in speaking of the
-Marcionites, a sect of Christians to whom he was opposed, says: "In
-this country&mdash;I mean Asia&mdash;and even Galatea, their school flourished
-eminently; and a traditional fact concerning them has reached us, that
-when any of them had died without baptism, they used to baptize others
-in their name, lest in the resurrection they should suffer punishment
-as unbaptized" (Heresies xxviii:7). This proves beyond controversy the
-fact that vicarious baptism for the dead was practiced among some sects
-of the early Christians. Another fact proves it still more emphatically
-than this statement by Epiphanius. The Council of Carthages, held A. D.
-397, in its sixth canon, forbids the <span class="pagenum"><a name="p391"></a>{391}</span> administration of baptism
-and holy communion for the dead; why should this canon be formed
-against these practices if they had no existence among the Christians
-of those days?&mdash;The Gospel, page 246.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What great work did Elijah's visit to the Kirtland Temple introduce?
-</p>
-<p>2. What was the Christian belief previous to this in respect to those
-who died without conversion to the Christian religion?
-</p>
-<p>3. Through what cause did this error arise?
-</p>
-<p>4. Explain the meaning of "Eternal" punishment&mdash;"Endless" punishment.
-</p>
-<p>5. What scripture teaches that Jesus preached to the spirits in prison?
-</p>
-<p>6. For what purpose was the gospel preached to those who once rejected
-it?
-</p>
-<p>7. If the gospel was preached again to those who once rejected it, what
-may we conclude in respect to those who never heard it in this life?
-</p>
-<p>8. By what means is the gospel made available to those who died without
-a knowledge of it, or who hearing, rejected it?
-</p>
-<p>9. Give an exposition of baptism for the dead. (Notes 3 and 4.)
-</p>
-<p>10. What is the scriptural doctrine in relation to the future rewards
-of men?
-</p>
-<p>11. What is the orthodox Christian view in respect to those who attain
-unto heaven?
-</p>
-<p>12. In what does the Catholic view differ from that of the Protestant?
-(Note, p. 414.)
-</p>
-<p>13. What evidences in the scripture can you quote to prove that there
-are different kingdoms or degrees of glory in heaven?
-</p>
-<p>14. Say what you can of the celestial glory.
-</p>
-<p>15. Describe as far as you can the terrestrial glory.
-</p>
-<p>16. In what does the telestial glory differ from the terrestrial?
-</p>
-<p>17. What class of people inherit the telestial glory?
-</p>
-<p>18. What can you say of degrees within the three great kingdoms of
-glory?
-</p>
-<p>19. What can you say of progress within and from the different degrees
-of glory?
-</p>
-<p>20. What can you say of the sons of perdition and their punishment?
-</p>
-<p>21. What is the nature of their sin?
-</p>
-<p>22. What of the number of those who commit it?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p392"></a>{392}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION IX.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. The Breaking up at Kirtland.</b>&mdash;The keys of knowledge respecting
-the great doctrines treated in the last two sections were received
-in the Kirtland temple; and for a time it appeared that the Saints
-would long enjoy the blessings of their temple and the communion
-and instruction of heavenly messengers. But not so. With prosperity
-which attended them there, came pride, envyings, jealousies and
-heart-burnings. Their temporal prosperity existed but a brief period.
-It was carried away by the wave of financial disaster which swept
-over the United States in 1837. Then came financial embarrassment,
-accompanied with charges and counter-charges of fraud and dishonesty.
-Apostasy among men high in authority was rife. Several of the twelve
-apostles went down in those dark days, and became bitter enemies to the
-Prophet Joseph. To such an extent did the spirit of apostasy prevail
-that it became murderous; and the prophet and a number of his most
-devoted friends had to flee from Kirtland for their lives. [See note 1,
-end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>2. The Founding of Far West&mdash;Expulsion From Missouri.</b>&mdash;Meantime
-the Saints in Missouri who were driven from Jackson county, in the
-latter part of 1833, removed from their temporary locations in Clay
-County, and settled in the new county of Caldwell, where they founded
-the city of Far West. It was to Far West that the Prophet Joseph and
-other church leaders fled when compelled to leave Kirtland. But there
-was little rest for the church in Missouri; persecution was threatened
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="p393"></a>{393}</span> before the prophet arrived, and his presence only seemed to
-hasten the impending storm. In the autumn of 1838 it broke upon the
-church in all its fury, and during that winter the entire church was
-expelled from the State by order of its governor, Lilburn W. Boggs.
-[See note 2, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Rise of Nauvoo.</b>&mdash;While the Saints were being expelled from
-the state the Prophet Joseph and several other leading elders were
-imprisoned in Liberty jail, Clay county, Missouri, having been betrayed
-into the hands of their enemies by the treachery of false brethren.
-They were held on false charges of murder, arson and treason. They
-finally made their escape from their enemies and joined the body of
-the church, which had found a temporary resting place in the city of
-Quincy and vicinity, in Illinois. Shortly afterwards they settled at
-Commerce, in Hancock county, in the same state. The church purchased
-several large tracts of land at this place of Dr. Galland, a Mr. White,
-Hubbard, Wells, Hotchkiss, and others; and soon from the wilderness
-and bogs of Commerce&mdash;[See note 3, end of section]&mdash;rose the city
-of Nauvoo&mdash;meaning The Beautiful; "carrying with it also," says the
-Prophet Joseph, "the idea of rest."
-</p>
-<p><b>4.</b> Although both Joseph and the Saints saw some of their best
-days in Nauvoo, there was not much "rest" for them there, especially
-for the former. The toil and anxiety of founding a city, establishing
-manufactures, publishing a paper, and converting the surrounding
-country into fields and gardens; sending the apostles to preach the
-gospel in foreign lands, being all the time tormented by their enemies
-in Missouri and Illinois, kept the church, and especially the Prophet
-Joseph, busy during the whole time they remained in Nauvoo. Here the
-translation of the Book of Abraham was published. [See note 4, end of
-section.] A magnificent temple was constructed in which to carry on the
-work of salvation for the dead, and in which the living could receive
-those washings and anointings, endowments and <span class="pagenum"><a name="p394"></a>{394}</span> sealings, necessary
-to prepare them for their entrance into and their exaltation in heaven.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Celestial Marriage Introduced.</b>&mdash;It was in Nauvoo also that
-the prophet introduced celestial marriage,&mdash;the marriage system which
-obtains in celestial worlds. It consists of the eternity of the
-marriage covenant, that is, the marriage covenant between a man and his
-wife is made for time and all eternity, and being sealed by that power
-of the priesthood which binds on earth and in heaven, the covenant
-holds good in heaven as well as on earth; and by reason of it men will
-have claim upon their wives, and wives upon their husbands, in and
-after the resurrection. Celestial marriage may also include a plurality
-of wives.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Eternity of the Marriage Covenant.</b>&mdash;This new marriage
-system&mdash;new at least to this generation&mdash;completely revolutionized the
-ideas of the Saints in respect to the marriage institution. In common
-with the Christian sects, they had regarded marriage vaguely as an
-institution to exist in this world only; and married their wives as
-other Christians did and now do&mdash;until death shall them part. But by
-the revelation which the prophet made known at Nauvoo, they learned
-that in celestial spheres the marriage covenant exists eternally, and
-that the pleasing joys of family ties and associations coupled with
-the power of endless increase, contributes to the happiness, power and
-dominion of those who attain to the celestial glory. What a revelation
-was here! Instead of the God-given power of pro-creation being one of
-the things that is to pass away, it is one of the chief means of man's
-exaltation and glory in that great eternity, which like an endless
-vista stretches out before him! Through it man attains to the glory
-of the endless increase of eternal lives, and the right of presiding
-as priest and patriarch, king and lord, over his ever-increasing
-posterity. Instead of the commandment&mdash;"Be fruitful, multiply and
-replenish the earth," being an unrighteous law, it is one <span class="pagenum"><a name="p395"></a>{395}</span> by
-means of which the race of Gods is perpetuated, and it is as holy and
-pure as the commandment, "Repent and be baptized." Through that law,
-in connection with an observance of all the other laws of the gospel,
-man will yet attain unto the power of the Godhead,<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn199"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn199">199</a>]</sup> and like his
-Father&mdash;God&mdash;his chief glory shall be to bring to pass the eternal life
-and happiness of man.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p396"></a>{396}</span> <b>7. Plurality of Wives.</b>&mdash;Celestial marriage, as already
-observed, may include a plurality of wives. This was as great an
-innovation as marriage for eternity. It came in conflict with the
-education and tradition of the Saints, and the sentiments of the age.
-Still God had commanded it through his prophet, and though their
-prejudices&mdash;the fruit of their traditions&mdash;revolted against it, the
-faithful to whom it was revealed resolved to obey it.
-</p>
-<p><b>8.</b> It was in 1831 that plural marriage was first made known to
-Joseph Smith. In that year he was engaged in revising by inspiration
-the Jewish Scriptures;<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn200"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn200">200</a>]</sup> and observing with what favor the Lord
-regarded the early patriarchs, and many of the kings and prophets of
-the Jews who had a plurality of wives, he inquired of God how it was he
-justified them in that thing. The Lord in answer revealed the law of
-celestial marriage. But the time had not come for the Saints to enter
-into its practice, and hence the prophet kept it locked up a secret in
-his own breast, with the exception of saying to one or two of his most
-confidential friends that plural marriage was a correct principle. [See
-note 4, end of section.] In 1841 the prophet introduced the practice of
-this principle into the church by taking to himself plural wives.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn201"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn201">201</a>]</sup>
-He also taught the principle to a number of the leading elders and they
-obeyed it.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p397"></a>{397}</span><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Prosperity and Disaster which Overwhelmed the Church at
-Kirtland.</b>&mdash;Speculation was rife all over the United States at
-that time, [1837] and the Saints did not escape the contagion.
-They started a banking institution, engaged in mercantile pursuits
-and land speculation. For a time they were prosperous and wealth
-rapidly accumulated among them. Sidney Rigdon declared, in a burst of
-enthusiasm, that the glory of the latter days was now being ushered
-in, and that Zion would soon become the glory of the whole earth; when
-the Lord for silver would bring gold; for iron, brass; and for stones,
-iron. But a wave of financial disaster swept over the entire country.
-Banking institutions went down before it; thousands of merchants were
-hopelessly ruined; and in the general disaster Kirtland did not escape.
-Like the inhabitants of other towns, her people were overwhelmed with
-financial embarrassment. "Distress, ruin and poverty," says Elder
-Taylor, "seemed to prevail. Apostates and corrupt men were prowling
-about as so many wolves seeking whom they might devour. They were
-oppressive, cruel, heartless, devising every pretext that the most
-satanic malignity could invent to harass the Saints. Fraud, false
-accusation and false swearing, vexatious law suits, personal violence,
-and bare-faced robbery abounded. They were truly afficted, persecuted
-and tormented."&mdash;Life of John Taylor, p. 52.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Persecution of the Saints in Missouri.</b>&mdash;This brings us to the
-close of our story of the Missouri Persecutions. We have seen a people
-start out under the direction of the Lord to build up the city of Zion
-to his holy name; but who, through their disobedience and failure to
-observe strictly those conditions upon which the Lord promised them
-success in accomplishing so great and glorious a work, were driven
-entirely from the State where that city is to be erected. We have seen
-a proud, sovereign state, with a constitution that guaranteed the
-largest possible religious and civil liberty to its citizens, ignore
-the spirit and letter of that constitution; shamelessly violate the
-laws passed in pursuance of it; and the officers of the state, from
-the chief executive down, combine to destroy the Saints of God, or
-drive them from the State: in accomplishing which they were guilty of
-the most cruel barbarity. It is no palliation of their offense to say
-that the Saints had not strictly kept the commandments of God. Their
-offenses were against the laws of God rather than the laws of man. So
-far as the state of Missouri was concerned, she was not justified in
-trampling on her own constitution and laws, and committing outrages
-that would bring to the cheek of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p398"></a>{398}</span> a savage the blush of shame. It
-was a case where offenses must needs come, but woe, woe, unto them by
-whom they come!&mdash;Missouri Persecutions&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Commerce, Afterwards Nauvoo.</b>&mdash;The place was literally a
-wilderness. The land was mostly covered with trees and bushes, and
-much of it was so wet that it was with the utmost difficulty a footman
-could get through, and totally impossible for teams. Commerce was
-unhealthful, very few could live there; but believing that it might
-become a healthful place by the blessing of heaven to the Saints, and
-no more eligible place presenting itself, I considered it wisdom to
-make an attempt to build up a city.&mdash;Joseph Smith.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. The Book of Abraham.</b>&mdash;The rolls of papyrus filled with
-Egyptian characters and hieroglyphics, from which Joseph translated
-the Book of Abraham, came into his possession in the following manner:
-In 1831 the celebrated French traveler, Antonio Sebolo, penetrated
-Egypt as far as the ancient city of Thebes, under a license procured
-from Mehemet Ali&mdash;then Viceroy of Egypt&mdash;through the influence of
-Chevalier Drovetti, the French Consul. Sebolo employed four hundred
-and thirty-three men for four months and two days, either Turkish or
-Egyptian soldiers, paying them from four to six cents a day per man.
-They entered the Catatombs near ancient Thebes on the seventh of June,
-1831, and procured eleven mummies. These were shipped to Alexandria,
-and from there the great traveler started with his treasures for Paris.
-But en route for the French capital, Sebolo put in at Trieste, where
-he was taken sick, and after an illness of ten days, died. This was
-in 1832. Previous to his death he willed his Egyptian treasures to
-his nephew, Michael H. Chandler, who was then living in Philadelphia,
-Pennsylvania, but whom Sebolo believed to be in Dublin, to which city
-he ordered the mummies shipped. Mr. Chandler ordered the mummies
-forwarded to New York from Dublin, where he took possession of them.
-Here the coffins for the first time were opened, and in them was found
-two rolls of papyrus covered with engraving. While still in the customs
-house, Mr. C. was informed by a gentleman, a stranger to him, that
-no one in the city could translate the characters; but was referred
-to Joseph Smith, who, the stranger informed him, possessed some
-kind of gift or power by which he had previously translated similar
-characters. Joseph Smith was then unknown to Mr. C. The mummies were
-shipped to Philadelphia; and from there Mr. C. traveled through the
-country, exhibited them and the rolls of papyrus, reaching Kirtland
-in July, 1835, and the Saints purchased some of the mummies and the
-two rolls of papyrus, one of which was the writing of Abraham and the
-other of Joseph, who was sold into Egypt. The Book of Abraham has been
-translated and published, at least in part. <span class="pagenum"><a name="p399"></a>{399}</span> [See Pearl of Great
-Price. Elder George Reynolds has published a work on this subject, "The
-Divine Authenticity of the Book of Abraham," which should be carefully
-studied by every elder in Israel.]
-</p>
-<p><b>5. The Establishment of Plural Marriage.</b>&mdash;The principle of
-plural marriage was first revealed to Joseph Smith in 1831, but being
-forbidden to make it public, or to teach it as a doctrine of the
-gospel, at that time, he confided the facts to only a very few of
-his intimate associates. Among them were Oliver Cowdery and Lyman E.
-Johnson, the latter confiding the fact to his traveling companion,
-Elder Orson Pratt, in the year 1832. And this great principle remained
-concealed in the bosoms of the Prophet Joseph Smith and the few to whom
-he revealed it, until he was commanded, about 1842, to instruct the
-leading members of the priesthood, and those who were most faithful
-and intelligent, and best prepared to receive it. In relation thereto,
-at which time and subsequently until his martyrdom, the subject in
-connection with the great principles of baptism, redemption and
-sealing for the dead, became the great theme of his life, and as the
-late President George A. Smith repeatedly said to me and others&mdash;"The
-prophet seemed irresistibly moved by the power of God to establish that
-principle not only in theory, in the hearts and minds of his brethren,
-but in practice also, he himself having led the way."&mdash;Joseph F. Smith.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. What appeared to be the prospects of the Saints at Kirtland?
-</p>
-<p>2. What influence did wealth have upon them?
-</p>
-<p>3. What did the great apostasy at Kirtland result in?
-</p>
-<p>4. State what you can about the founding of Far West.
-</p>
-<p>5. What effect did the presence of the Prophet Joseph have in Missouri?
-</p>
-<p>6. Tell what you can of the expulsion from Nauvoo.
-</p>
-<p>7. Where did the church find a temporary resting place after its
-expulsion from Missouri?
-</p>
-<p>8. Where did the church next settle?
-</p>
-<p>9. What is the meaning of the word "Nauvoo?"
-</p>
-<p>10. What can you say of Nauvoo being a place of rest to the Prophet
-Joseph and the Saints?
-</p>
-<p>11. Enumerate the several things which employed the attention of the
-Prophet and the Saints at Nauvoo.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p400"></a>{400}</span> 12. Where was celestial marriage introduced?
-</p>
-<p>13. What is celestial marriage?
-</p>
-<p>14. In what light was celestial marriage looked upon by the Saints?
-</p>
-<p>15. What was the effect of this principle upon their minds?
-</p>
-<p>16. Is it sacrilege to believe that man may become like his
-Father&mdash;God? (See note.)
-</p>
-<p>17. What beside marriage for eternity may celestial marriage include?
-</p>
-<p>18. When was the rightfulness of plural marriage first made known to
-the Prophet Joseph?
-</p>
-<p>19. About what time was this principle introduced into the Church?
-</p>
-<p>20. Under what circumstances and on what date was the revelation on
-celestial marriage written out? (See foot note, also note 5.)
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p401"></a>{401}</span>
-</p>
-
-
-<h2>SECTION X.
-</h2>
-<p><b>1. Martyrdom of the Prophets.</b>&mdash;The relentless persecution which
-had followed the Prophet Joseph Smith ever since he first announced
-that he had received a revelation from God, culminated at last in his
-and his brother Hyrum's martyrdom, at Carthage jail, Hancock county,
-Illinois, on the 27th of June, 1844. Religious prejudices and political
-jealousies, combined with the treason of wicked apostates from the
-church in Nauvoo, are the forces which led to this sad result. The
-two brothers were murdered in Carthage prison while awaiting trial on
-a false charge of treason against the State of Illinois. They were
-under the immediate protection of the officers of the state, the
-governor thereof having only the day before pledged the honor of the
-State for their protection. Notwithstanding all this a mob of from
-one to two hundred surrounded the prison where they were confined,
-forced the door, killed the Prophet Joseph and his brother Hyrum, and
-severely wounded Apostle John Taylor, who, with Willard Richards, was a
-voluntary inmate of the prison with the brothers Smith.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn202"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn202">202</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>2.</b> The martyrdom of the prophet has an importance second only
-to the crucifixion of Messiah; for in his martyrdom he sealed his
-testimony with his blood, and thenceforth it is made binding on all
-the world. "For where a testament is, there must also of necessity be
-the death of the testator. For a testament is of force after men are
-dead; otherwise it is of no <span class="pagenum"><a name="p402"></a>{402}</span> strength at all while the testator
-liveth."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn203"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn203">203</a>]</sup> The Dispensation of the Fullness of Times doubtless
-required a testimony such as Joseph Smith bore to the world, to be
-sealed with his blood, else the tragedy at Carthage would not have been
-permitted.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. The Twelve Apostles Succeed in Presidency.</b>&mdash;After the death
-of the Prophet Joseph, the Twelve&mdash;the quorum standing next to the
-First Presidency, and equal in authority to that quorum&mdash;took charge of
-the affairs of the church. Sidney Rigdon, who with Hyrum Smith was a
-counselor in the first presidency, pressed his claims to be recognized
-as the "guardian" or president of the church, but he was rejected by
-the Saints, and the twelve were sustained for the time being as the
-presiding quorum of the church.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn204"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn204">204</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Expulsion from Illinois.</b>&mdash;When the enemies of the Saints
-in Illinois saw that the killing of the prophet did not destroy the
-church, they agitated the question of driving them from the state,
-and such was the influence of the mob, and such the cowardice and
-weakness of the state officials, that they were entirely successful in
-the undertaking. The Saints were compelled to leave the state under
-circumstances of the utmost cruelty, sacrificing very much of their
-property, the city they had founded and the temple they had built.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. Flight to the West&mdash;Why.</b>&mdash;When compelled to leave Illinois,
-the Saints turned their faces westward. The country west of the
-Missouri was unoccupied, except by wandering tribes of Indians, and
-they might look for that peace in the vast wilderness of the west which
-had been refused them in the Christian, civilized states of the east.
-But what caused them to look to the west for an abiding place&mdash;even
-more than the fact that the west was unoccupied&mdash;was the frequent
-predictions <span class="pagenum"><a name="p403"></a>{403}</span> of the Prophet Joseph that the Saints would yet
-remove to the Rocky Mountains and become a great people. [See note 1,
-end of section.] Here, too, in the tops of the Rocky Mountains they
-could fulfill better than anywhere else the predictions of the ancient
-prophets. [See note 2, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>6. Arrival in Salt Lake Valley.</b>&mdash;Westward, therefore, they
-turned their faces; the pioneer company&mdash;consisting of one hundred and
-forty-three men and three women&mdash;crossed the plains in 1847, arriving
-in Salt Lake Valley on the 24th of July of that year. They made their
-encampment on the present site of Salt Lake City, and soon afterwards
-laid off the city and began the erection of permanent homes.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Reorganization of the First Presidency.</b>&mdash;At Winter Quarters,
-December 5, 1847, the first presidency of the church was reorganized.
-Brigham Young was nominated and sustained as the president, with
-authority to choose his two counselors. He selected Heber C. Kimball
-and Willard Richards for first and second counselors, respectively, and
-they were unanimously sustained by the church.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Brigham Young.</b><sup>[<a name="PartIVfn205"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn205">205</a>]</sup>&mdash;Brigham Young acted as the president of
-the church for thirty years&mdash;for thirty-three years, if the three years
-that the quorum of the twelve (of which he was president) acted as the
-presiding quorum of the church, be counted. In the course of these
-thirty-three eventful years this truly great man conducted the exodus
-of the Saints from Nauvoo; led them across the wide extended plains
-which form the eastern slopes of the Rocky Mountains; established
-them in Salt Lake and surrounding valleys, located and laid out many
-of their settlements, and taught them not only the moral precepts of
-the gospel, but how to produce from the elements, sterile as they
-then seemed, the necessaries and comforts <span class="pagenum"><a name="p404"></a>{404}</span> of life. Through his
-wisdom&mdash;God-given&mdash;he laid the foundation of the present commonwealth
-of Utah. Just previous to his death he organized the settlements of the
-church into Stakes of Zion, as we now know them, and set in order the
-various quorums of the priesthood.
-</p>
-<p><b>9.</b> President Young was a natural leader among men&mdash;a master
-spirit. His genius especially manifested itself in his ability to
-organize and govern men. He had not only been the president of the
-church and the first governor of Utah, but he was also the friend
-of the people. In times of trial and sorrow they turned to him for
-comfort; in times of danger they looked to him to direct their action;
-in times of perplexity they went to him for the word of the Lord; and
-Brigham Young, full of heaven-inspired wisdom, never failed them in any
-of these things. [See note 3, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>10. The Twelve again Presiding.</b>&mdash;At the death of President
-Brigham Young, August 29, 1877, the quorum of the twelve apostles
-again became the temporary presiding quorum of the church, with John
-Taylor at their head. [See note 4, end of section.] The quorum of the
-twelve continued to act as the presiding quorum of the church until
-the October conference of 1880, when the first presidency was again
-organized. John Taylor was chosen president, and he selected George Q.
-Cannon for his first, and Joseph F. Smith for his second counselor.
-</p>
-<p><b>11. John Taylor.</b>&mdash;President John Taylor came to the high office
-of president of the church late in life, in his seventy-second year.
-He joined the church in his early manhood, in 1836, and two years
-later was ordained into the quorum of the twelve apostles. He was a
-trusted friend of the Prophet Joseph, and was in prison with him when
-he was martyred, and he himself was wounded nigh unto death. He had
-been prominent in all leading events of the church from the time he was
-ordained an apostle until he became the president thereof. He was a man
-of wide experience, profound judgment, and unwavering <span class="pagenum"><a name="p405"></a>{405}</span> integrity.
-[See note 5, end of section.] He entered upon the performance of his
-high duties with a zeal and vigor only to be expected of a younger man.
-He was careful to set in order the several quorums of the priesthood,
-and insist upon each man doing his duty. The seven years of his
-administration as president of the church will be remembered as among
-the most eventful in the history of the church. It was during those
-years that the judicial crusade was inaugurated by the United States
-and most vigorously carried on against the Saints for the suppression
-of plural marriage.
-</p>
-<p><b>12. Wilford Woodruff&mdash;His Administration.</b>&mdash;President Taylor died
-on the 25th of July, 1887, and once more the quorum of the twelve
-apostles became the presiding quorum of the church. They continued to
-act in that capacity, with Wilford Woodruff as president, until April
-7, 1889, when the first presidency was again reorganized, with Wilford
-Woodruff as president. He retained the counselors of the late President
-Taylor, George Q. Cannon and Joseph F. Smith, as his counselors.
-</p>
-<p><b>13.</b> The persecution which the United States had inflicted upon
-the church on the pretext of suppressing plural marriage culminated in
-1890 in the discontinuance of the practice of that principle. It may
-be well here to enumerate those circumstances which led to the above
-result. It has already been stated how plural marriage was introduced
-and practiced in Nauvoo. After the church settled in Salt Lake valley
-it was publicly proclaimed as a doctrine of the church in 1852. The
-practice of it then was public, the whole church&mdash;and at that time the
-members of the church comprised nearly the whole community&mdash;approving
-the principle, which was at once recognized as a proper religious
-institution.
-</p>
-<p><b>14. Enactments of Congress Against Plural Marriage.</b>&mdash;For ten
-years the practice in Utah of this system of marriage met with no
-opposition from the United States. But <span class="pagenum"><a name="p406"></a>{406}</span> in 1862 a law was enacted
-by Congress to punish and prevent the practice of polygamy in the
-Territories of the United States.<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn206"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn206">206</a>]</sup> The penalties affixed were
-a fine, not to exceed five hundred dollars, and imprisonment not
-to exceed five years. For twenty years, however, the law remained
-practically a dead letter. It was claimed by the Saints that it was an
-infringement of the religious liberty guaranteed by the Constitution
-<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn207"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn207">207</a>]</sup> of the United States, since it prohibited the free exercise
-of religion. For twenty years no pronounced effort was made by the
-officers of the general government to enforce the law. In 1882,
-however, the law enacted twenty years before was supplemented by
-what is known as the Edmunds Law. In addition to defining the crime
-polygamy&mdash;for which it retained the same penalties as the law of
-1862&mdash;the Edmunds law also made the cohabiting with more than one
-woman a crime, punishable by a fine not to exceed three hundred
-dollars, and by imprisonment not to exceed six months. This law also
-rendered persons who were living in polygamy, or who believed in its
-rightfulness, incompetent to act as grand or petit jurors; and also
-disqualified all polygamists for voting or holding office. This law of
-1882 was supplemented by the Edmunds-Tucker law&mdash;enacted in 1887&mdash;which
-made the legal wife or husband, in case of polygamy or unlawful
-cohabitation, a competent witness, provided the accused consented
-thereto; it also enlarged the powers of United States commissioners and
-marshals, and required certificates of all marriages to be filed in the
-office of the probate court. The violation of this last provision was a
-fine of one thousand dollars, and imprisonment for two years. The law
-disincorporated the church, and ordered the supreme court to wind up
-its affairs, and take possession of the escheated property.
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p407"></a>{407}</span> <b>15.</b> The laws were rigorously enforced by the United States
-officials, special appropriations being made by Congress to enable
-them to carry on a judicial crusade against the Saints. The prominent
-church officials were driven into retirement; others into exile. Homes
-were disrupted; family ties were rent asunder. Upwards of a thousand
-men endured fines and imprisonment in the penitentiary rather than be
-untrue to their families. Every effort of the government to deprive the
-people of what was considered their religious liberty was stubbornly
-contested in the Courts until the decision of the supreme court of
-the United States was obtained. While some of the proceedings of the
-courts in Utah in enforcing the anti-polygamy laws were condemned, the
-laws were sustained as constitutional. The court also held that the
-first amendment to the Constitution, which provides that Congress shall
-not prohibit the free exercise of religion, cannot be invoked against
-legislation for the punishment of plural marriages. Meantime government
-was relentless, and still more stringent measures than those already
-enacted were threatened.
-</p>
-<p><b>16. Discontinuance of Plural Marriages.</b>&mdash;In the midst of
-these afflictions and threatening portents President Wilford Woodruff
-besought the Lord in anguish and prayer and the Lord inspired him
-to issue the manifesto which discontinued the practice of plural
-marriages. At the semi-annual conference in October following, the
-action of President Woodruff was sustained by unanimous vote of the
-conference and plural marriages are discontinued in the church. [See
-notes 6, 7, 8, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><b>17.</b> In this matter of plural marriage the Latter-say Saints are
-neither responsible for its introduction nor for its discontinuance.
-The Lord commanded its practice, and in the face of the sentiment of
-ages, and in opposition to the teachings of their own traditions, many
-of the Saints obeyed the commandment, and in the midst of weakness,
-difficulties and dangers <span class="pagenum"><a name="p408"></a>{408}</span> sought to carry out the law as revealed
-to them. For about half a century they maintained its practice in the
-face of opposition sufficient to appall the stoutest hearts. They
-defended it in the public press proclaimed it from the pulpit, debated
-it on the platform with all those who chose to assail it, and practiced
-it in their lives, notwithstanding fines and imprisonments threatened;
-and when the power of the government was vigorously employed to enforce
-its laws against this institution, hundreds of men cheerfully endured
-both fines and imprisonment rather than be untrue to it. A whole
-generation had been grown and had grown to manhood and womanhood in
-this marriage system, and the affections of family ties were entwined
-with it. Then, under the pressure of suffering brought upon the people
-through the laws of the United States, the Lord inspired the president
-of the church to proclaim its discontinuance, and the people, with
-hearts bursting with grief submitted to the will of heaven, and there
-the matter rests. If the labors and sufferings of the church of Christ
-for this principle have done nothing more, this much at least has been
-accomplished&mdash;the Saints have borne testimony to the truth. And it is
-for God to vindicate his own law and open the way for its establishment
-on the earth, which doubtless he will do when his kingdom shall come in
-power, and when his will shall be done in earth as it is in heaven.
-</p>
-<p><b>18. Laying of the Cap-Stone of the Salt Lake Temple.</b>&mdash;One of
-the most pleasing and at the same time one of the most important events
-in the history of the church during the administration of President
-Woodruff, was laying the cap-stone of the Salt Lake Temple, on the 6th
-of April, 1892. It was laid by President Woodruff amid the rejoicing of
-thousands of the Saints; and a resolution was adopted to complete the
-sacred edifice and dedicate it on the 6th of April, 1893&mdash;forty years
-from the time the corner-stones thereof was laid.
-</p>
-<p><b>19. The Growth and Present Condition of the Church (1892).</b>&mdash;Since
-the Saints settled in the valleys of the Rocky <span class="pagenum"><a name="p409"></a>{409}</span> mountains the
-church has been making steady growth in numbers, and its territorial
-boundaries are constantly extending. The church is no longer confined
-within the boundary lines of the territory of Utah. It has five stakes
-organized in the state of Idaho, one in the state of Colorado, one
-in Wyoming, four in the territory of Arizona, and colonies in Mexico
-and Canada. The settlements of the Saints are noted for peace and
-good order; for the cleanliness, thrift, sobriety and the comfortable
-circumstances of the people. But few individuals in the church can be
-considered wealthy, yet as a whole the community is rich, most of the
-people owning their homes, the lands they cultivate and the flocks and
-herds they tend. The land has been blessed for their sakes, and made to
-yield in its strength. They are a contented, happy, and fast becoming a
-mighty people. They are diligently preaching the gospel to the world,
-having sent missionaries to nearly all the nations of the earth. In
-the British Isles, and among the Scandinavian and German people the
-missionaries have been especially successful. Of late years great
-progress has been made also among the natives of New Zealand, Sandwich
-Islands, and other islands of the Pacific, notably in Samoa.
-</p>
-<p><b>20.</b> The church is also devoting much of its energies to the work
-for the dead. Four magnificent temples have been reared by the Saints.
-One in St, George, dedicated January 1st, 1877; one in Logan, dedicated
-17th of May, 1884; another in Manti, dedicated 21st of May, 1888; and
-one in Salt Lake, dedicated on the 6th of April, 1893. In these temples
-the faithful Saints are doing a noble and a mighty work for their
-ancestors, as well as a very important work for the living.
-</p>
-<p><b>21. A Preparatory Work.</b>&mdash;The work of God, as revealed through the
-Prophet Joseph Smith, has a peculiar significance to this generation.
-It is essentially a preparatory work; its direct mission is to prepare
-for the glorious coming of the Son <span class="pagenum"><a name="p410"></a>{410}</span> of God to reign over the
-earth. Nothing can be more explicitly stated in the scripture than the
-fact that the Son of God will come to the earth in the glory of his
-Father, to reward the righteous with a speedy resurrection from the
-dead, and destroy the wicked by the judgments of famine, pestilence and
-war; to establish his kingdom in power, bringing in a reign of peace,
-liberty and righteousness. In proof of this let the student consider
-the following scripture:
-</p>
-<p><em>I. Promise of Messiah's Glorious Return:</em>&mdash;"And when he had spoken
-these things, while they beheld, he was taken up; and a cloud received
-him out of their sight. And, while they looked steadfastly toward
-heaven as he went up, behold two men [angels] stood by them in white
-apparel; which also said, Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up
-into heaven? This same Jesus, which is taken up from you into heaven,
-shall so come in like manner as ye have seen him go into heaven."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn208"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn208">208</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>"For the Son of man shall come in the glory of his Father, with his
-angels; and then he shall reward every man according to his works."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn209"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn209">209</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><em>II. Messiah to Come to Judgment:</em>&mdash;"For if we believe that Jesus
-died and rose again, even so them also which sleep in Jesus will God
-bring with him. For this we say unto you by the word of the Lord, that
-we which are alive and remain unto the coming of the Lord shall not
-prevent them which are asleep. For the Lord himself shall descend from
-heaven with a shout, with the voice of the archangel, and with the
-trump of God: and the dead in Christ shall rise first; then we which
-are alive and remain shall be caught up together with them in the
-clouds, to meet the Lord in the air: and so shall we ever be with the
-Lord."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn210"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn210">210</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p>"And to you who are troubled rest with us, when the Lord Jesus shall
-be revealed from heaven with his mighty angels <span class="pagenum"><a name="p411"></a>{411}</span> in flaming fire
-taking vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not the
-gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ: who shall be punished with everlasting
-destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his
-power; when he shall come to be glorified in his saints, and to be
-admired in all them that believe (because our testimony among you was
-believed) in that day."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn211"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn211">211</a>]</sup> "For the Son of Man cometh at an hour when
-we think not."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn212"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn212">212</a>]</sup> [See note 9, end of section.]
-</p>
-<p><em>III. The World to be Warned of Coming Judgments:</em>&mdash;To a number of
-elders in Kirtland, in 1832, who had been called to the ministry,
-the Lord gave these instructions, and, of course, they apply to all
-elders called to the same ministry:&mdash;"Teach ye diligently and my grace
-shall attend you, that you may be instructed more perfectly in theory,
-in principle, in doctrine, in the law of the gospel, in all things
-that pertain unto the kingdom of God, that is expedient for you to
-understand. * * * That ye may be prepared in all things when I shall
-send you again to magnify the calling whereunto I have called you, and
-the mission with which I have commissioned you. Behold, I sent you out
-to testify and warn the people, and it becometh every man who hath been
-warned to warn his neighbor. Therefore, they are left without excuse,
-and their sins are upon their own heads. * * * Therefore, tarry ye,
-and labor diligently, that ye may be perfected in your ministry to go
-forth among the Gentiles for the last time, as many as the mouth of
-the Lord shall name, to bind up the law and seal up the testimony, and
-to prepare the saints for the hour of judgment which is to come; that
-their souls may escape the wrath of God, the desolation of abomination
-which awaits the wicked, both in this world and the world to come. *
-* * Abide ye in the liberty wherewith ye are made free; entangle not
-yourselves in sin, but let your hands be clean, until the Lord come;
-for not many days hence and the earth shall <span class="pagenum"><a name="p412"></a>{412}</span> tremble and reel to
-and fro as a drunken man, and the sun shall hide his face, and shall
-refuse to give light, and the moon shall be bathed in blood, and the
-stars shall become exceeding angry, and shall cast themselves down as a
-fig that falleth from off a fig tree.
-</p>
-<p>"And after your testimony cometh wrath and indignation upon the people;
-for after your testimony cometh the testimony of earthquakes, that
-shall cause groanings in the midst of her, and men shall fall upon the
-ground, and shall not be able to stand. And also cometh the testimony
-of the voice of thunderings, and the voice of lightnings, and the
-voice of the tempest, and the voice of the waves of the sea heaving
-themselves beyond their bounds. And all things shall be in commotion;
-and surely, men's hearts shall fail them; for fear shall come upon all
-people; and angels shall fly through the midst of heaven, crying with a
-loud voice, sounding the trump of God, saying, Prepare ye, prepare ye,
-O inhabitants of the earth; for the judgment of our God is come; behold
-and lo! the Bridegroom cometh, go ye out to meet him."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn213"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn213">213</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><em>IV. The Coming of the Kingdom of God from Heaven:</em>&mdash;"Hearken, and lo,
-a voice as of one from on high. * * * Prepare ye the way of the Lord,
-make his paths straight. The keys of the kingdom of God are committed
-unto man on the earth, and from thence shall the gospel roll forth unto
-the ends of the earth, as the stone which is cut out of the mountains
-without hands shall roll forth, until it has filled the whole earth;
-yea, a voice crying&mdash;Prepare ye the way of the Lord, prepare ye the
-supper of the Lamb, make ready for the Bridegroom; pray unto the Lord,
-call upon his holy name, make known his wonderful works among the
-people; call upon the Lord, that his kingdom may go forth upon the
-earth, that the inhabitants thereof may receive it, and be prepared for
-the days to come, in which the Son of Man shall come down from heaven,
-clothed <span class="pagenum"><a name="p413"></a>{413}</span> in the brightness of his glory, to meet the kingdom of
-God which is set up on the earth."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn214"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn214">214</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><em>V. A Prayer:</em>&mdash;"Wherefore may the kingdom of God go forth, that the
-kingdom of heaven may come, that thou, O God, mayest be glorified in
-heaven so on earth, that thy enemies may be subdued; for thine is the
-honor, power and glory, forever and ever. Amen."<sup>[<a name="PartIVfn215"></a><a href="#txtPartIVfn215">215</a>]</sup>
-</p>
-<p><b>22. Conclusion.</b>&mdash;Such then is the work of God in the great
-Dispensation of the Fullness of Times&mdash;a preparatory work for the
-glorious coming and reign of Messiah. It is the gospel of Jesus Christ
-restored to the earth through the ministration of angels to Joseph
-Smith and others whom the Lord called to the work. In it are found
-all the principles, ordinances, authorities, powers, gifts, graces,
-callings and appointments necessary to accomplish the eternal salvation
-of the living and the dead&mdash;it is the <em>fullness</em> of the gospel; and has
-or will gather into it all that has ever been revealed concerning the
-redemption of the earth and the human race. This great work of God, as
-we have seen, contemplates the gathering of Israel and the restoration
-of the "lost tribes;" the return of the Jews to Jerusalem, which city
-they will rebuild; the redemption of the Lamanites and the building
-of a glorious city upon the American continent to be called Zion; the
-advent of Messiah in power and glory to reign in righteousness over the
-earth for a thousand years, with all the ancient Saints and those of
-modern days who are worthy; it contemplates the final redemption of the
-earth, and teaches that it will become a celestial sphere, the abode
-of resurrected celestial beings forever. This work of God accepts and
-includes within its boundary lines all truth. It is progressive and
-is destined to become the religion of the age. Within it is scope for
-all the intelligence that shall flow unto it&mdash;"within its atmosphere
-is room for every intellectual wing." <span class="pagenum"><a name="p414"></a>{414}</span> It does not, as some have
-supposed, thrive best where ignorance is most profound; nor does it
-depend upon superstition for its existence or perpetuity; but it
-possesses within itself principles of native strength that will enable
-it to weather every storm, outlive all hatred born of ignorance and
-prejudice, and will yet prove itself to be what indeed it is&mdash;the power
-of God unto salvation to all those who believe and obey it.
-</p>
-<p><b>NOTES.</b>
-</p>
-<p><b>1. Prophecy that the Saints would Remove to the West.</b>&mdash;I
-passed over the river to Montrose, Iowa, in company with General
-Adams, Colonel Brewer and others, and witnessed the installation of
-the officers of the Rising Sun Lodge of Ancient order of Masons, at
-Montrose, by General James Adams, deputy grand master of Illinois.
-While the deputy grand master was engaged in giving the requisite
-instructions to the master-elect, I had a conversation with a number
-of the brethren in the shade of the building on the subject of our
-persecutions in Missouri, and the constant annoyance which has followed
-us since we were driven from that state. I prophesied that the Saints
-would continue to suffer much affliction and would be driven to the
-Rocky Mountains, many would apostatize, others would be put to death
-by their persecutors, or lose their lives in consequence of exposure
-or disease, and some of you will live to go and assist in making
-settlements and build cities and see the Saints become a mighty people
-in the midst of the Rocky Mountains.&mdash;Joseph Smith's journal for 6th of
-August, 1842.
-</p>
-<p><b>2. Why the Church Came West.</b>&mdash;"Many living witnesses can testify
-that we proposed moving to California [then a general name for the
-great West, including what is now Utah] leaving the land of our
-oppression, preaching the gospel to the Lamanites, building up other
-temples to the living God, establishing ourselves in the far distant
-West. The cruel and perfidious persecutions that we endured tended to
-hasten our departure, but did <em>not</em> dictate it. It jeopardized our
-lives, property and liberty, but was not the cause of our removal. Many
-a time have I listened to the voice of our beloved prophet, while in
-council, dwell on this subject with delight; his eyes sparkling with
-animation, and his soul fired with the inspiration of the Spirit of
-the living God. It was a theme that caused the bosoms of all who were
-privileged to listen to thrill with delight; intimately <span class="pagenum"><a name="p415"></a>{415}</span> connected
-with this were themes upon which prophets, patriarchs, priests and
-kings dwelt with pleasure and delight; of them they prophesied, sung,
-wrote, spoke and desired. to see, but died without the sight. My spirit
-glows with sacred fire while I reflect upon these scenes, and I say, O
-Lord, hasten the day! Let Zion be established! Let the mountain of the
-Lord's house be established in the tops of the mountains!"&mdash;a thing, I
-may add&mdash;and which he plainly intimates&mdash;could not have been done had
-the Saints remained in Nauvoo. The Saints did not come to the Rocky
-Mountain valleys because they were compelled to by their enemies,
-but came here because it was their destiny to come; because the Lord
-would have them here; and because there were problems to work out in
-connection with the work of God which could be worked out nowhere
-else.&mdash;Life of John Taylor p. 179.
-</p>
-<p><b>3. Character of Brigham Young.</b>&mdash;Brigham Young was colonizer,
-statesman, philosopher, philanthropist, reformer, prophet leader,
-priestly-king, an honest man, God's noblest work! * * * His greatness
-shines forth in conduct and leadership and colonization and in the
-building of a mighty commonwealth in these mountain valleys. * * * On
-all great occasions promptness and decision were characteristics of his
-organization; and let a question arise where it might, all Israel felt
-when it reached God's prophet-leader, it would find proper solution,
-and when solved would be endorsed by wisdom.&mdash;Moses Thatcher.
-</p>
-<p><b>4. Succession of the Twelve on the Death of President Young.</b>&mdash;On
-the 4th of September, 1877, the two counselors of the late President
-Young and ten of the Twelve Apostles&mdash;Orson Pratt and Joseph F.
-Smith, the other two members, were absent in England&mdash;held a meeting
-and waited upon the Lord. With humble, contrite and saddened hearts
-they earnestly sought to learn his will concerning themselves and the
-church. The Lord blessed them with the spirit of union, and revealed to
-them what steps should be taken, and the following is what was done:
-Elder Taylor was unanimously sustained as the president of the twelve;
-and with the same unanimity it was voted that the twelve apostles
-should be sustained as the presiding authority in the church, while the
-counselors to the late President Young, John W. Young and Daniel H.
-Wells, were sustained as one with, counselors to, and associated with
-the twelve apostles. To facilitate the transaction of business it was
-also voted that for the time being President Taylor should be assisted
-by John W. Young, Daniel H. Wells and George Q. Cannon, in attending
-to business connected with the temples, the public works and other
-financial affairs of the Church.&mdash;Life of John Taylor.
-</p>
-<p><b>5. John Taylor.</b>&mdash;There was a beautiful harmony in the character
-of <span class="pagenum"><a name="p416"></a>{416}</span> his mind and the lineaments of his person. If the habitation
-was splendid, the inmate was worthy of it. His noble form and bearing
-were but the outward expression of the spirit within. A universal
-benevolence, powerful intellect, splendid courage, physical as well
-as moral, a noble independence of spirit, coupled with implicit faith
-and trust in God, a high sense of honor, unimpeachable integrity,
-indomitable determination and passionate love of liberty, justice and
-truth marked the outlines of his character.&mdash;Life of John Taylor.
-</p>
-<p><b>6. The Discontinuance of Plural Marriage.</b>&mdash;The clause in
-President Woodruff's manifesto which discontinued plural marriage is
-as follows: "Inasmuch as laws have been enacted by Congress forbidding
-plural marriages, which laws have been pronounced constitutional by the
-court of last resort, I hereby declare my intention to submit to those
-laws, and to use my influence with the members of the church over which
-I preside to have them do likewise. * * * And I now publicly declare
-that my advice to the Latter-day Saints is to refrain from contracting
-any marriage forbidden by the law of the land."
-</p>
-<p>Following is the resolution presented to the semi-annual conference in
-the October following. It was presented by Lorenzo Snow, the president
-of the twelve apostles:&mdash;"I move that, recognizing Wilford Woodruff
-as the president of the Church of Jesus Christ of Latter-day Saints,
-and the only man on the earth at the present time who holds the keys
-of the sealing ordinances, we consider him fully authorized by virtue
-of his position to issue the manifesto which has been read in our
-hearing, and which is dated September 24, 1890; and that as a church
-in general conference assembled, we accept his declaration concerning
-plural marriage as authoritative and binding." The vote to sustain the
-foregoing motion was unanimous.
-</p>
-<p><b>7. Basis on which the Manifesto was Issued.</b>&mdash;Verily, verily I
-say unto you, that when I give a commandment to any of the sons of
-men, to do a work unto my name, and those sons of men go with all
-their might, and with all they have to perform that work, and cease
-not their diligence, and their enemies come upon them and hinder them
-from performing that work; behold, it behooveth me to require that
-work no more at the hands of those sons of men, but to accept of their
-offerings. [Revelation given 19th Jan., 1841, Doc. and Cov., sec.
-cxxiv.] It is on this basis that President Woodruff has felt himself
-justified in issuing this manifesto. * * * We have waited for the
-Lord to move in this matter, and on the 24th of September, President
-Woodruff made up his mind that he would write something, and he had
-the spirit of it. He had prayed about it and he had besought the Lord
-repeatedly to show him what to do. At that time the spirit came upon
-him, and the document that has been read in your hearing was the
-result. I know that it was right, much as it has gone against <span class="pagenum"><a name="p417"></a>{417}</span> the
-grain with me in many respects. * * * But when God speaks and when God
-makes known his mind and will, I hope that I and all Latter-day Saints
-will bow in submission to it.&mdash;Geo. Q. Cannon, in a sermon Oct. 6th,
-1890.
-</p>
-<p>I want to say to all Israel that the step which I have taken in issuing
-this manifesto has not been done without earnest prayer before the
-Lord. * * * I have done my duty, and the nation of which we form a part
-must be responsible for that which has been done in relation to that
-principle [plural marriage.]&mdash;President Woodruff, in a sermon Oct.6th,
-1890.
-</p>
-<p><b>8. Testimony from God Promised that the Manifesto was
-Inspired.</b>&mdash;I have received a revelation and commandment from the
-Lord, which I have not revealed to any man, which I shall reveal to
-this assembly, and the command of the Lord I shall give to this people,
-which is this: The Lord has revealed to me that there are many in
-the church who feel badly tried about the manifesto, and also about
-the testimony of the presidency and apostles before the master in
-chancery. The Lord has commanded me to put the following question to
-the Saints, and those who will give strict attention to it shall have
-the Holy Ghost to be with them to inspire them to answer that question
-for themselves, and the Lord has promised that the answer will be to
-all alike. The question is this: which is the wisest course for the
-Latter-day Saints to pursue&mdash;to continue to attempt to practice plural
-marriage with the laws of the nation against it and the opposition
-of 60,000,000 of people, and at the cost of the confiscation, and
-loss of all the temples, and the stopping of the ordinances therein,
-both for the living and the dead; and the imprisonment of the first
-presidency and the twelve, and the leaders of heads of families in the
-church, and the confiscation of the personal property of the people
-(all of which of themselves would stop the practice) or after doing
-and suffering what we have through our adherence to this principle, to
-cease the practice and submit to the law, and through doing so leave
-the prophets, apostles and fathers at home, so that they can instruct
-the people and attend to the duties of the church, and also leave the
-temples in the hands of the Saints so that they can attend to the
-ordinances of the gospel, both for the living and the dead? Now the
-inspiration of the Lord will reveal to any person which course wisdom
-would dictate us to pursue. And the Latter-day Saints throughout all
-Israel should understand that the first presidency of the church and
-the twelve apostles are led and guided by the inspiration of the Lord,
-and the Lord will not permit me nor any other man to lead the people
-astray.&mdash;President Woodruff, at Box Elder quarterly conference, Oct.
-25th. 1891. Juvenile Instructor, vol. xxvi: p. 671.
-</p>
-<p><b>9. Sign of the Coming of Messiah.</b>&mdash;I have asked the Lord
-concerning <span class="pagenum"><a name="p418"></a>{418}</span> his coming; and while asking the Lord, he gave me
-a sign and said: "In the days of Noah I set a bow in the heavens as
-a sign and a token that in any year that the bow should be seen the
-Lord would not come; but there should be seed time and harvest during
-that year; but whenever you see the bow withdrawn, it shall be a token
-that there shall be famine, pestilence and great distress among the
-nations, and that the coming of the Messiah is not far distant. * *
-Jesus Christ never did reveal to any man the precise time that he would
-come."&mdash;Joseph Smith.
-</p>
-<p><b>REVIEW.</b>
-</p>
-<p>1. Relate the circumstances connected with the martyrdom of Joseph and
-Hyrum Smith.
-</p>
-<p>2. Who succeeded to the presidency of the church after the death of the
-Prophet Joseph?
-</p>
-<p>3. Give an account of the expulsion of the church from Illinois.
-</p>
-<p>4. State the reasons why the church in its flight went westward.
-</p>
-<p>5. Give an account of the arrival in Salt Lake valley.
-</p>
-<p>6. When and where was the first presidency of the church reorganized?
-</p>
-<p>7. State the leading achievements in the career of Brigham Young.
-</p>
-<p>8. What was the character of President Young? (Note 3.)
-</p>
-<p>9. Who again took the presidency of the church at the death of Brigham
-Young?
-</p>
-<p>10. When was the first presidency again organized?
-</p>
-<p>11. State what you can of the life and character of John Taylor.
-</p>
-<p>12. For what is John Taylor's administration noted?
-</p>
-<p>13. Who succeeded to the presidency of the church after the death of
-President Taylor?
-</p>
-<p>14. What led to the discontinuance of the practice of plural marriage?
-</p>
-<p>15. When was plural marriage publicly announced as a doctrine of the
-Church?
-</p>
-<p>16. Give an account of the enactments of Congress against plural
-marriage.
-</p>
-<p>17. State in what spirit these laws were enforced.
-</p>
-<p>18. State in what way plural marriage was finally discontinued.
-</p>
-<p>19. What was the basis of this action of the Church? (Notes 6, 7, 8.)
-</p>
-<p>20. Were the Saints responsible either for the introduction or
-discontinuance of plural marriage?
-</p>
-<p>21. What has been their course in relation to this principle since its
-introduction?
-</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="p419"></a>{419}</span> 22. Give an account of the laying of the cap-stone on the Salt
-Lake temple.
-</p>
-<p>23. Make a statement of the growth and present position of the church.
-</p>
-<p>24. What is the immediate purpose of the work began by the Prophet
-Joseph Smith?
-</p>
-<p>25. State several promises to be found in the Jewish scriptures
-respecting the glorious return of Messiah.
-</p>
-<p>26. Quote those that predict Messiah will come to judgment.
-</p>
-<p>27. What hath God decreed concerning the time of his coming? (Note 9.)
-</p>
-<p>28. For what especial purpose hath God sent forth his servants to the
-world in this dispensation?
-</p>
-<p>29. What will be the crowning event to the work of this dispensation?
-</p>
-<p>30. State what is contemplated by the work of God in the dispensation
-of the fullness of times.
-</p>
-<p>THE END.
-</p>
-<h3>Footnotes
-</h3>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn1"></a><a href="#PartIVfn1">1</a>. Jaques' Catechism, page 77.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn2"></a><a href="#PartIVfn2">2</a>. "God having made known unto us * * * that in the dispensation of
-the fullness of times he might gather together in one all things in
-Christ, both which are in heaven, and which are on earth; even in him."
-(Ephesians i:9, 10.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn3"></a><a href="#PartIVfn3">3</a>. Note 2, end of section.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn4"></a><a href="#PartIVfn4">4</a>. Ontario County has since been divided, and the north part of it, in
-which Palmyra is located, is now called Wayne County.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn5"></a><a href="#PartIVfn5">5</a>. While the Prophet Joseph in describing this first great vision
-refers to the Lord and his Son Jesus Christ as two glorious personages
-without giving at that time any particular description of their
-persons, it is clear that they were in the form of men. Teaching the
-church the character of the Godhead some years later, the prophet said:
-"God himself was once as we are now, and is an exalted Man and sits
-enthroned in yonder heavens. That is the great secret. If the vail was
-rent today and the great God who holds this world in its orbit, and who
-upholds all worlds and all things by his power, was to make himself
-visible&mdash;I say if you were to see him today, you would see him like a
-man in form&mdash;like yourselves, in all the person, image and very form as
-a man, for Adam was created in the very fashion, image and likeness of
-God, and received instruction from and walked and talked, and conversed
-with him, as one man talks and communes with another."&mdash;Journal of
-Discourses, Vol. VI, page 3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn6"></a><a href="#PartIVfn6">6</a>. Most likely the first part of the third chapter, as that relates to
-the coming of a messenger to prepare the way for the glorious coming of
-Messiah. (See Mal. iii: 1-6.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn7"></a><a href="#PartIVfn7">7</a>. Pearl of Great Price, page 90. The words in Italics indicate the
-difference between the passages as quoted by Moroni and as they stand
-in our English version of the Bible. The student should compare the
-passages as quoted above with the Bible and mark how superior is the
-angel's rendering of them.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn8"></a><a href="#PartIVfn8">8</a>. That was the name of the hill among the Nephites. The Jaredites, a
-still more ancient people, called it Ramah.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn9"></a><a href="#PartIVfn9">9</a>. Book of Mormon, pp. 114, 115.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn10"></a><a href="#PartIVfn10">10</a>. This messenger was a resurrected personage. It will be remembered
-that John the Baptist was beheaded by Herod Antipas before the
-crucifixion of the Lord; and that after the resurrection of Messiah,
-"the graves were opened; and many bodies of the saints which slept
-arose, and came out of the graves after his [Christ's] resurrection,
-and went into the holy city, and appeared unto many." (Matt. xxvii: 52,
-53.) As John the Baptist was one of the most worthy of the saints, and
-a martyr for righteousness, it is but reasonable to conclude that he
-was among the number resurrected immediately after the resurrection of
-Jesus.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn11"></a><a href="#PartIVfn11">11</a>. For the words of the angel see Doc. and Cov., sec. 13.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn12"></a><a href="#PartIVfn12">12</a>. These baptisms were, of course, by immersion. The Savior when
-teaching the Nephites how to baptize, said: "Ye shall go down and stand
-in the water, and * * * these are the words ye shall say, calling them
-by name, saying&mdash;Having authority given me of Jesus Christ, I baptize
-you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
-Amen. And then shall ye immerse them in the water, and come forth again
-out of the water." (III Nephi xi: 23-26.) It was this passage which led
-Joseph and Oliver to inquire of the Lord about baptism, with the result
-stated in the text.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn13"></a><a href="#PartIVfn13">13</a>. See Cannon's Life of Joseph Smith, p. 73.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn14"></a><a href="#PartIVfn14">14</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxviii: 20; also article by Joseph F. Smith on
-Restoration of the Melchisedek Priesthood, "Contributor," vol x, p. 310.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn15"></a><a href="#PartIVfn15">15</a>. Matt. xvi: 19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn16"></a><a href="#PartIVfn16">16</a>. Cannon's Life of Joseph Smith, p. 73.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn17"></a><a href="#PartIVfn17">17</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cvii: 18, 19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn18"></a><a href="#PartIVfn18">18</a>. Their names were Joseph Smith, Oliver Cowdery, Hyrum Smith, Peter
-Whitmer, Jun., Samuel H. Smith, and David Whitmer. There were a number
-of others who had been baptized, but as six persons were sufficient to
-fill the requirements of the laws of the State of New York in respect
-to organizing religious societies, the church was organized with that
-number.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn19"></a><a href="#PartIVfn19">19</a>. The words "of Latter-day Saints," were not used until some time
-after April 26, 1838, when they were added by revelation from the Lord.
-(Doc. and Cov., sec. cxv.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn20"></a><a href="#PartIVfn20">20</a>. See Doc. and Cov. sec. xxi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn21"></a><a href="#PartIVfn21">21</a>. The revelation giving these instructions was given in the chamber
-of Peter Whitmer, Sen., and is the "voice of God in the chamber of old
-Father Whitmer," alluded to in the letter of Joseph to the church under
-date of Sep. 6, 1842, contained in sec. cxxviii of the Doc. and Cov.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn22"></a><a href="#PartIVfn22">22</a>. Page 297.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn23"></a><a href="#PartIVfn23">23</a>. It is the law of the church that "no person is to be ordained to
-any office in this church, where there is a regularly organized branch
-of same, without the vote of that church." (Doc. and Cov., sec. xx: 65.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn24"></a><a href="#PartIVfn24">24</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. xxvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn25"></a><a href="#PartIVfn25">25</a>. The voice of the people is the voice of God.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn26"></a><a href="#PartIVfn26">26</a>. The voice of God is the voice of the people.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn27"></a><a href="#PartIVfn27">27</a>. The voice of God and the voice of the people.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn28"></a><a href="#PartIVfn28">28</a>. This revelation is the one found in sec. xx., Doc. and Cov. The
-Prophet Joseph precedes it in his history with these remarks: "Among
-many other things of the kind [spiritual manifestations], we obtained
-of Him the following, by the spirit of prophecy and revelation, which
-not only gave us much information, but also pointed out to us the
-precise day upon which, according to his will and commandment, we
-should proceed to organize his church once again here upon the earth."
-Then followed the revelation above referred to.&mdash;Hist. Joseph Smith,
-Mill Star (Supplement) vol. xiv, p.22
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn29"></a><a href="#PartIVfn29">29</a>. See part I.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn30"></a><a href="#PartIVfn30">30</a>. Subsequently when some persons desired to join the church without
-baptism at the hands of the elders, having been baptized by the
-ministers of other churches, the Lord said: "All old covenants have I
-caused to be done away in this thing, and this is a new and everlasting
-covenant, even that which was from the beginning. Wherefore, although
-a man should be baptized an hundred times, it availeth him nothing,
-for you cannot enter in at the straight gate by the law of Moses,
-neither by your dead works. For it is because of your dead works, that
-I have caused this last covenant and this church to be built up unto me
-even as in days of old. Wherefore enter ye in at the gate, as I have
-commanded, and seek not to counsel your God." Doc. and Cov. sec. xxii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn31"></a><a href="#PartIVfn31">31</a>. Eight years is fixed as the age of baptism for children. Doc. and
-Cov. sec. lxviii: 27.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn32"></a><a href="#PartIVfn32">32</a>. These are the same words given to the Nephites, except that the
-opening clause in the Book of Mormon is: "Having authority given me of
-Jesus Christ" (III Nephi xi: 25), and that means the same as "Having
-been commissioned of Jesus Christ," etc.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn33"></a><a href="#PartIVfn33">33</a>. All officers in the church holding higher authority than those
-named would, of course, have authority to administer the sacrament.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn34"></a><a href="#PartIVfn34">34</a>. A few months after the organization of the church, viz., early in
-the month of August, 1830, when the Prophet Joseph left his house in
-Harmony, Penn., for the purpose of procuring wine to administer the
-sacrament to a few saints visiting him at his home&mdash;he had gone but a
-short distance when he was met by a heavenly messenger and received
-the revelation contained in the Doc. and Cov. sec. xxvii, a portion
-of which is as follows: "Listen to the voice of Jesus Christ, your
-Lord, your God and your Redeemer, whose word is quick and powerful.
-For behold I say unto you, that it mattereth not what ye shall eat or
-what ye shall drink when ye partake of the sacrament, if it so be that
-ye do it with an eye single to my glory, remembering unto the Father
-my body which was laid down for you, and my blood which was shed for
-the remission of your sins; wherefore, a commandment I give unto you,
-that ye shall not purchase wine, neither strong drink of your enemies;
-wherefore you shall partake of none except it is made new among you;
-yea, in this my Father's kingdom, which shall be built up on the
-earth." This revelation is the authority the Church of Jesus Christ of
-Latter-day Saints has for using water instead of wine in the sacrament.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn35"></a><a href="#PartIVfn35">35</a>. It must be remembered that this revelation was given before the
-church was organized; at that time there were a number who had been
-baptized, and who had children not old enough to be baptized, and had
-not yet been blessed of the elders. This commandment, therefore, was
-directed more especially to them, but applies, of course, to people
-placed in like circumstances. Subsequently, in November 1831, the
-Lord said: "Inasmuch as parents have children in Zion, or in any of
-her stakes which are organized, who teach them not to understand the
-doctrine of repentance, faith in Christ, the Son of the living God,
-and of baptism and the gift of the Holy Ghost by the laying on of
-hands when eight years old, the sin be upon the heads of the parents;
-for this shall be a law unto the inhabitants of Zion, or in any of
-her stakes when organized; and their children shall be baptized for
-the remission of sins when eight years old and receive the laying on
-of hands, and they shall also teach their children to pray and walk
-uprightly before the Lord." (Doc. and Cov. sec. lxviii:25-28.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn36"></a><a href="#PartIVfn36">36</a>. The term "elder" is both a general and a specific title. That
-is, it may be applied to an apostle or a seventy; as, for instance,
-in the revelation under consideration (Doc. and Cov. sec. xx), it is
-said: "An apostle is an elder," etc. We shall see also further on that
-it is the name of a specific office in the church; that ninety-six
-elders constitute a quorum; that they constitute a standing ministry
-in the stakes of Zion; and that they have authority to do all that is
-enumerated in the text above.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn37"></a><a href="#PartIVfn37">37</a>. The closing phrases of paragraph 37, sec. xx; Doc. and Cov., are
-what Oliver objected to&mdash;"And truly manifest by their works that they
-have received of the Spirit of Christ unto the remission of sins."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn38"></a><a href="#PartIVfn38">38</a>. Doc. and Cov. sec. xxviii
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn39"></a><a href="#PartIVfn39">39</a>. Doc. and Cov. xxviii, and sec. xliii:1-6
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn40"></a><a href="#PartIVfn40">40</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xxviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn41"></a><a href="#PartIVfn41">41</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xxxvii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn42"></a><a href="#PartIVfn42">42</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xli.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn43"></a><a href="#PartIVfn43">43</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn44"></a><a href="#PartIVfn44">44</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 15.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn45"></a><a href="#PartIVfn45">45</a>. Ibid, verse 20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn46"></a><a href="#PartIVfn46">46</a>. Ibid, verse 68.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn47"></a><a href="#PartIVfn47">47</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lvii:17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn48"></a><a href="#PartIVfn48">48</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lviii: 15; 18. Ibid, sec. cvii: 72-75.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn49"></a><a href="#PartIVfn49">49</a>. There are bishops holding different positions: Bishop Partridge
-was a general bishop over the land of Zion; while Bishop Whitney was
-a general bishop over the church in Kirtland, Ohio, and also over the
-eastern churches until afterwards appointed as presiding bishop. * * *
-There are also ward bishops, whose duties are confined to their several
-wards. * * * There are also bishops' agents such as Sidney Gilbert [he
-was Bishop Partridge's agent in Zion, Missouri], and others.&mdash;Items on
-Priesthood by the late President John Taylor.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn50"></a><a href="#PartIVfn50">50</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 17, 18.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn51"></a><a href="#PartIVfn51">51</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn52"></a><a href="#PartIVfn52">52</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 21.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn53"></a><a href="#PartIVfn53">53</a>. And inasmuch as a president of the high priesthood shall
-transgress, he shall be had in remembrance before the common council
-of the church, who shall be assisted by twelve counselors of the
-high priesthood; and their decision upon his head shall be an end of
-controversy concerning him. (Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 82, 83).
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn54"></a><a href="#PartIVfn54">54</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn55"></a><a href="#PartIVfn55">55</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxviii: 22-24.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn56"></a><a href="#PartIVfn56">56</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv: 112.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn57"></a><a href="#PartIVfn57">57</a>. I think a careful reading of sec. lxviii of the Doctrine and
-Covenants, will justify this conclusion&mdash;that not only the office of
-presiding bishop of the church should be filled by the first-born of
-the sons of Aaron, but that the traveling and local bishops also, so
-far as can be, should be chosen from among the first born of the sons
-of Aaron. The following passage seems especially clear on the question:
-"There remaineth hereafter, in the due time of the Lord, other bishops
-to be set apart unto the church, to minister even according to the
-first; wherefore they shall be high priests who are worthy, and
-they shall be appointed by the first presidency of the Melchisedek
-priesthood, except they be descendants of Aaron, and if they be literal
-descendants of Aaron they have a legal right to the bishopric, if they
-are the first-born among the sons of Aaron." Sec. lxviii: 14-16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn58"></a><a href="#PartIVfn58">58</a>. Book of Ether, ch. xiii, and III Nephi, ch. xx.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn59"></a><a href="#PartIVfn59">59</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn60"></a><a href="#PartIVfn60">60</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn61"></a><a href="#PartIVfn61">61</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lvii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn62"></a><a href="#PartIVfn62">62</a>. Acts iv: 32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn63"></a><a href="#PartIVfn63">63</a>. The branch of the Church in this part of the Lord's vineyard
-[Kirtland], which had increased to nearly one hundred members, were
-striving to do the will of God so far as they knew it, though some
-had strange notions, and false spirits had crept in among them. With
-a little caution and some wisdom, I soon assisted the brethren and
-sisters to overcome them. The plan of "common stock," which had existed
-in what was called "the family," whose members generally had embraced
-the everlasting gospel, was readily abandoned for the more perfect law
-of the Lord, and the false spirits were easily discerned and rejected
-by the light of revelation.&mdash;Joseph Smith.&mdash;Millennial Star Supplement
-to vol. xiv, p. 56.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn64"></a><a href="#PartIVfn64">64</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xli.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn65"></a><a href="#PartIVfn65">65</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn66"></a><a href="#PartIVfn66">66</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 30,32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn67"></a><a href="#PartIVfn67">67</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn68"></a><a href="#PartIVfn68">68</a>. In the very revelations in which the first instructions on the
-subject of consecration and stewardship are given the Lord says: "Let
-all thy garments be plain and their beauty the beauty of the work of
-thine own hands. * * * Thou shalt not be idle, for he that is idle
-shall not eat the bread nor wear the garments of the laborer." (Doc.
-and Cov., sec. xliii: 40,42). In a subsequent revelation, referring to
-the inhabitants of Zion who were living under this law of consecration,
-the Lord said: "And the inhabitants of Zion, also, shall remember their
-labors, inasmuch as they are appointed to labor in all faithfulness,
-for the idler shall be had in remembrance before the Lord." (Doc. and
-Cov., sec. lxviii: 30).
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn69"></a><a href="#PartIVfn69">69</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ: 54,57.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn70"></a><a href="#PartIVfn70">70</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxii: 2,8.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn71"></a><a href="#PartIVfn71">71</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn72"></a><a href="#PartIVfn72">72</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. li: 4, 5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn73"></a><a href="#PartIVfn73">73</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 33, 35.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn74"></a><a href="#PartIVfn74">74</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ: 70, 77.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn75"></a><a href="#PartIVfn75">75</a>. "All children have claim upon their parents for their maintenance
-until they are of age. After that they have claim upon the church, or
-in other words, upon the Lord's store-house, if their parents have not
-wherewith to give them inheritances. And the store-house shall be kept
-by the consecrations of the church, and widows and orphans shall be
-provided for as also the poor." (Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxiii: 4, 6.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn76"></a><a href="#PartIVfn76">76</a>. Sec. xlii: 53;54. And you are to be equal, or in other words, you
-are to have equal claims on the properties for the benefit of managing
-the concerns of your stewardships, every man according to his wants and
-needs inasmuch as his wants are just. (Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxii: 17.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn77"></a><a href="#PartIVfn77">77</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. li: 10, 13, also verse 18, which says
-the law laid down in verses 10, 13, shall be an example to all churches.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn78"></a><a href="#PartIVfn78">78</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cv: 1, 5, also sec. lviii: 35, 36.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn79"></a><a href="#PartIVfn79">79</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 39.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn80"></a><a href="#PartIVfn80">80</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. li: 3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn81"></a><a href="#PartIVfn81">81</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. civ: 15-17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn82"></a><a href="#PartIVfn82">82</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxix.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn83"></a><a href="#PartIVfn83">83</a>. For a detailed account of this event and the causes leading up to
-it, see the author's work on the "Missouri Persecutions."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn84"></a><a href="#PartIVfn84">84</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. ciii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn85"></a><a href="#PartIVfn85">85</a>. Daniel Dunklin, governor of Missouri, agreed to call out the
-militia of the state and re-instate the exiles on their lands; but he
-claimed that he had no authority to keep a force under arms to protect
-them after they were restored. Hence the coming of Zion's camp to so
-strengthen the brethren that they could hold their own against the mob
-when once placed back in their homes.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn86"></a><a href="#PartIVfn86">86</a>. Missouri Persecutions.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn87"></a><a href="#PartIVfn87">87</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cv. The revelation was given on Fishing river,
-Missouri.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn88"></a><a href="#PartIVfn88">88</a>. The corner stones of the Kirtland temple were laid on the 23rd of
-July, 1833.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn89"></a><a href="#PartIVfn89">89</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cii:22.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn90"></a><a href="#PartIVfn90">90</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cvii: 23-33.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn91"></a><a href="#PartIVfn91">91</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cii: 30-32, also sec. cvii: 32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn92"></a><a href="#PartIVfn92">92</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cii: 26, 27.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn93"></a><a href="#PartIVfn93">93</a>. Their names were Lyman E. Johnson, Brigham Young, Heber C. Kimball,
-Orson Hyde, David W. Patten, Luke S. Johnson, Wm. E. McLellin, John F.
-Boynton, Wm. B. Smith, Parley P. Pratt, Thomas B. Marsh, Orson Pratt.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn94"></a><a href="#PartIVfn94">94</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cvii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn95"></a><a href="#PartIVfn95">95</a>. The circumstances under which this revelation (contained in section
-cvii, Doc. and Cov.) was given are highly interesting; they are as
-follows: On the afternoon of the 28th of March the twelve met in
-council and had a time of general confession. "On reviewing our past
-course," writes Orson Hyde and Wm. E. McLellin, clerks of the meeting,
-"we are satisfied, and feel to confess also, that we have not realized
-the importance of our calling, to that degree that we ought; we have
-been light minded and vain, and in many things done wrong&mdash;<em>wrong</em>. For
-all these things we have asked the forgiveness of our Heavenly Father,
-and wherein we have grieved or wounded the feelings of the presidency,
-we ask their forgiveness. The time when we are about to separate is
-near, and when we shall meet again, God only knows; we therefore feel
-to ask of him whom we have acknowledged to be our prophet and seer,
-that he inquire of God for us and obtain a revelation (if consistent)
-that we may look upon it when we are separated, that our hearts may be
-comforted. Our worthiness has not inspired us to make this request,
-but our unworthiness. We have unitedly asked God our Heavenly Father
-to grant unto us through his seer, a revelation of his mind and will
-concerning our duty the coming season, even a great revelation that
-will enlarge our hearts comfort us in adversity and brighten our hopes
-amidst the power of darkness." (Mill. Star, vol. xv, p. 245.) The
-revelation which was given in answer to this request is one of the most
-splendid contained in the Book of Doctrine and Covenants.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn96"></a><a href="#PartIVfn96">96</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. i: 38.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn97"></a><a href="#PartIVfn97">97</a>. Doctrine and Covenants sec. cxxi:36.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn98"></a><a href="#PartIVfn98">98</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxi: 41-44. These views from the
-revelations of the Lord to Joseph Smith are in strict accord with
-the teachings of Jesus Christ to the twelve apostles among the Jews.
-To them he said: "Ye know that the princes of the Gentiles exercise
-dominion over them, and they that are great, exercise authority upon
-them. But it shall not be so among you; but whosoever will be great
-among you let him be your minister; and whosoever will be chief among
-you, let him be your servant; even as the Son of Man came not to be
-ministered unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for
-many." (Matt. xx: 25-28.) Peter, it would seem remembered the spirit
-of these instructions, as years afterwards we have him saying to those
-set to govern the churches: "Feed the flock of God which is among you,
-taking the oversight thereof, not by constraint, but willingly; not for
-filthy lucre, but of a ready mind; neither as being lords over God's
-heritage, but being ensamples unto the flock." (I Peter v: 2, 3.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn99"></a><a href="#PartIVfn99">99</a>. This it appears is the view Joseph Smith took of the subject.
-Replying to a question of Judge Stephen A. Douglas, how he governed
-so easily so large a people as the Saints were at Nauvoo, the prophet
-replied, "I teach them correct principles and they govern themselves."
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn100"></a><a href="#PartIVfn100">100</a>. In answering the question: was the priesthood of Melchisedek
-taken away when Moses died, the Prophet Joseph said: "All priesthood
-is Melchisedek, but there are different portions or degrees of it. The
-portion which brought Moses to speak with God face to face was taken
-away; but that which brought the ministry of angels remained." (Hist.
-Joseph Smith. See also Doc. and Cov., sec. cxii: 4, 5.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn101"></a><a href="#PartIVfn101">101</a>. The reasons for calling this division the Melchisedek priesthood
-are given in note 3, section ii of part iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn102"></a><a href="#PartIVfn102">102</a>. The reason for calling the second division the Aaronic Priesthood
-is because it was a priesthood conferred upon Aaron, the brother of
-Moses, and his sons after him. It is a division of the priesthood which
-belongs of right to the house of Aaron. (See Doc. and Cov. sec. cvii:
-13, 14.)
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn103"></a><a href="#PartIVfn103">103</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 18-19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn104"></a><a href="#PartIVfn104">104</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn105"></a><a href="#PartIVfn105">105</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 21
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn106"></a><a href="#PartIVfn106">106</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 65-66.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn107"></a><a href="#PartIVfn107">107</a>. Ibid, verses 91, 92.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn108"></a><a href="#PartIVfn108">108</a>. It must be remembered by the student that apostles are also high
-priests. In fact the apostleship circumscribes all priesthood, hence it
-happens that some men who have not been directly ordained high priests,
-but who were apostles, have acted in the quorum of the first presidency
-of the church. Brigham Young did so.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn109"></a><a href="#PartIVfn109">109</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 22.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn110"></a><a href="#PartIVfn110">110</a>. Ibid, verse 91.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn111"></a><a href="#PartIVfn111">111</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 23, 24, 32, 39, 58.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn112"></a><a href="#PartIVfn112">112</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii:34.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn113"></a><a href="#PartIVfn113">113</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 25, 26.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn114"></a><a href="#PartIVfn114">114</a>. Up to the present date&mdash;1902&mdash;there have been one hundred and
-forty-three quorums of seventies organized. The Prophet Joseph Smith
-said that this choosing of seventies was to go on&mdash;if the labor in the
-vineyard required it&mdash;"even until there are one hundred and forty and
-four thousand thus set apart for the ministry."&mdash;Hist. Joseph Smith
-under date May 2, 1835.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn115"></a><a href="#PartIVfn115">115</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn116"></a><a href="#PartIVfn116">116</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 38.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn117"></a><a href="#PartIVfn117">117</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 27, 28.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn118"></a><a href="#PartIVfn118">118</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 39, 41.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn119"></a><a href="#PartIVfn119">119</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxiv: 91, 93.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn120"></a><a href="#PartIVfn120">120</a>. Ibid, verse 124.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn121"></a><a href="#PartIVfn121">121</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxiv: 133-136.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn122"></a><a href="#PartIVfn122">122</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv, verse 29.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn123"></a><a href="#PartIVfn123">123</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 11.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn124"></a><a href="#PartIVfn124">124</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cvii: 89.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn125"></a><a href="#PartIVfn125">125</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. cxxiv: 137.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn126"></a><a href="#PartIVfn126">126</a>. Doc. and Covenants, sec. cvii: 89, 90. Ibid, sec. cxxiv: 140. For
-further information on duties of elders see sec. ii, part iv, of this
-work.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn127"></a><a href="#PartIVfn127">127</a>. See sec. iii, part iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn128"></a><a href="#PartIVfn128">128</a>. See sec. ii, part iv, under caption Priests for explanation of
-their duties and powers.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn129"></a><a href="#PartIVfn129">129</a>. For explanation of the duties and powers of Teachers see caption
-Teachers, sec. ii, part iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn130"></a><a href="#PartIVfn130">130</a>. For explanation of their duties see caption Deacons, sec. ii, part
-iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn131"></a><a href="#PartIVfn131">131</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv: 30.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn132"></a><a href="#PartIVfn132">132</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. lxxxiv: 29.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn133"></a><a href="#PartIVfn133">133</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xx: 38, 59.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn134"></a><a href="#PartIVfn134">134</a>. See caption High Priests this section.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn135"></a><a href="#PartIVfn135">135</a>. See caption Elders this section.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn136"></a><a href="#PartIVfn136">136</a>. See Bishopric, sec. iii, part iv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn137"></a><a href="#PartIVfn137">137</a>. See caption <em>Of the Duties of Officers, Priests, Teachers,
-Deacons</em>.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn138"></a><a href="#PartIVfn138">138</a>. When the difficulty arises in a regularly organized ward the most
-suitable persons to engage in such business would be the teachers of
-the respective parties.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn139"></a><a href="#PartIVfn139">139</a>. See on this method of settling difficulties Matt. xviii: 15, 17.
-Doctrine and Covenants, sec. xlii: 88-91. Book of Mormon, III Nephi,
-xii: 23,25.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn140"></a><a href="#PartIVfn140">140</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. iv: 8.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn141"></a><a href="#PartIVfn141">141</a>. Doctrine and Covenants, sec. clv: 9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn142"></a><a href="#PartIVfn142">142</a>. See Section ii, Part IV, paragraphs 8, 9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn143"></a><a href="#PartIVfn143">143</a>. Guizot's Hist. Civilization.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn144"></a><a href="#PartIVfn144">144</a>. Remarks of Disraeli on the formation of government in his
-Vindication of the English Constitution.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn145"></a><a href="#PartIVfn145">145</a>. That is Part IV of this work.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn146"></a><a href="#PartIVfn146">146</a>. Besides the classic, there was an English department that included
-a course in common and higher mathematics, geography, English grammar,
-reading and writing. Hebrew was taught by Professor Seixas, a Jew, and
-the elders made considerable progress in that language. These items are
-interesting as showing that "Mormonism" is not and was not even in the
-beginning of its career, opposed to education as many have claimed.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn147"></a><a href="#PartIVfn147">147</a>. The prayer will be found in the Doc. and Cov. sec. cix. It was
-given by revelation to the prophet.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn148"></a><a href="#PartIVfn148">148</a>. The shout of hosanna consists in the whole congregation shouting
-with all the strength of their voices&mdash;accompanying it with the waving
-of handkerchiefs&mdash;these words: Hosanna! Hosanna! Hosanna! TO GOD AND
-THE LAMB! AMEN! AMEN! AMEN! Those who have witnessed this shout of
-praise and gladness to God by a large congregation of saints, will
-never forget the power and heavenly influence that accompany it.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn149"></a><a href="#PartIVfn149">149</a>. For the foregoing account of spiritual manifestations see Hist.
-Joseph Smith, Mill. Star, Vol. 15, pages 726-28.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn150"></a><a href="#PartIVfn150">150</a>. Doc. and Cov. sec. cx.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn151"></a><a href="#PartIVfn151">151</a>. Doc. and Cov. sec. cx.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn152"></a><a href="#PartIVfn152">152</a>. Mal. iv: 5, 6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn153"></a><a href="#PartIVfn153">153</a>. Doc. and Cov. sec. cx.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn154"></a><a href="#PartIVfn154">154</a>. See pages 371-97.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn155"></a><a href="#PartIVfn155">155</a>. Book of Mormon, III Nephi xv: 12-20.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn156"></a><a href="#PartIVfn156">156</a>. Book of Mormon, III Nephi xvi: 1-5.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn157"></a><a href="#PartIVfn157">157</a>. II Esdras xiii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn158"></a><a href="#PartIVfn158">158</a>. Compare with Isaiah xi: 15, 16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn159"></a><a href="#PartIVfn159">159</a>. See prophecies quoted p. 368-9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn160"></a><a href="#PartIVfn160">160</a>. I do not state this date definitely because authorities differ in
-respect to it; some fixing it at 588, another at 590, and still others
-as in the text. The difference which is not material, arose no doubt
-from some giving the date at which the king of Babylon began his siege
-and others when it ended.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn161"></a><a href="#PartIVfn161">161</a>. Fifty-six, according to some historians.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn162"></a><a href="#PartIVfn162">162</a>. See Part I, p. 27.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn163"></a><a href="#PartIVfn163">163</a>. Matt. xxiv: 2.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn164"></a><a href="#PartIVfn164">164</a>. Deut. xxviii:15-68. The student should read this passage in
-Deuteronomy. It is without exception the most terrible warning and
-prophecy on record. Yet terrible as it is, it hath all overtaken Israel.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn165"></a><a href="#PartIVfn165">165</a>. Amos ix: 9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn166"></a><a href="#PartIVfn166">166</a>. Jeremiah xxxi:10-12. See also verses 7, 8, 9.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn167"></a><a href="#PartIVfn167">167</a>. Jeremiah xvi:14, 15.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn168"></a><a href="#PartIVfn168">168</a>. See the verses preceding this quotation for an explanation of the
-time of this occurrence, Isaiah xi:1-10. This is one of the passages
-quoted to Joseph Smith by the angel Moroni, who said also that "it was
-about to be fulfilled." See Pearl of Great Price, p. 90.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn169"></a><a href="#PartIVfn169">169</a>. Isaiah xi:10-12, 16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn170"></a><a href="#PartIVfn170">170</a>. Jeremiah iii:15-19.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn171"></a><a href="#PartIVfn171">171</a>. Book of Mormon II Nephi x:7, 8. See also I Nephi x:14, II Nephi
-vi:8-11, and also Book of Jacob v. This last reference especially
-should be studied.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn172"></a><a href="#PartIVfn172">172</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxxiii:25-35.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn173"></a><a href="#PartIVfn173">173</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxxiii:32.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn174"></a><a href="#PartIVfn174">174</a>. See page 321, this work.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn175"></a><a href="#PartIVfn175">175</a>. See p. 321.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn176"></a><a href="#PartIVfn176">176</a>. For the particulars of the persecution which resulted in the
-banishment of the Saints from that land, the student is referred to the
-author's work on the Missouri Persecutions.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn177"></a><a href="#PartIVfn177">177</a>. Isaiah ii:23.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn178"></a><a href="#PartIVfn178">178</a>. Jeremiah iii:14, 15.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn179"></a><a href="#PartIVfn179">179</a>. Rev. xviii:4-8.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn180"></a><a href="#PartIVfn180">180</a>. Eccl. xi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn181"></a><a href="#PartIVfn181">181</a>. The revelation was given March, 1830; Doc. and Cov. sec. xix.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn182"></a><a href="#PartIVfn182">182</a>. Mark xvi:16.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn183"></a><a href="#PartIVfn183">183</a>. The so-called early fathers of the church, Justin Martyr, Clement,
-of Alexandria, Tertullian and Cyprian, all taught that the fire of
-hell is a real material flame, and that the wicked were punished in
-it eternally. Augustine in the fifth century stated the same doctrine
-with great emphasis and argued against those who sought to modify it.
-(See Augustine's City of God. Part II, book xx, and xxi).Thomas Aquinas
-(A-kwi-nas) of the mediaeval school of theologians, rising head and
-shoulders above divines of his day, teaches in his Summa Theologia,
-that the fire of hell is of the same nature as ordinary fire, though
-with different properties; that the place of punishment though not
-definitely known is probably under the earth. He also taught that
-there was no redemption for those once damned, their punishment is to
-be eternal. Coming to more modern times, we read in the Westminster
-Confession of Faith&mdash;adopted in the seventeenth century by the Puritan
-party in England&mdash;the following on the subject (ch. xxxiii): "The
-wicked who know not God, and obey not the Gospel of Jesus Christ
-shall be cast into eternal torment and be punished with everlasting
-destruction from the presence of the Lord and from the glory of his
-power." Question twenty-nine of the larger catechism and the answer to
-it are as follows: "What are the punishments of sin in the world to
-come. Ans. The punishments of sin in the world to come are everlasting
-separation from the comfortable presence of God, and most grievous
-torment in soul and body, without intermission, in hell fire forever."
-The Westminster Confession and the large catechism are still the
-standards of the Presbyterian churches. Indeed the above expresses the
-orthodox Christian faith from the second and third centuries until the
-present time.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn184"></a><a href="#PartIVfn184">184</a>. I Peter iii:18-21.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn185"></a><a href="#PartIVfn185">185</a>. I Peter iv:6.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn186"></a><a href="#PartIVfn186">186</a>. I Cor. xv:29.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn187"></a><a href="#PartIVfn187">187</a>. Doc. and Cov. sec. cxxvii and cxxviii.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn188"></a><a href="#PartIVfn188">188</a>. Rom. ii:6-12; I Cor. iii:8; II Cor. v:10; Rev. ii:23; xx:12.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn189"></a><a href="#PartIVfn189">189</a>. St. John xiv:1-3.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn190"></a><a href="#PartIVfn190">190</a>. An exception must be made in the case of the Roman Catholic
-Church. Catholics do not believe that all Christians at death go
-immediately into heaven, but on the contrary "believe that a Christian
-who dies after the guilt and everlasting punishment of mortal sins have
-been forgiven him, but who, either from want of opportunity or through
-his negligence, has not discharged the debt of temporal punishment due
-to his sin, will have to discharge that debt to the justice of God in
-purgatory." "Purgatory is a state of suffering after this life, in
-which those souls are for a time detained, which depart this life after
-their deadly sins have been remitted as to the stain and guilt, and as
-to the everlasting pain that was due to them; but which souls have on
-account of those sins still some temporal punishment to pay; as also
-those souls which leave this world guilty only of venial [pardonable]
-sins. In purgatory these souls are purified and rendered fit to enter
-into heaven, where nothing defiled enters." The quotations in the above
-are from Catholic Belief, by Bruno, D. D. of the Catholic church. As
-all works of the Catholic church accessible to me have nothing on the
-different degrees of glory, I conclude that Catholic teaching is that
-they who attain unto heaven are all equal in glory.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn191"></a><a href="#PartIVfn191">191</a>. I Kings viii:27.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn192"></a><a href="#PartIVfn192">192</a>. II Cor. xii:2-4.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn193"></a><a href="#PartIVfn193">193</a>. I Cor. xv:40-42.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn194"></a><a href="#PartIVfn194">194</a>. The circumstances under which the revelation was given are these:
-The Prophet Joseph and Sidney Rigdon were engaged in revising the
-Jewish scriptures. When they came to St. John, ch. v:29&mdash;speaking of
-the resurrection of the dead, concerning those that should hear the
-voice of the Son of Man and come forth, instead of reading in the text
-of our common English Bibles&mdash;"And shall come forth; they that have
-done good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done
-evil, unto the resurrection of damnation," the following was given
-to them by the Spirit: "And shall come forth they who have done good
-in the resurrection of the just, and they who have done evil in the
-resurrection of the unjust." This reading of the passage caused them to
-marvel as it was given to them by inspiration; and while they pondered
-on this thing the Spirit of God enveloped them, and they saw the Lord
-Jesus Christ and those different glories which men will inherit, an
-account of which is given in the text. The vision is recorded in Doc.
-and Cov., sec. lxxvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn195"></a><a href="#PartIVfn195">195</a>. "Servants of God, but not Gods nor the sons of God," remarks
-Apostle Orson Pratt in his foot note on the passage from which this is
-condensed. Doc. and Cov. sec. lxxvi:112.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn196"></a><a href="#PartIVfn196">196</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. cxxxi:1.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn197"></a><a href="#PartIVfn197">197</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxvi.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn198"></a><a href="#PartIVfn198">198</a>. Those desiring to verify the statements of the text will consult
-with care Heb. vi:4-8 and Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxvi:25-48.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn199"></a><a href="#PartIVfn199">199</a>. It may sound like sacrilege in modern ears to speak of man
-becoming as God. Yet why should it be so considered? Man is
-the offspring of God, he is of the same race, and hath within
-him&mdash;undeveloped, it is true&mdash;the faculties and attributes of his
-Father. He hath also before him an eternity of time in which to develop
-both the faculties of the mind and the attributes of the soul&mdash;why
-should it be accounted a strange thing that at last the child shall
-arrive at the same exaltation and partake of the same intelligence
-and glory with his Father? If Jesus Christ, "being in the form of
-God, thought it not robbery to be equal with God" (Philippians ii:6),
-why should it be thought blasphemous to teach that man by faith and
-righteousness in following the counsels of God shall at last become
-like him, and share in his power and glory, being a God, even a son of
-God? I grant you the height from our present position looks tremendous;
-yet it is not impossible of attainment, since we have eternity in
-which to work. Stand by the cradle of a new-born babe and contemplate
-it. Within that little body of organized pulp&mdash;with eyes incapable
-of distinguishing objects; legs unable to bear the weight of its
-body&mdash;without the power of locomotion; hands over whose movements it
-hath no control; ears that hear but cannot distinguish sounds; a tongue
-that cannot speak&mdash;yet within that little helpless tabernacle what
-powers lie dormant! Within that germ in the cradle are latent powers
-which only require time for their unfolding to astonish the world. From
-it may come the man of profound learning who shall add something by
-his own wisdom to the sum total of human knowledge. Perhaps from that
-germ shall come a profound historian, a poet or eloquent orator to sway
-the reason and passions of men, and guide them to better and purer
-things than they have yet known. Or a statesman may be there in embryo;
-a man whose wisdom shall guide the destiny of the state, or perhaps
-with God-like power rule the world. If from such a germ as this in the
-cradle may come such an unfolding of power as we see in the highest
-and noblest manhood, may it not be, that taking that highest and
-noblest manhood as the germ, that from it may come, under the guiding
-hand of our Father in heaven, a still more wonderful unfolding, until
-the germ of highest and noblest manhood shall develop into a God! The
-distance between the noblest man and the position of a God is greater
-than that between the infant in the cradle and the highest development
-of manhood; but if so, there is a longer time&mdash;eternity&mdash;in which to
-arrive at the result; and a God and heavenly influences instead of
-the human parent and earthly means to bring to pass the necessary
-development.&mdash;Roberts.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn200"></a><a href="#PartIVfn200">200</a>. Millennial Star, vol. xiv, p. 114.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn201"></a><a href="#PartIVfn201">201</a>. On the 12th of July, 1843, at the request of Hyrum Smith, the
-revelation as now contained in the book of Doctrine and Covenants, was
-written from the dictation of the Prophet Joseph, by Elder William
-Clayton, at that time the Prophet's scribe. The same day a copy of the
-revelation was made for Bishop Newel K. Whitney by Joseph C. Kingsbury.
-Emma Smith, the first wife of the Prophet, obtaining the revelation as
-first written out by William Clayton, in a moment of jealousy destroyed
-it. Bishop Whitney's copy, however, was preserved and from it the
-revelation, now in the Doctrine and Covenants, was printed. It will be
-observed by the student from the revelation itself that the principle
-of plural marriage was known and practiced before the writing of the
-revelation on the 12th of July.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn202"></a><a href="#PartIVfn202">202</a>. For a full account of this terrible tragedy the student is
-referred to the Life of Joseph Smith by Geo. Q. Cannon, ch. lxvi; and
-the Life of John Taylor, ch. xiii, xiv, xv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn203"></a><a href="#PartIVfn203">203</a>. Heb. ix:16, 17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn204"></a><a href="#PartIVfn204">204</a>. The subject of "Succession in the Presidency of the Church," is a
-subject of deep importance, and those who desire to enter minutely into
-the consideration of it should consult the author's work of that title,
-a book of 120 pages.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn205"></a><a href="#PartIVfn205">205</a>. President Brigham Young was born in Whitingham, Windham county,
-Vermont, June 1, 1801. He was baptized into the Church April 14th,
-1832, and immediately afterwards ordained an elder.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn206"></a><a href="#PartIVfn206">206</a>. The first anti-polygamy law was approved July 1st, 1862.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn207"></a><a href="#PartIVfn207">207</a>. "Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of
-religion, or prohibiting the free exercise thereof."&mdash;Amendments to the
-Constitution, Article I.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn208"></a><a href="#PartIVfn208">208</a>. Acts i:9-11.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn209"></a><a href="#PartIVfn209">209</a>. Matt. xvi:27.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn210"></a><a href="#PartIVfn210">210</a>. I Thess. iv:14-17.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn211"></a><a href="#PartIVfn211">211</a>. II Thess. i:7-10.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn212"></a><a href="#PartIVfn212">212</a>. Luke xii:40. II Peter iii:10. Doc. and Cov., sec. xlix:6-7.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn213"></a><a href="#PartIVfn213">213</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. lxxxviii:78-92.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn214"></a><a href="#PartIVfn214">214</a>. Doc. and Cov., sec. lxv.
-</p>
-<p><a name="txtPartIVfn215"></a><a href="#PartIVfn215">215</a>. Ibid.
-</p>
-
-<h2><a name="INDEX">Index</a></h2>
-<p>
-<br> Abraham, Book of, <a href="#p393">393</a>, <a href="#p398">398</a>.
-<br> Actors in Christ's Crucifixion, Fate of, <a href="#p58">58</a>.
-<br> Adam, Fall of, <a href="#p83">83</a>.
-<br> Agitation, Religious in N. Y., <a href="#p276">276</a>,
-<br> Albert, Archbishop of Mentz, <a href="#p212">212</a>.
-<br> Alva, Duke of, <a href="#p257">257</a>.
-<br> America, Discovery of, <a href="#p269">269</a>, <a href="#p270">270</a>.
-<br> " Influence of on liberty, <a href="#p263">263</a>.
-<br> " Catholics seek liberty in, <a href="#p264">264</a>
-<br> Anarchy, Reign of, <a href="#p200">200</a>.
-<br> Announcement, Angelic, <a href="#p12">12</a>.
-<br> Anti-Christ, Rise of foretold, <a href="#p193">193</a>.
-<br> Apostasy&mdash;see Part II.
-<br> " in days of apostles, <a href="#p154">154</a>.
-<br> " admitted by Christian writers, <a href="#p189">189</a>.
-<br> " predicted in scriptures, <a href="#p192">192</a>, <a href="#p196">196</a>.
-<br> Apostles, Twelve, <a href="#p45">45</a>.
-<br> " a second time succeed to presidency, <a href="#p404">404</a>.
-<br> " equal in authority with first presidency, <a href="#p344">344</a>.
-<br> " Quorum filled, <a href="#p70">70</a>.
-<br> " Quorum of Twelve succeed to presidency, <a href="#p402">402</a>.
-<br> " Twelve organized, <a href="#p336">336</a>.
-<br> " Traveling, presiding high council, <a href="#p343">343</a>.
-<br> Associations, Primary, <a href="#p352">352</a>.
-<br> Athanasius, <a href="#p172">172</a>.
-<br> Atonement, a mystery, <a href="#p98">98</a>.
-<br> " Pact of, <a href="#p86">86</a>, <a href="#p87">87</a>.
-<br> " Love of God in, <a href="#p89">89</a>.
-<br> " Mercy and Justice of, <a href="#p87">87</a>.
-<br> " of Christ voluntary, <a href="#p88">88</a>.
-<br> " universal in application, <a href="#p98">98</a>.
-<br> Augsburg, Confession of, <a href="#p220">220</a>.
-<br> Augustus, <a href="#p12">12</a>, <a href="#p31">31</a>.
-<br> Aurelius, Marcus, <a href="#p115">115</a>.
-<br> Authority from God needful, <a href="#p101">101</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Bartholomew's Eve, St., Massacre on, <a href="#p267">267</a>.
-<br> Baptism, <a href="#p128">128</a>.
-<br> " Form changed, <a href="#p129">129</a>.
-<br> " Manner of, among Nephites, <a href="#p136">136</a>.
-<br> " Of, <a href="#p302">302</a>.
-<br> " of children, <a href="#p130">130</a>, <a href="#p136">136</a>.
-<br> " Of the manner of, <a href="#p303">303</a>.
-<br> " symbol of burial and resurrection, <a href="#p135">135</a>.
-<br> Baptist, John, restores Aaronic Priesthood, <a href="#p297">297</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Bethlehem, <a href="#p11">11</a>.
-<br> Bible corrupted, <a href="#p65">65</a>.
-<br> Bishopric, Powers of, <a href="#p317">317</a>.
-<br> Bishops, Equality among changed <a href="#p141">141</a>, <a href="#p142">142</a>.
-<br> " Pirst in the Church, <a href="#p316">316</a>.
-<br> " Local or Ward, <a href="#p319">319</a>.
-<br> " Manner of electing, <a href="#p140">140</a>.
-<br> " Objections to, <a href="#p145">145</a>.
-<br> " of Constantinople, <a href="#p149">149</a>.
-<br> " Presiding, <a href="#p318">318</a>.
-<br> " Pre-eminence of Roman, <a href="#p144">144</a>, <a href="#p146">146</a>, <a href="#p150">150</a>.
-<br> " Traveling, <a href="#p319">319</a>.
-<br> Blasphemy, <a href="#p52">52</a>, <a href="#p57">57</a>.
-<br> Boleyn, Anne, <a href="#p259">259</a>.
-<br> Bull of Excommunication burned, <a href="#p215">215</a>, <a href="#p225">225</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Cajetan, Cardinal Thomas, appointed to hear cause of Luther, <a href="#p212">212</a>.
-<br> Cajetan urges Luther's excommunication, <a href="#p215">215</a>.
-<br> Calvin, John, <a href="#p266">266</a>.
-<br> " Spread of his doctrine, <a href="#p254">254</a>.
-<br> " Views on church government, <a href="#p253">253</a>.
-<br> " Views on eucharist, <a href="#p254">254</a>.
-<br> Ceremonies, Addition to, <a href="#p128">128</a>.
-<br> Charles V, Emperor Germany, <a href="#p215">215</a>.
-<br> " annuls edict of Worms and Augsburg, <a href="#p221">221</a>.
-<br> " decides against Protestants, <a href="#p221">221</a>.
-<br> " rupture with pope, <a href="#p218">218</a>.
-<br> Christian III of Denmark regulates religious affairs of his kingdom, <a href="#p257">257</a>.
-<br> Christians, Unwise Zeal of, <a href="#p123">123</a>.
-<br> Christiern II, King of Sweden and Denmark, <a href="#p255">255</a>.
-<br> " Banished from Denmark, <a href="#p256">256</a>.
-<br> " driven from Sweden, <a href="#p255">255</a>.
-<br> " Invites Reynhard, Carlstadt and Luther to Denmark, <a href="#p256">256</a>.
-<br> Church, The, <a href="#p92">92</a>,
-<br> " A corrupt, <a href="#p244">244</a>.
-<br> " Attempt to reorganize Nephite, <a href="#p200">200</a>.
-<br> " Anti-Christian Nephite, <a href="#p198">198</a>.
-<br> " Condition of, 2d century, <a href="#p114">114</a>.
-<br> " Condition of, in 4th century, <a href="#p184">184</a>.
-<br> " Condition of, in 5th century, <a href="#p185">185</a>.
-<br> " Condition of, subsequent to 5th century, <a href="#p187">187</a>.
-<br> " Condition of, in 10th century, <a href="#p188">188</a>.
-<br> " Conferences of, <a href="#p354">354</a>.
-<br> " destroyed, <a href="#p189">189</a>.
-<br> " Distinct Protestant, founded, <a href="#p218">218</a>.
-<br> " Division of, 9th century, <a href="#p151">151</a>.
-<br> " Early decline of, <a href="#p155">155</a>.
-<br> " Establishment of, by apostles, <a href="#p139">139</a>.
-<br> " Government of, modeled on plan of civil government, <a href="#p143">143</a>.
-<br> " government, opinions on, <a href="#p99">99</a>.
-<br> " government, Reflections on, <a href="#p355">355</a>.
-<br> " Growth and present condition of, <a href="#p409">409</a>.
-<br> " Immoral condition of, <a href="#p184">184</a>.
-<br> " in America, <a href="#p64">64</a>, <a href="#p96">96</a>, <a href="#p97">97</a>.
-<br> " Judiciary system of, <a href="#p352">352</a>.
-<br> " members of, Duties of, <a href="#p304">304</a>.
-<br> " Nephite, <a href="#p198">198</a>.
-<br> " Officers, divinely called, <a href="#p95">95</a>.
-<br> " Organization of by Joseph Smith, <a href="#p299">299</a>.
-<br> " organization not perpetuated, <a href="#p139">139</a>.
-<br> " Progress of, under Constantine, <a href="#p121">121</a>.
-<br> " The, what it is, etc., <a href="#p341">341</a>.
-<br> " Territorial divisions of, <a href="#p349">349</a>.
-<br> Clement VII proposes council in Italy, <a href="#p222">222</a>.
-<br> " rupture with Charles V, <a href="#p218">218</a>
-<br> " succeeds Hadrian VI, <a href="#p217">217</a>.
-<br> Clergy, Celibacy of, <a href="#p183">183</a>.
-<br> Commerce, afterwards Nauvoo, <a href="#p393">393</a>, <a href="#p398">398</a>.
-<br> Conferences appointed, <a href="#p306">306</a>.
-<br> " The first, <a href="#p308">308</a>.
-<br> Confirmation, Manner of, <a href="#p303">303</a>.
-<br> Consecration, Law of, <a href="#p322">322</a>.
-<br> Constantine, <a href="#p119">119</a>, <a href="#p120">120</a>, <a href="#p121">121</a>.
-<br> " Friendliness to Christians, <a href="#p120">120</a>.
-<br> Constantinople taken by Turks, <a href="#p206">206</a>.
-<br> Cornelius, <a href="#p76">76</a>.
-<br> Councils, Attempt to settle difficulties by, <a href="#p244">244</a>.
-<br> " Desire for general, <a href="#p213">213</a>.
-<br> " Difficulty of locating one, <a href="#p222">222</a>.
-<br> " General, appeal to, <a href="#p212">212</a>.
-<br> " High, Different kinds, <a href="#p335">335</a>.
-<br> " " Fair dealing in, <a href="#p338">338</a>.
-<br> " " how organized, <a href="#p334">334</a>.
-<br> " " Just judgment in, <a href="#p339">339</a>.
-<br> " " Order in, <a href="#p338">338</a>.
-<br> " " organized, <a href="#p333">333</a>.
-<br> " " Standing, The, <a href="#p335">335</a>.
-<br> " " Temporary, <a href="#p336">336</a>.
-<br> " " Traveling. The, <a href="#p335">335</a>.
-<br> " Nicene, The, <a href="#p171">171</a>.
-<br> " Rise of, <a href="#p142">142</a>.
-<br> " Trent, The, of, <a href="#p223">223</a>, <a href="#p227">227</a>.
-<br> " Usurpations of, <a href="#p155">155</a>.
-<br> Cowdery, Oliver, one of the three witnesses, <a href="#p284">284</a>.
-<br> " involved in errors, <a href="#p309">309</a>.
-<br> Cross, Luminous, <a href="#p119">119</a>, <a href="#p124">124</a>.
-<br> Crucifixion, <a href="#p55">55</a>.
-<br> Crusades, Influence of the, on liberty, <a href="#p207">207</a>.
-<br> Cumorah, Treasures of, <a href="#p283">283</a>.
-<br> " Description of, <a href="#p286">286</a>.
-<br> Cyprian, <a href="#p149">149</a>, <a href="#p156">156</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Darkness, Age of, <a href="#p205">205</a>.
-<br> " Three hours', <a href="#p55">55</a>, <a href="#p58">58</a>.
-<br> Deacons, Duties of, <a href="#p306">306</a>.
-<br> " Quorums of, <a href="#p348">348</a>.
-<br> Dead, Baptism for, <a href="#p381">381</a>, <a href="#p390">390</a>.
-<br> " Salvation for, <a href="#p377">377</a>.
-<br> Diet at Augsburg, The, <a href="#p220">220</a>.
-<br> " Spire, The, <a href="#p219">219</a>.
-<br> " Worms, The, <a href="#p215">215</a>, <a href="#p216">216</a>.
-<br> Diocletian, <a href="#p117">117</a>,
-<br> Distinctions, Class, among Nephites, <a href="#p198">198</a>.
-<br> " Revival of, <a href="#p199">199</a>.
-<br> Dispersions, Miscellaneous, <a href="#p367">367</a>.
-<br> Dispensation of Fullness of Times,
-<br> " Preparation for opening the, <a href="#p266">266</a>.
-<br> " Meaning of, <a href="#p275">275</a>.
-<br> " Character of, <a href="#p409">409</a>.
-<br> Domitian, <a href="#p110">110</a>, <a href="#p111">111</a>.
-<br> Duties of deacons, <a href="#p306">306</a>.
-<br> " elders, <a href="#p305">305</a>.
-<br> " members, <a href="#p304">304</a>.
-<br> " priests, <a href="#p306">306</a>.
-<br> " teachers, <a href="#p306">306</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Eckius, John, theologian of Ingolstadt, <a href="#p212">212</a>.
-<br> " Discussion with Carlstadt, <a href="#p215">215</a>.
-<br> " Discussion with Luther, <a href="#p213">213</a>.
-<br> Edicts of Severus, <a href="#p113">113</a>.
-<br> Elders, Duties of, <a href="#p305">305</a>.
-<br> " Quorums of, <a href="#p347">347</a>.
-<br> Elias, Appearing of, <a href="#p360">360</a>.
-<br> Elijah, Appearing of, <a href="#p360">360</a>.
-<br> Eucharist&mdash;see Sacrament.
-<br> Events, Chronological order of, neglected, <a href="#p49">49</a>.
-<br> " Order of, <a href="#p47">47</a>.
-<br> Excommunication, Manner of, <a href="#p162">162</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Faith, Catholic, Rule of, <a href="#p242">242</a>.
-<br> Far West, Founding of, <a href="#p392">392</a>.
-<br> Fear, Political, <a href="#p51">51</a>.
-<br> Feudalism, Breaking up of, <a href="#p207">207</a>.
-<br> Frederick, Elector of Saxony, <a href="#p215">215</a>.
-<br> " Death of, <a href="#p218">218</a>.
-<br> " Duke of Holstein and Sleswick succeeds Christiern II of Denmark, <a href="#p256">256</a>.
-<br> " Gives religious liberty to Denmark, <a href="#p256">256</a>.
-<br> Free will, Discussion on, <a href="#p213">213</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Gamaliel, <a href="#p73">73</a>.
-<br> Gathering, first command to gather, <a href="#p316">316</a>.
-<br> " Object of, <a href="#p372">372</a>.
-<br> Gentiles, Gospel taken to, <a href="#p76">76</a>.
-<br> George, Duke of Saxony joins in demand for general council, <a href="#p213">213</a>.
-<br> " at the discussion between Luther and Eckius, <a href="#p215">215</a>.
-<br> " on the corruptions of the church, <a href="#p225">225</a>.
-<br> Gifts Spiritual, <a href="#p92">92</a>.
-<br> " Decline of, <a href="#p161">161</a>, <a href="#p176">176</a>.
-<br> " On continuance of, <a href="#p175">175</a>.
-<br> Glory, different degrees of, <a href="#p382">382</a>.
-<br> " Celestial, The, <a href="#p384">384</a>.
-<br> " Terrestrial, The, <a href="#p385">385</a>.
-<br> " Telestial, The, <a href="#p385">385</a>.
-<br> " Degrees within the three great divisions, <a href="#p386">386</a>.
-<br> " Progress within degrees of, <a href="#p387">387</a>.
-<br> God, Appears to Joseph Smith, <a href="#p278">278</a>.
-<br> " Arian theory of, <a href="#p171">171</a>.
-<br> " Christian doctrine respecting, <a href="#p164">164</a>.
-<br> " Existence of, <a href="#p301">301</a>.
-<br> " Form of, etc., <a href="#p279">279</a>.
-<br> " Immateriality of, <a href="#p173">173</a>.
-<br> " Orthodox view of, <a href="#p170">170</a>.
-<br> " Sabellian theory of, <a href="#p170">170</a>.
-<br> Godhead, Oneness of the, <a href="#p173">173</a>.
-<br> " Illustration of, <a href="#p176">176</a>.
-<br> " Man may attain unto, <a href="#p395">395</a>.
-<br> Gods, Heathen, <a href="#p21">21</a>.
-<br> Gospel, supplants the law, <a href="#p44">44</a>.
-<br> " Spread of, <a href="#p77">77</a>.
-<br> " Messiah, author of, <a href="#p177">177</a>.
-<br> " Fragmentary histories of, <a href="#p65">65</a>.
-<br> " Moral precepts, Departure from, <a href="#p180">180</a>.
-<br> Government, Helps in, <a href="#p351">351</a>.
-<br> " Roman, <a href="#p24">24</a>.
-<br> Grace, Catholic view of, <a href="#p233">233</a>.
-<br> " Controversy on, <a href="#p230">230</a>.
-<br> " Facts which enter the question of, <a href="#p231">231</a>.
-<br> " Falling from, <a href="#p302">302</a>.
-<br> " Pelagian view of, <a href="#p233">233</a>.
-<br> " Protestant view of, <a href="#p233">233</a>.
-<br> Gregory VII, <a href="#p205">205</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Harris, Martin, one of the three witnesses, <a href="#p284">284</a>.
-<br> Henry IV, Humiliation of, <a href="#p205">205</a>, <a href="#p224">224</a>.
-<br> Henry VIII, of England, champion Roman church, <a href="#p258">258</a>.
-<br> " Marriage to Catharine of Aragon, <a href="#p258">258</a>.
-<br> " Divorce of, <a href="#p259">259</a>.
-<br> " Rupture with pope, <a href="#p259">259</a>.
-<br> Hermit, Peter the, <a href="#p207">207</a>.
-<br> Herod, Antipas, <a href="#p38">38</a>, <a href="#p41">41</a>.
-<br> " the Great, <a href="#p13">13</a>, <a href="#p17">17</a>.
-<br> Herodias, <a href="#p38">38</a>.
-<br> Hosanna, Shout of, <a href="#p359">359</a>.
-<br> House of the Lord, All nations to flow unto the, <a href="#p374">374</a>.
-<br> Huguenots, Character of the, <a href="#p255">255</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Immaterialists, Atheists, <a href="#p178">178</a>.
-<br> Indulgences, Nature of, <a href="#p209">209</a>.
-<br> " Origin of, <a href="#p209">209</a>.
-<br> " Position of Catholic church respecting, <a href="#p230">230</a>.
-<br> " To be accompanied by reformation, <a href="#p238">238</a>.
-<br> " Traffic in, <a href="#p210">210</a>.
-<br> Interpretation of Bible, Private, <a href="#p243">243</a>.
-<br> " Private, effects of, <a href="#p246">246</a>.
-<br> Israel, Blood of, sprinkled in all nations, <a href="#p367">367</a>.
-<br> " Captivity of, <a href="#p363">363</a>.
-<br> " Enslaved, <a href="#p363">363</a>.
-<br> " Latter-day Saints of, <a href="#p375">375</a>.
-<br> " Miscellaneous Dispersion of, <a href="#p367">367</a>.
-<br> " Revolt of Ten Tribes of, <a href="#p363">363</a>.
-<br> " Scattering of, <a href="#p365">365</a>.
-<br> " Settlement of, in Canaan, <a href="#p373">373</a>.
-<br> " The gathering of, <a href="#p368">368</a>.
-<br> " Ten tribes of, preparatory work to their return, <a href="#p370">370</a>.
-<br> " Who are, <a href="#p362">362</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Jealousy, Religious, <a href="#p51">51</a>.
-<br> Jesus Christ, Appearance among Nephites, <a href="#p62">62</a>.
-<br> " Appears to Prophet Joseph and Oliver Cowdery, <a href="#p278">278</a>, <a href="#p360">360</a>.
-<br> " Ascension, <a href="#p62">62</a>.
-<br> " Baptism of, <a href="#p37">37</a>.
-<br> " Before Pilate and Herod, <a href="#p54">54</a>.
-<br> " Betrayal of, <a href="#p53">53</a>.
-<br> " Birth of, <a href="#p11">11</a>, <a href="#p16">16</a>.
-<br> " Burial of, <a href="#p56">56</a>.
-<br> " Charges against, <a href="#p52">52</a>.
-<br> " Childhood of, <a href="#p34">34</a>, <a href="#p39">39</a>.
-<br> " Common people hear, <a href="#p51">51</a>.
-<br> " Crucifixion of, <a href="#p55">55</a>.
-<br> " Defense of, <a href="#p57">57</a>.
-<br> " Divinity of, <a href="#p47">47</a>.
-<br> " Doctrines of, <a href="#p43">43</a>.
-<br> " Manner of Teaching, <a href="#p48">48</a>.
-<br> " Ministry of, <a href="#p43">43</a>.
-<br> " Mission of, <a href="#p83">83</a>, <a href="#p301">301</a>.
-<br> " Resurrection of, <a href="#p60">60</a>.
-<br> " Temptation of, <a href="#p43">43</a>.
-<br> " Trial of, <a href="#p53">53</a>.
-<br> " Jews, Judgment upon, <a href="#p107">107</a>.
-<br> " State of, <a href="#p26">26</a>.
-<br> " John, The apostle, <a href="#p196">196</a>.
-<br> " John, the Baptist, <a href="#p35">35</a>.
-<br> " Martyrdom of, <a href="#p38">38</a>.
-<br> " Mission of, <a href="#p36">36</a>.
-<br> " Restores Aaronic Priesthood, <a href="#p296">296</a>, <a href="#p311">311</a>.
-<br> " Was he Elias, <a href="#p40">40</a>.
-<br> Joseph, husband of Mary, <a href="#p11">11</a>.
-<br> John, Prince, succeeds Frederic the Wise, <a href="#p218">218</a>.
-<br> " signs the Augsburg confession, <a href="#p220">220</a>.
-<br> Judah, Final overthrow of, <a href="#p373">373</a>.
-<br> " Kingdom of, <a href="#p394">394</a>.
-<br> Judas, <a href="#p52">52</a>.
-<br> Judgment, eternal, Christian dogma of, <a href="#p378">378</a>.
-<br> " True doctrine of, <a href="#p378">378</a>.
-<br> Justification by faith, Luther on, <a href="#p234">234</a>, <a href="#p239">239</a>.
-<br> " Catholic church on, <a href="#p237">237</a>.
-<br> " Evil results of, <a href="#p239">239</a>.
-<br> " and sanctification, <a href="#p302">302</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Keys of former dispensations restored, <a href="#p360">360</a>.
-<br> Kirtland, Breaking up at, <a href="#p392">392</a>.
-<br> Knight, Joseph, <a href="#p307">307</a>.
-<br> " Newel, <a href="#p307">307</a>.
-<br> Knox, John, Scotch reformer, <a href="#p261">261</a>.
-<br> " sent to galleys, <a href="#p261">261</a>.
-<br> " his work in Scotland, <a href="#p262">262</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Law added to gospel, <a href="#p45">45</a>.
-<br> Learning, Revival of, <a href="#p205">205</a>.
-<br> Leo X, indifference to German agitation, <a href="#p211">211</a>.
-<br> " Luther's appeal from, <a href="#p212">212</a>.
-<br> " Death of, <a href="#p217">217</a>.
-<br> Liberty, Religious, secured, <a href="#p223">223</a>.
-<br> " " secured by U. S. Constitution, <a href="#p270">270</a>.
-<br> Life, Double rule of, <a href="#p180">180</a>.
-<br> " Origin of false idea of moral, <a href="#p181">181</a>.
-<br> Literature, Greek, Influence of, <a href="#p224">224</a>.
-<br> Logos, Plato's, <a href="#p169">169</a>.
-<br> " in Trinity, <a href="#p170">170</a>.
-<br> Lying accounted a virtue, <a href="#p183">183</a>.
-<br> Luther, Martin, Birth of, <a href="#p208">208</a>.
-<br> " at Wartburg, <a href="#p217">217</a>.
-<br> " before Diet at Worms, <a href="#p215">215</a>.
-<br> " burns pope's bull, <a href="#p215">215</a>, <a href="#p225">225</a>.
-<br> " Character of, <a href="#p226">226</a>.
-<br> " Danger of doctrine, <a href="#p236">236</a>.
-<br> " Death of, <a href="#p222">222</a>.
-<br> " Fundamental doctrine of, <a href="#p234">234</a>.
-<br> " excommunicated, <a href="#p215">215</a>, <a href="#p226">226</a>.
-<br> " his answer to Diet, <a href="#p216">216</a>.
-<br> " Mischief of doctrine, <a href="#p235">235</a>.
-<br> " on Indulgences, <a href="#p224">224</a>.
-<br> " Preaching of, <a href="#p208">208</a>.
-<br> " visits Rome, <a href="#p208">208</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Magi, <a href="#p13">13</a>.
-<br> Man, Creation and Fall of, <a href="#p301">301</a>.
-<br> Manifesto, discontinuing plural marriage, <a href="#p407">407</a>.
-<br> Marriage, Celestial, introduced, <a href="#p394">394</a>.
-<br> " Covenant, Eternity of, <a href="#p394">394</a>.
-<br> " Establishment of plural, <a href="#p396">396</a>.
-<br> " Plural, <a href="#p394">394</a>.
-<br> " " Discontinued, <a href="#p407">407</a>.
-<br> " " Enactments of Congress against, <a href="#p405">405</a>.
-<br> Martyrdom of the prophets, <a href="#p401">401</a>.
-<br> Martyrs, Christian, <a href="#p124">124</a>.
-<br> " " Worship of, <a href="#p161">161</a>.
-<br> Mary Magdalene, <a href="#p61">61</a>.
-<br> Mary, the mother of Jesus, <a href="#p11">11</a>.
-<br> Mass, Institution of, <a href="#p133">133</a>.
-<br> Matthias, <a href="#p70">70</a>.
-<br> Maximilian I, Emperor of Germany, <a href="#p212">212</a>.
-<br> Melanchthon, Philip, drafts religious formula, <a href="#p218">218</a>.
-<br> " drafts Augsburg Confession, <a href="#p220">220</a>.
-<br> Messiah - see Jesus Christ.
-<br> Metropolitans, Origin of, <a href="#p142">142</a>.
-<br> Ministry, Commencement of, <a href="#p307">307</a>.
-<br> Miracle, First in the Church, <a href="#p307">307</a>.
-<br> Mission, First, to Lamanites, <a href="#p315">315</a>.
-<br> Missouri, Character of old settlers, <a href="#p338">338</a>.
-<br> " Saints expelled from, <a href="#p392">392</a>.
-<br> " Western, <a href="#p327">327</a>.
-<br> Mormon, Book of, <a href="#p280">280</a>.
-<br> " " Analysis of, <a href="#p286">286</a>.
-<br> " " Means of testing truth of, <a href="#p292">292</a>.
-<br> " " The Prophet Joseph's first view of, <a href="#p283">283</a>.
-<br> " " Translation and publication, <a href="#p283">283</a>.
-<br> Moroni, Ancient Prophecies quoted by, <a href="#p281">281</a>.
-<br> " Description of, <a href="#p285">285</a>.
-<br> " Fourth appearance of, <a href="#p282">282</a>.
-<br> " First visit to Joseph Smith, <a href="#p280">280</a>.
-<br> " Warning to Jos. Smith, <a href="#p282">282</a>.
-<br> Moses, Appearing of, <a href="#p360">360</a>.
-<br> Mysteries, Pagan, <a href="#p22">22</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Nazareth, <a href="#p35">35</a>, <a href="#p39">39</a>.
-<br> Nature, Convulsions of, <a href="#p58">58</a>.
-<br> Nero, <a href="#p109">109</a>, <a href="#p112">112</a>.
-<br> Nephites, Destruction of, <a href="#p200">200</a>.
-<br> Nuremberg, The truce of, <a href="#p221">221</a>.
-<br> Nauvoo, The rise of, <a href="#p393">393</a>, <a href="#p398">398</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Opposition, Rise of, <a href="#p72">72</a>.
-<br> Officials, Church, Corruption of, <a href="#p143">143</a>.
-<br> Ordinances, Outward, <a href="#p127">127</a>.
-<br> Organizations, Rerival of secret, <a href="#p199">199</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Paganism, Mysteries of, <a href="#p22">22</a>,
-<br> Pagans, Accusations of, <a href="#p127">127</a>.
-<br> Partridge, Edward, appointed bishop, <a href="#p316">316</a>.
-<br> Passover, <a href="#p34">34</a>, <a href="#p39">39</a>.
-<br> Patriarchs, Duties and callings, <a href="#p345">345</a>.
-<br> Paul, <a href="#p75">75</a>, <a href="#p80">80</a>.
-<br> " prophesies of apostasy, <a href="#p194">194</a>.
-<br> Paul III succeeds Clement VII, <a href="#p222">222</a>.
-<br> " calls Council of Trent, <a href="#p222">222</a>.
-<br> Pentecost, <a href="#p71">71</a>, <a href="#p79">79</a>.
-<br> Perdition, Sons of, <a href="#p388">388</a>.
-<br> Persecution, First, <a href="#p75">75</a>.
-<br> " among Nephites, <a href="#p198">198</a>.
-<br> " Early church, <a href="#p353">353</a>.
-<br> " End of Pagan, <a href="#p119">119</a>.
-<br> " in Jackson County, Mo., <a href="#p330">330</a>, <a href="#p338">338</a>.
-<br> " of Christians by Jews, <a href="#p105">105</a>.
-<br> " " Romans, <a href="#p107">107</a>.
-<br> " second century, A, <a href="#p123">123</a>.
-<br> " under Aurelius, <a href="#p115">115</a>.
-<br> " under Severus, <a href="#p115">115</a>.
-<br> " under Trajan, <a href="#p116">116</a>, <a href="#p123">123</a>.
-<br> " under Diocletian, <a href="#p117">117</a>.
-<br> Petri, Olaus, <a href="#p255">255</a>.
-<br> " Discussion with Gallius, <a href="#p256">256</a>.
-<br> Pharisees, <a href="#p27">27</a>.
-<br> Philip II of Spain, <a href="#p257">257</a>.
-<br> Philosophy, Gnostic and New Platonic, <a href="#p166">166</a>.
-<br> " Modes of life to which it led, <a href="#p168">168</a>.
-<br> " Pagan, mixed with Christian religion, <a href="#p163">163</a>.
-<br> Pilate, <a href="#p54">54</a>.
-<br> Pioneers, Arrival of, in Salt Lake Valley, <a href="#p403">403</a>.
-<br> Polycarp, <a href="#p115">115</a>, <a href="#p122">122</a>.
-<br> Popes, Absolute power of, <a href="#p157">157</a>.
-<br> " Character of language used by, <a href="#p158">158</a>.
-<br> " Supremacy of, discussed, <a href="#p214">214</a>.
-<br> " Rise of temporal power of, <a href="#p153">153</a>.
-<br> Predestination, Luther on, <a href="#p234">234</a>.
-<br> " Melanchthon on, <a href="#p235">235</a>.
-<br> " Effect of, on the mind, <a href="#p239">239</a>.
-<br> Presbyterian form of church government, <a href="#p253">253</a>.
-<br> Presidency, First, reorganized, <a href="#p403">403</a>.
-<br> Priesthood, Nature of, <a href="#p340">340</a>.
-<br> " Aaronic, Restoration of, <a href="#p296">296</a>.
-<br> " Spirit of government by, <a href="#p340">340</a>.
-<br> " Sphere of Aaronic, <a href="#p326">326</a>.
-<br> " Time of restoration of Melchisedek, <a href="#p311">311</a>.
-<br> Priests, Duties of, <a href="#p306">306</a>.
-<br> " High, Duties, Powers, <a href="#p346">346</a>.
-<br> " Quorums of, <a href="#p348">348</a>.
-<br> Prophecies on gathering of Israel, <a href="#p368">368</a>.
-<br> " quoted by Moroni, <a href="#p281">281</a>.
-<br> Protestant, Confession of Faith, <a href="#p220">220</a>.
-<br> " Origin of name, <a href="#p219">219</a>.
-<br> " objection to Catholic abuses, <a href="#p220">220</a>.
-<br> " Reverses of, <a href="#p222">222</a>.
-<br> " Victory of, <a href="#p223">223</a>.
-<br> Punishment, Eternal, Sectarian dogma, of, <a href="#p378">378</a>, <a href="#p389">389</a>.
-<br> Puritans Character of, <a href="#p269">269</a>.
-<br> " Intolerance of, <a href="#p264">264</a>.
-<br> " not satisfied with reformation, <a href="#p260">260</a>.
-<br> Rebellion, Luther's, <a href="#p242">242</a>.
-<br> " Revolution, not, <a href="#p244">244</a>.
-<br> Reformation, Catholic view of, <a href="#p245">245</a>.
-<br> " in Switzerland, <a href="#p252">252</a>.
-<br> " in France, <a href="#p255">255</a>.
-<br> " in Sweden, <a href="#p255">255</a>, <a href="#p267">267</a>.
-<br> " in Denmark, <a href="#p256">256</a>, <a href="#p268">268</a>.
-<br> " Motives back of, <a href="#p249">249</a>.
-<br> " Reproach of, <a href="#p250">250</a>.
-<br> " Revolution, not, <a href="#p246">246</a>.
-<br> " True cause of, <a href="#p245">245</a>, <a href="#p249">249</a>.
-<br> Reformers, Divisions among, <a href="#p250">250</a>.
-<br> " The error of, <a href="#p248">248</a>.
-<br> Relatives of Jesus, <a href="#p111">111</a>.
-<br> Resurrection, <a href="#p60">60</a>.
-<br> Rigdon, Sidney, accepts gospel, <a href="#p315">315</a>.
-<br> Rites, Pagan, joined to Christian, <a href="#p137">137</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Sacrament, <a href="#p52">52</a>.
-<br> " Administration, Manner of <a href="#p134">134</a>, <a href="#p304">304</a>.
-<br> " Corrupted, <a href="#p132">132</a>.
-<br> " Suppression of half, the <a href="#p134">134</a>.
-<br> " Views of Calvin and Zwingle on, <a href="#p254">254</a>.
-<br> Sadducees, <a href="#p27">27</a>.
-<br> Saints, Latter-day, added to Church title, <a href="#p299">299</a>.
-<br> " Errors of, <a href="#p309">309</a>.
-<br> " Expulsion of from Illinois, <a href="#p402">402</a>.
-<br> " Expulsion of, from Jackson County, Mo., <a href="#p330">330</a>.
-<br> " Flight of, to the west, <a href="#p402">402</a>.
-<br> Salvation, Conditions of, <a href="#p91">91</a>.
-<br> " General, <a href="#p84">84</a>.
-<br> " Individual, <a href="#p89">89</a>.
-<br> Samaritans, <a href="#p29">29</a>, <a href="#p365">365</a>.
-<br> Sanctification, <a href="#p302">302</a>.
-<br> Sanhedrim, <a href="#p32">32</a>.
-<br> Schools, Sunday, <a href="#p351">351</a>.
-<br> Scripture, Missing parts of, <a href="#p66">66</a>.
-<br> Sects, Multiplication of, <a href="#p248">248</a>.
-<br> Serfdom, Release of masses from, <a href="#p206">206</a>.
-<br> Seventies, <a href="#p46">46</a>.
-<br> " Nature of calling, etc., <a href="#p344">344</a>.
-<br> " Organization of, <a href="#p337">337</a>.
-<br> " Presiding quorum of, <a href="#p344">344</a>.
-<br> Sign of dove, <a href="#p42">42</a>.
-<br> Signs of Christ's birth, <a href="#p13">13</a>.
-<br> Smalcald, League of, <a href="#p221">221</a>.
-<br> Smith, Joseph, Birth and parentage of, <a href="#p275">275</a>.
-<br> " first prayer and vision, <a href="#p277">277</a>.
-<br> " martyrdom of, <a href="#p401">401</a>.
-<br> " name foretold, <a href="#p285">285</a>.
-<br> Societies, Female Relief, <a href="#p351">351</a>.
-<br> Spirits in prison, Preaching to, <a href="#p379">379</a>.
-<br> " Messiah preaching to, <a href="#p390">390</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Tacitus, <a href="#p109">109</a>.
-<br> Taylor, President John, <a href="#p404">404</a>.
-<br> " " Description of, <a href="#p415">415</a>.
-<br> Teachers, Duties of, <a href="#p306">306</a>.
-<br> " False, to arise, <a href="#p192">192</a>.
-<br> " Quorum of, <a href="#p348">348</a>.
-<br> Temple, Kirtland, The, <a href="#p358">358</a>, <a href="#p361">361</a>.
-<br> " Manifestations in, <a href="#p359">359</a>.
-<br> " Salt Lake, Laying capstone of, <a href="#p408">408</a>.
-<br> " Site of, in Jackson Co., <a href="#p327">327</a>.
-<br> Temporal affairs, <a href="#p74">74</a>.
-<br> Temptations, Order of, <a href="#p47">47</a>.
-<br> Tetzel, John, his connection with indulgences, <a href="#p211">211</a>.
-<br> " Luther's assault upon, <a href="#p211">211</a>.
-<br> " Character of, <a href="#p225">225</a>.
-<br> " Death of, <a href="#p230">230</a>, <a href="#p239">239</a>.
-<br> Toleration, Heathen, <a href="#p21">21</a>.
-<br> Traditions, <a href="#p67">67</a>.
-<br> Trajan, <a href="#p116">116</a>.
-<br> Trent, Council of, <a href="#p223">223</a>.
-<br> " Pestilence at, <a href="#p227">227</a>.
-<br> Tribes, Ten, depart for north, <a href="#p373">373</a>,
-<br> " lost, <a href="#p363">363</a>.
-<br> " Return of, <a href="#p368">368</a>, <a href="#p374">374</a>.
-<br> " Revolt of, <a href="#p363">363</a>.
-<br> Trinity, Doctrine of the, <a href="#p302">302</a>.
-<br>
-<br> United States government, Hand of God in establishment of, <a href="#p271">271</a>.
-<br> Urban II favors crusades, <a href="#p208">208</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Vasa, Gustavus, king of Sweden, <a href="#p255">255</a>.
-<br> Vision at first Conference of the Church, <a href="#p312">312</a>.
-<br> " Importance of Joseph Smith's first, <a href="#p278">278</a>.
-<br> " Joseph Smith's first, <a href="#p277">277</a>.
-<br> Voice of God and of the people in Church government, <a href="#p300">300</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Wards, how organized, <a href="#p350">350</a>.
-<br> Whitmer, David, one of the Three Witnesses, <a href="#p284">284</a>.
-<br> Whitnev, Newel K., appointed Bishop, <a href="#p316">316</a>, <a href="#p326">326</a>.
-<br> Witnesses, Three, <a href="#p284">284</a>.
-<br> Woodruff, President Wilford, <a href="#p405">405</a>.
-<br> " issues Manifesto, <a href="#p407">407</a>.
-<br> " lays capstone of Salt Lake Temple, <a href="#p408">408</a>.
-<br> Works, Good, Luther on, <a href="#p234">234</a>.
-<br> " Catholics trusted in, <a href="#p237">237</a>.
-<br> World, Condition of, etc., <a href="#p20">20</a>.
-<br> " Pagan, Arraignment of, <a href="#p23">23</a>.
-<br> " State at Christ's birth, <a href="#p24">24</a>.
-<br> Worship, on Sunday, Reason why, <a href="#p135">135</a>.
-<br> " Description of, <a href="#p135">135</a>.
-<br> " of martyrs, <a href="#p161">161</a>, <a href="#p175">175</a>.
-<br> " Simplicity of, changed, <a href="#p160">160</a>.
-<br> Wycliffe, John, English reformer, <a href="#p259">259</a>, <a href="#p268">268</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Y. M. and Y. L. M. I. A., <a href="#p351">351</a>.
-<br> Young, Brigham, Birth, etc., <a href="#p403">403</a>.
-<br> " Character of, <a href="#p415">415</a>.
-<br> " chosen President of the Church, <a href="#p403">403</a>.
-<br>
-<br> Zion, Location of, etc., <a href="#p320">320</a>, <a href="#p326">326</a>.
-<br> " Camp of, <a href="#p331">331</a>.
-<br> " Stakes of, <a href="#p349">349</a>.
-<br> Zwingle, birth, teaching, death, <a href="#p252">252</a>.
-<br> " recognized gradation in Church officers, <a href="#p252">252</a>.
-<br> " views on eucharist, <a href="#p254">254</a>.
-<br> " views on predestination, <a href="#p254">254</a>.
-</p>
-<h2><a name="TRANSCRIBER'SNOTE"></a>Transcriber's Note
-</h2>
-<p>Various spelling and punctuation errors in the original print edition have
-been corrected as seemed reasonable. This ebook was developed using scans
-available at https://archive.org/details/outlinesofeccles1902robe.
-</p><p></p>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Outlines of Ecclesiastical History, by
-B. H. Roberts
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK OUTLINES OF ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-***** This file should be named 52391-h.htm or 52391-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/3/9/52391/
-
-Produced by the Mormon Texts Project
-(http://mormontextsproject.org), with thanks to Renah
-Holmes for proofreading.
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
-
diff --git a/old/52391-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/52391-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 89c456d..0000000
--- a/old/52391-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ